(navigation image)
Home American Libraries | Canadian Libraries | Universal Library | Community Texts | Project Gutenberg | Children's Library | Biodiversity Heritage Library | Additional Collections
Search: Advanced Search
Anonymous User (login or join us) Upload
See other formats

Full text of "Catholic world"

This is a digital copy of a book that was preserved for generations on library shelves before it was carefully scanned by Google as part of a project 
to make the world's books discoverable online. 

It has survived long enough for the copyright to expire and the book to enter the public domain. A public domain book is one that was never subject 
to copyright or whose legal copyright term has expired. Whether a book is in the public domain may vary country to country. Public domain books 
are our gateways to the past, representing a wealth of history, culture and knowledge that's often difficult to discover. 

Marks, notations and other marginalia present in the original volume will appear in this file - a reminder of this book's long journey from the 
publisher to a library and finally to you. 

Usage guidelines 

Google is proud to partner with libraries to digitize public domain materials and make them widely accessible. Public domain books belong to the 
public and we are merely their custodians. Nevertheless, this work is expensive, so in order to keep providing this resource, we have taken steps to 
prevent abuse by commercial parties, including placing technical restrictions on automated querying. 

We also ask that you: 

+ Make non-commercial use of the files We designed Google Book Search for use by individuals, and we request that you use these files for 
personal, non-commercial purposes. 

+ Refrain from automated querying Do not send automated queries of any sort to Google's system: If you are conducting research on machine 
translation, optical character recognition or other areas where access to a large amount of text is helpful, please contact us. We encourage the 
use of public domain materials for these purposes and may be able to help. 

+ Maintain attribution The Google "watermark" you see on each file is essential for informing people about this project and helping them find 
additional materials through Google Book Search. Please do not remove it. 

+ Keep it legal Whatever your use, remember that you are responsible for ensuring that what you are doing is legal. Do not assume that just 
because we believe a book is in the public domain for users in the United States, that the work is also in the public domain for users in other 
countries. Whether a book is still in copyright varies from country to country, and we can't offer guidance on whether any specific use of 
any specific book is allowed. Please do not assume that a book's appearance in Google Book Search means it can be used in any manner 
anywhere in the world. Copyright infringement liability can be quite severe. 

About Google Book Search 

Google's mission is to organize the world's information and to make it universally accessible and useful. Google Book Search helps readers 
discover the world's books while helping authors and publishers reach new audiences. You can search through the full text of this book on the web 

at http : //books . google . com/| 



Digitized by 



Google 



cp > a3> a--^ 



HarbarU College ].ifararQ 

FKOM THE BEC^UBST OP 

JAMES WALKER, D.D., LL.D., 

(CUM of 1814) 

FORMER PRESIDENT OF HARVARD COLLEGE; 

** Preference being given to works in the Intellectual 
and Moral Sciences." 



r 

Digitized by VrrOOQiC 



Digitized by 



Google 



Digitized by 



Google 



Digitized by 



Google 



f 



Digitized by 



Google 



Digitized by 



Google 



Digitized by 



Google 



THE 



CATHOLIC WORLD. 



MONTHLY MAGAZINE 



or 



General I^iterature and Science 



PUBLISHED BY THE PAULIST FATHERS. 



VOL. LXXXIX. 

APRIL, 1909, TO SEPTEMBER, 1909. 



NEW YORK : 

THE OFFICE OF THE CATHOLIC WORLD, 

120 West 60th Street. 



19C9. 



Digitized by 



Google 



a/ 



\^ 



TO READERS OF THE 



CATHOLIC WORLD. 



OFFER TO THE CLERGY: 



OFIE^ER TO LAYMEN: 



OFFER TO YOVNG MEN: 



OFFER TO YOUNG WOMEN i 



Every priest knows the value of homiletic litera 
ture. The Cathouc World is offering a collec- 
tion of valuable sermons. Send for particulars. 

Every Catholic layman should have a Catliolic 
library. Here is a chance to begin, or to add to 
what you have. Send for particulars. 

Do you want a Seminary or College education ? 
If so, write to us, giving name of the institution 
and we will tell you how to secure your tuition free. 
Write to-day. 

Do you want to go to a Convent or College ? Send 
us the name of the school and we will explain our 
plan. Do not miss this chance. Send for par- 
ticulars. 



ADDRESS ALL COMMUNICATIONS TO 
Department M 

The Catholic Uiopld 

I ?0 West 60th St., New York, N. Y. 



OFFER TO THE CLERGY 
A COI«CHCTIOM OK SERMOXUS 

If interested y mail this coupon to us 

Name 

A ' Id ress 

Cilv 

State : 



OFFER TO LAYMEN 
MVCLHUS 1 IBRARV-8IX VOI^VHES 

If interested, mail this coupon to us 

Name 

Address — 

City . — 

State . 



OFFER TO YOONG WOMEN 

FRBH CONVKKT OR COI«I«CGB 

COVRSKH 

If interested, mail this coupon to us 

Name 

Address.; 



City- 
State 



OFFER TO YOUNG MEN 

FREE SKBIIBIAItir OR COI«I«EG£ 

COVReSfl 

If interested, mail this coupon to us 

Name ■ 

Address — ^ 

City . ^ 

State 



Digitized by 



Google 



pn-- VCM 1 7 1309 




CONTENTS. 



Achill, The Island ol.^Rosa Mulkol- 

land Gilbert i 63 

Ancel Beautiful, The.—/. R, Meagher^ 224 
Arran, The South Isles oL^Etkel C 

Randall^ Pk,D.y .... 654 
Catholic Literature in Public Libraries. 

^ tyilliam SUtscn Merrill^ . . 500 
Chesterton, G.K.— »^. E, Campbell, . x 
Christian Science, The Cures of. — 

Francis D. McGarry, CS.C, . 373 

Church and State in France. — M. /. 

Costello, 665 

Church and the Workingnian, The.*- 

fohn A, Ryan J .... 776 

Columbian Reading Union, The, 141, 285, 
428, 574, 716, 860 
Convent Life in Modern Fiction. — F>'r- 

ginia M, Crawford^ . . . 360 

Current Events, 132, 275, 418, 563, 703, 850 
Dante and His Celtic Precursors. — Ed- 
mund G. Gardner, . . 289, 445 
Day of Fate, In the. — Christian Reid, 332 
De Smet in the Oregon Country.— ^1/- 

wtn V. 0*Hara, . , . .317 
Eliot, President, Among the Prophets. 

—Francis P. Duffy, D.D,, . . 721 
Empire, A Remnant of.—/*. W, 

Browne, 41 

End of a Long Journey, The.—/. Pren- 

dtrgast, S,/. 636 

** Fioretti," The Teaching of the.— /^tf- 

ther Cuthbert, O.S,F,C., . . 189 
Flete, Father William, Hermit.— Z7ar- 

ley Dale 232 

Foreign Periodicals, 122, 264, 409, 554, 

693, 840 
Grafton, Bishop, Is He Fair? — Lewis 

/erome O'Hern, CS.P,, . . 577 

Haeckel and His Methods. — Richard L, 

Mjngan, S./., . . .213 

Her Mother's Daughter. — Rat Marine 

TynAU. II, 150, 302, 456, 595, 733 

Holy Spirit, The, and the Christian 

Life. — Thomas /. Gerrard, . . 344 



Home, The Christian Ideal of the. — 

James Cardinal Gibbons, . .145 

Hours of Our Lady, The. — Marian 

Nesbitt, 493 

Ireland : a Land of Industrial Promise. 

— P, /. Lennox, . . . .177 

Joan of Arc, Did the Church Bum ?— /, 

A. Le Breton Girdlestone, . . 783 

Layman, A GrtSit.— lVil/rid Wilber- 
force, 79 

Lost Dog,- A. — Mary Austin, . . 624 

Lourdes, The Wonders of.—/. Bricout, 

472, 615, 809 

Mairteen*s History. — ^V. F, Degidon, . 203 

Modem Saint, K.^Countessde Courson, 648 

Moore, Count (A Great Layman). — 

Wilfrid Wilber/orce, ... 79 

New Books, 103, 240, 384, 538, 674, 820 

Oscford, Pre-Tractarian, — ^i(^r«V/ Wil- 
ber/orce, 508 

Oxford Thinkers, Sxn.-^Wilfrid Wil- 

betforce, 758 

Pilgrim's Progress, The, and Some Prc- 
Re formation Allegories. — /Cathe- 
rine Br /gy, . . • . 96, 166 

Religious Teaching in American Uni- 
versities (The End of a Long Jour- 
ney).—/. Prendergast, SJ., , . 636 

Scholastic Criticism and Apologetics. — 

W. H. Kent, 0,S,C. . . .748 

Shakespeare, The Arts in.— ^. W. 

Corpe, 523 

SmaU and Narrow House, The. — Pa- 
mela Gage^ 485 

Social Reform by Legislation, A Pro- 
gramme ol.—fohn A, Ryan, D D , 

433,608 

Stranger Within Our Gates, A.— /^. W, 

G. Hyrst, • .... 49 

Tally-ho. — Pamela Gage, . . . 797 

Tyrrell's, Father, View of Revealed 

Truth— /«?A» M, Salter, S./., . 27 

Vrau, Philibert (A Modern Saint).— 

Countess de Courson, . . 648 



Supreme Venture, 

Clifford, 176 



POETRY. 
The.— a?nitf/iW There.- /*««*/« Gage, 



94 



NEW PUBLICATIONS. 

^neid of Virgil, The, .... 258 Calumny "Refuted, A 834 

Agnosticisme Conteniporaine, Dieu et V, 543 CanOn Law, A Handbook of, . . 391 

Aline of the Grand Woods, . . . 257 Carmina. 399 

America, 261 Catechetical Instruction, A Compen- 

American Expansion, The Romance of, 385 dium of, 390 

Anglaise Convertie, Une, , . . 246 Catholic Ceremonies and Practices, 

Auxilium Infirmorum 692 Reasonableness 6f, . . '. . 251 

Bartholomew de Xai Casas, ... 108 Catholic Church add Science, The, . 830 

Besoin, Le, et le Devoir Religeux, , 830 Catholic Churchmen in Science, . . 836 

Between Friends, 260 Catholic Encyclopedia, The, . 538 

Bosco's, Don, Early Apostolate, His- Catholic FootMeps in Old New York, . 387 

tory of,' '. ' 544 Catholic Revival in England, The 

BreviariumSacrarutaiVirginumOrd. SS. Dawn of the, 244 

SalvatoVis, vulg^o Saactas Birgittae, . 690 Catholics; Some Great, of Church and 

Bridge Builders, The, . . . .822 State, ' 684 

Browning and Isaiah, .... 682 Catholic Who's Who for 1909, The, • 245 j 

Business Correspondence in Shorthand, 692 Child of Destiny, A, . ^^L-Kiu isy ^.^^ v5SS^ -i IC 

Business English, Style Book of, . • 692 Child Study and Education, . / . 252 O 



IV 



Contents. 



Christ, The, the Son of God, , . 241 

Church and Grave, The Law of, . . 391 

Churches and the Wage-Earners, The, 398 
Communion, Frequent and Daily, Even 

For Men, 552 

Cosmoejaphiae Introductio, The, df 

Martin WaldseemQller, . . .386 
Costume of Prelates of the Catholic 
Church According to Roman Eti- 
quette, 836 

Cousin Sara, . ^ 689 

Crisa> Intime de T^glise de France, La, 550 

Cupa Revisited, 260 

Daily Communion, The Decree of, • 55a 

Damen, Father, Lectures of, . • 692 

Dante Alighieri, La Divina Commedia, 399 

Denrille, Claude, Artist, . . . 260 
Dilettantisme, Du, d I'Action £tudes 

Contcmporaines, .... 405 

Divine Story, 1 he, .... 835 

Dromina, 549 

Early Church, Characteristics of the, . 542 
Early History of the Christian Church 
From Its Foundation to the End of 

the Third Century, .... 540 

Eglise. L*, de France et la Separation, . 550 
Encyclopedia of Religious Knowledge, 

The ^few Schaff-Herxog, . . .118 
England and the English from an 

American Point of View, . • . 545 
English Catholics in the Eighteenth 

Century, Biographies of, . . . 244 
Essays, Literary, Cntical, and Histor- 
ical, 838 

Far East, Education in the, . . . 838 
Forgive and Forget, .... 407 
Francailles, Les, et le Mariage Disci- 
pline Actuelle, 114 

Friar Observant, A, .... 256 

Greek and Eastern Churches, The, . 11 1 

Harvest Within, The, .... 683 

Heortology, 241 

Holy Eucharist, The, and Frequent and 

Daily Communion, .... 553 
Holy water and its Significance for 

Catholics 691 

Humble Victims, 838 

Humility and Patience, The Little Book 

of, 553 

Hymns, Early Christian, . . . 250 
Immanence, L', et le Probldme Reli- 

SJeux, 543 

Immortality, 247 

Index of Forbidden Rook*, The Roman, 
Briefly Explained for Catholic Book- 
lovers and Students, .... 117 
Ireland and Her People, . . . 396 
Italians of To-Day, The, . • .110 
Italy, The Spell of, .... 402 

Justlristi 39S»5S3 

Kingdom of Earth, The, . . . 824 
Kings and the Cats, The, ... 688 
Laborers in God's Vineyard, • . 39^ 
Latin Pronounced for Altar Boys, . 692 
Latin Pronounced for Church Services, 692 
Law Stenographer, How to Become a, 692 
Lea»s, Henry Charles, Historical Writ- 
ings, 115 

Lifers Day, 404 

Lincoln Conscript, A, . . . . 548 

Little Angels, 837 

Little Gods. The 255 

Loisy, M., Les Theories de, . .261 

Machebeuf, D.D., Life of the Right 

Rev. Joseph P 6B5 

Madge-Make-the-Best-of-It, ... 260 

Marriage A la Mode, «... 823 



Making and Unmaking of a Dullard, 

The, ....... 397 

Misery and Its Causes, .... 826 

Modernism, , 388 

Modernist es, Les, 543 

Mysterious Way, In a, . . . . 689 
Mystical Element of Religion, The, as 
Studied in St. Catherine of Genoa 

and Her Friends, .... 103 

New Scholar at St. Anne's, The, . . 259 
Objections Against Religion, Short An- 
swers to Common, . • . 250, 691 

Oriental Gentleman, An,' • . . ^07 
Overland Route, The, to the Road of a 

Thousand Wonders, . . . .121 
Parents and Frequent Communion of 

Children, 551 

Pastorsof Souls, Pules for the, . . 686 
People at Play, The, . , . .687 
Philosophies de I'lntuition, Insuffisance 

des, 827 

Pluralistic Universe, A, , . . . 679 

Poems, 408 

Preachers' Protest, The, . . .834 
Profit and Loss in Man, • . .120 

Pro- Romanism and the Tractarian 

Movement, 824 

Prussien, Le Peril, au lieu d'un Schell- 

ing, des Milliards, .... 550 
Psychological Phenomena of Christian- 
ity, The, 106 

Ramona's Country, Through, , . 545 
Religions, History of, . . . . 674 
Religious Unrest— The Way Out, . 691 
Report of the Nineteenth Eucharistic 
Congress Held at Westminster, Sep- 
tember, 1908 .•:92 

Right Living, Some Incentives to, . 836 

Roads to Rome in America, Some, . 24^ 

Road to Rome, A, 113 

Roman Church, The, Before Constan- 

tine, 832 

Roundabout Way, In a, . . . 407 

St. Benedict, 7 he Via Vita of, . .394 
Saint Janyier, Le C61^bre Miracle de, d 

Naples et Pouzzoles, .... 240 

St. Melania, The Lifeof, ... 246 

St. Thomas d Becket, .... 242 

Sangre y Arena, 1x9 

Scholastic Philosophy in the Nineteenth 

Century, The Revival of, . . . 678 

Score, The, 820 

Shelbume Essays, The, . . . 675 

Simony in the Christian Church, A 

History of, 384 

Sing Ye to the Lord, .... 832 

Socialism, Shall We Choose ? . . 833 
Sociologie d*apr4s les Principes de la 

Th6ologie Catholique, Traits de, . 828 

Sodalist's Imitation of Christ, The, . 407 

Son of Siro. The, 256 

Spiritism, Modern, . . . •117 

Spiritual Verses as Aids to Mental 

Prayer, 691 

Springs of Helicon, The, . . . 252 
Standard of r,ivinp:. The, Among Work- 

ingmen's Families in New York City, 40K 
Sunday-School Director's Guide to Suc- 
cess, The, 251 

Swetchine, Madame, The Maxims of, . 686 

Thirteenth, Greatest of Centuries, The, 831 

Thoughts of the Heart, .... 394 
Vocation Sociale, Ma, . • . .116 
Where th« Fishes Go, . . . •839 

White Sister, The 690 

Wil^ of Sexton Maginnis, The, . . 2q'i 

Witness of the Wilderness, The, . . 248 

. ■ . Jigitizedby VjOOQIC 



APRIL 1909 



THE 



Cfatfiblietorld 



0. K. Chastorton 

Her MothOT's-Danghter 

Father Tyrreirs View ef Bevaaled Truth 

A Kemnaxit of Empire 

A Stranger Within Our Gatea . 

The Island of AchiU 

A Great Layman 

There 

The Pilgrim^a Progreaa and Some 
Pre-Beformation Allegories 



IV. E. Campbell 

Katharine Tynan 

fohn Jf. Salter, SJ. 

P. IV. Browne 

H. W, G, Hyrst 

Rosa Mulholland Gilbert 

Wilfrid Wilbcr force 

Pamela Gage 



Katherine Brcgy 



Hew Books— Foreign Periodicals 
Current Erents 

Price-as cents; #3 per Year 



THE OFFICE OF THE CATHOLIC WORLD, NEW YORK 

zsO'iae.West ^oui Street 

QftU PAin^ fflBilBp fUBasa a OOn Ui.. OrfiM Bssat, 43 e^^ 

Is firisis tl \m IMmlm Pnumlm: ABffBUa SAVaKB, BtfiMr 



it Is* 



SmUBO AT VSW YORK POST-OFFICE AS SICOin>-CLAJM MATTSA* 



MY SPECIALTIES. 

Pure Virgin Olive Oil. . First pressing 
of the Olive. Imported under my Eclipse 
Brand in full half-pint, pint, and quart 
bottles, and in gallon and half- gallon 
cans. Analysis by Agricultural Depart^ 
ment, Washington, showing absolute 
purity, published in^Callanan's Magazine. 

L. J. Callanan's ttclipsc Brand . of 
Ceylon tea eclipses all other Ceylon teas 
offered in packages in this market, in 
quality and ilavor. 

There is no better tea sold in this 
country than ir^y " 41 " blend, quality and 
flavor always the same. No tea table 
complete without it. 

Mj «'43'* Brand of Colfoe 

is a blend of the choicest coffees imported. 
It is sure to please lovers of good coffee. 
No breakfast table complete without it. 

My Motto. Everything in Groceries, 
Altar Wines, and Cigars, everythmg of 
the Best. A visit to my permanent food 
exposition will pay you. Copy Callanan's 
Magazine and price list mailed on request. 

TU J. CALLAXAN, 

4 1 anil 43 Vesey Strtet, New York. 



r decorating bills, as the worst 
spots on a wall are the dust stains above 
the radiators. 

Write for bdoklet. 

MONASH-YOUNKER CO. 

NB W YORK : CHICAGO : 

86 Centre St, joj 8. Canml St. 



MONASH 
RADIATOR SHIELDS. 

Easily remoyed during the 
summer months if desired. 



KOT A CHBAP MILK, 
BUT BBST MADE. 



Write for Free Booklet 
witit Vmlnmhle Preeeutm, 

Wisconsin Condensed Milk Co., 

91 Hntfs^n •€•» PCe^v Tork. 




/• Mm rnt^trimtt ikiits mdn0riiMm£ntM tf/cajr^ * 



■digitized by ^ 



^ii^'' ■'' 




CATHOLIC WORLD, 



Vol. LXXXIX. APRIL, 1909. No. 529. 

G. K. CHESTERTON. 

BY W. E. CAMPBELL. 
IL— CATHOLIC APOLOGIST. 

|E come now to Mr. Chesterton as Catholic Apol- 
ogist.* He is not singular in his defence of the 
Churcht but in the manner and originality of 
his defence he is indeed singular. He has been 
much criticised, first for his use of paradox, and 
secondly for his use of humor. But in these two respects he 
18 well in the wake of Catholic tradition. What first strikes us 
about Mr. Chesterton's method of controversy is that he at- 
tacks and defends things upon entirely different grounds from 
those upon which they are generally attacked and defended. 
Hence he is called, and rightly so, paradoxical. But surely 
this paradoxical habit of his is, after all, a purely judicial one. 
The modern mind has lost its power of seeing things sub specie 
atemitatis — of seeing them, that is to say, in that living rela- 
tion in which it has pleased God to create and sustain them. 
Before Mr. Chesterton submits his case for judgment, he must 
first restore the minds of his jury to a proper state of equi- 
librium; and he does this by means of paradox. In doing so 
he is following, and we speak reverently, evangelical pre- 
cedent. Where shall we find current fashions of thought at- 
tacked with so much paradox and emphasis as in the Gospels ? 
Mr. Chesterton's paradoxes are startling; but, having once stated 

* In the March Catholic World we considered Mr. G. K. Chesterton as " Inquisitor 
and Democrat.*' 



Copyrigbt. 2909. Thb Missionaxt Socibtt of St. Paul thb Apostlb 

in THB STATm OF NSW TOKK. 
VOL. LXXXIX.— I 

Digitized by 



Google 



2 G. K. CHESTERTON [April, 

them, he proceeds to enlarge and elucidate them in the home- 
liest manner by parables taken from the common experiences 
of everyday life. And here again he has authority for so do- 
ing. He is not afraid to appeal to the eye and to the heart 
and to the ear of the ordinary man — to be obvious, to be hu- 
morous, at times almost to be irreverent about the things of 
our holy Faith. We are suffering from the low spirits of the 
Reformation. We have not faith enough to believe that good 
spirits both come from and return to the spiritual world, 
that there too humor is more acceptable than the solemnities 
of pride; and the jokes of the humble man than the epigrams 
of the cruelly clever. Humor, after all, succeeds where many 
a more pretentious weapon fails; it disciplines sentiment and 
is the best birch for sentimentality. As distinguished from wit, 
which is purely intellectual, it comes from the heart; it is 
more excellent than satire, since it is founded on charity. In 
fine, it is in essence altogether spiritual, for it consists in so 
laying stress on material things as to show their real value. 

To put the thesis in brief, Mr. Chesterton sets out to show 
that Christianity, as defined by the Apostles Creed, is the best 
root of human energy and sound ethics. He assumes that 
what the ordinary western man desires is an active and imag- 
inative life, picturesque and full of poetical curiosity^n fact, 
a romantic life. We need so to view the world as to com- 
bine an idea of wonder and an idea of welcome. We need to 
be happy in this wonderland without once being merely com- 
fortable. Many people in this very reasonable age are afraid 
of imagination, and especially of mystical imagination; they 
are afraid it is dangerous to a man's mental balance: ''Imag- 
ination does not breed insanity. Exactly what does breed in- 
sanity is reason. Cowper was driven mad by the ugly and 
alien logic of predestination. He was damned by John Calvin ; 
he was almost saved by John Gilpin. The general fact is 
simple. Poetry is sane because it floats easily in an infinite 
sea ; reason seeks to cross the infinite sea, and so to make it 
finite. The poet only desires exaltation and expansion, a world 
to stretch himself in.'' 

The mad man is the man who has lost everything else but 
his reason. His reason works perfectly within a contracted 
circle of ideas; but he is indifferent to and disconnected with 
everything outside this narrow circle. Now the materialist 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] G. K. CHESTERTON 3 

scheme is just like this Iscid scheme of the madman; it is 
characterized by just the same note of logical completeness 
combined with an utter unconsciousness of the alien energies 
and the large indi£Ference of the earth. The materialist is 
confined to the clean and well-lit prison of one idea. His 
truth is a very limited one and consequently his belief is un- 
healthy. ''The man who cannot believe his senses, and the 
man who cannot believe anything else, are both insane, but 
their insanity is not proved by any error in their argument, 
but by the manifest mistake of their whole lives. They 
have both locked themselves up in two boxes, painted inside 
with the sun and the stars; they are both unable to get out, 
the one into the health and happiness of heaven, the other 
even into the health and happiness of the earth.''* 

But while reason used without root, reason in the void, is 
the chief note of insanity, what is it that keeps men sane? 
Practically speaking it is mysticism. The ordinary man has al- 
ways been a mystic. He has always been able to hold appar- 
ent contradictions in the grip of a healthy faith. If he saw 
two truths that seemed to contradict each other, he would take 
the two truths and the contradiction along with them; and 
it is exactly this balance of apparent contradictions that con- 
stitutes the whole buoyancy of the healthy man. Not only in 
spiritual things but alsLO in the ordinary things of everyday 
life this has always been true of him. 

No, the ordinary man cannot live by reasoning alone, and 
in fact never does. '' The mystic allows one thing to be mys- 
terious, and everything else becomes lucid. The determinist 
makes the theory of causation quite clear, and then finds he 
cannot say ' if you please ' to the housemaid. The Christian 
permits free will to remain a sacred mystery; but because of 
this his relations with the housemaid become of a sparkling 
and crystal clearness. He puts the seed of dogma in a central 
darkness ; but it branches forth in all directions with abounding 
health. The one created thing which we cannot look at is the 
one thing in the light of which we look at everything else. 
• • • Detached intellectualism is (in the exact sense of the 
popular phrase) all moonshine; for it is light without heat, 
and it is secondary light reflected from a dead world. But the 
Greeks were right when they made Apollo the god both of 
imagination and sanity; for he was both the patron of poetry 

♦ Orthodoxy, ^ j 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



4 G. K. Chesterton [April, 

and the patron of healing. Of necessary dogmas and a special 
creed I shall speak later. But that transcendentalism by which 
all men live has primarily much the same position as the sun 
in the sky. We are conscious of it as of a kind of splendid 
confusion; it is something both shining and shapeless, at once 
a blaze and a blur. But the circle of the moon is as clear 
and unmistakable as recurrent and inevitable, as the circle of 
Euclid on a blackboard. For the moon is utterly reasonable; 
and the moon is the mother of lunatics and has given them 
all her name." * 

Continuing this same parable of mental disorder, our author 
proceeds to show the practical outcome of that revolt from 
authority which occurred at the so-called Reformation. 

The Reformers who tried to destroy, and the critics who 
always denounce, religious authority are like the men who 
should attack the police without ever having heard of burglars. 
For there is a great and possible peril to the human mind— 
a peril as practical as burglary. That peril is that the human 
intellect is free to destroy itself, and it is against that peril 
that religious authority was reared as a barrier. One of the 
consequences of the Reformation, at any rate for the non- 
Catholic world, has been to destroy, by entirely unfettered in- 
tellectual analysis, that authoritative, dogmatic, mystical, and 
popular science which treats of the right relations of the pow- 
ers of the human soul with the passions of the human body. 
And furthermore, these powers and passions have been let loose 
upon the world without order, relation, or restraint. ''The 
vices are indeed let loose; and they wander and do damage. 
But the virtues are let loose also; and the virtues wander 
more wildly and do more terrible damage. The modem world 
is full of the old Christian virtues gone mad. The virtues have 
gone mad because they have been isolated from each other and 
are wandering alone.'' Many of them, indeed, have taken ref- 
uge with the specialists. The scientists have pursued truth 
alone, and truth has become pitiless; the humanitarians have 
followed pity, and she has become untruthful. Charity was 
once a mystical virtue, but now she has become rationalized 
and excuses even sin. Humility has changed its place, and in- 
stead of being a spur to prevent a man from stopping, has be- 
come a nail in his boot to prevent him from going on. "For 
the old humility made a man doubtful about his efforts, which 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



1909.] G* K. Chesterton 5 

might make him work harder. But the new humility makes a 
man doubtful about his aims, which will make him stop work- 
ing altogether/' But it is time to leave this land of mental 
disorder ''where the mere questioner can but knock his head 
against the limits of human thought — and crack it/' 

In a pleasant chapter on the ethics of Elfland, Mr. Chester- 
ton tells us that he learnt from the fairy tales of the nursery 
a certain way of looking at life which, from that time, he has 
never given up: "In our fairy tales/' he says, ''we keep a 
sharp distinction between the science of mental [relations, in 
which there are really laws, and the science of physical facts, 
in which there are no laws, but only weird repetitions. We 
believe that a beanstalk climbed to heaven; but that does not 
at all confuse our convictions on the philosophical question of 
how many beans make five. Men of science talk as if the con- 
nection of two things physically connected them philosophic- 
ally." The only words which ever satisfy Mr. Chesterton when 
speaking of nature are the words used in fairy tales, " charm," 
" spell," " enchantment," and the like. The world we live in does 
not explain itself. It is full of magic, but its magic must have a 
meaning, and some one to mean it It is full of beauty and 
horror and startling surprise: of fairy princesses and wicked 
ogres; of gorgeous palaces and castles frowning with dreadful 
mystery. Among all this the ordinary human being moves, 
and moves conditionally. Certain delightful things are to hap- 
pen to him, but only when he fulfills a certain condition and 
one that so often seems merely quaint and arbitrary. But in 
order to get his good he need not see the necessary connec- 
tion between the high promise and the humble condition. 
Reasoning will not bridge the gap, but other mysterious things 
will fill it Life is so largely a matter of mystery, but mys- 
tery if properly approached is life-enhancing. The gestures of 
faith, wonder, praise, and humility are as characteristically hu- 
man as they are childlike — the feeling that life is so precious 
because saved from some primordial ruin, and so beset with 
heroic danger that obedience is dignified, being a matter of 
personal loyalty ; that suffering, though so often unexplainable 
in any other than a physical sense, is but the condition of some 
great and joyous climax; that humility is the resting of our 
puny individual effort upon the moving platform of some great 
personal ability that will never fail us— these and the like feel- 
ings are what give color and energy and integration ta-4ndi- t 

L.,yu,^t.d by VrrOOQ 16 



6 G. K. CHESTERTON [Aprils 

vidual lives. '^ All this I felt/' says Mr. Chesterton, '' and the 
age gave me no encouragement to feel it. All the time I had 
not even thought of Christian theology.'' 

Our attitude, then, towards life can be better expressed in 
terms of a kind of military loyalty than in the one-sided view 
of either optimist or pessimist. '' Let us suppose that we are 
confronted with a desperate case — say Pimlico. It is not enough 
(or a man to disapprove of Pimlico ; in that case he will mere- 
ly cut his throat or move to Chelsea. Nor, certainly, is it 
enough for the man to approve of Pimlico ; for then it would 
remain Pimlico, which would be awful. The only way out of 
it seems to be for somebody to love Pimlico, to love it with a 
transcendental tie and without any earthly reason. If there 
arose a man who loved Pimlico, then Pimlico would rise into 
ivory towers and golden pinnacles; Pimlico would attire her- 
self as a woman does when she is loved. For decoration is 
not given to hide horrible things, but to decorate things already 
adorable. A mother does not give her child a blue bow be- 
cause she is ugly without it. A lover does not give a girl a 
necklace to bide her neck. If men loved Pimlico as mothers 
loved children, arbitrarily, because it is theirs^ Pimlico in a year 
or two might be fairer than Florence. This, as a fact, is how 
cities did grow great. Go to the darkest roots of civilization 
and you will find them knotted round some sacred stone or 
encircling some sacred well. People first paid honor to a spot 
and afterwards gained glory for it."* 

Now the modern conception of life which has grown up 
under the lengthening shadow of Ibsen is utterly opposed to 
this attitude of loyalty towards life. Consider the question of 
suicide. The Ibsenites believe that suicide is rather a fine thing, 
and go so far as to hope that there will soon be penny-in-the- 
slot machines, by which a man can kill himself for a penny. 
But not only is suicide a sin. '^ It is the sin. It is the ulti- 
mate and absolute evil, the refusal to take an interest in ex- 
istence; the refusal to take the oath of loyalty to life. • . . 
About the same time I read a solemn flippancy by some free- 
thinker. He said that a suicide was only the same as a mar- 
tyr. Obviously the suicide is the opposite of a martyr. A mar- 
tyr is a man who cares so much for something outside him, that 
he forgets his own personal life. A suicide is a man who cares 
so little for anything outside, that he wants to see the last of 

Digitized by VjOOQ l6 



1909.] G. K. Chesterton 7 

everything. In other wordsi the martyr is noble because he 
confesses this ultimate tie with life; he sets his heart outside 
himself, he dies that something may live. The suicide is ig- 
noble because he has not this link with being; he is a mere 
destroyer; spiritually he destroys the universe. And then I 
remembered the stake and the cross-roads, and the queer fact 
that Christianity had this weird harshness to the suicide. For 
Christianity had shown a wild encouragement of the martyr. 
The early Christian martyrs talked of death with a horrible 
happiness. They blasphemed the beautiful duties of the body, 
they smelt the grave afar o£F like a field of flowers. All this 
has seemed to many the very poetry of pessimism. Yet there 
is the stake at the cross-roads to show what Christianity thought 
of the pessimist."* 

''This was the first of a long train of enigmas with which 
Christianity entered the discussion. And there went with it a 
peculiarity of which I shall have to speak more markedly as 
the note of all Christian notions, but which distinctly began in 
this one. The Christian attitude to the martyr and the suicide 
was not what is so often affirmed in modern morals. It was 
not a matter of degree. The Christian feeling was furiously 
for one and furiously against the other ; these things that looked 
so much alike were at opposite ends of heaven and hell. I am 
not saying that fierceness was right ; but why was it so fierce ? 

"Here it was that I first found that my wandering feet 
were in some beaten track. Christianity had felt this opposi- 
tion of the martyr to the suicide ; had it perhaps felt it for the 
same reason? Had Christianity felt what I had felt? This 
med for a first loyalty to things^ and then for a ruinous reform 
of things f Then I remembered that it was actually the charge 
against Christianity that it combined these two things that I 
was trying to combine. Christianity was accused, at one and 
the same time, of being too optimistic about the universe and 
of being too pessimistic about the world. The coincidence 
made me suddenly stand still. 

''But the important matter was this, that it entirely reversed 
the reason for optimism. The Christian optimism is based on 
the fact that we do not fit into the world.'' f That this is only 
the wrong place because there is a better. 

The trouble, then, with this world of ours is not that it is 
aa unreasonable world, or even that it is a reasonable one; 

•IHd,, p. 13a. t/3*rf., p. 145. 

uigitized by VjOOQIC 



S G. K. Chesterton [April, 

but that it is nearly reasonablei but not quite. There is some- 
thing about it that baiRes, eludes, and destroys exact expecta- 
tion. A being from another star, endowed with mathematical 
tastes, might argue from the general duality of the external 
human body that a man had two hearts, or at least that his 
one heart was in a symmetrical position with regard to the rest 
of his members — but it is not ; and if he discovered that it was 
noty he would be something more honorable than a mere 
mathematician. Now this is exactly the claim that Mr. Ches- 
terton makes for Christianity: ''Not merely that it deduces 
logical truths, but that when it suddenly becomes illogical, it 
has found, so to speak, an illogical truth. It not only goes 
right about things, but it goes wrong (if one may say so) ex- 
actly where the things go wrong. It is simple about the truth ; 
but it is stubborn about the subtle truth." 

But to go back a little. Mr. Chesterton confesses that as a 
youth he read little or no Christian apologetic literature^he 
was entirely alienated from it, excepting indeed the penny 
dreadfuls, which always retain a healthy and heroic tradition 
of Christianity.* Agnostic writers, especially Herbert Spencer, 
really succeeded in bringing him into the right way, for they 
suggested doubts far deeper than they themselves could grapple 
with. The more he read them the more the impression grew 
upon him that Christianity must be a most extraordinary thing 
—whether extraordinarily right or extraordinarily wrong, he 
was not at that time in a position to say. " Not only (as he 
understood) had Christianity the most flaming vices, but it had 
apparently a mystical talent for combining vices which seemed 
Inconsistent with each other. It was attacked on all sides and 
for all contradictory reasons. No sooner had one rationalist 
demonstrated that it was too far to the east than another de- 
monstrated with equal clearness that it was much too far to 
the west. No sooner had my indignation died down at its 
angutar and aggressive squareness than I was called upon to 
notice and condemn its enervating and sensual roundness." 
To take an example or two. Some said it was a thing of in- 
human gloom; others that it had comforted men with a ficti- 
tious Providence and lulled them in nurseries of childish de- 
light. Now it is attacked for its naked and hungry habit, and 
again because of its pomp and ritualism, its shrines of porphyry 
and its vestments of cloth of gold. The monks at one time 

« See a delightful essay on Penny Dreadfuls in The Difntdant, p. 8. 

Jigitized by VjOOQ IC 



1909.] G. K. Chesterton 9 

are meek and dumb driven cattle; at another they are raven- 
ing wolves preying upon the quietness of the world. At one 
time it is called the spoiler of family life, dragging away un- 
willing youths and maidens to the celibacy of the cloister; at 
another its greatest crime appears to be that it has forced the 
family upon us. It has doomed women to the drudgery of 
homes and burden of child-bearing, lorbidding them the freer 
life of solitude and contemplation. Or perhaps we are told that 
the Church has always hated women; and yet on the other 
hand we are assured that it is only women that go to church. 
** I wished to be quite fair then, and I wish to be quite fair now ; 
and I did not conclude that the attack on Christianity was all 
wrong. I only concluded that if Christianity was wrong it 
was very wrong indeed. Such hostile errors might be com- 
bined in one thing, but that thing must be very strange and 
solitary. • • . If this mass of mad contradictions really ex- 
isted, quakerish and bloodthirsty, too gorgeous and too thread- 
bare, austere yet pandering preposterously to the lust of the 
eye, the enemy of women and their foolish refuge, a solemn 
pessimist and a silly optimist, if this evil existed, then there 
was in this evil something quite supreme and unique. • . . 
Such a paradox of evil rose to the stature of the supernatural.'' 
^'And then in a quiet hour a strange thought struck me 
like a thunder-bolt. There had suddenly come into my mind 
another explanation. Suppose we heard an unknown man 
spoken of by many men. Suppose we were puzzled to hear 
that some men said he was too tall and some too short; some 
objected to his fatness^ some lamented his leanness; some 
thought him too dark, and some too fair. One explanation (as 
has already been admitted) would be that he might be an odd 
shape. But there is another explanation. He might be the 
right shape. Outrageously tall men might feel him to be too 
short. Very short men might feel him to be tall. Old bucks 
who are growing stout might consider him insufficiently filled 
out; old beaus who are growing thin might feel that he had 
expanded beyond the narrow lines of elegance. Perhaps (in 
short) this extraordinary thing is the ordinary thing. Perhaps, 
after all, it is Christianity that is sane and all its critics that 
are mad — in various ways. I tested this idea by asking myself 
whether there was about any of the accusers (of Christianity) 
anything morbid that might explain the accusations. I was 
startled to find that this key fitted the lock. For instan^, it 

Jigitized by VjOOQIC 



lo G. K. Chesterton [April, 

was certainly odd that the modern world charged Christianity 
at once with bodily austerity and with artistic pomp. But then 
it was also odd, very odd, that the modern world itself com- 
bined extreme bodily luxury with an extreme absence of artis- 
tic pomp. The modern man thought Becket's robes too rich 
and his meals too poor. But then the modern man was really 
exceptional; no man before ever ate such elaborate dinners in 
such ugly clothes. . • .''* In the same way the restraints 
of Christianity would be distasteful to the critic who was more 
a hedonist than a healthy man should be; while the faith of 
Christians angered another who was more of a pessimist than 
a healthy man should be. 

Nevertheless it could not be said with truth that Christian- 
ity is merely a sort of sensible via media. There was really in 
it a certain note of frenzy and emphasis to which unemotional 
philosophers objected. It was neither temperate nor respectable 
in the sense of the worldly wise. ''Its fierce crusaders and 
meek saints might balance each other; still the crusaders were 
very fierce and the saints meek beyond all decency. This was 
exaetly one of the paradoxes in which sceptics found the creed 
wrong; and in this I had found it right.'' Christianity had 
transcended the old pagan doctrine of the balance and had spe- 
cially done so in her central dogma of the Incarnation. She 
insisted that Christ was not a being apart from God and man, 
like an elf; nor yet half a being like a centaur; but both things 
at once and both things thoroughly — very man and very God. 
As in theology, so in ethics. Paganism declared that virtue 
was in a balance; Christianity that it was in a conflict: the 
collision of two passions apparently opposite and both at the top of 
their energy ; love and wrath both burning. Everywhere the 
creed made a moderation out of the still crash of two impetu- 
ous passions. And such a creed alone meets the need direct 
of the normal man. There are two kinds of freedom. A man 
can be free of a prison or he can be free of his city. It is in 
this latter sense that every man of ordinary virtue wishes to be 
free of his powers and passions — able to swing them as in a 
burning censer, in a holy place, without breakage or wrong, 
giving glory to God and pleasure to his fellow*men. Freely 
loving the world, yet only in the power and vision of a better. 

Here then was the urgent individual question met by the 
completeness of the Church's answer. The hour of cumulative 

* Orthodoxy t p. 164. ^ t 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



1909.] G. K. CHESTERTON II 

proof had stnick. The thing had happened which has happened 
to many of us. '' It was as if I had been blundering about 
since my birth with two huge and unmanageable machines— 
ihe World and the Christian tradition. I had found this hole 
in the world, the fact that one must somehow find a way of 
loving the world without trusting it. I found this projecting 
feature of Christian theology, the dogmatic insistence that God 
was personal, and had made the world separate from Himself 
^had 'thrown it o£F' if we may rcTerently put it thus, as a 
poet who is so separate from his poem, speaks of it as 'a lit- 
tle thing he has thrown o£F.' The spike of dogma fitted exactly 
into the hole of the world — it had evidently been meant to go 
there — and then the strange thing began to happen. When 
once these two parts of the two machines had come together, 
one after another, all the other parts fitted and fell in, with an 
eerie exactitude. I could hear bolt after bolt over all the ma* 
chinery falling into its place with a kind of click of relief. 
Having got one part right, all the other parts were repeating 
that rectitude, as clock after clock strikes noon. Instinct after 
instinct was answered by doctrine after doctrine.*^ ^ 

The ideal of self- reform and of world- reform has been reached 
at last. We are to love self and the world and yet as heartily 
to distrust them. Some satisfaction is needed even to make 
things better, but it has to be accompanied by some higher 
dissatisfaction. Neither self nor the world can be made better 
until we have some ideal order with which to compare it. We 
must be reformers in the strong and simple sense of that word 
and not merely evolutionists or progressives in the modern ac- 
ceptation. It has been finely said that Progress is the name 
of the arch* illusionist, for it is the serpent which tempts us to 
look forever onward and beyond, instead of waking to the full- 
est realization here and how. With the evolutionists, pragma- 
tists, and the like, there is no perfectly definite terminus ad 
quent^ no absolute Good and Goal, personal and perfect, upon 
which to build faith and hope and definite action. There must 
not only be Law in life, but a Giver of Law at every doubtful 
moment, in every momentous crisis ; some one who will gather 
the fluid forces of human emotion in the grip of an intense 
conviction. No significant human action, however strenuous, 
can come to or stay at perfection of itself, it needs a tremen- 
dous accession of graceful activity, and that at the very mo- 

^ Ibid,t p. 143. C~^ ,^ T 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



12 G. K. Chesterton [April 

ment when the doer is most doubtful of his power. This, of 
course, is the doctrine of supernatural grace, but a doctrine 
quite opposed to modern thought with its freezing theories of 
a scientific and impersonal determinism. 

We are told, indeed, that the world tends to become gradually 
better, that new and ultimate factors of permanent value have 
come into life and will become increasingly antiseptic to that 
ancient disease of ignorance ; but looking around we find that all 
nobly acquired and finely exercised powers tend by endurance 
to abuse and failure of their great first intentions; and that 
thus abused they create evils as great as those they have pre- 
viously cured. There is only one explanation of this and it is 
to be found in the Catholic doctrine of original and actual sin. 
The factors of ultimate value in human life, from the highest 
gifts of the spirit to the bread of our daily lives, can only be at- 
tained through struggle and retained through perseverance. 

Every human being has been created and thrown into sepa- 
rate actuality by God^created by God and sustained by Him 
in a free and separated existence. Loved by God as a child 
of His, yet free, for his own part, to refuse to love in return. 
And the same God has made the world. 

It is in only the briefest manner that I have been able to 
summarize Mr. Chesterton's work, and we may not follow him 
further as he traces his vision of the Church '' thundering in 
her heavenly chariot through the ages, the dull heresies sprawl- 
ing and prostrate, the wild truth reeling but erect.'' Even the 
compliment of quotation must have its limit; but our lengthy 
extracts will be justified if any are induced thereby to read 
Mr. Chesterton for themselves. Nowhere in modern popular 
language has the mind of the Church been more clearly set 
forth — and also the mind that is against the Church. His work 
combines an accurate and synthetic knowledge of the old and of 
the new traditions of thought. And he has contrasted and com- 
pared them with an astonishing felicity of simplifying illustra- 
tion. It is often said by non-Catholics that the Church, al- 
though great in her day, is now a thing of the past^an ob- 
stinate nut of formalism, with a shrivelled kernel. For such a 
case one may recommend Mr. Chesterton, and to particularize 
the recommendation, especially two of his books — Heretics and 
Orthodoxy. 



Digitized by 



Google 




HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER. 

BY KATHARINE TYNAN. 

PART I. 

CHA.PTER I. 
THE NEW HOME. 

^HEN the sun was setting in splendor the windows 
of Outwood Manor were visible a long way off. 
It stood on a hill, with a background of 
woods; below it was an exquisite valley, where 
nightingales sang in May and rabbits scampered 
over beds of wild thyme. There was a wood of slender silver 
birches the other side of the valley; in May the wood was 
fairyland, the wild hyacinths making the glades like a stretch 
of summer sky. 

It was to please his wife, Nesta, that James Moore had 
bought Outwood Manor, which had been long unoccupied and 
had the reputation of being haunted. It had looked sinister 
enough to deserve its reputation the first day James and Nesta 
Moore had seen it; and that was a winter day, with a sky of 
stonfi and the sun nowhere visible, but in the low west a broad 
band of fire« 

The diamond panes had caught the fire and the house flamed 
from garret to basement. 

*' An old rat-trap I '' said James Moore contemptuously. 
''What frauds those house-agents areT' 

''It would be lovely, Jim,'' Nesta said, clinging to his arm 
— she always clung to her husband when she could. If they 
must be apart she would look at him across a table or a room 
or a lawn as though she felt the need of his support. " It 
would be lovely if only people lived in it. Look at the beau- 
tiful old red brick, purple and bronze in parts with the weather 
and the growth of lichens. Look at the sloping roof and the 
dormer windows I It will not be gloomy with the summer sun 



Digitized by 



Google 



14 HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER [April, 

on it ; it will be full of light. And think of this lawn mowed 
and rolled and the yew hedges clipped ! Do look at the ships 
and the swans cut in the yew ! I am sure the gardens are 
lovely under the stretch of prairie grass. We could be happy 
here together, Jim." 

"Why I could be happy anywhere with you, Ncsta," the 
man said ardently. 

He was a big, fair giant, with dominant blue eyes and a 
handsome mouth that closed tightly in repose. His hair curled 
over a great brow. There was just a suggestion of the Roman 
Caesar in his looks. He had a conquering air. But as he 
looked down at the soft, delicate creature by his side his ex- 
pression was wonderfully tender. Perhaps it was the expres- 
sion with which a man looks at an adored child rather than 
that with which he looks at a beloved wife. 

'^ Then you will take the house ? " 

"Have I ever refused you anything I could grant you? 
Yet — I would rather build you a palace on the side of the hill 
looking towards the mills and the little town that is growing 
up about them. Presently Valley will be a big town. I can 
see it filling the valley, its church-towers standing up in a 
golden mist I should like to draw up my blinds every morn- 
ing and look on the prosperity I myself have made — houses 
and business and money-making where there were only rabbits 
and birds as below there." 

He indicated the valley behind him with a contemptuous 
gesture. 

" I want to be out of sight of it all," his wife said with a 
little shudder. " I wish you did not make so much moneys 
that the money- making did not take you away from me quite 
so much — from me and the child. You never spare yourself, 
Jim. When will you have enough money and come home to 
rest with us ? You do too much for any man." 

" And I shall do till I die," James Moore answered. " You 
have me heart and soul, no matter where my body may be. 
Be content with that, Nest. And now — supposing we see the 
old rat-trap inside." 

He opened the hall- door with a great key he had been 
carrying on his finger. It took all his strength to turn it, for 
the wards of the lock had grown rusty. When at last it yielded 
the door went back with what sounded like a faint scream. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her Mother's daughter 15 

They stepped into a vast, echoing hall, lit high overhead 
by a glass dome in the roof. The dust stirred under their feet 
as they walked. Through the open door behind them came a 
shaft of red light that lay on the dusty fioot like blood. By 
contrast the cold light overhead was almost darkness. 

In the center of the hall was a ragged billiard- table. On 
either side were great fire-places, the steel red with rust, the 
brass jambs black and tarnished. A gallery ran round the four 
sides of the hall. Above it another gallery was visible. Suits 
of armor stood stiffly in the shadow behind the gallery. 

A moan of coming wind stole through the open door and 
the tapestry on the wall trembled and flapped. 

" You still like it. Nest ? ** James Moore said, looking down 
at his wife's pale face. '' You still like it better than the palace 
I should build you, with all the appliances for comfort and 
ease? I should spend money like water to make it beautiful 
for you." 

" I want to be out of sight of the mills, to forget them." 

** The mills make all the good things possible for you," her 
husband said with a quiet patience. ''Why do you dislike 
them ? If we settle down here they will open all the doors to 
you of these proud, exclusive folk round about us. To be sure 
you belong to them by right — and my father was a mill-hand." 

"Dear Jim, you are the most wonderful person in the 
world I " his wife said, lifting her face to him to be kissed. 
''Why did you marry such a stupid, silly wife? I don't want 
the doors of the fine houses opened to me. I only want you 
and the child." 

"Ah, but I should like to see you presently taking the 
place which is yours by right. You must get over these fan- 
cies. Remember that there is nothing I will deny you. I can 
a£Ford to give my wife all she desires. If you wanted to be 
dressed like some of those old kings and queens, in cloth of 
gold, sewn with jewels, I should find it for you. Nest." 

" It would weigh me down, dear. The only cloth of gold 
I want is your love." 

" And you have that, light of my eyes ! " 

As they stood they were bathed in the stormy red light 
from the sky that made the gloom beyond gloomier by com- 
parison. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1 6 HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER [April, 

Chapter II. 

OMENS AND PORTENTS. 

''We'd better see what is to be seen/' the man said, moving 
towards a door under the gallery, '' else the darkness will soon 
fall on us ; and it is a good five miles back to Valley. Ah, 
this is better. This is a handsome room, Nest With plenty 
of electric light I don't know that we could better this." 

They went from one room to another, and as they opened 
one door after another the shadows seemed to fly before them* 

The house would need a good deal of money spent on it; 
but James Moore's business eyes perceived that it had great 
capacities. The groined and fretted ceilings, the carved man* 
tel-pieces, the beautiful old doors and window-frames, appealed 
to his natural good taste. It was all solid ; nothing gimcrack, 
nothing px)etentious. He had never heard of the brothers 
Adam, nor of Grinling Gibbons, and did not recognize their 
work when he saw it, but he saw that it was beautiful; and 
it was to be had for a song by any man who would spend 
the money on it to make it habitable. That fact appealed to 
his business instincts, although no one could be more gener- 
ous than James Moore when it was desirable to pay a big 
price. There was nothing little about the man. 

In the stately bedroom, where a queen had slept, he set 
all the windows open. 

''Because it is so old it has a deathly smell," he said. 
"But when summer comes and you are here it will be differ- 
ent, I know. What a view we shall have ! I believe you can 
see half-a-dozen counties from here. I only wish Valley were 
in the view." 

"I suppose this is the haunted room," Nest said in a small, 
scared voice. "There is certainly something ghostly about it. 
Do you think we shall be able to banish that, dear? — for I 
should Uke this room for my own." 

"You will not be afraid with me," he said. "Wait till 
the decorator has been let loose in it. I shall give it to 
that mad, poet-Socialist person, who will know better about 
the decoration than I. Upon my word, I believe you're right 
after all, Nesta. There is something about an old house you 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her Mother's Daughter 17 

will not get in a new. You will not know it when you next 
see it." 

He had come round with a swing to her point of view. 
He was going to drive the ghosts and the shadows from the 
house, to wrest what was beautiful in it to his own uses. 

''We will bundle the old owners out of doors/' he said 
smiling, as he refastened the windows, and they turned to go. 
'' I will make it a bower of r^ses for you and Stella.'' 

As she followed him from the room she looked back with 
a nervous shudder at the immense carved bed which took up 
so much of the space. It was hung with a blue and silver 
damask, which was riddled with moths and falling to pieces. 

''I am sure it is the ghost's room/' she said. 

Now that things were going as she wished her thoughts 
veered round, and she began to wonder if they could not have 
found a place less sad and gloomy than this for the new home 
they were to make. But she said nothing to her husband. 
As they went round the galleries and down the stairs he was 
already busy with considerations as to what should be done 
here and there. 

<' It should be ready by June, Nest," he said. '' I shall 
clinch the bargain at once and put in the workmen within the 
week. You shall see what I can do to please my girl." 

She plucked at his arm as they went down the overgrown 
carriage drive, in the timid way that was natural to her. 

''Jim," she said, "when the house is finished, you will 
let us have it to ourselves, to be really ours, won't you ? We 
have not had a home to ourselves since we were married." 

A little gloom fell on his handsome, bright face. 

" I wish you did not dislike my brothers. Nest. They love 
me better than my dog. You ought to love them for that, 
little woman." 

She rubbed her cheek against his coat sleeve and said 
nothing. What could she say except that she feared and dis- 
trusted the brothers who were so devoted to him? They 
thought the world of Jim. He was their prince, their hero. 
But they were jealous of her and little Stella, as jealous as a 
dog who knows that he has been displaced ; and far less easily 
propitiated. 

" I want our home to ourselves," she said after a while ; 
and her voice was almost a whisper. 

VOL. LXXXIX.— 2 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



1 8 Her Mother's Daughter [AprU, 

"Very well then; it shall be so"; he returned. "I dare 
say they will be better pleased to stay on in the little house 
and guard my interests — and yours ''^-there was a reproach 
in his voice — 'Mike a pair of honest, faithful bulldogs." 

** And the distance will not be too great for you ? " she 
said, with a fluttering eagerness to please now that she had ob- 
tained the thing she wanted. ''Five miles. What are five 
miles after all ? You have always such good horses. It will 
be a change, too, for you to come home to me and Stella in the 
evening and forget the mills. I shall play to you and we will 
talk—" 

"And we shall visit and be visited. You don't suppose 
that I have worked as I have to hide away my pretty wife 
as though she were not the thing I am proudest of? Yet I 
shall miss Dick and Steve, and the long business talks over 
the office fire at night." 

" I think we are going to be very happy at Outwood Manor," 
she said, and crept closer to his side. He wrapped the fur 
rug about her. By this time they were driving in the high 
dog- cart behind the chestnut, which he allowed no one to drive 
but himself. 

A turn of the road brought them out once again in view 
of the Outwood. The red had deepened in all the panes. The 
illusion of leaping fires was complete. 

" The ghosts are warming themselves, Nesta," he said with 
a laugh. 

"Ah, no"; she replied. "It is a good omen, a forecast of 
the hearth-fires we shall light by which love shall sit, where 
we shall warm ourselves, safe from the cold and the storm. 
See our hearth* fires, darling 1 " 

Suddenly as they looked the brilliant light dimmed and 
went out and the Manor House stood up cold and dark against 
its background of woods. 

For an instant Nesta Moore turned cold with it. She was 
not a Celt for nothing. But with an effort she recovered her«> 
self. 

" Our fires will last longer than those, Jim," she said lightly. 
''Those were but phantom fires after all." 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER I9 



Chapter III. 

A RUNAWAY. 

James Moore drove like the wind, as he would have al- 
lowed no one else to drive his wife. Indeed when she went 
out without him she was obliged to sit behind the sleekest 
and fattest of carriage- horses. He would have his wife run 
no risks. If he drove the fastest horses money could buy, 
and went at a reckless speed, he knew just what he could do. 
Nesta was as safe with him as in her own drawing-room. 

Once they met a great hay-wain coming round a sharp 
corner and he had just time to pull back the chestnut on its 
haunches to avoid a collision. 

'' That was rather a near thing/' he said, looking down at his 
wife, as they got clear of the cart, amid sulky objurgations 
from the wagoner, who did not recognize Mr. Moore of Valley 
in the dusk. 

She looked up at him brightly. 

** Not with you driving, Jim," she said. 

''You always trust me, Nesta/' he said. ''Yet you are a 
timid child.'' 

"Net with you," she said. "I am afraid of nothing with 
you. It is only when you are away from me that I am 
afraid." 

"Yet a little absence brings me back a more ardent lover, 
outwardly at least. You said yourself the last time I went 
away to London that it was worth it." 

" I know. Do you remember the cottage where we went 
for our honeymoon?" 

"Am I likely to forget it?" 

"I often think I should have been glad to stay there al- 
ways, to keep you there always. Supposing you had been 
a quiet country gentleman doing a little farming, hunting in 
the season, fishing, shooting, a churchwarden and a justice of 
the peace, a model squire?" 

"Would you have liked it?" 

" I should have loved it." 

" It would kill me in six months' time, Nesta. I must be 



Digitized by 



Google 



20 Her Mother's Daughter [April, 

in the thick of life. I couldn't keep still and let the mosses 
gather on me and all the machinery go rusty. A short life 
and a merry one would be my desire/' 

'* Not a short life/' she said in protest. 

''Not a long one/' he replied. "I don't want to be an old 
man in the chimney corner. Now — steady, my pet/' to the 
chestnut. They were going down Redstreak Hill, a particularly 
steep descent, and he drew the reins taut. The mare lifted her 
feet daintily as she went down the hill. For a few seconds 
there was silence. The hill was a long as well as a steep one. 

Suddenly Nesta lifted her head with an air of listening. 

''There is something coming behind us," she said, "fast." 

"Ahl" he had heard it too, a sharp metallic clank and 
rattle that were momentarily growing louder. They had passed 
about a mile back a light cart, which stood outside the door 
of a little shop, unattended. It was laden with milk cans. If 
this was the same the cans were empty, judging by the clat- 
terring noise they made. 

"It is a runaway," James Moore said between his teeth. 
"No man in his senses would drive so fast" 

The clattering sound had reached the mare now. She laid 
back her fine ears and drew out faster and faster. James 
Moore gave her her head. 

" Keep quiet," he said to his wife, " you are quite safe with 
me. 

She did not need to be told. If he could have seen her 
face in the waning light he would have rejoiced in the pale, 
quiet courage of it. It was madness to go down Redstreak 
Hill at this pace — madness, but what could he do? The rat- 
tling thing behind them was coming at a tremendous pace. 
The mare had taken the bit between her teeth. He could do 
no more than guide her. He was not a religious man, but he 
muttered as though to himself — and Nesta heard him — "God 
send there may be nothing coming up!" 

They had begun the steep descent of the hill now, and the 
valley lay beneath them. Under them, as it seemed in the 
gathering dark, something black moved, with a pair of shining 
great eyes in front — a carriage and its lamps. Would it turn 
up the hill? If so, nothing could prevent a bad collision. 

James Moore leant forward and peered into the gloom. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her mother's Daughter 31 

Half-way down the hill there were the entrance gates to a house 
of the neighborhood and a gate lodge. It was a house at which 
James Moore had received a hospitable welcome in the days 
before he had met Nesta Gwynne and loved and married her. 
Since then he had been less persona gtata. But yet the mare 
knew the way. If by any fortunate chance the gates should be 
standing openl 

The lights of the dog cart gleamed on the dark aperture of 
the gate. By one fortunate chance out of a thousand the gates 
were open. He pulled the left rein sharply and the mare an- 
swered and turned in at the gate. They had outdistanced the 
runaway by this time. The clattering was faint in the distance. 
And suddenly the mare stood still trembling and sweating. 

James Moore was out of the dog^cart in an instant; had 
swung his wife to the ground, lifting her back towards the 
white wall of the lodge. An old man came out of the lodge 
at the sound of the wheels. 

'' Here, Fleming, hold the mare/' James Moore said. '' Lead 
her a little way up the avenue. She has had a fright and made 
a bolt for it.'' 

Now the runaway had turned the corner and was coming 
fast. A stride or two took James Moore into the road. Be- 
low him were the lights of the carriage. It was coming up 
slowly. The coachman had apparently no idea of any danger ; 
but if he had, what could he do? The road was very narrow 
and the carriage was apparently a heavy one. 

James Moore shouted to him and he heard, for the horses 
were suddenly brought to a pause. There were not twenty 
yards between them and the runaway. Where he stood James 
Moore could hear the panting of the horses. He could see the 
breath ascending from the nostrils. 

''What is the matter?" called the coachman clambering 
down from his box. 

James Moore did not answer him. He had sprung at the 
head of the runaway. He caught him by the head-piece. 
The reins dangled and tangled about his feet. The shaft of the 
cart struck him in the side, making him for the moment sick 
and giddy. He was partly on his knees, but he kept his grip. 
He saw his wife run to him from the open gate and cried to 
her to go back; but if she heard him, she did not heed for 



Digitized by 



Google 



22 HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER [April, 

once. Suddenly the runaway, as though tired of his escapade, 
came to a full stop of his own accord. 

The coachman came running up too late to be of assistance, 
and an elderly gray head was poked out of the carriage win- 
dow, the owner of it calling imperiously to know what had 
happened. 

No one answered him, so he was obliged to alight and find 
out for himself. He was Lord Mount- Eden, the Lord Lieu- 
tenant of the county; but at the moment no one had time or 
inclination to satisfy him. 

'' Are you hurt, Jim ? " Nesta cried, trembling as though 
the night were cold, instead of which it was a mild, still even- 
ing foreboding rain, and with a promise of wind in the red 
line that still lay low down the sky. 

He reassured her, having only eyes for her for the moment. 
Then he turned to Lord Mount- Eden. 

''I daresay the driver of this will be here immediately,'* 
he said. "He must be a careless fellow. I am glad your 
lordship was not put to more inconvenience.*' 

As he spoke he was patting the neck of the runaway. 
Whatever other people thought of James Moore, animals al- 
ways trusted him, as he always understood them. 

" Quiet, quiet 1 '* he said, and the horse turned a grateful 
eye upon him while it trembled and sweated. 



Chapter IV. 

THE BROTHERS. 

Lord Mount*Eden and James Moore knew each other by 
sight. Indeed it would not have been easy to have been an 
inhabitant of those parts and not to have known James Moore, 
for his striking personality was not easily overlooked. No one 
saw him for the first time without asking who he was. He had 
a way of seeming to stand head and shoulders above the other 
men in any assemblage. 

'' It seems to me, Mr. Moore, that you have been the meant 
of averting a very nasty accident, a very nasty accident/' said 
his lordship in a gracious tone. He had forgotten that James 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her Mother's daughter 23 

Moore was a nouveau riche^ a man who had brought the ab- 
horrent thing trade into their quiet country ; who had dese« 
crated one of their fairest valleys; who, in time, would bring 
the railway, which they all detested, screaming through their 
quiet woods and by their velvet lawns. As though a railway 
station ten miles away, and well out of sight and hearing, un» 
less the wind blew in a certain direction, were not convenient 
enough for any man. 

'' It was very plucky of you, Mr. Moore," said a voice out 
of the darkness by his lordship's elbow. It was a frank voice, 
and there was a sound of admiration in it that was pleasant. 
''I don't know what would have happened to us, wedged in 
like this, with that thing coming down on top of us. How 
shall we thank you ? '' 

The speaker came forward to the light, holding out an un- 
gloved, white hand, which James Moore took into his own and 
held for a second, thinking what a good, honest clasp it had. 

The. Honorable Eugenia Capel, Lord Mount- Eden's only 
daughter, was a very iresh and wholesome specimen of a coun- 
try lady. She walked, rode, drove, hunted, fished, played games, 
danced; and kept at thirty* five the bright eyes of a girl and 
a sympathetic charm which few girls are fortunate enough to 
possess. 

''It was nothing,'' James Moore protested. "The horse 
stopped almost of himself. He might have stopped complete- 
ly—" 

''Very unlikely," said Miss Capel. "Anyhow, my father 
and I are very deeply obliged to you." 

She turned to Nesta with a gracious gesture. 

" I hope you will let me call upon you, Mrs. Moore," she 
said. " We ought to know each other; my father knows your 
aunt« Miss Grantley, very well. We have been so much away 
of late years, but now we have come to settle down at Mount- 
Eden for a good long time, I hope we may have the privilege 
of your friendship." 

Before Nesta could answer, a hoarse, despairing voice came 
out of the darkness. "Whoa!" it called. "Whoa!" There 
was the sound of hobnailed boots carried by a clumsy owner, 
and down upon the group came the driver of the runaway, 
snorting and panting. 



Digitized by 



Google 



24 Her Mother's Daughter [April, 

" Is he hurt ? '' he asked, very much out of breath, " If 
he*s hurt I needn't go home to master. He'll say it were all 
my fault, so he will.'' 

'' He's all right, my lad," James Moore answered kindly, see- 
ing that he had to deal with a big, lubberly boy, from whose 
eyes tears were not far. '' He's all right, and he has hurt no 
one. There might have been a bad accident. Let it be a les- 
son to you not to leave your horse unattended again." 

"I couldn't help it, Mr. Moore, sir," said the boy, who 
recognized him. 

James Moore turned away, leaving him to his slow expla* 
nations. He lifted his hat to Lady Eugenia Capel. 

"My wife will be very happy to see you," he said. The 
lady's head was almost on a level with his own and she was 
looking at him with an air of frank friendliness by the light 
of the carriage- lamps. ''She would say as much herself— 
wouldn't you, Nesta ? — only she is scared to death." 

"I shall be very glad to see you. Lady Eugenia," Nesta 
said in a trembling voice. 

So they shook hands and parted, the carriage ascending the 
hill, the Moores going on down into the valley. 

As they descended they came nearer to the sound of the 
river falling over a weir in the darkness, the river which had 
driven the little mill that had belonged to James Moore's father 
in the latter years of his life, which now supplied the water- 
power for the greater mills which he had built. In time to 
come the river would do all manner of strange things it could 
never have dreamt of when it ran by Andrew Moore's little 
woolen mill in a country stillness. 

The dog-cart turned in by a small white lodge, crossed a 
wooden bridge over the river with the music of the weir roar- 
ing close at hand, and went on up a dark avenue, overhung 
with trees, which showed a lighted lantern at the end. The 
avenue was between two deep streams which ran into the river; 
and it would have been a ticklish spot with a nervous horse on 
a dark night. 

But now the chestnut trotted along in a chastened mood, 
as though ashamed of her former terrors and determined to be 
on her best behavior. The glimmer of the water in the light 
of the lamps, and the noise it made as it rushed along, foaming 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER 2$ 

and swirling, might have frightened another horse; but the 
chestnut was used to it. 

The lantern at the end of the avenue of trees hung above 
the door of a plain white house of two wings built at right 
angles to each other and making two sides of a square. It was 
the house« practically unaltered, in which Andrew Moore and 
the former •wners of the mill before him had lived and died. 
Nothing could be simpler and plainer. It was indeed quite time 
that it should be left to the brothers, Dick and Steve, who liked 
it as it was and would not be parted from it, and that Nesta 
and James Moore and the little daughter should inhabit some- 
thing more imposing. Here they were out of sight of the long 
ranges of lit buildings. The noise of the water kept them from 
hearing the roar and rattle of machinery. There was nothing 
in view but the yet untouched meadows and the long row of 
alders by the water's edge. 

As James Moore lifted his wife to the ground, with a ten- 
derness which was in every office he rendered her, the house- 
door opened and a man came out and stood at the chestnut's 
head. 

'' Well, Dick,'' said James Moore, and his voice was affec- 
tionate. '< We've got back all right. Where's Steve?" 

"Just covering up his canaries for the night TU take the 
horse round. No one seems to have heard you." 

A sweet low whistle of a bird met them on the threshold : 
there was an answering whistle. There was a whole aviary of 
them in a little glass- covered place at the back of the hall. 
The canaries were Steve Moore's hobby. He was covering them 
up for the night. 

He looked round as they came in, an ungainly, low-sized 
image of his handsome brother. James Moore was hanging his 
coat up on the hall* rack. Nesta was stooping to caress an old 
collie which had come to meet them with sidling demonstrations 
of delight. 

''Y«u are late, Jim," he said, coming towards them, and 
there was a curious anxiety in his tones. ''Is anything the 
matter ? What kept you ? And you are pale." 

''We very nearly met with an accident," James Moore re- 
sponded, " but luckily no one was hurt. You only fancy I look 
pale, Steve. I am all right." 



Digitized by 



Google 



26 Her Mother's Daughter [Apri 

''Come in and have a whisky and soda/' Stephen Moore 
said, passing his arm within his brother's. '' You look as if you 
wanted it. An accident ? What kind of an accident ? So long 
as you are safe — " 

He drew him within the door of the dark, comfortable, low- 
browed room, with which they had found nothing amiss as a 
dining- room, although Nesta Moore, being used to light and 
spacious rooms, had thought it gloomy enough on her first 
sight of it, and felt it still almost intolerably small and stuffy. 
Whether by accident or design he drew the door to behind 
them. 

Nesta Moore went slowly up the stairs. As she stood in 
the obscurity of the first landing the hall-door was pushed open 
and the other brother, Dick Moore, came in. He was darker 
than either of his brothers and he had a slight deformity that 
hunched his shoulders. He also went with an air of eager haste 
into the dining-room and closed the door behind him. 

''They are quite happy without me," thought Nesta Moore 
as she went on towards her child's nursery. " If it were not 
for Jim — no woman could help loving Jim if he loved her— 
it would seem a thousand pities that any one should ever have 
taken him from them." 

(to be continued.) 



Digitized by 



Google 




FATHER TYRRELL'S VIEW OF REVEALED TRUTH. 

BY JOHN M. SALTER. SJ. 

|HIS article does not purpose to give Fr. Tyrrell's 
present position, however interesting such a sub- 
ject would be to the student of Modernism and 
its tendencies ; but it designs to analyze critically 
an attitude assumed by Fr. Tyrrell while writing 
as a professional apologist in defence of the Church and against 
rationalistic criticism, an attitude viewed with no unfavorable 
eye by some Catholic theologians. While the prompt adhesion 
of Catholics to the utterances of Christ's Vicar has been most 
edifying, there has been a tendency on the part of a few to 
suspect the ecclesiastical authorities of over-estimating the dan- 
ger of the erroneous view. A clear statement of this view, and 
an analysis of the argument that supports it, will show that 
the danger was not exaggerated, and will help to clear away 
the confusion of ideas unavoidably caused by a discussion which 
is now closed. 

In the first place, then, Fr. Tyrrell's theory rests on the 
principle that between the truth of revelation, and truth natu- 
rally acquired, there exists a generic difference. He does not 
mean a specific difference, due to the different way in which 
these two kinds of truth reach our intellect ; nor a specific dif- 
ference arising from the different motives of assent, i. /•, the word 
of God in one case and the light of reason in the other. He 
means a great deal more than this; he means that revealed 
truth and fact-truth belong to two entirely different orders. 
** I recognize then,'' he says, " two fountains of religious truth 
— natural and supernatural, reason and revelation, and two cor- 
responding styles of utterance, the one scientifically exact, the 
other prophetic and inspired. ... To bring these two gen^^ 
erically different orders of truth ^ and utterance into one system^ 
by a sort of 'confusion of nature,' by using prophetic utter- 
ances as theological premises, by giving supernatural authority 

^ItaKcs art ^urr. 



Digitized by 



Google 



28 FR. TYRRELL'S VIEW OF REVEALED TRUTH [April, 

to scientific terms and propositions {qua scientific) is to lose 
oneself in a labyrinth of insoluble difficulties'' (p. 323)-* 

In its object, too, he would make revelation di£fer generic- 
ally from fact- truth. ,,The object of prophetic truth, „ Fr. Tyr- 
rell tells us (p. 231), «, unlike that of science or history, is the 
ideal rather than the actual; the future or else the eternal, 
rather than the past or present; what ought to be, and is in 
process of becoming, rather than what is. • • • Prophetic 
truths misinterpreted as literal statements of fact, are often incon- 
sistent with one another, and with the world of fact- truths,, 
(p. 232).t I would remark here that Fr. Tyrrell uses the word 
*' prophetic '' truth as synonymous with revealed truth. It 
will be seen that in this system it is not hard to account for all 
the discrepancies found in the Bible. 

It is clear to all that a fact of history or science may be 
enunciated and revealed or manifested to others by a statement 
But in revelation, according to Fr. Tyrrell (p. 287), God is re- 
vealed, not as a fact is revealed by a statement, but only as a 
cause is revealed by its e£fect. Hence in his view when I know 
a natural truth, some reality is represented to me, when I know 
a revealed truth, the reality is not represented^ but ovAy presented 
to me. This does not mean merely that our concepts of re- 
vealed truth are abstract and analogous. Here are some of the 
similes Fr. Tyrrell uses to explain his meaning. As statement 
revelation has no more value than the curious imagery patients 
use to describe their pains to the doctor (p. 285). Like the cry 
or sob of the sick man, revelation manifests, but does not repre- 
sent (p. 296). A savage may describe in pictorial language the 
impression made on him by a thunderstorm, the blinding flashes, 
the awe-inspiring peals of thunder, the torrential rains, the 
wrath of his storm- god. His statement is valuable as a record 
of his experience, but it has not the slightest scientific worth 
(p. 287). In the same way, Fr. Tyrrell concludes, revelation, 
taken as statement, is only valuable as a record of a spiritual 
experience ; it cannot be used, as statements can be used, from 
which we may deduce other statements. 

«« Revelation and prophetic utterance,,, he admits (p. 231), 
««are worth more than science, because they are simply the 

* All quotations from Fr. Tyrrell are taken from Thmigh Stylla and CkofybtUt, Long- 
Mans, Green ft Co., 1907. The page is indicated in each instance. 

t Quotation marks are placed on the line when the citation is not verbatim, but almost so. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] FR. Tyrrell's View of Revealed Truth 29 

natural shadow of experience, its spontaneous utterance. Rev- 
elation is superior to science, not because it is critically valua- 
ble as an explanation, but because it embodies the phenomenon 
to be explained. Its artless constructions of history and science 
and philosophy may crumble under the touch of criticism, but 
criticism will be condemned unless its reconstructions find room 
for all that revelation strove to shelter.,. 

From these paragraphs, which are almost the very language 
of Fr. Tyrrell, we sec that the principle of generic difference be- 
tween revealed truth and fact-truth is more and other than 
Catholics can safely admit to exist between natural and super- 
natural truth. We see no difference between this principle and 
the tenet of Modernism thus set forth and condemned in the 
Encyclical Pascendi: ''The Sacred Books being essentially reli- 
gious, are consequently necessarily living. Now life has its own 
truth and its own logic — quite different from rational truth and 
rational logic, belonging as they do to a different order.*' 

What position does this principle of generic difference of 
truth, natural and revealed, give to theology ? In denying 
that revelation is statement, Fr. Tyrrell does not merely mean 
that no philosophical truth is given in or with revelation, but 
he expressly denies that revealed language has any value as 
premise for either theological or historical conclusion. He is 
bitter in repudiating the methods of scholasticism. We have 
already heard him say: ''Prophetic truth cannot be used as 
statements may be used, from which we may deduce other 
statements" (p. 289). In another place he says: To regard 
revelation "as historical or philosophical statement, and to 
use such supposed statements as the basis of argument, is equally 
to confound together things as generically different as experi- 
ence, and reflection on experience'' (p. 303). According to Fr. 
Tyrrell revelation is merely an experience; statement, a reflec- 
tion on experience. 

Let us see the example he uses to illustrate this. «, Christ 
was revealed to St. Peter as ' the Messias, the Son of the Liv- 
ing God.' To St. John He appears as the Eternal Logos; to 
St Paul He is the Second or Spiritual Adam.,, "These con- 
ceptions, as revealed, have no direct theological value, they 
are but part of the experience whose character they help to 
determine. It is that experience, taken as a concrete fact and 
reality, which forms the subject-matter of theological explana- 



Digitized by 



Google 



30 FR. TYRRELL'S VIEW OF REVEALED TRUTH [April, 

tion '' (p. 289). «, It is the theologian*s task to study revela- 
tion not as statement but as psychological experience ,, (p. 303). 
This, according to Fr. Tyrrell, is the attitude of true dogmatic 
theology towards revelation (p. 298). He would have theology 
a sort of supernatural psychology, a psychology dealing with 
the supernatural phenomena in man. 

Of scholasticism and its so-called misuse or abuse of revel- 
ation he writes : ** I will not give the name of theology or 
science to a hybrid system, which, applying logical deduction 
to the inspired and largely symbolic utterances of prophecy 
imposes its conclusions in the name of both revelation and 
reason^ as binding at once on the conscience and on the under- 
standing . . /' (pp. 350-351). He prefers to call scholas- 
ticism a ** pseudo-science,'' '' the dogmatic fallacy," " theolo- 
gism," and he declares : ^* I regard it as the mother and mis- 
tress of all heresies from the beginning; as the sword which 
has hewn Christendom into pieces; as the force which both 
keeps and drives out of the Church multitudes of the most 
religious- minded men of our day ; as the corrupter at once of 
revelation and theology, the enemy alike of faith and reason." 
A severe rating truly for a system so highly recommended 
and so strictly enforced on all students of theology by the di-> 
vinely appointed guardian of revelation and faith. Yet admit 
the principle of generic di£ference between natural and re- 
vealed truth, and scholastic theology deserves all the censure 
which Fr. Tyrrell bestows on it If there is a generic di£fer- 
ence between the truth of a revealed major premise and the 
truth of a philosophical minor, the conclusion is rightly called 
a "hybrid." 

If, by eviscerating revealed statement of all theological con^ 
tent, Fr. Tyrrell reduces scholastic theology to a pseudo-science, 
he does still greater damage, when he strips revelation of all 
historical worth. His . view of the historical value of sacred 
history sweeps away the very groundwork of apologetic theol- 
ogy, and leaves us to grope in the darkness of our subcon- 
sciousness for a '' reason for the hope that is in us." To con- 
cede the truth of his theory would be to yield to the enemy 
the Church's strongest bulwark against rationalism. The his- 
torical authority of certain bookd of the Bibl^ is of first im- 
portance for a reasonable faith in the Church's divinely given 
power; this historical authority has proved an unanswerable 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Fr. Tyrrell's View of Revealed Truth 31 

argument for her extensive and important claims. Against 
this rock the forces of error have ever been hurled iwith spe- 
cial fury. And now the Church is asked to save herself by 
abandoning this eminence, and allowing the enemy to erect 
their batteries on it. This may sound strange, but it is just 
what Fr. Tyrrell's theory means. '' Please reject the historicity 
of the Four Gospels and the Acts/' is its modest demand. 

This view is developed in the chapter entitled ** Prophetic 
History.'' Fr. Tyrrell says: ''Although we have no right to 
look for a precise point to point agreement between (what I 
may call) the ' prophetic ' reading or construction of history, 
and the scientific reading of the same; although we may not 
at once use separate points of sacred tradition as so many 
historical arguments; yet the truth of Christianity requires 
that in its entirety, the 'dogmatic' reading of history should 
be true to the scientific, in much the same way that the 
artistic idealization ot an episode, its dramatic or poetic treat- 
ment, should be substantially true to fact " (p. 244). According 
to this theory the writer of such revelation as is historical is 
guided not by what "has been," but by "what ought to be." 

Let us take Fr. Tyrrell's own illustration. ,, Shakespeare in 
his 'King John' or 'Richard III.' or 'Henry VIII.' has ideal- 
ized and transfused facts in the interest of drama. He nar- 
rates these events not strictly as they did happen, but rather 
as they ought to have happened had he been guiding history 
solely in the interest of drama. This artistic interest becomes 
a principle of bias, of historical falsification in the cause of 
greater dramatic truth.,. In these historical plays there is a 
substantial correspondence with fact, but we cannot use Shake- 
speare's dramatic statements as premises for valid historical in- 
ference. 

Fr. Tyrrell proceeds to argue from the less to the greater: c^But 
if the poet is justified in transfusing and idealizing facts in the 
cause of art, the believer may with greater justice use the same 
liberty in the interest of religion. For while the dramatist 
knows that history is not guided primarily in the interest of 
art, the man of religious faith and hope rightly believes that 
the process of events is shaped ultimately in the interests of 
morality and religion, and that ' what ought to be,' so far as it 
is judged rightly, is identical with what is, or has been, or will 
be. His interpretation, if wrong, is saved in, and transcended 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



32 Fr. TyrrelVs View of Revealed Truth [April, 

by the truth, so far as its religious value is concerned. Hence 
the believer's comparative recklessness, his too easy indifference 
to the rights of history ,, (p. 248). Elswhere he writes : «« The 
bias of Faith and Hope falsifies facts to make them a truer ex- 
pression of their inward meaning ,1 (p. 250). '' This prophetic 
reading of history, not merely in spite of, but because of and 
through its partial infidelity to bare fact, reaches a deeper order 
of truth'' (p. 249). Here we see expressed, in pretty clear 
words, the Modernistic principles of Transfiguration and Disfig^ 
urementf by which faith is assumed to elevate facts of history, 
and other natural phenomena, above their own proper condi- 
tions, and to attribute to them qualities which they do not pos- 
sess. This twofold principle is assumed to guide the writing 
of all Sacred History, and criticism must take it into account 
in ascertaining the fact- value of such history. It is this view 
of the historical value of Sacred Scripture that gives rise to the 
current Modernistic distinction between the Christ of history 
and the Christ of faith, between the sacraments of history and 
the sacraments of faith. 

Were all this true it would follow logically that revelational 
narrative cannot be used as premise for historical deduction. 
The Bible would be useless as history. And this is the very 
conclusion that rationalists have labored long and unsuccessfully 
to prove. The historical documents of the Old and New Testa* 
ments, say the Modernists, must not be accorded the rights of 
profane witnesses. What clear injustice I Precisely because, 
besides their historical character, they claim a religious char* 
acter, they may not be heard in open court; they may not 
stand on an equal footing with profane history before the bar 
of criticism ; they must be racked and tortured in the dungeon 
of the Modernistic critic till, stripped and lacerated beyond rec- 
ognition, they say only what he wishes them to say. 

But why should the Modernist critic pass the final judgment 
on everything in Sacred History ? Does not Fr. Tyrrell admit 
that the Church is a divinely appointed interpreter of all that 
belongs to the ** deposit of faith " ? Does he not hold the in- 
fallible magisterium ? Are not her infallible definitions a bridge 
between these two orders of truth ? Cannot her interpretations 
of revelation be understood in their literal sense ? Does she 
not speak a language intelligible to her children ? 

Fr. Tyrrell assures us that the Church is the divinely assisted 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909-] -/*• TyrrelVs View of Revealed Truth 33 

guardian of Apostolic revelation (p. 327). He yields to no one, 
he declares, in respect for the infallible magisterium (p. 330). 
But when he has explained the limits of this teaching author- 
ity, and the value of cecumenical definitions, we find ourselves 
in ''confusion worse confounded/' 

First he cautions us that <«The Church is not an infallible 
theologian. She has no gift of theological inerrancy. She is 
inerrant as instinct is inerrant. She feels the impression made 
by theological statements, and it is this impression she approves 
or disapproves. What is perfectly true may create a false im- 
pression ; what is perfectly false may create a true impression ,» 
(p. 299)/ 

The infallibility of the Church in dogmatic facts has not 
yet been solemnly defined, but ecclesiastical history proves be- 
yond a doubt that in practice it is the teaching of the Church. 
Yet Fr. Tyrrell places such facts outside the limit of the in- 
fallible magisterium. 

What value then does Fr. Tyrrell give to cecumenical defini- 
tions? To which order of truth do they belong? To pro- 
phetic-truth or fact-truth ? To the logic of life or the logic 
of reason ? We are prepared for his answer, when we see how 
he has whittled down the Churches teaching authority. He tells 
us: ''Her mission is prophetic and her method is prophetic. 
It is by the Spirit that she interprets the Spirit; not by argu- 
mentation, but by a divine instinct or tact. It is this spiritual 
instinct that bids her hold out, with a certain blindness and 
'unreasonable ' obstinacy, against any assertion of reason so long 
as, and so far as it imperils, or seems to imperil, the sense and 
the spirit of the Apostolic revelation '^ (p. 329). This sounds very 
plausible. But Fr. Tyrrell does not mean by her prophetic mission 
and prophetic method, that the Church reads revelation and then 
tells us in plain, intelligible language what is revealed and what 
we must believe. His own words are : " Her utterances are 
prophetic and must be interpreted prophetically, and not neces- 
sarily according to their surface and proper value. They are 
divine oracles. As such, their sense is more or less cryptic 
and enigmatic '' (p. 329). . . . ^^ In dogma as in Scripture 
the surface meaning is rarely the true meaning. The true 
meaning must often wait on time for its disclosure.,, Fr. Tyr- 
rell takes the first canon of Scriptural exegesis, and reversing 
it, gets a principle for interpreting both Scripture and dogma. 

VOU IJCXXIX,-»3 

Digitized by VjOOQ IC 



34 Fr. Tyrrell's View of Revealed Truth [April, 

The words of Scripture and infallible definition are not to be 
taken in their natural sense. According to his own admission: 
We do not know how they are to be understood, but certainly 
not necessarily in their obvious and proper sense. 

But Fr. Tyrrell would reject such a statement of his canon. 
He would answer we do know in what sense oecumenical defini- 
tions are true. «« They are designed to protect Apostolic revela- 
tion (p. 330). They are true in their protective value. They 
are the husk wrapped around the kernel of Apostolic revela- 
tion, and like husk and kernel, are the output of one and the 
same vital principle,, (p. 334). .|As reassertions of the revel- 
ation they protect^ they are binding in conscience, as explicit 
theological statements, they bind the intellect like other scien- 
tific conclusions so far as they are correctly demonstrated,, 
(p. 308). 

Now we ask, if their value is only ** protective'^ and not 
interpretative ^ and if we do not know the meaning of the revel- 
ation they are designed to protect, have we not a case where 
the explanation is more obscure than the law, the commentary 
more unintelligible than the text ? To call such a Church a 
magisterium is to misuse language. Fr. Tyrrell is not unaware 
that his way is devious. Of his distinction between '' proper " 
and '' protective " values he says : '' Let him take it who can. 
I could only wish there were a straighter way out of a laby- 
rinth of difficulties'' (p. 308). 

Here then, in a word, is the view of revealed truth, which 
Fr. Tyrrell adopts to avoid Scylla and Charybdis. Revealed 
truth cannot be so worded in human language that its state- 
ment reads true. These statements are merely symbols of a 
spiritual experience that once took place. They do not repre^ 
sent a divinely given truth, but present a hidden divine reality. 
The prophet's '^ reading of past history is as little historical as 
his reading of future history, whether he looks back to the 
creation or forward to the Messianic consummation ; in both 
cases he sees fact, indeed, but fact transfigured and rearranged 
so as to bring out the underlying meaning of the whole process. 
And the like is to be said of the prophet's philosophy or sci- 
ence" (p. 302). c«And the Church's teaching- office is simply 
to guard this revelation; her dogmatic definitions possess only 
a protective value,, (p. 354). Their true sense is cryptic and 
enigmatic. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] ^J^' Tyrrell's View of Revealed Truth 35 

Now, since this generic difference of truths leads to conclu- 
sions so utterly subTcrsive of theology and revelation as com- 
monly understood in the Church, it will prove of interest and 
importance to learn how Fr. Tyrrell deduces his principle. His 
argument is drawn from an analysis of what takes place in the 
prophet when he receives revelation. We will first give a brief 
statement of the argument and afterwards examine it point by 
point. 

The argument : Revelation is a spiritual experience, an ele- 
vation of man's soul, an impression produced by God upon his 
every faculty. The whole soul, and not the intellect alone, is 
the subject of this divine shock. Revelation is not merely a 
truth impressed on the mind, it is not merely an impulse given 
to the will, it is a composite impression stirring the whole spir- 
itual fabric. The prophet does not hear statements, be sees 
images, he feels a thrill, he knows that God is near him. In 
this state he may try to express in his own mind what is going 
on within him. His imaginative and intellectual representation 
will be only a human picture of a divine experience. More- 
over, it will represent only the impression made on the mind 
and imagination, and not the impulse given to the heart and 
will. Hence, even this spontaneous conception can never be a 
full and adequate expression of the entire revelation. Still less 
adequate and more purely human are those imaginings and con- 
ceptions, which are the result of cool reflection made after the 
shock has passed. Hence prophetic language, whether it ex- 
presses spontaneous or reflective conceptions, is not a divinely- 
given, adequate statement of revealed truth, but is merely the 
word of man struggling to announce a God-given impression, 
a human effort to tell of a divine experience. Now the truth 
of revelation cannot consist in the statement value of such lan- 
guage, but only in its symbolic value. The proper sense of the 
terms is not the word of God, but the word of man. The divine 
truth of revelation, therefore, consists not in what it says, but 
in what it fain would say; not in the statement, but in the 
experience. 

Now let us examine this argument in detail. 

First of all, Fr. Tyrrell tells us (p. 281), there is a transform- 
ing of the receptive part of our mind, a part which we may 
compare to the sense of hearing. We listen, we do not speak ; 
we receive, we do not give; we are shown something, we do 



Digitized by 



Google 



36 FR. Tyrrell's View of Revealed Truth [April, 

not show. Further on (p. 286) Fr. Tyrrell openly assumes the 
Modernistic principle of ^'Divine Immanence^' and then con- 
tinues: God '^ draws near the soul and fills her with Himself 
to overflowing, flooding each spiritual faculty with His own 
Spirit — and thereby working at times strange transformations 
even in the very senses and bodily organism " (p. 287). Apart 
from the Modernistic explanation, we can grant that this mar- 
velous effect was often produced in the prophets, but such ec- 
stasy is not necessary for revelation. 

Fr. Tyrrell goes on: '^Revelation is not a statement, but a 
showing. God speaks by deeds, not by words" (p. 287). Is 
this true ? If God ever spoke to man it was by the mouth of 
Christ His Son. Now Christ's revelation is pre-eminently a 
revelation of statement; Christ taught a doctrine; Christ an- 
nounced truth to mankind; and those who heard Him and 
acknowledged His heaven-given mission, accepted His words 
as divinely revealed statements. Many of them even, under the 
inspiration of the Holy Ghost, have recorded for us the exact 
sense of many of His statements. Christ has spoken both by 
word and deed. His words teach us what we must believe. 
His deeds show us how to live in accordance with this belief. 

It is well to distinguish carefully two kinds of revelation: 
revelation that is given from without, and revelation that springs 
up within the prophet. We have instances of the first kind in 
those '^ Divine Manifestations,'' when God appeared under the 
guise of man and conversed with Abraham, Jacob, and Moses, 
and when Christ appeared in our very nature and dwelt amongst 
us. The revelations oi Isaias, Jeremias, and Ezechiel seem to 
be examples of the second kind, for these prophets were rapt 
out of themselves and received, at times at least, impressions 
of truth, from an inward working of God's power. Now it is 
clear that Fr. Tyrrell's analysis applies only to this second kind 
of revelation. How, we will now try to ascertain. 

According to him revelation is of the whole man. ''The 
same shock," he continues, " which gives fire to the heart, 
and impulse to the will, fills the mind with some interpretative 
image of the agency at work, much as the sound of a foot- 
fall evokes the image of a pedestrian, or as any sound sug- 
gests an idea of its source and meaning " (p. 287). What Fr. 
Tyrrell has said shortly before will make these words clearer. 
''Revelation, strictly speaking," be tells us, "is this total re- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] F^^ Tyrrell's View of revealed Truth 37 

ligious experience^ not simply the mental element of that ex- 
perience'' (p. 285). And elsewhere: ''It is an experience 
made up of feelings and impulses and imaginingSi which re- 
verberates in every corner of the soul, and leaves its impress 
every where, in the mind no less than in the heart and will'* 
(p. 282). Let it be granted that revelation, as a spiritual fact, 
consists in the total religious experience, and not merely in 
the mental element; yet it is not as a spiritual fact that revel- 
ation is of importance to mankind. In the revelation we are 
considering, God manifests a truth to the prophet not for 
himself, but for communication to others, to be believed by 
them. The mental element, then, is the element of general 
interest, the one chiefly intended by God. The feelings and 
impulses of heart and will are personal gifts to the prophet, 
the intellectual element, the revealed truths is a public gift to 
mankind. This is why the mental element, and not the whole 
experience, receives the name of revelation. 

But Fr. Tyrrell thinks otherwise. He tells us in substance : 
f^The volitional elements are evanescent, while the mental or 
imaginative element abides in the memory, and survives as the 
representative of the total experience. I cannot recall the 
whole experience at will, but I can recall the impression it 
made on my imagination. This remembered impression arro- 
gates to itself the name of Revelation,, (p. 283). And rightly 
so, we say, for it is what God wishes the prophet to proclaim 
as His divine word, it is the prophet's burden, the '' Thus saith 
the Lord." Fr. Tyrrell continues : ,, We come to regard this 
memory of the mental element as * representative ' of the whole 
experience, while it only represents the past mental element, 
which was itself but a part of the experience and not repre- 
sentative of the other elements „ (p. 283). Now we do not sup- 
pose that the mental element represents the total experience, 
but we do claim that it represents that truth, that knowledge, 
which God reveals in the experience. The memory of this 
truth will naturally bring back, to some extent, the past ex- 
perience, as the remembrance of any fact recalls the circum- 
stances under which we came to know it. 

From this analysis, Fr. Tyrrell now draws his first conclu- 
sion: ''The theologian, therefore, looks, or should look, upon 
revelation as a part of religious experience, by means of which 
he can, to some extent, reconstruct the whole of that experi- 



Digitized by 



Google 



38 Fr. Tyrrell's View of Revealed Truth [April, 

ence (as an object may be reconstructed from its shadow, or 
an extinct species of animal from its vestiges)*' (p. 284). In 
this sense, he tells us again and again, revelation is the sub* 
ject- matter of theology. Now revelation, viewed as a spiritual 
phenomenon, is not the subject-matter of theology, though it 
may be the subject-matter of a supernatural psychology. The- 
ology finds its subject-matter in the One True God and Jesus 
Christ, Whom He has sent. The theologian works with those 
very truths which he believes by faith. For theodicy has told 
him that God's word is infallibly true, and history teaches 
(nor can criticism gainsay it) that these words are the words 
ot God. Their plain truth is clear to him, therefore, by the 
light of natural reason alone, apart from that other super- 
natural light which leads his intellect captive. And hence 
these very articles of faith form the first principles of theology. 
Nor can it be objected that this is an arbitrary definition. 
We find this view of the science of theology luminously ex- 
plained, and defended by St. Thomas. Cf. Summa Theologica. 
P. /., Qu. /., Art. i-p.^ 

Fr. Tyrrell's next conclusion (p. 287) is that the same ex- 
perience will produce a very different mental impression on 
minds of different culture, and that the outward record will 
vary according to this impression. He illustrates this point 
by showing how differently savant and savage describe the 
same natural phenomenon; for instance, the same thunder- 
storm. We readily admit that the temperament and refine- 
ment of the prophet will influence his style, but it will not 
change the sense or thought of the record. St. Luke wrote 
better Greek than St. Paul, but God saw to it that each ex- 
pressed the true sense which He deigned to reveal to man- 
kind. 

Since, according to Fr. Tyrrell the mental impression is only 
an inadequate representation of the truth revealed, the spoken 
word and the written word must likewise be but vestiges of 
revelation, and vestiges highly influenced by the personality 
of the prophet. He tells us (p. 303) that the record we have 
is a translation of the experience into outward language and 
symbolism, a translatioii inadequate and only suggestive, whose 

* As regards the meaning of the term Sacra doeirina, used in these articles, St. Thomas 
himself tells us, Art. I. ad secundum, that theology, as distinct from theodicy, is a branch of 
this Sacra doctrina, and in several places he uses *' Theologia " and " Sacra doctrina " as 
synonymous. 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909-] Fr. Tyrrell's View of Revealed Truth 39 

end is to evoke in the bearer the same spiritual phenomenon 
that has stirred the prophet He would make the language of 
revelation and inspiration a mere group of symbols given us by 
God to evoke a revelation that is already written in the depths 
of our being. What is this if not the Modernistic doctrines of 
'^ Symbolism '' and *' Divine Immanence''? 

And now comes Fr. Tyrrell's main conclusion : The real truth 
contained in such a record is by no means its face value as 
statement «« Revelational truth and theological truth cannot 
be compared as two statements — poetic and scientific — of the 
same fact. Between these two kinds of truth there exists a 
generic difference ,, (p. 289). NoW| does his analysis warrant this 
conclusion ? Recall the distinction given above. Many records 
of revelation are the statements of men who wrote from their 
own natural and personal experience or who gathered their facts 
through patient research. Fr. Tyrrell's analysis proves nothing 
against the statement- value of such records. Nor are these 
records revelation only in a wide sense, in so far as they are 
words inspired by God, and therefore for us sealed with His 
authority. They are revelation in a stricter sense, for they are 
a manifestation to us of certain facts which were accomplished 
by God's free choice and immediate intervention. Instances of 
such facts, we have, in the establishment of the Church and the 
institution of seven sacraments by a Heaven-sent Legate. And 
this Legate, not content with accomplishing these facts, left be- 
hind Him His Apostles as infallible witnesses of His work. 
Now, it is their testimony as His witnesses that theologians use 
as revealed premises, and apologists lay down as indisputable 
facts of history. And thus Fr. Tyrrell's elaborate argumentative 
analysis is, for the most part, beside his conclusion. For while 
claiming that revelation is not statement, yet he draws his ar- 
gument from only one species of revelation, and this species, 
as we have seen, is by no means typical. For he analyzes only 
the spiritual experience by which the prophet is supposed to 
have received revelation, and yet it is certain that the bulk of 
revealed truths in question are not the ecstatic visions of a 
prophet, but the sober, substantial statetnents^ the plain-spoken 
words, of One Who, by His repeated miracles, proved His God- 
given mission as teacher of mankind. 

And moreover in his restricted field of revelation, consisting 
only of such records of revealed truth as are the utterances of 



Digitized by 



Google 



40 FR. TyrrelVs View of Revealed Truth [April 

prophetic visions, Fr. Tyrrell's analysis does not prove what it 
purposes to prove. Nor does it by any means warrant the con- 
clusion that even these records are but suggestive symbols, 
given for the purpose of exciting in the hearers an experience 
like that vouchsafed the prophet. For God has made man a 
rational being, and hence we may confidently expect to find 
Him ever dealing with man as with a rational being. There* 
fore, when He speaks to him '^through the prophets!* He will 
not communicate His divine message by an experience that will 
thrill the heart and warm the will and enlighten the understand- 
ing of the prophet alone. No; He will enable His messenger 
to fire in turn the souls of men, not by prophesying unintelli- 
gible symbols and enigmas, though their language may, it is 
true, abound in metaphors, but as men appealing to men^ using 
language that will reach the heart through the understanding. 
Hence in these divine messages of the prophets we shall look 
to find, and we shall find, the most admirable appeals to rea- 
son, motives of reward and punishment, motives of gratitude, 
imitation, and love, and all put forth with a force that has en- 
ergized sacred oratory for nineteen hundred years. And the 
messengers themselves will come armed with those credentials 
which rational creatures naturally demand, miracles and miracu- 
lous foreknowledge of human events. 



Digitized by 



Google 




A REMNANT OF EMPIRE. 

BY P. W. BROWNE. 
AutAor of ** Where HUFisJUrsso: the St^ry of Labrador:* 

|N a recent number of the Paris [Figaro, Count 
Albert le Mun bewails the ** situation ** created 
at St. Pierre- Miquelon, by the revolt of the Pier- 
rais against the despotism of an atheistic admin- 
istration. He says, deprecatingly : ''lis ont tort, 
Us pauvres gens.** They have done ill, these brave colonists, 
in adopting seemingly the only means whereby they might 
arouse France from its apathy, and awaken it from a lethargic 
dream of patriotism where religious sentiment has been out- 
raged. These brave Bretons have dared to raise the symbol of 
freedom — the Stars and Stripes — above the Tricolor; and have 
demanded the redress of grievous wrongs I 

''Just one hundred and fifty years ago/' continues this 
patriotic count/' France possessed in North Americana world' 
which its prowess had opened to civilization; Cartier won it 
(from the Indian tribes); Champiain developed it; and Mont- 
calm shed his blood in its defence ; it was, alas 1 lost to France 
irrevocably in the death throes of a corrupt monarchy/' 

Part of this ''world" is the Colony of St. Pierre which, 
says another patriot, consists " of a few barren rocks, obscured 
by fogs and constantly buffetted by the angry waves"; and 
St Pierre, Miqueloa, Isle Verte, Grand Colombier, and Isle 
aux Chiens are the last remnant of a sovereignty which still 
were ours, were it not for the criminal supineness of legislators 
who regarded "Za Nouvelle France** as only" a few acres of 
snow." 

Within the borders of our little colony, which lies off the 
south shore of Newfoundland, dwells a people amongst which 
there still are descendants of Jean Bart, Duquesne, and Duguay- 
Trouin — the representatives of the hardy Flemings, Basques, and 
Bretons who in past times were the maritime guard of France. 



Digitized by 



Google 



43 A REMNANT OF EMPIRE [April, 

These hardy toilers derive a precarious livelihood from the 
harvest of the sea; they are ever face to face with danger, and 
too often pay toll to the death-dealing fury of the storm. 

No other colonial possession has known such vicissitudes 
of fortune as this little French colony, lost and retaken so 
often by English and French. It is the eldest- born of the 
motherland; '^and," says the writer quoted above, ''notwith- 
standing the pretensions of these vain English explorers — the 
Cabots — these islands were visited by Danish and Norwegian 
explorers in the twelfth century; the Basques fished here in 
the fourteenth ; and when the intrepid Breton Mariner— Jacques 
Cartier — visited these coasts, in 1535, be found numbers of 
fishermen, from St. Malo, Fecamp, Paimpol, and Dieppe, ply- 
ing their trade in the Archipelago and along the Banks.'' 

Yet it was not till Champlain laid the solid foundations of 
our *' Empire in the West,'' by the establishment of Quebec, in 
1608, that St. Pierre assumed importance as a fishing-center; 
from that date it has ever been the nursery of our navy {fi 
piniiri) and the training-school of our mariners. 

St. Pierre, historically, is a veritable replica- in-miniature of 
the motherland; it has had its ''Revolution"; its "Reign of 
Terror "; its " Liberty Tree"; and even its " Coup d'etat:' Its 
history has been a romance of empire; and the recent "diffi- 
culties" are in keeping with its past records. The history of 
the disafiection of the Pierrais is found in the transactions of 
the Quai d'Orsay^ as it is but the distant echo of Breton re- 
volt against the iniquitous legislation which has menaced the 
spiritual and educational existence of the " Eldest Daughter of 
the Church." Discontent has been rife since the inauguration, 
in France, of the secularization of Catholic schools, and it has 
culminated in scenes of disorder which indicate a complete 
rupture between the motherland and its oldest colonial pos- 
session. 

St. Pierre is a busy little town of five thousand souls, and 
not unlike some of the Breton seaports; it really is a bit of 
France of the ancUn rigime transplanted to the Western world, 
though somewhat modernized by the progressive genius of its 
people. Its narrow streets, its trottoirs^ the creaking ox-cart, 
the click of the sahot^ the apple- cheeked Norman women, the 
quaint and picturesque costumes of its inhabitants, are all rem- 
iniscent of Breton ancestry 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] A REMNANT OF EMPIRE 43 

It has occupied a large place in French colonial annals; 
and it has been a cause d$ guerre many a time and oft be- 
tween France and its greatest colonial rival — England. 

After centuries of peaceful progress, St Pierre witnessed, in 
1702, its first assault by a British fleet; and its fort, mount* 
ing six guns, was destroyed by an English squadron under com- 
mand of Captain Leake: **beaucoup d^honneur pour six can* 
mrns/* remarks a caustic Frenchman. By the Treaty oj Uttecht 
(1713) England obtained possession of Acadia, Newfoundland, 
and St. Pierre ; and in the stipulations of this momentous docu- 
ment we read: *'It shall not be lawful tor the subjects of his 
most Christian Majesty, the King of France, to fortify any place 
in the said Island of St. Pierre." 

''This treaty,'' says the Abb^ Raynal, ''wrested from the 
feeble hands of Louis the portals of Canada, Acadia, and New- 
foundland; and from this dates the decline of the Monarchy 
and the oncoming of the Revolution." 

St Pierre remained in the possession of the English for fifty 
years, and was, by the Treaty of Paris (February 10, 1763), 
restored to France "as a refuge for fishermen." This treaty 
also forbade the fortification of the island, for it is herein stipu- 
lated : " His most Christian Majesty, the King of France, en- 
gages not to fortify these islands, nor to erect buildings upon 
them, but they are to be merely for the convenience of the 
fishermen; and only a guard of fifty men shall be kept upon 
the islands for their protection." 

The enactment of the Treaty of Paris was the occasion oi 
extraordinary scenes in the British House of Commons. Lord 
Chatham, who rose from a sick bed to take part in the debates 
upon its passage, denounced it as "an iniquitous measure." 
Lord Bute, who was the supposed tool of Choiseul, was openly 
charged with bribery; and the very sum (three hundred thou'^ 
sand pounds) was named as the bribe which he had accepted 
from the French. 

Junius, in one of his letters, charged one of Bute's col- 
leagues — the Duke of Bedford — with a similar crime. He says : 
"Belle Isle, Gor^e, Guadeloupe, St. Lucia, Martinique, The 
Fishery, The Havannas, are glorious monuments of your Grace's 
talents for negotiation. My Lord, we are too well acquainted 
with your pecuniary character to think it possible that so many 
public sacrifices should have been made without some private 



Digitized by 



Google 



44 -4 REMNANT OF EMPIRE [April, 

compensation. Your conduct carries with it an internal evidence, 
beyond all the legal proofs of a Court of Justice/' 

Soon after the enactment of this Treaty several Acadian 
refugees settled in St. Pierre; but they do not seem to have 
taken kindly to the hazardous life of a fishing- colony. Within 
a few years they abandoned it and located in Cape Breton and 
the Magdalen Islands. 

Between the years 1763 and 1776, St Pierre made great 
forward strides, owing to its trade with the New England 
States; and then began the contraband trade (smuggling), which 
has been one of the dark spots in its history. 

In 1778 a British squadron, under command of Rear- Admiral 
Montague, again took possession of the island, without any show 
of resistance on the part of the inhabitants ; but by the Treaty 
of Versailles (1783) it was restored to France. "This treaty," 
says an enthusiastic French jurist, '^did not impose upon the 
French colonists the humiliations (Us conditions humiliantes) of 
the Treaty of Utrecht.^* But English authorities claim (seem- 
ingly justly) that the Treaty of Versailles did not rescind any 
of the provisions of the Treaty of Utrecht. Out of this Treaty 
arose the famous " French Shore Question," which for so many 
years afforded emoluments to the legal fraternity of Newfound- 
land, and sundry trips to the British Isles for local politicians. 
The '^Question" was adjusted in 1904, much to the chagrin of 
the Pierrais merchants and Newfoundland jurists. England in- 
demnified the French fishermen for their claims (supposed) on 
the French Shore; and ceded to France elsewhere valuable ter- 
ritory in compensation for the "rights" acquired by treaty. 
These "rights" actually permitted French fishermen concurrent 
fishing on that part of the Newfoundland coast lying between 
Cape John and Cape Ray; but French legislators construed 
concurrent fishing — for la morue into exclusive rights on the 
Treaty Coast. 

St. Pierre, like the motherland, in Revolutionary days had 
its " General Assembly," and its " Committee of Notables " ; 
and the meetings of these organizations were sometimes held 
in the parish church. In 1789 M. Allain, the saintly cur^, de- 
clined to participate in these orgies, and refused to take the 
oath of allegiance to Jacobinism. He subsequently left the 
colony, and located with many of his fiock on the Magdalen 
Islands. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] A REMNANT OF EMPIRE 45 

During the tigime of the Assembly a ''Jacobin Club" ex* 
isted, under the title of '' Le Club des Amis de la Constitution 'V 
and for a while there was actually a ''Reign of Terror''; in 
a riot Caused by members of the club a woman named Gen- 
evieve Larache was killed. 

" The 8th of April, 1793, was a memorable day in the French 
toy republic. A big spruce tree was brought from the New- 
foundland shore, and it was solemnly planted, with all pomp 
and ceremony, in the public square, as a 'Tree ot Liberty.' 
The scene is changed 1 This republican farce came to an abrupt 
termination. St. Pierre became again a British possession ; and 
its population were deported to Halifax." — (Prowse: History 
of I^ewfoundland.) 

The ** Pioce of Amiens** {1^02) again transferred the colony 
to France; but, within a year, it again reverted to England. 
At this period many Newfoundland families from the Burin 
Peninsula settled in St. Pierre; and to-day there are many in 
the colony bearing Irish names who speak only the language 
of the Gaul. 

The " Treaty of Paris** (1815) again restored St. Pierre to 
France, under whose jurisdiction it has since remained. The 
exiled sons returned from Halifax; and trade immediately re- 
vived. Little of a political nature transpired for many years, 
until, in 185 1, a little ** Coup d'etat** awakened the dormant 
political activities of the colonists. It was brought about by a 
malcontent Capitaine au long cours, who organized the Repub- 
lican faction against the exactions of Imperialism. The move- 
ment was short-lived, however, and M. le Capitaine fell into 
the clutches of the law; he was condemned, on some trivial 
charge, to twelve months' imprisonment, and later deported 
from St. Pierre. The administration of justice was seemingly 
rather singular, for in the same year a rich merchant of the 
town shot one of the disciplinaires (military prisoners) dead in 
his hall (the unfortunate prisoner was hungry and begging for 
a morsel of bread). The murderer was sentenced to one month* s 
imprisonment^ which he spent under surveillance in bis own 
luxurious home. — (Prowse: Op. cit,) The greatest rivalry has 
always existed between St. Pierre and the neighboring English 
colony — Newfoundland; and it is as formidable to-day as in 
times when Britain's mandates were enforced at the cannon's 
mouth. The cause of this rivalry is — Fish (la moruej. 



Digitized by 



Google 



46 A REMNANT OF EMPIRE [April, 

" Fish/' says a French writer, " is the very life of St Pierre ; 
and everything in the little colony is suggestive of the pisca- 
torial industry. Sans la morue^ Saint Pierre n *a plus sa raison 
(Titre : it is the prolific cause of blessings and curses; it de- 
velops greed amongst the rich, and brings woes unnumbered 
to the poor. All topics of conversation revolve around la 
morue. In the early days of spring the thud of the mallet and 
caulking iron is heard late and early ; the streets are thronged 
with fishermen laden with bundles of oakum and canvas; and 
the air is redolent of — Stockholm tar and fumes of the barking- 
pot. The fleet is being put in readiness for fishing ; and there 
are daily arrivals of festive marin from St. Malo, Granville, and 
St. Brieue. From five to six thousand of these hardy Bretons 
come annually to St. Pierre to outfit for the shore {pecheseden^ 
taire) and bank fishery." They are a venturesome lot, these 
Bretons; and they are reared amid surroundings which develop 
the characteristics which fit them for their future avocation— 
the French navy. ''Formidable men/' says the writer quoted 
above, ''formidable men, these Bretons; they are our greatest 
glory and the source of our national pride 1" 

The approximate value of these fisheries is $1,500,000; and 
the French taxpayers are contributors towards the industry to 
the extent of practically one- third of its value; as the fisher- 
men receive a bounty of about nine francs per quintal for all 
fish exported, and five francs for what is consumed on French 
territory. This bounty system is the crux of the difficulties 
existing between Newfoundland and St. Pierre, as the French 
products are in constant competition with Newfoundland fish 
in the European markets. This unfair method of business on 
the part of the French has been detrimental to Newfoundland ; 
and the latter retaliated some years ago by enacting the fa- 
mous " Bait Bill," the enforcement of which has wrought havoc 
to the French fishermen, and caused the decline of St. Pierre. 
These effects are admitted by all who are competent to pass 
judgment on the question; and the Pierrais themselves admit 
the fact that the decadence of St. Pierre began when New- 
foundland, in self-defence, enacted the " Bait Bill." 

A St. Pierre newspaper says : " Since the enforcement of 
the ' Bait Bill ' French fishermen have found their industry less 
productive than before." The decadence of St. Pierre is very 
remarkable. Its fishing fleet has decreased nearly fifty per cent 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] A REMNANT OF EMPIRE 47 

within the last decade ; hundreds of fisheimen have left the 
colony^ and the outlook is gloomy indeed. 

Apart from fishing the Island- Colony has practically no in- 
dustries, excepting a few dory- manufacturing plants and a 
foundry. It is burdened with an almost insupportable debt; 
and hampered by e£fete officialdom. There has been a deficit 
in its revenue for three years past; and dishonesty seems to 
have demoralized its finances. Only a few months ago $35,000 
disappeared from the colonial treasury, and the thief is abroad 
in the land. Discontent is rife amongst the people; and the 
unfortunate colonists are ever clamoring for retrenchment aod 
reform. 

''Let us have/' says a recent writer, ''administrators of 
worth (hemmes de carrien) ; these were less likely to be gov- 
erned by sordid motives than the penniless politician. . . • 
Give us a rigorous examination of our budget, an active sur- 
veillance over the administration. . . . Greater attention is 
needed in the a£fairs of the colony than ever before, if we wish 
to save it from irrevocable ruin. It is being bled to death by 
certain individuals; it is paying subsidies which are in nowise 
justifiable, for which we receive inefficient services; we are 
bound by contracts made by ourselves, 'tis true, but against 
our own interests.** 

Socially, St. Pierre almost rivals the gay "Metropolis of 
the Universe" in its festiveness in the winter season; during 
the summer months everybody is too busy to attend to the 
social side of life; it is the time of the harvest of ,the sea. 
The Pierrais are extremely hospitable ; and those who visit the 
little colony do not soon forget the bonhomie and rare grace 
of its people. 

In former years St Pierre was a recognized center of learn- 
ing, and numbers of young men and women from the neigh- 
boring colony of Newfoundland sought there educational ad- 
vantages which, in those days, they did not possess at home. 
When economy (?) necessitated the closing of the Collegiate 
school, the Frhres de Lammenais taught the communal schools 
until the fatal Separation Legislation banished them from the 
colony. Their departure, in June, 1904, was marked by an 
outbreak on the part of the populace, which resulted in riots 
and disorders. Then secular teachers were appointed ; but they 
were not acceptable to the majority of the colonists, who de- 



Digitized by 



Google 



48 A REMNANT OF EMPIRE [April. 

manded religious education for their children. Last year the 
PierraiSy under the presidency of Mgr. Legasse, decided to es- 
tablish free denominational schools, with Catholic lay teachers. 
These teachers arrived from France in September, but up to 
November 15 they were unable to secure the necessary authori- 
zation to allow them to open their school. 

The Catholic Bretons contended that the Administrator of 
the Government was deliberately withholding the authorization, 
and they decided to open the school without the requisite per* 
mission from M. Moulin, the Government representative; this 
they did on November 16. Thereupon the authorities instituted 
proceedings against the teachers for violating the law; and this 
aroused the Pierrais to a sense of the indignities heaped upon 
them by minions of an infidel government. They organized a 
demonstration, paraded the streets one thousand strong, and 
demanded , redress from the Administrator Moulin. To show 
what else they might do, they carried an American flag and 
visited the American Consulate, suggesting, if not actually pro* 
claiming, that annexation to the United States was a possi- 
bility. The Administrator became alarmed, promised to tele- 
graph at once to the Colonial Minister at Paris, and counselled 
patience till a reply was received. The teachers were put on 
trial, fined one thousand francs, and forbidden to teach. This 
prohibition was disregarded; and the colony still protested 
against the iniquitous sentence of the judge. France became 
alarmed; and immediately a Governor, M. Paul Didelot, was 
despatched on board the cruiser Admiral Aui^, with plenipo- 
tentiary powers. The conditions have as yet changed but little ; 
and the brave colonists will ** not bow the knee to Baal." 
What will be the outcome of these difficulties ? This is not an 
easy question to answer. One thing, however, seems evident. 
St. Pierre as a French colony is an anomaly in this age. Its 
destiny ? Presumably incorporation into the Dominion of Can- 
ada; and it is not beyond the bounds of political possibilities 
that the Honorable Member for Miquelon may one day be 
seated side by side with the Representative of Burin in the 
Dominion House of Commons. 



Digitized by 



Google 



A STRANGER WITHIN OUR GATES. 

BY H. W, G. HYRST. 
Author of " Ckaiwut" 4U., €U, 

I. 

at that, now/' roared my old friend Sam 
mp as he grasped my hand. "Blam* 'f I 
'n't comin' np to see you this morn'n', sir." 
In his time Sam has been everything from 
te of a privateer to a master trawler at North 
Ham. ''I s'pose you've 'eared the news?" he asked. 

I let him know that, for a fortnight, I had been sojourning 
in an outlandish part called London, and had heard nothing 
beyond the bald fact that the brig Marie^ from Bordeaux to 
the Thames, had gone down o£f our coast, all lives but one 
being lost. Whereupon Sam told a story which, reported ver- 
batim and with his customary digressions, would fill a hundred 
pages. 

''But 'ere's the curiousest part," concluded the old man. 
'' Now, who should you suppose it was as see this 'ere foring 
party, an' sculled out to 'er, an' brought 'er safe ashore? It 
was Bill 'Ooper, sir; my — old— mate — Bill— 'd?^/^r/ " 

Astonishment held me dumb. Bill 'Ooper is a nervous little 
man who has never been beyond the North Ham fishing radius, 
who trembles when it blows hard, and whose spirit seemed 
to have been crushed long ago by a coarse and brutal wife who 
deserted him, and later drank herself to death. 

Sam rubbed his hands. "Yes; there stood me an' Bill, an' 
a lot more, 'bout 'alf a hour afore daylight. * There's a woman 
clingin' to that there spar,' 'oilers Bill. 'Woman my grand- 
mother,' I says. 'Look out 'tain't your old woman come to 
life again. Bill,' sings out young Sonny Keam. An' everybody 
laughs. ' Let's go out to 'er, any road,' says Bill. But 'e bein' 
s'posed to be more'n 'alf silly, nobody took no notice. / ain't 
a fool, nor a coward, but I'd ha' took a hoath there warn't a 
soul there. 

VOL. LZZZIX.— 4 



Digitized by 



Google 



50 A STRANGER WITHIN OUR GATES [April, 

''I gets to the top o' the beach an' then squints back. 
Blam' '{ there warn't Bill, scullin' for dear life, an' all the 
others makin' sport o' the poor old feller; one tellin' 'im to 
go this way an' another that. 'Adn't 'ardly got through my 
breakfast when I 'eared enough 'ollerin' for to make a hyster 
deaf. Cuts out on to the beach, an' sees Bob Waters runnin' 
top speed. ' What's up, old Bob ? ' I sings out. ' Bill 'Ooper's 
brought a female ashore/ 'e says, 'an' I'm off a'ter Dr. For- 
rest' 

''Down I goes, an' I thought for sure the chaps'd ha' 
killed old Bill wi' cheerin' of 'im. The woman, she was safe 
enough, bless ye; just a hover-dose o' salt water; she'd bin 
clingin' to one o' the yards all the time." 

'' Where is she now ? " I asked. 

"That's what I was a-takin'the liberty o' comin' up to see 
you about," said Sam. '' Mrs. Waters is a-lookin' a'ter 'er like 
a sister; but, poor soul, nobody can't understand 'er. There's 
me an' a lot more knows a bit o' French, but it's mostly ' Bong 
joor\ an' *Ah votes auntie^* or else sea-farin' terms an' cuss- 
words. My boy Dick, as worked on the divin' boat at Havver, 
'e says to 'er the other day: ^ Commong sat var ; sal tip ; 
sakray nor de sheeongj But she shakes 'er 'ead an' 'oUers : 
* May say may shcng^ 

''Then Buffer Barton, as often goes up the Rhind with a 
barge, '^ 'as a go at 'er. ' Vee gates ? Sprayken zee Dutch ? * 
'e says. 'Why,' I says, 'that ain't French; that's German.' 
^ Well,' 'e says, ' it's all one an' the same ; it's foring ain't it ? ' 
An' it was all one to 'er, for she couldn't make 'ead nor tail 
of it. 

"So then Bob trots off to your friend Mosseer Do Some- 
thin's; but 'im an' 'is missis wouldn't be back till last night. 
Then this momin' I remembered you, crackin' on wi' them 
French sailors." 

"Let's go and interview the lady." 

On the beach we met Bob Waters, painting a skiff. I 
knew the handsome fisherman from his having stood to Paul 
Dupont, the painter, who had bought a summer house at North 
Ham. He and Sam led me into his cottage, and there, laugh- 
ing at Mrs. Waters' attempts at sign language, was a comely, 
middle-aged woman, dark of eye and rosy of cheek, and stamped 
in every line with neatness, thrift, honesty, and gentleness. In 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] A Stranger Within Our Gates 51 

reply to one or two civil questions, she told me that she had 
been bonne to an elderly couple who had died recently; that 
her savings had been swallowed in a bogus investment ; and that 
she had availed herself of a free passage to London, hoping to 
find work there as a cook, and to meet with sundry friends 
who were settled in Soho. 

The previous night I had traveled from town with the Du- 
ponts ; and Madame had been lamenting that the Frenchwoman 
whom she had engaged as cook had been unavoidably detained 
at the last moment — ^for shop-lifting. 

I despatched Bob to the yacht-club bungalow in search of 
Dupont, and told the stranger — Hortense Vaillant — that she 
might possibly find work in our town. While she was expressing 
her gratitude Sam touched my arm, 

'*If you'll ex-cuse me, sir, there's Bill 'Ooper just gone by. 
Fraps she'd like to say a word to 'im now you're 'ere." 

I nodded; and shortly after Bill 'Ooper entered, grinning 
and shamefaced. As soon as I told her who he was, the 
Freachwoman seized his hands and smothered them with kisses ; 
and if ever I saw a man in torment that man was Bill 'Ooper. 

** 'Ere, 'ere, 'old on, missis," he gasped. ** That's quite 
enough o' that, ex-cuse me." 

** Qu^est'Ce gu'il ditf " asked Hortense in blissful ignorance. 

'' He says he only did his duty. Acts of bravery are noth- 
ing to him." The previous winter I had seen Bill 'Ooper weep 
during a gale; and Sam told a darker story about the late 
Mrs. 'Ooper's actually having beaten her lord. 

Mile. Vaillant let go the little man and reached out for her 
fat silver watch and begged me to present it to her preserver. 
I did so, but Bill 'Ooper's manner was not encouraging; it 
was not even gracious. 

''You tell 'er I don't warnt it," he snarled. And I trans- 
lated to the effect that the gallant seaman's reward lay in the 
satisfaction of having saved so charming a woman ; while Sam 
and Mrs. Waters rallied the rescuer on his want of courtesy. 

•' I don't care," he bellowed. " I tell ye, I wunt 'ave it. 
Why, she'll be warntin' for to marry me next." 

*' Ye can sell it, yer cuckoo, can't ye ? " shouted Sam. " I 
lay if she'd offered ye money ye'd ha' took it fast enough." 

The argument prevailed; Bill took the watch and — his de- 
parture, as Bob returned with Paul Dupont. 



Digitized by 



Google 



52 A Stranger Within Our Gates [Aprils 

I think she was happy enough in my friend's household. 
Madame Dapont is a dear soul, and took endless pains to make 
her understand the rudiments of English. Certainly Hortense 
was an artiste in the kitchen ; and as long as she cooked for 
Paul I never refused an invitation to dinner. 

The Duponts are Catholics, and I generally reckon to sup- 
ply them with fish on days of abstinence. One Friday morn- 
ing as the Snowdrop (Sam's smack, on which Bill 'Ooper works) 
had not gone o£f, I employed Bill to scull me out to a favorite 
fishing- ground; and it was there that he opened his mind to 
me on a momentous topic. 

'' I see that there foring party again last night. What ye 
might call a ham'able party, don't ye think, sir ? " 

This, in plain English, meant that for nearly two months 
Bill had now been casting eyes at the fair Hortense. 

He continued : '' I nodded to 'er, an' she to me ; an', a'ter 
a bit, she fetches out what I thought was a cake o' 'bacca an' 
'ands it to me. Goes to bite off a corner " — Bill pulled a pite- 
ous face — ''an' it were this 'ere choc'late stuff." 

** Sold the watch yet ? " I asked airily. 

** Well, sir, ast yourself the question. If I was to be 'ard 
up at any time, p'raps I might; though — well, 'twouldn't be 
more'n middlin' civil, a'ter she'd give it to me as a keepsake." 
" Sort of love token, eh ? " 

*' No, no, master," growled old Bill. ** I've been done over 
a woman once; an' I've said to Sam Kemp many's the time 
since my missis's bin dead : ' Old Sam, if ever you 'ear o' me 
warntin' to git married, you take an' do somethin' as'U git ye 
seven year, an' then go an' swear it was me done it. / shan't 
say I never.'" 

''But a smart fellow like you ought to have scores of 
chances. I saw you on the cliff last Sunday, a howling swell 
in a starched collar and a new necktie." 

Bill simpered. "Yes; no doubt there's a many I might 
'ave for the askin'. Ye see, sir, a'ter my old woman 'ooked it, 
I started to save up, an* I've got a matter o' a few pound in 
the post-office, through takin' o' Sam's advice. A better mate 
than Sam Kemp never catched fish. But 'ow I come to wear 
that collar as you talk on — one day, when I was goin' past 
Mosseer Dewpong's, she hollers out to me: 'Hay I Pstl Mos- 
seer Beelupah I ' (That's 'ow she says my name.) I stops, an' 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] A Stranger Within Our Gates 53 

then she comes out wi' that there scarf as you see me wearin' 
Sunday. ' Me make it you/ she says. An' I took that to 
mean she made it for me. So rememberin' what you was 
pleased to say when she offered me the watch, I took it, an' 
'thank ye, mum/ I says. 

''Well, when I showed it to Sam, 'e says: 'Now we shall 
ha' to git ye a collar^ Bill.' An' so, Saturday night, 'im an"* 
me went down Jackson's an' bought one for sixpence 'a'penny. 
So Sam says, a'ter I'd fitted it on round at 'is 'ouse: 'Now,' 
'e says, 'if you take an' leave off that there old guernsey to- 
morrer — if it's a warm day, mind — the scarf '11 just about show 
up like the sun through a fog.' So that's 'ow you come to 
see me. An' — an'— h'm— so you thought I looked middlin' 
well, sir, ex-cuse me?" 

"And she saw you, did she, Bill?" 

" So 'appened I was passin' the Carthlic Church just as she 
was comin' out, fust thing in the mornin'." 

" And you did a bit of courting, eh ? " 

"Me a-coortin'? No, sir; I'll be nobody's slave but my 
own." 

"But she's very fond of you, BilL Madame Dupont told 
me so." 

The old man stared. "Never I " he answered; but his tone 
was not convincing. 

"But, of course," I added brutally, "if you're determined 
not to get spliced, you ought to give some one else a show. 
There's Sam and old Tom Keam — both widowers and worth 
plenty of money — and young Bert Holden, a bachelor and a 
very good-looking fellow." 

"Sam an' Tom ain't got much 'pinion o' married life," 
said the old man with lofty confidence. "An' Rumpy 'Olden 
— 'e ain't got a brass farden', an' owes for the last new pair 
o' sea boots 'e 'ad; an' a beer score at the 'Pig's 'Ead' as 
well." 

" Still, there are other men. I'll tell Madame—" 

Bill spluttered, stammered, and reddened. " Well, sir, I — " 

He looked so nonplussed that I was moved. Our pile of 
fish was growing, and Bill was threading them on a piece 
of wire as he cleaned them. 

"Look here," I said. "We shan't want any more. As 
soon as we get ashore, trot round and leave these with my 



Digitized by 



Google 



54 -4 STRANGER WITHIN OUR GATES [April, 

compliments. You'll probably see Hortense, and can tell her 
yourself that it*s no go/' 

Obviously Bill was relieved. But, as we separated later, he 
assumed the demeanor of profound mystery so dear to his 
kind. '' Over that little matter you an' me was talkin' about/' 
he said in a stage whisper, ''not to mention no names — it'd 
be a kindness on your part, ex-cuse me, sir, not to say nah« 
thin' to the lady 'bout me z,n*—you know who; / sh'U be 
able to make that right." 

A week later I came across Bill 'Ooper tarring dredge- 
meshes, and snatching furtive glances at Hortense, who was 
seated on a distant breakwater. Sam Kemp had told me that 
thrice lately Bill had appropriated the prawns that happened 
to come up in the shrimp-net, and after carefully boiling them 
had conveyed them away mysteriously; so I presumed the 
love-a£fair was not yet quashed. 

I looked from one to the other. ''Why not?" I asked 
myself. 

I said something in French which made Hortense color 
charmingly and then follow me to Bill's side. Then I played 
intermediary. 

On the following Sunday the banns were published; and 
every day, for the next three weeks, Sam Kemp — backing his 
remarks with many wise saws and modern instances — lectured 
Bill ' Ooper on the duty of relf-assertion on a husband's part. 

The great day came. I was to give away the bride, and 
Sam — who openly held that some Catholics were "almost as 
good as Christians" — had consented to be "best man." But 
when Hortense, supported by Madame Dupont and myself, 
arrived at the church. Bill 'Ooper was not forthcoming. Sam 
Kemp fingered his cap uncomfortably and mumbled : " I b'lieve 
old Bill's gone an' made away with 'isself; straight I do. At 
bottom, 'e 'ad that 'orror o' females (these ladies '11 ex-cuse 
me) that 'e'd sooner do anythin' than commit matteromony." 

''Oh, go and look for him, and hurry him up, there's a 
good fellow " ; I said impatiently. I hadn't the heart to arouse 
the Frenchwoman's anxiety; and her mistress, putting her off 
with some plausible excuse, led her into the priest's house, 
while I went to help hunt up the bridegroom. By three 
o'clock I had searched sheds, boats, back-yards, chicken- houses, 
public-houses unavailingly, and was returning to the church 
when I ran across Sam again. ^ j 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



1909.] A Stranger Within Our Gates 55 

" I got Mm," he said. 

"Where?*' 

'' Don't you go near 'im, sir ; 'e's 'most tarrified to death 
'E's bin up at the ' Rose' since six o'clock this mornin'." This 
was a hostelry four miles inland.. "Now 'e's a*waitin' for me 
at the 'Queen's.'" 

"What's wrong with the old fool?." 

"It was this way, sir. I knowed 'e 'adn't gone o£f to-day, 
'cause I see all the boats out An' I knowed 'e'd slep' in 'is 
bed an' gone out middlin' early, for 'is front door was open at 
five o'clock. A'ter I left you at the church I see Smith, the 
baker, in 'is cart, an' 'e said 'ow 'e'd seen Bill at the 'Rose/ 
I goes along the road, an', just 'appens of 'im comin' 'ome» 
' What sort o' caper do ye call this ? ' I says. ' Why,' 'e says, 
'I 'ad a dream.' 'Yes,' I. says, 'dreamt 'ow ye 'ad two 
penn'orth o' sense for once, an' the hidear give ye a fright, 
bein' strange to ye.' 

"Ye see, I felt middlin' mad to think 'e*d made a pair o' 
fools o' you an' me, so to speak it; an' a'ter I'd put on my 
gaff-tawps'l clothes an' alL No, 'e ain't drunk ; it appears 'e'd 
bin dreamin' 'is old woman stood at the foot o' the bed, an' 
'oUered : ' Do you warnt me to come an' 'aunt you every 
night ? ' Now 'e will 'ave it as it's a warnin' not to git mar- 
ried* 'E says 'ow Job Foreman's mother 'ad a dream as meant 
somethin'; an' she went contrairy — an' blam' 'f 'er 'usband's 
boat didn't go down, an' 'im in it. An' that's true, too, 
'cause — " 

I nipped in the bud the digression I saw coming. " Listen 
to me, old Sam " — and lowering my voice I spoke earnestly for 
some minutes. Then we parted ; he to look after his old mate ; 
I to leave a message for Father Ross, arranging the marriage 
for the following morning, and subsequently to seek out a 
deus ex machina — Ern Hadlow, by name. 

Ern had been in the navy, and might have got promotion 
if he had not considered beer preferable. When he is at work, 
it is before the mast on a Shields' collier. He can play any 
instrument from an organ to a jew's-harp; mend anything 
from a typewriter to an engine-boiler; sing anything from 
Italian opera to Moody and Sankey; recite anything from 
Shakespeare to Bernard Shaw; imitate anything or anybody, 
found him at the " Pig's Head," and to him I opened my 



Digitized by 



Google 



56 A STRANGE/^ WITHIN OUR GATES [April, 

grief; and his pregnant wink and confident: ''You may rely 
on me, sir/' sent me to bed with a heart free from care. 

I was dressing the next morning, when I heard Sam's 
voice outside my beach-shed. '' Come in/' I cried ; and he 
entered, purple with laughter. 

** I consider you an' young Em 'Adiow ought to 'ave a 
medal, sir," he gurgled. ''You for 'atchin' of it, an' 'im for 
carr'in' of it through:" 

" Oho I " I chuckled. " Let's hear." 

" Ah, but I mustn't stop, 'cause Bill 'Ooper's a*waitin' in my 
kitchen; only I see ye come down the beach, an' thinks I, 
' I must just 'ave 'alf a word with 'im;' Bill come round 
about fower o'clock this mornin'. 'I've 'ad such a turn,' 'e 
says. ' My missis 'as bin again.' ' Bill,' I says, ' you'll ha' to 
take and knock o£f wi' the rum.' ' 'Old you 'ard,' 'e says, 
'this warn't no rum, nor yet no dream. Why, I tell ye, she 
come an' stood there at the foot o' the bed. Know 'ow she 
used to sneeze? It was that as woke me,' 'e says. Young 
Ern, 'e remembered it; an' it appears 'e remembered some of 
'er words, too ; for Bill, 'e swears 'ow she stood an' 'ollered : 
' You 'alf bred monkey, you ; listen to me, afore I cut yer 
liver out.' (Jest the very way she always used to begin on 
the poor ole feller.) ' Why didn't ye git married to the French- 
woman as I warned ye ? ' ' Well,' says Bill— all of a shake, 
I'll be bound — ' I thought you never warnted me to.' * You 
poor, silly, soft sawney,' she says (that was another of 'er lov- 
in' words, as young Ern 'ad remembered — she was a Tartar, I 
tell ye ; an' can't Ern take 'er off to a T ? ) 'I meant ye 
should marry 'er. This is yer last chance, mind ' ; an' off she 
goes — 'e goes, I *ad ought to say — an' Bill laid shiverin' till 
daylight. 

'"An' now what do you think 'e's arg'in' the p'int with 'is- 
self about ? Why, 'e will 'ave it 'ow it was a bit o' spite o' 
'is old woman's. ' She's jealous o' me bein' independent,' 'e 
says; 'an'warnts to see me tied up [again.' 'Ah, but/ I says, 
' you got to risk that. Better 'ave a little trouble wi' this new 
un than 'ave th' old un comin' back, night a'ter night, for to 
pester ye.' 'In course o' time,' 'e says, 'there mightn't be 
much difference.' 'Oh, yes, there would be,' I says. 'This 
'ere foring party, if ever she do take to naggin' — which I doubt, 
mind — -you won't understand 'er, whatever she says to ye; an' 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] A STRANGER WITHIN OUR GATES $1 

you'll be able to sarce back as much as ye likci an' she can't 
trip ye up.'" 

This argument clinched the matter ; the wedding took place 
without a hitch, and I don't believe there is a happier couple 
anywhere than Bill 'Ooper and his wife. 

II. 

Three months after her marriage, a cheap day- trip gave Hor- 
tense an opportunity of going to London in search of her friends 
in Soho. 

Two days after the excursion I was on the beach when the 
crew of the Snowdrop came ashore from shrimping; and Sam 
Kemp and Bill 'Ooper hailed me e£fusively. I hinted at an 
adjournment to the ** Pig's Head," for I was all agog to know 
how the strangers had fared in Babylon; but Sam remarked: 
'' You'll ex-cuse me, sir ; Bill don't stop for no drink now, 
when 'e comes ashore, without it's late tides. 'Is missis'U 'ave 
a cup o' tea ready for 'im. Why, there she is at the door." 

When we entered Bill's habitation a little later we found 
him washed, shaven, and changed, and smoking his pipe, on 
one side of a spotless hearth, while his wife, white- capped and 
brandishing her eternal knitting, sat opposite. 

''So you've been to London, Hortense ?" I observed,* as she 
placed an ash-tray at my elbow. Even I am not allowed to 
throw my matches in the fender. 

Up went her hands. '' Ah, monsieur I Eef I 'ave sou£fert ! " 

" Like London, Bill ? " 

And Bill 'Ooper made answer : " Well, sir, since you ast me, 
it's the fust time, an', as I says to my old skipper 'ere, comin' 
'ome, it'll be the last." 

Sam looked out of the corners of his eyes at the little man, 
as a full-rigged ship looks at a barge, and began the yarn with- 
out more ado. ''Ye see, sir, our missis 'ere bein' foring, an' 
Bill 'Ooper — bein^ Bill 'Ooper, I promist I'd go up with 'em, 
me knowia' London — Cannin' Town, at any rate — middlin' well. 
So far as Charin' Crost we was all right, 'cept for Bill gettin' 
'isself laughed at in the carriage for sayin' we must ha' got a 
fair wind, 'cause she went along so fast. Never been in a train 
afore, poor soul; nor yet a steamboat. 

"Gits out at London, an' outside the station ast a p'liceman 



Digitized by 



Google 



58 A STRANGER WITHIN OUR GATES [April, 

where Berwick Street, Sobo, was. Tells us to bear round by a 
church till we come to a circus an' then ast again. We kep' 
on, but couldn't see nahthin' like a circus or a fair ; an' last of 
all Bill says : * I are that dry ' ; an' the end of it was, we went 
into a flarin' great public, twenty times as big as the 'Pig's 
'Ead/ An' it turned out the landlady was a Frenchy." 

''Ah, yes"; cried Hortense. "We spik French togezzair, 
and—" 

" Speak French f " roared Sam. ** If ever I 'eared two wo- 
men's tongues go, one agin the other — an' me an' 'im starin^ 
at each other like any pair o' fools. Thinks I: 'Lucky for 
Bill *e ain't French, an' 'is new'missis what the old un was for 
chin-music' There was good come out of it, though, for the 
landlady sent a potman to show us where the street was." 

" Oh I zees Ber-vick Strreet ? " Again Mrs. 'Ooper's hands 
went up. 

"Then, thinks I, we're back in Petticut Lane, where I was 
robbed of a silk wrapper an' six shillin's, fowerty years ago ' ; 
an' if Petticut Lane ain't moved up there, they've built the fel- 
ler one to it Jews by the score ; foreigners by the thousand ; 
ah* the 'ollerin', an* the stench, an* the horange-peel an' green- 
stu£f under- foot I Both sides o' the road there was barrers, an' 
women without a bit o' 'at on, tumin' the taikle over. Then 
one feller 'ad a hyster- stall, an' when me an' Bill stopped to 
squint, 'e 'ollered : 'Sixpence a dozen; Ryal Natives!' 'Why, 
yer liar, we can't sell Ryals less'n ten bob a hundred,' I says. 
' They're 'Mericans ; an' I've picked 'em* o£f the beach by the 
thousand when I served on a whaler, an' nobody to stop ye.' 
Never see a feller so took down in yer life." 

Sam paused to cut up some tobacco, and Bill 'Ooper took 
up the tale: "So when we found this 'ere 'ouse, the parties 
was moved away. ' Name o' Roche ? ' I says. ' Comprong par^* 
they says; an' then she 'ad a go at 'em, an' — " 

Sam knocked down the finger which Bill was pointing at 
his wife. "Better by 'alf let me spin the yarn, old ship-mate. 
An' so, by this time we wanted a bit o' dinner, an' the missis 
'ere stops outside of a shop where" — I could see that Sam 
only repressed a shudder with difficulty — "they 'ad — well, sich 
things as foringers might like. She starts to go in, 'im foUer- 
in' ; but I says : ' Bill ; you'll ex-cuse me, but the sort o' taikle 
they sell in them shops don't agree wi' my constitootion. I'm 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] A Stranger Within Our Gates 59 

a-goin' into that there public over the way, an' there you'll 
find me when you an' your missis 'ave finished/ 

** Over I goes ; pint o' beer an' crust o' bread an' cheese. 
Publican a very civil- feller, an' no great opinion o' foringers. 
Looks 'ard at me. 'Shellvback, I lay/ 'e says. An' it turned 
out 'e'd bin ship's carpenter, an' second mate too, in 'is time; 
quite a youngish chap, too. 'E stands treat, an' then me; an' 
still Bill 'Ooper never come; an' thinks I: "E's a-bustin' of 
'isself wi' them there kickshaws.' But you know me ; if I say 
I'll be so-an'-so, sich-an'-sich a time, I'm sure to be there. 
So I waited, 'ad some more goes o' beer an' rum, fust 'im pay- 
in', an' then me; an' it come to fower o'clock, an' me thinkin' 
'twam't only two. 

''When I come to tell the publican about Bill, 'e says, 
' This 'ere's a queer neighbor'ood ; if I was you I should go 
across an' 'ave a look.' 

''Soon said, soon done. Goes into the shop an' there was 
the dirtiest foringer ever I see-^uttin' up sandvichesi I 'ol- 
lered at 'im, for to make 'im sensible, an' then it turned out 
'e could talk English. ' See that passage ? ' 'e says ; an' I see 
there was another glass door as opened into a sort o' halley- 
way. 'The lady was 'avin' 'er dinner,' 'e says, 'when she 
started up an' run through there, singin' out to somebody ; an' 
'er 'usband went a'ter 'er. Matter not to me,' 'e says, grinnin' 
like a Choinese monkey; "ave already paid.' 

"Out I goes into the halley, into another, then into a street, 
turns right, then left — an' then was as lost as if it was a fog. 
Asks fower or foive people if they'd seen Bill, but they only 
laughed; then thinks I: 'I'll go back to the public' Well, do 
you think I could remember the name o' Berwick? Though 
I've bin ashore there times out o' number.- An' dark comin' 
on, too I Goes fust this way an' then that, for a couple o' 
hours; an' last of all I took thought to ask a bobbie was there 
a sort o' Petticut Lane round them parts. 'E laughs. 'You 
mean Berwick Street,' 'e says. ' Cut through there ; take ye 
straight into it' What think o' that ? 

" Goes in the public 'ouse. ' Well, well,' says the chap ; ' I 
are glad you've come back. 'Seems there was a Jew boy come 
in the other bar, time you an' me was yarnin'. Said 'e warnted 
a sailor man, an' the barman 'e 'oofed 'im out Set down 
again; p'raps 'e'll come back.' Gits talkin' again, an presently 



Digitized by 



Google 



6o A STRANGER WITHIN OUR GATES [April, 

'e says : ' I don't like the looks o' this, old brother. If that 
kid, or else your mate, don't \txy soon show up, I'll go to 
the p'lice station with you.' 'Adn't 'ardly spoke when a bar- 
man puts 'is 'ead through the curtain. "Ere's that foring 
nipper again, sir,' 'e says to 'is boss. * 'Old 'im,' I sings out \ 
an' they brings 'im into the s'loon-ban 'Lady from country 
warnt you,' 'e says. 

''My mate puts on 'is 'at an' coat — quite the genelman — 
"Old 'ard,' 'e says. 'I'm a-goin' to see this through'; an' 
comes along of us. Boy takes us through streets an' courts an' 
halleys to a rare big 'ouse, an' up no end o' stairs, dark as 
pitch. Any amount o' 'oUerin' goin' on up aloft; foringers 
all talkin' one again the other. Went up the last flight, an' 
come into a room where there was a dozen or more women — 
one on 'em dead, or pret' near; our missis kneelin' 'longside, 
with a little slip of a gal clingin' to 'er dress — an' old Bill 
'Ooper lookin' like a fightin' man an' wantin' to pitch into two 
Frenchmen. 

" I up fist an' cut one on 'em 'ead over 'eels, an' then 'e 
sheered off; but my; publican collared the other one — an' '^ 
turned out to be the 'usband." 

Sam drained his glass, and I looked bewilderedly to Hortense 
for an explanation — which she quickly gave me. It seemed she 
had caught sight of an old acquaintance passing the door with 
the boy who was ultimately sent in search of Sam. Rushing 
in pursuit she had learned that the daughter of a mutual friend 
lay near at hand, dying of consumption and want; whereupon 
Hortense had despatched the boy to Sam's public , house, and, 
with her husband, had followed the woman to a garret in the 
worst part of Soho. It was the old story; the girl was the 
wife and victim of one of a class of scoundrel aliens with whom 
the magistrates are beginning to deal smartly. 

"And mon p'Ht mart/*' — Hortense looked proudly at Bill 
'Ooper — " 'E 'ave be so brave when zees Idche — zees bruU^^ 
'ave demanded to me some money." 

"Ye see," said Bill blushing, "I was out o' my bearin's in 
every shape an' form ; an' when the boy come back, an' said 
Sam warn't there, I wanted to come away. She sent the boy 
out for wine an' victuals for the poor gal, but it was too late; 
an' some on 'em said 'ow the doctor 'ad give up comin'. It 
got darker an' darker; then all of a sudden the 'usband come 
'ome — 'im an' a mate. An what was it they said, missis?" 



1909.] A Stranger Within Our Gates 61 

From old intimacy with the neighborhood I knew that on 
seeing an unwonted display of luxuries, they had pitched a 
fawning story, alternating between whines and threats. 

'^ So she 'anded me the purse, an' sent the nipper a'ter Sam 
again. Well, there was a little 'un — pretty little gal ; you'll see 
'er— " 

" Might ha' knowed you*d give the tale away," thundered 
SaoQu " An' me keepin' it as a surproise for 'im. This poor 
soul, sir« 'ad a young un as she wanted sent away from 'er 
father, which was a middlin' bad lot; an' the missis 'ere ast 
BiU if 'e'd be willin' they should 'dopt the little un." 

" Yes" ; admitted Bill " An' I says : " 'Dopt nobody ; lets 
us get away from 'ere alive; we can't 'elp other folkses trou- 
bles," 

Hortense left the room, and Sam resumed: ''Me an' the 
publican see through it all in a ji£f; bless ye, 'e knowed the 
pair on 'em. But I must say I never felt so proud of a wo- 
man as I did o' Bill's missis. (Jest as well not say so afore 
'er, for, wi' the best of 'em, ye never know but what they'll 
round on ye some time or other, an' throw yer words in yer 
face.) It was like a stage-play; all this dirt an' stink an' 
'oUerin' goin' on round 'er; the room 'bout ten foot square, 
an' no furniture except rags, vermin, an' a taller candle; she 
'oldin' this dyin' person wi' one 'and, an' the nipper wi' the 
other, an' lookin' round to ast the people not to make sich a 
blazin' row — for all the women in the 'ouse 'ad come to spy 
I reckon— an' 'er as clean as a new yacht, an' not used to 
rough comp'ny, an' come straight from a clean 'ouse like this 
*ere, wi' the smell o' the sea an' the country — well, there, it 
worked my blood up, 

'' ' Out o' this,' I says to them women. * Alley vous ong '/ 
an' o£f they went. But my mate — strong, powerful young chap 
as ever man-handled a crew o' mutineers — 'e wouldn't let the 
'usband go. Then I see the missis cross 'erself an' kiss the 
poor creature, an' — an' — There was a way to die I There was 
a place — " Old Sam is tough and brutal in the rind, but very 
tender at the core ; and he had just outlined a picture that 
was new to North Ham, sordid though some of its annals be. 
He blinked his eyes and resumed : 

''Then she turns upon Bill, with 'er 'and still on the kid. 
' No mother now,' she says ; ' no one to keep her from — this ' — 



Digitized by 



Google 



6a A Stranger Within Our Gates [April. 

an' she pointed at the dead gal. An' then '* — Sam smacked 
our host's shoulder so that the little man squirmed — ''my dear 
old mate 'ere says: 'Bring 'er along; lets us be father and 
mother to 'en' 

''Wi' that the father, as could talk English fast enough, 
sings out: 'You not take my daughter if you not give me 
money for 'er'; an' I was 'bliged to 'oiler: *Bash 'im» ship- 
mate, do, for Gawd's sake i ' for / couldn't 'it 'im while some 
one else was 'oldin' of 'im. 

*** Money f^ says this 'ere publican. '/'// gi' you some 
money. Ain't I see you kickin' of 'er 'cause she 'adn't got 
nahthin' to give ye ? You got to deal wi' British seamen now ; 
not women an' members o' Parlyment an' missionaries as you 
can 'ocuss'; an', 'pon my soul, I thought 'e was a-shakin' the 
life out of 'im; ye could 'ear 'is bones rattle. 'Give 'em 
nahthin',' 'e says, when missis got talkin' 'bout the burial. 
' Leave me yer address, 'case there's a inquest ; I'll see the 
parish authorities about the funeral. Now come on 'ome an' 
'ave a bit o' supper; my missis'll rig the kid out, if you're 
bent on takin' of 'er. Once on board the train, possession'll 
be ten p'ints o' the law; if we stop 'ere we'll 'ave the p'lice 
round, an' all manner o' ioolery for puttin' honest sailors in 
the wrong.' 'E was a man an' a 'alf. I'm a»goin' to send 'im 
a hunderd hysters to-morrer if I live. 

a * jifow, you swab,' 'e says to the Frenchman. ' This fist, 
as 'as 'ammered men, can 'ammer a rat ; so you mind an' stop 
'ere till we're clear o' the 'ouse.' So away we come, 'ad our 
supper, an' 'e put us in the train ; an' there's the little un 
asleep upstairs; an' I 'ope she'll be a*blessin' to Bill. 

Luckily there was no inquest, and as the father's flight put 
police proceedings out of the question, Mr. and Mrs. 'Ooper's 
peace is not disturbed by threats of another visit to London. 



Digitized by 



Google 




THE ISLAND OF ACHILL 

BY ROSA MULHOLLAND GILBERT. 

|HE island of Achill lies off the coast of Mayo, be* 
tween Clew Bay and Blacksod Bay, its huge head- 
lands breasting |he rollers from Newfoundland. 
A six or eight hours' journey from Dublin on 
the Midland Great Western Railway will take 
you there. Leaving Mallarany the train approaches the sound 
through mountain gorges, purple with heather and tufted with 
the vivid green of ferns, a blaze of color when the sun is shin- 
ing or when the atmosphere is warm and golden, but in cloudy 
weather overwhelmed by the sullen gloom of the rough black 
bog that climbs the sides of the hills to their crags on top« 
Great were the forests that have left these slopes as if ploughed 
by Titans, the earth thrown up in black bosses, capped with 
rank grass of a somber green. Travelers press to the carriage 
window as the shifting mountain heads and steeps appear, fold 
and unfold, and are swept apart by openings of the Atlantic, 
distances of ocean crags and the ghostly outlines of islands. 
Winding on, as if boring for the first time through a virgin wil- 
derness of unsurpassable grandeur and beauty, the train stops 
at Achill Sound, a 'Mong car'' carries you over a sturdy iron 
bridge, bastioned by solid granite walls, and you cross with 
ease the late dreaded ford or ferry where the Atlantic, strug- 
gling in a narrow pass to maintain possession of Achill as one 
of its islands, long dealt death to the natives and their infre- 
quent visitors. 

Achill is the largest island off the Irish Coast, in extent 
fifteen miles by twelve, eighty miles in circumference, and con- 
taining forty-six thousand four hundred and one statute acres. 
One side is well sheltered, the other is a range of precipitous 
cliffs. The greatest promontories are Achill Head in the south- 
west and Saddle Head at the entrance of Blacksod Bay. The 
highest mountains are Coraan, 2,254 feet above sea level, Slieve- 
more, and Merral with a precipice of 700 feet. There is very 
little arable land, and that is chiefly in the valleys and near the 



Digitized by 



Google 



64 THE ISLAND OF ACHILL [Aprils 

shores, yet in 1891 the population was 4,67 7, and is said to be 
increasing despite the constant stream of emigration to America. 

The life of the people is one of labor under difficult condi- 
tions. While the men, girls, and youths are away earning at 
the harvesting and hop-picking in Scotland and England to pay 
the debts that Mother Earth will not acknowledge — the rent, 
the bag of meal, and other necessaries from the agent's store — 
the mature women and little children work on the patches of 
poor ground between the expanses of bog, gathering the wrack 
from the rocks and strands, and carrying it on their backs, or 
on the backs of their donkeys and horses, to manure the land 
which can scarcely be coaxed to give even a small return for 
their toil; also *' saving'' the turf, a tedious undertaking, the 
failure of which would leave the fireside cold and dark in the 
nights of winter. So much can be seen from the roads, supply- 
ing striking ^* incidents " for the artist, groups of the toilers, 
waywardly picturesque as to form and color, pathetic in human 
interest, fit subjects for the pencil of a Millet; and charmed 
by so much pastoral beauty one wishes to see an interior giv- 
ing a more intimate knowledge of the life of a people. 

With this desire at heart I walked above the Dugort strand, 
along the green level which in winter storms must form bottom 
for a high tide of the Atlantic, and paused near a long, low, 
thatched dwelling, a sort of fortress cottage, thatch tied down 
with stones, a tiny, high-set window evidently designed to ex- 
clude the unwelcome winter wave. A figure appeared at the 
door, Eastern of aspect, a large, dark woman in richly colored 
garments, skirt of the island style, woolen of a resplendent hue 
between cardinal and crimson, suggesting the '' scarlet twice 
dyed " of the vesture of Aaron the prophet, trimmed with three 
rows of black braid round and above the hem, which gave it a 
more picturesque value, as did also the long striped apron that 
fell like a stole, almost to her feet A square shawl drawn 
round her shoulders and a kerchief looped round her black hair 
helped still further to give her the air of an Eastern. 

Attracted by her friendly looks and dignified movements we 
drew near and got into conversation with her, observing all the 
time the fine aspect of the woman, her handsome, feminine 
features, pale '' matte " skin, gray-blue eyes with dark settings, 
and the thick dark hair parted above her low brows. Such 
women might Rachel and Naomi have been, though there was 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] THE ISLAND OF ACHILL 6$ 

nothing of the Jewish type about this daughter of Erin. I soon 
learned that she had a large family^ that two of her girls were 
gone harvesting, and I had to thank her for several other bits 
of information, for instance that the syllable 'Mu'' prefixed to 
some names of districts in Achill, as Dugort, Duagh, Duega, 
Dukanella, signifies ''sand/' garden of sand, ford of sand, etc.; 
and I believed her, remembering the Sand Dunes, and the tales 
of Hans Christian Andersen. Her manner was courteous and 
composed, while she expressed herself with the force and quaint- 
ness of one accustomed to think in a foreign language, and to 
translate her thoughts into the language of her visitor. 

As we were talking a voice called to her to invite the 
stranger in, and following her into the interior of her dwelling 
I was introduced to a roughly flagged floor, a three-legged pot 
on the flags above red*turf embers, a dresser with delft, a bed 
with a red woolen coverlet, a long spinning wheel, stools, and 
benches from which some members of the family rose as we came 
in. The master of the house, a hardy-featured fisherman clad 
in gray frieze, bade us welcome, and directed his wife — aside, 
in Irish — to offer us milk, which she did, in generous measure. 
The half-dozen boys and girls of different ages were all well 
dressed, like their parents, in material, manufactured by their 
mother, of wool from the island sheep. One small girl of five 
wore a pink cotton frock looking fresh from the ironing table, 
her little white underskirt, her curly fair hair, and bare feet 
and legs, all equally neat and clean. As we sipped our milk, 
our host discoursed of the facilities and impossibilities of the 
girdling Atlantic for the fishermen of this coast ; want of a se- 
cure landing pier, lack of proper boats, practically denying them 
the wealth of the bountiful ocean at their doors. 

Suddenly a deep sigh of animal satisfaction caused me to 
turn my head, and I became aware that a number of beasts 
were comfortably tucked up in fresh green bedding at the lower 
end of the house, only a stone trench separating their quarter 
from the rest of the dwelling. Three cows, two calves, a don- 
key, and a dog had all been made happy for the night as part 
of the family, the cattle plentifully supplied with supper of the 
long green weeds freshly taken from the potato drills. I learned 
afterwards from one who knows the people well that this hous- 
ing of the animals with care equal to that bestowed on human* 
ity is a primitive custom which, if it dies bard in Acbill, is to 

VOL. LXXXIX.— s ^ J 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



66 THE ISLAND OF ACHILL [April, 

be defended on reasonable grounds. It originated in the neces- 
sity for warmth, protection, safety for the property on which 
life for the humans so much depended, not to speak of the 
affection and sympathy felt for the dumb creatures who are their 
daily companions. One has only to cast a glance towards the 
near strand with its low sandy sweep, and to imagine it invaded 
by an Atlantic high tide in a winter hurricane, to realize how 
easily cattle might be carried away by mountainous waves roll- 
ing up the low land. The strong walls of the fortress-dwelling 
from time immemorial sheltered these companions and friends 
of man, which, by his care, were saved from becoming the prey 
of storm^waves, wreckers, coast-^robbers, and other depredating 
enemies in time of petty warfare. Granting the strange condi- 
tions, the beasts were more nicely disposed of as members of 
this household than is imaginable ^by critics who have never 
witnessed the like arrangements. 

Invited to return the next day to receive a lesson in the 
use of the long spinning wheel that spins the wool, I perceived 
during my second visit to this house that above the beasts' 
apartment strong cross beams were placed so as to form a safe 
stowage quarter for halters, ropes, baskets, and many another 
article for uses of daily industry ; also, that two little triangular 
mangers occupied convenient corners, and that these were at- 
tractive to the laying hens, in the absence of pony or ass, who 
might require an indoor repast secure from the onslaughts of 
rain or whirlwind. In some places, however, we found small 
outhouses newly built where encouragement had been given for 
a new departure, and we were assured that five years hence 
the presence of the friendly brute under the roof of his master 
would, in all probability, be a thing of the past. 

One's first impressions in Achill are all of the marvelous 
grandeur and beauty of nature in this isolated, sea-girdled, 
mountainous fragment of our earth's surface. Heart- widening and 
soul- invigorating is the immensity of the deeply colored ocean, 
shifting and changing from gray to blue, from blue to purple, 
from purple to green, with its many golden creeks and bays, 
ranges of distant mountains rising above and beyond the giant 
headlands; the islands, near and far, majestic, ponderous, or 
faery- like, leaving void, despite their presence, the infinite 
openings of the Atlantic, and suggesting, with their aerial 
changes of expression, the visible nearness of spiritual regions 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The island of achill 67 

nnexploredr Rapt away from the presence of humanity, one 
walks through glamor, and one accepts Sir John Franklin's 
statement that in no part of the world had he beheld a splen- 
dor oi scenery to compete with this ; remembering that another 
famous traveler named it as one of the four supreme examples 
of scenic sublimity to be found on our globe. Apprehension 
of beauty being the first experience, the next will be a keen 
sense of increase- of bodily health and consequent exaltation of 
spirit, from the magic of the bracing and balmy air so im» 
pregnated with ozone, so sweet with a thousand perfumes 
mingled of sea* brine and flower- breath from the low-lying 
blooms along the sandy shores, that for a day or two you are 
almost overwhelmed by the bountiful powers that have seized 
you, soon feeling aware, however, of a succeeding buoyancy 
of mind and bodily lightness which bears you through many 
fatigues and carries you over difficulties. 

With and above all this must be, to the lover of his kind, 
the study of humanity in the native race that has abode heie 
with little change of ways and customs, tending its flocks and 
herds, in the days of the Druids, of Moses, of St. Patrick, 
worshipping the sun, the Unknown God, or the gods that spoke 
to them in the elements. 

''Their ocean- God was Mananan Mac Lir,'' 

sings Thomas Darcy Magee, and Bride was their queen of fire 
and song. The beings whom they shaped for themselves out 
of the misty hauntings of the supernatural common to all 
dwellers in high, remote regions, took character of their own 
peculiar imagination and belonged to their traditional history. 
The brilliant and magic-working Tuatha de Dannans, harp- 
players, songsters, artificers, colonists from Greece, once mas- 
ters of Ireland, feared by the plodding Firbolgs, whom they 
found hammering their iron in the valleys, and conquered in 
their turn by the soldierly Milesians, these are still admired 
and respected in the rock-fortresses and recesses of the cloud* 
capped mountains where, after defeat, they retired from their 
enemies behind their mystical cloud-veils, rather than quit the 
land of which they had proudly relinquished the visible mas- 
tership. Still dreaded are the mischievous powers of the fallen 
angels who, on the Archangel Michael's appeal to the outraged 



Digitized by 



Google 



68 THE ISLAND OF ACHILL [April, 

Creator, were allowed to find a refuge in Tir-nan-oge, in the 
heart of this earth, stayed from descent into infinite and eternal 
depths, *' remanded," as the people say, and awaiting final sen- 
tence till the Day of Judgment At all times the native race 
has realized that we live and die by the breath of the great 
God, whose voice is in the whirlwind, whose smile is on the 
crag of the mountain flooded with sunshine, whose frown is 
in the hollow overcast by portentous cloud-shadows. Their 
prayers, songs, and tales, uttered in their impressive ancient 
tongue, are full of the presence of an Almighty and all-per- 
vading God. Even their rare cruelties are Druidic, and their 
religious superstitions, if such there be, are relics of an older 
form of worship, welded, in all good faith, into the practices 
and beliefs of Christianity. On the subject of the supernatural 
they are as reticent as they are conservative, and they are wary 
of the inquisitive stranger who, having drawn forth confidence 
to gratify curiosity, would go away misunderstanding, and cast 
up his eyes at their benighted absurdity. A clever, keen wo- 
man said, looking at me critically : '' Fairies, is it ? What do 
we know about them ? A lady was here, and it was all fairies, 
fairies, fairies with her. Nothing would do her but fairies. An' 
we had no fairies for her. She must ha' been a fairy herself, I 
think, lookin' for her people. But we couldn't help her." An 
intelligent man who had been out about the world, and was 
quite an up-to-date character, laughed at my pronunciation of 
Tir-nan-oge, and denied having ever heard of such a place. 
At last he exclaimed : '' Oh, you are trying to say Tyeer^nan^ 
ocka i " Of course he knew the place where the fallen angels live, 
thim that took no part^ and are detained underground ''during 
his Majesty's pleasure." '' Any one that has never been bap- 
tized can see them," he said, '' and it's dangerous for any young 
people to come in their way." 

It is impossible to persuade such a man of injury to Chris- 
tian faith by beliefs that have come to him down through the 
aeons of time, with the varying voices of the winds, the scream 
of the eagle, the cries of the wild seabirds, and the constant 
mysterious movement in sky and on high crag, shiftings of the 
sailing cloudshapes, with their shadows on the mountain's side 
and face. Landscape, air-scape, sea-scape are all alive with 
them. Man and his flocks and herds are not the only conscious 
creatures inhabiting this radiant, tempestuous world. God is 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The island of Achill 69 

here easily understood to be almighty, where His presence is 
forced upon the spirit and realized every hour of the day and 
night. His works, innumerable and immeasurable, of kinds and 
fashions varied far beyond our mortal ken, who shall put a 
limit to them? This is what the cautious, prudent, if imagi- 
native Achill man would tell you if he could put into your 
suspicious ear an exposition of his knowledge drawn from intui* 
tion, '* Sure Himself is able for anything I '' must meanwhile 
stand in English for the eloquent words of Irish which your 
ignorance would not understand. '' The best of the Irish is,'' 
said one who spoke both languages well, '' that you can explain 
your mind in it so much better than in English.'' It is in this 
language that they explain their minds to God, orthodox Chris* 
tians as they are, making such utterances of their own inspira* 
tion, to the God of Moses, to the Redeemer on the Cross, to 
favorite saint and guardian angel, to the tender, interceding 
Mother of their love, as gives pause to priest or parson who 
would rebuke or enlighten them. 

Arriving in Achill on a Saturday evening, we expressed a 
wish to see the islanders in their chapel on Sunday, and our 
driver pulled us up ^at a little white house, saying : '' Here's 

Father W now, and he'll tell you all about it." A young, 

bright, sunburned face appeared at a window, and in half a 

minute Father W was beside us. We had interrupted him 

at a task of whitewashing, which he afterwards assured us was 
the only use he ever made of a paint-brush in a spot offering 
so many subjects for a painter. Following his instructions we 
took a car next morning to the chapel of Dugort. A simple 
building whitewashed within and without, the interior whiteness 
was relieved by brown wood, lining the end wall behind the 
altar and the arched roof with its broad beams. The sunshine 
poured in with the mountain air through a wide-open window 
— a luxury unknown to the pious sufferers from the rigid rules of 
stained glass civilization. The people were well-dressed, the wo- 
men in their brilliant crimson skirt of home-manufactured wool, 
with a shawl drawn like a pladdie about their shoulders, the 
elders with a kerchief wound about the head and throat, the girls 
with their heavy locks tied behind with a black ribbon and 
falling to the waist. The dark-set eyes of one girl gave value 
to the color of her hair, which had caught the sun and was a 
splendor of brown- red with dashes on top of pure gold, as if 



Digitized by 



Google 



70 THE ISLAND OF ACHILL [April, 

laid on with a brush. Her features were fine, her countenance 
beautiful, her figure was shapely and strongly built. As she 
stood in the sunlight by the open window I found her more 
satisfactory to look on than some aureoled saints in cathedral 
jeweled panes. 

Entering the building my eye was caught by a thing of 
brown wood, like a box or cage, not much larger than a fash- 
ionable lady's traveling trunk, flung at the white wall at the 
end opposite to the sanctuary, where it had alighted and ad- 
hered as if by accident. It was the choir, and in it were three 
young figures clustered round a little harmonium. The narrow, 
ladder-like stair leading to it was completely covered with tiny 
girls in clean cotton frocks and bibs, their blue eyes and curly 
locks crowding together, the effect being of a flight of angels 
upward, or a multitude of small birds, breast to breast and 
wing to wing, roosting on the bare, drooping branch of a lime- 
tree. 

At the other end of the house the smallest boys were kneel- 
ing in a row at the altar rail, their shaven heads and the soles 
of their clean feet turned to us. Nowhere have I seen so rev- 
erent, so motionless a congregation. While they waited for the 
service to begin an occasional burst of prayer in Irish was the 
only sound. When Mass began the choir of three pure treble 
voices tuned up, and the simplest sacred music was piped forth 
from the little wooden cage on high, slowly and dreamily, like 
the thoughtful song of the robin in October when the days are 
beginning to shorten. 

It happened that the priest who officiated was a son of Ac- 
hill, who had spent fifteen years on the mission in Minnesota 
and had returned for his first holiday. His sermon was fine. 
Nowhere, he told his hearers, should humanity come so near 
to God as in this grand and beautiful nature, the wide ocean 
speaking to their souls, the great mountains always looking 
towards their Maker. Great joy was the joy of the Achill man 
and woman in the free and simple life allotted to them by 
Providence. To each he would say, keep yourself for God; 
you are His house. If you build a house for yourself to live 
in, and make it all you want it to be, will you allow another 
to come in, thrust you out and take possession of it? God 
will not be pushed out to make room for evil. The preacher 
spoke of his own longing, when in a more prosperous country. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Island of Achill yi 

for the mountains and the ocean, the heavenly spires of the 
craggy peaks, the roar of the storm that had rocked his 
cradle. He begged bis friends to stay at home and tend their 
cows and goats and spin their wool. Such a life in Achill was 
better than the struggle for money in the slums of the cities 
of America. The sermon closed with the oft* told story of the 
exiled St Columba. 

''Care it well/' said the saint (having found a dove with a 
broken wing on the shores of lona). ** Who knows but it may 
have come from Ireland?'' 

The father and mother of the preacher were among the 
listeners, the bird voices in the choir were the voices of bis 
young sisters. There was a good deal of quiet weeping. All 
were glad and proud of the preacher who had been the early 
playmate of some present, and was related by ties of blood 
to the greater number. It was a scene full of material (or 
thought and suggesting many questions. After the service 
was over and the clergyman had retired the people recited 
prayers among themselves in Irish, one part of the congrega- 
tion answering another; and the rising and falling of these 
waves of appeal on High in the Gaelic tongue had an extra- 
ordinary effect on unaccustomed listeners. 

So much for Achill in the spirit. For the rest a closer 
observation of their hard material life is interesting. Besides 
her toil on the bit of boggy, unproductive land the Achill wo- 
man does wonderful tasks of shearing, washing, carding, and 
spinning the wool of the island sheep, sending her great balls 
of strong woolen thread to the island weavers to be made into 
the warm, durable woolen cloth which they dye as they please, 
and convert into clothing; for men and boys the stout gray 
frieze, for mother and daughters the resplendent crimson, ren- 
dered more striking by rows of black braid on the hem of the 
garment. The stockings are knitted of undyed wool. I do 
not know whether the cloth shoes worn by the better dressed 
are also the product of feminine industry. The women are, in- 
deed, never idle, and in proportion to their good- will and ac- 
tivity they are respected and appreciated by son and hus- 
band. 

Their marriages are arranged according to a primitive, mat- 
ter-of-fact custom. Although the girls and boys are innocently 
merry together in the long winter evenings, enlivened in the 



Digitized by 



Google 



72 The Island of achill [April, 

poor cabins by dance and song, yet there is nothing of the 
flirting and courting, the walking and '^ talking'' with one in 
particular preceding an engagement, which obtains in other 
parts of the country. When a ''boy/' however, has made up 
his mind that a certain girl is the wife for him, and the mo- 
ment of his readiness to marry has arrived, he "sends word" 
to her family that he is coming, and according to ancient cus- 
tom he comes in the middle of the night accompanied by a 
friend, and with a bottle of whisky for the entertainment of 
those whose rest he has broken. All sit round the fire till 
morning, discussing the proposals of the wooer, means are 
stated on both sides, and matters arranged on much the same 
lines as the marriage settlements of more exalted personages. 
In a rare case, where an extremely young boy has been left 
alone in possession of a holding, two of his older friends will 
set sail for one of the neighboring islands in search of a help* 
mate for him, perhaps bringing her back with them to meet 
her husband for the first time before the priest who awaits 
them at the altar; but, as a rule, the people of Achill marry 
among themselves, and nearly every one is a cousin of every- 
body else. Asked if couples, linked together with so little 
choice, were not dissatisfied with their lot, my infoimants as- 
sured me that no such condition of things exists on the island. 
They are the best husbands and wives in the world, and work 
together indefatigably for the mutual good and the welfare of 
the family. The women hold a high position in the community, 
and are depended on for many of the attainable boons of life. 
A man will not conclude a bargain, buying or selling a cow, 
without having the opinion of '' herself " in the matter, and 
she usually has had the casting vote when all is done. 

As on one or two) occasions we were accompanied by Father 

W in our excursions, we were received with confidence, 

and it was pleasant to see the affection existing between the 
cheery young curate and his flock. I had been prepared for 
this by the sudden query of an old woman, whom I had met 
on the toad soon after my arrival : '' Father W— — ," she said, 
'' do you know him ? Oh isn't that the darlin' boy ? " I now 
saw that the little children ran to meet him; one two-year-old 
babe climbing into his arms and laying her chubby cheek on 
his shoulder; as beautiful as, and not unlike, the cherub with 
solemn eyes right in front of Raphael's famous Madonna of San 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The island of achill 73 

Sisto. "When Wopsie comes to my house/' said he, "I must 
leave everything to attend to her. She takes the pen out of 
my handy and I must go down on the floor to play with her/' 
I discovered afterwards that he keeps toys in his house to en- 
courage the children to come to him. Everywhere we went he 
seized the occasion to question as to the attendance at schooL 
The parents were all absent at work, the children and the 
grannies keeping house. One pretty old grandmother, with 
delicate, wistful features framed in soft gray hair and clean 
kerchief, was grieving for an emigrant daughter parted from 
her forever in a lunatic asylum in America. Though resigned 
to the will of God she could speak of no worldly thing beyond 
this overwhelming trouble. 

On our way to Keem we were overtaken by milkers from 
Duagh, laden with their cans. Obliged to leave our car at 
the foot of the great pass, we set out to climb a path skirting 
precipices reminding one of Alpine travel, where the sublimity 
of the scenery of Achill may be said to reach its climax, and 
sitting to take breath on the '' churn-stone," a flat slab welded 
in the heather, we surveyed the magnificence of the ocean, 
mountain, and island, the witcheries of blue air, blue sky, 
towering golden clouds, turreted crags, bastioned rocks, the 
gorges and ravines carrying their purple heather and wild sea- 
flowers down into the deep; to one side far below the Bay of 
Keem, a golden creek thickly strewn with shifting and chang- 
ing color. Here we were overtaken by the milkers, who told 
us that the seat was called the churn- stone because in old 
times milkers who, in default of pails, used to milk into the 
churn, carried it home on their backs, taking a much- needed 
rest on this spot, between Duagh and Keem. Glad of their 
company we pressed on through the afternoon light of this 
upper region, everywhere wild breezes blowing the cloud- 
shadows from valley to height, and from hill to hollow; a 
keen sensation of the power and sympathy of the wind seizing 
one, the ponderous tyranny of gravitation forgotten, and to go 
with the gale on wings seeming the only natural kind of loco- 
motion, if one could but hit on the knack of it I 

Our peasant campanions crossing that pass were an elderly 
woman, a young man, two or three boys, and a dark- eyed 
girl with a charming, sensible countenance. On this occasion 
Father M , from Minnesota, the preacher of Sunday, was 



Digitized by 



Google 



74 The Island of Achill [April, 

one of our party, and the elderly woman greeted him in En- 
glish as fluent as her Irish. 

'* Oh, Father John/' she exclaimed with outstretched hands 
and a burst of tears, ** I*m grieved to see you come back after 
all your travels with such a heart for Achill I *' She meant to 
say that she was touched by his affectionate fidelity. She was 
comfortably clad in the usual picturesque woolens, spotlessly 
clean and neat, and though carrying two cans on her right arm 
was knitting all the way. When I admired her work, a stock- 
ing of alternate black and green stripes, wrought in a peculiar 
and intricate stitch, she said : ** Oh, jts ; they're nice — for chil- 
dren. I'm doing them for my grandchild in Liverpool." 

She was keenly intelligent, up-to-date on politics, the move- 
ments of life in the world beyond the breakers, not omitting 
the Boer war, some incidents of which excited her sarcasm; 
pouring forth good-humored ridicule or gibes of contempt on 
certain public characters, with a shower of witticisms which 
rained on us too fast for reproduction. Once she sounded a 
tragic note, breaking out into a lament for Davitt, the beloved, 
the Chief of them all I Her dark-eyed young companion, re- 
ticent and modest in speech, confessed a desire to go to 
America. So did others of her age whom we chanced to meet, 
the greater number of the island-maidens being, however, absent, 
at the harvesting. 

The industrial instinct and tradition of the Achill woman 
urge her to go out young to push her fortune, and give help 
to those at home, so that one may say it is their spirit of 
family union that drives them to separate. The reserve and 
simplicity of the life between the sexes to which they are 
accustomed at home enable them to pass unscathed through 
the trials of their annual wanderings in the fields ''abroad/' and 
November brings them back to their parents with a little bag 
of money tied round their necks, to meet the future of the 
Achill wife and mother as untainted as the little sister who 
has been helping to wash the wool, weed the potatoes, and 
save the turf in their absence. 

With November the season sets in for more or less cessa- 
tion of out-door work, for safe housing for man and beast, and 
for the fireside gatherings with song and story, a fiddler in the 
corner, the boys and girls dancing, light of heart and heel. 
During the absence of the migratory band the women and 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Island of Achill 75 

children have lived on abstemious fare, chiefly tea; chickens, 
butter, or any other good thing possible, having been kept till 
the return of the migrants, for consumption of the assembled 
family. To be admitted to the winter evening meetings of an 
ancient, long-isolated, and highly conservative race one would 
need a special talisman; but in such a case those whispers of 
the weirdly supernatural, which are so carefully withheld from 
the ear of the stranger, might perhaps be overheard. 

At Keem Bay, on the green slope above the creek, our 
knitting friend pointed out a heap of stones, welded together 
in circular form, called the Altar, by some said to be Druidic, 
by others the remains of a ruined Christian church. On top 
is a rude stone cross, close to which has been placed a hol- 
lowed stone, evidently a primitive Christian font. Our friend 
stated that no one would dare to remove that cross. An ir- 
reverent man had once taken it and worked it into his build- 
ing, but it was back the next morning in its place on the 
Altar. While she knitted and talked we gazed on the distance 
of ocean and cloud ''back, back,'' as they say, ''back" mean* 
ing " far away,'' ranges of hills and mountains, ethereal, vision- 
ary, or tremendous in solidity, at the will of sunshine or wind- 
tossed vapors, the Connemara peaks, the Ballycroy hills, Muilrea 
lifting an eagle's beak, Croagh Patrick overtopping all ; nearer, 
the islands, a fascination in themselves, and the mysterious 
" Bills," the fortress-like mass of dark rock, uninhabited save 
by the birds that come from all parts of " foreign " to nest 
and intermate. It may be mentioned that the ways and kinds 
of the island birds would make a special history. A few are 
the blue rock-dove, peregrine falcon, golden eagle, kestrel, 
spotted eagle, chough, guillemot. The blue rock-doves haunt 
the Cathedral Cliffs, the headland of Menawn (Goat) Moun- 
tain, Keem, Duega, and base of Slievemore Mountain, staying 
in caves in wet weather and moving in flocks to the stubble 
fields near the "villages" to get their share of the scanty 
grain. The other birds have their quarters in the cliffs among 
the scurvy grasses and tufts of sea-pinks. For special infor- 
mation on this interesting section of the population I would 
refer to the interesting articles on the fauna and flora of 
Achill written for Land and Water many years ago, by Mr. 
Sheridan, the present proprietor of the Slievemore Hotel, who 



Digitized by 



Google 



76 THE ISLAND OF ACHILL [April, 

is an eloqaent lover of the winged haunters of the cliffs, and 
of the exquisite fairy-like flowers that carpet the green and 
sandy levels on the margins of creeks that receive the Atlantic 
rollers and reef-riven breakers. 

Looking up at the tremendous green gloom of the Crog- 
haun Mountain, across whose knees the steep pass had carried 
us, and down again, we saw that the water welling into Keem 
Bay is purple, green, and golden, all at once or by turns, that 
the verdure on the sides of the dark-crowned headlands' is a 
vivid tawny, a dainty green, every brilliant hue melting into 
the soft, rich amethyst which seems to come out of the sea- 
water to stain not only the luxuriant purple heather, but the 
stones of that name found in the fissures of the gorges; as if 
the ocean literally scattered gems on the shores and a haul 
dipped in the incoming wave might be drawn forth laden with 
Aladdin's jewels. 

While we gazed, our friend of the flying knitting needles 
pointed out a flagstaff planted on the headland above us ; with 
shrill laughter informing us that she had nicknamed this point 
of observation Spion Kop. One page of the history of Keem . 
Bay was sad enough as she told it. The people of Duagh had 
originally made their village at Keem, where the grass is green 
and good and the soil unusually fertile, but at one time a 
landlord drove them out from this better land to the bog at 
Duagh, leaving the slopes of Keem bare of human life. At 
present the Duagh people may rent if they can the grazing of 
this spot, paying five shillings for a horse, three shillings for a 
cow, and fourpence a head for sheep. In the summer season, 
when the cattle are out night as well as day, the Duagh milkers 
come twice in twenty- four hours several miles along the cliffs, 
and hence our opportunity of speaking with them. 

While our knitting friend had been entertaining us, her dog, 
a fine specimen of the island sheep-dog, a particularly broad- 
browed and intelligent species, had dashed off in search of his 
own cow, and after some time was seen driving it down the 
hill-side towards its mistress. Having paid us all the atten- 
tion in her power, the woman, still knitting rapidly, turned her 
attention to a curl of white smoke ascending from a low fold 
of the hills at a little distance. 

*'We rest ourselves and have a cup of tea before the 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Island of achill 77 

milking/' she said, and departed for the rendezvous where her 
companions were awaiting her. 

At Dttagh, a rugged little settlement between the bog and 
the stony beach, they do some fishing, and one of the amusing 
sights of the village is the muster on washing day, when the 
clothing of the whole population is taken to the river and the 
neighbors wash together in the open. Here we found an old 
man who claimed to be a lineal descendant of Grania, the 
Connaught queen, whose adventures are related with pride, and 
one of whose strong castles is to be seen on the island. An- 
other native of Duagh assured us that he had often seen the 
*' merry^maids " sporting in the water under the cliffs; but^ 
pressed on the subject, he admitted that '*sure enough the 
cratures might have been seals.** Here the amethysts, in the 
rough, were offered for our inspection. Some were of fine 
pure color and transparent water, others were only delicately 
tinted with purple and clouded with gray, all of them fit ma* 
terial for the charming trinkets produced by a jeweller in the 
town of Westport. 

Another excursion led us to a tiny monastery, where five 
Franciscan monks (not priests) dwell together and follow the 
(Third Order) rule of St. Francis of Assisi, reclaiming the bog, 
tilling their ground, and teaching the poor children in a school 
at their gate. The whitewashed house is small and bare. The 
little chapel is lovingly cared for. We found Brother Francis 
seated by a hay-stack twisting a rope of straw, while three 
sun-burned women were raking up the remainders of the hay 
from the stubble. St. Patrick, in splendid vestments, occupied 
almost the entire of the tiny hall, and presented us with a 
shamrock as we entered. The statue, presented by a Protestant 
lady living on the island, surmounts the legend ** pray for the 
donor '' inscribed in gold letters on the pedestal. We were 
introduced to all the corners of the miniature monastery, to 
the chapel, and to the garden cemetery, where Brother Francis 
tends his flowers, and is specially proud of his beds of heart's- 
ease. The light-hearted, laborious brothers were eager in their 
welcome and gave us tea in their little refectory. Strangers 
seldom come to disturb their retirement, but our visit was 
evidently a pleasure to them. 

With regard to projected industries in Achill the develop- 



Digitized by 



Google 



78 The Island of Achill [April 

ment of the fisheries is the most urgent in demanding atten- 
tion, the construction of a landing pier and providing of proper 
boats being of prime necessity. Five '' nobbies '* are now 
fishing from Darby's Point fishing station. The Congested 
Districts Board is helping with loans, but ought to be more 
active in assisting the most congested district in Ireland. 

At the Sound the Sisters of Mercy are about to build a 
Technical Schooli where the young girls will be taught lace- 
making and domestic economy. The gentle- mannered Achill 
girl ought to be good material for household service, which 
she would look on as promotion in life. '' Ah, but who would 
take us and teach us?'' said one of them wistfully, agreeing 
with me that such employment would be preferable to a wan- 
dering life in the fields, harvesting and hop-picking. 

Father W is laboring zealously to improve the condi- 
tion of his flock in these directions, and has hope of seeing 
them attain to comparative prosperity by a better road than 
the path across the ocean, which too often leads to despair 
and death in the slums of American cities, instead of to that 
good fortune which is supposed to be the result of the sur- 
vival of the fittest. 



Digitized by 



Google 




A GREAT LAYMAN. 

BT WILFRID WILBERFORCE. 

}T has been well said that this is the century of 
the laity. It is a statement, let me hasten to 
add, that contains nothing contrary to the dignity, 
office, and virtue of the clergy. So far indeed 
is this from being the case, that the statement it- 
self depends for its truth upon the action of priests. Laymen 
are, to a very large extent, what priests make them, and to 
enunciate the fact that to the laity the Church will look when 
confronting the problems of the twentieth century, is only 
another way of saying that priests have molded an efficient 
body of lay workers to carry out the task. It is, therefore, 
merely right that distinguished laymen of the last century 
should not only be remembered but imitated, and I consequently 
venture to bring before the readers of The Catholic World 
the life and actions of one whom I may describe as a good 
citizen, a great patriot, a sagacious politician, an upright and 
industrious social legislator, and, what is by far the best of 
all, a loyal and devout son of the Catholic Church. 

A man so whole-hearted in serving God and benefiting his 
neighbor is rarely met with outside the ranks of the priesthood, 
or a religious order. More rarely still is such a man endowed 
with riches which place within his reach the enjoyments and 
comforts of this world. The man of whom I am writing might 
have spent his life indulging every whim that came into his 
head. He might have laid out his money in surrounding him- 
self with every luxury and convenience. But he chose another 
course and followed it to the end. He died when he was little 
more than a middle-aged man, but he has left behind him a 
holy memory, and thousands outside his family and personal 
acquaintances have reason to thank God for that well-spent 
life and to call down blessings upon one who, endowed with 
great wealth, used it in the service of Christ and the poor. 

Arthur Moore was born in Liverpool on September 15, 
1849. He was the youngest of five children, only one of 



Digitized by 



Google 



So A GREAT LAYMAN [April^ 

whom, Blanchei a Sacred Heart Nun, now survives. Arthur 
and his elder brother Charles were educated at Ushaw College 
near Durham. We have interesting testimony from Canon 
Wilfrid Dallow as to Arthur's school days and to his popular- 
ity with his fellow- students. As the Canon writes: ''He had a 
certain personality about him which it is hard to describe, but 
which possessed an attraction for the more thoughtful among 
us/' This is very much what people felt who knew him in 
after life. Then Canon Dallow mentions an incident, in itself 
trivial, which throws a flood of light upon his character : '' In 
those days gardens were all the rage [at Ushaw]; a strip of 
land was laid out in small allotments, which were owned by 
individual boys or by a joint stock company. These were 
cultivated with not very much care, and, I am afraid, less taste. 
I well remember, however, that Arthur had one of the most 
satisfactory of these gardens, and it possessed a certain article 
that was far more popular than flowers^ vfi., a good- sized, 
well-built wooden bench, placed against the wall. At the back 
of this, so as to give it the effect of an arbor, were grown sun- 
dry little creepers, which he trained to crawl up the wall This 
bench proved so convenient for his friends, more especially as 
it commanded a good view of the first cat ring [''cat" is the 
popular game at Ushaw], that the rightful owner could never 
find a place on it for himself. In fine weather it was occupied, 
or rather usurped, by some of his boon companions, and Arthur's 
good nature would never disturb them in their unlawful pos- 
session." 

Another event connected with Arthur's career at Ushaw, or 
more strictly with that of his brother Charles, must be related 
here. Their father, Mr. Charles Moore, a wealthy ship-owner 
of Mooresfort, County Tipperary, was a sincere and devout 
Protestant, but his children had always been taught by their 
Catholic mother to pray for his conversion. In 1861 his elder 
son Charles, who was then at school at Ushaw, had passed 
through the annual ^Retreat which the boys have just before 
Easter. He had been praying for ' his father's conversion, for 
the meditations of the Retreat had doubtless made him realize 
more than ever the supreme blessing of being a child of the 
Catholic Church and the misery of being outside that blessed 
Fold. These reflections not only caused him to pray, they 
prompted him to make a sacrifice. In the generosity of his 



Digitized by 



Google 



igog.] A GREAT Layman 8c 

hearti be asked God to take away his life if, in return, He 
would bring bis beloved fatber into tbe true Cburcb. Wben 
the boy made this noble offer to God for bis father's soul, he 
was in perfect health. Very soon afterwards be was seized 
with serious illness. His parents were sent for. Shortly before 
his death he told bis confessor how be had made the sacrifice 
of bis life that bis father might be a Catholic. Before Mr. 
Moore had left Ushaw, after bis son's death, bis mind and soul 
were enlightened. Something in the great college and its 
Catholic atmosphere, something in tbe charity and demeanor of 
the masters and their happy effects upon the boys, and chiefly, 
no doubt, the sight of that beautiful Catholic death- bed, showed 
him that here were the true servants of God and that their 
religion was the one which Christ had founded. 

Very soon after bis son's death Mr. Moore was received into 
the Church. He lived eight years as a Catholic, dying in tbe 
summer of 1869. 

Charles' death made Arthur the heir to bis father's property. 
This was considerable enough to make bis friends and family 
anxious for his future. Wealth, even moderate wealth such as 
bis, is a very heavy responsibility, but Arthur Moore was pre* 
cisely one of those fitted by nature and training to be mindful 
of its weight, and to use it wisely. By his father's will he did 
not enter into full possession till be was twenty- five. This 
seems a wise provision. At twenty-one most people are still 
boys, and to invest them with unfetted control of considerable 
possessions is very often fair neither to themselves nor to their 
heirs. His college career ended in 187 1, after he bad studied 
Divinity for one year and bad been through a course of Dogma- 
tic Theology. Those ten years at Ushaw were very happy, and 
Arthur used to look back to them with pleasure. He also en- 
joyed meeting with his old college friends in after life. On 
leaving Ushaw he went abroad for a few years. He was in 
Spain during the Civil War, and spent some time at the head- 
quarters of the Carlist army. While traveling on one occasion 
in an eight- mule wagon, be was arrested as a spy, and bad 
some trouble in proving his identity and regaining his freedom. 

In the early spring of 1874, Mr. Gladstone suddenly dissolved 
Parliament, and Great Britain and Ireland were in all the tu* 
mult of a general election. At that time such an event had 
no interest for young Moore. He does not seem to have been 

VOL. LXXXlX.-*6 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



82 A GREAT LAYMAN [April^ 

drawn to political life. But events were too strong for him. 
The electors of Clonmel chose him as their representative with- 
out giving him the trouble to stand. He was in Egypt at the 
time, but the telegraph soon brought him home, and from the 
day that he set foot on his native shore his vocation in life 
was fixed. 

To a man like Arthur Moore, whose habitual thoughts were 
fixed upon the Will of God, the peculiar circumstances of his 
election must have convinced him that Providence intended him 
to serve his country in public life. And right nobly did he 
throw himself into his new career. 

How came the Clonmel electors to trust their interests to a 
young and unknown man, who had spent a large part of his 
time since leaving college in foreign lands ? The answer to this 
question is twofold. In the first- place the electors, though 
they knew but little of Arthur, had been well acquainted with 
his father, Mr. Charles Moore, Member of Parliament for Coun- 
ty Tipperary. This gentleman had gained the love and respect 
of his tenants, and had shown a brilliant example of kindness 
and Christian charity at a time when some landlords in Ireland 
were conspicuous instances of hard and grasping cruelty. 

One act of his, in its greatness, in its splendid Christian 
chivalry, has deservedly thrown a bright halo over his memory. 
Were I writing for an Irish magazine, there would be no ne- 
cessity to relate it, for the story has been handed down from 
father to son in every hut and cottage in Tipperary and in 
many other parts of Ireland. A landlord named Vincent Scully, 
who owned an estate in Tipperary called Ballycohey, was shot 
at and wounded while he was trying to evict some of his ten- 
ants. When he had recovered from his wounds he ruthlessly 
set to work to evict every man, woman, and child upon the 
extensive estate. His cruel resolution filled the whole country 
with horror and disgust, but no one could interfere. The law, 
as it then stood, was powerless to restrain him, and the un- 
happy tenants awaited their dreadful fate with what courage 
they might. 

Mr. Moore implored Mr. Scully to spare them, and he ended 
his appeal with these words: ''Say what price you put on your 
Ballycohey property. I will pay it to you, and let there be 
an end to this dreadful episode." 

Mr. Moore was as good as his word. He paid over the 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] A GREAT LAYMAN 83 

large sum which Scully demanded, and thus the tenants came 
under the just and beneficent rule of a Christian gentleman. 
Not long after making this purchase, which was nothing less 
than a wholesale manumission of slaves, Mr. Moore died. The 
prayers of the rescued Ballycohey tenants must have stood him 
in good stead before the Judgment Seat of Him Who promised 
mercy to the merciful I 

It was not wonderful that the Clonmel electors felt them- 
selves safe in sending the son of such a man to represent them 
in the House of Commons. 

But there were others who knew something of the metal of 
which Arthur Moore himself was made. A curious and char- 
acteristic incident is related by Canon Flynn, the parish priest 
of Ballybricken, County Waterford. Those who knew the trans- 
parent mmplicity and straightforwardness, added to the extreme 
delicacy of conscience, which characterized Arthur Moore, will 
readily fill in the details of the little incident which the Canon 
has outlined. He had met the family in Rome in the winter 
of 1868 and 1869, but he does not seem to have recognized 
Arthur when, in 1872, he came across him in the street in 
ClenmeL 

Arthur was attending the spring assizes, in the capacity, I 
suppose, of a landowner, and some difficulty had occurred which 
had disturbed his conscience. He went up to Canon Flynn and 
consulted him. ''I soon relieved his mind,'' writes the Canon, 
'' and then asked who he was. When he told me, we both re- 
•membered that we had met in Rome. I told the incident at 
dinner to the P[arish] P[riest] and my fellow-curates, and we 
all concluded that he was just the class of man that should 
occupy public life in Ireland, and resolved to put him into 
Parliament if we ever got the opportunity ; so when the time 
came we returned him for Clonmel (though his constituents 
had never seen him) because he was a sound, practical Cath- 
olic — a fit model for his class in Irish public life." 

From the very beginning of his Parliamentary career he de. 
voted himself heart and soul to the interests of his native coun- 
try. Everything which could tend to the spiritual and tem- 
poral welfare of the Irish people found in him a warm-hearted 
and self-denying champion. Neither did he limit himself to 
Us own countrymen, for he constantly brought before the House 
of Commons the need of Catholic chaplains for Catholic sail- 



Digitized by 



Google 



84 A GREAT LAYMAN [AprL 

orsy and in the closing years of his life he made this important 
question his own. 

Thongh in one sense of the word he was a politician, he 
declined to be tied to any party. As a Protestant newspaper 
once said of him: "He was a party in himself." This inde- 
pendence of character made it impossible for him to follow the 
lead of Parnell, and it eventually had the effect of temporarily 
losing him his seat in Parliament "I am not going to be dragged 
across the House by Parnell/' he said to me one day, when 
the Irish leader was calling, upon his followers to oppose the 
Government. 

But the main efforts of his Parliamentary life were for the 
amelioration of his country. One of these was the improve- 
ment in the condition of children in Irish workhouses, and in 
June, 1879, he brought their case before the House of Commons 
in a vivid and graphic speech. 

Another subject of painful interest to Arthur Moore was the 
question of emigration. It grieved him to see thousands of 
strong, active young men leaving Ireland and thus impoverish- 
ing the country. Moreover, he felt so deeply for their suffer- 
ings, that he frequently went on board the steamers at Rotter- 
dam, Liverpool, and Queenstown to see for himself how the 
poor emigrants were treated. Their sad condition, as to moral- 
ity, health, and comfort, filled him with sorrow, and he let slip 
no opportunity of improving their lot. 

In the cause of education, too, his voice was constantly heard, 
at meetings and in Parliament, and he employed his very re- 
markable gift of eloquence on behalf of this and similar public 
needs. He never spared himself. Trouble, time, money, all were 
of no account to him if he could only further some good work. 
And all this he did quietly, without ostentation, and without 
seeking or desiring the applause of men; for his one and only 
object was to please God and benefit his neighbor. 

But a few details throwing light upon his private life will 
possibly be of greater interest than a recital of his many public 
and Parliamentary acts. About these it may be enough to re- 
mark here that whatever his hand found to do, that he did 
with might and main, and that one of the chief features of his 
life was his work on behalf of the poor and oppressed. It has 
been well said by an intimate friend of his that '' he was in many 
respects a Christian knight ef that mediaeval world which, stand- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] A GREAT LAYMAN 85 

ing halfway between ancient and modern times, has been right* 
\y called 'the Age of Faith.' He was a staunch and steadfast 
champion of the best interests of the Church; and when his 
earnest efforts on behalf of the rights of his fellow-Catholics, 
and of the welfare of Holy Church, became known in the Eter- 
nal City, where he had been Private Chamberlain for many 
years, Pope Pius IX. further honored him by making him a 
Knight Commander of the Order of St. Gregory the Great and 
a Count of the Holy Roman Empire.'' 

To this I must add that even when the Recess freed Arthur 
Moore from his Parliamentary work, he was by no means idle. 
He made many pilgrimages to the Holy Land, venerating the 
spots sanctified by our Lord's earthly presence. During these 
journeys he never lost a chance of helping the needy and con- 
soling the sorrowful. Indeed, with all reverence, we may say 
that he imitated his Divine Master, going about doing good.* 

The most important event of his private life of course was 
his most happy marriage, in February, 1877, with Mary Lucy, 
only daughter of Sir Charles Clifford, Bart, one of the most 
distinguished members of the English Catholic laity. His do- 
mestic life, though ideally happy, was not unclouded by sorrow, 
for his eldest son, Arthur Joseph, died in 1900, at the age of 
21, after many months of suffering. His other son, Charles 
Joseph, and his daughter, Edith Mary, still survive. 

I well remember hearing of a beautiful act of Arthur Moore 
just before his marriage. He had made a Retreat in prepara- 
tion at the Redemptorist House at Clapham, and on the eve 
of the wedding he obtained leave to remain all night in the 
Warwick Street Church, where the ceremony was to be per- 
formed. Here he knelt through the long hours of the February 
night, praying that Grod would bless his marriage and enable 
him to be a good husband. It was like the Christian knights 
of old who watched their armor before entering the fray. 

Many are the testimonies to his extraordinary charity and 
kindness of heart, and to the carelessness of self which was one 
of his most distinguishing characteristics. An old friend of his. 
Dr. Charles Ryan, of Tipperary, has supplied us with an 
instance of his charity and, at the same time, of his total 
want of vindictiveness. There was in the town of Tipperary a 

* It was only by exercising great economy that he was able to gire so largely as he did in 
charity. He actually denied himself the harmless luxury of smoking, in order to give the 
money to the poor. 



Digitized by 



Google 



86 A GREAT Layman [April, 

beggar to whom he never refased an almS| and a generous one 
to boot. Sometimes he would give a shilling, sometimes a 
pair of boots, at other times an order for clothes. This gener- 
osity did not prevent the man from taking money from Moore's 
political adversaries during the Parliamentary election of 1895, 
and from working for their candidate. Dr. Syan heard of this, 
and when walking with Arthur, warned him not to give this 
man anything, as he had behaved shamefully. Moore curtly 
replied : '' You don't know what influence may have been 
brought to bear on the poor fellow; they probably plied him 
with whisky.'' And surely enough when the man met them a 
few minutes later, Moore handed him several shillings. It was 
indeed an essential part of his large-hearted charity to make 
allowance for the faults of others and not to let them interfere 
with their receiving alms. If some one whom he wished to 
help was said to be undeserving of his bounty, ''How do you 
know," he would say, " but that he may stand better than we 
do in the sight of God ? Supposing if he is cold and hungry 
he does take a drop, would not you or I do just the same in 
the same circumstances?" 

He was very careful to follow the spirit of the Third Order 
of St Francis, to which he belonged, and it was probably this 
that made him heedless about his dress. In London, in the 
House of Commons, he dressed like any other gentleman ; but 
in the country, where every one knew who he was, he indulged 
his simple tastes. For instance. Dr. Ryan used to tell him 
that the old brown ulster that he wore, with its cape, looked 
for all the world like a Franciscan habit. It was probably 
this resemblance which attracted him to it. 

On one occasion, on the eve of a pheasant shoot, he wished 
to invite some officers of the Seaforth Highlanders to join the 
sport. On calling at the barracks and asking for the colonel, 
he was mistaken by the gate-orderly for some nondescript 
wayfarer; the man therefore showed him round by the back 
door and into the kitchen. Here Arthur sat down and warmed 
himself by the fire. Presently one of the younger officers 
looked in, and instantly realizing the mistake, rushed off to 
the colonel and told him what had happened. The colonel 
was profuse in his apologies. 

*' The most natural mistake in the world," said Arthur with 
a laugh. '' Look at my general appearance, and say if the 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] A GREAT LAYMAN 87 

good man could have shown me into any other part of the 
house/' Then, seeing that the colonel was bent upon receiv- 
ing him in a more suitable room, he went on: ''Well, if you 
won't sit down and, as we say in Ireland, 'take an air' of this 
glorious fire, I suppose I must join you in the ante- room." 

He would not leave, however, without extracting a promise 
from the colonel that the gate-orderly should not get into any 
trouble over the affair. 

A very touching and beautiful insight into Count Moore's 
character is given by his friend. Father Bowen, Rector of Ban- 
bury, near Oxford. 

" His was a soul without guile," writes the reverend gen- 
tleman. "By the very light which shone from his spirit, in a 
few words of conversation with him, you seemed to realize what 
our Blessed Lord saw in Nathaniel at his first coming. His 
business letters betokened the same characteristics: short, to 
the purpose; forgetfulness of self, charity 'done in all sim- 
plicity,' unthought of ever afterwards; hence no self-satisfac- 
tion, no gloss of vanity. Four years ago (1901) he was de- 
sirous to aid an exiled French community (Benedictines). They 
were almost the first victims of the ' Lot de Separation ' and 
were practically bereft of everything. He wrote to me one of 
those characteristic letters : ' I will be good for ;f 100 a year 
for years if that will keep their heads above water.' 

"A quick insight and previous investigation into the bear- 
ings of the case had made him act with great prudence and 
foresight, as I afterwards learned. 

" The charm of his simplicity was marked when we could 
see and speak with him alone. After a long day's toil in 
London, for others' welfare. Count Moore arrived in Banbury 
in the twilight oi a July evening, about 9:30, to have a few 
hours' talk with me about that very community. 

"A modest supper in a presbytery is a short affair. Then 
he would fain make a visit to the Church at 11 P. M. He 
turned to me and whispered : ' May I make the Stations of 
the Cross ? Is it too late ? ' 'I will finish my Vespers and 
Compline,' was my reply. He at once most humbly began his 
Way of the Cross, and then we had only to say good* night. 

"The next morning early he was at Mass and Holy Com- 
munion; then to Oxford. 'I shall cycle to Bicester from Ox- 
ford,' he remarked, 'and then back to Oxford, so as to be in 



Digitized by 



Google 



88 A GREAT LAYMAN [April, 

town for dinner. Good*bye/ To my surprise that evening a 
poor man — honest, evidently, but in tatters— came to my pres- 
bytery, presenting the card * Mr. Arthur Moore,' with a few 
words in the Count's handwriting: 'Please give the bearer 
underclothing, etc., and I will repay you.' The stranger ex- 
plained that he had been passed by a gentleman on a cycle, 
who stopped, questioned him, learned that he was trying, foot- 
sore and weary, to reach Banbury that evening. ' He took out 
a card, wrote on it, told me to call here, and then rode on.' 
The handwriting was a guarantee^that the account was genu- 
ine. He wrote, thanking me warmly for carrying out his 
wishes, saying: 'I saw the poor fellow limping on the road, 
when cycling to catch my train.' But again, it was one of 
those brief notes^few words; clear; decisive; generous. He 
concluded : ' I had a long talk with the aged prioress at 
Bicester. They will have hard work. I left the good lady 
rejoicing gratefully at what I had told her.' Those exiled nuns 
will ever pray for him." 

The above is a typical illustration of the habitual bent of 
his mind — his two desires, strong and effectual— to keep up his 
spiritual life and to benefit others for the sake of his Divine 
Master. How few men, with their time at their own disposal 
and with Sample means of gratifying every wish, would, at 
great trouble to themselves, investigate personally the condition 
of foreign nuns of whom they knew nothing except that they 
were our Lord's servants, robbed of their home in odium 
Christi. And how few would heed a casual man whom they 
happened to pass on the road, recognizing in a single glance 
that he was one of Christ's poor, and break a journey to secure 
him aid. 

Another feature in Count Moore's character was the un- 
feigned and indeed unconscious humility which exalted and 
chastened his piety. No one can read the letters written by 
him to a young friend, who had been his secretary, without 
being impressed with this distinguishing note of his soul. When 
these letters were written, his secretary had left him to enter 
a house of the Cistercian Order. It was no doubt natural in 
a pious Catholic like Count Moore to feel that God had called 
his young friend to a higher life, and to realize that the gain 
to one whom he loved was surpassingly great, though it in- 
volved loss to himself. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] A Great LAYMAN 89 

But Count Moore's interest did not stop here. He kept in 
close touch with his friend, encouraging and supporting him 
in the initial difficulties of the religious life, much as a good 
Catholic father might do for his son. Moreover, he reveals in 
these letters the lowly and childlike spirit of which I have 
spoken, by declaring again and again that his friend's vocation 
had worked a salutary change in his own heart; and that his 
life had gained thereby a new and higher ideal. I propose to 
quote a few passages which throw light upon both these fea- 
tures of the correspondence. 

'^ I don't believe very much in your trials," he writes in the 
earliest of these letters, ^'I think you ate already beginning to 
feel the great consolation I told you you would feel. There 
must be no half measures. Humanly speaking, I should like 
to spare you bodily suffering and pain, but now I am going 
to harden my heart against you, and only wish and long to see 
you a saint It may take time, but be generous with God. 
• • • Now, one word about obedience. Your whole perfec- 
tion lies, and will lie for some time to come, in obedience. 
You may later be called to some office of authority, or have 
others under you as a priest or otherwise. But, says the FoU 
lowing of Christ : * No one safely rules except [him] who hum- 
bly submits/ So in every way obedience is the law of the 
prophets for you. It will be your sheet-anchor and consola- 
tion. There will be no doubt about God's will. For me and 
others, doubt and difficulty; for you never a moment's hesi- 
tation. The voice, the wish of the Superior, the first sound of 
the beU, is the Voice of God. What a preacher I am I It is 
sickening to think of my telling you such things." And a few 
days later he writes from Lourdes, where he had journeyed to 
beg of God, through our Lady's prayers, for the health of his 
wife and the life of his eldest son, who was then in his last 
and fatal illness. 

''This will, I trust, reach you on Tuesday. Your espous- 
als to God. What a moment of grace I God will refuse you 
nothing you ask on that day. If it helps you in the sacrifice 
you are making to know that you have my most sincere af* 
fection, and that I have felt very bitterly parting with you, 
then be assured that this is so, ask our Lord, for the love he 
bore St. John, to purify my affection for you, for I fear it is 
like most human emotions — full of self and self-love. How- 



Digitized by 



Google 



go A Great Layman [April, 

ever, I cannot accuse myself of having delayed or hindered 
you in any way, and if, on the contrary, I urged you on, I can 
only say I would not ask a better fate for my own son. Now, 
abandon yourself into the arms of your loving Master. This 
is the height of perfection, abandonment. Nothing but God. 
Not even Latin or other studies, except in God and for God. 
When you say the words : ' I abandon myself completely ; in- 
to Thy Hands I commend my spirit,' God will do the rest. 
Oh, shame! that I should write thus to you. What will you 
think of me, that know so well all my miseries, all my love of 
comfort and ease, and all my self-love ? Truly and really you 
are blessed ; in your charity you won't be hard on me or judge 
me as I deserve." 

But beautiful as these words are, and clearly as they reveal 
the humility as well as the fervor of his soul, they are less re- 
markable even than the passages which tell us how Arthur 
Moore made use of his young friend's vocation to chasten and 
elevate his own spiritual life. 

''Gratitude to me, indeed I" he writes. ''No, boy; the 
debt is all on my side. Your patience with me I can never 
forget. God bless you. Besides you have given me a rude 
shock. You have changed my life. The grace you have re- 
ceived from God has torn my heart through and through. In 
co-operating generously with God's grace moving your heart 
you have done an apostolic work in me and for me. . • • 
I shall expect a jolly lot of pious lectures; but, joking apart, 
help me. Suggest some good thought, some more fervent way 
of receiving Holy Communion. Give me even the crumbs that 
will fall from the abundant table you will now enjoy in the 
order, at least, of spirituality. Now, I am serious, dear friend, 
and for the love of our dear Lord, do as I say. I have done 
one thing at least you suggested already, and great as your 
humility may be, please don't say my 'obedient servant' any 
more. You have a better Master now. I shall always pray 
earnestly for you to our good Mother at Lourdes — do you do 
your part for me." And a similar note is struck in another 
letter, also written from Lourdes : " Ever since we got here on 
Friday I have prayed for you most earnestly, and done pen- 
ance for you. I have much to ask you for my own self, and 
perhaps God will accept my poor alms to you, just as you 
would take pity on a beggar, all repulsive with sores and dirt, 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] A Great LAYMAN 91 

for his very misery. Yet it seems a farce to be prayiog for 
you» sttrrottnded by all that is holy and blessed. But you must 
excuse me, my heart is with you, and I long for your happi- 
ness and the fullness of your sanctiiication. Please, in your 
charity, excuse me. You will laugh when I tell you that I 
bathed for you, that God may harden your body to do pen- 
ance. Well, have your laugh. But I assure you that not long 
ago a nun proposed to come here for her cure; at the last 
moment it was found impossible to move her. Another was 
sent in her place, and as the sick one was at Vespers in her 
convent, and at the very hour her substitute bathed, she, the 
suffering nun, was cured. Well, you will say I ought to have 
been a Methodist minister, I preach so much.'' 

And later on he once more speaks of the effect upon his 
life wrought by his friend's vocation. ''Now, please don't be 
writing thanks. My thanks are to you for the edification you 
have given me, so be sure the debt lies with me. I say again 
you have changed the whole course of my life. I should not 
mention these little prayers and things I am doing for you 
during November were it not that I am covetous of your aid. 
I feel at length I have no reserve with Almighty God ; I don't 
think I have anything to give up. Do help me. I think re- 
ligious people might sometimes take more interest in helping 
sinners than they do. Now, do help me, and in future you 
shall talk and I shall listen. • . . You were kind enough 
to be sorry and much concerned when I lost the Tipperary 
election in 1895. What if we had won, and you had been 
taken up with my secretarial business in London, and lost your 
vocation i Let us thank God particularly for our hardest trials. 
Now I shall watch with great interest and affection for your 
next letter. As you have now the privilege— the great privi- 
lege — of being poor for the sake of Jesus Christ, please accept 
in utmost charity a stamp for the next letter. I envy you this 
poverty. It is the only real riches." 

Be it noted that, at the time of writing, he had no re- 
serve with God, and was thanking Him for the greatest trials, 
saying too that he had nothing left to give up — he was on 
the eve of a terrible trial on account of his wife's health, and 
had just parted from his eldest son, who was on his way to 
Davos as a last chance of checking the fell disease from which, 
two years later, he died. 



Digitized by 



Google 



92 A Great LAYMAN [April, 

In the year that preceded his son's death. Count Moore was 
elected Member of Parliament for Derry — a great event in his 
life. Not only was he eminently fitted for the House of Com- 
mons, not only did he feel that his seat there provided him 
with a powerful lever for doing good to his country, but the 
election itself was a joy to him, inasmuch as he owed it to 
the fact that the Catholics of the northern city chose him 
mainly as a tribute to his high character and his personal 
worth. 

No man who lives habitually in the presence of God and 
performs his daily actions to please Him, can expect to be 
free from calumny. Above all is this true in the case of an 
Irish landlord. That there have been bad landlords in Ireland 
as elsewhere, is an indisputable fact, and at the Derry election 
Count Moore's opponents published stories of alleged cruelty 
and injustice towards his tenants. Each case was carefully in* 
vestigated, and the charges against the Count triumphantly re- 
futed. Moreover, during the election, he caused all his rent 
books to be brought to Derry, and laid upon the platform table 
in St. Colomb's Hall. '* Gentlemen,'' he cried, in his manly 
voice, 'Mf any of you think or believe that I have been, or 
am, unjust in my dealings with my tenants, I place my books, 
in which I have a full record of my business transactions, at 
your disposal ; appoint a committee — half of my opponents and 
half of ^my supporters — and if, on examination, they find that 
the charges made against me are well founded, I leave Derry." 
As always happens, the falsehoods of unscrupulous enemies 
withered away before the straightforward courage of an honest 
man. The fair and open challenge of Count Moore was de- 
clined, a clear proof that his opponents knew well what the 
result of an investigation must be, and the object of their 
slanders '^ left Derry " indeed, but he left it as its duly elected 
member. 

I should literally fill this article, to the exclusion of every- 
thing else, were I to relate even briefly, the number of works 
which Count Moore undertook and carried through for the 
amelioration, temporal and spiritual, of his fellow-men. Of 
him may it verily be said that he left the world better than 
he found it. 3tit, as we have already seen, he achieved the 
difficult task of maintaining a high standard of spiritual life 
simultaneously with the multifarious and insistent duties of his 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] A GREAT LA VAf AN 93 

public career. To pat it briefly^ he held his soul ready for 
his Master's inspection, and took life in both hands, making 
the very best of it. His motto might well have been — and 
indeed it unconsciously must have been — to pray as though he 
had to die in an hour, to work as though be was to live for- 
ever. This surely is the true philosophy of life. This it was 
that enabled him to take his part cheerfully and gaily in the 
family merrymaking of his last Christmas, and, when the New 
Year was but five days old, to lay down his life calmly and 
with perfect resignation to God's Will. A chill, which was at 
first looked upon as a trifling and passing ailment, developed 
rapidly into pneumonia. He declared then that be would be 
gone in three days. When dangerous symptoms appeared he 
received Extreme Unction with great serenity, stretching out 
his hands and feet to receive the holy anointing. '^A radiant 
smile lit up his face when he received holy Viaticum,'' writes 
his biographer, the Rev. Albert Barry, C.SS.R.,* to whose 
book I am deeply indebted: "During the whole of his illness 
his mind was free from care, and he had no fear of death, 
thus verifying the saying of St. Vincent de Paul that 'those 
who love the poor have no fear when dying.' His only regret 
was that he could not once more visit the Holy Land." 

In the early morning of January 5, 1904, he gently breathed 
his last, without a sigh or a struggle. His body, robed in the 
humble habit of St. Francis, lay for three days before the altar 
in his private chapel, in presence of the Blessed Sacrament. 
Here, in the spot where he had so often heard Mass and 
prayed, prayers innumerable were said for him by the many 
hundreds of people among whom he had earned the noble title 
of the " Champion of the Poor." 

His death sent a thrill of sorrow through many lands. In 
Ireland, in Great Britain, in Italy, and in Palestine he had 
multitudes of friends who loved him. His active, well-filled 
life, energized by a livings faith from its beginning to its end, 
bestows upon Arthur Moore the noble title of a model Catho- 
lic layman. 

* TA€ Lift of Count Moort, Compiled from materials supplied by his family. Dnblin : 
Gill & Son, X905. 



Digitized by 



Google 



THERE. 

(A CHILD'S THOUGHT.) 
BY PAMELA GAGE. 

There the Hawk and the Eagle will rest 

In groves of the myrtle and palm 
By the dove, and the dove be at rest; 

And the I<ion shall lie down with the lamb. 

The I<ion with eyes of deep gold 

And his tawny magnificent fleece 
Shall play with the lambs of the fold; 

And the lambs of the fold be at peace. 

The I^ion will lie down with the lamb 
In the green daisied grass by a spring, 

In the shade of the myrtle and palm 

Where the doves preen the throat and the wing. 

And there shall that bright worm, the Snake, 

His poison, his fangs cast away. 
With the robin his sweet pleasure take 

And sit with the rabbits at play. 

The I^ion will lie down with the lamb, 
And the heart of the Tiger grow mild ; 

In that season of exquisite calm, 
The Tiger shall sport with the child. 

Creation shall live in such peace 

No longer in hate but in love. 
The striped Wasp shall not sting, nor the bees - 

The Vulture shall be as the dove. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] THERE 95 

With the bright singing birds in the leaves 
And the fish in the wave and the flowers; 

God smiles as He walks there of eves, 
And the dew shall be kind and the showers. 

On the green daisied grass neath the boughs. 

Her fleece newly washed and white, 
The sheep near the shepherd shall browse 

Nor shake though the wolf be in sight. 

That timorous creature, the Hare, 

Shall play with the dog, nor recall 
The anguish, the fright, the despair, 

The red dying that blotted it all. 

Yea, creatures all harmless and kind — 
As God made them when Eden began — 

Shall be friends in the sun and sweet wind 
Shall be brothers, the beast and the man. 

By the I^ion shall lie down the lamb ; 

By the great dappled sides will he lie. 
Nor bleat for his wandering dam, 

Nor long that his shepherd was nigh. 



Digitized by 



Google 



THE PILGRIM'S PROGRESS AND SOME PRE-REFORMA- 
TION ALLEGORIES. 

BY KATHERINE BR^QY. 
I. 

^HEN, less than fifty years ago, M. Taine wrote 
his History of English Litiratun^ he made bold 
to assert that ''After the Bible, the book most 
widely read in England is the PilgrinCs Progress^ 
by John Bunyan/* That was a judgment from 
without the gates, and its accuracy is questionable; but it has 
its value as an impression, none the less. For to-day, not even 
a French critic would dream of repeating the statement! The 
sway of this quaint Puritan epic has quite manifestly waned at 
last: it has migrated from the realm of living and influencing 
books into the realm of literary curiosities. Yet once upon a 
time Bunyan's masterpiece was, in all truth, a manual of pop- 
ular devotion — a Protestant Imitation ever at hand for the ad- 
monition of childhood and the edification of old age. It is amaz- 
ing how many household words and household thoughts the 
'' Dream '' of this great, illiterate man has furnished us. Van- 
ity Fair, the Slough of Despond, Mercy's Dream, the Man with 
the Muck Rake, the Valley of Humiliation, the Delectable Moun- 
tains — these have passed into the common heritage of English- 
speaking men and women, to remain upon the lips of thousands 
who may never have opened the volume which gave them birth. 
Bunyan himself, one need scarcely state, was a tinker and 
later a Nonconformist preacher of Bedford, England. His great 
work — The Pilgrim* s Progress from This World to That Which 
Is to Come^ Delivered Under the Similitude of a Dream^ et cetera, 
et cetera — was almost certainly composed during a six months' 
imprisonment for Dissentient preaching, in 1675;* and not dur- 
ing that earlier incarceration of twelve years (i66o-'72) for the 
same cause. If we may accept Bunyan's very naive account, 
the masterpiece was achieved somewhat in spite of himself. He 
had no intention of making ''a little book in such a mode"; 

* Cf, " The Pilgrim's Progress as John Bunyan Wrote It." Introduction by John Brown. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909] The Pilgrim's Progress 97 

in fact he was engaged upon a wholly different volume: but 
the Muse was importunate and would not be denied. 

And thus it was: I writing of the way 

And race of Saints in this our gospel day. 

Fell suddenly into an allegory 

About their journey and the way to glory. 

In more than twenty things which I set down. 

This done, I twenty more bad in my crown; 

And they again began to multiply 

Like sparks that from the coals of fire do fly. 

At last, fearing lest this fruitful similitude should quite '' eat 
out'* the substance of his original work, Bunyan permitted it 
to creep into a separate volume — and Th$ Pilgrims Progress 
had won its right to live I His Puritan friends seem to have 
disagreed concerning the wisdom of publishing so ingenious a 
fantasy : 

Some said, John, print it; others said, Not so: 
Some said, It might do good; others said, No. 

In which quandary John, very sensibly, decided the case for 
himself, placing his manuscript in the hands of one Nath, Pon- 
der, at the Peacock, in the Poultry near Cornhill. The first edi- 
tion of his work appeared in 1678, and met with overwhelming 
success. A second and enlarged edition was put forth the same 
year; and the complete work as we now know it was published 
in the third edition of 1679. 

The story will perhaps bear a brief repetition. Bunyan, 
walking through the wilderness of this world, lighted upon a 
place where there was a Den (so he denominates the Town 
Gaol on Bedford Bridge I) and lying down to sleep, be dreamed. 

''And behold, I saw a man clothed with rags, standing in 
a certain place, with his face from his own house, a book in his 
hand, and a great burden upon his back. I looked, and saw 
him open the book, and read therein ; and as he read, he wept 
and trembled; and not being able longer to contain, he brake 
out with a lamentable cry, saying What shall I do ? " 

It is Christian, loaded with his sins, and longing to flee away 
from the City of Destruction. His wife has little but contempt 
for these disquieting aspirations; and Christian is well-nigh in 
despair for lack of guidance, when upon a day Evangelist ap- 
pears before him, bearing a scroll with the words, Flie from ih$ 

VOL. LXXXlX --7 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



9* THE PILGRIM'S PROGRESS AND [April, 

wrath to come. Bunyan's description of their interview is aus- 
terely eloquent : 

''The man therefore read it and looking upon Evangelist 
very carefully said : Whither must I fly 7 Then said Evangel- 
ist, pointing with his finger over a very wide field: Do you 
see yonder wicket-gate ? The man said : No. Then said the 
other: Do you see yonder shining light? He said: I think I 
do. Then said Evangelist: Keep that light in your eye, and 
go up directly thereto; so shalt thou see the gate; at which 
when thou knockest, it shall be told thee what thou shalt do. 
So I saw in my dream that the man began to run. Now, he 
had not run far from his own door, but his wife and children, 
perceiving it, began to cry after him to return; but the man 
put his fingers in his ears, and ran on crying: Life I life! 
Eternal life I So he looked not behind him, but fled towards 
the middle of the plain.'' 

We are at once in the thick of the allegory, and Bunyan's 
copious marginal notes permit no doubt as to the particular moral 
he would enforce. There is scarcely a paragraph, moreover, 
without abundant and more or less apposite allusions to Scrip- 
tural texts. No less than six of these references adorn (?) the 
brief passage quoted above: indeed this literal and minute bib- 
liolatry is exceedingly characteristic of Bunyan's temper, and 
colors at every turn his literary work. It is in his minor char- 
acters, not his heroic types, that we recognize a veritable, if 
one-sided, humanity. For they, having but a single moral to 
point, do this vigorously enough by simply being themselves. 
And more than once they prove the Puritan preacher a keen, 
practical observer of middle-class English life — no mean prophet, 
in fact, of the coming realism of Defoe. Hopeful, with his lit- 
tle fugitive frailties, is a more appealing figure than the central 
Pilgrim. And in very spite of himself Bunyan has invested 
Ignorance with a humanity not to be despised — that humanity 
which reaches its climax when he flatly refuses to believe his 
heart as evil as Christian declares its natural state to be I There 
is more than a touch of the old imperishable romances, too, in 
the adventures of our Pilgrim — albeit he does stand from first 
to last a type of Puritan righteousness. Christian faces his den 
of lions in splendid ignorance of their detaining chains; befalls 
into slumber in a certain pleasant arbor— and loses his passport 
scroll; he is taken prisoner, only to escape at great hazard 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Some pre-Reformation allegories 99 

from Doubting Castle. His battle with the fiend, ApoUyon, is 
almost worthy of Mallory, or the Legend of St. Margaret I 

** In this combat/' writes Bunyan, *' no one can imagine, 
unless he had seen and heard as I did, what yelling and hideous 
roaring ApoUyon made all the time of the fight" At one cri- 
sisy breaking out into a grievous rage at Christian's defiance, he 
** Straddled quite over the whole breadth of the way, and 
said: I am void of fear in this matter; prepare thyself to die; 
for I swear by my infernal den that thou shalt go no further ; 
here will I spill thy soul. And with that he threw a flaming 
dart at his breast ; but Christian had a shield in his hand with 
which he caught it, and so prevented the danger of that." 

More than half a day this ''sore combat" endured, Apol- 
lyon's darts flying as thick as hail, the pilgrim defending himself, 
albeit sore spent, and wounded in head and hand and foot. At 
the last he regains his sword and strikes the fiend a telling 
blow. ** And with that Apollyon spread forth his dragon's wings, 
and sped him away, that Christian for a season saw him no 
more." 

It is a small wonder that generations of pious readers, nour- 
ished in a bare and unlovely faith, have rejoiced in this spirited 
allegory of their pilgrimage I It is still smaller wonder that 
little children — who knew not Godfrey and the Crusaders, nor 
Roland nor Arthur! — have hung spellbound over the adven- 
tures of this sober Christian knight. Moreover, there are friend- 
ly castles and friendly greetings upon the pilgrim's way ; al- 
though Christian has yet to cross the Enchanted Ground, ard 
the Valley of the Shadow of Death, with its snares and pitfalls. 
Perhaps his most human moment occurs at the final ordeal 
when, sinking in the deep waters, he cries aloud for help: 

** Ah my friend, ' The sorrows of death have compassed me 
ab#ut'; I shall not see the land that flows with milk and 
honey; and with that a great darkness and horror fell upon 
Christian, so that he could not see before him. Also here he 
in great measure lost his senses, so that he could neither re- 
member nor orderly talk of any of those sweet refreshments 
that he had met with in the way of his pilgrimage." 

But it is quickly over; and Christian with his companion 
Hopeful, are welcomed by a host of Shining Men and led to 
the gate of the Celestial City. Bunyan's eyes are loath to lose 
sight of his pilgrims. He sees them transfigured and clothed 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



loo The Pilgrim's Progress and [April, 

in shining raiment, while the bells of the city ring for joy; 
and then at last: 

'' Just as the gates were opened to let in the men, I looked 
in after them, and behold, the city shone like the sun; the 
streets also were paved with gold, and in them walked many 
men, with crowns on their heads, palms in their hands, and 
golden harps to sing praises withal. There were also of them 
that had wings, and they answered one another without inter- 
mission, saying : ' Holy, holy, holy is the Lord I ' And after 
that they shut up the gates ; which, when I had seen, I wished 
myself among them. ... So I awoke, and behold it was 
a dream." 

The Second Part of the PilgrinCs Progress — Bunyan's some- 
what tardy apotheosis of the spiritual life of woman — lacks both 
the vigor and the inspiration of Christian's story. Like most 
sequels, it is often hard put to maintain the spirit of its pre- 
decessor. Sadly indeed must the narrative have halted but 
for Great Heart's timely advent; for neither in Mercy nor 
Christiana (poor, amiable, and edifying wraiths of womanhood I) 
is there vitality enough to support a decent allegory. The in- 
cidental verses, too — with the exception of one charming Shep- 
herd's Song — are particularly infelicitous: so that one suspects 
those generously interspersed serm'^ ns of having exhausted Bun- 
yan's creative faculties — as more than once they threaten to 
exhaust his readers' much-tried patience. If there be one pos- 
sible gain over Part First, it is the author's gain in charity; 
for he who consigned Ignorance straight to hell at the beatific 
close of his earlier vision, narrates in this latter God's gracious 
acceptance of Feeble Mind and Ready-to- Halt, of Mr. Despond- 
ency and his daughter Much Afraid. 

Manifestly there is nothing very subtle in this allegory of 
life. Its types are obvious enough; and if Bunyan writes with 
a sturdy eloquence, at moments not unfired by poetry nor un- 
lightened by humor, his appeal is always — and essentially — 
mediocre. He was doubtless a great popular preacher, and he 
became a phenomenally popular writer; but he was never at 
any moment prophet or mystic. In what then lies the excel- 
lence of this Pilgrim^s Progress — the secret of its enduring 
vitality and fascination 7 No doubt a very simple fact must 
explain. The book tells a great, elemental story — the story of 
man's struggling and aspiring soul — in the words and scenes of 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Some Pj^e^ reformation Allegories 101 

everyday life. There is the abstract, the universal type. Chris- 
tian; laboring through the Slough of Despond and the Valley 
of Humiliation, fighting demons, outwitting Giant Despair, rest- 
ing upon the Delectable Mountains, and passing at last through 
the choking waters of Death. But crossing the path of this 
Pilgrim come Obstinate and Pliable, whom we all have known ; 
Mr. Worldly Wiseman, and Talkative, smooth and satisfied in 
his airy loquacity. It is all as colloquial as possible: and yet 
at bottom it is essentially, eternally poetic. For in his Bible 
Bunyan found matter of high and sublime poetry — matter upon 
which his own allegory was often but a homely, running comment. 

From his forced and sometimes violent introduction of texts, 
may we not perceive what awesome things lay struggling in his 
thought? The Ditch into which the Blind have led the Blind 
in all ages — the Highway of Righteousness and the Very Nar- 
row Gate — the Valley of the Shadow of Death, and not less 
the River of the Water of Life I At moments, recalling the 
rich creative freedom, the mystical and flame-like soaring of our 
mediaeval allegorists, we are tempted to demand whether this 
close adherence to the letter of the Scriptures may not have 
warped and stereotyped Bunyan's imagination. Far more truly 
it created it I For without that long and solitary and impas- 
sioned meditation upon his Bible, I believe the Bedford preach- 
er had never been a poet at all.* 

In the light of present day vagaries, the Catholic reader is 
often surprised to note the orthodoxy of these seventeenth 
century Dissenters — their hold upon Christ, upon the Holy 
Trinity, and many cardinal points of faith. Yet the reigning 
theology of Tie Pilgrim's Progress is, of course, a Protestant 
theology. Throughout Bunyan's entire work there is no men- 
tion of the sacraments: there is even the strangest and most 
pervasive Hebraism. For, in truth, they were '' Old Testament 
Christians" — these brave-hearted and narrow-minded Puritans 
for whom he wrote — far more interested in Jacob's ladder, Mo- 
ses' rod, ** the pitchers, trumpets, and lamps too, with which 
Gideon put to flight the armies of Midian/'* than in any relic 
of the New Dispensation. Bunyan quotes with enthusiasm from 
Moses and David, Job and Hezekiah; his pilgrims press for- 
ward to meet Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob; and at the gate of 

*A11 of which "relics of the servants of God" were preserved in Bunyan's House 
Beautiful I 



Digitized by 



Google 



I02 THE Pilgrim's Progress [April. 

the Celestial City they meet not Peter with his immemorial 
keys, but Enoch, Moses, and Elijah I 

Nor must it be supposed that our preacher's doctrinal sins 
were confined to those of omission. He was excessively fond 
of discoursing upon the "total depravity'' of the natural man, 
whose every imagination is evil and whose righteousness shows 
but as filthy rags before God. And he was considered a prime 
exponent of "justification by faith" — that theory in which 
Good Will takes the place of Good Deeds, and Christ's righteous- 
ness, instead of sanctifying our efforts, must be imputed to us 
and wrapped round us as a garment. From this root sprang 
all those strange and somewhat hysterical details of personal 
"conversion," or "acceptance" of Christ — the conviction of 
sin, the groaning and agony of spirit, the terror lest God should 
not have predestined the soul to salvation, and finally the self* 
assured revelation of sanctification and grace. These things 
were every-day experiences among the Puritans, recorded as 
authentically of Oliver Cromwell or of Bunyan himself as of 
Hopeful or Christian. It was not a cheerful philosophy of life ; 
it admitted of no " indifferent " actions, and it placed a rare 
premium upon scrupulosity. Here, for instance, are some of 
John Bunyan's confessions of the period just preceding his own 
conversion : 

" Before this I had taken much delight in ringing, but now 
I thought such practice vain, yet my mind hankered; where- 
fore I would go to the steeple- house and look on, though I 
durst not ring. But I began to think : How if one of the bells 
should fall? Then I chose to stand under a main beam that 
lay athwart the steeple, thinking here I might stand sure ; but 
then I thought again, should the bell fall with a swing, it might 
first hit the wall and then, rebounding, kill me. This made 
me stand in the steeple door ; but then it came into my mind 
How if the steeple itself should fall? And this thought, as I 
looked on, did so shake my mind that I durst not stand at 
the steeple door any longer, but was forced to flee. 

" Another thing was my dancing. I was full a year before 
I could quite leave that; but all this while, when I did any- 
thing that I thought was good, I had great peace with my 
conscience. But, poor wretch as I was, I was ignorant of Je- 
sus Christ, and going about to establish my own righteousness." 
(to be concluded.) 



Digitized by 



Google 



flew Books. 

Although the remarkable work 
PHILOSOPHT OF RELIGION, which the Baron von Hugel has 

just published,* as the fruit of 
seven years' literary labor, and the outcome of a much longer 
period of experience and reflection, is nominally the life of a 
saint, its proper place in the library will be the department of 
philosophy or apologetics. The mother-thought of the work 
was, the writer tells us, to exhibit one ** of those large-souled, 
pre-Protestant, post- Mediaeval Catholics,'' whose type appeals 
to him more strongly than "the specifically post-Tridentine 
type of Catholicism, with its regimental Seminarism, its pre- 
dominantly controversial spirit, its suspiciousness and timidity/' 
The most suitable personality for his purpose he believed to 
be St. Catherine of Genoa. But owing to the unsatisfactory 
quality of the existing biographies of this saint, he resolved 
to betake himself to the sources. This decision has produced 
a biography which, from the critical historian's point of view, 
is a fine piece of work bearing the evidence of great study 
directed by rigorous method. 

But the biographical narrative is only a framework on which 
is woven a wide inquiry into the psychological roots of re- 
ligion itself, as they have manifested their character in the 
history of mankind. Such a scheme, even on the most modest 
scale practicable, would mean a very extensive study. But it 
is no diminutive plan on which the Baron's work is laid down. 
An adequate review of these two densely packed volumes would 
be a book in itself. They swarm with minute questions of 
historical criticism, sweeping surveys of philosophic thought 
and human action, appreciations of rival epistemological the- 
ories, analyses of the psychological factors which have shaped the 
various sects in Christian times, and even those of Pagan and Jew- 
ish history. Scarcely a school of philosophy or a religious body 
escapes notice. The writer's sweep is not limited even to this 
world; for he passes on to discuss the nature of hell, of pur- 
gatory, and of the joys which eye hath not seen nor ear 
heard. His temper cannot be fairly described without a de- 
tailed appreciation which our space forbids. 

• TJU Mystical EUment of Religiim. as Studied in St. Catherine of Genoa and Her Friends. 
By Baron Friedrich von Hagel. a Vols. New York : E. P. Dutton & Co. 



Digitized by 



Google 



104 NEW BOOKS [April, 

Perhaps the most convenient way to give a clue to his 
attitude is to mention some of the authors to whom, in the 
philosophic field, he acknowledges his indebtedness. Among 
them are Edwin Rhode, Volkelt, Miinsterberg, Euken, and 
Troeltsch ; Blondel, Janet, Boutroux, Laberthonniere, and Berg- 
son; Pringle-Patterson, James Ward, Tyrrell, Edward Caird, 
and, ** further back than all the living writers lies the stimula- 
tion and help of him who was, later on, to become Cardinal 
Newman." Of Newman he says: '*It was he who first taught 
me to glory in my appurtenance to the Catholic and Roman 
Church, and to conceive this my inheritance in a large and his- 
torical manner, as a slow growth across the centuries, with an 
innate affinity to, and eventual incorporation of, all the good 
and true to be found mixed up with error and with evil in this 
chequered, difficult, but rich world and life in it in which this 
living organism moves and expands/' 

To offer any abstract of the work is to risk doing injustice to 
the erudition and the vital quality of the treatment. With this 
warning premised, however, we may give the following bald 
synopsis to acquaint our readers with the character of the 
work ; provided they keep in mind the fact that every view of 
the writer is accompanied with extensive historical illustration. 

There are three forces of the soul, each of which, together 
with its corresponding object, is necessary to religion; but it 
becomes ruinous if it is allowed to develop to the exclusion 
of the others. The first of these forces is the faculty by which 
we remember and picture things and scenes. We need sense- 
impressions and symbols to stimulate thought acd feeling into 
action; and symbols woven out of sense-impressions express 
thought and feeling. The need we have for awakening and 
regulating this experience and action calls for the assistance 
of social environment and tradition. Hence this force cor- 
responds to and demands the institutional and historical ele- 
ment of religion. If this force and need of the soul, with the 
corresponding religious element, is allowed to flourish beyond 
its proper measure, to the injury of the other two powers, it 
will degenerate into superstition, to the destruction of spiritual 
sincerity, to the preponderance of the objective world over 
personality and the liberty of the children of God. 

The second soul- force is that by which we analyze and 
synthesize what has been brought home to us by the senses 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] WiJT Books 105 

and our social and historical enviroDment. It calls for a logical, 
systematic order in our other experience. This force corre- 
sponds to the critical-historical and synthetic-philosophical ele- 
ment of religion. The product of it is positive and dogmatic 
theology. Its undue preponderance leads to rationalistic fanati- 
cism; to agnosticism and indifference; to the worship of the 
goddess of reason; to the fruitless endeavor to put all the 
elements of religion into the categories of physical science. 
The third faculty of the soul is that through which we obtain 
a dim but real sense and feeling of the Infinite Spiiit Who 
sustains us, penetrates and works Within us. This faculty gives 
a definite result to all our experiences and memories. Its cor- 
respondent is the operative and the mystical element in reli- 
gion. Unduly developed, it, too, produces ruinous results of 
emotional fanaticism, and religious movements having for their 
creed tenets subversive of society and traditional morality. 

All these elements and forces have, therelore, two sides; 
they have been, during the course of history, constantly in 
collision and interaction; now one, now another has had the 
upper hand. In religious systems they have appeared in vary- 
ing degrees, respectively, and each has sought to expel the 
other. Yet, ultimately, each becomes barren or pernicious 
when unaided by the other two; and all three, properly ad- 
justed, are needed for a full religious life. Besides the strictly 
religious activity, the soul has other forces, needs, and objects; 
and without the development of these also the religious life 
cannot attain its highest type. 

It thus becomes evident that souls require, for the realiza- 
tion of the best that is in them, a large social and historical 
environment of a specifically religious kind, within which they 
will be assisted by the experiences of others. '*The Kingdom 
of God, the Church, will thus be more and more found, and 
made to be, the means of an ever more distinct articulation, 
within an ever more fruitful interaction, of the various atttaiis^ 
gifts, vocations, and types of souls which constitute its society. 
And these souls, in return, will, precisely by this articulation 
within this ampler system, bring to this society an ever richer 
content of variety in harmony, of action and warfare within an 
ever deeper fruitfulness and peace.'' 

That this consummation may be realized, two all-pervadicg 
experiences and motives must be present. The first is the vivid. 



Digitized by 



Google 



io6 NEW BOOKS [April 

continuous sense that God is within us, as the true end and 
origin of the whole movement, as far as it is eiEcient and beau- 
tiful. The other conviction is the continuous sense of the Cross 
of Christ — ''the great law and fact that only through self-re- 
nunciation and suffering can the soul win its true self, its abid- 
ing joy in union with the Source of Life, with God, Who has 
left to us, human souls, the choice between two things alone: 
the noble pangs of spiritual child*birth, of painful, joyous ex- 
pansion and growth; and the shameful ache of spiritual death, 
of dreary contraction and decay." The efficacy of these two 
convictions to permeate and regulate the religious forces of the 
soul so as to produce the noblest results, has, notwithstanding 
some peculiarities and drawbacks, been exemplified splendidly 
in the life of Caterinetta Fiesca Adorna, the saint of Genoa. 

The Baron von Hiigers work will be numbered among the 
small number of deep studies on the philosophy of religion that 
have been produced originally in English by a Catholic pen. 
Our aim has been not to estimate but to expose the purpose and 
design of the work. The author has probed deep into many 
very delicate questions; discussed them freely; and, of course, 
offered many openings to the critic watchful on behalf of cur- 
rent traditional views. 

On leaving Baron Von Htigers for Dr. Cutting's study,* the 
title of which would be more accurate if the definite article were 
dropped, we pass to a different quality and method; from the 
first-hand student to the popularizer. This writer treats of a 
number of subjects which are encountered in the former work. 
But we miss any approach to the systematic analysis and classic 
fication of Von Htigel. Here we are on the surface, not in the 
depths; and we pass from one to another of a long list of 
phenomena, each one of which is considered in isolation from 
the others, and without any attempt to establish a psychologi- 
cal or historical order among them. The author means to serve 
the general reader as well as the psychological and theological 
student; he has served him almost exclusively; for his gener- 
alizations are frequently much wider than the inductions on 
which they are built ; his cases are gathered too much at hap- 
hazard; he is too prone to pat forward the abnormal for the 

* Thi Ptych$loi%cal Phenomena of Christianity, By George Barton Cutting, Ph.D. New 
York : Charles Scribner's Soas. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] ^£IV BOOKS 107 

type, to permit him to be of much service to the serious stu- 
dent, who will prefer to go to the leaders upon whom Dr. 
Cutting implicitly relies; such as Inge, James, Starbuck. A list 
of the chief chapters will indicate the random and incomplete 
manner in which the general subject is handled. The Religious 
Faculty; Mysticism; Ecstasy; Glossolalia; Visions; Dreams; 
Stigmatization ; Witchcraft; Demoniacal Possession; Monasti- 
cism and Asceticism ; Religious Epidemics ; Contagious Phe- 
nomena; Revivals; Christian Science; Faith Cure; Miracles; 
Conversion; Age; Sex; Intellect; Knowledge; Imagination; 
Inspiration; Will; Emotions; Worship; Prayer; Sexuality; De- 
nominationalism ; Immortality; Preaching. The writer has al- 
lowed his prepossessions to direct his selection of facts, as 
well as his interpretations, when he approaches such topics as 
Monasticism, Clerical Celibacy, Asceticism; he writes about 
these subjects as a foreigner might describe the character of the 
American people by compiling his pages from the newspaper 
reports of divorces, burglaries, swindles, and such like contents. 
One instance of Dr. Cutting's method of trying things Catho 
lie is worth quotation: ''The traditional fasting of the Roman 
Catholic Church has, by the rigidity of the rule and the changes 
wrought by time, been turned into luxury. To day, in most 
patts of this country at least, fish is more rare than flesh. Who 
would not exchange fried tripe for boiled salmon, and willingly 
suffer all the sacrifice which it entailed ? ** It must be said, how- 
ever, that the Doctor seldom descends to quite such silliness 
as this. It is interesting to notice that, though he is profuse 
n his references and quotations, in the chapters on Mysticism, 
Monasticism, and Asceticism, not a single Catholic writer or 
authority is quoted, nor is there any indication that the author 
has even read, much less studied, any of the great mystics. 
There is, indeed, a passage from Dionysius the Areopagite, who 
is called the Father of Christian Mysticism, but no reference is 
given ; and a line from St. John of the Cross, which is such a com- 
monplace Catholic thought that the footnote giving the author- 
ship recalls the old pastor who announced to his congregation : 
** Brethern, St. Prosper of Aquitaine tells us that we must all 
die/' A hymn of St. Francis, too, is cited at second hand. 



Digitized by 



Google 



io8 NEW BOOKS [April, 

The keynote of this biography * 
DE LAS CASAS. is sounded in the Preface, where 

the author declares bis object to 
be ''to assign to the noblest Spaniard who ever landed in the 
Western world his true place among the great spirits who have 
defended and advanced the cause of just liberty/' By his 
Letters of Cortez. Mr. McNutt has already established a repu- 
tation as a well-equipped student of early Hispano-American 
history, which this volume will considerably increase. It will be 
welcomed by many Catholics just now as an opportune offset 
to the picture given of the great ''Protector of the Indians*' 
in the Catholic Encyclopedia^ where Las Casas fares even as 
badly as he did at the hands of Robertson. 

As Mr. McNutt describes him. Las Casas, from first to last, 
was prompted by motives of justice and humanity ; he was, in- 
deed, headstrong, and pursued bis object with a pertinacity 
that was indifferent to the blight that his revelations might 
cast on the reputation of individuals, however high-placed, and 
even on the nation itself. While he acknowledges Motolinia's 
good qualities, Mr. McNutt holds that his opposition to Las 
Casas was not equitable: 

Motolinia was a devout man, whose apostolic life among 
the Indians won him his dearly loved name equivalent to 
" the poor man," ox poverello of St. Francis, but, with all his 
virtues, he belonged to the type of churchman that dreads 
scandal above everything else. The methods of Las Casas 
scandalized him ; it wounded his patriotism that Spaniards 
should be held up to the execration of Christendom, and he 
rightly apprehended that such damaging information, pub- 
lished broadcast, would serve as a formidable weapon in the 
hands of the adversaries of his Church and country. 

But Las Casas, on the contrary, believed, and acted upon 
the belief, that only by exposing the evils could sufficient at- 
tention be directed to them to ensure their extirpation. The 
debate between Las Casas and the Franciscan theologian, De 
Sepulveda, is related at length. Las Casas' thirty propositions 
are given in a condensed form; and the respective principles 
of the two men are neatly expressed : " Reduced to a formula, 

♦ BartJUlomew dt las Casas, His Lift, His ApostolaU, and His WrHim£S. By Francis 
Augustus McNutt. New York : G. P. Putnam's Sons. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] JV^jr Books 109 

the doctrine of Las Casas may be sommed up: Convert the 
Indians first and they will afterwards become Spanish subjects ; 
as against the contention of his adversaries that they must first 
be conquered, after which their conversion would follow/' 

The charge advanced by Robertson, and repeated by others 
— that Las Casas advocated the introduction of negro slavery, 
and proposed to Cardinal Ximines that a number of negroes 
should be bought on the African coast, to be employed as 
slaves in working the mines — Mr. McNutt examines carefully 
for the purpose of refuting it. The original basis of the ac- 
cusation is a passage in Herrera's history of the Indies, written 
thirty- two years after the death of Las Casas. Negro slavery 
did exist in Spain before the time of Las Casas in a not re- 
pulsive form. ** Since this system was recognized by the laws of 
Christendom, no additional injury would be done to the ne- 
groes by permitting Spaniards who might own them in Spain 
to transport them to America." Further than this, Mr. McNutt 
shows, Las Casas did not go ; and even of this step he sub- 
sequently repented, when he fully perceived the injustice of 
slavery. Las Casas, he claims, was far in advance of his age : 

A small group of men, chiefly Dominican monks, with Las 
Casas at their head, courageously championed the cause of 
treedom and humanity in a century and amongst a people 
hardened to oppression and cruelty; they braved popular 
fury, suffered calumny, detraction, and abuse; they faced 
kings, high ecclesiastics, and all the rich and great ones of 
their day, incessantly and courageously reprimanding their 
injustice and demanding reform. Since the memorable day 
when Fray Antonio de Montesinos proclaimed himself, '' vox 
damantisin deserto*^ before the astonished and incensed col- 
onists of Hispaniola, the chorus of rebuke had swelled until 
it had made itself heard, sparing none amongst the offend- 
ers against equity and humanity. The Spanish sovereigns, 
Ferdinand and Charles, as well as Cardinal Ximines, were 
strenuously opposed to this oppression, as soon and as far as 
they knew of its existence. 

The highest Spanish authorities, both civil and ecclesiastical, 
Mr. McNutt shows to have behaved very nobly throughout the 
fierce contentions stirred up by the agitation against oppression. 
He gives a brief synopsis of the fiery peroration of Las Casas 
at the end of the theological disputations with his opponents. 



Digitized by 



Google 



no NEW BOOKS [April , 

which concluded with the denunciation of Spain: "For these 
reasons God will punish Spain with inevitable severity, so be it/' 
"In no land/' observes our author, "where freedom of 
speech was a recognized right, could an orator have used 
plainer language, and it shows both the Spanish civil and ec- 
clesiastical authorities of that age in a somewhat unfamiliar 
light that Las Casas not only escaped perilous censures, but 
even won a moral victory over his opponents." And he per- 
tinently adds: "What would have become of the champion of 
such unpopular doctrines, attacking as he did the material in- 
terests of thousands of the greatest men in the land, had there 
been daily newspapers in those times, it is not difficult to im- 
agine/' The interest and utility of this able biography is en- 
hanced by Appendices consisting of the " Brevissima Relacion," 
the Bull, Sublimis Deus^ and the Royal Ordinances providing 
for the departure of Las Casas from Spain, and his reception 
in the Indies. 

This excellent but somewhat be- 

THE ITALIANS OF TO-DAT. lated translation • of M. Bazin's 

By Bazin. pleasant and instructive account of 

his journey through the Italy of 
yesterday appears not inopportunely now, when the attention 
of the world has been turned so tragically to Italy. There is 
a strong personal quality in M. Bazin's slightest pages ; and he 
has the knack of unobtrusively inocculating his readers with his 
own sympathies. Our clever Frenchman takes us under his 
guidance, after he has passed the Alps, and with him we make 
a tour of observation through the Northern Provinces, intent 
principally upon learning how the people live and what are 
their hopes, or, too often, their despairs. At Milan he escorts 
us to a public function, where he salutes the King and Queen, 
Umberto and Margherita. Occasionally he introduces a con- 
versation with some Italian friend or chance acquaintance, which 
permits him the opportunity of touching upon fiscal, literary, 
and social topics. From the North he passes on to Rome, 
which, he says, "is not a city to be visited, but to be lived 
in if one would understand it and enjoy its supreme beauty." 
Bestowing an occasional glance on the great historic monuments 
and sights, M. Bazin shows us the modern side of the city's 

* The Italians of To-Day* From the French [of Ren^ Bazin. Translated by William 
Marchant. New York : Henry Holt & Co. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] I^£^ BOOKS 1 1 1 

life and development, dwelling a good deal upon the results of 
the building speculation of twenty- five years ago, which proved 
so disastrous to many investors. One of the most interesting 
accounts is that of the Roman Campagna, with its half- nomadic, 
rural, or pastoral population, engaged in looking after the great 
pastures belonging to aristocratic landowners, whose apology 
for the wretched conditions of their serfs is that, owing to the 
government regulations and the system of taxation, it is im- 
possible to change anything whatever. The last stage of M. 
Bazin's entertaining trip is through Southern Italy, and, as we 
enjoy it with him, we talk now to an old military man or a 
young dandy, now to the women of some squalid city slum, 
everywhere gaining contact with life and manners as they 
really are. 

The student of Church history 

THE GREEK AND EASTERN will thank the scholarship and in- 

CHURCHES. dustry which have provided him, 

in a book of six hundred odd 
pages, with the story of the Eastern Churches from the time of 
the great Christological and Trinitarian controversies and heresies 
down to the present day. The handbook* of Dr. Adeney 
covers a long period, varied fortunes, and a vast extent of ter- 
ritory. It is divided into two parts. The first deals with 
Eastern Christendom up to the fall of the Byzantine empire. 
This is the less valuable part, not that the great events and 
issues of this period are of less importance, nor that the author's 
presentation of them lacks quality. But for our ecclesiastical 
students, the ground is already covered in the ordinary courses 
of Church history and dogmatic theology. Besides, consider- 
able allowance must be [made here for the author's standpoint 
regarding the supremacy of the Roman Pontiff, which he does 
not admit to be of divine right. The tone of the work, how- 
ever, is not controversial ; and it aims to relate facts objective- 
ly rather than to apply to them doctrinal interpretation. Where 
he does, occasionally, make a passing comment that Catholics 
cannot accept, there is no lack of courtesy; and his prompt 
acknowledgment of Roman merit in 'matters where, formerly, 
Protestant writers would see none, stamps him as a member 
of the new and much more impartial school. For instance, he 

•The Greek and SasUm Churches. By Walter F. Adeney, M.A., D.D. New York: 
Charles Scribner's Sons. 



Digitized by 



Google 



112 NEW BOOKS [AprU, 

counsels his readers that, if they would take a broad view of 
the situation they must be satisfied to regard the Crusades 
either as mere freaks of fanaticismi or as only European police 
manoeuvres for the protection of pilgrims. He observes, too, 
that the Popes, and they alone among European statesmen, saw 
the danger which, in the Turks, -threatened Western civiliza- 
tion. 

The narration is extremely condensed ; so that for the greater 
part of the work every page, almost every paragraph, is com- 
pact with facts or summaries which suggest plenty of hard 
work for the student who takes the book as a guide to a 
more exhaustive examination of the subjects. If this is his 
ambition, he will find the way marked out for him by the bibli- 
ographies affixed to every chapter ; one list gives the main au- 
thorities or sources ; the other, some more or less recent litera- 
ture. In the latter class, the latest Catholic writers, Duchesne 
and Fortescue, are included. 

The second part of the work deals with the separate churches 
— the modern Greek, the Russian, the Syrian and Armenian, 
the Coptic and Abyssinian churches. Recognizing that these 
churches originally were all regarded as integral parts of the 
Catholic Church and that no proper account of them can be 
given without going back to their origins, Dr. Adeney, in trac- 
ing the genesis of each of them, returns to the ages which 
occupy the first part of his study. Then he brings their history 
down to the present day, in a fairly complete, though not de- 
tailed, form; and, thereby, furnishes a much desired, but not 
easily attainable, body of information lucidly arranged. 

One chapter there is which hardly seems to have any logical 
right to its position here. That is the one entitled '^ Later 
Eastern Christianity," dealing with the Portuguese missions and 
the career of St. Francis Xavier in India, and with other 
European missions, Protestant and Catholic. None of these are 
Eastern in the historic sense of the word; and the Catholic 
missions are not separate churches. Against this fault of over- 
inclusiveness, there is one of omission ; for the bodies of Eastern 
Christians that are still in communion with the Roman See are 
scarcely recorded. These faults, however, weigh slightly against 
the great utility of the book, which presents the best account 
that we have of present-day Christianity in the lands which 
once constituted the great Eastern Patriarchates. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New Books 113 

This is a reprint of a book * which 
A ROAD TO ROME. caused a good deal of stir when 

first published about fifty years ago. 
The author was an able lawyer, and occupied the position of 
Governor of California. He was born and educated in the Bap- 
tist Churchy and carried into manhood his full share of the ig- 
norance and prejudices which prevail in maoy quarters regarding 
the Catholic Church. Happening to assist at High Mass one 
Christmas Day in Fort Vancouver^ he was deeply moved by the 
service. But nothing came of this initial impulse of grace. 
Later on he read the Campbell-Purcell controversy and, to bis 
legal mind, it seemed that, on some very important points Bishop 
Parcell had the better of the argument, though the Bishop had 
not met or sufficiently answered several serious objections in 
Burnett's mind. However, the lawyer resolved to examine for 
himself the merits of the Church's claim. He studied for eigh- 
teen months, in what spirit and with what result he tells him* 
self : 

I prayed humbly and sincerely that I might know the 
truth, and then have the grace to follow it wherever it might 
lead me. I examined carefully, prayerfully, and earnestly, 
until I was satisfied, beyond a doubt, that the Old Church 
was the true and only Church. 

The highly original feature of Burnett's method is that be 
takes as his starting-point some principles of jurisprudence to 
decide how the Scriptures are to be construed in order to get 
at the Law of Christ, and the nature and scope of the society 
which He founded. It is unusual to find Blackstone, Kent, and 
the constitution of the Supreme Court of the United States 
appealed to in order to establish the validity of the Catholic 
Church's title. Besides his forensic training, Burnett brought a 
wide knowledge of religious history and controversy to bear 
upon his problem. He takes up and answers the common his- 
torical objections urged against Catholicism ; then passes on to 
examine the chief dogmas that are disputed by Protestants. A 
typical example of his very cogent reasoning occurs when he 
examines the objection that the character of the lives of some 
popes must have destroyed the apostolic succession of the 
Roman See: 

* A Road to Rome, Tki Path Which Led a Protestant Lawyer to the Catholic Church. 
By Peter H. Burnett. Edited and abridged by Rev. J. Sullivan, S.J. St. Louis : B. Herder* 
VOL. LXXXIX.— iS 



Digitized by 



Google 



1 14 NEW BOOKS [April, 

I had supposed that the continued existence of the Church, 
with all the offices created by Christ, was dependent on His 
Will, and not upon the personal virtues or vices of indi- 
viduals. It may be that, though our I^ord did promise to 
protect the Church against the gates of hell, He did not mean 
to bind Himself to protect her against the gates of men. I 
had thought that both the creation of the office of Pope, and 
the consequent continuance of same, depended upon the Will 
of the Founder of the institution, not upon the will of man. 

I am aware that inferior corporations, which are but the 
creatures of statutory enactments, may forfeit their charters 
by non-user or mis-user ; because such is a part of the law of 
their creation. The mis-user is the act of the controlling 
majority of the stock-holders, and is, therefore, the act of all. 
But this doctrine cannot apply to governments. Political 
governments may be changed at the pleasure of their 
founders ; but the act of making such change is the act of 
the sovereign power. If it should happen that the President 
should commit treason, this would only forfeit his right to 
fill the office, but the office itself would remain unimpaired. 
The office was not created by him — was not his work — ^was 
made by the Nation, and the Nation alone can unmake or 
destroy. If twenty Presidents in succession were to commit 
all the crimes possible, the office would remain. 

Then he proceeds to show the , application of this principle 
to the Church. 

Occasionally one meets a remark that will not pass the criti- 
cism of rigorous theology; but the main ideas, statements of 
doctrine, and arguments in support of them, are all sound, both 
doctrinally and logically. The freshness with which they are 
put, the downright sincerity of the pleader, will make them 
attractive to minds less susceptible to drier and more conven- 
tional forms of exposition. It was a happy thought to reprint 
this valuable record of a path which it may assist other wan- 
derers to find and follow. 

A French commentary, which has 
NEW MARRIAGE just appeared,* on the Decree Ne 

LEGISLATION. Tenure^ is one of the most suc- 

cinct yet clear expositions that 
we have seen. With the assiduous labor of the large number 

• Im FrancaiUes tt U Maria£e Disciflme AetuelU, Par Lucien Choupin. Paris : Bean- 
chesne. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] NEW BOOKS 115 

of caaonists who have published their commentaries on the new 
legislation very few obscurities, or even controverted points, 
still remain to be cleared up. There is one, however, on which 
authorities still remain divided. It is whether a promise of 
marriage, which is invalid before the external court (in foro 
externa) because the prescribed forms have not been complied 
with, does, nevertheless, impose an obligation of conscience (in 
foro interna). The present writer affirms, without hesitation, 
that it does not. His argument is: The Holy See had the 
power to nullify such a promise so as to deprive it of all 
binding power, in foro interne^ as well as in foro externa. 
Secondly, the first article of the Decree indicates that the 
Pope's intention was to deprive of all value all promises of 
marriage that should not comply with the conditions fixed by 
this Decree. To obviate objections, however, M. Choupin ad- 
mits that if, for instance, a young man, through an exchange 
of promises, should deceive a young woman, he owes her a 
just compensation for the injury done; and this obligation 
may, in some cases, extend so far as to impose on him the 
duty of marrying her. 

The promise of this title* is aU 

A CRITICISM OF HENRT luring; even though the small size 

CHARLES LEA. of this book at once raises a doubt 

whether that promise will be re- 
deemed. A critical inquiry into the methods and merits of 
Lea's entire set of histories — of the Spanish and the mediaeval 
Inquisitions; of sacerdotal celibacy, confession and indulgences 
— would demand far more labor and space than this little 
book contains. It does, however, offer some general criticisms 
as to Lea's shortcomings, of which the one that receives the 
severest stricture is his misunderstanding of the significance of 
documents and facts, owing to his very imperfect knowledge 
of the Catholic mind. A few palpable hits are made against 
Lea; but a good deal of time is wasted over some minor 
points that will interest only the trained historian, while, judg- 
ing by its general tenor, this cursory review is intended for 
popular reading. The translator has omitted some details in 
the original concerning various versions of Lea's work. It is 

* Henry Charlts Lea's HutarUal Writing. A Critical Inquiry Into Their Method and 
Merit, By Paul Maria Baumgarten, From the Gennan. New York : Joseph F. Wagner. 



Digitized by 



Google 



ii6 NEW BOOKS [April, 

to be regretted that he did not also omit Mgr. Baumgarten's 
disquisition on lynch law in America, which he introduces in 
his conclusion for the purpose of retorting against Lea's con- 
demnation of the Inquisition. 

Two young aristocratic cavalry 
COMTE ALBERT DE HUN. officers, with all the mettle of 

their race and class, found them- 
selves for a moment side by side on the field of Rezonville, at 
the opening of the war of 1870.* That France could be de- 
feated was a thought which never entered their minds. In a 
few weeks they, with thousands of their fellow- soldiers, were 
prisoners in Germany, dazed, dejected, humiliated, learning, 
day after day, the news of fresh, unmerciful disasters. When 
peace was restored, they returned to find their country under 
the German heel; and to witness more terrible days inflicted 
on Paris, by Frenchmen themselves, than the proud, gay capital 
had sustained from the foreigner. 

The two friends sought to find out the reasons, technical, 
moral, and philosophical, why, in spite of French courage, 
victory which was often near at hand, in the great war, had 
never come; and why the country, by successive falls, was at 
length overwhelmed in unutterable catastrophe. The pursuit 
of this question led them to the conviction that in a reform of 
ideas and morals, by the application of Christian principles, lay 
the only road to redemption for the nation. To initiate a move- 
ment in this direction became the object of their ambition. 
From this resolution sprang the Catholic movement for the 
establishment of workmen's clubs and co-operative circles, which, 
though it failed to arrest the forces of irreligion in the past 
thirty years in France, has valiantly, and not without some 
local successes, resisted them. The Comte de Mun, one of the 
founders, relates the genesis and history of the movement, from 
1 87 1 to 1875, when he resigned his commission in the army. 
His story is replete with interest, since, besides permitting us 
many glances into intimate family life, and introducing us now 
and again into the centers of political struggle, it throws a 
good deal of light on the currents which ultimately brought 
the Church and State into violent collision. 

*Ma Vocation S0ciai€, Souvenirs tU la Fondation de rCEnvrt dts Ctrchs Caih9iiqM€s 
d'Ouvriires. ParA.de Mun. Paris: Lethielleux. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New Books i i 7 

Is spiritism a vast tissue of deceit 
MODERN SPIRITISM. and self-delusion? By no means; 

it contains a series of well-attested 
phonomena, objective in character, and, certainly, the work of 
extraneous intelligence or intelligences. Who are these intel- 
ligences ? The spirits of the departed as they profess to be ? 
No; they are malevolent spirits; bent on working the moral 
ruin of those who cultivate intercourse with them. Such is 
the gist of this book/ whose author has become a sort of quasi- 
official missionary to wage war against spiritism, which, he says, 
is attracting an immense number of Catholics. This opinion 
is not, we believe, shared by the greater number of our clergy, 
who do not believe that any considerable number of their 
flocks find any fascination in this abberation. 

In his first chapter Mr. Raupert exposes the character of 
the evidence that attests the reality of spiritistic phenomena; 
and then proceeds to describe their varieties. He next dis- 
cusses the nature of the function discharged by the sensitive, 
or medium, who, '' roughly speaking, serves as a link between 
the world of spirit and that of matter, and supplies from his 
nerve organism that substance, or * psychic force ' (as Sir Wil- 
liam Crookes terms it), which enables a spirit of intelligence 
to manifest itself in the world of sense.'' After discussing va- 
rious theories put forward to explain, or explain away, the 
manifestations, he unfolds his own, which, in its main features, 
was anticipated by Banquo: 

''But 'tis strange: 
And oftentimes, to win us to our harm. 
The instruments of darkness tell us truths. 
Win us with honest trifles, to betray us 
In deepest consequence." 

Into very small bulk Father Bet- 
FORBIDDEN BOOKS. ten has compressed, for the use of 

busy Catholics, a large amount of 
information on the Index of Prohibited Books.f He explains 
the origin, purpose, and authority of the institution; its meth- 

* Modim Spiritism, A CriHcal ExamituUhn of Its P/kittomgna, Ckaraciirt and Teaching im 
HU Ligki of Known Fads, Second Edition. By J. Godfrey Raupert. St. Louis : B. Herder. 

t Tk€ Roman Indix ofFothiddtn Books Briefly Explained for Catholic Booklovers and Stu- 
dents. By Francis J. Bettea, S.J. St. Louis : B. Herder. 



Digitized by 



Google 



ii8 NEW BOOKS [Aprils 

od of operation ; and the obligations it imposes. He gives a 
synopsis of the decrees which prohibit various classes of books 
in general; and adds a partial list of books, and of authors, 
that have been specifically condemned. In these days of om- 
niverous reading, Catholics stand in need of more information 
than they usually possess regarding this important branch of 
Church legislation. 

Of late years an unusually large 

ENCYCLOPEDIA OF number of biblical and theolog- 

RELIGIOUS KJrOWLEDGE. ical dictionaries and encyclopedias 

have been put upon the market. 
This fact is most significant as evidence of the keen, world- 
wide interest in matters religious. It is quite impossible to 
give anything like a careful, detailed review of these publica- 
tions in our pages. Some of them' are so drastically radical 
as to be sadly deficient as sources or references for reliable 
information. The craze of the present, without any respect for 
the past, of a particular school or tendency seems oftentimes to 
exclude the mature judgment, the painstaking consideration 
that should go to the making of a dictionary or encyclopedia. 
The very appearance of so many within such a short time is 
an evidence that we are not working patiently or well. 

It is a particular pleasure for us, therefore, to recommend 
an encyclopedia* that is, as far as we have seen, sober yet 
learned; considerate of the past as well as of the present; 
conservative yet progressive ; one that, as a rule, tends to show 
that the traditional interpretation of Catholic teaching on Scrip- 
tural questions is the correct interpretation. In matters his- 
torical, liturgical, scriptural, doctrinal, biographical, the editors 
of The New Schafi^Herzog Encyclopedia of Religious Knowledge 
— ^so far as the first volume shows us — have sought to give a 
fair, considerate, and — as far as space will permit — a full pres- 
entation of the subject. Exception might well be taken to an 
article or to a sentence here and there. For example, Prot- 
estant matters of theology and Protestant writers on theology 
and Scripture receive greater attention and are allowed more 
space than Catholic subjects and Catholic writers. This is ow- 
ing principally, we believe, to the fact that the original Schaff- 

* Tkt New Schaf'Herzo£ Encytloptdia of RiligUus KfwmUdgt, Vol. I. New York : 
Funk ft Wagnall's Company. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] NEW BOOKS 119 

Herzog was a distinctly Protestant publication; again it is 
often very evident that the writers are not Catholics; ''im- 
maculistic'' is scarcely a courteous term to use in designating 
those who championed the doctrine of the Immaculate Con- 
ception ; we are told that Abelard teaches like a good Protest- 
ant; to describe Dr. Lyman Abbot, particularly in the light 
of his latest utterances, as a Congregationalist of the Liberal 
Evangelical Type, will instruct nobody, and only shows the 
absurdities to which non-dogmatic theology has sunk; nor is 
it true to say that Dr. Barry's Tradition of Scripture has been 
placed on the Index of Prohibited Books. The truth is that 
a new edition of Dr. Barry's book has just been issued bear- 
ing the imprimatur of the Archbishop of Westminster. But, 
as we have said, we do not intend to present anything like 
a detailed review of the book. We have sought to give an 
opinion of the work in general — its spirit, its aim, and its tend- 
ency; and with regard to these we feel that it merits our 
good measure of praise. We are glad to see among the De- 
partment Editors the names of Dr. Creagh, of the Catholic 
University of Washington, and Dr. DriscoU, of St. Joseph's 
Seminary, New York. 

This is a novel* that carries us to Spain, so full is it of 
local color and vivid pictures of Spanish life. The hero, GaU 
lardo, the son of a poor widow, passes his early years in a 
squalid quarter of Seville ; neglected and wild, in common with 
the boys of his acquaintance, he finds his greatest pleasure in 
frequenting the bullfights for which that city is famous. But 
Gallardo is ambitious and fearless. His imagination is fired by 
the general enthusiasm for the actors in that bloody sport; 
and he decides to adopt their profession — for such it is regarded 
in Spain. Soon he appears before the public as a full-fledged 
matador. 

Handsome, graceful, daring to a degree that astonishes even 
the oldest habitues of the arena, he carries all before him, re- 
ceives the applause of thousands of admiring followers, and soon 
finds himself rich and famous. The old quarter of Seville wel- 
comes him back with pride. The mother is installed in a fine 
house with finer furniture, and has servants in plenty to wait on 

* Sanity Arena, Par Blasco Ibafiez. Madrid : Sempere y ca Vallencia. 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



I20 New Books [April 

her. The dark eyes of CarmeDy a playmate of his childhood, 
grow brighter as Gallardo looks upon her. 

Carmen it is, indeed, who holds the reader's interest. Her 
capacity for love and suffering, her personal refinement of char- 
acter, springing from a gentle nature and religious feeling, place 
her in pleasing contrast with her high»born rival. Dona Sol, 
whose character, while drawn with considerable skill, lowers 
the moral tone of the book. 

It would carry us beyond our limit to follow the details of 
the plot, which is slight and well-sustained. Apart from any 
merit as a story, the book is of value as giving a clear idea of 
the national sport of Spain, its hold on the people, and the 
inevitable effect on their character. In Sangre y Arena the game 
is stripped of illusion and is presented to us without any ** trim- 
mings,'' with its widespread ramifications, forming a great com- 
mercial factor, entering into the daily life of the masses, train- 
ing them to find enjoyment in the sight of suffering, making 
heroes of the successful actors in the cruel drama, and giving 
rewards larger than such men could get in any other occupation. 
The yearly earnings of a matador amount at times to fifty or 
sixty thousand dollars. 

If a matador, however popular and brave he may have been, 
should once show even a momentary loss of nerve — and this is 
sometimes the case, for the constant struggle at close quarters 
with death in a horrible form, tells on even iron constitutions 
— he will be hissed and jeered by a pitiless audience, and 
spurred on to deeds that mean certain death. Such was the 
fate of Gallardo. Carried from the arena, accompanied by the 
banderillero who had been the sharer of his many dangers, 
he was placed in the hands of the attendant physician, while a 
thin partition separated them from the great audience shouting 
and applauding as a new game began. The doctor examined 
the great rent in the man's body, made by the bull's horns, 
shook his head, and turning to the banderillero said : ** It's all 
over, Sebastian, you must find another matador." 

The loud picturesque style of the popular lecturer or ex- 
horter pervades this sustained denunciation of the liquor traffic* 

* Profit €Md Loss M Man. By Alphonso A. Hopkins, Ph.D. New York : Funk ft Wag- 
nail's Company. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New Books i2x 

Look and gesture are replaced by the devices of the typographer. 
The speaker is terribly in earnest, though never so much so 
that he cannot stop to introduce a jocular remark or anecdote. 
Dissatisfied with the policy of Republicans and Democrats 
alike, he strongly urges all to act logically by joining the Pro- 
hibition party. 

Of the many publications of travel, that are issued from 
time to time by the railroads of the country, there are few, if 
any, that equal in design, composition, and coloring a publica- 
tion which we have recently received entitled: The Overland 
Route to the Road of a Thousand Wonders^ published by the 
Union Pacific and Southern Pacific Railroad. The Overland 
route, as pictured in these seventy- two pages, runs over vast 
plains, past the high outpost of the Rockies, across the surface 
of Great Salt Lake, over the crest of the Sierra, through many 
a picturesque canyon and valley to the Golden Gate. The book 
gives the reader a splendid idea of the growth and possibilities 
of the West and its illustrations show something of the mar- 
velous beauty of Western scenery. It should open up to many 
Americans something of the great wonders of their country 
The publication excels in workmanship and good printing. 



Digitized by 



Google 



3Foteion petiobicals^ 

The Tablet (6 Feb.): The annual report of the Registrar- Gen- 
eral estimates ''The Population of England and Wales'' 
at 34i945>ooo. Marriages in the Established Church have 
steadily decreased, so also has the birth-rate, which is 
now lower than that of any European country except 

France. Under " Notes" Mr. Tozer's recent article in 

The Nineteenth Century ^ entitled ''Divorce and Compul- 
sory Celibacy/' is reviewed. The writer's main object is 
to promote the practice of divorce by making it at once 
cheap and easy.— "A Decision on Mixed Choirs." 
According to a recent decree of the Sacred Congrega- 
tion of Rites mixed choirs in English-speaking countries 
are apparently not prohibited. The stipulation is, how* 
ever» made that men and women must be kept separate. 

Writing on "Women's Suffrage," Cardinal Moran 

says: "The woman who votes only avails herself of a 
rightful privilege that democracy has gained for her." 
(13 Feb.): Under the heading "The Continuity Fable 
at York," the claim of the newly-enthroned Anglican 
Archbishop of York, Dr. Cosmo Lang, to be the eighty- 
ninth successor of St. Faulinus is disputed. "Divorce 

and the Church of England." The Archbishop of Can- 
terbury has directed one of his clergy to admit a divorced 
couple to the Holy Communion. His plea is that the 
parties had been married in the Church.— —According 
to the Constitution Sapienti Consilio^ all minor officials 
in the different Congregations are to be chosen, in 
future, by competitive examinations.-^— " South African 
Union." The proposed federation of colonies is an ac- 
complished fact. The constitution provides for a Gover- 
nor-General and two Houses of Parliament. Neither race 
nor color is to be a bar to the franchise, while both the 
English and the Dutch languages are to be recognized as 
official.) 

(20 Feb.) : Gives an account of the Acta Apostolicce Sedis. 
What is the Roman Curia, and how is the Church gov- 
erned ? In " The King's Speech," at the reassembling 

of Parliament, stress was laid upon the satisfactory re- 
lations existing between England and foreign powers. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1 909. J FOREIGN PERIODICALS 1 23 

No mention was made of any action against the House 
of Lords. The disestablishment of the Welsh Church is 
to be proceeded with immediately.— '' Catholic Statis- 
tics/' The Archbishop of St. Paul in a letter to the 
TimeSf says that the figures for the Catholic population, 
14,235,451, are too low. They should not be under six- 
teen or even seventeen millions. ''The Italian Elec- 
tions.'' The Pope has issued instructions to voters follow- 
ing on the lines laid down by Pius IX. in his decree Non 
Expedite The Anglican Bishop of Carlisle, in his ad- 
dress, states that the Church of England regards the 
Sacraments as of much less importance than " the minis- 
try of the word." 

The Month (Feb.) : The Rev. S. F. Smith continues his remarks 
on ''Neutrality in France." The case of the teacher 
Morezot is cited who, having been found guilty of an 
offence against religion and morality, was removed by 
the Government to another post at an increased salary. 

" A Modern Christian Apologist," by H. Kean, is a 

review of Mr. Benson's book At Large. It is, the re- 
viewer says, but another example of the prominent part 
theology plays in the modern literary world.— ^" The 
Main Problem of the Universe," by the Editor, the third 
chapter of which deals with "Natural Selection and 
Adaptation to Purpose," controverts the Darwinian the- 
ory that such adaptations are due to force of circum- 
stances in the struggle for existence. " The Beatifica- 
tion of Father Gon^alo Silveera, S.J.," tells of the heroic 
work of that priest in Southeastern Africa. " Omens, 
Dreams, and Such- Like Fooleries," by Rev. J. Keating, 
reminds us that it is not in religion, as commonly stated, 
that we find superstition rife, but oftentimes among 

educated worldly people. Father Thurston, "On 

Torches and Torch-Bearers," shows how these have come 
down to us as a development from earlier usage. 

The Expository Times (Feb.) : The Editor deals with the ten- 
dency shown in much modern literature to get rid of 
"The Christ of the Gospels" and to treat Him as a 

purely spiritual ideal. "Problems Suggested by the 

Recent Discoveries of Aramaic Papyri of Syene." These 
discoveries throw a light over an obscure period of Jew- 



Digitized by 



Google 



124 FOREIGN PERIODICALS [April, 

isb history — 5cx> B. c, and show that even then among 
the Jews of the Diaspora a broad conception of the 

Yahweh religion was in force. "The Symbolism of 

the Parables/' by the Rev. R. M. Litbgow. A survey 
reveals an ascending gradation of figures, the emblems 
in the earlier parables are furnished by inanimate ob- 
jects, the symbolism of the last is supplied by individ- 
uals. Among the reviews are: "The International 

Critical Commentary on ' Esther.' '' The purpose of the 
book, the reviewer states, is to commend the observance 
of the feast of Purim« borrowed either from Babylon or 
indirectly by way of Persia. 

The International (Feb.): The purport of "Primitive Commun- 
ism and Modern Co-operation '' is to show that co-oper- 
ation is by no means a modern development. America, 
with its Trusts, shows very unfavorable conditions for 
the working out of co-operative principles.— ^" A New 
Era of Taxation.'' Unearned income, Mr. Lloyd George 
believes, alone possesses a true ability to pay. Such is 
the latest scheme in England to avoid an addition to in- 
direct taxation.— —Dr. Ohr believes that "The New 
Liberalism in Germany " means the breaking down of 
the Prussian military spirit, and the consequent recep- 
tion, in the spirit of love and confidence, of Germany at 
the council-boards of nations.— —Dr. Deutsch deplores 
that, in spite of its importance as one of the pressing 
problems of the day, the question of " Child-Labor," with 
a view to child-protection, receives comparatively little 
consideration. If the true aim of education is to en- 
able the citizen to think and act for the highest moral 
interests of the Community and the State, then "Secu- 
lar Education in Japan" must be regarded as gravely 
defective. 

The Journal of Theological Studies (Jan.): "Textual Criticism 
of the New Testament," deals with the contents of the 
Canon of the New Testament, notably the four Grospels. 
The writer, C. H. Turner, believes that the true text of 
the Gospels will never be restored by the help of our 

Greek MSS. alone. H. H. Howorth, in "The Canon 

of the Bible Among the Later Reformers," points out 
the difficulty with which the Reformers found themselves 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Foreign Periodicals 125 

confronted with regard to the Holy Scriptures. They 
would not accept them on the authority of the Church, 
hence they had to fall back upon the theory that the Holy 
Spirit, speaking within them, taught them to distinguish 

the false from the true. Under '' Notes and Studies/* 

the following are discussed : '* Emphasis in the New Tes- 
tament " ; " St. Matthew, chapter vi. vv. 1-6 " ; " Notes 
on Origen's Commentary on I. Corinthians " ; '^ Notes 
on the Homilies of Macarius/' 

The Irish Ecclesiastical Record (Feb.): Father John Curry, of 
Drogheda, replies to a charge made by the Protestant 
rector of Kells, who accuses Dean Cogan of defaming 
the memory of a Dr. O'Beirne, a pervert to Protestant- 
ism in the eighteenth century. ''Socialism and Title 

by Accession.'' The claim of the laborer to the whole 
product of labor is, Father Slater, SJ., says, at the bot- 
tom of the formulas of all militant socialists. He shows, 
following the law of accession, that the unearned incre- 
ment can in no way belong to the laborer, but to the 
community who made it.-— Father Aloysius, O.S.F.C., 
gives a detailed account of the work and methods of the 

''Father Matthew Total Abstinence Association/' 

"The Irish Mythological Cycle," is a review of a book 
by M. d'Arbois Jubainville. The reviewer. Rev. A. M. 
Skelly, O.P., claims that the whole scope of the work is 
to give a Celtic version of a mythology originally the 
common possession of all the Hindu-European family. 

Le Correspondant (10 Feb.): "The Welfare of the Family," by 
L. Cadot, demonstrates the reason why a family and 
family possessions contribute not only to the good of 
the individual family, but also to the welfare of society 

at large. Henri Joly, in "The Social Condition of 

the Swiss," gives some very interesting statistics respect- 
ing their religious, social, and political life. "Tech- 

nical Schools," by P. Worms de Romilly, lays stress on 
the importance not merely of grammar school educa- 
tion, but also of scientific education. In "The Re- 
view of Sciences," by Henri de Parville, we have an 
account of the late disastrous earthquake at Messina, 
and an attempted explanation of the scientific reason 
of this appalling calamity.— —Other articles are: "The 



Digitized by 



Google 



126 Foreign Periodicals [April, 

Glass Industry in France/' by Elphige Frimy, dealing 

with the work of Colbert and the Venetians. Some 

" Unpublished Letters of Voltaire/* by M. Caussy. 

''The Social and Political Divisions Following on the 
Revolution of July/' by M. de Laborie. 

Etudes (5 Feb.): ''Conscience and Monism/' by J. Ferchat, is 
a review of M. le Dantee's recent work Science and Con^ 
science^ which is, as it were, the keystone in the edifice 
of Monistic philosophy which he has attempted to build 

up. In " India As It Is/' Auguste Faisandier sums 

up the conditions in the word " Unrest " due to many 
causes. Unwise government on the part of England, 
also the spread of education, has produced a class de- 
sirous and ambitious for the uplifting of the masses. 

"Summary of and Observations on the Works of M. 
Tourmel/' is a risumi of the various charges which 
have appeared in the pages of £tudes against the teach- 
ing of the Abb^ in his recent works and the explica- 
tions he offered. So far, however, the writer says, the 

answers are by no means satisfactory. Other articles 

are: "The First Seminaries in France in the Seven- 
teenth Century," by N. Prunel.— ^" Unedited Letters of 
the Benedictine, Dom Tassin," by Eugene Griselle. 
(20 Feb.): With the view of explaining away the atti- 
tude of Lord Acton on many questions, Joseph de la 
Servi^re reviews sympathetically "Lord Acton and His 
Circle." " Bede and the Eucharist." From a copious 
selection of texts, Xavier L. Bachel shows that Vener- 
able Bede held firmly to a belief in transubstantiation.— ^ 
" Conscience and Monism." In a further review of M. 
le Dantee's philosophy Joseph Ferchat asks the ques- 
tion: Is conscience the resultant of a number of ele- 
ments of the nervous system? As an idea shows by 
its universality that it is not material, so conscience, by 
its transcendence, demonstrates that it does not proceed 

from a collection of elementary consciences. Gaston 

Sortais briefly recapitulates the more salient features of 
the Count de Mun's recent work Ma Vocation Sociale. 

Revue du Monde Catholique (15 Feb.): M. Leon Leconte, in 
his continued article on "The Jews," traces the bearing 
and influence which the life and death of our Lord had 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Foreign Periodicals la; 

upon that people. It cannot be explained unless we 

accept the fact that Jesus is God. " French Apologists 

in the Nineteenth Century/* by R. P. At, exposes the 
teaching of Maurice d'Hulst» which was to find in Aris- 
totle and St. Thomas the lost key of true metaphysic 
and to open with this key the treasures of modern science. 

"The Restoration of Ecclesiastical Chant/' by the 

Abb^ Barret, contends for the exclusion of the music of 
the theater and concert-hall from our churches, and a 
revival of the Solesmes method of plain- chant which has 

fallen into desuetude. Discord among the bishops, 

interference in politics by the clergy, are two causes 
urged by M. Sava^te in " Towards the Abyss,'' for the 
unsatisfactory conditions of church a£fairs in French 
Canada. 

, Revue Pratique cT Apolo^itique (i Feb.): "The Foundation of 
Moral Obligation " is not to be discovered in empiricism 
nor in science, we must look elsewhere. To find it, says 
Claudius Fiat, we must first establish a true definition 
of the value of life, and ask wherein our highest good 
lies.— "The Preparation of the Young for Liberty," 
by A. Chauvin, is brought to a close. Christian educa- 
tion alone supplies the true remedy, for it means the 
education of the whole nature, thus fitting the child for 

the varied duties of life. " Stories of Sacred History " 

has for its subject Ezechias and the putting back of the 
shadow on the dial of Achaz« which latter did not of 
necessity involve any movement in the planetary world, 
but consisted in a momentary deviation of the pointer 
of the dial. " Comparison and Hypothesis in the His- 
tory of Religions." While admitting the value of the 
comparative method, we are not ready to admit the con- 
clusion that all religions are equally adapted to the needs 
of man. 

Stimtnen aus Maria Laach (8 Feb.): S. Beissel, SJ., writing 
on '' Giotto's Work at Padua and Modern Fainting," 
states that the modern religious painter, adapting him- 
self to his age, should never sacrifice any dogma of su- 
pernatural revelation. M. Meschler, SJ., in his arti- 
cle on "The Beatification of Jeanne d'Arc" shows the com- 
patibility of a fervent patriotism with sanctity.— ^L. 



Digitized by 



Google 



128 Foreign periodicals [April, 

Dressel, S.J., examines the proof for the existence of 
God based on the two physical laws: that the energy 
of the world is constant; and that the entropy tends 
towards a maximum, i, e.^ the intensities of energy grad- 
ually equalize. The writer warns against abuse of this 

proof and shows how to surmount its difficulties. O. 

Zimmermann, S.J., concludes bis paper on " Personality/' 
in which he exposes the emptiness and (oily of to-day's 
individualism. E. Wasmann, S.J., discloses the insin- 
cere methods which Prof. Haeckel uses in his investiga- 
tions and publications. 

La Revue des Sciences Ecclisiastiques et la Science Catholique 
(Feb.) : A continued article by M. Camille Daux, on 
'' Eucharistic Traditions According to St. Augustine/' 
treats of the manner in which the Eucharist was admin- 
isteredy some of the faithful taking it to their own homes. 
The vessels — chalice, paten, tube (through which the 
communicant partook of the sacred blood), and vestments 

are also described. ''The Relations of Church and 

State," by M. TAbb^ Verdier. The substance of this 
article is found in the author's words: ''A good Chris- 
tian will be naturally and without e£fort a true patriot 
and a good son of France." France and the Church 

cannot live separated. " The Fallacy of Collectivism," 

by M. I'Abb^ Roupain, disproves the sophism that all 
goods belong to the community. This is advanced under 
the pretext that God is the sole proprietor and there- 
fore no man has any right to individual possession. 
Among other articles are: "The Theology of William of 

Champeaux," by M. le Chan. Hurault " Structure of 

the Psalms," by M. TAbb^ Neveut. 

Chronique Sociale de France (Feb.): In "The Approach of His 
Reign," the Abb^ Thellier de Ponchville draws a picture 
of the time when the Christ Who has permeated all so- 
ciety shall be known and saluted by it as its God. 

'' Catholic Social Movement in the Province of Quebec." 
To counteract the evil influences of benevolent societies 
under Masonic auspices, various Catholic societies have 
sprung up. Among them may be mentioned: The So- 
ciety of French Canadian Artisans; The Union of St. 
Joseph. " The Value of a Social Gospel," by L. Gar- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Foreign Periodicals 129 

riguet. In the ancient world the rights of the poor and 
unfortunate were ignored, but with the advent of Chris- 
tianity came the recognition of our duty to help the 
brother in distress. The acts and teaching of Christ 

prove this. " Reflections on the Employment of Time." 

We are placed here to advance our own good and that 
of others. Life should be a discipline ; with many, how- 
ever, it means nothing more than the working out of 
their own sweet will, irrespective of the rights of others. 

La Civiltk Cattolica (6 Feb.): ''The New Evolution of Italian 
Masonry." Italian masonry comes forward in explicit 
terms of its profession of atheism in religion and of re- 
publican radicalism in politics. It has its origin in 
French masonry, and from it derives its anti- Christian 

traditions. '' St. Anselm of Aostia and the Monastery 

of Bee " is a continued article from last month. In 

'' The Earthquake in Calabria and Sicily " is given 
a graphic account of that stupendous disaster, coupled 

with the lessons to be learnt from it. Other continued 

articles are: "The Birth of Christ and Poetry." 

"The International Movement Against the Duel." 

'*The Necessity of Esoteric Christianity according to 
Theosophy." 

La Scuola Cattolica {] dm.): "Joseph Turmel and the Evolution 
of Dogma," by C. Carcano. An examination of the 
directing principles in Turmel's works and of their ap- 
plication to the most vital dogmas of Christianity ; the 
audacity with which this priest of Rennes distorts and 
falsifies the testimony of the Councils and the Fathers 

to establish his theses is made manifest. "Positivism, 

Modernism, and History," by R. Past^, makes an urgent 
plea for the study of the history of dogma; such a study 
is necessary to combat the enemies of the Church with 

their own weapons. "The Value of the Synoptic 

Gospels," by G. Dodici, examines the statement of A. 
Schweitzer that " Nothing is more negative than the re- 
sult of the examination of Christ's life," and considers 

its value. "The Calabrian- Sicilian Earthquake," by 

C. Gaffuri, gives some interesting information concerning 
the action of earthquakes and their, accompanying phe- 
nomena ; the principal hypotheses which endeavor to ex- 

▼OI.. LXXXIX«»9 

Digitized by VjOOQ IC 



I30 FOREIGN PERIODICALS [April, 

plain their probable causes are discussed; the recent 
earthquake is but referred to en passant.-^^-Othtt arti- 
cles: ''Fsycopathy in its Relations to Moral Theology/' 

by A. Geinelli. " Myths About Hell in Homer/* by 

E. Fastens. 

Razony Fe (Feb.): A long promised article on ''The Holy See 
and the Book of Isaias'' is given by L. Murillo apropos 
of the Biblical Commission's decision. The author treats 
the peculiar character of prophecy, especially Messianic, 
the historical situation in Judsa at the time, the phil- 
ological reasons and others for authenticity, and the con- 
clusions of Assyriology with regard to the dates of 

Isaias and of the Kings. ''Notes About a Great Artist,'' 

by Saj.— — E. Fortillo continues an article on ''Differ- 
ences Between the Church and State, Regarding Royal 

Fatronage in the Eighteenth Century." " The London 

Educational Congress," by R. Ruiz Amado, presents the 
theses that religion is not necessary as a basis for moral- 
ity and that education should be wholly by the State 

and rejects them for the Catholic view. N. Noguer 

discusses "State Intervention in Co* Operation," the 
question of Frinciple and of Opportunity, its limits and 
conditions, and reviews the German controversy of the 
middle of the last century.-^— In "A Reply to Senor 
Azcarate," F. Villada exposes the Church's doctrine as 
to Fapal Infallibility in politics, education, etc., and the 
relation of Church to the Spanish State. 

Espana y Amirica (i Feb.): "The Opportunity for the Cate- 
chism," by F. A. Blanco, is concluded with an exposition 
of its usefulness and need in dispelling modern mental 
depression and showing the power by apostolic example 
of simplicity in teaching religious truths.-^— F. B. Mar- 
tinez, in " Godoy and His Century," treats the Minister's 
reforms in bullfighting, censorship of the theater, and 
establishment of schools, and illustrates the different 

ways in which he has been judged. F, E, Negrete 

quotes a sermon by F. Felix on "The ^Esthetic Ideas 
of St. Augustine," and after enumerating, as elements 
in the beautiful, unity, proportion, symmetry, resem- 
blance, sums up by saying: Omnis pulchHtudinis ratio 
unitas. Selections from "The Collected Memoirs of 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Foreign Periodicals 131 

Prince von Hohenlohe'' show, in the hands of G. June- 
mann, the gravity and the humor, the earnest tenacity of 

the author. P. M. Cil visits "The Atelier of Ignatius 

Zuloaga/' and explains that painter's ideals and methods. 

"New York Notes," by P. M. Blanco Garcia, on 

our politics and efforts in Panama, the Spanish artists 
at the Metropolitan, and the recent tuberculosis conven- 
tion, as well as that against divorce, are treated with 
sympathy. 

(is Feb.): P. M. Vdcz continues the " Defence of Chris* 
tian Morals,'' by showing the positive and reparative 
value, both personally and socially, of repentance. 
The conclusion of the series of articles on ''The Phil- 
osophy of the Verb: Its Tenses" is given by Felipe 

Robles. P. Alberto de los Bueis treats the '* Christian 

Idea of the Origin of Civil Power," as coming directly 
from God, not to one particular man, as in the eccle- 
siastical order, but to the people. Authority must be 

made divine and obedience sanctified. '' The Objective 

Development of Revelation According to Modernism " 
is refuted by P. Marcelino Gonzdlez, who shows the sub- 
jective progress of the individual in appropriating re- 
vealed truth to be the correct conception. P. G. 

Martinez gives a "Bird's- Eye View of Buenos Ayres." 

The deaths and funerals of the Chinese Emperor 

and Empress and the new Emperor's proclamation are 
described by P. Juvencio Hospital.— —E. Contamine de 
Latour reviews two books on The Africa of the North 
and Latin Inscriptions Found in Tunis. 



Digitized by 



Google 



Current I6vent8» 



France as well as this country has 
France. entered upon the task of revising 

the Tariff. The former revision 
took place in 1892, and since that time other countries of £u- 
rope, and especially Germany, have made revisions and have 
increased duties in a manner detrimental, it is said, to French 
commercial interests. Accordingly a Committee has been ap- 
pointed and this Committee has brought in a report recommend- 
ing in many instances a large increase of duties. Even so, it 
has not given satisfaction to many merchants, whose desire is 
for still higher duties. The government, however, has withheld 
its approval of some of the Committee's proposals and has taken 
as a guiding principle the entente cordiale with Great Britain, 
that is to say, no increase of duty is to be made which shall 
tend to chill the affection which is felt for France by her 
neighbor across the Channel. 

It takes a long time to get measures through the French 
Legislature. Almost two years ago the Lower House passed a 
Pension Bill and ever since the Senate has had it under con- 
sideration, and its committee has now decided that the whole 
scheme is impracticable and that the only thing to be done is 
to draw up a bill of its own. This bill is now published. The 
sum which it is proposed to give as an annual pension is so 
small that in this country it would scarcely be considered 
worth acceptance, being less than twenty-iive dollars a year. 
The English pension recently granted amounts to sixty-five 
dollars, and would be thought small enough. The French 
Pension, if ever given, is to begin at 65 years of age, whereas 
the English does not commence until 70. In France the em- 
ployer will have to contribute a small part of each workman's 
pension. 

While the agreement with Germany has relieved France 
from anxiety as to any further interposition of the former 
Power in the affairs of Morocco, the reception by Mulai Hafid, 
the new Sultan, of the French representative has been in the 
highest degree satisfactory. Mulai Hafid expressed for France 
the most friendly feelings and recognized to their full extent 
her special rights. The new Sultan is said to be a man of a 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909-] Current Events 133 

very di£ferent character from that of his deposed brother. He 
is strong and determined, with broad, clear ideas, and is gov- 
erned by a common sense view of what it is in his power to 
accomplish. Strange to say he leans to democracy, and, stranger 
still, his people do not. Perhaps it is, however, a misnomer to 
speak of the people of Morocco, for its inhabitants are little 
better than a collection oi semi-feudal tribes, all more or less 
independent of the central authority, but lorded over despotic- 
ally by their own chiefs; and with the best of intentions it is 
not within the power of the Sultan to make any promise which 
will be recognized as binding throughout the Empire, unless 
and only as long as these various chiefs are pleased to recog- 
nize it. The prospect, therefore, for the future may not be 
so good as it looks. 

The situation in the Balkans has 
Germany. for Germany, as well as for every 

other European country, been the 
most important matter; but other questions are not without 
interest. The visit of King Edward to Berlin, and the recep- 
tion which he received, gave hopes that the disagreement be- 
tween the two countries, which has been more or less acute 
for so many years, had been removed; but this expectation, 
in view of the news received within the last few days, seems 
much too optimistic. It says little for the so often vaunted 
progress of our times that two of the leading Powers should be 
unable to put trust in each other, and should practically treat 
each other as dishonest rogues. The rulers, indeed, express 
and sincerely feel the strongest desire for the maintenance of 
peace; but they have to deal with a miscellaneous assortment 
of subjects, and it is always a problem which will come to the 
front and obtain control. This renders uncertain the best-in- 
tentioned efforts. 

The King's visit was immediately preceded by the conclusion 
of the agreement between Germany and France, which, if we 
can accept the almost unanimous opinions which have been ex- 
pressed with reference to it, has brought to an end the long 
existent complications which have disturbed the mutual relations 
of the two Powers. Germany and France, according to the 
terms of the agreement, are now actuated by an equal desire 
to facilitate the execution of the act of Algeciras, and have, 



Digitized by 



Google 



134 CURRENT EVENTS [April, 

therefore, agreed to define the significance which they attach 
to its clauses, and this with a view to avoid any cause of mis- 
understanding in the future. The French government thereupon 
declares itself to be wholly attached to the maintenance of the 
integrity and the independence of the Empire of Morocco, and 
by this declaration precludes itself from the peaceful penetration 
which it undoubtedly had once in view. It also declares its de- 
cision to safeguard economic equality there, and not to impede 
German commercial and industrial interests. On its part the 
German government declares that its interests are solely eco- 
nomic, that it recognizes the special political interests of France 
as specially bound up with the consolidation of order and of 
internal peace in Morocco, and declares its resolution not to im- 
pede these interests nor to prosecute or encourage any measure 
calculated to create the economic privilege of any Power what- 
soever. 

This agreement, if loyally acted upon, will relieve the anx- 
iety felt for so long on account of the differences between the 
two countries. It will not, however, meet with the approval 
of ultra- patriots in both countries. The Pan-Germans are dis- 
pleased because one of their dreams has been the getting pos- 
session of coaling stations, naval bases, and settlements in Mo- 
rocco ; and a distinguished French statesman, a former Foreign 
Minister, M. Hanotaux, has published his opinion that France 
has, by this agreement, renounced everything for which she has 
throughout the whole controversy been contending. 

Whether it will have any effect upon the other questions by 
which Europe is agitated, or whether it was not made in view 
of those questions, is still a matter for conjecture. How far 
Germany was cognizant of Austria's annexation of Bosnia and 
Herzegovina, and whether or no she approved of it, is one of 
the secrets still kept by the Foreign Offices of each State. But 
it seems certain that, if war is to take place, Russia will be 
drawn into it by the voice of the Russian people, and in this 
event, that is if Austria were to be attacked by Russia, the 
terms of the Triple Alliance would render it necessary for Ger- 
many to support Austria. Then also it would be in the high- 
est degree desirable that France should be separated from Rus- 
sia and not join her forces with those of Russia against Germany 
it was for this object, some think, that Germany withdrew 
from Morocco. All this, however, is mere speculation, but i 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current events 135 

18 a certain fact that since the conclusion of the Agreement in- 
fluential circles in France have given indications of a leaning 
to the Austrian side of the question, although they have of 
late drawn back on account ol the fuller realization of Austria's 
haughtiness. 

The government is meeting with very great difficulty in its 
attempt to carry into effect the proposals which it has made 
for securing an increase of revenue. The representatives of the 
holders of property manifest^ as^is their wont, the greatest unwill- 
ingness to bear their share of the public burdens, and although 
they have been lectured and admonished by Ministers, they 
still refuse to make the sacrifices required by the proposal. 
The duties to which they object are the death and estate duties, 
which are to be introduced for the first time. The month 
has been passed in efforts on the part of the government to find 
some form of compromise, all hope of carrying the proposab 
on in their integrity having been abandoned. One effect of the 
negotiations has been the bringing together, to a certain extent, 
of the Conservatives and the Centre Party, and to that extent a 
weakening of the bloc^ upon which the government rests. 

Notwithstanding the protection given by the Tariff to the 
country's industries, the question of unemployment exists in 
Germany. The extent of it is, however, a matter of dispute. 
In Berlin a recent house-to-house census made by the Social 
Democrats gives the number as 101,300 men, while the munici- 
pal return made in November last makes the number only 40,124. 
A more recent census, taken in February, reduces the number 
still further, making the unemployed only 23,670. It is strange 
that in the fatherland of the exact sciences such discrepancies 
should exist. 

A general election has taken place 
Italy. in Italy, but no change of any im- 

portance is likely to result. The 
Giolitti ministry remained in power throughout the greater 
part of the last Parliament's existence, and while it excited 
no enthusiasm, it met with tolerance. Its life has been pro- 
longed as a result of the recent elections. It based its claims 
for support on the acquisition of the railways by the State, 
the conversion of the public debt, upon the public works ac» 
complished, and the reforms in the public services. It claimed 



Digitized by 



Google 



136 Current Events [April, 

credit for the maintenance of stability in finance and the great 
economic and industrial progress achieved during the past few 
years. 

The elections excited little interest. It is said, in fact, that 
enthusiasm for the country as a whole has died out to a large 
extent; that the Italian is far more interested in the local 
affairs of his own district than in those of the nation. Some 
say that the interests of the public even in this restricted 
sense are largely subordinated to personal interests of profit 
and gain and office. 

According to the Conservative leader, Italy is passing through 
a period of political depression. She is conscious of a lack of 
preparation to meet any political or military emergency. The 
country has lost weight and influence in the world through the 
mistakes she has made in recent years. Especially is she be- 
hindhand in the defence of the frontier. Italian policy is too 
often merely negative, expressive only of opposition to some 
ideas or people. This is the view which Baron Sonnino takes 
of the situation ; but it has not been endorsed by the electors ; 
at all events, they have allowed the power to remain in the 
hands of its present holders, for the Ministerialists have been 
returned in a large majority, the numbers being in the first 
ballot: Ministerialists, 275; Constitutional Opposition, 42; 
Radicals, 31; Republicans, 17; Socialists, 28; Catholics, 52. 
Sixty-nine seats remained to be filled by the second ballot. 

The establishment of real cons tit u- 
The Near Bast. tional rule in Turkey received a 

rude shock from the events which 
led to the fall of Kiamil Pasha and have led to doubts in the 
minds of some whether or no it is possible for Turks genuine- 
ly to establish it. The task, of course, is one of supreme dif- 
ficulty; but it would be premature to despair of success, es- 
pecially as the real causes of the late crisis are not yet known. 
Both parties pay homage to the principle of constitutional rule, 
and both parties have, it would seem, violated its spirit. 
Kiamil himself dismissed the ministers of War and Marine as 
if they were his servants and not his coadjutors, and if it is 
true that his action was taken in order to please the Sultan and to 
increase his power, the departure from constitutional methods 
was altogether worthy of blame. The Committee of Union and 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current Events 137 

Progress trangressed even more grieviously in seeking to con- 
trol the authority to which it ought to have subjected itself and 
in the method which it took of exercising this control. The 
Parliament itself was wanting in due regard for its rights and 
powers in allowing itself to be influenced by outsiders, and 
showed a lamentable want of stability in almost unanimously 
condemning a minister in whom, precisely a month before, it had, 
with almost equal unanimity, expressed complete confidence. 
However, those who have lived for centuries almost as slaves 
cannot acquire all the virtues of freemen in a month. It is too 
soon to form a judgment as to what the outcome will be, but, 
with a few exceptions, constitutional procedure seems so far to 
have been observed. The new Grand Vizier, Hilmi Pasha, 
pledged himself in his opening address to resign the power 
entrusted to him on the manifestation of the least sign of dis* 
trust on the part of Parliament as to his fidelity to the con- 
stitution. He declared that every citizen — Turks have now be- 
come citizens — must feel that he was now living under a rigime 
of equality and justice. 

A trial which took place recently at Constantinople shows how 
far the Turks have been from the enjoyment of justice. Persons 
arrested on suspicion of complicity in an attempt on the Sul- 
tan's life were, by his orders, mercilessly bastinadoed in order 
to extort confessions. Statements were made at the trial by an 
Armenian that red-hot iron bars had been applied to the feet 
and arm-pits of her husband, and that he had committed sui- 
cide to escape further torture. These instances, and they could 
be indefinitely multiplied, indicate the point from which the 
leaders of the young Turkish movement have to start, and the 
depths from which they have to extricate their own race and 
the other nationalities subject to Turkish rule. 

The proceedings of the new Grand Vizier's ministry are being 
anxiously watched to see how far the rights guaranteed by the 
Constitution are being respected. Article 13 lays it down that 
'' Ottomans enjoy the right of public meeting.'' Notwithstand- 
ing this provision the government issued a proclamation which 
appeared to be a direct infringement of this public right, re- 
quiring that public meetings should not be held without author- 
ization. Hilmi Pasha, however, explained the meaning of au- 
thorization to be merely a formal acknowledgment of the notifi- 
cation, and that authorization could never be refused. The op- 



Digitized by 



Google 



138 Current Events [April, 

position in the Parliament were not satisfied and moved a vote 
of condemnation, but were defeated by a majority of 3 to i. 

No recognition has yet been made by the Powers of either 
the independence of Bulgaria or the annexation by Austria of 
the provinces of Bosnia and Herzegovina. It was rumored 
that Russia had recognized the independence of Bulgaria by 
according to Prince Ferdinand royal honors on the occasion of 
his visit to St. Petersburg for the funeral of the Grand Duke 
Vladimir, to which he had invited himself. The fact is that in 
a very modified form royal honors were granted to the Prince, 
but Russia promptly informed the Powers that no recognition 
of the independence of Bulgaria was either intended or given. 
This independence, however, has been recognized in principle 
by Turkey in consideration of the payment of a sum of money. 
The amount to be paid has, after long negotiations, been set- 
tled, and also the way in which the money is to be obtained. 
The war indemnity due from Turkey to Russia is to be made 
use of ; but it is not necessary to trouble our readers with the 
details. 

A similar arrangement has also been made with Austria- 
Hungary by which, for the consideration of a money payment, 
the annexation of the provinces is to be recognized by Turkey. 
European recognition has yet to be arranged with the Powers. 
Whether for this purpose a Conference will be held is, to say 
the least, doubtful. 

The agreements which have been made between Turkey and 
Bulgaria, and between Turkey and Austria-Hungary, having 
settled the difficulties between them respectively, the outstand- 
ing and still unsettled questions are those of the relations be- 
tween the Dual Monarchy and the States of Servia and Mon- 
tenegro. The Servian question is the more difficult, and it can- 
not yet be said that it will not lead to war. For a long time 
there have been repeated crises. Within a week it was said 
that war would surely break out, and again, that such inter- 
vention had come that would prevent war. The latest inter- 
vention has been that of Russia, and the most effectual, for 
it would only be in reliance upon the support of Russia that 
war on Servians part could have any hope of success. The 
people of Russia are in favor of supporting their fellow- 
Slavs against the aggression of Austria- Hungary, but the 
government, knowing the present weakness of the country. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current Events 139 

and almost sure that Austria- Hungary would be supported by 
Germany, in the event of a conflict, is holding back and has ad- 
vised Servia to relinquish her claims. These claims were that 
she should receive territorial compensation for the annexation 
of the provinces, and that these provinces should have com- 
plete autonomy under the guarantee of Europe. Austria's re- 
ply to Servia's demand is that the annexation is no concern of 
Servians, as the provinces had not belonged to Servia, but to 
Turkey. She has intimated, however^ a willingness to make 
economic concessions to Servia, the precise nature of which 
she will not reveal until Servia abandons the claims which she 
has made. On Servia's acceptance of Russia's advice, Austria 
increased her demands, requiring that all the negotiations should 
be between the two States without any intervention, and a 
promise on the part of Servia amounting almost to a manifest- 
ation of conscience that her conduct towards Austria would al- 
ways be correct and friendly, and that she would never endeavor 
to alter the arrangement. In view of the exhibition of law- 
lessness on Austria's part, which the world has just witnessed, 
this is a somewhat astonishing demand. But ever since Baron 
von Aehrenthal's accession to power there has been a succession 
of astonishing events. 

If any one will look at the map, he will see the reason for 
the feeling which has been excited in Servia by the annexation 
which has just taken place. By the annexation Servia is cut 
off from access to the sea. ^'It is not much,'' her King says, 
'' that Servia asks. She asks only what every one has the right 
to demand — a little air and a little place in the sun. Servia is 
choking and needs an outlet. It would not be just, it would 
not be right, to refuse it to her." Austria, by her action, has 
shut up this outlet. Technically she is within her rights, but 
the world is not ruled in the long run by technicalities. 

The movement for constitutional 
The Middle East. government has not yet attained 

its end. For some time past the 
Shah's government has been hovering on the brink of destruc- 
tion, three important provinces being in armed insurrection 
against his authority, and great dissatisfaction existing among 
even those who recognize his rule. He has been residing ever 
since the suppression of the Parliament in an armed camp out- 



Digitized by 



Google 



I40 Current Events [April. 

side the capital, deriving all the strength which he possesses 
from armed soldiers commanded by foreign officers. The Rus- 
sian and British Legations have repeatedly admonished him to 
effect the much-needed reforms and to keep his often-pledged 
word. But to mere words he turns a deaf ear. The question 
of practical intervention has forced itself upon the two Powers, 
especially as the Shah cannot persuade himself that Russia is 
sincere in wishing him to become a constitutional monarch. 
There are, indeed, some Englishmen, well-informed in these 
matters, who doubt the sincerity of Russia, and maintain that 
the late Parliament was destroyed not merely with the appro- 
bation but with the co-operation of some of the Russian au- 
thorities. A joint manifesto of Russia and Great Britain mak- 
ing definite demands on the Shah has been expected for a 
long time, but its appearance has been delayed by the Balkan 
preoccupations. The Persian treasury is said to be bankrupt 
ten times over; but that is not an insuperable obstacle to ex- 
istence in the East. There is always property to be sold, 
jewels to be pawned, courtiers to be squeezed, and various 
other financial devices characteristic of autocratic rule to be 
practised. But those who are able to judge say that the fail- 
ure of the constitutional movement is not complete, for its 
spirit is in the air and has rendered it impossible for the au- 
thorities to grind down the people to the uttermost farthing 
in the way in which they have been accustomed to do here* 
tofore. 



Digitized by 



Google 



THE COLUMBIAN READING UNION 

MR. H. G. WELLS is to-day a very widely-read author, and in the secular 
press his works have been received with much applause and cordial 
welcome. Because of his power of expression, his attractiveness of style, and 
perhaps also because of his startling sensationalism, he has been hailed in 
certain quarters as a prophet. Where these quarters lie is evident to any one 
who thinks or seriously cares. The quarters are extensive; judging simply 
from the literary output their limits are constantly extending, and the num- 
ber who graze therein and take nourishment therefrom is constantly increas- 
ing. Mr. Wells is the champion of those who evidently have no conscience 
in the use of words; who bring no ethical principles into literature ; and 
never realize that the powers of their highest faculty ought to be exercised 
for the welfare, spiritual or intellectual, of their fellow- men. Mr. Wells' 
latest book, a novel, Tono-Bungay, has been praised almost universally as a 
masterpiece by the secular press throughout the world. To those i^ho know 
the book such praise is a telling commentary on the worth of the literary 
criticism that appears in most of our daily, weekly, and monthly publica- 
tions. We will not give our own criticism of the book, because it might be 
said that such criticism was prejudiced because we are Catholic. Instead, 
we will quote the words of Dr. Robertson Nicoll, from the British Weekly — 
a Nonconformist English journal — of February i8, 1909: 

'' Tono-Bungay is an extremely clever book, and it is a great relief to 
find that it is not an autobiography, nor an expression of the author's per- 
sonal conviction. In fact, the hero of the book, if hero he must be called, is 
diametrically opposed to opinions which Mr. Wells has strongly championed. 
It is to be taken as an experiment in drama. And from that point of view 
Mr. Wells has never done anything better. . . • 

^'It is not, however, from the literary standpoint that I deal with this 
book. Mr. Wells has his own place among the authors of the day. Proba- 
bly no one comes near him in his use of what may be called the scientific 
imagination. No one describes so clearly and so livingly the advancing won- 
ders of invention. . . . When all this is granted, it does not give us a 
great writer, but only a man of the highest talent, who has applied that talent 
in a particular direction, and written much that is startling to the present 
generation and will be obsolete to the Aext and to those who succeed it. 
What concerns me is the religious and ethical tendency of Mr. Wells' book, 
or rather of George Ponderevo, for it would be the gravest injustice to identi- 
fy the two. 

<' George Ponderevo acknowledges himself, in this book, to be a liar, a 
swindler, a thief, an adulterer, and a murderer. He is not in the least 
ashamed of these things. He explains them away with the utmost facility, 
and we find him, at the age of forty-five, not unhappy, and successfully en- 
gaged in problems •f aerial navigation. • • • 



Digitized by 



Google 



142 The Columbian reading Union [April, 

'' In this book the primary fact is the hatred of the Christian religion. 
I might have quoted, if there had been room, the treatment of Cowper's great 
hymn by Frederick Greenwood in his wonderful book, Margaret DenziPs 
History, He shows there the comfort which a sorely beset human soul found 
in that hymn and in the thought that there is a Fountain filled with blood 
for those who sin and suffer and die. But we may say of George PondereTO, 
what John Morley says of Voltaire, that he has no ear for the finer vibrations 
of the spiritual voice. 

<<But why is Christianity so hated? The main reason is that Chris- 
tianity is the religion of chastity. When reading Tono-Bungay^ we are back 
in the days •f Voltaire. Voltaire thought to 'crush the infamous.' What 
was 'the infamous'? The word included much, but, as John Morley has 
pointed out, it specially included chastity. • . • 

'' Now we have te face the truth. The truth is that Christianity is hated 
and reviled by many of our modern writers, simply because it exalts chastity. 
Let us try every new doctrine by this test. Only a few have had the courage 
to come out into the open, but to those who read between the lines there is 
much that is suggestive. We are told that marriage is to be put on a new 
basis, that the causes for divorce are to be extended, that lives are not going 
to be spoiled for one mistake, and all the rest of it. This is the exoteric 
teaching. This is all that it is safe to say in the meantime in the presence of 
the people, but the esoteric teaching, and sometimes the practice, is much 
more advanced. 

''There is a true instinct under all this. It was Christianity that 
created the virtue of purity, and it is Christianity alone that can save it. 
Christianity opposes the progress of ApoUyon in this path. Christianity 
maintains the sanctity of marriage and of the family. It is no wonder, there- 
fore, that it should be viewed as an irreconcilable enemy, to be overthrown 
at any cost. But it is just as well that we should understand what the battle 
is about. 

" It is impossible for me in these columns to reproduce or to describe 
the amorous episodes in Tono-Bungay, I cannot copy and I cannot sum- 
marize the loathsome tale of George Ponderevo's engagement and marriage 
and div orce. . • . 

" On thisit must be sufficient to quote John Merly's words : ' Is not every 
incentive and every concession to vagrant appetite a force that enwraps a man 
in gratification of self, and severs him from duty to others, and so a force of 
dissolution and dispersion? It might be necessary to pull down the Church, 
but the worst Church that ever prostituted the name and the idea of^ religion 
cannot be so disastrous to society as a gospel that systematically relaxes 
self-control as being an unmeaning curtailment of happiness.' This is, in- 
deed, a very moderate way of putting the real truth, but let it stand at that. 

"The careful reader of Tono-Bungay will observe that the characters are 
all animals. What possible reconstruction of society can there be if men 
and women are reduced to the morals and the lives of brutes? Will a 
society of brutes organize itself on a basis of altruism ? There are touches 
of kindness in animals, and so in Tono-Bungay there are redeeming traits in 
some of the characters. But the most are, to the very depths of their souls. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Columbian Reading Union 143 

irredeemably saturated with corruption; and of some others it maybe said 
that corrosive acids have eaten away all that is most tender and precious in 
human character. 

'< When the end of a great quack comes, a clergyman, described as 'a 
tremulous, obstinate little being, with sporadic hairs upon his face, specta- 
cles, a red button nose, and aged black raiment, is found by the bedside, re- 
peating over and over again: ''Mr. Ponderevo, Mr. Ponderevo, is all right. 
Only believe I ' Believe on me and ye shall be saved ! ' '" This is told in 
mockery." 

• • • 

We take pleasure in calling the special attention of our readers to a 
short story The Coin of Sacrifice^ by Christian Reid, published, at the low 
price of fifteen cents, by the Ave Maria Press, of Notre Dame, Indiana. 
Christian Reid has, for many years, done noble service in the cause of 
Catholic literature. We wish that her name and her work were known in 
every Catholic home. As a writer of real literary merit and power she 
stands with the best writers|of fiction to-day, and is far superior to many who, 
in advertisement and literary note, are trumpeted as writers whom all 
should read. The writing of this note leads us t« say that if there ever was 
a time when Catholics should arouse themselves and break from their 
lethargy with regard to the support of Catholic literature. Catholic writers, 
and Catholic publishers, who, like the Ave Maria Press, are trying worthily 
to serve the Catholic public, it is now. We, ks Catholics, have the writers 
of unquestionable ability and power. There is no lack of good, reasonably- 
priced, Catholic literature. The millions of Catholics in the United States, 
with all their advantages of education, ought surely to cultivate a taste for what 
is really worthy ; to learn something of the beauties, the glories of Catholic 
literature ; to support, even at the cost of a little sacrifice, the Catholic press — 
and thus enable the Church, and those who are laboring in her name, to do 
a work that may justly be numbered among the first of her necessary works 
to-day. 

• • • 

Sodality of Our Lady Under the Banner of Mary^ by Fr. H. Opitz, S.J., 
is another addition to the already extensive sodality literature that has been 
issued within the last two years. The aim of the present work is to give in- 
formation concerning the Sodality of our Lady ; to awaken a desire to fur- 
ther its high aims and to encourage and instruct those undertaking the work 
of establishing Sodalities. It is published in a neat form^by P. J. Kenedy & 
Sons. 



Digitized by 



Google 



BOOKS RECEIVED. 



Christian P»rss Association, New York: 

CharacttrisHcs of the Early Church, By Rev. J. J. Burke. Pp. 150. Price 50 cents. 
Latin Pronounced for Church Services, By Rev. Edw. F. Murphy. Pp.59. Price 75 
cents net. 

G. P. Putnam's Sons, New York: 

Shelbume Essays, Sixth Series. By Paul Ehner More. Pp. 355. Price $1.25. 

Isaac Pitman & Sons, New York: 

Book of Homonyms. By B. S. Barrett. Pp. 191. Price 75 cents net. 

Columbia University Press, New York: 

Sayings of Buddha the Iti-Vuttaha. • By Justin Hartley Moore, Ph.D. Pp. Z43. Price 
$1.50. 

Funk & Wagn all's Company, New York : 

The New Schaff-Herzog Encyclopedia of Religious Knowledge, Vol. II. 

Schwartz, Kirwin & Fauss, New York: 

Catholic FooUteps in Old New Yorh. By Willianx Harper Bennett. Pp. 464. 

BiRLB League Book Company, New York : 

Our Flag ; and Other Poems, By John McDowell Leavitt Pp. 360. Bidle League Es- 
says, By John McDowell Leavitt. Pp. 335. 

The Outing Publishing Company, New York: 

Aline of the Grand Woods, By Nevil G. Henshaw. Pp. 491. 

International Catholic Truth Society, New Yprk : 

Short Answers to Comwton Objections Against Religion, By Rev. L. A. Lambert. Pp. 
315. Price 15 cents. 

Government Printing Office. Washington. D. C. : 

Report of the Commissioner §J Education for Year Ended June, rgo8. Vol.1. Pp.383. 

Little, Brown & Co., Boston, Mass.: 

The Little Gods, By Rowland Thomas. Pp. 304. Price $1.50. The Whips of Time, 
By Arabella Kenealy. Pp. 373. Price $1.50. 

The Ave Maria Press, Notre Dame, Ind.: 

Dangers of the Day, By Mgr. John S. Canon Vaughas. Pp. 339. Price $z. 

Catholic Truth Society, London, England : 

Life and Legends of St, Martin of Tours, By Margaret Maitland. Pp. 107. Price 3J. 
Indulgences. By Rev. Sydney F. Smith, S.J. Pp. 96. Price 3</. A Spiritual Calen- 
dar. By Antonio Rosmini. Pp.204. An Exercise for Holy Communion. An Exami- 
nation of Socialism, The ReltPion of Egypt, The Religion of Ancient Greece, Matriagem 
Seek and You Shall Find, A List of Some Recent Works on Housing and on Rural 
Problems, The Study of Religions, Pamphlets. Price one penny each. 

M. H. Gill & Son, Dublin, Ireland: 

Poems, By *' Eva," of the Nation, Pp. 116. Price 3J. 

Gabbiel Beauchesne bt Cie., Paris, France : 

Histoire du Canon de I'Anaen Testament, Par M. Jugie. Pp. 131. Price ifr, 50. La 
Thiologie Scholastique, Par H. Ligeard. Pp. 133. Price i/r. 50. 

P. Lethielleux, Paris, France : 

L'^glise de France et la Siparation, Par Paul Barbier. Pp. xi3. 

Libraire Hachette bt Cie., Paris, France : 

Les Origines de la Riforme, Tome II. Par P. Imbart de la Tour. Pp. 579. Price 7/r. 50. 

Plon-Nourrit et Cie., Paris, France: 

Un Vieux Ciliiataire, Par Jules Pravieux. Pp. 390. Price ^fr, 50, 

Bloud et Cie., Paris, France: 

LExpirience Esthitique et V Idial Chritien, By Armand Loisel. Pp. 335. Price 5/r. 

Australian Catholic Truth Society, Melbourne. Australia: 

Christopher Columbus, Blessed Gabriel, The Young Missionary t First Work, Pamphlets. 
Price one penny each. 



Digitized by 



Google 



TELEPHOSflNG AGAINST TIME 



The American "Demand for Prompt 
Service During the Busy Hour 



WHEN seconds count Americans look 
to the telephone for immediate service. 
At ceruin hours during the day 
everybody wants to talk at the same time and 
telephone calls come thick and fast. People 
become impatient of the slightest delay. 

They have no time to think of the tremen'- 
dous had that is put upon the telephone 
system. They are not interested in the means. 
They demand results. 

The way that the Bell Companies have 
met this demand has made Bell Service the 
standard of excellence the world oven 

To meet the requirements for the busy 
hour the entire system must be in perfect con- 
dition. Every operator must be on duty and 
keyed up to concert pitch. Every emergency 
must have been foreseen and provided for. 

The promptness of American telephone 
service inspires the wonder of European 
visitors. They see an American call up a 
correspondent in a distant city with as much 
confidence as he calls hrs next door neighbor. 

When the New Yorker says **Wait a min- 
ute until I telephone to Washington," his 
guest, judging by his> own transatlantic expe- 
riences, is prepared to wait an hour. 

Even the American does not appreciate what 
instantaneous service has cost. He does not 
realize that it means that the company must 



have at instant command a separate line for 
each customer everywhere, at the rush hour. 

Frequently one man talking over a long dis- 
tance Bell line has the exclusive use of $300,- 
000 worth of equipment. 

No one else can use it while he is using it 

Talking from New York to St. Louis his 
voice travels over one million pounds of cop- 
per wire. 

This is his own private, one-passenger, talk 
road while he is using it. 

Each additional ciroiitdemsLTided by the extra 
business means an additional investment in 
copper wire — a large expense for surplus plant, 
which is only used for a short period each day. 

If during the busy hour the Associated Bell 
Companies could postpone each successive call 
for half an hour — string them out through the 
day — an enormous saving of expense could be 
made. 

But the nation's talk would lose in its race 
against time^ and the whole telephone service 
of the country would be demoralized. 

This investment m extra facilities means 
that American out-of-town service is a matter 
of seconds, where minutes and hours are 
required in any other country. 

As much as any other feature of American 
life this long distance serv^ice of the Associated 
Bell Companies is the measure of the unique 
progress of the country. 



American Telephone Cf Telegraph Company 

gitized by V_j- '^^ %^ -» IC 
When wrtiing t9 mdvertistrs pUas€ mention TMs Lmtkolic W^rld, 



•ad debvtr tlis aevr piano in jonr home froe of ozpeoM. 
Wfllt for Catalocne D and oxplaaatlofM* 

V05B ft SONS PIANO CO., BOSTON. MASS. 



EHfISe%NGEIt 

HousBfurnistiinD 
Wareroonis 

(Established 1835.) 

Kltcliett Vten«|]# 

Cutlery, China, Glassware. 

nottsedeaiilttsr Art Idea 

niahes, Broom^» Dusters, Polishes 
or Floors, Furniture, . and Metals. 

•« BEST QUALITY ONLY." 

tefrigerators 

lie Perfection of ClcianlflneMit 
iSAdencTt ancl Bconomjr* 

A <<Efldv " ^^^ Standard for a 
9 MM%M.%Aj quarter Century 

de " Premier " Glass iined 

Correspondenoe Ixivlted. 

(o & 13a West 4ad 9t.f 

BfJS^V YORK. 




lyCCCU ^«^^"-> sters. They are always 
fresh, alwayd wholesome. The NECGO SEAL — 
vour safeguard-y-is on every box of NECCO 
SWEETS. It is your protection. Be sure you 
find it before you buy. 

Whoever has a sweet tooth will appreciate a 
treat like 



jiejc*^' 



o\a\e;i 



Take home a box for the family. Let the 
children eat all they want. NECCO SWEETS offer 
a choice of some 500 \*arietie8. All are deliciously 
good. All are perfectly wholesome. 

j4i all dealers who sell high grade goods, 
NEW ENGLAND CONPEOTIONERY CO., Boston,! 



Digitized by 



Google 



MAY 1909 
THE 




atholiei^opld 



The Chriftian Ideal of the Home 

Her Mother^! Daughter 

The Pilgriio'i Frogreu and Some 
Fra-Beformation AUegoriea 

The Supreme Venture 

Ireland: A Land of Industrial Promise 

The Teaching of the " Fioretti '' 

Mairteen's History 

Haeekel and His Methods 

The Angel Beautiful 

Father William Flete, Hermit 



fames Cardinal Gibbens 
Katharine Tynan 

Kaiherine Br4gy 
Cornelius Clifford 

P* J. Lennox 

Father Cuthbert, O.S.F.C. 

N. F. Degidon 

Richard L. Mangan^ SJ, 

/, R. Meagher 

Darley Dale 



IBi^ii Books— Foreign Feriodicals 
Current Events 

Price— as cente { #3 per Year 



THE OFFICE OF THE CATHOLIC WORLD, NEW YORK 

xao-iaa inreat 6otli Street 

nUI PAIlL.fflBaQH,fnn»BH a OO.. Ltd., Drjdai HoiUM, 48 OmnrtSt, 8«kt, LoadOB, W 

rMr 1ft Fruoi tC IM OoMiM FnMitfaei: ARTHim SlYA^ 

r it 1ft "BtfM dft ■ wiitCatlioUq—,"76 Su dM Saliti^eTM, FMft.OQle 

BNTBKXO AT ICSW YORK POST-OFFICE AS SBCOlfXMTLASS MATTER, 



MY SPECIALTIES. 

Pure Virgin Olive Oil. First pressing 
of the Olive. Imported under my Eclipse 
Brand in full hajf-pint, pint* and quart 
bottles, and in gallon and half-gallon 
cans. Analvsis by Agricultural Depart- 
ment, Washington, showing absolute 
purity, published in Callanan's Magazine. 

L. J. Callanan's Eclipse Brand of 
Ceylon tea eclipses all other Ceylon teas 
offered in packages in this market, in 
quality and flavor. 

There is no better tea sold in this 
country than mv '' 41 " blend, quality and 
flavor always the same. No tea table 
complete without it. 

My •< 48 " Braid of Coffee 

is a blend of the choicest coffees imported. 
It is sure to please lovers of good coffee. 
No breakfast table complete without it. 
My Motto, Everything in Groceries, 
Altar Wines, and Cigars, everything of 
the Best. A visit to my permanent food 
exposition will pay you. Copv Callanan's 
Magazine and price list mailed on request. 

L. J. C ALLANAN, 

4 1 and 43 Veaey Street, New York. 



MONASH 
RADIATOR SHIELDS. 

Easily removed during the 
summer months if desired. 



spots on a wall are the dust staius above 
the radiators. 

Write for booklet, 

MONASH-YOUNKER CO. 

NJS W yORMt : CHIC A G O : 

86 Centre St. mom S. Canal St, 



Ask any of your friends 
who use 

LION cl"! iniLK 

If it is not the best they can get at any 
price. Also if the premiums they get for 
Lion labels are not really worth while. 

Your grocer now h^ Lion Brand 
Evaporated Milk in stock, and please 
remember that there is no better Evap- 
orated Milk made in this country or any- 
where, else. 

During April, we are opening three 

New Premium Stores. 

The stock of premiums is larger and 
finer than ever. 

Wisconsin Condensed Ulk Co., 

9Z dudsott Streetf 




THE 

UNDERWOOD 

STANDARD TYPEWRITER 
Originated — 

Writing-in- Sight Construction 

Built-in-Tabulators and 

Modem Bookkeeping Appliances. 

and Combines 

Originalit)', Stability, 
Speed and Adaptability. 

Before buying a machine that tries to imitate this origi- 
nal ** Visible- Writing" Typewriter, let one of our 
representatives have a few minutes of your time, at 
your convenience. He will not bore you, but will simply 
explain why IT IS 

Tie Machioe You 
Vili peniuaib rBoy 

UNDERWOOD TTPEWUnS COMPANY. lac 




THE 

CATHOUC WORLD. 

Vol. LXXXIX. MAY, 1909. No. 530. 

THE CHRISTIAN IDEAL OF THE HOME. 

BY JAMES CARDINAL GIBBONS. 

|T was only with the dawn of Christianity that the 
true ideal of the home received its full and perfect 
expression in the words of the Divine Teacher, 
Among the Greeks and Romans it had been the 
formation of the perfect citizen which was aimed 
at. That the child be taught to dare all things, suffer all things, 
for his country's sake — this was the goal. 

With Christ it was indeed a citizenship — aye, more, a 
brotherhood, which the home was to inculcate in a spirit of 
mutual love and forbearance. And just as Christ taught noth- 
ing else which He did not show forth by example in His 
divine life, so He has given us, in His own filial love and 
obedience to Mary and Joseph, the divine type of the Chris- 
tian home. 

It is profitable foir us to-day to heed well these lessons of 
the Home of Nazareth. Modern industrial conditions have 
loosened the ties which should bind parent and child with hoops 
of steel. And those sacred influences under which Christ grew 
in age and wisdom are oftentimes neglected or rendered in- 
operative through the indifference of parents and the besetting 
hurry of the age. 

To the mothers and fathers of families there is assigned a 
mission no less honorable than that of Joseph and Mary. Their 
offspring are the children of God, brothers and sisters of Jesus 
Christ, redeemed by His blood, and the parents are appointed 
by heaven their first apostles and teachers. Whether they will 

Ccpyrtght 1909. Tbb Missionakt Socistt or St. Paul thb Apostlb 
IN THB Stats or Nbw Yokk. 
VOL. LXXXIX.— 10 



Digitized by 



Google 



146 THE Christian Ideal of the Home [May, 

be teachers of salvation or of destruction, angels of light or of 
darkness, rests with them. 

The love and solicitude of Mary and Joseph for the Child 
Jesus is expressed in the words: ^'Behold Thy father and I 
have sought Thee sorrowing." And the filial obedience of the 
Son is made manifest in the short sentence : '^ He was subject 
to them.'* Herein are contained the two duties of parent and 
of child : the one of watchful, constant care ; the other of simple, 
ready obedience, of respect for authority, of reverence for age 
— lessons so needed to be learned in our day. 

The home is the primeval school. It is the best, the most 
hallowed, and the most potential of all the academies ; and the 
parent, especially the mother, is the first, the most influential, 
and the most cherished of all teachers. No human ordinance 
can abrogate or annul the divine right of parents to rule their 
own household, neither can any vicarious instruction given in 
the day-school or Sunday-school exempt them from the obli- 
gation of a personal supervision over their offspring. If Chris- 
tian training is eliminated from the home and relegated to the 
class-room, the child, when emancipated from his studies, may 
be tempted to regard religious knowledge as a mere detail of 
school work, and not, as it should be, a vital principal in his 
daily life and conduct. 

And yet I fear there are many parents who imagine that 
they discharge their whole duty to theiy children by placing 
them under the zealous care of our Catholic teachers. These 
instructors may supplement and develop, but they were never 
intended to supplant the domestic tuition. 

The education of a child should begin at its mother's knee. 
The mind of a child, like softened wax, receives first impres- 
sions with ease, and these impressions last longest. ''Train up 
a child in the way he should go, and when he is old' he will 
not depart from it." A child is susceptible of instruction much 
earlier than parents commonly imagine. It has the capacity to 
perceive and apprehend the truth, though unable as yet to go 
through the process of reasoning and analysis. Mothers should 
watch with a zealous eye the first unfolding of the infant mind^ 
and pour into it the seed of heavenly knowledge. 

For various reasons mothers should be the first instructors 
of their children. 

First, as nature ordains that mothers should be the first ta 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Christian Ideal of the Home 147 

feed their ofiFspring with corporal nourishment of their own 
substance^ so the God of nature ordains that mothers should be 
the first to impart to their little ones ^^the rational, guileless 
milk *' of heavenly knowledge, ** whereby they may grow unto 
Salvation " (I. Peter ii. 2). 

Second, the children that are fed by their own mothers 
are usually more healthy and robust than those that are nur- 
tured by wet-nurses. In like manner, the children who are in- 
structed by their own mothers in the elements of Christian 
knowledge are commonly more sturdy in faith than those who 
are committed for instruction to strangers. 

Third, the progress of a pupil in knowledge is in a great 
measure proportioned to the confidence he has in his preceptor. 
Now, in whom does a child place so much reliance as in his 
mother? She is his oracle and prophet. She is his guide, 
philosopher, and friend. He never doubts what his mother tells 
him. The lesson he receives acquires additional force because 
it proceeds from one to whom he gave his first love, and whose 
image, in after life, is indelibly stamped on his heart and 
memory. Mothers, do not lose the golden opportunity you 
have of training your children in faith and morals while their 
hearts are open to drink in your every word. 

Fourth, you share the same home with your children, you 
frequently occupy the same apartment. You eat at the same 
table with them. They are habitually before your eyes. You 
are, therefore, the best fitted to instruct them, and you can 
avail yourself of every little incident that presents itself and 
draw from it some appropriate moral reflection. 

The fruits of the realization amongst us of the divine beau- 
ties of the Home of Nazareth are not far to seek. The most 
distinguished personages who have adorned the Church by their 
apostolic virtues, or who have served their country by fine pa- 
triotism, or who have shed a luster on the home by the integ- 
rity of their private lives, have usually been men who had the 
happiness of receiving from pious mothers early principles of 
moral rectitude. 

Witness St. Augustine, the great Doctor of the Church in 
the fifth century. In his youth he had lost his faith, and with 
it purity of conscience. He was tainted with Manichaeism, the 
most pernicious error of the times, and he became a prey to 
the fiercest passions. Monica, his saintly mother, prayed for 



Digitized by 



Google 



1^8 THE Christian ideal of the home [May, 

him with a constancy which only a mother can exhibit. She 
hoped against hope; and before her death she had the conso- 
lation of seeing him restored to God and His Church. St Au- 
gustine attributes his conversion to her, and in his matchless 
book, the Confessions^ he speaks of her most tenderly. 

St. Louis, King of France, is another example of what a 
mother may do. As a monarch and as a saint he owes his 
virtues, under God, to Queen Blanche, his mother. *' I love yoo 
tenderly,'' she said to her child, '' but sooner would I see you a 
corpse at my feet, and Prance bereft ol an heir to the throne, 
than that you should tarnish your soul by a corruptible life." 

If Queen Blanche could pay so much attention to her son's 
instruction, notwithstanding her engrossing administrative cares, 
surely the mothers of to-day, in private walks of Hie, should 
find leisure for a similar duty. 

Nor need we look beyond our own country's first president 
for the fruition of that seed which was sown by a devoted 
mother. Washington was conspicuous for the natural virtues 
of frugality, industry, self-restraint, and respect for authority. 
Above all, he possessed a love of truth and an habitual recog- 
nition of the overruling Providence of God. And he gloried in 
declaring that these traits were impressed on his youthful mind 
by his mother, for whom he had a profound reverence, and 
whom in his letters he usually addressed as his ''honored" 
mother. 

If in our day we find the religion of Christ firmly rooted 
in the land ; if the word of the Teacher of Men has quickened 
and brought forth good fruit; if we see about us homes spir- 
itualized and sanctified by the radiance of the Home of Naza- 
reth, and lifted above the worldly and material by the memory 
of the Divine Exemplar^this happy condition is largely due 
to the faith and piety of Christian wives and mothers. This 
noble army of apostolic women ''are the glory of Jerusalem, 
the joy of Israel, the honor of our people"; they are the sav- 
iors of society and a blessing to the nation. 

It is true, indeed, that they are not clothed with the priestly 
character. They cannot offer the Holy Sacrifice or administer 
the Sacraments. But may we not apply to them the words of 
St. Peter : " Ye are a chosen generation, a holy nation, a royal 
priesthood " ? Yes, we may in all truth. They are consecrated 
priestesses of the domestic temple, where they daily offer up 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Christian ideal of the Home 149 

in the sanctaary of their homes, and on the altar of their hearts, 
the sacrifice of praise and prayer, of supplication and thanks- 
giving to God. They cannot preach the word of God in pub- 
lic, but they are apostles by prayer, good deeds, and edifying 
example. They preach most effectually to the members of their 
households, and the word of God scattered from the pulpit 
would often bear little fruit if it were not watered and nurtured 
by the care of our pious mothers. 

No more weighty obligation devolves upon Christian parents 
than that of recognizing and discharging conscientiously these 
fundamental duties of the home. It is a sublime task. '^ What 
is more noble,'' cries St. John Chrysostom, ''than to form the 
minds of youth ? He who fashions the morals of children per- 
forms a task in my judgment more sublime than that of any 
painter or sculptor." It is, indeed, a far more exalted task 
than that of sculptor or painter that is entrusted to fathers and 
mothers. They are creating living portraits, destined to adorn 
not only earthly temples, but also the Temple above, not fash- 
ioned of man's hand 

And therefore built forever. 

And mark well : home education does not mean merely those 
lessons in Christian Doctrine which are to be taught to children. 
The home should be pervaded by a religious atmosphere. It 
should be the sanctuary of domestic peace, sobriety, and parental 
love. Discontent and anger should b.e banished from it; and 
under these sweet influences the child will grow in virtue. 
Above all, let it be the asylum of daily prayer, and then the 
angels of God and the God of angels will be there. 

It is to the mothers and fathers of to-day that we must 
look for the realization amongst us of this Christian ideal of 
the home^the Home of Nazareth. They are doubly bound to 
seek it, if need be '' sorrowing "^as did Mary and Joseph. 
They are bound, on the one hand, by their Christian faith and 
the example of Christ; and, on the other, they owe a duty to 
the State. Thus shall they rear up for their country not scourges 
of society, but loyal, law-abiding citizens. ''If any one," says 
the Apostle, " have not care of his own, and especially of his 
own household, he hath denied the faith, and is worse than an 
infidel" (I. Tim. v. 8; Prov. xxxi. 28). Aye, more— he hath 
fallen short in his duty to his country. 



Digitized by 



Google 



HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER. 

BY KATHARINE TYNAN. 

Chapter V, 

A love-match. 

STA GWYNNE had brought her husband no 
moneyi and though she was of good birth, that 
fact so far had availed him nothing. He had 
been enchanted by her delicate prettinesSi meet- 
ing her day after day as she drove with her 
formidable old great-aunt. Miss Sophia Gtantleyi in her heavy , 
old-fashioned barouche. 

Miss Grantley had often other ladies staying with her as 
haughty- looking as herself; and James Moore had noticed that 
the little shrinking girl, with cheeks like the apple- blossoms 
and soft brown hair, always sat in the corner of the barouche 
with an air as tliough she were frightened. Sometimes there 
was luggage following the barouche from the station and Nesta 
sat built in with small parcels. Once there was a huge de- 
spatch-box or jewel-case on her knees, behind which she seemed 
to disappear. A very old and heavy bulldog leant his weight 
against the slender child. 

** Ugly brute ! ** muttered James Moore to himself, although 
he was a lover of animals. ''Couldn't he sit upright without 
her support ? " 

It was perhaps a sentimental grievance he created for Miss 
Grantley's pretty little grand-niece. The haughty old ladies 
were often kind to Nesta, and she did not at all mind carry- 
ing their boxes on her little knees, even if they were heavy, 
and the bulldog, Sikes, was a particularly good friend of hers, 
and Nesta reciprocated his affection thoroughly. 

Still, there was no doubt that Miss Grantley did not care 
very much for Nesta and that she was often selfish and incon- 
siderate in her treatment of her. As a matter of fact, Nesta's 
mother had run away with and married her music-master, and 
that was something Miss Grantley had never forgiven. Still 
she thought herself a truly Christian woman when she an- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her Mother's daughter 151 

swered the call to poor Stella's death- bed, and comforted the 
dying woman with the assurance that the little child, the one 
thing she had saved out of her luckless love-match, should be 
taken home to the Priory and reared as Stella herself had been. 

She did not love Nesta and, without regard for the girl's 
apparent air of fragility, she did not mind putting upon her 
now and again burdens her maid might have refused to ac- 
cept. After all, even such redoubtable ladies as Miss Sophia 
Grantley have been known to tremble under the anger of an 
old and faithful servant, while themselves being somewhat 
alarming to the rest of the world. 

Indeed any of the servants, much less Grice, would have 
grumbled at carrying the heavily laden basket which James 
Moore on a day just before Christmas, when the woods were 
all sprinkled with snow, took from Miss Gwynne's arm. 

She had looked as pretty as a picture in her brown velvet 
cloak trimmed with fur, and her large brown velvet hat with 
a touch of scarlet in it, when he first caught sight of her. 
She was indeed exactly like the young Lady Bountiful of the 
old-fashioned Christmas cards and Christmas numbers ; but the 
weight of the basket had bent her pretty shoulders and short- 
ened her breath. She had set it down and was still gasping 
when he overtook her on the woodland path. 

'' Excuse me,'' he said, ''the basket is too heavy for you: 
I shall carry it" 

At the same moment Miss Grantley was listening meekly 
to Grice's remonstrances on the subject of her great-niece. 

''Begging your pardon, ma'am," Grice said respectfully, 
but firmly, "you didn't ought to put on Miss Nesta so. I 
see the basket when Mrs. Kay 'ad packed it. Wot with jam- 
jars and that there port wine you 'ad of the grocer and the 
turkey, 'twas no weight for a delicate thing like Miss Nesta." 

" She said it was not at all heavy, Grice," said Miss Grant- 
ley humbly. 

" Don't you believe her then," Grice snapped. " I shouldn't 
ha' thought of carry in' it, not if it was ever so, and them 
there old ladies in the almshouses was never to see a Christmas 
dinner. Miss Nesta looks that delicate to me that I wouldn't 
be surprised if she was to go off in a consumption." 

"She is really quite strong, Grice, and has quite outgrown 
her old delicacy," said Miss Grantley in a small voice; but 



Digitized by 



Google 



152 Her MoTHEits Daughter [May, 

Grice only sniffed anbelievinglyi and drawing her mistress' 
white hair high over her head in the Pompadour style, which 
enhanced Miss Grantley's natural stateliness, she pulled it 
sharply enough to make the old lady wince. 

It was well Miss Grantley could not see what was happen- 
ing in the wood, where James Moore was carrying Nesta's 
basket as though it had been a feather-weight and he had a 
right to carry it, instead of being a stranger and a person who 
could have no possible pretension to Miss Gwynne's friendship. 

But apparently the attraction he had felt for Nesta had 
been reciprocated. There was not a handsomer man in the 
county, not one as handsome as James Moore. He showed to 
advantage when riding; and few women would not have no- 
ticed him as he passed by. 

There had been a day when the Duchess of St. Germains, 
one of Miss Grantley's visitors, who always boasted that she had 
an eye for a pretty fellow, had asked Miss Grantley: "And 
who is the handsome cavalier ? '' Miss Grantley had replied that 
it was a man who had a mill in the valley — a very enterprising 
and respectable person, she believed, but not a gentleman. 

Nesta had grown hot all over at the old lady's words, she 
did not know why. But the Duchess had peered out after 
the way his horse had taken, and had replied that if he wasn't 
a gentleman he looked like one. " He puts all our fine gentle- 
men to shame," she had said. And again, mysteriously, Nesta 
had felt grateful to her. 

She remembered the incident as she glanced shyly at James 
Moore, swinging along by her side down the snow-sprinkled 
arcade of the wood, between hedges where the holly-berries 
and the shining leaves were bright, where the robin puffed 
out his scarlet breast in the snow and sung his little song of 
hope and cheer. She felt at once frightened and exhilarated. 
Here she was walking by the side of a man to whom she had 
never been introduced, and who belonged to that great class 
outside their own little class which, in Miss Grantley's social 
code, did not exist. But how splendid he looked. There had 
been a light of wrath' in his blue eyes as they had rested on her 
basket which Nesta had thought splendid. No one had ever 
been wrathful for her since Godfrey had gone away. Godfrey 
was her cousin, as much beloved by Miss Grantley as Nesta 
was ignored and neglected. Godfrey had always taken her 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] HER Mother's Daughter 153 

part ; but these five years back he had been in India with his 
regimenty and Miss Grantley had never ceased to lament the 
hard necessity which parted her from her dear boy, while it 
allowed Nesta to stay at home. Nesta had had time to for- 
get Godfrey's Intercession for her in the old days; yet, being 
a grateful soul, she had not forgotten; but, instead, had ex- 
aggerated his school-boy decency towards her into something 
fine and heroic. 

'' They should not let you carry such things,'' James Moore 
was saying with a magnificent frown. ^' Where are Miss Grant- 
ley's servants?" 

Nesta's heart swelled within her. He was angry and for 
her I It was a long time since any one had cared enough to 
be angry for her or greatly concerned as to what she could or 
could not do. 

'' It is not really so heavy," she said with the brightness 
upon her face. ''And I am stronger than you think^really, 
much stronger." 

'' If I had my way," said James Moore bending his beauti- 
ful blue eyes on her, '' everything should be done for you as 
long as you lived." 

It was the beginning of a short and passionate wooing, a 
secret wooing, for Nesta knew too well what her aunt would 
think of a marriage between her and James Moore. It would 
have been a secret marriage, too, if Nesta had had her way, 
but James Moore would not hear of it. 

He had no fear of Miss Grantley, as he would have had no 
fear of much more august persons. He asked for an interview 
with her, and, that being granted, he announced that he had 
come to ask the hand of her niece in marriage. He had 
borne quite unmoved the storm of the old lady's anger at his 
presumption, standing with his handsome head inclined, his 
hat in his hand — he had not been invited to sit^and the 
something, not altogether a smile, upon his firm lips, which se- 
cretly enraged Miss Grantley, since it said that all this was 
merely the anger of an unreasonable person, something not to 
be counted with, that could matter very little to James Moore. 

'' Your father was a respectable man, Mr. Moore," she said 
at last in her exasperation. '' He would never have thought of 
enticing a young gentlewoman to meet him secretly. He did 
not lift his eyes so high. He kept to his own equals.'* 



Digitized by 



Google 



154 HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER [May, 

'' I have no knowledge of social differences/' said James 
Moore calmly. ''I only know that where I wish to attain I 
can attain. If Nesta had been a peasant girl it would have 
been the same. If she had been a Duke's daughter I would 
still have striven to make her my own, and I believe I should 
have succeeded." 

''You are very sure of yourself, Mr. Moore." 

** I am very sure. One or two things might prevent my 
doing all I mean to do. There is death, of course. He has 
stricken greater men than me." 

His amazing opinion of himself impressed her in spite of 
herself. That last proviso, now. With what an air of humil- 
ity he conceded those greater men. She had an idea he did 
not believe in their existence. 

She shifted her ground hastily. 

''Nesta has deceived me," she said, "as her mother before 
her deceived me. Take care she does not deceive you." 

" She is a timid soul," he replied. " I blame those who 
did not win her from fear. She will never be frightened with 
me. 

For the rest of the time Nesta spent under Miss Grantley's 
roof the lady ignored her. It was not very long. Within a 
few weeks' time, early in the New Year, when the thrill of 
hope began to be felt clearly in the air, Nesta Gwynne crept 
out quietly one morning to the church, where she and James 
Moore were made man and wife. Miss Grantley ignored it all. 
Nesta's few belongings were sent after her by the servants, who 
sympathized with her. 

Since then Miss Grantley had spent much of her time away 
and the Priory was let to strangers. When sometimes Nesta 
had a desire to make overtures to her aunt for peace James 
Moore discouraged her. 

"You are mine, not theirs, now," he said. "If she desires 
peace let her sue for it to my wife." 

It used to make Nesta smile. A little sense of humor had 
come alive in her since she had been fostered in the warm sun- 
shine of her husband's love. Her great- aunt sue — to James 
Moore's wife ! 

But to James Moore himself, although he had a rich sense 
of humor, the idea did not commend itself as a thing to be 
smiled over. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her Mother's daughter 155 

Chapter VI. 

MORE THAN KIN. 

Nesta had never iorgotten the chill which (ell upon her mar- 
ried happiness when she first came face to face with her hus- 
band's brothers. 

'^ They adore me, they will adore you ^' ; James Moore had 
said. 

She had never seen them till she came back with her hus- 
band to the old Mill House after a brief honeymoon. 
' There will be plenty of room for us all/' James Moore had 
said. ** Dick and Steve will squeeze themselves into a mouse- 
hole to make plenty of room for us. As soon as I have time 
I will build you a house. 

* She had had it in her mind to plead for a cottage, a lodg- 
ing anywhere, where they could begin their lives together, 
without others constantly with them. She had not spoken, 
however. Already she knew that she was just an adored child 
to James Moore, and that what she said would not weigh with 
him. So she held her peace, only praying in her heart that 
the time might soon come for the building of that other house. 

The brothers had frightened her at their first meeting. 
Her husband had not prepared her for their ugliness, their 
look of malformation, and it shocked her. Her repugnance was 
clear in her eyes. They had looked one at the other. Their 
glances had shown that they noticed her repugnance and re- 
sented it. Their resentment flashed out in contempt and dis- 
like. Why the thing was worse than they had thought. She 
had been rosy enough under James Moore's kisses; she was 
merry enough when they were alone together; but she looked 
a poor thing as she faced the tribunal of the two brothers, 
who had so passionate a devotion to her husband that they 
must needs be critical of his wife, even if she had cot begun 
by giving them mortal offence. 

It was three years now since that homecoming, and every 
hour spent under the roof with them had been shadowed by 
their enmity. They were coldly, awkwardly polite to her al- 
ways. James Moore saw nothing amiss with their manner to 
her. They were an uncouth pair of fellows, but sound at heart 
as his bulldog. Like his bulldog, they were kindnesi^ itself; 



Digitized by 



Google 



156 Her Mother's Daughter [May, 

but i{ any one menaced him, they would be at that person's 
throat. How could he suspect them of unfriendliness to the 
one thing he held dearest on earth ? 

The brothers were wise in their generation and kept their 
opinions to themselves. A poor weakling thing they thought 
Nesta, and quite unfitted to be the wife of their splendid 
brother. They had had other hopes for him. He should have 
waited a while, and married some one as near himself as a wo- 
man could be. Then hie could have lived with her in the fine 
house he was always talking of building ; and they would have 
stayed on in the old place looking after his interests, not 
intruding on the fine house and the fine wife, but quite sat-- 
isfied to remain in the background, building up Jim's for- 
tunes and the fortunes of Jim's children. 

And now they were grievously disappointed in Jim's choice 
of a wife. To Dick Moore, shaped like a Vulcan and darkly un- 
comely under his wisps of heavy black hair, as to Steve, scarcely 
less ugly though undersized and somewhat weakly, Nesta's del- 
icate prettiness would not have appealed at any time. She had 
^one nothing to build up Jim's fortunes. She did not look as 
though she would give him sons to carry on the fortune his 
head was erecting and their hands were helping^to build up. 

If she had but given James Moore a son, and a strong one, 
they might have changed their minds about her. As it was, 
she all but died in bringing Stella into the world, and had so 
serious an illness afterwards that it was little likely there ever 
would be a son born to James Moore. 

As long as she was in danger her husband went about— do- 
ing all his business, indeed, as usual^but with a drawn and 
anxious face that fretted his brothers to see. 

There had been a day when she all but slipped from his 
anguished hold upon her. Indeed one of the doctors who had 
been by her bed had said that she was practically dead, when 
her husband's cry to her had brought her back. 

Her extremity had not softened the resentment of the broth- 
ers against her. 

''If she dies," said Richard Moore, leaning his long, un- 
gainly arms across the gate by which he and Stephen watched 
the stormy west, with a low band of yellow in it which, was 
reflected in the mill stream. ** If she dies, he'll break his heart 
for her. And the bit of a girl like herself — a poor, puny thing 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] HER MOTHEies DAUGHTER 1 57 

with his strength in it. What's the good of Jim toiling for the 
Uke of her?'' 

'' If she was to die/' answered Stephen, the baleful light of 
the west in his snnken eyes, *' he might forget her in time and 
marry a woman big and bonny like himself." 

Nesta lived, and what was more, when she had finally taken 
the turn towards health, she throve, to her husband's intense 
delight 

While she was in danger of being lost to him he had hardly 
remembered his little daughter, who had been kept out of sight 
by her nurse. But when he had brought Nesta back from a 
eouple of months in a southern climate, rosier than he had 
ever seen her, he remembered for the first time to be interested 
in the child. 

He had given the baby to each brother in his turn to hold, 
while the nurse stood by smiling and Nesta looked on nerv- 
ously afraid that the inexperienced arms might not hold baby 
properly. She had been trying to argue herself out of her 
fear of her brothers-in-law. If they would only love little 
Stella she could forgive their jealousy of her. 

But the baby, who had curled so securely into her father's 
folded arm, cried with Stephen, cried more vehemently with 
Dick, while James Moore laughed at them for their awkward- 
ness. 

''You are to be to her what you have been to me," he 
said with the air of the king presenting the baby princess to 
his counsellors. 

It made Nesta smile with a delicate appreciation, but James 
Moore saw nothing to smile at. He had never been more se- 
rious in his life than when he commended his small princess 
to his brothers. 

*' If you two fellows should outlive me," he said, '^ I shall 
leave her in your hands. It is not as though she were a boy." 

'' It is not likely we should outlive you," Stephen said with 
a shocked air. 

''You have a better life than either of us," said the other. 

" There never were such devoted fellows," James Moore said 
to Nesta afterwards. " They would give their lives .for me, I 
believe, if I asked them. They were always like that, from 
the time they were little chaps. If I'm spoilt it is their fault. 
I was always the iun in their sky. They have never wanted 



Digitized by 



Google 



IS8 HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER [May, 

to make a life for themselves. They ase so entirely bound up 
in me. I should always feel safe about you, Nesta, if I had 
to leave you to them." 

''Why do you talk of leaving me?" Nesta said, irritably 
for her. ''You will live long after they live, long after I live. 
I was always delicate." 

"You needed my fosterage, my flower," James Moore said, 
smiling at her. " You are delicate no longer. You are grow- 
ing to be a rose, a red rose and not a white one." 

" It is your love, Jim," she said smiling. " I am so hap- 

py-" 

She turned aside leaving something unsaid. In her own 
heart she had a feeling that the brothers were a shadow upon 
her joy; but she would not grieve him by saying it. And, to 
be sure, they were faithful as dogs to him. 



Chapter VII. 

THE ONE WHO MIGHT HAVE BEEN. 

Lady Eugenia Capel was not long in redeeming her promise 
to call on Nesta Moore. 

She drove over a few days later, bearing her papa's cards. 
Lord Mount-Eden was judging at the County Cattle Show. 
He was a great authority on shorthorns, and the show was a 
sacred function, not to be missed on any account. 

Lady Eugenia was obliged to leave her horses on the other 
side of the little bridge, since her coachman flatly refused to 
take the responsibility of driving them across the bridge and 
between the waters. 

She had to stoop her head as she came in at the low door 
of Nesta's little drawing-room. She was of more than common 
tallness, and when she was in the room she looked too big for 
it, as James Moore always did. 

" I am so glad to come," she said, with flattering heartiness 
to Nesta. "I have really often wished to know you." She 
thought at the moment it was true. " And what a sweet house 
you have, so quaint and old-fashioned. I always think big 
rooms very unhomelike. I envy you this." 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her mother's Daughter 159 

She had thrown back her ermine cloak, and sat upright in 
her chair, looking about her with bright, interested eyes. The 
room itself was as Nesta had found it; James Moore's mother 
had thought it very fine. Nesta's books and water> colors and 
photographs, her piano with the music open upon it^the piano 
had been a Christmas gift from her husband — the deep blue 
vases filled with autumn leaves and a handful of old-fashioned 
chrysanthemums, her desk, her piece of embroidery, gave it an 
air of pleasant refinement it had lacked without. Yet one might 
have thought it too dark and low for a young and pretty thing 
like Nesta to inhabit. 

The little maid whom Nesta had trained brought in the tea, 
and Nesta found herself talking to Lady Eugenia freely. It 
seemed to her that being cut off so loqg from her own class, 
having led indeed a hermit's life since her marriage, she must 
have grown rustic and awkward. She responded readily to 
Lady Eugenia's frank overtures, and found herself talking to her 
as though they had known each other for ages instead of being 
acquaintances of two meetings. 

Lady Eugenia would have Stella down from the nursery; 
and her ecstasies over the child won the mother's heart. Stella 
was an ethereal child, with a little pale face set in wild hair, 
the very color of the chestnut leaves as they fall in autumn, 
neither red nor yellow, but a warm gold. She was a wise child, 
given to looking at people with inscrutable eyes of gray* blue, 
to saying quaint and solemn things, wonderful in the mouth of 
a child. Lady Eugenia listened with interest to the mother's 
stories of Stella's wonderful sayings. At first Nesta was shy 
of repeating them, but seeing her visitor's real interest in them 
she unpacked her little precious budget, which she had never 
shared with any one before except her husband. 

''She is a wonder- child I " Lady Eugenia said, with uplifted 
hands. ''Of course she is not like other children." 

"She looks delicate," Nesta said wistfully, "but she is not 
really so. She has never had any of the childish illnesses, and 
she cut her teeth beautifully. I was so alarmed about her teeth. 
Every one said she was such a delicate baby. She was so small 
when she was bom; and I was so very ill." 

" For the matter of that," said Lady Eugenia, " Goethe was 
so small that they could put him in a quart pot when he was 
born. Yet see what he lived to become. And your Stella 



Digitized by 



Google 



l6o HER MOTHER* S DAUGHTER [May, 

does not look delicate — only ethereal. She is a tall girl. Doesn't 
her father adore her ? *' 

** He is very fond of her. Of course I wish I could have 
given him a son.*' 

She sighed and fixed her eyes seriously on Lady Eugenia's 
face. She had almost let slip her secret grief that she could 
not hope to give her husband the son who ought to succeed 
him in his business. 

*'He must talk to papa about his little daughter. Papa is 
such a believer in daughters. You know I am his only one, 
and the title passes to a distant cousin whom he detests. The 
next Lord Mount-Eden will be a Radical peer. Think of iti 
Papa says he would rather have me than seven sons. I never 
give him any trouble. We are the best of good comrades. 
Whereas the sons of most of his friends and acquaintances are 
raining themselves on the turf or at the card- table. Billy Throg- 
morton, the son of his oldest friend, married a variety actress 
the other day. She has been doing cart-wheels amid colored 
lights at the Neapolitan. She has a song: ^ Would Yer Like 
to Come Along er Oi ? ' which is the vogue on all the barrel- 
organs. Stella and I are not likely to marry variety actresses, 
at all events." 

She looked whimsically at the spiritual* looking child, who 
was playing demurely with some of the toys her nurse had 
brought down with her. 

** Do you know," she said, with a change of tone, ** I should 
love to see the mills — may I ? I have a most unusual taste in 
a young woman for machinery. I am never tired of looking 
at it. When papa and I were at the Paris Exhibition last sum- 
mer he couldn't tear me away from the machinery. Odd, isn't 
it?" 

** Very. It bores me to extinction. I wish my husband had 
been here to show you over the mills. He would have been 
delighted. But he is away. However, one of his brothers will 
explain it all to us." 

She rang the bell for Stella's nurse to take her away, and 
then led her guest out of the house, through the garden by 
a green postern gate in the wall, and across a wide* flagged 
yard to the first long mill- building, with its long range of 
windows already lighted up. 

Inside such were the roar and rattle of machinery that 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her Mother's Daughter 161 

they cottld hardly hear each other speaking. The building 
seemed to tremble about them, and the place, to Nesta^s mind, 
was intolerably hot, noisy, and evil- smelling. 

She found Stephen Moore in the square, glass-fronted en- 
closure, which was her husband's office, and asked him, with 
a timidity which Lady Eugenia noted and wondered at, if he 
could show them over the mills. 

His face lit up oddly as Lady Eugenia placed her delicately- 
gloved hand in his. Something of animation, of interest, came 
into his expression, making him unlike what he had appeared 
to Nesta all those years. 

He was quite ready to show Lady Eugenia the mills. At 
first Nesta followed in their wake, climbing the steep, ladder- 
like stairs, going from room to room, crossing the dark, wet 
yards from one building to another. She never visited the 
mills. The racket and oily smell made her head ache. 

Presently, seeing they could do very well without her, she 
asked to be excused and went back to the house. 

It was quite a long time before Lady Eugenia came in, and 
then she was accompanied by both brothers. She seemed to 
find nothing amiss with her squires; and it would have been 
humorous if it had not been touching to see how she fascinated 
the odd, uncouth pair. 

She had enjoyed herself thoroughly and was very proud of 
her intelligence about the machinery. She had understood per- 
fectly all they had shown her; and had not minded the noise 
or the heat or the steamy vapors of the rooms where the 
workers toiled, half-clad, although out of doors the frosty twigs 
crackled under foot. 

'^ Our Jim ought to have married her,'* said Stephen to his 
brother, after they had escorted her to her landau, standing 
bareheaded while the sound of her carriage- wheels died in the 
distance. 

''If he'd waited he might have married her,'' answered the 
other. " What a pair they'd have made I " 

''Jim's wife can't bear the mills,'' said Stephen with a cur- 
ious bitterness. 

How surprised Lady Eugenia would have been if she could 
have guessed at this vaulting ambition for the beloved brother. 



VOL. LXXXIX.^II 



Digitized by 



Google 



i62 Her mother's Daughter [May, 



Chapter VIII. 

PROOFS STRONG AS HOLY WRIT. 

No one would have recognized Outwood Manor under a 
June sun — amid a profusion of June roses, the scent of the 
hay in the fields about it, the birds all singing^as that omi- 
nous house whose panes the stormy sky had set on fire one 
evening in November. 

The house, with its windows open to the shining air, had 
more than fulfilled James Moore's hopes of it. It had a kind- 
ly, cheerful look, hooded in creepers, the roses growing up to 
its gable-eaves, the white curtains stirring softly in the sum- 
mer breeze. 

Nesta Moore was sitting on the lawn, behind a tea-table. 
Stella was lying quietly on a rug at her feet, watching with a 
contemplative eye the play of the wind and the sun in the 
leaves above her. Opposite Nesta Moore, lolling in a low 
garden-chair, was a very well-groomed, close-cropped, handsome 
young man, whom one could hardly mistake for anything else 
but a soldier. He had just put down his tea-cup and lit a 
cigar, and he was looking through the spirals of smoke at his 
cousin's face with a lazy contentment. 

'^I never thought I could forgive you, Nesta,'' he said. 
'' Upon my word, when I got Aunt Sophia's letter I was com- 
pletely bowled over. I was to have played in a tennis tourna- 
ment that afternoon with one of the prettiest girls in India for 
a partner ; but I chucked it ; I chucked all my social engage- 
ments for a month. I dare say I should have chucked them 
for longer if some of the fellows hadn't routed me out and 
made me take part in a gymkhana. They said it was due to 
the regiment that I should. I assure you, I felt no end of a 
crock when I began, but—" 

''You felt better afterwards," said Nesta, with two demure 
little dimples in her cheeks. '' It was a good thing you went 
back to your enjoyments, Godfrey, for the sake of those poor 
girls." 

''I felt that myself," replied the young man unabashed. 
'' All the same, it was quite a long time before I cared whether 
a girl was ugly or pretty. Upon my wordi I'm telling the 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her Mother's Daughter 163 

truth, Nesta. It's horribly unkind of [you to laugh. After 
chucking me for a hulking brute like Jim Moore/' 

Nesta laughed again. Her cousin and her husband were ex- 
cellent friends. James Moore was quite pleased that his wife's 
good-looking cousin should be a visitor at Outwood, and in 
constant attendance upon Nesta. He laughed at him for a 
lazy beggar, always hanging after a woman's petticoats, and en- 
joyed, with a humorous appreciation. Captain Grantley's recital 
of the blow which had been inflicted on him by the news of 
Nesta's marriage. Nesta and he had broken a sixpence at the 
ages of fourteen and twelve respectively; and he could show 
the husband the tree in the grounds of the Priory where he 
had cut a pair of hearts, with Nesta's and his initials inter- 
twined and an arrow piercing them. 

They had humorous contests together when Grantley, who 
was a boy, and would be till he died, assured James Moore 
that Nesta would never have been his if he, Godfrey Grantley, 
had not been away serving his country. Then they would pull 
each other about in mock fisticuffs while Nesta sat looking at 
them, with peals of soft laughter. 

She was a different being since she had come to Outwood 
from the Mill House. The shadow seemed to have passed off 
her innocent days. 

She did not often see her husband's brothers now, except 
at the heavy mid-day meal on Sunday, which James Moore 
never could be induced to abandon. After dinner the brothers 
usually went for a long country walk together, leaving Nesta 
to her own devices. Since her cousin had come home on leave 
he stayed to amuse her on those Sunday afternoons, and the 
three would depart, leaving Nesta at the piano, and Godfrey 
Grantley, with his banjo on his knee, ready to sing sentimental 
songs with her. 

There was no friendliness between him and James Moore's 
brothers, as there was between him and James Moore. He 
looked on them as a dreary pair, not to be moved to laughter 
even by those songs to the banjo, which he sang with so rich 
an abandon. 

The two brothers would look significantly at each other as 
they followed James Moore from the house. The piano and 
the banjo were abominations to them on Sunday. They had 
been brought up in a strict creed, and, although they did not 



Digitized by 



Google 



1 64 HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER [May, 

trouble church or chapel by their presence, the old prejudice 
yet clung to them. 

The young man's presence in the house was a very pleasant 
thing to Nesta Moore. It had been a little lonely with Jim 
away so much of the time. Now it was like going back to the 
old companionship of their childhood. Godfrey's boyish in- 
consequence delighted and amused her. 

A maid came and took away the tea-table. It was delicious- 
ly lazy weather; the bees droning in and out the flowers, the 
hum of insects in the air, the song of a little stream just out 
of sight had a sleepy effect. Nesta had been laughing heartily 
at Godfrey's account of how Aunt Sophia had selected a non- 
alcoholic beer for his table-beverage, and of how he had the 
bottles refilled with old Burton. 

"The dear old soul/' he said, ''was so delighted at the 
number of bottles I drank, so pleased to know that she had 
really hit on the exact tipple that suited me I Upon my word, 
it was rather a shame. Myself and my partner in crime, old 
Job Lee at the village- shop, ought really to be ashamed of 
ourselves." 

Nesta was flushed and smiling. Godfrey was certainly very 
exhilarating, after those years without laughter at the Mill 
House. He had slid from his chair on to the grass and was 
lying with half-shut eyes at her feet. 

" Get up, you absurd person I " she said, dropping a rose 
on his face. 

He lifted a fold of her skirt languidly and put it to his 
lips. 

"Why didn't you wait for me," he said with closed eyes, 
"as you promised, instead of taking the hulking ruflSan? To 
be sure he's made of money and I shall be always poor. If 
you won't run away with me, I shall have to—" 

Something inimical, like a shadow on the bright day, crossed 
his half-jesting mood, and stopped his finishing the speech. 
He had been about to say that he would have to run away 
with Stella. 

He opened his eyes, and there — standing frowning at them 
— was Richard Moore. He looked oddly pale and disturbed. 

" Jim sent me to say that he could not be home for dinner, 
and that you were not to be anxious about him." 

His voice was harsh. His look of fierce condemnation 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER 1 65 

roamed from one to the other. With such a look might John 
Knox have rebuked Mary Stuart and her ladies. 

"You will have some tea?*' Nesta said, in a suddenly small 
and frightened voice. 

'* No, thank you ; I have to get back as quickly as] pos- 
sible.*' 

He lifted his hat awkwardly and turned away. 

''I believe he thought I was making serious love to you/' 
Captain Grantley said with a vexed laugh. 

But the animation and sparkle had died out of Nesta's face. 

''I wonder why they hate me, Godfrey?" she said help- 
lessly. ''I believe he saw you kiss my skirt and heard what 
you said about Jim." 

'^ Ah, well ; Jim knows it is all a joke." 

^^He won't say anything to Jim," Nesta said, lifting her 
head proudly. '' He dare not say anything to Jim against his 
wife. But — they whisper of me in corners; they look at each 
other with a cruel significance at times. Oh, Godfrey, they 
hate me." 

She suddenly burst into tears, covering her face with her 
hands. 

Godfrey Grantley was as much disturbed as Stella, who set 
up a quiet wail at the sight of her mother's grief. 

Richard Moore passing down the avenue to the gate had a 
glimpse of Nesta in tears and Captain Grantley kneeling by her 
trying to draw her fingers down from her face. 

(to be continued.) 



Digitized by 



Google 



THE PILGRIM'S PROGRESS AND SOME PRE-REFORMA- 
TION ALLEGORIES. 

BY KATHERINE BRfiGY. 
II. 

1^ turns back with a sigh to the wholesome and 

mstudied sanity of pre-Reformation standards. 

Excesses of imagination there were indubitably 

;hroughout the great Middle Age; and excesses 

;)f conduct, too ; but the source of life was sound. 

And the England of Catholic discipline, of vigil and holyday, 

was the only merry England the world has ever known. There 

is a little passage in The World and the Child (an interlude 

printed by Wynkyn de Worde in 1522) quite wonderful in its 

balanced wisdom. The Child has long since grown to Manhood, 

with the scars of full many sins upon his soul, when upon a 

day Conscience comes to remonstrate. And Manhood cries out 

in that old and heart-sick query: 

What, Conscience, should I leave all game and glee? 
Conscience: Nay, Manhood, so mot I thee, 

AH mirth in measure is good for thee: 
But, .sir, measure is in all thing 1 

That was the answer of the Catholic Church-^a very great and 
very simple answer. 

Now, in spite of its tendency to foster hypocrisy, there is 
no gainsaying the downright and terrible sincerity of the Puri- 
tan ideal. Bunyan spoke as the mouthpiece of a whole class 
of society — people of definite, even rigid piety, with a passion 
for '^profitable discourses,'' for finely spun if perverse meta- 
physics, and a vigorous determination to tone down the rain- 
bow pageantry of life to a pervasive and non-committal leaden 
gray. That was Christianity as they saw it ; for they had for- 
gotten the apostles and saints and martyrs, they knew not the 
Fathers, and the traditions of mediasvalism were anathema to 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Pilgrim's Progress 167 

them. On the other hand, we find the literature of the Old 
Faith for the most part exceedingly direct and elemental. She 
knew the heart of man, as her divine Founder had known, 
and needed not that any should tell her what was in man ! 
And so the weakness and the potential heroisms of human 
nature were ever frankly in her thought. Do penance and ye 
shall be saved— ^^zx, was the burden of the Church : her per- 
emptory yet consoling message to a world in need alike of dis- 
cipline and of solace 1 To quote once again from The World 
and the Child :\ 

Though a man had do alone 

The deadly sins everychone, 

And he with contrition make his moan 

To Christ our Heaven King, 

God is all so glad of him, 

As of the creature that never did sin. 

There^ in truth, is a simple and authoritative evangelism: and 
the formula of repentance held out to Manhood (or Old Age, 
as he has now become) is equally free from morbidity or vague- 
ness. He must "take him to abstinence,'' and keep in heart 
the Ten Commandments and the Twelve Articles of the Chris- 
tian Creed.. Verily, as Edgar Poe once said, *' Truth is not al- 
ways in a well In fact, as regards the more important knowl- 
edge, I do believe that she is invariably superficial.'' 

But the interlude we have been quoting cannot fail to re- 
mind the reader of a great and more familiar example — the 
moral play of Everyman. The allegory of this early Pilgrim 
was published some eight or ten years later than The World 
and the Child, but in method and in ideals it is thoroughly 
medisval. If (as a one-time editor has contended 1) it was de- 
signed ''to inculcate great reverence for old Mother Church 
and her Popish superstitions," it is the most vital and arresting 
apologetic in existence. It contains not one word of contro- 
versy, but a brief and highly dramatic allegory of man's sum- 
moning to death and judgment Long ago the ** most ingenious 
Dr. Percy " pointed out how '' in this old simple drama the 
fable is conducted upon the strictest model of the Greek trag- 
edy. The action is simply one, the time of action*, is that of 
the performance, the scene is never changed, nor the stage 



Digitized by 



Google 



i68 The PiLGRiAts Progress and [May, 

ever empty/' The characters, too, are conceived ia severest 
simplicity. They are abstractions as subtle as any of Ban- 
yan's, and yet, almost without exception, they are of a terrible 
and haunting reality. Those of us who saw the morality, as 
presented some years ago by the Elizabethan Stage Society, 
will need no reminder of this compelling humanity of the story ; 
nor can those be unconscious of it who merely read the lines. 
First is the brief yet noble address of Messenger, praying his 
audience to hear with reverence this moral play, ''which of 
our lives and ending shows '' — a matter wondrous precious, but 
with intent "more gracious and sweet to bear away/' 

The story saith: man, in the beginning 

Look well, and take good heed to the ending. 

Be you never so gay: 

Ye think sin in the beginning full sweet. 

Which in the end causeth thy soul to weep, 

When the body lieth in clay. 

Here shall you see how Fellowship and Jollity, 

Both Strength, Pleasure, and Beauty, 

Will fade from thee as flower in May; 

For ye shall hear how our Heaven King 

Calleth Everyman to a general reckoning: 

Give audience, and hear what he doth say. 

It is not merely the dramatic form, the superior condensa- 
tion of plot, which places this allegory so many leagues apart 
from Bunyan's. To the average reader these might even seem 
an added diflSculty : and the raison d'itre of Everyman is frank- 
ly to edify. But its atmosphere is at once freer, more poign- 
ant, and more poetic: as different as the atmosphere of — say 
medisval Oxford or Canterbury— from that of Nonconformist 
Bedford I 

Everyman himself is first seen walking blithely upon his 
way, his mind ''on fleshly lusts and his treasure,'* and full lit- 
tle upon that dread messenger about to intercept him. Death's 
summons strikes confusion, then terror to his heart; and so the 
terse dialogue wears on: 

Everyman: Full unready I am such reckoning to give: 
I know thee not; what messenger art thou 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Some pre-Reformation allegories 169 

Death: I am death, that no man dreadeth; 

For everyman I 'rrest^ and no man spareth. 
For it is God's commandment 
That all to me should be obedient 

In a sudden despairing hope the worldling essays to bribe 
his summoner, offering even a thousand pounds if he will defer 
this matter till another day. But Death sets no store by sil- 
ver or gold, and tarries not for pope, king, or emperor ; neither 
do Everyman's bitter tears avail him for a respite. The im- 
perious one but reiterates his call to judgment, demanding a 
little scornfully: 

Whaty weenest thou thy life is given thee. 

And thy worldly goods also? 
Everyman: I had ween'd so verily. 
Death : Nay, nay ; it was but lend thee : 

For, as soon as thou art gone. 

Another awhile shall have it, and then go therefro 

Even as thou hast done. 

Everyman, thou art mad, thou hast thy wits five. 

And here on earth will not amend thy life; 

For suddenly do I come. 

Then follows Everyman's impassioned search for a com- 
panion in this pilgrimage, with the refusal of Fellowship, Kin- 
dred and his worldly Goodes. It is only in a last desolation 
that he seeks out Good Deeds, where she lies prostrate be- 
neath the burden of his own sins. But if she may not rise for 
weakness. Good Deeds has a healing counsel to give ; she directs 
Everyman to iier sister Knowledge, who in turn leads him on 
to Confession. And Shrift is not vainly sought, nor without 
comfort ; he bestows upon Everyman a precious jewel, ^' called 
penance, voider of adversity," and likewise the scourge of Morti- 
fication. So in the name of the Holy Trinity, the pilgrim be- 
gins his strong penance ; and ere long he weeps " for very 
sweetness of joy," as Good Deeds is seen arising to his. aid. 
Knowledge has one more gift for Everyman — a tunic soaked in 
his own tears. 

It is the garment of sorrow. 
From pain it will you borrow; 



Digitized by 



Google 



I70 THE PILGRIM'S PROGRESS AND [May, 

Contrition it is, 

That getteth forgiveness, 

It pleaseth God passing well. 

When these bitter-sweet remedies have been wisely used, 
and Everyman passes out to receive the '' Holy Sacrament and 
Ointment together/' there is an interesting discourse between 
Knowledge and the Five Wits. It concerns the dignity and 
power of the priesthood; and while there are plain words for 
a few faithless shepherds, ''blinded by sin,'' its substance is, 
briefly, that no emperor, king, duke, nor baron hath commis- 
sion from God as hath the least priest in all tl|e world — 

For of the blessed sacraments pure and benign 
He beareth the keys, and thereof hath cure 
For man's redemption, it is ever sure. 

Everyman returns, pardoned at last, and the Death March 
is begun. A mortal faintness falls upon the pilgrim as he nears 
the grave; one after another Strength, Beauty, and Discretion 
forsake him, till only Knowledge and his Good Deeds remain. 
Then, crying out for mercy and commending his soul to God, 
Everyman suffers ''that we shall all endure." But the angels' 
song is heard " making great joy and melody " as the freed 
soul is welcomed into its heavenly sphere : and the last solemn 
lesson of the tragic story is summed up by the Doctor's epi- 
logue. 

We have been speaking with some insistence about the di* 
rect and practical simplicity of Catholic literature in those very 
Catholic days — about its bearing upon the fundamental facts of 
human life. That is one side of a great truth: but there is 
another side. Religion is not merely utilitarian. Its ultimate 
aim is not simply to make men virtuous, but to bring the soul 
into eternal union with its God. And so the simple merges 
and is lost in the sublime — the faith of stern, immediate prac- 
ticality is shown to be the mother of fair love and of mysti- 
cism. The mediaeval temper, at once so fierce and so inalien- 
ably poetic, understood this to a marvel. Throughout the stress 
and struggle of a semi-barbaric life it retained the most inti- 
mate if ingenuous familiarity with heavenly things. It seems 
almost a truism to reiterate all this in the face of Dante and 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Some Pre^ Reformation Allegories 171 

the Legend of the Graal ; yet it is a fact too little appreciated 
by the modern world. We may assert with reasonable certainty 
that echoes of the miracle play and the old mystic and roman- 
tic writings had sounded through John Bunyan's youth. His 
own work was the richer for them; but it is poor, indeed, be- 
side them ! It is poor first of all in ideas (though not in fancy), 
and then it is poor in all the rarer gifts of vision, of insight, 
and of ecstacy. The author of The PilgrinCs Progress was 
preaching, for the most part, what generations of his mediaeval 
precursors had been expounding — an allegory of man hovering 
between two eternities. He merely, and inevitably, translated 
it into the terms of his own age and his own people. It 
happened — for obvious reasons — that these terms were less 
beautiful and less spacious than those of the preceding time. 
These changed habits of thought are noticeable not only in the 
innovations and omissions of the reformers, but even in their 
attitude toward universally accepted truths. Perhaps they may 
be gauged most significantly at the two poles of the spiritual 
life, hell and heaven. 

Christian's entrance into the Celestial City has already been 
described, but from the Shining Men who lead him thither 
we may glean some characteristic details. It is a perfectly 
orderly and conventional picture of heaven. There the pilgrims 
will find Mount Sion, the tree of life, the innumerable company 
of angels, and the spirits of just men made perfect. They will 
see no more such things as they saw upon the earth, '^ to wit, 
sorrow, sickness, afiliction, and death, 'for the former things 
are passed away."' And upon the men inquiring what they 
must do in this holy place, it is answered: 

''You must there receive the comforts of all your toil, and 
have joy for all your sorrow; you must reap what you have 
sown, even the fruit of all your prayers and tears. . . . 
There you shall enjoy your friends again, that are gone thither 
before you . . • [and] be clothed with glory and majesty, 
and put into an equipage fit to ride out with the King of Glory. 
When He shall come with sound of trumpet in the clouds, as 
upon the wings of the wind, you shall come with Him; and 
when he shall sit upon the throne of judgment, you shall sit 
by Him; yea, and when He shall pass sentence upon the 
workers of iniquity . • • you also shall have a voice in that 
judgment." 



Digitized by 



Google 



ija The Pilgrim's Progress and [May, 

Then a compaojr of the heavenly host, and ''several of 
the King's trumpeters, clothed in white and shining raiment,'' 
come out to welcome the pilgrims, so that with melodious noise 
they mount upward together. And ''Oh," writes Bunyan in 
pious delight, " by what tongue or pen can their glorious joy 
be expressed ? '' The vision is touching in its simple sincerity ; 
but once more we are forced to observe how much of its sub- 
limity was owing to the Scriptures, and how crude or puerile 
the personal note tended to become. 

Now we know that the Puritans thought a great deal about 
future punishment (both for themselves and for others 1) and 
we might expect from them a certain eloquence on the subject 
of hell. Milton is no representative guide in the matter, be- 
cause he stood apart and aloof in his |ideals« dreaming his 
dreams as poet rather than as Puritan. So let us turn once again 
to Christian's experiences. It is when passing through the Val- 
ley of the Shadow qf Death that Bunyan's Pilgrim comes upon 
the mouth of hell. " And ever and anon the flame and smoke 
would come out in such abundance, with sparks and hideous 
noises (things that cared not for Christian's sword, as did, Apol- 
lyon before) that he was forced to put up his sword and be- 
take himself to another weapon called AH* Prayer. . . . Also 
he heard doleful voices, and rushings to and fro, so that some- 
times he thought he should be torn in pieces, or trodden down 
like mire in the streets.'' 

Beyond reproach is Bunyan's " high seriousness," but his 
imagination will stretch no further. Little was he akin to that 
earlier John — a thirteenth century churchman, and author of 
The Sours Ward.^ In this old homily we meet perhaps the 
most astounding Inferno in English literature. Fear, the lean 
and pallid messenger of Death, visits the Soul's Castle for the 
better admonition of its keepers: and Prudence (who ever 
knoweth best how to beset her words and works!) questions 
whence he cometh. 

" ' I come,' he saith, ' from hell.' ' From hell ? ' saith Pru- 
dence, 'and hast thou seen hell?' 'Yea, truly,' saith Fear, 
'often and frequently.' 'Now, then,' saith Prudence, 'upon 
thy troth tell us truly what hell is like, and what thou hast 
seen therein.' ' And I will, blithly,' saith Fear, ' upon my troth ; 
nevertheless, not according as it r.eally is, for no tongue can 

•C/. Oid Engiish H0mUi€s. Early English Text Society PubUcationi. VoL fl9-34. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Some Pre^Reformation Allegories 173 

tell that, but as far as I may and can I will discourse thereof. 
Hell is wide without measure, and deep and bottomless; full 
of incomparable fire, for no earthly fire may be compared there- 
with; full of stench intolerable, for no living thing on earth 
might endure it ; full of unutterable sorrow, for no mouth may, 
on account of the wretchedness and of the woe thereof, give 
an account of nor tell about it. Yea, the darkness therein is 
so thick that one may grasp it, for the fire there gives out no 
light, but blindeth the eyes of them that are there with a 
smothering smoke, the worst of smokes. And nevertheless in 
that same black darkness they see black things as devils, that 
ever maul and afflict and harrass them with all kinds of tor- 
tures. • • . There is shrieking in the flame, aod chattering 
of teeth in the snowy waters. Suddenly they flit from the 
heat into the cold, nor ever do they know of these two which 
is the worse for them, for each is intolerable. . . . And 
this same wanhope (despair) is their greatest torment, that none 
have never any more hope of any recovery, but are sure of 
every ill, to continue in woe, world without end, ever in eter- 
nity. Each chokes the other, and each hateth another and 
himself as the black devil; and even as they loved them the 
more in this world, so the more shall they hate them there/ '' 

But not Fear himself, though he had a thousand tongues 
of steel, may fully recount the terrors of this abode of woe. 
<< < Now, Lord God I ' quote Prudence, ' guard and preserve us, 
and direct and advise us what we ought to do, and that we 
may be the more cautious and vigilant to keep ourselves safe 
on each side under God's wings. If we well guard and keep 
our house and God's dear treasure that He has entrusted to 
us, let death come whenever she will, we need not be in dread 
of her nor of hell ; for our death will be precious to God, and 
entrance into heaven ! ' '' There is the sweetness, the sanity 
again 1 The mediaeval imagination has been stretched to its 
farthest bounds of terror (which carries us well into the super- 
lative degree!) and the fruit thereof is a healthy recoil, an 
instantaneous prayer for God's grace — no morbid introspection, 
not a shade of spiritual hypochondria. 

Even while speaking. Prudence beholds another messenger 
draw nigh, '^ very glad in cheer, fair and joyful, and lovely at- 
tired." It is Love of Life, the herald of mirth and everlasting 
life, sent from the Blessed God lest His children be over* much 



Digitized by 



Google 



174 THE PILGRIM'S PROGRESS AND [May, 

cast down by Fear. The soul's wards press about him right 
eagerly, praying that he tell them somewhat of God and His 
eternal bliss. But once again the infinite confounds human 
thought and human utterance. Not as He is, declares Love of 
Life, may God be seen, for beside His brightness the sunbeam 
is dark and seemeth a shadow. Only for a little while and 
through a mirror which shielded his eyes, might this messenger 
endure to gaze upon the Holy Trinity, three and indivisible. 
"'But somewhat longer I was able to behold our Lord Jesus 
Christ, God's Son, that redeemed us on the cross — how He 
sits blissful on the right hand of His Father, Who is almighty, 
and ruleth in that eternal life without cessation. So marvel- 
ous is His beauty that the angels are never satiated in, behold- 
ing Him. And moreover I saw plainly the places of His 
wounds, and how He showeth them to His Father, to make 
known how He loved us, and how He was obedient to Him 
Who sent Him thus to redeem us, and He beseecheth Him 
ever for mankind's heal. After Him I saw on high, above all 
heavenly hosts, the Blessed Virgin His mother, called Mary, 
sitting on a throne so very bright, adorned with gems» and 
her face so joyful that every earthly light is darkness in com- 
parison with it. • • . When I could no longer endure that 
light, I looked towards the angels and archangels and to the 
others that are above them, blessed spirits who are ever be- 
fore God and ever serve Him, and sing ever tinweariedly.' " 

Of all the nine hierarchal hosts Love of Life next tells the 
beatitude ; of the Apostles, ** poor and low on earth," but now 
exalted above king or kaiser; of the holy martyrs and con- 
fessors; and of the consecrated virgins, whose presence yields 
so fair a perfume that '^ one might live ever by the sweetness." 
And then Prudence entreats him to explain somewhat of that 
bliss which is common to all alike of the emparadised. 

'^They live ever in a splendor that is sevenfold brighter 
and clearer than the sun," answers the joyous messenger, ''and 
ever in a strength to perform, without any toil, all that they 
wish, and evermore in a state, in all that ever is good, without 
diminution, without anything that may harm or ail, in all that 
is ever soft or sweet. And their life is the sight of God and 
the knowledge of God, as our Lord hath said. That is eternal 
life^ He said, to see and know the true God and Him that He 
hath sent^ Jesus Christ our Lord. . . . They are so wise 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Some Pre^ Reformation allegories 175 

that they know all God's counsels, His mysteries and ^, His 
dooms. « • . They love God without measure . • • and 
each one loveth another as much as himself. So glad^they 
are of God that all their bliss is so great that no mouth may 
make mention of it, nor any speech discourse of it. Because 
that each one loveth another as himself, each one hath of an- 
other's bliss as much joy as of his own. . • • Take heed 
now then, if the heart of no one is ever able to contain in 
herself her own special joy, so marvelously great is the one 
bliss, how shall she accept so many and so great blisses? 
Therefore our Lord said to those that had pleased Him : Intra 
in gaudium Domini tui — Go, quoth He, into thy LonTs bliss. 
Thou must go therein altogether and be altogether possessed 
therein, for in thee may it in nowise enter.'' The SouPs 
Ward is a precious random jewel from the rich coffers of 
medisval lore, as notable for its refinement of thought and 
mystical insight as for its very colorful and vigorous imagina- 
tion* Right gladly must we all comply with that pious re- 
quest which brings the old homily to a close, and, ** par seinte 
charite, pray a pater noster for John who wrote this book." 

To what shall we attribute the innate wisdom which stretched 
from end to end mightily and ordered all things so sweetly 
throughout this religious literature of the Middle Age ? I think 
we must say, to the saints. The Church in every era teaches 
truth : but these children of her heart live the truth. They 
irradiate the beauty oj holiness^ and create a spiritual intuition 
which only centuries of unbelief can quite eradicate. In spite 
of much evil, a society which produces saints — or to whom 
God vouchsafes these miracles of His grace — must be at bot- 
tom a faithful society. And again, the people among whom 
saints move (although peradventure they may stone them I) 
will assuredly be unable to forget their influence. All the 
Christian ideals of conduct have been clinched and verified by 
the saints — those geniuses in sanctity, as Francis Thompson 
has called them. Walter Pater somewhere speaks of Catherine 
of Siena as transcending ''not by her rectitude of soul only, 
but by its fairness." That is a most significant tribute. For 
Puritanism, too, had its share in rectitude of soul: it was the 
ideal set before us with much earnestness and no little genius 
throughout The PilgrinCs Progress. But — fairness? The old 
sweet intimacy with spiritual things, fruit alike of meditation 



Digitized by 



Google 



176 The Supreme Venture [May. 

and the sacraments, bad faded from Bunyan's horizon. The 
old authoritative interpretation, and not less the old fervent 
and unconscious poetry, were alike fast fading. How much 
they meant — to art as well as to life — we find by opening the 
pages of these old Catholic allegories. They were written for 
frail people, for sinful people — that is to say, for people very 
lilce ourselves. They had many a quaint and curious turn of 
national patois. But they spoke the language of the saints. 
That, like the Pentecostal tongue, is at root the language of 
every nation under heaven. It is the language of high poetry, 
too: and somehow, even from the beginning, it has proved it- 
self the sole medium for transmuting a wistful yet reluctant 
world. 



THE SUPREME VENTURE. 

(Dedicated to one who describes himself cu ^^ waiting for the gift of faith.**) 
BY CORNELIUS CLIFFORD. 

Naked he falters on the hard wet sand, 

Dreading the roar and menace of the sea, 

Yet fain to breast its waves defiantly, 

A venturous swimmer far remote from land. 

How tauntingly the foam runs up the strand I 

The gulls overhead, how strenuous in their glee ! 

Shrill in their flight he hears Doubt's mockery 

Screaming disaster fell on either hand. 

Then, suddenly each muscle springs to play, 

Eager and quick the breath; his body's hue 

Gleams ivory and rose amid the spray 

Of one vast wave that whirls him from men's view, 

While, stroke upon stroke, he plies a perilous way 

Forth to the wine dark sea, Christ, to You. 

Siim HaU, South Otam^i, N. J, 



Digitized by 



Google 



IRELAND: A LAND OF INDUSTRIAL PROMISE. 

BY P. J. LENNOX. 

A.T notable improvement has been made in the 
social condition of the Irish people in Ireland, 
during the last quarter of a century, is a tact 
that is obvious to even a casual observer. To- 
wards this improvement many causes have con- 
spired. Foremost among these we may safely place the Land 
Act of 1 88 1 and subsequent land legislation. Owing to the in- 
iquitous land system in force in Ireland before the date named 
— a system that had its origin in the forcible dispossession of 
the Irish occupiers of the soil, and the *' planting" of alien 
colonists in their stead — there was no fixity of tenure, no free- 
dom of sale, no provision for a fair rent. 

One result was that, at any moment, for any cause, or with- 
out any cause — on the mere whisper oi some covetous or envi- 
ous underling, perhaps — a tenant who had no lease was liable 
to be evicted from his holding without the right to sell his 
interest therein, and without compensation in any shape or form. 
Another result was that, if a tenant was ambitious, if he im- 
proved his land and made it more productive, if he drained it 
and manured it, and trimmed his hedges and caused his dwell- 
ing-house and his out-offices to wear a neater look, he was 
almost certain to have his rent increased. And there was 
no remedy. It was a case of stand and deliver, of pay or 
quit. 

Everybody who knows even a little about Ireland knows 
that this is not an exaggerated statement. If we take up any 
standard work on political economy, we shall find that the Irish 
land system of the middle of the nineteenth century is held up 
to reprobation and stigmatized as the worst in Europe. But 
perhaps the most cogent proof that can be adduced as to the 
evils of land tenure in Ireland is to be found in the fact that 
five times in thirty-three years — from 1870 to 1903 — the Im- 
perial Parliament, setting aside the loudly-insisted- on sacred- 

TOL. LXXXIX.— 12 

Digitized by VjOOQ IC 




1 78 Ireland : 'a Land of Industrial Promise [May, 

ness of (alleged) contract, felt called upon to pass legislation 
on the subject. 

The Land Act of 1870 was a feeble attempt to remedy some 
of the most glaring defects of the system. One of its most 
important provisions was compensation for improvements in the 
event of eviction. But this Act was practically nugatory, and 
effected little, if any, real good. The Land Act of 1881 was a 
great advance on anything previously attempted. In addition to 
conceding to tenants ^'the three F's'' already mentioned, namely: 
Fixity of Tenure; Freedom of Sale; and Fair Rent; it estab- 
lished, in fact if not in name, the principle of dual ownership 
in land. In other words, it took away from the landlord the 
sole ownership, and, by conferring on the tenant or occupier 
a vested interest in his holding, made him a joint owner with 
the landlord. The Ashbourne Acts of 1885 and 1886 went a 
step farther, and provided for single ownership once more, but 
ownership this time by the tenant or occupier, and not by the 
landlord. 

These Acts established a public fund, out of which a suffi- 
cient advance was made to the tenant to enable him to pur- 
chase outright the landlord's interest in the holding. When 
that portion of the transaction was completed, the tenant ceased 
to pay rent. Repayment to the State of the amount of the 
advance, with interest on same, was arranged (or by terminable 
annuities spread over a period of forty-nine years. The im« 
mediate gain to an occupier of land who purchased under the 
Ashbourne Acts was that the annual installment payable to 
the State was far less — 20, 30, 40, 50, and, in ;some cases, 6a 
per cent less — than he had previously paid to the landlord as 
rent; the intermediate gain was that this. installment was to be 
decreased in amount every ten years; and the prospective 
or ultimate gain was that, at the end of the statutory term of 
forty-nine years, he or his heirs or assigns were to be the 
owners of the land, in fee, free of rent or installment, forever. 
These were splendid Acts, and, where they were put in force, 
they were productive of excellent results; but, unfortunately, 
owing, it is understood, to the inadequacy oi the fund provided, 
they were not nearly so widely operative as they should have 
been. 

Finally we have the Land Act of 1903, which — with some 
differences of detail, into which it is not necessary here to en* 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] IRELAND : A LAND OF INDUSTRIAL PROMISE I f 9 

ter — is, in essence, an expansion of the Ashbourne Acts. The 
Act of 1903 is not compulsory; but it evidently contemplates 
that, in time, ownership of land by a landlord shall be entirely 
abolished in Ireland. It provides that, at the end of a statu* 
tory period of sixty-nine years, the occupier of the soil shall be 
the owner thereof, in fee simple, while grass grows and water 
runs. There is no provision in this Act for the decadal reduc- 
tions, which were so marked a feature of the Ashbourne Acts ; 
but, as a set-off, the interest chargeable to the occupier is 
smaller, and the period of repayment of principal and interest 
combined is twenty years longer. The immediate gain is, how- 
ever, similar, for in every case the annuity payable to the State 
is considerably less than the amount formerly paid to the land- 
lord as rent; and the prospective or ultimate gain is, as will 
be readily perceived, the same. At the time of writing there 
is a Bill before Parliament to increase and expedite the opera- 
tion of this Act. 

With these improvements in the conditions of the tenants, 
with the fear of eviction and of the penalization of improve- 
ments removed, it is easy to understand that the old cringing 
spirit, the bowing and scraping to the landlord and his repre- 
sentatives, has gradually disappeared, and that there is in Ire- 
land to-day a manly, upright, self-reliant rural population. 

The second great cause of the change of public spirit in Ireland 
is the spread of education among every class of the people. The 
primary or National system of education, the secondary or In- 
termediate system, and the final or University system — while 
they all contain some defects which call for remedy, and some of 
which are even now being reformed — may be described as, on 
the whole, good. At all events, it is safe to say that since 
1879, when the Intermediate Education Act came into opera- 
tion, and since 1882, when the Royal University of Ireland 
was established by Parliament, great and notable advances have 
been made in the education of the Irish people. For children 
and youths who, for any reason, were unable to take advan- 
tage of either of those two advanced systems, the Board of 
National Education has provided what, taken all in all, we may 
class as a sound primafy education. All three systems apply 
to girls as well as to boys. The general result is that illiter- 
acy is fast disappearing in Ireland. 

Nor, among the causes of improvement, must we omit the 



Digitized by 



Google 



j8o IRELAND : A LAND OF INDUSTRIAL PROMISE [May, 

splendid work which has been done, and is being done, by the 
new, many-sided movement, which finds perhaps its most ade- 
quate expression in the Gaelic League. It is reviving — nay, it 
has revived — the old Irish tongue. It has directed attention to 
the legends, the folk-lore, the traditions, the history of the Irish 
people. It has brought into being a National Irish Theater. 
It has given a new stimulus to the intellectuality of the race — 
a stimulus which is in itself a priceless advantage. It has re- 
vived the old Irish indoor and outdoor pastimes, and thereby 
has helped materially to banish that insufferable dulness which, 
until recently, was a standing reproach to the country districts 
of Ireland, and which was one factor in driving the people 
away from the land into the large centers of population, or 
away altogether out of Ireland. This new movement is reviv- 
ing and fostering and developing Irish industries. In a word, 
it is endeavoring — and succeeding in the endeavor — to make 
Ireland truly Irish in every way, to make it a land to live in 
and for, a land to be proud of. 

Last, though not least, may be named, as a cause of the 
improvement in the social condition of Ireland, the decided 
advance which has been made in the question of temperance. 
There is still room for improvement, it is true ; but the general 
statement holds that we are fast advancing towards a more 
sober Ireland. The principal factor is a religious one. Priests 
have set themselves resolutely to grapple with the drink evil. 
In season and out of season they have inveighed against the 
abuse of intoxicants. By administering a total abstinence pledge 
to children of both sexes, generally at Confirmation, they have 
succeeded, to a very large extent, in getting the rising genera- 
tion to grow up uncontaminated by the drink habit. Reference 
to the drink statistics of the United Kingdom will show that 
the consumption of intoxicants per head of the population has 
been for years, and is now, far less in Ireland than in England 
or Scotland. A natural result of this spread of sobriety among 
the masses of the people is that the Irish are, and are becom- 
ing more and more every day, a self-respecting, prudent, thrifty, 
far-seeing race. 

The question now is: What is Ireland, regenerate Ireland, 
Ireland with this new spirit surging in her veins and animat- 
ing her whole frame, going to do ? Will she make the most 
of her opportunities ? Will she rise to the occasion, and demon- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Ireland : a Land of Industrial Promise 181 

strate to the world that her children, who have proved them- 
selves great in other lands, will also show themselves great at 
home ? 

The answer, it is submitted, must be in the affirmative. 
Ireland is a land teeming with natural resources. Her soil, 
generally speaking, is fertile; her climate temperate, with no 
extremes of heat or cold; her mineral wealth is by no means 
to be despised ; her rivers and her bogs are actually of great 
value and potentially of still greater; her seas are full of fish; 
her people educated, quick-witted, intelligent, adaptable. 

While the importance and the necessity of other industries 
to a country so constituted by nature must be fully admitted, 
the contention here made is that agriculture is, and must for 
long, if not forever, remain the principal industry in Ireland. 
As such it is deserving of the most earnest attention of the 
Irish people. Is it receiving such attention ? The answer is 
again in the affirmative. From the nature of the case, it is 
obvious that agriculture was never wholly neglected: people 
had to live, and although, from the causes already mentioned, 
it was impossible in times past to expect over the country in 
general a high standard of agriculture, yet a certain standard 
was always maintained. Encouragement towards better agri- 
cultural methods was given by the Royal Dublin Society; by 
the Royal Agricultural Society of Ireland; by the Northeast 
Agricultural Association; by the Northwest of Ireland Agri- 
cultural Society ; by the County of Cork Agricultural Society ; 
by the Flax Supply Association; by the various local Agri- 
cultural Societies which were established in different parts of 
the country, and of which there were forty*five in existence in 
1841 ; by the teaching of farming in the Agricultural College 
at Glasneven, Dublin, and by similar teaching on various farms 
worked in connection with model schools here and there through- 
out Ireland. 

While it would be unfair to underrate in any way the ex- 
ertions made by some of those bodies, and in particular by the 
Royal Dublin Society, yet it is not too much to say that the 
results achieved, speaking generally, were far from satisfactory. 
The proof of this statement is to be found in a dwindling pop- 
ulation and in a decrease of tillage. The efforts made did not 
seem to reach or appeal to the bulb of the people. 

The great change for the better was, however, more quickly 



Digitized by 



Google 



1 82 Ireland : a Land of Industrial Promise [May, 

evident when, in 1899, the Department of Agriculture and Tech- 
nical Instruction for Ireland was established by Parliament. 
This Department consists of a President, who is always the 
Chief Secretary for the time being to the Lord Lieutenant of 
Ireland ; a Vice-President, who is the real head of the Depart- 
ment; a Secretary; two Assistant Secretaries, one for Agri- 
culture and the other for Technical Instruction; and a num- 
ber of inspectors, instructors, organizers, officers, clerks, and 
servants. The significance of the fact that its offices are not 
in Dublin Castle will be missed by no Irishman. For the car- 
rying on of its functions the new Department received a cap- 
ital sum of about ;^200,ooo ($i,ocx^,ooo), and an annual endow- 
ment of ;^i 66,000 ($830,000), which has since been increased to 
;f 180,000 ($900,000). Its machinery was provided by the form- 
ation of a Council of Agriculture and two Boards, one for Ag- 
riculture and the other for Technical Instruction. It is beyond 
the province of this paper to treat of the work being done by 
the Technical Board. It is enough to say that in that most 
important matter of technical education, or the scientific teach- 
ing of arts, crafts, and trades, it is rendering excellent service 
to the Irish people. 

But of the agricultural work of the Department something 
must be said. A new era of popular government in Ireland 
had been inaugurated in 1898 by the passing into law of the 
Local Government Act, by which the people at large obtained 
a far greater share in the management of local affairs than had 
ever previously been the case. With these new conditions, the 
Department was, to a considerable extent, brought into touch. 
For instance, the Council of Agriculture is mainly elective. It 
consists of 104 members, 68 elected by the County Councils, 
and 34 nominated by the Department, with the President and 
Vice-President of the Department as ex officio members. The 
memberfi of the Council are elected for three years, and are 
bound by Act of Parliament to ^^meet at least once a year 
for the purpose of discussing matters of public interest in con- 
nection with any of the purposes of this Act.'' The Council 
has not only advisory powers, but it also creates the larger 
portion of the Agricultural Board. 

The Agricultural Board consists of fourteen members, of 
whom two, the President and the Vice-President of the De- 
partment, are ex officio members, four are nominated by the 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Ireland : a land of industrial promise 183 

Departmeat, and the remaining eight are appointed by the 
Conncil of Agriculture through its Provincial Committees. The 
Agricultural Board has '' the power of the purse '' to a very 
considerable degree. It is provided by the Act that about ;£'i75,* 
000 of the capital sum above named, and about ;^ 107,000 of the 
annual endowment are to be administered by the Department 
'' for the purposes of Agriculture and other rural industries or 
sea fisheries/' subject to the approval of the Agricultural 
Board. 

It must be clearly understood that it was not intended that 
the Department should be merely a body for the disbursing of 
a State grant in Ireland. Its function was summarized in the 
famous phrase — *' to help people to help themselves.'' Hence^ 
except in special cases, it cannot apply *^any of its funds to 
schemes in respect of which aid is not given out of money 
provided by local authorities or from other local sources.'' 
—Coyne, Ireland^ Industrial and Agricultural. 

Hence, again, local authorities, namely. County Councils, 
Borough Councils, and Urban Councils, are entrusted with con- 
siderable borrowing powers for the purposes of the Act, and 
are besides authorized to levy a rate of one penny in the pound, 
in addition to a rate of one penny in the pound under the 
Technical Instruction Acts of 1889 and 1891. A rate of two- 
pence — that is, four cents — in the pound all over Ireland would 
amount to about ;£*! 20,000, and ''as the Department's contri- 
bution to any particular scheme will in general be proportioned 
to the amount of local aid forthcoming, the local Councils 
throughout Ireland have the power of setting free a very con- 
siderable amount of money to assist in the work of national 
development" — lb. 

But the local authorities are not to be merely tax-raising 
bodies. They are to be the real executive. It is to Commit* 
tees of the local Councils, acting in conjunction with the De« 
partment, that is entrusted the task of the preparation and ad- 
ministration of all schemes for the furtherance of the objects 
of the Act. 

If what has so far been said is even partly clear, it is ob- 
vious that this is a popular Act, and is worked to a large 
extent by the people through their own elected representatives. 
If it is asked what the Department has done for agriculture 
in Ireland, the answer is at once fortbccming. Through the 



Digitized by 



Google 



1 84 Ireland : a Land of industrial Promise [May, 

various local authorities it has started a great movement for 
the better carrying on of every branch of farming ; e.g.^ it has 
given an impetus to the proper cultivation of the potato; it has 
directed attention to, and shown the necessity of, spraying, in 
order to prevent blight; it has pointed out when and howtbe 
crop may best be gathered and stored. In particular, it has 
started, in certain favorable districts of the country, a move- 
ment for early potato growing to meet the demand in British 
and Irish markets; it has secured better transit facilities by 
railway and steamship ; it has placed the early potato growers 
in communication with Scotch and English buyers. A concrete 
result of this action has been that, in 1907, early potato growers 
in Ireland realized from ;^30 to £j^o per statute acre for their 
crop. 

The Department has also directed its attention to improving 
the wheat, oats, barley, and rye crops, these being the cereals 
that are grown in Ireland. Mangels, turnips, cabbage, rape, 
and beans have not been neglected. The growing and handling 
of flax on scientific lines has been encouraged, and how impor- 
tant this is will be the more readily realized when we bear in 
mind the reputation of Irish linen and the extent of its manu- 
facture. It is interesting to note in this connection that the De- 
partment has in recent years sent deputations to Belgium and 
Holland to study the methods of treatment of flax in those 
countries, with the view of improving, where possible, the 
methods in use in Ireland. These deputations have issued ex- 
haustive and valuable reports. Hay and pasture have also come 
in for their proper share of notice. 

The Department has, further, directed the attention of land* 
holders to the cultivation of fruit, has supplied them with fruit- 
trees, such as apple, pear, damson, and plum-trees, with goose- 
berry bushes, currant bushes, raspberry plants, and strawberry 
plants, together with expert advice, all free of charge. It has 
shown how the resultant fruit-crop may be best cared for, 
handled, and marketed. It has given special study to the im- 
provement of the breeds of horses, cattle, sheep, and swine. 
It has focussed the attention of the people — especially of cot- 
tiers and other small landholders — on the profit to be derived 
from horticulture, bee-keeping, and poultry- keeping. It has 
caused instruction to be given in every section of the country 
in the correct methods of butter-making and in various forms 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Ireland : a Land of Industrial Promise 185 

of domestic economy. It has insisted on the paramount neces- 
sity of proper winter dairying. It is helping tobacco*growing. 
It is giving attention to agricultural co-operation. It has aided 
in the establishment and working of agricultural credit socie- 
ties. Of such societies 258 were in existence on the 30th of 
September. 1907. 

The methods of operation of the Department are threefold. 
It provides education in agricultural methods in fixed institu- 
tions, such as the Royal College of Science, Dublin ; the Al- 
bert Agricultural College, Glasneven; the Munster Institute, 
Cork; and at some forty agricultural stations, agricultural 
schools for boys and girls, and dairy schools in different parts 
of the country. Its second method — and perhaps its most im- 
portant — is education of the people in improved agricultural 
methods by means of itinerant instructors, that is, by bringing 
the expert to the farmer's very door. Its third method is by 
means of publication, by which is to be understood the issue of 
reports, journals, and statistics, the posting of notices in con- 
spicuous places and on public buildings, and the printing of 
leaflets. These posters and leaflets give instruction in every 
branch of agriculture and the allied industries. The leaflets 
can be had free of charge and post-free, and the letter of 
application for a leaflet need not bear any postage stamp. 
There are some ninety-three leaflet publications in all, and they 
run through the whole range of agriculture, dealing with cat- 
tle, sheep, swine, poultry, fruit, weeds, cereal crops, root crops, 
manures, bee-keeping, forestry, and dairying. Nor is this all. 
The heads of the Department are no mere theorisers. They and 
their officials come into direct personal contact with the people, 
and teach them, guide them, encourage them. 

While much has been already done for the improvement 
of agriculture, much more remains to do. One of the greatest 
problems in agricultural matters that confronts Irishmen is, how 
to get back into cultivation the land that, either on set pur- 
pose or through mere '^ drift,'' for want of population and 
therefore of laborers, has been allowed to go into pasturage. 
The problem is great, because the field of operation is so 
large. It is notorious that, since the middle of the nineteenth 
century, more and more of the soil of Ireland has been with- 
drawn from tillage. What may not be so generally known or 
remembered is that a movement in that direction was already 



Digitized by 



Google 



l86 IRELAND : A LAND OF INDUSTRIAL PROMISE [May, 

in drastic operation as early as the first part of the eighteenth 
century. 

A number of Ulster Irishmen were forced to fly to Amer- 
ica from the tyranny and inhumanity of landlords between 1718 
and 1730. Prior to the latter date there were in the interior 
of the State of Pennsylvania townships called Derry, Donegal^ 
Tyrone, and Coleraine — names sufficiently indicative of the 
nationality, and even of the province, of their founders. The 
reason for their flight from Ireland to America and the West 
Indies we have on the authority of Archbishop Boulter. Writ- 
ing to the Duke of Newcastle on the 23d of November, 1728, 
he says that *' daily in some counties many gentlemen (as their 
leases fall into their hands) iU up their tenants from tillage** ; 
and he adds that ''so many venture into foreign service • . • 
because they can get no land t$ till at home** Skelton gives 
practically the same testimony. Reading those statements we 
are reminded of the English Lord Lieutanant General and Gen- 
eral Governor of Ireland, who expressed the pious wish that 
Ireland might become '' the fruitful mother of flocks and herds '' ; 
and of the more sinister triumphant paean of the London Times 
when, in a later day, it boasted that '' the Celt is going^go- 
ing with a vengeance.'' 

How great the problem mentioned is to-day may be best 
judged from the consideration of a few official figures. There 
are in Ireland 20,350,725 statute acres, including 117,135 acres 
under water, but excluding 487,418 acres under the large riv- 
ers, lakes, and tideways. Of these 20,350,725 acres, 1,294,991 
acres were, in 1907, under cereal crops; 1,002,980 under root 
and green crops; 59,659 under flax ; 11,449 under fruit; 512,- 
666 under first year's meadow; 314,188 under second and third 
year's meadow; 1,454,464 under permanent meadow, or a total 
of 2,281,318 under meadow; 1,328,808 under rotation pasture 
(up to five years); 8,650,388 under permanent pasture (five 
years and over); 2,453,899 under grazed mountain land, or a 
total of 12,433,095 under pasture; the lowest and least profit- 
able form of agriculture; 306,661 under woods and plantations; 
and 2,960,572 under bog and marsh, barren mountain land, 
waste, etc. 

Now, no one will for a moment seek to deny the import- 
ance of the cattle, sheep, and horse trade to Ireland. If any 
one sought to do so, the figures would be against him. In 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Ireland : a land of industrial promise i 87 

1907 there were in Ireland 4,676^493 cattle, 3,816,609 sheep, 
and 596,144 horses. In the same year there were exported to 
Great Britain from Ireland 841,973 cattle, 660,415 sheep, and 
339^53 horses, representing, on a moderate basis of calculation, 
an annual trade of some 1,2500,000 pounds sterling, or 62,500,- 
000 dollars. N»w, no sane man, who had the welfare of Ire- 
land at heart, would wish to do away^with so profitable a trade 
as the live stock trade would, from those figures, appear to be 
for Ireland. But, in suggesting that the area under permanent 
pasture should be decreased, and the area under tillage corre- 
spondingly increased, not even a hint is given at a diminution 
in the breeding, raising, and out-putting of live stock. Rather 
a substantial increase therein is contemplated. What is here 
maintained is that to have, in round numbers, a total of twelve 
and a half millions of acres, out of a grand 'total of twenty 
and a half millions, or over sixty per cent of the whole, under 
pasture is a sufficiently alarming symptom. It is heightened 
by the consideration that, comparing 1907 with 1851, we find 
a decrease in the acreage under cereal crops, green crops, flax, 
and hay, of 1,220,003 acres, or 20.8 per cent; and, if we com- 
pare such neighboring dates as 1898 and 1907, we find a de- 
crease of 65,912 acres, or 1.4 per cent, under the same crops. 

To stop this general decrease in tillage, to turn it into an 
increase, should be the aim and object of every one interested 
in Ireland. In doing so, we need not reduce the numbers of 
live stock, but we can on the contrary materially add to them. 
Under a really good system of intense tillage farming, such as 
is carried on in Belgium, for example, we should get to house- 
feeding live stock on a larger scale in winter, and to feeding 
them in summer on vetches and other soiling crops, for which 
the Irish climate is specially suited. Thus, in time, we should 
increase, not diminish, live stock raising, and, at the same 
time, largely increase the tillage-area and the population, and, 
with the population, the power and the prosperity of the Irish 
nation. 

That the authorities in Ireland are quite alive to the require- 
ments of the situation is evidenced in many ways. For instance, 
on the 15th of February, 1908, Mr. T. P. Gill, Secretary of 
the Department, delivered an address in the Town Hall of Tip- 
perary to a largely attended meeting of the County Tipperary 
Farmers' Association on the subject of '*The Farmer and the 



Digitized by 



Google 



1 88 IRELAND : A LAND OF INDUSTRIAL PROMISE [May. 

Laborer." " Labor, labor,'* said he, " give more labor to the 
land, and you will enrich yourselves and your country." In 
that last sentence Mr. Gill struck the right note. Self-interest 
here, as everywhere else, comes into play. All the talk in 
the world will not make a man grow turnips or wheat, as long 
as he thinks that grazing bullocks will pay him better. But if 
he could be once made to understand that the turnips and wheat 
would give him a better return than the bullocks ; if, especially^ 
it could be shown that he could feed his bullocks while grow- 
ing turnips and wheat, and that thus his profit would be in- 
creased well-nigh two-fold, it would need no apostle of a new 
evangel to convert the grazier into a tillage- farmer. 

At all events, by whatever method it is to be effected, the 
crying necessity of the moment in agricultural Ireland is to get 
more land under cultivation. Successful agriculture is the basis 
of prosperity in any country. Factories and other industries 
quickly follow the successful tillage- farmer; and with the new, 
up-to-date, and scientific methods of soil-treatment in use all 
over the island, we might confidently look to see Ireland not 
only a great agricultural country, but also a great center of in- 
dustrial development. 



Digitized by 



Google 



THE TEACHING OF THE "FIORETTI." 

BY FATHER CUTHBERT. O.S.F.C. 

I HAT delightful work, the Fioretti di San Francesco^^ 
has won a world's homage by its idyllic grace 
and simple sincerity, and yet one wonders at 
times how far its real message has been under- 
stood. Amongst the many who confess its 
beauty, how many acknowledge its truth? ^' A delightful dream, 
but too far removed from life to be of practical use/' was the 
verdict of one. Had Ugolino Brunforti, or whoever it was 
that compiled this book, heard the verdict, one can imagine the 
amazement, the pain as of an unexpected blow, with which it 
would have struck his candid soul. For to him this chronicle 
of his was the statement of what had truly been upon the 
earth, and he had written it that future generations might re- 
member that the promised kingdom of God had really been 
found amongst men whose memory was as yet fresh in the 
Marches of Ancona.t And to what more practical use could a 
man put his pen than to encourage his fellow- mortals to take 
up the yoke of the Gospel by setting before them something 
of the beauty of life which it brings men even here on earth? 
The writer of the Fioretti did not set himself to write a new 

* There are several English translations of the Fioretti. In 1899 Professor Arnold pub- 
lished a translation in Dent's Temple Classics ; in 1906 a new version by W. Heywood was 
issued by Methuen, London. But the version which, in the writer's opinion, approaches most 
nearly to the simplicity of the original, is that published in 1900 by the Catholic Truth Society, 
London, and based upon a translation issued by the Franciscan Friars at Upton. This same 
version has been published by Kegan Paul, with illustrations by Paul Woodnjffe. All these 
translations are entitled TAe Little Flowers of St, Francis. There is some controversy 
as to whether the Italian word Fioretti, as used to designate a collection of stories or his- 
torical pictures, is rightly translated " little flowers " ; but the term " little flowers " has come 
to stay, whatever the purists in language may hold. 

t It may be well to state for those who are not conversant with Fcanciscan literature, that the 
Fioretti owes its origin to a friar of the Marches of Ancona, who wrote do\^Ti the traditions 
which, in his day, were still current amongst the brethren of that province. According to M. 
P. Sabatier the original Latin text is incorporated in the Actus B, Francisci, compiled early in 
the fourteenth century. The incidents taken from the life of St. Francis seem to have been 
delivered orally by the saint's companions to the brethren in the Marches ; this oral tradition 
explains many of the characteristic features of the Fioretti; «.^., its blending of substantial 
historical accuracy with occasional inaccuracy in matters of detail. 



Digitized by 



Google 



190 THE TEACHING OF THE '' FlORETTI** [May, 

Gospel, but only to gather some of the flowers it has pastured. 
The Gospel he sets forth, or rather assumes, is but the Gospel 
delivered by Christ to the Apostles; to be observed by all 
Christians. But he would have us know how this Gospel, fall- 
ing upon good ground amongst the early Franciscans of Umbria 
and the Marches, produced fruit of much excellence, and how 
in the lives of these brethren the poor and the suffering, the 
clean of heart and the peacemaker, found their beatitude; in- 
cidentally he tells us in what way they individually came into 
the beatitude, and thus he has woven into the paean of his 
praise some indication of the wayfarer's true wisdom. 

But the Fioretti is an ascetical treatise by accident, and 
therefore perhaps for some it is all the more convincing, cer- 
tainly the more attractive. For there are those who suspect 
too didactic a method in books which treat of men's souls, and 
are more grateful for inspiration than for regulation in their 
spiritual reading. They will not be driven; they seek to be 
drawn. Now the writer of the Fioretti has no thought of driv- 
ing anybody ; he sets the brethren before us as one who would 
say : '' Look and see the beauty of their lives and withhold your 
admiration, if you can I " Only in his heart a sense of disap- 
pointment will surely arise if, beholding and admiring, you do 
not become the better Christian — the better Christian, that is 
to say, in the way he understands the word, and as St. Francis 
taught him to understand it, as signifying one who seeks to be 
conformed in mind and heart unto the ^'Blessed Lord Christ.'' 

It has been frequently remarked of the early companions of 
St. Francis that in the transfiguring atmosphere of the presence 
of their leader, Umbria became to them as Galilee, and in the 
company of Francis they walked as by the side of Christ, for 
the saint had so permeated their thought with the idea of the 
Incarnate Word, that in all earthly things they beheld the 
glory and the tragedy of our Lord's redemptive life on earth. 
The world was to them a canvas on which was imprinted in 
life* colors the story of the Incarnation and Redemption. It 
was as though they had seen their Divine Master and could 
see nothing save in its reference to Him. For them the joy 
and the sorrow, the hope and despair of mortals had been 
flooded with a new revealing light, which was Christ the Lord 
of Life. The Incarnation and its earth story was the new 
world, which held not only their reason, but took utterly cap- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Teaching of the '* Fioretti'* 191 

tive their imagination; so utterly did it dominate their whole 
personality. 

At no time in the history of Christendom, at least since 
the earliest age, has the story of the Gospel obtained such im- 
aginative h^ld on the mind as it did in the Umbrian revival; 
never did men so realize, without mental effort, the Incarnate 
Word assuming into His own earthly life and passion the life 
and passion of all creation. To them the sorrow of the broken- 
hearted man was not merely a figure of the sorrow of Christ, 
but part of the sorrow of Christ, Who had taken it to himself 
whilst yet it remained in*the heart of the weeper; and the life 
that fluttered in the birds of the air or exulted in the exuber- 
ance of field and sky, even this to them was sacred, because it 
ran by mysterious law into the life of man, and through man 
into the life of the God made|Man. And the sin of the world, 
they saw its ultimate issue in the death on Calvary; yet in 
that death they felt palpably the enduring tragedy of Divine 
Love on earth and the crucifixion of all that is holy gathered 
into the heart of their dying Lord. And all this they appre- 
hended, and have said, not by logical effort but imaginatively 
and affectively. St. Francis was their interpreter; and some- 
thing more than their interpreter. His life was the needed 
word which had revealed this Gospel-life unto them, but into 
which they had plunged as into their native element, so re- 
sponsive to it was their spiritual temperament. 

Hence, as they stand revealed to us in the pages of the 
Fioretti, these men are so simply human, yet so God- like; they 
belong quite evidently to the earth, yet heaven seems already 
about them. One thing, however, is at once clear; they are 
not of the world; they have no place in the ordinary society 
of men; they dwell in a world of their own; and apparently 
they make no compromise with the other world. This is per* 
haps the chief reason why the Fioretti has been deemed an 
unpractical book ; because its heroes make no compromise with 
ordinary life, but are wholly engrossed in a world of their 
own. 

But added to this spiritual aloofness of the Fioretti from 
the common world, there is also what I may term its poetical 
aloofness. Those brethren of Umbria and the Marches appre- 
hended the truth imaginatively as poets do, and in the direct 
simplicity and -sincerity of their souls they sought to live the 



Digitized by 



Google 



192 The Teaching of the '* Fiofettj'' [May, 

truth as they saw it, as poets frequently do not. They were 
as conservative as lovers in cherishing whatever bears witness 
to their minds and senses of the object of their love; and they 
were as unreasoning as lovers in the simple trustfulness with 
which they accepted the ideal as it came to them, ready to 
see virtue even in apparent defect. And so they cast aside 
remorselessly the prudence of the world and its forethought in 
a blind trust in the providence of our Father in heaven; they 
sell their goods and distribute the proceeds to the poor, be- 
cause Christ had said it; they will not have a house they can 
call their own, because the Son of Man had not where to lay 
His head. They ask no further question once they have 
heard the word of Christ, but proceed to act upon it with a 
jealous literalness. 

With men of a different temperament or soul-condition this 
unreasoning literalness would be affectation; with them it is 
mere loyalty; because they are in that elemental condition of 
discipleship when truth and assurance come in vision, and men 
look and are held captive by the glory which they see. In 
this condition of soul men hold fast by the word or gesture in 
which the glory is conveyed to them; they will not think to 
analyze it lest the clearness of their vision be dimmed by the 
distraction of their mind; they do not feel the need to analyze 
because of the assurance they already have. All they are 
solicitous for is to keep hold of the truth as it has come down 
to them. Theirs is not the critical temper. They are akin to 
the child, the poet, and the lover; and so they stand aloof 
from the world which questions and holds in doubt, which 
reasons out things and accepts truth only in the form of a 
scientific deduction. And so it is that if we would learn from 
the Fioretti, we too must come prepared not with the critical 
faculty, but with that faculty of intuitive understanding and 
sympathy with which the Fioretti itself scans its own life. 

Further, there is the geographical coloring, which is apt to 
prove a hindrance to the apprehension of the spiritual teaching 
of the Fioretti to those who are not native to Umbria and the 
Marches. The narratives are simply steeped in local color, 
which easily delights the fancy but at the same time creates 
an illusion of distance — moral as well as physical. But to 
understand such men as figure in these legends, one must 
move amongst them, not merely observe from*afar; the illu- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] THE TEACHING OF THE ** FlORETTl'' 193 

sion of distance must be broken in the assertion of human 
sympathy; you must look to the men rather than to the 
landscape on which they move; though, if you know how 
rightly to look upon it, the landscape will help you to under- 
stand the men. But once you have put yourself in sympathy 
with the Fioretii you discover that it is no mere idyl of the 
thirteenth century or of Umbria and the Marches; it reveals 
itself as a poem of Christian life in its awakening to the beauty 
of Christ and its abandonment of itself to His love. Such 
awakenings occur constantly in the Church in individual souls; 
they are the beginnings of that conscious life in Christ which 
St. Paul refers to when he said: ''I live, and yet not I but 
Christ liveth in me''; for in this state the entire inspiration 
and motive of the soul come from its Lord realized as the 
soul's desired. Of this awakening one of the marks is an un- 
doubting, nay, eager acceptance of the word of our Lord as the 
ultimate wisdom; another mark is a vivid apprehension of the 
person of Christ; and yet another mark is the habitual and 
spontaneous reference of all experience to Him as its final ar- 
biter and beatitude. In this condition of soul, worship is the 
active principle, as it was with Mary when she sat at the feet 
of Jesus, drinking in His every word. 

It was a soul-awakening of this kind which gave character 
to the Franciscans, and in the revival of religion associated 
with them it attained to an elemental clearness and intensity, 
so that all emotions and activities of life were absorbed into a 
delight in the person of our Lord and His teaching, and into 
the desire to be conformed unto Him. Almost on every page 
of the Fiofitti is this delight and this purpose imprinted. Quite 
naively and simply the compiler lets us see that the glory of 
of St Francis and his brethren is in their conformity with 
^' the Blessed Christ," that if there is beauty in their lives it is 
the beauty of Christ shining in them. The opening chapter 
begins: ''In the first place, let us consider how the glorious 
St. Francis, in all the acts of his life, was conformed to the 
life of that Blessed Christ." Again and again, as though the 
dominant idea will not be repressed, he interposes such phrases 
as these when about to relate some incident to the praise of 
St. Francis: "The glorious poor little one of Christ"; "That 
most devout servant of the Crucified " ; *' The true servant of 
Christ; ... in some sense another Christ"; "Thewonder- 
YOIn lxxzix.— 13 



Digitized by 



Google 



194 THE TEACHING OF THE '* FlORETTi'' [May, 

fttl servant and follower of Christ " ; ** The humble servant of 
Christ"; "The faithful servant of Christ"; "The true disciple 
of Christ" All St Francis' glory is to be sought in reference 
to the fact that he is " in some sense as another Christ given 
to the world for the salvation of the people; therefore God 
the Father willed to make him in many of his actions con- 
formable to the image of His Son, Jesus Christ"* And if the 
saint and his brethren have any merit, it is because they went 
through the world " as strangers and pilgrims, taking nothing 
with them but Christ crucified; and because they were true 
branches of the true Vine they produced great and good iruit 
of souls which they gained to God/'f 

With them the Word of Christ is the ultimate law; having 
read in the Gospel our Lord's admonition to the young man 
and the Apostles concerning poverty, St Francis turns to Brother 
Bernard, his first companion, and says: "Behold the advice 
which Christ gives; go then and accomplish what you have 
read " ; whereupon Bernard at once sets about " giving every- 
thing to the poor of Christ and placing himself! naked in the 
arms of the Crucified."^ When St Francis prays for perfect 
fidelity to poverty, the holy Apostles Peter and Paul appear 
to him and say : " Because thou hast asked and desired to ob- 
serve that which Christ and the holy Apostles observed . • . 
thy prayer is heard," || On the other hand. Brother Elias is 
rebuked because he would go "beyond the Gospel "and intro- 
duce laws contrary to its liberty.^ If the brethren have to suf- 
fer, they fortify themselves with the thought of Christ and suffer 
for love of Him Who suffered. •• 

In all things they will be as " other Christs " as far as they 
may; as Christ received sinners and ate with them, so does St 
Francis receive and convert the robbers of Monte Cosale ;tt as 
Christ had compassion on the sick, so must the brethren have 
a care of them.tt And as they have become followers and liege- 
men of the Blessed Christ, so do they commit the care of 
themselves to Him with perfect trust.^^ All these details the 
author of the Fioretti sets forth lovingly, but it is with a grate- 
ful pride that he shows how the power of Christ was manifested 

• Chapter VI. t Chapter IV. \ Chapter I. $ Chapter I. 

II Chapter XII. f Chapter III. •• Chapters IV.. VII., XVIII. 

ft Chapter XXV. « Chapters XXIV.. XVII. 

M Chapters I., XV., XVII. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Teaching of the ** Fioretti'* 195 

in the brethren; they heal the sick* and convert the sinner ;t 
they read the conscience of others | and have the gift of pro- 
phecy ; % the beasts and the birds and the fish obey them ; || 
they converse with Christ and the saints as frie^nds with friends.^ 
But the miraculous element in the Fioretti is quite incidental ; 
you feej that the author has not gone out of his way to search 
out the marvelous : the whole life is to him so intensely won- 
derful, whether the brethren be nursing the leper or healing 
him, comforting the tempted or revealing consciences, speaking 
of God or seeing God; it is all of a piece; it is the Christ- 
life revealed in them. This is the great marvel; the healing of 
the sick, the gift of prophecy the reading of men's consciences, 
the dominion over the brute creation, do but enter in to com- 
plete the miracle of this new Gospel- story. And yet here is 
the marvel. Though the author is intent on making us realize 
the closeness of his heroes to their Master, the Blessed Christ, 
and the literal fidelity of their life to that of the Gospel, and 
though, too, he impresses us with his own feeling, that in the 
brethren the Gospel-life is faithfully renewed, nevertheless how 
completely do they remain natives of Umbria and the Marches 
and of the thirteenth century ? 

Had it been otherwise the FiaretH would have missed some- 
thing of its peculiar significance. For it is of the very essence 
of its message to reveal to us the enduring beauty of the Gos- 
pel-life in the midst of a civilization other than that in which 
it was first preached, and thus by implication to proclaim the 
universality of its application to all times and peoples. It is 
true that St. Francis and the brethren stand apart in many 
ways from the general life of their time; that between their as- 
pirations and ideals on the one hand and those which were 
current with the ordinary citizen on the other, there was a di- 
rect opposition. All the same are the brethren bound up by 
subtle ties of temperament and character with their age and 
place : they are Umbrian to the core or else men of the Marches ; 
their outlook on life is wholly that of the thirteenth century. 
Umbria may seem to them another Galilee, yet it remains Um- 
bria all the while, only transfigured by the light which trans- 

• Chapter XXIV. t Chapters XXIII., XXV. 

X Chapters III., X., XXII., XXVI., XXX., etc. 

$ Chapter XXXVII. Chapters XV., XX., XXXIX. 

f Chapters XXIII., XXV. 



Digitized by 



Google 



196 The Teaching of the '' Fioretti'* [May, 

figured Galilee. Were it not so, their life would have lacked 
an element of vitality and its spontaneous freedom, and the 
Gospel would have been to them not a present reality but a 
thing of the past For them, however, the Gospel is not at 
all a thing of the past : its light falls directly upon their own 
mountains and valleys; it belongs to their own time. Their 
story is like a ''Nativity'* of Perugino, in the background of 
which we see the spacious light and soft contours of the hills 
in the Umbrian land, and recognize in the figures of Mary and 
Joseph the men and women whom the painter knew; and yet 
all the while we are carried back in thought and feeling to the 
first Christmas. And this is the true Catholic evangelicalism, 
independent of time and place, a man finds himself native to. 

Hence the delight of the Fioretti is that it impresses us with 
the writer's own conviction that here in Umbria and the Marches, 
within the memory of man, the Gospel was actually lived in 
the divine simplicity with which it was given to the Apostles, 
and he makes us feel something of his own triumphant satis* 
faction that in the lives of the brethren the Gospel has again 
vindicated itself against the doubts and prudence of the world, 
and Jesus Christ is once more the Master of men's lives. Nor 
does the author of the Fioretti hesitate to set the simple faith 
of the brethren over the prudence of the world which militates 
against that simple faith. 

In fact he is throughout consciously vindicating the brethren 
against the judgment of the world. His method is not aggres* 
sive; he relies upon the beauty of their life justifying itself. 
He contrasts the unworldliness of St. Francis with the prudence 
and ambition of the world, and challenges comparison; the 
world deems that power and happiness are dependent upon 
riches, social position, and the assertion of one's will against 
others; St. Francis casts aside wealth and social position, yet 
who more joyous than he and where in the world will you find 
a man who wields such power as he over the souls of other 
men and over the brute creation? He subjects himself to the 
will of others, becoming obedient; yet does he become a sign 
to the times and all the world runs after him : simply because 
he has emptied himself of the ambition and pride of the world 
and become filled with the spirit and power of God.* 

» Cj. Chapter IX. 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



1909.] THE TEACHING OF THE '' FlORETTi'' €97 

Delightedly does the Fioretti recount how in Brother Mas- 
seo, one of the first companions of St. Francis, the Christ-spirit 
revealed in the saint overcomes the world* spirit. This Brother 
Masseo was plentifully gifted with what the world calls common 
sense, and in the early days of his discipleship could not re- 
frain from criticising his leader's methods, so unaccountable 
from the standpoint of the world's view of things; but he is 
brought to a willing admiration and submission because of the 
effects of St Francis' life. *' What is this that this good man 
has done?" he asks himself, when the saint has acted in his 
characteristically simple fashion, and he deems the saint has 
" behaved himself indiscreetly in this." But immediately he re- 
proves himself: "Thou art too proud, who dost judge the work 
of God and art worthy of hell for thy indiscreet pride, for in- 
deed Brother Francis did yesterday so holy a work that if an 
angel of God bad done it, it had not been more marvelous; 
therefore, if he bade thee throw stones thou oughtest to do so 
and to obey." 

Thus the effect wrought by the saint — the superhuman power 
which manifests itself in him, humbles and conquers the world's 
prudence in Brother Masseo, and the brother himself eventually 
attains to the simplicity of the children of God.* But whilst 
in Brother Masseo the prudence of the world is brought into 
conflict with the simplicity of St. Francis, but is happily sub- 
jugated with blessing to Masseo himself, in Brother Elias the 
world's arrogance is shown in conflict with Francis' humility, 
and apart from the unhappy ending of Elias, the moral beauty 
of humility of soul has never been more convincingly set forth 
than in the incident which declares Elias' annoyance.f More 
-comprehensively is the spirit of Christ set over against the 
world's spirit in the parable of perfect joy % in which St. Fran- 
cis declares that perfect joy is not to be found in giving edi- 
fication nor in working miracles, nor in learning, not even in 
the power to convert the infidels; but in patient suffering for 
the love of Christ. The author of the Fioretti knew the heart 
of man and the subtle refuges it affords to the worldly spirit 
even amidst holy things. 

Is there not, too, an implied rebuke of the world's methods 

♦ Chapters IX., X.. XL. XXXI. 
Chapter III. % Chapter VII. 



Digitized by 



Google 



198 THE Teaching of the ^* Fioretti** [May, 

in the story of the three robbers whom St Francis converted ? * 

And who, reading that story, is not convinced of the su- 
perior moral beauty of the pitifulness which saves, as against 
the harshness of judgment with which the world is apt to de- 
nounce, the sinner ? Thus constantly is the beauty of the Gos- 
peUlife made to shame the world's wisdom in these happy pages. 

We have said that the Fioretti is an ascetical treatise by ac- 
cident, its direct purpose being to sing the praises of St. Fran- 
cis and the brethren, and the triumph of Christ in them. Yet 
at the same time the main lines whereby they sought and 
achieved conformity with their Divine Master are emphatically 
indicated and the book thus becomes a manual of Christian 
perfection. 

Now it will be quickly noticed that the touchstone by which 
the Fioretti tests the quality of the brethren is humility. In 
the cultivation of this virtue, Brother Masseo attains perfection ; f 
for lack of it Brother Elias is rejected by God.^ By humility 
St Francis attains to perfect joy ^ and is constituted a witness 
to God in the eyes of men.|| Because he is so humble Broth- 
er Bernard shows himself a true disciple of the Cross,^ and in 
''the way of humility'' Brother Pellegrino becomes "one of 
the most perfect friars in the world.''** Even poverty is of 
value, because "it guards the arms of true humility and char- 
ity " ; ft and charity, as we shall see, is dependent on humility. 
It may, however, be well to note the significance of the word 
as used in the Fioretti. It means much more than having a 
mean opinion of oneself : in fact the holding oneself as of little 
worth is an effect of the virtue rather than the virtue itself. 
St. Francis and the brethren are humble, inasmuch as they 
emptied themselves of the pride and prudence and self-suffi- 
ciency of the world. 

They gave Jesus Christ the entire freedom of their soals. 
Hence, at the word of the Gospel, they sell their goods and 
give the proceeds to the poor, they are patient in suffering and 
make themselves the servants of their neighbors. 

They shun the praise of the world, because their entire 
loyalty is given to their Divine Master; their joy is in their 
conformity to Him. So they will have none of themselves apart 

•Chapter XXV. 
t Chapters X., XI., XXXI. % Chapter III. $ Chapter VII. fl Chapter IX. 
f Chapter IV. •• Chapter XXVI. ft Chapter XII. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Teaching of the '' Fioretti'' 199 

from their Lord ; and such is their loyalty that the mere word 
of Christ as they receive it, is their law: they will allow no 
judgment of their own to come between His word and their 
obedience. So jealous are they lest any will of their own should 
come between them and the Divine Will that at times it leads 
them into an apparent exaggeration of sentiment, as in the story 
of the journey to Siena ; * but the simplicity of the action is 
justified both in its motive and in its e£fect; in their simplicity 
they found Christ 

Their humility has its fulfillment in their charity. For the 
less these followers of Christ consider themselves, the more do 
they love God and all creatures. Their humility is, in fact, the 
humility of love. They are humbled before God because they 
love the beauty of His life as revealed in the Incarnate Word ; 
they are humbled before their fellow-men because their hearts 
go out to them. 

It was in his embrace of the leper and in his contemplation 
of the mystery of Bethlehem that St. Francis discovered his 
joy in poverty ; in his thought of Calvary and of groaning hu- 
manity that he found the sweetness of suffering. And this ex- 
plains the wonderful liberty of spirit which breathes in each 
page of the Fioretti and is the peculiar mark of the Franciscan 
character. For the whole life of the brethren is woven into 
the realities which lay all around them ; they renounced them- 
selves only to find themselves in a larger lite created by their 
love of God and His creation. 

As you read their story, you feel at once that these breth- 
ren have entered into the heart of the world, whether for joy 
or for sorrow: they are at home where lie the hidden springs 
of man's virtues and vices : they have an intimate sense of kin- 
ship equally with saint and sinner. ' The saint is themselves 
faithful to the stirring of higher things which they too are con- 
scious of ; the sinner again is themselves led astray by tempta- 
tions to which human nature is no stranger. And because they 
have got so near in their sympathy to the heart of all things, 
they have an intimate understanding of the Incarnate Word Who 
has taken human nature into Himself to bear its burden and 
redeem it. They are at home with Christ in His Kingdom on 
earth. Therefore it is that these men, who are so wonderfully 
spiritual, are yet so exquisitely human. 

• Chapter X; 



Digitized by 



Google 



200 THE TEACHING OF THE '' FlORETTI'' [May, 

Purged of the lower earthly motives and desires which viti- 
ate a man's life, human nature in them has gained a new free- 
dom. Read, for example, of the little boy- brother who saw 
Christ and the Virgin Mother talking to St Francis-; * of St. 
Clare's desire to eat with St. Francis ;t of Brother Pacificus 
and Brother Humilitas;| of Brother Bentivoglio and the leper i^ 
listen to the parable of perfect {oy ; || or the story of the meet- 
ing of Brothers Bernard and Giles when Brother Bernard was 
on his death-bed ; f or, again, read the chapter ** How St. Fran- 
cis Received the Counsel of St. Clare and the Holy Brother 
Sylvester ** ; ** and note throughout the human feeling and ex- 
perience which makes all men akin. It is evident that in this 
Gospel- life of Umbria and the Marches, the human and the 
divine have met and embraced : the very spirit of the Incarna- 
tion has here revealed itself; and God is once more manifest 
in human lives. Surely a book which bears witness to such a 
life actually lived by men can never be outgrown by any age. 
And we of the present age would seem to be peculiarly in need 
of the lessons this book teaches. 

The spirit of liberty in this later age has exposed us pain- 
fully to an inrush of what may be termed fanciful piety, in which 
the emotions are stimulated by ingenious fancies of the brain 
rather than by an apprehension of the realities of life and faith. 
This '^ fanciful piety'* is not the food upon which one can rear 
strong Catholic souls: it is the food of weaklings not of the 
strong ; and to its prevalence may be traced much of the weak- 
ness of religion at the present time. The battle between reli- 
gion and infidelity will not be won by intellectual argument, 
but by the piety of the Catholic people ; for this is the living 
force which silences argument in reverence, and compels the 
assent of the intellect to the weakness of the heart. 

But in all manifestations of Catholic piety which have vitally 
moved the world it will be found that Catholic life and action 
have been dominated by a simple apprehension of the Person 
of our Lord as the direct object of love and worship, and an 
equally simple acceptance of the Gospel as the rule of life: 
and the simplicity with which the Person of Christ dominates 

• Chapter XVI. f Chapter XLV. % Chapter XLV. 

$ Chapter XLI. I| Chapter VII. f Chapter V. 

»» Chapter XV. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Teaching of the *' Fioretti'* toi 

the imagination and the rule of the Gospel is accepted, is the 
measure of Catholic strength and vitality. 

How firmly this truth was held by St. Francis is witnessed 
to by the Fioretti in its story of the angel who came to Brother 
Elias. Other legends of the saint bear this out even more 
emphatically.* Undoubtedly the Gospel has to be read in the 
light of Catholic tradition, else one is liable to all manner of 
vagaries of individual interpretation, and in the same way does 
Catholic tradition lead us to the right spiritual apprehension of 
the person of our Lord. 

But the more simply the person of Christ stands before our 
minds as the object of our love and reverence, the more simply 
we keep within the lines of the Gospel in our conduct of life, 
the nearer will our life be to the life of our Lord. Every 
genuine revival of religion is, therefore, an evangelical revival ; 
that is to say, it is the Gospel-Iife, not as it appeared in any 
particular phase of the world's life, whether in the first cen- 
tury or the thirteenth, but as a living force in the present age. 
It must combine with the world's present experience in order 
to conform the world to itself; and this is where the need of 
the Church comes in, to guide and rule and interpret. As we 
have noticed, the Gospel-life in the Fioretti retains its Umbrian 
dress and its thirteenth-century atmosphere; it would have 
been unreal had it been otherwise. 

True evangelicalism is not a reversion to the world-condi- 
tions of the ante-Pentecostal period of the Church, but it is a 
simple, direct application of the Gospel to the world-conditions 
under which we actually live, and the more immediately we 
bring our present conditions of life under the governance of 
the Gospel, the more evangelical we are. That is what St. 
Francis and his brethren did in their own time. They recog- 
nized that the arrogance of power and the luxury of wealth — the 
t)¥o dominant marks of the social order of the day — were under 
the ban of the Gospel ; therefore, they renounced wealth and 
power and made themselves poor and the least of men; and 
they made the renouncement heroically, as befitted men who 
were called by God to bear witness against a great evil. 

The coarse habit and bare feet, and the wattle hut were the 
natural signs of the particular renouncement demanded of them 

•FioretH, Chapter III. ; Speculum PerfecUomis, Ed. Sab., LXVIII. 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



a02 THE TEACHING OF THE *' FlORETTi'' [May. 

in the special conditions of the world of that day. In like 
manner their nursing of the lepers, their questing for bread 
through the streets, their preaching of peace in the feud-torn 
city, came to them as it were naturally when they began to 
apply the Christ-life of the Gospels to themselves. It was the 
direct application of the Gospel to thirteenth-century con- 
ditions* 

But the lesson for all time which the Fioretti teaches is that 
true religion is the surrender of oneself to the love of Christ, 
and that we are truly Christian in so far as the thought of 
Christ dominates our lives and the Gospel is our rule. And 
it also teaches us this — that in this true religion man attains 
to a new freedom of human nature and of all creation: the 
old man of the world is cast off only that the new man of 
Christ may reign: 

''Spogliato homo vecchio e fato novello/' 

''Never more human than when most divine" — might be 
taken as a first principle for testing the perfect human life; 
it is a Catholic principle drawn from the life of our Lord 
Himself: and the Fioretti reasserts it. 



Digitized by 



Google 




MAIRTEEN'S HISTORY. 

BY N. F. DEGIDON. 

IJHE boy paid his first visit to the Island in the 
company of his nurse, after a hard winter in a 
cold city had threatened with destruction two 
small lungs born into the world with the burden 
of heredity. That was when he was only a wee 
mannie of three summers. During weeks of cloudless sunshine 
he risked his baby neck a score of times each day scampering 
over the cli£fs, played hide and seek with the Island children 
amongst the bracken and long grass in the sheltered valleys, 
built up future fame for himself by his wonderful erections in 
the way of sandhouses and wonderful excavations in the form 
of fantastic pits and trenches, which he accomplished with a 
small wooden spade in the white, wide stretches of beach ; and 
drunk in great draughts of health and strength with every 
mouthful of the life-giving ozone of the west wind. 

Returning home, sorrow met him at the threshold, for the 
pretty, laughing mother^en was not there to welcome him. She 
had succumbed during his absence to the disease which she had 
transmitted to him even before his birth. His father was a 
bookworm, and became more engrossed in his studies after his 
bereavement. Thus the boy was doubly orphaned, and devel- 
oped a gravity of manner and a quaint, worldly wisdom which 
caused erstwhile unassuming folk to make prophetic utterances 
that Nurse Marie resented bitterly. To circumvent them, she 
carried him off in triumph to the Island long before the com- 
ing of the swallows the next year, meeting any feeble objec- 
tions tendered by the bookworm with her own express con- 
viction that, if the boy ever grew up to manhood and strength, 
it would be under the kiss of the western breeze. Nurse Marie 
hated the sea at all times of the year, and no light matter 
would cause her to brave a three- hours' passage across the At- 
lantic when the spring-tides were in full play; but, she loved 
the boy — and, somebody else. That was her secret. By taking 
Niall to the Island, she would be making three people happy. 



Digitized by 



Google 



204 Mairteen's History [May, 

The Islanders are fair to look upon, brave and manly, re- 
taining to this day their ancient habits and customs; dressing 
in a picturesque style peculiarly their own ; speaking the ancient 
Gaelic tongue in converse with each other ; simple in their man- 
ners without servility or cringing; caring naught for the great 
world outside their Island home, yet treating the stranger to 
right royal hospitality without distinction of creed, or race, or 
tongue. Nurse Marie — city-bred and weary of gray walls and 
cheerless streets — was fascinated by the free, open, wholesome 
life; and when Ciardn — the strong, big-hearted fisherman and 
uncrowned Island king — asked her to stay she did not say him 
nay. Thus it came to pass that Niall spent his early years 
there; learnt to trim a boat and hoist a sail before he knew 
his alphabet ; grew strong and bonny and lusty on their homely 
fare ; made friends with all and sundry ; and almost forgot that 
there was a gloomy house called home in a big city, wherein 
sat a silent, solitary man delving for hidden lore in musty, 
ancient books for which the generations to come would sing a 
loud song of praise to his name. 

But the fiat came at last Niall must bid farewell to his 
numerous friends and faithful vassals and enter on his probation 
for a great .worldly career in a big college in his native city« 
Nurse Marie's love for the boy had never waned, even when a 
clamorous atom of humanity named Ciatdn Cg contested the 
kingdom of her heart with lusty lungs; and this mandate was 
to her more than a cloud on a sunny day. She wept over him 
as she might over her own child, and the little Ciaran was al- 
4nost lost in a big wave as she held out her arms for a last 
embrace when the canoe which bore Niall away was pushed from 
the shore. 

When summer and holidays made life glad once more, lov- 
ing eyes were strained across the bay in quest of a small figure 
on the big steamer; and, sure enough, the day always came 
when an excited boy called wildly from the deck as Ciaran's 
canoe bobbed up and down in the big ocean waves — for the 
Island, being rather primitive and out of the way, has neither 
pier, landing-stage, nor any of the modern conveniences of life, 
save a belt of concrete running out into the sea where the 
canoes are pushed ashore. The boy often narrowly escaped 
a good ducking, if not an early grave, as he clambered down 
the steamer-side into the canoe and gave Nurse Marie such a 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Mairteen's History 205 

hug that the frail barque exhibited symptoms of turning a 
somersault 

When Ciardn's strong arms lifted him out of the canoe, the 
Island was there en masse to welcome him, for he was ever 
their own dear bairnie. Sometimes Marie felt a pang of jeal- 
ousy mingling with her joy, and Ciardn was more than once 
heard to say things under his breath ; but these fleeting shadows 
were but as stray summer clouds, for unison and peace and 
kindliness and charity always ruled in this Island-home of an 
earlier and kindlier race, and human discord had no room there, 
even could it make an inning in near proximity to Niall, who 
was like a small sun, shedding peace and warmth and kindli- 
ness and love all around him. 

Yet, despite his gay spirits, he remained ** a wee bit laddie,'' 
to use an Island phrase. He was a dear, brave, manly, chival- 
rous little soul ; but his skin was too transparent for a healthy 
laddie, and a pink rose-blush on either cheek caused many an 
anxious whisper and warning head- shake amongst his Island 
friends. 

Now Ciardn had a younger brother, Mairteen — who lived in 
their. old home with his mother and sister — a man in the prime 
of young manhood, with a sad face and a history. Curiosity 
was not a trait in the boy's character. He essayed to find 
out Mairteen's history, only because he loved him and hoped 
in some way to help him. Loyalty is an Island trait — so is 
silence, on occasions. Mairteen's history was sacred. He had 
suffered. The tongues of his fellow-Islanders would not be the 
cause of an added pang. Thus Niall's questions remained un- 
answered, or were turned away harmlessly, and Mairteen re- 
mained the man of mystery; but the boy loved him all the 
more. Together they roamed the Island ; found out the best 
spots to snare wild rabbits, and the portions of coast most 
frequented by wild fowl ; went out with bait and line on deep- 
fishing expeditions, to return with happy faces and laden boat; 
and did the hundred and one things which interest and en- 
liven the long summer days for a city boy. 

What Mairteen did not know of Island lore was not worth 
knowing. When he laughed, his laugh was good to hear, and 
the boy gave him frequent occasions for laughter, so that his 
sadness was melting away under his sunny influence, like the 
ice melted off the cliffs when the sun shone strong and warm. 



Digitized by 



Google 



206 MAIRTEEN'S HISTORY [May, 

It was afterwards the boy met Caitb. Mairteen was busy 
at other things, and Niall and his boy comrades, having tired 
of other games, took out their lines and went a-fishing from 
the rocks. With the habit of long practice, the Island boys 
cast their lines, held them carefully, and awaited events. Niall, 
ever one inclined to haste, was by no means satisfied with this 
playing of patience, and peeped over the edge of the rock 
frequently to make certain that no fish would creep up and 
nibble at his bait without his knowledge. He did this once 
too often. There was a splash in the water, a simultaneous 
cry from the other boys, and there would have been an end 
of Niall only for Caith. She was passing along the pathway 
above the rocks. To scamper over them was the work of a 
few seconds and less to jump in and reach the boy who was 
sinking for the last time. Afterwards she could not tell how 
she got ashore with her unconscious burden. Perhaps it was 
as well for her that her actions were not studied, else neither 
might have come ashore, albeit she was a strong swimmer — 
an unusual accomplishment with the Island women. To carry 
him the few yards home was a more difficult task, but this she 
also accomplished in due time, followed by his comrades. 

Mairteen was sitting on a creepy-stool by the fire dandling 
Ciarda 6g when the procession entered. At sight of them he 
nearly dropped the child and his face went very white. Caith's 
color changed, too; but, after the first wild look at Mairteen, 
she did not raise her lids again while she busied herself tear- 
ing off the boy's sodden clothes preparatory to rubbing him 
to restore consciousness. Whatever Caith's hands found to do, 
she did with all her might. Ere many minutes Niall opened 
his eyes and rested them wonderingly on the young face bent 
over him. 

" Who are you ? " he asked gently. 

''Caith," she answered. 

'' Caith what ? '* he queried. 

*' Just Caith — nothing more." All this time she was rolling 
him in a warm blanket and he was studying her face in a 
grave, silent way, noting how comely it was, what a glint there 
was in the pile of golden hair; yet what a pitiful droop about 
the young, red lips, and a great sadness in the big gray eyes. 

"I like you, Caith," he said, "but — where is my nurse; 
and why am I rolled up like a mummy in this way?"^ 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] mairteen's History 307 

^'You fell into the sea, mavourneen/' she answered. 

''And^-did Mairteen fish me out?'* 

"No; Caith jumped in and swam ashore with you/' yelled 
the other boys in chorus. 

"Marie went down to the Callah Mor to meet Ciardn. 
They'll be back soon/' volunteered Mairteen, putting down the 
child and fleeing his brother's bouse as if danger lurked there. 

"I thought I knew everybody. in the Island/' the boy said 
half to himself, as Caith laid him down in his little white bed 
in the inner room. 

" I was over in the other island for two years. It was only 
yesterday I came back/' she said. 

"My goodness, what has happened? Where is Mairteen? 
Caith I Caith I " ejaculated Mrs. Cairdn as she came in at a 
quick run. She had heard of the catastrophe from one of the 
boys. 

For answer Caith sat down on the nearest chair, from 
whence she glided on to the floor in a dead faint. 

"Fancy a little thing like Caith saving my life. Nurse. 
When I am a big man I shall marry her," Niall said gravely 
some days later as he sat in the sun outside the cottage door. 
Although apparently well he remained very weak and listless. 

"I shall tell her of your good intentions. Surely she will 
.be glad," she answered. 

" Is Mairteen ill ? " he asked after a pause. 

"No, child. Why do you ask?" 

"He has not been to see me. Everybody in the Island 
came except Mairteen." 

"Well — you see Caith was here. Maybe he will come to- 
day." 

"And— why? Caith isn't a dragon." 

"Poor Caith. But — I cannot tell you, Niall, my mannie. 
Mairteen will come to-day for sure." 

After that a wonderful friendship grew up between Caith 
and the boy, and they spent many hours together, roaming 
over the cliffs, digging in the beach, or rowing in the blue sea 
in one of Ciarin's canoes. Niall never caught fish or snared 
the rabbits or trapped the wild fowl now. Caith did not like 
it, and her will became law even while he puzzled over its ar- 
bitrariness. 

" I like everything to live and be happy/' she explained. 



Digitized by 



Google 



308 MAIRTEEN'S HISTORY [May, 

''What evil have the fish done to us that we should take them 
oat of the sea; or the poor wild fowl baskisg in the sun; or 
the wee rabbits scudding like mad things from human sight?'' 

''But — Mairteen did not think it wrong/' the boy pleaded. 

" Look you, Niall, if some power much greater than we 
killed me and left you, how would you feel ? " she said, ignor- 
ing the remark anent Mairteen. 

" But — that could not be. You are so little and good — and 
pretty," the boy said a little shamefacedly. 

" Some of the wee fishes are pretty, and we have no reason 
to doubt their goodness." 

"Ah! that is quite a different matter." 

"How so? The rabbits are pretty too; and the birds — 
some of them are beautiful." 

" So they are, Caith. ' Tis a puzzle, surely ; yet Mairteen 
did not think it wrong to kill them; and — Caith, you would 
think Mairteen good if you knew him as well as I do," the 
boy said with a certain conviction in bis tone, as he harped 
back to his favorite subject — Mairteen. What Mairteen thought 
right, the boy could not think wrong ; but his young mind was 
sorely puzzled with the inconsistencies and perplexities of life. 
Caith was like a tired wildflower and Mairteen was a great 
strong man with wonderful powers and genius, yet no one 
could say that the girl had not the stronger will of the two. 
What she said she meant, and what she meant she insisted on. 
The twain sorely tried the boy's peace-loving mind, inasmuch 
as they tacitly declined to be friends — each avoiding the other 
in a quiet, unobtrusive, yet determined manner. If the boy 
went out with Mairteen in the morning, Caith was nowhere to 
be seen; and if the girl took him out on the cliffs to watch 
the sun set, Mairteen was sure to be engaged in deep-sea fish- 
ing on the other side of the Island. The boy never realized 
how beautiful the sunsets on the western ocean were until Caith 
called his attention to the descent of the day-god behind the 
waters in a glorified ball of gold and silver and purple. 

" I wish Mairteen would come and see it, too," he said a 
little wistfully, his bright eyes softening as they gazed dream- 
ily out over the fairy waters into the shadowy realms of the 
future. Once, as they sat silent in the afterglow that follows 
such a sunset and watched the mountains on the mainland, that 
were erstwhile blue and gray and shadowy, become sharply out- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] MAIRTEEN'S HISTORY 209 

lined against the darkening sky, toned with the beaatiful mel- 
low light, and draw near as it were, until the leagues between 
narrowed, seemingly, to scarce a mile, Niall said: 

'' See, Caith ! the mountains are drawing nearer. Would 
it not be nice to steal Ciardn's boat and row across to them ? 
It is such a little way/' 

'' Like happiness 1 It seems so near sometimes that we have 
but to put out our hands and grasp it; yet, when we do so, it 
is far, far off/' she answered, tears in her eyes for the first time 
during the boy's acquaintance with her. 

''You are crying, Caith. Shall I go and ask Mairteen to 
row us out to the mountains? We shouldn't need to grasp 
happiness then. We should be happy — shouldn't we, Caith ? " 

Caith was looking at the mountains — now a warm golden 
brown, at the glint of golden light across the waters, at the numer- 
ous fishing smacks floating along like silent ghosts, with swell- 
ing sails and dri^ging nets, at the little coracles — mere specks 
on the water, in which men sat patiently the night through, 
lines in hand and muscles tense with expectation. Mairteen, 
she knew, was in one of these ; and, forgetting the boy's pres* 
«nce, she held out her arms towards the great silent hollow, as 
the strait between the two islands where the little boats were 
wont to shelter seemed to her in the dim, waning light, and 
ejaculated : 

'' Mairteen 1 Mairteen!" 

'' He would come, Caith. I would fetch him gladly," the 
boy answered, looking joyously up into her face. 

''No, no, Niall; I had forgotten. You must not ask any 
favors of Mairteen for me. He could not row so far as those 
mountains. The distance has not decreased. It only seems so, 
like the distance between us and happiness. To-morrow the 
mountains will be in their usual place — afar from us — like that 
will-o'-the-wisp called happiness"; and she took his band and 
walked quickly beside him over the cliffs to Ciardn's cottage. 

" Caith," the boy said in a hushed voice as they neared 
the door, " Mairteen has a history — so they say. Have you a 
history, too ? " 

"Yes, Niall, vourneen"; she answered with a tremor in her 
^oice. 

"What is it—what is a history?" 

VOL. LXXXIX.~I4 



Digitized by 



Google 



2IO Mairteen's History [May, 

** We were out on the sea one day — Mairteen and I. We 
were fishing. It was a golden summer day. Happiness sat in 
the boat with us — and — we lost it — that is all.'' 

"Did you never try to find it?" 

" It is like the mountains to-night — seemingly near, yet far 
away/' she answered sadly. 

" Caith, I will seek until I find it for you/' he said manful- 

ly. 

When his health was quite restored, and there was no longer 
any excuse for tarrying in the Island, Niall's great trouble was 
that he had not yet succeeded in finding the lost happiness of 
Caith and Mairteen. But he was coming back again. He re- 
fused to lose hope. 

On the day of his departure the boy convened a special 
meeting, consisting of Ciaran, Marie, Caith, Mairteen, and him- 
self. All had arrived save Caith, and he waited in silence for 
her coming. He had a special favor to ask of Mairteen which 
he could not voice without Caith's presence. It concerned both 
a good deal, and himself vitally. He had fully and finally de- 
cided to marry Caith when he grew to man's estate. Mean- 
while, since his absence from the Island might be prolonged in* 
definitely, it was necessary to depute some person in whom he 
had absolute trust to take care of her during his absence. 
There was no one in whom he had more confidence than Mair- 
teen ; but to proclaim this trust in Mairteen availed his purpose 
little, unless Caith were there to listen. It was a time of great 
moment, and all felt the tension, including Ciardn Og, who was 
playing marbles in the flagged yard outside. 

Presently Caith arrived, her face flushed and her ^yts 
bright. 

"Well, Niall boy, the steamer is in sight. 'Tis a sad day 
for us who are to be left behind," she said with an effort at 
cheerfulness; but her voice almost broke. 

"I thought of all that, Caith," the boy said in his quaint, 
old-fashioned way. " Last night I lay awake a long time think- 
ing of you and Mairteen. I have fully decided to marry you 
when I grow up, but that will be a long time yet. Meanwhile, 
you will need some one to take care of you. You are such a 
little thing, you know, and easily frightened, for all that you 
bravely saved my life. I have, therefore, asked Mairteen if he 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] mairteen's History 211 

will take care of yoa antil I come back, and he is willing. It 
only remains for yoa to say that yoa are willing also, and then 
I can go away withoat any trouble on my mind/* 

If a bomb had fallen on the small group, they could not have 
been more amazed. The air was charged with electricity. No 
one dared look at the other. 

The boy looked from one to the other in amazement. 
Hitherto, there had not been a doubt of the success of his plan 
in his simple mind. 

''Speak, Caith. We are waiting and time hurries on — so 
does the steamer,'' he said at last, with as much dignity as he 
could muster, despite two big tears which would well up into 
his boyish eyes. 

Mairteen was standing and looking at Caith with straining 
eyes. She was looking at Niall, yet not seeing him for a thick 
mist that swam before her vision, and Ciardn and Marie were gaz- 
ing hard at the on-coming steamer as if nothing else mattered. 

'' I accept,'' Caith said at last, walking over to Mairteen and 
putting a timid, small hand into one of his big ones. The 
next moment she was swaying in his arms — her face white and 
corpse- like. 

'' God bless you — be good to her, Mairteen. Come, Ciardn 
— Nurse. The boat will not wait " ; and, without another word, 
the trio went down the rugged path, leaving the twain alone. 

It was three years ere Niall returned to the Island again. 
By some mischance the letter announcing his coming did not 
arrive in time, and Ciarda was not there to row him ashore — 
neither was Mairteen. As the latter's cottage was nearest, he 
decided to go there first and ask Mairteen for an account of his 
stewardship. Unannounced, he walked up the pathway and into 
the cottage. A woman — ^young and comely— sat on a creepy 
stool crooning low to a flaxen-haired baby which lay on her 
knees. She was strangely like Caith, yet older, more buxom, 
with the beautiful light of mother- love lighting up her eyes and 
the tenderness of the mother- heart welling up into her song in 
a sweetness that was almost pain. 

'"Tis Mairteen I wanted — I had hoped — " began the boy. 

'' Niall 1 Niall 1 Mavourneen laddie 1 " interrupted the wo- 
man jumping up with the baby on one arm and giving the boy 
such a hug with the other that he fairly gasped. 



Digitized by 



Google 



313 MAIRTEEN'S HISTORY [May. 

''Niall, my manniel What a fine^ strapping boy you've 
grown. I ran as fast as my legs would carry me when I saw 
you coming up/' said a man's voice; and Niall found himself 
almost strangled in Mairteen's embrace. 

'^ You see, I've taken good care of Caith. This is our lit- 
tle boy, our wee Mairteen/' he went on ; then stopped, holding 
Niall at arm's length. 

''You married her — my Caith?" the boy said. 

''Niall, my little mannie, we had been married two years. 
We had a foolish quarrel, and it was given to a dear, quaint 
little boy to lead us both back into the land of love. You 
found our lost happiness the day you went away three years 
ago," gasped Caith, between laughter and tears, as she hugged 
and kissed the boy again and again. 

" So that was Mairteen's history ? " he queried, his face 
lighting up. 

" And mine too, Niall vourneen," Caith said with the happy 
tears still falling. 

" God bless you both 1 " he said in his grave, old-fashioned 
way — " and wee Mairleen," he added as. an afterthought, touch- 
ing the baby's face lightly with his lips. 



Digitized by 



Google 



HAECKEL AND HIS METHODS.* 

BY RICHARD L. MANGAN. SJ. 

M LINCOLN said many wise things, but 
rely, wiser than this: ''Yoa may fool part 
people all the time, or all the people part 
time, but you can't fool all the people all 

e." Murder^ especially the murder of truth, 

will out at last. The sad thought is that before the crime is 
discovered the worst of the harm is done by the lie which has 
usurped the throne of truth. In spite of our boasted swiftness 
of communication, old errors and new, and things worse than 
errors, still live and rear their heads. You may scotch the snake 
but you cannot kill it, and many people will not even believe 
that you have performed that necessary operation, especially if 
they have begun to feel some dim attraction to the snake. 

To drop a metaphor, which threatens to bring upon the 
writer the undesirable accusation of using harsh names without 
reason, you may crush error in Germany and it will continue 
to live and flourish in America and England. For that is where 
bad German science goes when it dies i A particularly obnox- 
ious form of it has just received in the land of its birth the 
death it deserves, and it may interest English-speaking Catho- 
lics, who do not read German, to hear some account of its last 
hours. It is a curious and interesting fact that so many people 
who would run for their lives if they suddenly met a fair-sized 
ape at large are quite content, nay even eager to adopt him, 
theoretically, into the family and to give him a place of honor. 
That such is the fact would seem to be clear from the wide- 
spread popularity of Haeckel's cheaper publications in America 
and England. That his writings are doing great harm no one, 
who has watched the Rationalist Press at work, can doubt. 
Haeckel is a man of tremendous energy ; he has spent a life- 
time in appealing to the popular ear, and possesses many of the 

* The writer is indebted to Father Erich Wasmann, S.J., for permission to use the evi- 
dence brought forward in his papers in the Stimmtn aus Maria^Laack, February 8 and March 
IS. X909* 



Digitized by 



Google 



314 Haeckel and His Methods [May, 

gifts necessary to catch it Here lies his power of doing harm. 
His free and easy materialism, bis loose handling of great phys- 
ical conceptions like the conservation of energy and the con- 
servation of matter, the artless dogmatism of his philosophy, 
have deluded but few of the experts and philosophers. Sir 
Oliver Lodge, in i9o6,t subjected the Riddle of the Universe to 
some trenchant criticism. He says: 

Professor Haeckel is, as it were, a surviving voice from the 
middle of the nineteenth century ; he represents, in clear and 
eloquent fashion, opinions that were prevalent among many 
leaders of thought — opinions which they themselves in many 
cases, and their successors still more, lived to outgrow ; so 
that by this time Professor Haeckel's voice is as the voice of 
one crying in the wilderness, not as the pioneer or vanguard 
of an advancing army, but as the despairing shout of a 
standard-bearer still bold and unflinching, but abandoned by 
the retreating ranks of his comrades as they march to new 
orders in a fresh and more idealistic direction. 

This is very mild criticism, and experts may be safely left 
to look after themselves. Our objection to Haeckel is not that 
his is a voice crying in the wilderness, but a voice crying in 
the populous cities, calling upon men to lay the paths of the 
Lord not straight but crooked, and to make His ways not plain 
but rough. 

He stands convicted of tampering with scientific truth in 
his books which are written for the general reader. 

He began in 1866 to construct what he pompously calls an 
'' Ancestral Series of the Human Pedigree *' ; and since his lec- 
ture at Cambridge, in 1898, these stages of the supposed verte- 
brate ancestors of man had grown to the number of thirty. 
By the use of high-sounding Greek and Latin names he tries 
to conceal from the general reader the fact that these forms 
are a work of pure imagination and the ''connections of rela- 
tionship '' wholly theoretical. Another device in which he pos- 
sesses no little skill is the manufacture of illustrations to prove 
his theory. In his Natural History of Creation and in Anthro^ 
pology ; or^ the History of the Evolution of Man^ he gives nu- 
merous plates to prove the similarity in the evolution of the 

• Life and Matter: A CriticUm •/ Pnfess^r HaeckeVs " Riddle of the Universe^ By Sir 
Oliver Lodge. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Haeckel and His methods 215 

embryos of man and the brates. Some of these illustrations 
are pure inventions, whilst some have been borrowed from other 
scientific works and altered to suit his purpose i This is a fact 
which has been proved beyond the shadow of a doubt by such 
men as Riitimeyer, His, Semper« Hensen, Bischoff, Hamann, 
and strongly censured by them. 

The story of the three wood cuts is notorious, but it is per- 
haps as well to have the exact facts. In the first edition of 
The Natural History of Creation there are three prints (p. 242)* 
side by side to prove that the embryos of man, the ape, and 
the dog are exactly similar. The prints are from the same en^ 
graving I Again, on p. 248, he makes use of a single engraving 
three times to prove that the embryos of the dog, the chicken, 
and the turtle are strikingly alike. The trick was exposed 
by a flaw in the block, and Rtitimeyer, who was the first to 
tell the story, characterized it as ''an offence against scientific 
truth exceedingly damaging to the public credit of the investi- 
gator.'' 

But Haeckel's point of primary importance is, of course, the 
descent of man from the ape. True, he does not attempt to 
point to any living specimens as direct ancestors of man, but 
this origin is, in the popular publications at least, always ''an 
historic fact.'' In the Riddle of the Univetse (1699, p. 97) he 
writes: "The descent of man proximately from the ape, and 
remotely from a long line of lower vertebrates, is a positive 
fact of history, rich in serious consequences." His Pedigree of 
the Primates ; or^ the Master-Beasts^ appears as late even as the 
Berlin lectures, "The Fight for Evolution" (1905), although 
it contains among the direct ancestors of man forms which are 
practically all the product of his own imagination, the Archi- 
pithecus (Primitive Ape), Prethylobates (Primitive Gibbon), and 
the Pithecanthropus Alalus (Speechless Ape-man); in fact, of 
the immediate ancestors of man, it contains only one actual link, 
the Homo Stupidusi 

In 1905 Haeckel delivered a course of popular lectures in 
Berlin, " Last Words on Evolution," to meet the alarming re- 
port that the Jesuits had begun to teach the doctrine of evo- 
lution and to press for its recognition in the schools, and to 
show that the Jesuit doctrine was anything but that genuine 
evolutionism which makes such short work of God and immor- 

* References throughout are to the German editions. 



Digitized by 



Google 



2i6 Haeckel and His Methods [May, 

tality. The seqael was amusing, for a report spread that 
Haeckel had abandoned his doctrine and had given public sup- 
port to the teaching of a Jesuit 1 This report was, of course, 
put down by Haeckel and by his English translator, the apos- 
tate priest Jofifij^hJ^icCabe, to the diabolical ingenuity of the 
Jesuits, who had deliberately corrupted the text of a telegram I 

One hardly knows whether to laugh at the naive simplicity 
or weep for the hardened prejudice of men who make such 
statements. But Haeckel's relations with the Jesuits were never 
happy. He had previously fallen into the error of thinking 
that Father Erich Wasmann was a believer in his doctrine, and 
in the course of an open correspondence invited him to leave 
his religion and his order and join the Monist Society^ which 
is, like Haeckel's evolutionary science, in ''irreconcilable oppo- 
sition to the dogmas of the churches." Needless to say, the 
invitation was firmly but politely declined, with the parting ad- 
vice that Haeckel should look to his stewardship and consider 
his last end. If any hopes of converting Father Wasmann still 
remained in Haeclcers heart, they must have been rudely dis- 
pelled in February, 1907, when Father Wasmann, at the invi- 
tation of the Entomological Society of Berlin, delivered in that 
city a course of lectures on the theory of evolution. Haeckel's 
genealogical tree received some severe criticism, but the lec- 
turer was content to dismiss Haeckel's scientific methods with 
the curt remark that '^ comment was superfluous." Consider- 
able interest was aroused in the lectures, which were largely 
attended both by scientists and by educated people generally. 

The course was closed by an open discussion on February 
18, and the interest was heightened by the prospect of the ap- 
pearance of Haeckel or of one of his representatives. This dis* 
cussion unfortunately suffered the same fate as the majority of 
such attempts to answer in a short hour or two objections 
which were not only too numerous for full discussion, but often 
so obscured in verbiage as to be almost unintelligible. The 
meeting was prolonged to a late hour, and before many of the 
answers were given a considerable number of the audience had 
left the hall. There were those who thought that the lecturer 
did not meet with fair play, but, however that may be, objec- 
tors with '' unanswerable " difficulties must have been not a lit* 
tie surprised when all the objectiocs of any importance were 
fully answered in print, The Fight on the Problem of Evolution 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] HAECKEL AND HIS METHODS 217 

in Berlin^ Haeckel did not appear in person, bat Heinrich 
Schmidt, for many years his assistant and General Secretary of 
the Monist Society, undertook to fight the case for his master. 
Schmidt maintained that it was very unfair to say that 
Haeckei's tree was put forward as a positive result of scientific 
research, when in his Natural History of Creation and his Sys- 
tematic Phylogeny he had expressly protested against any dog- 
matic significance being attached to his genealogical trees, which 
were only adduced as modest hypotheses. A crushing answer 
to this specious argument was given by the lecturer, who pointed 
out the contradiction which existed between this statement and 
well-known passages in Haeckel's " popular " writings, in which 
he asserted the descent of man from the ape as ''an historic 
fact/' That the Pedigree of the Primates was certainly not put 
forward as a modest hypothesis was shown by reading the fol- 
lowing passage written by Haeckel in 1898: 

The general outlines of the Genealogical Tree of the Pri- 
mates, from the oldest Eocene half-apes right up to man, lie 
clear to view within the Tertiary epoch : no essential ** missing 
link'' is wanting. The phylogenetic unity of the Primates 
from the oldest Lemurides to man is a fact of history. 

Moreover, he maintains, with regard to the same tree, in the 
Riddle of the Universe (1899): 

Within the last two decades there has been found a consid- 
erable number of well-preserved fossil remains oi half-apes 
and apes, and amongst them all the important connecting 
links which go to make up a continuous ancestral chain from 
the earliest half-apes to man. 

On this Father Wasmann's comment is that there is cer- 
tainly no link missing if Haeckel includes, as he must, the 
" Primeval Primates," " Primeval Apes," " Primeval Hylobates," 
and '' man-apes,'' which in his " Genealogical Tree of the Pri- 
mates/' of 1898 and 1905, form the essential links in his direct 
line of the ancestors of man. But, as a matter of fact, these 
direct ancestors of man have left behind them no fossil skele- 
ton remains, while the real fossil representatives of the half- 
apes and apes are only found in the collateral branches of his 
tree and do not lead up to man I 

The whole head and front of his offending is that what he 



Digitized by 



Google 



2l8 HAECKEL AND HIS METHODS [May, 

puts forward as modest, imperfect hypotheses when writing for 
experts, he states as historic facts when writing for the gene- 
ral public, and althoagh no man ever accused Haeckel of much 
power of abstract thought, this nicely calculated difference of 
attitude to his two classes of readers is not to be explained 
away by his inability to think clearly. 

But the case against Haeckel does not end here. 

In June, 1908, he delivered at Jena a conference called 
'' The Problem of Man,'' in which he exhibited three plates, 
two of which had already appeared in the Berlin lectures of 
1905, designed to prove the affinity between man and the mam- 
mifers. Against these plates Dr. Arnold Brass, in The Problem 
of the Ape^^ brings serious objections. Without entering into 
the minute details of the accusations, we may sum them up as 
follows : 

Plate I. shows the skeletons of man and of four man-apes 
and bears the title " Skeletons of Five Man-apes'' (anthropomor- 
pha). Plates II. and III. represent the embryos of different 
mammifers (the swine, rabbit, bat, ^gibbon, man) *at various 
stages of their development, to show that at certain periods 
the human embryo is scarcely different from that of the others. 

According to Dr. Brass, not only has Professor Haeckel 
falsely represented various evolutionary stages of man, the 
monkey, and other mammifers, but he has taken from the 
works of Selenka the figure of a macaco and, by shortening its 
tail, made a gibbon of it, whilst adding to the original illustra- 
tion, made by His, of the human embryo 1 Admirers of Haeckel 
naturally waited with some anxiety for the answer to these 
accusations. In the Berliner Volkszeitung of December 29, 19089 
and in the Munckener Allgemeinen Zeitung of January 9, 1909, 
appeared an article by Haeckel in which he carefully avoids 
the points at issue and resorts to the most illiberal abuse of 
his opponent. Of the condemned illustrations he can only say 
that '' they are pictures destined to make accessible to a wider 
circle facts which have been long known." In this way he 
thinks he has justified his action. Comment is superfluous. 
But in the answer to an anonymous protest in the Munckener 
Allgemeinen Zeitung^ of December 19, 1908, Haeckel proffers 
an apology which has staggered even his admirers: 

* D€U AffenffbUm, Professor Haeckel's latest falsification of embryo-pictures. Leip- 
cic, 1908. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Haeckel and His Methods 219 

A small number of my numerous embryo-pictures (perhaps 
six or ei^ht per cent) are really falsified (in the sense of Dr. 
Brass) — namely, all those figures for which the material pos- 
sessed by us is so incomplete and insufficient that to make an 
uninterrupted chain of the evolutive stages, we are forced to 
fill the gaps by hypotheses, and reconstruct the missing mem- 
bers by comparative syntheses. 

After an undignified attempt to shift part of the blame on 
to the shoulders of the engravers, as if it was not bis duty to 
check their errors, if any occurred, and to notify the reader, 
he continues: 

After this compromising confession of ** falsification,*' I 
might have to consider myself sentenced and annihilated, had 
I not the consolation of seeing with me in the prisoner's dock 
hundreds of iellow-culprits, many of them most trustworthy 
investigators and renowned biologists. The majority of fig- 
ures, morphological, anatomical, histological, and embrio- 
logical, circulated and valued in manuals, in reviews, and in 
works of biology, deserve in the same degree the charge of 
being falsified. These are all inexact, adapted more or less, 
schematized, reconstructed. 

We have beard before of splendid audacity, but this ex- 
ample is of the best, for in the first place it is untrue that he 
has made his arbitrary alterations only on '' schematic figures''; 
the charge is that he has made them on figures which he has 
not given out as schematic at all. Secondly, it is untrue that 
the majority of biologists use only schematic figures in their 
works. Haeckel is playing fast and loose with the term. A 
schematic figure has always been understood to mean a figure 
which expressly brings out certain features in an object and 
in a form reconstructed according to the conception of the 
maker. A non-schematic figure represents the object as the 
author has seen it exists not as he conceives that it might pos- 
sibly exist Serious scientists notify the reader of the fact that 
a figure is schematic, unless it is obvious, whereas Haeckel 
prints figures with features which he most certainly has not 
seen but has imagined, in order to fill up a necessary gap in 
the facts. This is what his accuser means by falsification, 
and if words have any meaning, the charge stands unrefuted. 

Haeckel's naive confession has shocked many of his friends. 



Digitized by 



Google 



220 HAECKEL AND HIS METHODS [May, 

Dn Adolf Koelscb, who had previously spoken of Haeckel as 
a man '' who for fifty years has, in the name of science, fought 
against the Christian conception of life,'' and a pioneer of 
progress '' who has won the confidence of the German people,'' 
now writes: "I was ashamed for Haeckel when I read this 
passage." Moreover, a number of the German scientists who 
were so frankly invited to take their places in the prisoner's 
dock with him, have come forward with the following declara- 
tion, which is signed by no less than forty-six names: 

We, the undersigned Professors of Anatomy and Zoology, 
Directors of Anatomical and Zoological Institutes and Nat- 
ural History Museums, hereby declare that we by no means 
approve oi the manner of schematizing which Haeckel in 
some cases has practised, but that in the interests of science 
and freedom of thought we most strongly condemn the cam- 
paign against Haeckel carried on by Dr. Brass and the 
Kepler Society. Moreover, we declare that the theory of 
evolution, as expressed in the theory oi descent, can suffer 
no damage on account of the existence of embryo-pictures 
which prove nothing. • 

Haeckel may well pray to be delivered from his friends. 
The attempt to cast odium on the Kepler Society as a body 
of obscurantists is not only beside the mark, as Rutimeyer, 
His, Semper, and other investigators are not members of it, 
but it has been frustrated by a dignified protest from the 
President and Director sent to the public press. Whilst wel- 
coming the declaration of the forty- six subscribers that they 
disapprove of Haeckel's methods, the writers proceed to point 
out that the insinuation of obscurantism is a deliberate attempt 
to delude the public as to the aims and objects of the Kepler 
Society, which not only advocates freedom of research, but 
contains members who are evolutionists. As for the personal* 
ities introduced into the discussion, Haeckel himself is largely 
to blame, and the Kepler Society claims the right to be judged 
by its official utterances. 

Here we might leave the judgment to the fair-minded 
reader, although the charges against Haeckel are not yet ex- 
hausted. The most serious is that preferred by Father Was- 
mann, who proves that Haeckel has committed an offence greater 

• See the AUgimtuu Rundschau, Mumch, February 27, 1909. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Haeckel and His methods 221 

than the falsification of illastrations, the falsification of the 
ideas of a great man. 

One of Haeckers latest works, the Problem of Human Life 
and the Master* Beasts According to Linm^us (1908) is dedicated 
to ''Carl von Linn^ — the discoverer of the Master-beasts (Pri- 
mates) — with the esteem of Ernst Haeckel, Professor of the 
University of Jena, Dr. Med., Berlin, March 7, 1857. Dr. 
Med. jubilar. Linnseanus, Upsala, May 24, 1907/'* Moreover, 
he borrows the famous maxim "Man, know thyself," which 
Linnaeus uses as a motto for his Systema Naturce^ so that the 
dedication, the motto, and the contents of this work are de- 
signed to delude the non-scientific reader into thinking that 
Linnseus was of the same mind as Haeckel on the subject of 
the descent of man. 

Now that Linnseus, on purely morphological principles, 
classified man as the species Homo with the species which, ac- 
cording to the knowledge of his time, stood next in order, 
the ape, the lemur (half- ape), and the bat, and called the class 
Primates, is a fact which every reader of the Systema Natures well 
knows. In the first edition he classified the sloth with man 
and the ape and called them anthropomorpha, or, according to 
Haeckel's translation, '' beasts in the shape of men." But no 
man would dream of asserting that Linnaeus considered the sloth, 
or the bat, which he added later, to be an ancestor of man. 
Haeckel maintains that he called the Primates '* master-beasts " 
because they were ''the lords of the animal kingdom or 
especially of organic creatures.'' That Linnaeus never even 
thought of the origin of man from the higher Primates we 
should naturally not expect the German professor to tell us. 
He simply appeals to Linnaeus as the founder of his own view 
on man as a "master- beast" and those who have not read the 
Systema Natures naturally conclude that Haeckel and Linnaeus 
class man amongst the Primates in the same sense. This is a 
gross misrepresentation and a vilification of the memory of a 
great man, who expressly states that, in his view, man is out- 
side and above all three kingdoms of nature. 

Homo Sapiens, of all created works the most perfect, the 
last and highest point, set on earth's crust, marked as it is 

* This last degree was conferred npon him bj the Uniyersity of Upsala on the occasion of 
the Bi-Centenary of the birth of Linnseus. 



Digitized by 



Google 



222 HAECKEL AND HIS METHODS [May, 

with marvelous signs of the majesty of God, with power to 
understand its structure, to admire its beauty, and to bow his 
head in reverence for its Maker.* 

There is not much indication here of that atheistic monism 
professed by Haeckel and his Monist Society 1 A little further 
on in the same chapter Linnasus writes: 

So is the whole world full of the glory of God, whilst all the 
works oi God glorify Him by means of man, who, raised from 
dead clay to life by His hand, sees in the end of Creation, the 
majesty of its Maker : man, a guest worthy of his dwelling, 
the herald of the Most High. 

And two pages later: 

The Creator began with the simplest elements of earth and 
passed from mineral, plant, and animal to perfect His work in 
man. 

He goes on to show that it is man's noblest duty to know 
and to glorify God, that the world is God's school where man 
must learn to recognize Him, the Omniscient, Immortal, Eter- 
nal Being, that he must lead a good life here if he would avoid 
the penalty of God's justice hereafter. The motto thus splen- 
didly explained is taken over by Haeckel without a wotd to 
show that its meaning differs a whole heaven from his own! 
Throughout this work the connection of man as aa animal in 
Haeckel's sense with his place in Linnaeus' ordinal group of the 
Primates is taken for granted, and as from this purely morpho- 
logical connection Haeckel concludes that man is descended 
from the ape, the ordinary reader naturally takes Linnaeus' ex- 
hortation to self-knowledge to mean — ** Man, recognize that you 
are nothing better than a highly-developed ape 1 " 

Once again we find hypotheses put forward as proved facts. 
The origin of the mammals from the amphibia has been '' proved 
conclusively by the latest researches of zoological and anatomi- 
cal experts at Upsala." His conclusions, he asks us to believe, 
''are not the result of his own private conviction or prejudice," 
but of " repeated research carried on for the last thirty years 
by competent investigators." Yet how dark is the whole 
problem of the origin of the mammals, and particularly of the 

* Systtma Natura. Ed. zo. Vol. I. Ch. I. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Haeckel and His methods 223 

Amniote- vertebrates, has been shown by B, Fleischmanni who is 
supported by Littel, Gegenbauer, and others. Even Haeckel 
himself^ in 1895, in the third volume of Systematic Phytogeny^ 
only ventured to put forward an "imaginary picture '^ of the 
hypothetical ancestral group of all the higher vertebrates, the 
so-called Pro-reptilia. But before a " popular '^ audience our 
conjurer has only to make a pass and the '^ imaginary picture '' 
has become a " proved fact '' The old assertions which he 
used to shore up his theory of the ape-origin of man are re- 
peated here without a word of critical comment. The skull- 
formation of the Primates proves ''that an unbroken chain of 
evolutionary links stretches from the oldest common radical 
form (the Archiprinas) up to the man-ape (Pithecanthropus) 
and to man (Homo). For confirmation of this statement he re- 
fers to Plate I in the Appendix, and the unwary reader naturally 
supposes that the Archiprimas, Archipithecus, Prothylobates, 
and the Pithecanthropus Alalus have been considerate enough 
to leave us their skulls for purposes of comparison. The 
fact, however, is that these chief members of the direct series 
of man's ancestors are transitional forms invented by Haeckel 
and never possessed a skull. This attempt, then, to base a 
proof of "the unbroken chain of evolutionary links'' on the 
skull- formation of the Primates is the purest humbug. 

That Haeckel has done good service in the past to scientific 
study, particularly by his work on the sponges, we should be 
the last to deny. But that cannot excuse him from the grav- 
est charge which can be brought against a scientific investiga- 
tor, the deliberate tampering with scientific truth, deliberate mis- 
representation of the ideas of a great scientist. He is not the 
first instance of a man led astray by a fanatical hatred of 
Christianity; but one can only wonder silently that any man 
should hope by such methods to "fool all the people all the 
time." 



Digitized by 



Google 



THE ANGEL BEAUTIFUL 

BY J. R. MEAGHER. 

Yet ever and anon a trumpet sounds 

From the hid battlemenU of eternity ; 

Those shaken mists a space unsettle, then 

Round the half-glimpiM turrets slowly wash again. 

all the angels of heaven who perfonn the high 
behests of God on earth, none was sorrowful save 
the Angel of Death. For thousands of years he 
had been busy summoning men and women and 
children before the judgment-seat of God ; and 
as, from decade to decade, from century to century, he plied 
his never-ending task, he became painfully aware that his name 
was loathed among mankind. And, angel though he was, be 
felt this very acutely; for it is not pleasant to think that you 
are held in universal execration, like the common hangman, and 
that even little children fly from before your face as from a 
thing accursed. He knew, indeed, that some welcomed his em- 
brace with open arms ; that some, during long nights of afflic- 
tion, prayed fervently and earnestly for his coming. But they 
were few enough, to be sure — the elect of God, who 

^* Saw that every morning, far withdrawn 
Beyond the darkness and the cataract, 
God made Himself an awful rose of dawn.'' 

But the rest of men beheld in him the ruthless destroyer 
of love and happiness; the pitiless, implacable killjoy, whose 
presence could eclipse the gaiety of nations, and open wide the 
bitter floodgates of unavailing tears. 

So Azrael (forth at is said to be the name of the Angel of 
Death) resolved to petition Almighty God that his reproach might 
be taken away from among mortal men. In fear and trembling he 
drew near the great white throne, and stood waiting with eyes 
cast down and hands meekly folded on his breast. Then the 
Almighty spoke. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] THE ANGEL BEAUTIFUL 225 

''Azrael/' He said, ''My faithful angel, speak I What is 
thy trouble? Why is thy countenance sad and thy brow 
clouded?" 

And Azrael made answer: ''O Almighty and Eternal Fa- 
ther, Lord of the mighty universe, I grieve because I am hated 
by those whom I bring into the vision of Thy glory. Thy 
children, whom Thou hast redeemed at so great a price, detest 
me, as though I were an outlawed spirit. At the bare mention 
of my name they turn pale and quake with fear. And the lit* 
tie ones, even the little ones about whose souls still lingers the 
fragrance of Thy breath, are palsied at my approach ; and this 
is the hardest of all to bear. I ask, O Eternal Giver of good 
things, that Thou wouldst grant me this one thing; that I 
might be allowed to show myself to men, just as I appear iu 
Thy All-Holy sight And they, looking upon the marvelous, 
entrancing beauty with which Thy Hands, O Father, have 
clothed me, will turn cheerfully to me when their hour is run, 
and sink peacefully to rest in my arms, with the love and con- 
fidence of a child nestling against the bosom of its mother." 

And the Angel of Death wept a tear of sorrow, which 
dropped silently through the blue heaven on to earth, and 
rested at last in the outstretched palm of a crippled beggar- 
woman, who spent her days at the door of the Gesi in Rome, 
holding back the great leather curtain for those who went in 
and out; and all that day the poor creature felt such joy and 
peace and consolation as she had never felt before; and she 
babbled in her broken tongue to the passing worshippers of 
the mysteries of the love of God. 

The Eternal Father looked tenderly on Azrael and replied : 
^'My child, you ask too much. Death is the punishment of 
that first sin, by which man cast off the fair vesture of My 
grace and clad himself with iniquity and corruption. And so 
it is meet that he should not see thy face; lest, dreading no 
longer the pangs of his last agony and passion, he should not 
feel the smart of My avenging angel's sword. By My death 
on the Cross I sweetened for him the cup which he must 
drink ; but the last dregs thereof must always be bitter and re- 
pulsive to his taste. 

''Still, O Azrael, I will have pity on thy sore grief; I will 
permit thee to show thy face to one child out of all the world. 
For it is hard, indeed, that little children, whose souls bear 
vou Lxxxix — 15 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



226 THE ANGEL BEAUTIFUL [May, 

My image unstained from sin, should flee from an angel of the 
Most High." 

Azrael bowed low before the great white throne and went 
his way singing cheerily; and the shining courts of heaven 
rang with the melodious echoes of his song. Then he dropped 
swiftly down to earth and alighted in the sanctuary of a little 
country church. And the cherubimi who were watching there 
in silent adoration, looked at one another and smiled, as they 
saw Azrael make his reverent obeisance before the Tabernacle ; 
for his face shone radiant and glorious, and they knew that 
he was sad no more. 

In the presbytery garden a priest and a child were walk- 
ing hand in hand. The child was looking up into the priest's 
face and she was telling him her trouble. She was telling him 
that though she worshipped God with her whole mind and 
loved Jesus and His Blessed Mother with her whole heart, 
still she was unhappy. 

'' Father,'' she went on, '' I have a terrible fear of death. 
Death seems to me to be a dreadful, hideous monster, who 
will one day spring out upon me like a wild beast and choke 
the life out of me. And often at night, when this terrifying 
thought comes to me, I cry out aloud in an agony of fear,, 
and I am not comforted, even when my mother steals into my 
room to kiss my tears away." 

At that moment Azrael, the Angel of Death, passed by on 
his way through the world; and he halted and listened. 

'' My dear Veronica," replied the priest, smiling kindly,, 
^Mon't you see how silly you are, worrying your poor little 
head over these things? You love the good God, and that is 
enough. Look at that sparrow hopping to and fro under the 
yew tree. Not even he falls to earth without a tender Father 
to take care of him. And do you think that He, that same 
tender Father, will allow you, with your white, immortal soul. 
His marvelous handicraft, to be the prey of the ugly hobgob* 
lin which your foolish imagination has invented for you ? Why, 
I firmly believe that of all the angels of God, the Angel of 
Death is the most beautiful. In heaven there are many sur- 
prises in store for us. But when we have grown a little ac- 
customed to the mystery of the Face of God, and have learnt 
to know something of the glory of His Mother, then we sball^ 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] THE ANGEL BEAUTIFUL 227 

turn our wonder-stricken gaze on that Angel of Death, whom 
men so dread here below. 

'^ You are afraid, perhaps, of the darkness and the pains of 
death. Yet both are short lived. It is but a step, a sudden 
awakening after a feverish sleep^and then, the glory of the 
Lord. If I were to promise to bring you into a room full of 
all sorts of pleasures and delights, on the condition that I 
covered your eyes as I led you thither, you would not mind 
very much if my fingers pressed painfully against your eye- 
balls as we stepped across the threshold. And so, when you 
come to die, the great angel will grip you, tightly, perhaps, 
and lead you into deep shadows and through the purgatory of 
pain ; and then your eyes will behold the Vision of the blest 

*' But, my dear child, do not bother your head pondering 
over these things. Leave all to God, and trust in Him, and 
seek at every moment to do His Holy Will; and He will lead 
you through the winding mazes of life, as tenderly as a shep- 
herd guides his lambkins through lone desert tracts to fresh 
green pastures and quiet streams ; and when He calls you to 
Himself with a gentle and loving whisper, you will thank Him, 
and bless His Holy Name, as a soft -hand is laid in yours, 
and you feel drooping over you, like cool evening shadows at 
the close of a hot day, the soothing wings of the Angel of 
Death." 

Of all the sons of God^ whether in heaven or on earth, 
none at that moment rejoiced and was glad like Azrael, the 
Angel of Death. 

Veronica thanked the good old priest, and ran off to make 
a little visit to the Blessed Sacrament. She had scarcely 
dropped on to her knees before the high altar, when she felt 
a strange drowsiness come over her. 

''This will never do," she told herself; "why, I shall be 
fast asleep in two minutes, and our Lord will be displeased 
with me for dozing, like the thoughtless girl that I am, right 
before His Holy Eyes, Perhaps, if I sat down and read my 
book, I could keep awake." 

So she sat down and opened her little prayer-book. But it 
was no use. Her head kept nodding out of all control, and the 
words of the book had suddenly picked a most disgraceful quar- 
rel among themselves, and were running into one another and 
butting one another, and tumbling over one another, for all the 



Digitized by 



Google 



a 28 THE ANGEL BEAUTIFUL [May, 

world like a herd of lively goats on the steep hillside. She was 
just wondering what would happen to that tiny word to if it 
were knocked clean off the page by its clumsy, bullying neigh- 
bor vouchsafe^ when the gentle sound of moving wings caused 
her to raise her head, and she beheld a beautiful white bird 
hovering just above hen She stood up, thinking to catch the 
pretty thing and take it home with her, but the bird darted 
off and disappeared into a side chapel dedicated to the holy 
souls. Veronica ran in after it on tip-toe; but the strange 
bird was nowhere to be seen. Veronica was startled. She 
searched all round the chapel, but in vain. She was just about 
to return sadly into the church, feeling dreadfully disappointed, 
when she remembered that the beautiful creature might have 
taken refuge behind the altar. So she crept softly up to the 
altar and peeped behind it. But there was no bird visible* 
Instead, she saw a door in the wall, half*open. Needless to 
say, her curiosity was aroused, and she determined to see what 
was on the other side of the door, through which, after all, the 
mysterious bird might have passed. 

The door was heavy and creaked solemnly, as she pushed 
at it with all her might Beyond was a narrow passage, along 
which she stepped hesitatingly, and not without a secret dread. 
Might not there be ghosts lurking in that chill gloom ? She 
was actually on the point of turning back, when she noticed 
that she was almost at the end of the passage, where, to excite 
again her well-nigh satisfied curiosity, stood another door. This 
she attempted to open, but could not. In fact, it seemed as 
though she would have to retrace her steps after all, for there 
was no latch, and no bolts, nothing that might give her a clue* 
Then she recalled to mind the old Arabian story and said in a 
timid voice : '' Open^ Sesame I ^* But the ejaculation, however 
powerful in the mouth of AH Baba, had not the slightest effect 
with her. At last a bright idea struck her. She made the 
Sign of the Cross, slowly and reverently, and the door opened 
noiselessly outwards, and she stood on the threshold marveling. 
Beyond lay a beautiful garden, flooded in sunlight. She had 
never seen such a garden in her life before; had never gazed 
upon such wealth of flowers and greenery. She felt half afraid 
of venturing into so lovely a paradise, but took heart as her 
eyes grew accustomed to the sight, and stepped boldly forth, 
holding her breath in sheer wonderment. Paths of shining 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Angel Beautiful 229 

white gravel wound among trim lawns, or disappeared beneath 
overarching boughs, losing themselves at last amid the gloom 
of ilex and cypress. Fountains shot up their silver jets and 
broke into sprays of lustrous diamonds, which fell back on the 
bosoms of rippling pools with merry, melodious babbling. There 
were yew trees and hedgerows of box and myrtle clipped into 
fantastic shapes. And the whole garden was sown with a gay 
profusion of flowers, roses white and red, lilies of myriad hues, 
carnations, foxglove, Canterbury- bells, and countless others, 
above which tall hollyhocks, erect and stately like festive flam- 
beaux, swayed graciously in the breeze. 

Veronica strolled aimlessly, stooping often to smell at the 
loveliest blossoms, or to pluck some tiny flower that was new 
to hen Then suddenly she looked up and started with a wild 
surprise. 

Not many yards away, seated at the foot of a marble sun* 
dial, was a figure clad in gray. Its head was sunk 'on its 
breast, and its face was shrouded by the hood of its flowing 
mantle. Veronica felt that she ought to approach, in order to 
explain, in case of necessity, that she had found her way into 
the garden quite by accident. As she drew near, the figure, 
without raising its head, beckoned to her with slow, mysterious 
gesture. Veronica nerved herself with an c£fort, for there was 
something uncommonly weird about the apparition, and then 
said with a quavering voice: 

''Excuse me, can you tell me to whom this garden be- 
longs?" 

''It belongs to me," replied the strange figure in solemn 
tones. 

" And, please, who are you ? " demanded Veronica, growing 
a little braver. 

"Child," answered the other, raising its head slightly, "I 
zm— Death I " 

Veronica leapt backwards with a stifled scream. A wild, 
nameless horror surged around her heart. Her limbs seemed 
paralyzed, her blood chilled in her veins, as, with clasped hands 
and wide-staring eyes, she gazed on him who had been the 
terror of her waking thoughts and the nightmare of her dreams. 

"Child," continued the figure in a slow, monotonous voice, 
"fear notl I am an angel of the Most High God, and one 
oi the noblest of the works of His Hands. If men fly from 



Digitized by 



Google 



230 The Angel Beautiful [May, 

mei as Lot fled from the cities of the plain, it is because they 
know me not. Sin has distorted and blinded their vision and 
warped their reason, so that they see in me only a monster 
like unto the demons of hell. Child, you, too, have feared me, 
and trepbled at the slightest thought of me, because you have 
not known me. Know me now, and look upon my (ace, and 
learn how the great servants of God are lovely beyond com- 
pare." 

And Azrael, the Angel of Death, straightway rose up, and 
the gray robes fell off him; and Veronica saw him standing 
there in all his towering majesty. His brow shone like the bar* 
vest moon, and his hair was as fine spun gold, and his eyes blazed 
like the stars of the south. His garments sparkled with the 
blended luster of diamond and ruby and amethyst and sapphire, 
and gave forth a sweet fragrance. Veronica fell on her knees 
and wept; for in that radiant countenance she saw and recog- 
nized the deathless glow of infinite pity and infinite love. 

She tried to speak, but her sobs choked her. She would 
fain have kissed the hem of that dazzling vesture, but some* 
thing held her back; she longed to clasp the strong white 
hand in hers, and feel the might and power of that protecting 
arm ; but she feared that her touch would be sacrilegious. And 
so she could only gaze mute and helpless into that lovely face, 
conscious that, in the witchery of that smile and in the glow 
of those starlike eyes, were a joy and consolation such as only 
angels know. And slowly it came home to her that the Angel 
of Death saw in her the type of the human race; and that, in 
revealing himself to her, he was receiving amends for the long 
centuries of abhorrence and loathing which the sons of Adam 
had meted out to him. And she understood then why the 
shining countenance was softened by the tender shadows of 
olden sympathies, as though he were gazing upon those ancient 
sorrows which his hand had rolled away, and upon vain hopes 
that had once flared tempestuously in the hearts of men, only 
to be snuffed out at last, kindly, yet firmly, by the touch of 
his resistless fingers. 

Then the vision faded from her, and she was alone. Alone, 
indeed, but no longer in the wondrous garden I 

She found herself back again in church before the Blessed 
Sacrament, where the lamp of the Sanctuary was burning cheer- 
fully, as though nothing extraordinary had happened. But 



Digitized by 



Google 



igog.] The Angel Beautiful 231 

Veronica pondered long over what she had seen and heard; 
she beheld again the exquisite face, so winning in its glance 
of tender sympathy, so subduing in its majestic beauty; and 
she listened to his words of hope and love. Then, fearing to 
be unfaithful in her watch before Him who lay beyond the 
Tabernacle door, under the mystic semblance of Bread, she 
took up her book again to pray; and, lol it was wet with 
tears. 

Years passed away, and Veronica lay dying. As a Sister 
of Charity she had followed close in her Divine Master's foot- 
steps, bearing His message of consolation to the outcast and 
the enslaved. Her days had been passed amid the unhallowed 
slams of a great city; for there, where the poor die so easily, 
ground down by the pitiless heel of an unshakable destiny, 
she had ever stood in the presence of the Angel of Death. She 
was never so peaceful and calm and happy, as when she knelt 
at the bed of the dying, soothing the tortured brow, and illumin- 
ing, by her sweet words of pity and hope, the darkness oi the 
final agony. And as suffering eyes grew rigid and sightless, 
and broken hearts ceased to beat forever, Veronica smiled and 
wept, and smiled again at the passing of him into whose im- 
mortal eyes her own eyes had once gazed. 

And now she, too, lay on her deathbed. For a whole 
day she had been unconscious, and it was feared that in that 
state of coma she would pass away. But towards evening, when 
the last beam of departing sunlight was stealing across her 
chamber wall, she suddenly sat bolt upright. Her weeping sis- 
ters saw that on her face flickered the glad smile of expectancy, 
and there burst from her lips the joyous cry of one who be- 
holds a dear friend after long separation. '' Ah, my angel 1 '^ 
she said with a gentle sob in her voice. And her pale, wasted 
face was lit up with the light that never was on sea or land ; 
and holding out her arms, as though to receive a beloved one, 
she gave a little sigh of contentment, and sank back like a 
tired child into the mighty embrace of the Angel Beautiful. 



Digitized by 



Google 



FATHER WILLIAM FLETE. HERMIT. 

BY DARLEY DALE. 

}IENA, one of the loveliest of Italian cities, stands, 
as all the world knows, on the top of a three- 
capped mountain — stands there crowning it with 
its white and rose- colored towers, on top of the 
marvelous green hill which supports it. Beauti- 
ful it now is, beautiful it was in the days when the great St. 
Catherine trod its steep and narrow streets. The remembrance 
of her sweet presence has shed a halo over her native city, 
which thrills us of the twentieth century, as we follow in her 
footsteps, with a deeper emotion than her contemporaries felt 
when they passed up and down those same streets. 

It was near Siena that the subject of this article, Father 
William Flete, dwelt in the days when the celebrated daughter 
of the Sienese dyer, was mortifying her body and spirit in her 
father's house. 

Father Flete was known familiarly to his contemporaries in 
Italy as the " Bachelor *' or the " Bachelor of the Wood,'' or 
sometimes as " Father William." Siena, then as now, was sur- 
rounded by woods or forests of oak and ilex, and it was in 
one of these at Lecceto, that the ** Bachelor " lived a hermit's 
life. It was a most romantic spot, wild and beautiful, with 
grand old oaks clothing it, interspersed with caves and grottoes, 
a place eminently suited to the eremitical, contemplative life 
to which Father Flete had so strong a vocation. 

He was, as his name suggests, an Englishman, and was born 
in the early part of the fourteenth century; he was educated 
at Cambridge, and then joined the Hermit Friars of St. Au- 
gustine, commonly known as the Austin Friars. He appears 
to have desired a stricter life than his community were living, 
and hearing that in Italy some monasteries of his order bad 
returned to the primitive discipline, he set out for Tuscany to 
enter one of these houses. The Augustinian Hermit Friars 
had then a house at Siena, also a monastery at Lecceto, the 
ruins of which are still standing. When Father Flete came to 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Father Wiluam Flete, hermit 233 

Lecceto, he was so mach struck with the beauty of the placei 
and its suitability for the contemplative life» that he determined 
to remain there, and entering the Monastery of Lecceto, with 
the consent of his superiors, he took up his abode at a spot 
in the forest known as the Hermitage of the Wood, or the 
Hermitage of the Lake, or sometimes as the Shady Hermitage. 

Lecceto was a place of pilgrimage for popes and princes 
and saints: St. Dominic once visited it, and several times St. 
Catherine went there ; and the Augustinian Monastery had been 
honored in former times by receiving no less a person than 
the great St. Augustine himself who, in 391, gave the hermits 
-he then found living there a Rule* After St. Catherine be- 
came acquainted with Father "Flete, she often went there to 
see him, and sometimes confessed to him. Father Flete ap- 
pears to have adapted some of the caves in the forest for him- 
self. He would frequently offer Mass in one of them fitted 
up for the purpose^ and would always return home to the 
monastery at night to sleep. 

There were many hermits at this time living a similar kind 
of eremitical life in Italy : Lecceto was particularly famous for 
them, but there were also some near Pisa, and some at Val- 
lombrosa, one of whom we shall have occasion to mention, and 
some in the neighborhood of Spoleto. 

Among the Sienese hermits may be named another friend 
of St. Catherine, Fra Santi, a very holy man who, after living 
a solitary life in the woods for thirty years, gave up his soli- 
tude to some extent to travel with St. Catherine. Thomas of 
Siena, known familiarly as Thomassuccio, was another holy 
hermit, who, at the command of his superior, left his retreat 
to go about Tuscany preaching, which he did with great suc- 
cess, and was credited with the gifts of prophecy and working 
miracles. Another celebrated Sienese hermit was the poet 
Neri di Landuccio, who, after acting as St. Catherine's secre- 
tary and traveling-companion, received a message from her at 
her death, telling him that his vocation was to be a hermit; 
he then retired to a cell just outside the Porta Nuova of Siena, 
and lived a life of great austerity there, till he died at a much 
advanced age. 

Father Flete's love of solitude was so great, that it amounted 
to a fault; and he even refused to leave it at St. Catherine's 
bidding; she rebuked him openly for this fault in one of her 



Digitized by 



Google 



134 Father William Flete^ Hermit [May^ 

letters, telling him that he ought to offer Mass in his monastery, 
as often as his Prior wished. This Prior was a very holy man. 
Father John Tantucci, a disciple of St. Catherine, and the ab- 
sence of the hermit from his monastery sometimes caused 
friction between the two men. 

Father Flete was very learned and very prudent in counsel, 
but a great lover of silence as well as of solitude, speaking 
only when obliged to. He used to take his books with him 
into the caves and grottoes, and study there, and perhaps wrote 
some of his voluminous letters and sermons in this retreat 
He left his cell to go to Siena to attend the meetings and ser* 
vices of the Company of. La Scala, a very ancient and cele- 
brated Confraternity, which met in the catacombs under the 
Hospital of La Scala. Here the members had a chapel, and 
St. Catherine herself had a little room or cell, from which she 
could hear Mass on festivals. The men met there every Fri- 
day, and took the discipline together in their chapel. How 
often Father Flete went to La Scala we are not told, but prob- 
ably frequently, for it was the center of religious life at Siena 
at that time, and several belonged to it who were later canon- 
ized saints. 

After the first meeting between St Catherine and Father 
Flete, a great friendship sprung up between them, one of those 
exquisite, spiritual friendships, which are to worldly friendships 
like exotics to the flowers of the field, and require very deli- 
cate handling. It was a friendship like that of St. Jerome for 
St. Paula, or of St. Francis for St Clare, or of St Theresa for 
St John of the Cross, or of Richard Rolle, the great English 
mystic and mediaeval poet, for Margaret Ainderby, the recluse, 
only in St. Catherine's case, her friendship with Father Flete 
was not so absorbing and special, for she had many friends. 
Although Father William was sometimes her confessor, she did 
not hesitate on that account to tell him of his faults and re- 
buke him for them; besides reproving him for his excessive 
love of solitude, she reprimanded him for his excessive auster- 
ities, and warned him against spiritual self-will. 

The hermit had the greatest reverence and regard for the 
saint, and after her death he wrote an unusually long panegyric 
of her virtues, which is still extant in the library of Siena. In 
it he describes the saint in some of her ecstasies, in which be 
frequently saw her, and he says her face was transfigured some- 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909-] FATHER WILLIAM FLETE, HERMIT 235 

times into the face of our Lord, lometimes into that of an angel, 
which seems to have terrified the beholders. Sometimes, from his 
account, she appears to have undergone the transfiguration of 
suffering also like her Divine Master, for on these occasions she 
was racked with agony in every bone, so that blood flowed from 
her mouth, and her attendants had to wipe away the perspiration 
which broke out upon her face. In Mother Drane's History of 
St, Catherine may be read long quotations from this panegyric of 
Father Flete*s, and also mention of another epistle which he 
wrote to defend St. Catherine from what turned out to be an 
imaginary calumny • 

The unfortunate upon whom the good hermit poured out 
the vials of his wrath, was another great friend of St. Catherine's 
—and only second to Father Flete in his devotion to her — a 
hermit known as Brother or Don John of the Cells. Originally 
a Florentine nobleman, he joined, when still young, the Monks 
of Vallombrosa, founded by St. John Gualberto, and eventually 
became Prior of the Vallombrosan Monastery. While in office as 
Prior he was found guilty of a serious fault, for which he was 
deposed by his General, and, with the severity of the age, con- 
fined in a dark dungeon for a year. His repentance was very 
great, and when released from his prison, he began to lead a 
most austere and holy life, in a hermitage on a lonely rock 
near the monastery at Vallombrosa, and refused to be reinstated 
in his office. He also belonged to the Company of La Scala, 
but up to 1376 (the date of his first letter to Father Flete) 
they had not met, though Don John says he had long desired 
to see one of whom he had so often heard. 

It appears from another letter of Don John^s, that Father 
Flete had been told that Don John had been censuring St. 
Catherine and accusing her of folly. It is rather amusing to 
find Brother John attributing the English hermit's mistake to 
his scanty knowledge of the Italian language, or at least of 
Don John's dialect, which, seeing that he was a Florentine, 
was probably not so pure as that which the Sienese speak, 
for even the peasants in Siena speak the best and purest Ital- 
ian, and are said to be natural orators. 

Brother John had heard a report that women were about 
to join in the Crusade which St. Catherine was endeavoring to 
inaugurate, and be, most wisely, strongly disapproved of this, 
and expressed his disapproval very forcibly in a letter to a 



Digitized by 



Google 



236 FATHER WILLIAM FLETE, HERMIT [May 

Florentine lady who had proposed going to fight the Saracens. 
In this letter he mentioned St. Catherinei and said that if she 
had been preaching that women would find Christ by going to 
the Crusades, he emphatically denied it, and he further told 
his correspondent to ask the saint if she had found Him by 
gadding about or by prayer. 

In his very long reply to Father Flete, Don John shows 
conclusively that his devotion to St. Catherine was no less than 
that of the hermit of Lecceto, who then wrote a conciliatory 
epistle to the Vallombrosan hermit, and received another very 
lengthy effusion in reply. 

About this time. Father Flete*s solitude was disturbed by 
the most distracting news that could have penetrated to it. 
Neither famine nor earthquakes nor war could have been so 
disquieting to Catholics as the Papal schism, which now pierced 
the heart of the Church, and eventually led to war, when some 
of the Cardinals, who had elected Urban VI. Pope in place of 
Gregory XL, now turned against him and set up an antipope 
under the title of Clement VII. 

This event took Catherine to Rome, where she suggested to 
Urban VI. that he should call to Rome to advise him certain 
holy men, among them Don John of the Cells, two other her- 
mits from Spoleto, Father William Flete, and another Angus- 
tianian hermit. Brother Anthony of Nizza. All these were 
summoned by a papal brief, but the two hermits of Lecceto 
refused to go, notwithstanding that St. Catherine wrote to urge 
them to do so, wittily remarking in her letter, '^ that they need 
not be afraid of losing their solitude, for there they would 
find plenty of woods.'' 

This first letter did not move the hermits from their be- 
loved seclusion, so the saint wrpte a second letter to Brother 
Anthony, in which she said : 

It seems from the letter which Father William sent me that 
neither he nor you intend to come. I shall not answer that 
letter, but I groan from my heart at his simplicity, and to see 
how little he cares for God's honor or the good of his neigh- 
bor. It it is out of humility and the fear of losing his peace, 
he should ask permission of the Vicar of Christ and beg him 
to be so good as to leave him undisturbed in his solitude, and 
then leave the decision in his hands. But your devotion can- 
not be very solid or you would not lose it by a change ot 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Father William Flete, Hermit 237 

place. Father Andrew of I/Ucca and Father Paulinus have 
not acted so ; they are old and Infirm but they set out at once. 
They are come. They have obeyed ; and though they wish 
very much to return to their cells, yet they will not cast oflF 
the yoke of obedience ; they have come to suffer and to per- 
fect themselves in the midst of prayers and tears. This is the 
right way of acting. 

This severe letter had the desired effect on Brother Anthony, 
who obeyed and set out for Rome, where he died ; but Father 
Flete only sought a still more retired spot on the other side 
of the forest, called the Wood of the Lake. 

We wonder at Father Flete's temerity in venturing to dis- 
obey a Pontiff of such violent temper as Urban VI., who, by 
his severity and overbearing conduct, alienated even the Car- 
dinals who had elected him; but he was in many other ways 
a very fine character. Mother Drane thinks the Pope must 
have excused the hermit from going to Rome, and says that 
St. Catherine was not seriously displeased with him for his dis- 
obedience, though she scolded him well for it. At any rate, 
if she was angry at the time, she forgave him, since before 
she died she sent a message to him, asking him to remember 
her spiritual children, whom she committed to his care. 

This happened in 1380, and it is said by Ambrose Landuc- 
cio in Sylva Italica^ that Father Flete died the same year; 
but this is disproved by the fact that his panegyric on St 
Catherine was written in 1382. It seems likely that he died 
soon after St. Catherine, probably in middle life, for he evi- 
dently was neither old nor infirm in 1378, when St. Catherine 
compared him, to his disadvantage, with Father Paulinus and 
Father Andrew. 

We do not know the date when the holy hermit first went 
to Lecceto; all we know is, that he had been living there 
twelve years before he met St. Catherine ; neither do we know 
the date of this first meeting, but it was certainly before 1376. 
In that year she went to Lecceto, and dictated to him in the 
chapel there a treatise called ** The Relation of a Doctrine," 
which he translated into Latin, so he must have lived at least 
nineteen years in these hermitages. 

He was not, strictly speaking, either an anchorite or a 
recluse, for he was not enclosed, but moved about from cell to 
cell, usually sleeping in his monastery. He wrote, like most 



Digitized by 



Google 



238 FATHER WILLIAM FLETE, HERMIT [May, 

mediaeval writers, in Latin, but of bis writings only a few re- 
main, and none of tbese few bas ever been printed or pub- 
lisbed. A fifteenth-century MS. of one of them, called De Re^ 
mediis Contra Tentationes^ is in the University Library at Cam- 
bridge, to which it was given by King George L It was 
originally in the library of Bishop Moore, who was translated 
from Norwich to Ely. There were five other MSS. in the same 
collection, called the Norwich MSS. ; two of Father Flete's writ- 
ings are now in the library at Siena. Four of these five MSS. 
were learned epistles to various members of the Augustinian 
Order in England, and the most interesting was a book of 
Predictions to the English of Calamities Coming Upon England. 
One of these predictions, which has, alas! come too true, was 
that England would lose the Catholic faith. Father Flete is 
said to have had these revelations, concerning the future, made 
to him in bis contemplations. 

He was considered a saint by his contemporaries, especially 
by his own order, and by his Italian contemporaries, who said 
of him that be lived a most holy and ascetic life, that he drank 
only vinegar and water, and was also very learned. Gabellicus 
mentions him among the saints of the reformed Augustinians 
in Italy. 

In these days of reprints of mediaeval books, it might be 
worth while to translate and publish Father Flete's treatise On 
Resisting Temptations^ and also, if the MS. can be found, the 
Predictions of the Calamities Coming Upon England. The prob- 
ability is that his contemporaries were right in thinking that 
the holy hermit had the gift of prophecy, for all who have 
written of him speak of his great sanctity, and prophecy is one 
of the signs of^ an heroic degree of sanctity. We know that 
he forsook the world expressly to exercise himself in contem- 
plative prayer, to which he had so great an attraction, and in 
which he attained a very high degree of perfection. His un- 
common mystical experiences testify to this. Mother Drane 
tells us that he and St. Catherine met in the spirit, and knew 
each other long before they met in the flesh. 

It is not at all unusual for those who, like Father Flete, 
have left the world expressly to give themselves up to contem* 
plation, to be favored with a keen knowledge of whither the 
tendencies of the age are leading mankind. St. Bridget of Swe- 
den, in some of her revelations, foresaw coming events; other 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] FATHER William FLETE, HERMIT 239 

recluses, like Blessed Juliana of Norwich, have had revelations ; 
and the poetical rhapsodies of Richard Rolle, the holy hetmit 
of Hampole, are sometimes so exquisitely beautiful, that we can 
but think they were inspired. That William Flete, living as he 
did, a hundred and fifty years before the so-called Reformation, 
should have foreseen that England would lose the Catholic faith, 
shows that he had some claim to be credited with the gift ot 
prophecy; though we must not forget that he was a contem- 
porary of John Wiclif, and the rumor of the latter^s heretical 
opinions had undoubteely reached Lecceto. We feel certain of 
this because another Austin Friar, Father Bakin, a celebrated 
preacher, was one of the most successful of Wiclif's oppo- 
nents, and reports of his sermons, then causing a great sensa- 
tion in London, would no doubt have been sent to Father Flete 
by some of his religious brethren. Father Bakin was consid- 
ered the greatest living theologian of his day, and there can be 
little doubt that Father Flete, in his cell at Lecceto, was in- 
formed of the arguments he used in his controversy with the 
great fourteenth- century heretic, for monks and friars were great 
letter-writers in those times. People wrote much less frequently 
then than we do in these days of postal facilities, but they 
made up for the infrequency by the length of their effusions, 
as Father Flete's own epistles testify. 

We wonder if Father Flete foresaw that several of his reli- 
gious brethren would suffer martyrdom under Henry VIII., as 
they did and are now beatified. Torellus, in his Augustinian 
Agt^ is of opinion that Father Flete went back to England 
after the death of St. Catherine in 1381, and there introduced 
the reform of Lecceto, and that same year '' migrated to hea- 
ven.'' He so judges, because there is no mention of Father 
Flete's death or burial in the book of the dead at Lecceto, and 
in the case of the death of a religious of such known sanctity 
as Father William Flete it can hardly be supposed that his 
name would be passed over. 

Gandolphus, another of his biographers, puts the date of 
his death, from the study of some Sienese MSS., at 1383, which 
is probably as near as we shall get to it, unless more informa- 
tion about this holy man is discovered. 



Digitized by 



Google 



flew Books. 

The authenticity of this celebrated 
THE MIRACLE OF ST. JAN- miracle * is defended in a thor- 
UARIUS. oughly systematic form by a French 

professor of science^ who was con* 
verted from infidelity by his own personal study of the miracu- 
lous manifestations at Lourdes. He has closely observed the 
miracle of St. Januarius for several successive years, and ap- 
plied to it, in rigorous method, some scientific tests of which 
it is susceptible. One of these tests was that of spectral anal- 
ysis, which demonstrates that the substance contained in the 
phial is true blood. This substance is not naturally liquifiable ; 
consequently, the liquification, which, for centuries, has taken 
place on the feast of the saint, is not a natural phenomenon* 
The other test is the considerable increase in weight and vol- 
ume which occurs during the process of the miracle in the 
hermetically sealed flask. Professor Cavene demonstrates that 
there is no room for the hypotheses of trickery and fraud as an 
explanation of the effect ; and he also refutes the other theories 
that unbelievers have advanced; i. e., that the result is an ef- 
fect of Vesuvius, or the application of beat through the hand- 
ling of the phial in the course of its exposition during the days 
of the annual novena. The scientific section, while the most 
valuable part of M. Cavene's work, is not its only excellence. 
He introduces his subject with a discussion, from the philo- 
sophic point of view, of the possibility of miracles; then he 
indicates their value as a divine confirmation of revelation and 
of the claims of the Catholic Church. He next gives us a 
brief biography of St. Januarius; and afterwards recounts the 
historical data available, especially from the year 1389, to 
prove the annual recurrence of the miraculous liquefaction of 
the blood in the phial at the Cathedral of Naples, and of the 
exudations exhibited by the stone at Pozzuoli. In passing, he 
brings forward for refutation, some of the criticisms and ob- 
jections advanced against the miracle by men whose names 
live in literature — the Calvinist Doumoulin, Addison, Duclos, 
Dumas; as well as its contemporary assailants. This fine apol- 
ogia of M. Cav&ne is all the more effective because, though 

* Le CSUbre MiracU de Saint Janvier, it NapUi it PommzoUs, Par L^on Cavine. Paris: 
Gabriel Beauchesne. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New books 241 

his piety and devout conviction are manifest, be preserves the 
calm, unemotional, objective tone proper to the scientific searcher 
or historian. Booics such as this, or Bertrim's work on Lourdes, 
are at least as likely to prove efficient arguments for Catholic 
truth to the present generation as our formal defences which 
were constructed for another age, when those outside the 
Church still shared with us a belief in some fundamental 
Christian dogmas which their descendants bold to very lightly, 
if at all. 

This characteristic piece of pains- 

THE CHRISTIAN FESTI- taking German scholarship* has 

VALS. been enjoying, for nearly ten years 

past, the approval of historical crit- 
ics in Germany, France, and Italy. Embodying the assured 
results of modern investigation, it is a fine exposition of the 
antiquity of some of the chief liturgical observances in the 
Church's calendar. The book is intended chiefly for theolog- 
ical students and the younger clergy; but it will also be ap- 
preciated by that growing section of the laity which loves to 
be well-informed on matters pertaining to the discipline and 
practice of the Church. How much more instruction is im- 
parted in Germany on this matter than in our schools may be 
judged from the fact that this book is intended, not only for 
theological students but also for lay teachers, because ''the 
Minister of Public Worship in Prussia has recently (12th of 
September, 1898) required from candidates for the office of 
Catholic teacher in higher-grade schools, a considerable ac- 
quaintance with the ecclesiastical year among their other qual- 
ifications.'' Besides the exposition of the origin and history 
of all the great festivals, the chief saints' days, the ember and 
rogation days, the work contains a critical account of the 
sources, i. /., the earliest Christian calendars, the various mar- 
tyrologies, and the later calendars that appeared from the 
eighth till the eleventh century. 

We commend strongly to the no- 
LIFE OF CHRIST. tice of Catholic publishers the ex- 

ample of Messrs. Longmans, who 
have just issued, at the price of twenty-five cents, a well- 

* Heortology, A History of the Christian PestivaU from thoit Origin to tho Present Day^ By 
Dr. K. A. Heinrich Kellner. Translated by a priest of the Diocese of Westminster. St* 
Louis : B. Herder. 

VOL. LXXZIX.^16 



Digitized by 



Google 



242 NEW BOOKS [May, 

printed edition of the English version of Abb^ Fonard's great 
Life of Christ.^ When books of this character appear from 
oar Catholic booksellers, for some reason or another, they 
are sold at prices which cannot be called popular; and then 
we wonder how it comes that the bolk of the laity is so in- 
different to Catholic literature of the higher quality. To bring 
within the reach of everybody books of this type, and there 
are many of them, would be a genuine exercise of the apos- 
tolate of the press. 

The latest number of Les Saints 
THE SAINTS. series is a life of St. Thomas of 

Canterbury,! by Mgr. Demimuid. 
The writer has kept in view the ideal which the editors of this 
now numerous collection of saints* biographies have set up: a 
strict adherence to the canons of historical writings combined 
with solid edification, effected by bringing out the spiritual 
greatness of the man and the significance for religion of the 
great struggle in which he fought and died. 

The editor of this compilation,! to 
ROADS TO ROME. whom the English Roads to Rome 

suggested the task of obtaining a 
similar collection of the records of American converts, is to be 
congratulated on the fruit of her endeavor. There can be no 
doubt but that the book will be a beacon to show many 
others the course to the haven of rest. These stories of how 
so many men and women, Americans by descent and birth,, 
bred in American ways and traditions, and looking at life with 
American eyes, came to see, notwithstanding their Protestant 
origins, that truth is in the Catholic Church alone, cannot but 
have an intimate personal message for many another American, 
who has yet to make the journey. 

The starting-points have been various: in a few instances 
it was Presbyterian ism ; in more, seme form of evangelical 
Protestantism; frequently, Unitarianism ; but in most cases, 
the Episcopal Church. The reasons for conversion, too, differ 

* Th§ Christ, tMs Son ef God, A Lift of our Lord and Sovior Josms CJkrisi, By the Abb4 
Constant Fouard. New York : Longmans, Green & Co. 

t St. Thomas d BochiU Par Mgr. Demimnid. Paris : Gal)riel Beauchesiie. 

% Somi Roads to Romt in America, Boing Personal Records of Conversions to the Cathoho 
Church. By Georgina Pell Curtis. St. Louis : B. Herder. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] NEW BOOKS 243 

widely. Most commonly the first motive was dissatisfaction and 
unrest on account of doubt, or the insufficiency of the religious 
system in whigh the future convert was brought up. Then, 
books, the attraction of the Catholic ritual, association with 
Catholics, strengthened the impulse; and, generally speaking, 
a course of reading on the claims and doctrines of Catholicism 
followed. One cannot but remember that God works in a mys- 
terious way His wonders to perform, when one notices some 
of the untoward incidents that contributed towards the work of 
grace — the recollection of an impression made in childhood by 
the serenity of a Quaker meeting, a bitter sermon against the 
Church, a novel of Zola, or the strange dilemma proposed by 
a serious non-Catholic friend: either the Catholic Church or 
the Mormon Church is the Church of God. One is less sur- 
prised to learn that a word from Longfellow helped on one lit- 
tle boy, who has since become a valiant soldier of truth, as ed- 
itor of one of our most respected Catholic periodicals. '' My 
vocation to the priesthood,'^ writes one — our readers would 
not forgive us if we anticipated the pleasure they will have in 
finding the name for themselves in the volume — ''was encour- 
aged by Longfellow. He once asked me in his kindly way what 
I intended to be when I became a man. My prompt answer 
was : ' A Catholic priest and a missionary among the Indians.* 
He smiled, probably at the presumptuousness of the idea, but 
there was something impressive in his voice when, looking 
down at me, he said : ' I am very glad you have such an in- 
tention.' Of course I felt sure of being on the right path, since 
Mr. Longfellow had given his approval.'' 

Many have been generous in the fullness with which they 
have entered into detail. Mr. Spearman, the novelist, and the 
distinguished botanist. Dr. E. Green, furnish miniature auto- 
biographies, in which there is not a word too much. The thirty 
odd pages in which Miss Susie Swift tells of her evolution ftom 
the character of Brigadier in the Salvation Army to that of a 
Dominican nun is only too short. The palm for brevity is 
borne off by Mr. John Mitchell, the labor leader, who, with 
characteristic modesty, occupies scarcely half a page. This rich 
record of invitations heeded may well be interpreted to sup- 
port the conviction of a contributor who states that: "Cath- 
olicity is latent in the average American, and awaits only the 
exercise of spiritual candor to be evoked in practice." 



Digitized by 



Google 



244 New books [May, 

The history of that most dismal 
CATHOLICISM IN ENGLAND, epoch in English Catholicism, the 

eighteenth century, truly called a 
''time of depression, of lost hopes, and discouragement,'' is 
the subject of two works,* which serve as a background to 
heighten the significance of the great Eucharistic Congress 
which London witnessed last year. The first of these consists 
of the notes of Dr. John Kirk, who was well known nearly 
a century ago as an indefatigable student of later Catholic 
history in England. From about the year 1776 he labored 
for fifty years in order to collect data for the purpose of con** 
tinning Dodd's Church History down to his own day. But the 
work of collection left him no time to complete his project 
His great mass of biographical notes are now published and 
will be of prime value to whoever is destined to carry out the 
work. Even in their present shape they assist us to form a 
fair idea of the condition of English Catholics from the days 
of Anne down to the close of the penal times. The names, 
arranged in alphabetical order, belong |to every conspicuous rank 
of society, those of the*clergy and gentry predominating. Many 
of the names have rich historical associations, stretching back 
far beyond the bad days of the Reformation; and the list of 
secular priests and religious orders indicate that even in the 
darkest times there was a goodly number of devoted men who 
kept the lamp of faith burning, however low, till the coming 
of the new dawn. 

The history of English Catholicism during the last quarter 
of the eighteenth century is amply treated in two large vol- 
umes f by a writer whose family name is closely associated 
with the full tide of the revival which had its beginnings in 
this period. His motive for selecting this period he explains 
in the preface. One of his confrlres^ Dr. Burton, is preparing 
a life of Bishop Challoner, which will cover the later penal 
times. The period from the revival of the hierarchy is already 
amply recorded. The present work brings the story up to the 
beginning of the last century; there still remains, therefore, a 
gap of about fifty years down to the establishment of the 

* Biographits of Rnglisk Caik^lici in iki RiihUenth Century, By Rer. John Kirk. Edited 
by J. H. Pollen, S.J., and Edwin Burton, D.D. New York : Benziger Brothers. 

t Tki Down 9f thi CatkslU Revival in Rngiand, i^jSi-iSo^, By Bernard Ward» 
F.R. H .S. New York : Longmans, Green ft Co. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] NEW BOOKS 245 

hierarchy, which he hopes — and every one who will appreciate 
the excellence of this work must trust that the hope will be 
realized — to fill later on. 

The entire country is covered by the present writer; but 
the story of the London district is dealt with in much greater 
detail than is that of any other section* The writer traces with 
grateful fidelity the great advantages that accrued to the English 
Church from the coming of the French dmigri clergy during 
the Revolution; and follows minutely the grave and threaten- 
ing divisions brought about by the controversies concerning the 
oath. The disputes between the laity and their hierarchical 
rulers, and among the rulers themselves, about the time of the 
Relief Act, which in the Midland District were not settled till 
the first years of the nineteenth century, are also set forth. 
Occasionally Mgr. Ward is obliged to follow English interests 
beyond the Channel, on account of the dissolution of English 
foundations abroad during the Revolutionary and Napoleonic 
wars. He also digresses somewhat concerning the events attend- 
ing the establishment of the Concordat in France ; but be gener- 
ally sticks very closely to his proper subject ; so much so, in- 
deed, that he neglects many opportunities to add a touch of 
the picturesque to his narratives. 

If you desire some handy standard by which to compare the 
position of Catholicism in England to-day, with that which it oc- 
cupied a hundred years ago, you have one at hand, of a very 
attractive pattern, designed and constructed by a wit who has 
by no means suppressed his characteristic talent while mak- 
ing the instrument. Turn from the historian of the eighteenth 
century and take up The Catholic Who's Who for i^og.^ In the 
former we see *' the Catholics in England, found in corners and 
alleys and cellars and on the housetops, or in the recesses of the 
country, cut off from the populous world around them, and 
dimly seen, as if through a mist, or in twilight, as ghosts flit- 
ting to and fro, by the high Protestants, the lords ot the earth.'' 
The latter book is the register of a great community, members 
of which are to be found in every honorable walk of life. 
This roll call of British Catholics not only witnesses to an im- 
mense growth already attained, but also, if we look at the pro- 

* ThiCtUkolic Wh4*s Wkofirigog. Edited by Sir F. C. Bumand. New York: Benzk 
ger Brothers. 



Digitized by 



Google 



246 NEW BOOKS [May, 

portion of converts which it contains, gives solid promise that 
the expansion will continue to be vigorously carried on. It 
cannot but be a cause of deep gratification to all who love the 
Church to observe that her wonderful progress in America, 
England, and the English-speaking world in general, is helping 
to counterbalance the losses and adversities which she is suffer- 
ing in the Latin countries. The present edition of this hand- 
book contains six hundred new names, and a long list of British 
subjects who have received papal titles of nobility and other 
distinctions. 

We may note here an interesting French biography of an 
English convert of the last generation,* written by her son, a 
French ecclesiastic. The lady was Miss Lechmere, born in 1829, 
the daughter of Sir Edmund Lechmere, the head of an old 
Worcestershire family. She was converted in France, entering 
the Church in 1850, and afterwards married a French gentle- 
man named d' Arras, and ended her beautifully Christian life 
in i897« 

An English translation of Cardi- 
ST. MELANIA. dinal Rampolla's Life of St. MtU 

aniapf the French edition of which 
received a notice in these columns, has just appeared. This 
translation by no means represents the complete work of the 
learned Cardinal, which is a masterpiece of the highest scholar- 
ship and erudition* It has set scholars wondering how the au- 
thor, while discharging the exacting duties of Secretary of State 
under Leo XIII., could have found the time to compose it. 
The editor of this translation has omitted the vast array of 
notes (which he says would fill nearly a thousand pages) of the 
original, and has reproduced only the story of the saint and 
the history of her times as they are incorporated in the Cardi- 
nal's work. This biography is an authentic human document, 
the value of which Father Thurston emphasizes by contrasting 
it with another type which he describes thus: 

In no species of serious composition, as Father Delehaye, 
the Bollandist, has lately instructed us, have so many differ- 

* Urns An^laise C^mvertU. Par P. H. d' Arras. Paris : Gabriel Beauchesne et Cie. 
t Tk4 Lift of St. Melamia. By his Emiaence, Cardinal Rampolla« Translated by E. 
Leahy. Edited by Herbert Thurston, S.J. New York : Benciger Brothers. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] NEW BOOKS 247 

ent types of historically worthless materials — folk-lore, myth, 
legend, not to speak of pure fabrications — palmed themselves 
off upon the unsuspecting good faith of the pious believer. 
We might almost say that the bulk of these documents, be- 
longing to certain specified epochs, are devoid of any touch 
of human individuality. They are like the portraits of Holy 
Doctors or Virgins, painted according to the canons of Byzan- 
tine art. We might shuffle all the names and almost all the 
dates, and the new arrangement would be just as near the 
truth, as much or as little Instructive, as the old. 

This life, on the contrary, belongs to the smaller class which, 
besides being authentic history, is a real source of edification, 
inasmuch as it describes a genuine conflict between nature 
and grace, in a human souL The story of this great patrician 
woman, who gave up exalted rank and a fortune, which even 
in our own day would be called colossal, is peculiarly appro- 
priate in our owa times. 

Consistently with the purpose of 
IMHORTALITT. the Oxford Library Series, of which 

his volume on Immortality^ is a 
number. Canon Holmes addresses himself to devout laymen who 
desire instruction, but are not attracted by learned theological 
treatises. Although he presents some arguments in favor of 
immortality, he rather assumes that his audience already believe, 
and desire only confirmation of their conviction, and more in- 
formation regarding the character of the future life. His pres- 
entation of the argument from the aspirations of the soul is 
merely to affirm that the individual nature, being incapable of 
perfection as an individual, seeks the social state and the com- 
munion of saints in order to find there the consummation of 
its longings. A chapter entitled ** Immortality and Psychology *' 
treats of the value claimed for spiritistic phenomena; and an- 
other seeks an answer to the question: Do the dead know? 
by insisting on the fact that as ignorance or suspense concern- 
ing the fate of those we love is always pain for us, the blessed 
cannot but know how the loved ones whom they have left be- 
hind fare. 

In treating of the future life Canon Holmes sticks to the 
Anglican conception that the joys of Paradise are not unalloyed 

* Immartaliiy, By £. £. Holmes. New York : Longmans, Green & Co. 



Digitized by 



Google 



248 NEW BOOKS [May, 

with pain ; for the life of the blessed must be one of progress, 
and progress involves pain. This is the point on which the 
Canon is most directly in contradiction with Catholic theology ; 
though he comes near another collision on the nature of eter- 
nal punishment, which he seems — ^his view is stated rather in- 
definitely — almost to deprive of its painfulness. 

He makes an eloquent defence of the doctrine of prayers 
for the dead, and claims that it is quite consistent with the 
condemnation of '' the Roman doctrine concerning purgatory " 
by Article XXII. of the Church of England. Until a compara- 
tively recent date almost the entire Church of England inter- 
preted, and the greater portion of it even to-day interprets, this 
Article as a peremptory condemnation of the Catholic custom of 
praying for the dead. The Canon. endeavors to evade the diffi- 
culty by treating the Article as condemning the idea that souls 
are tormented in purgatory and may be released from it by 
indulgences. If the Canon would examine the essentials of the 
doctrine of purgatory — he has viewed it chiefly in the light of 
those arithmetical calculations of sins and penalties in which 
some Catholic writers indulge — he would see that, unless it too 
is accepted, prayer for the dead can have no value except as an 
expression of affection. Our dissent from the writer on these 
and a few minor points, must not stand in the way of admiring 
the strong faith which breathes in his pages, and the earnest 
yet gentle persuasiveness with which he impresses it on bis 
readers, by appealing strongly to the heart. 

Accustomed as we are to take 
THE WITNESS OF THE western history as the history of 
WILDERNESS. the world, it requires a mental ef- 

fort to grasp the fact that there 
exists to-day a people who, in all the essentials of character 
and mode of life, are the same as they were 'before ancient 
Rome was founded.* Before Rome was founded 1 That was a 
modern date in their history; they were much the same as 
they are to-day when the three friends came to Job to offer 
him their too judicious sympathy on the occasion of bis re- 
verses. The offspring of Hagar, the modern Bedouin of the 
desert, has been studied closely by a clergyman of the Church 

* Tk€ Witness of the Wilderness, By G. Robiason Lees. New York : Longmans, Green 
&Co. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909-] NEW BOOKS 249 

of England^ long resident in Palestine, who offers a charming 
little book as the fruit of his personal observations, supple- 
mented by the study of the best contemporary authorities. 
His main purpose is to draw attention to the resemblances be« 
tween modern Arab life and the occasional glimpses which 
the Old Testament, and, less profusely, the Gospels, throw upon 
the character, morals, manners, and customs of these tribes. 
He also discusses briefly the nature and effects of Mahomet- 
anism; and tells us how far the Bedouin accepts its tenets 
and practices its code. The Arab of the desert is not, accord- 
ing to Mr. Lee, a very intelligent or faithful exponent of Is- 
lam: 

His conception of fate springs irresistibly from bis con- 
sciousness of the transcending greatness of what is outside 
his own feeble existence. He believes in an arbitrary and in- 
exorable law proceeding from an objective Power that en- 
closes and molds bis own subjective activity. The vast ex- 
panse of heaven with whicb he is so familiar and the exten- 
sive landscape over which he travels is the boundless empire 
of the supreme Ruler of man's destiny. He is impressed with 
the awful majesty of the Being Who wills all things, and he 
accepts the ills of life with a marvelous resignation as being 
according to His dispensation. So overwhelming is the sense 
of the power of the Almighty, that there seems to be no room 
left for the will of man. The principle of '* Islam " is shorn 
of its grandeur by the absence of the consciousness of posses- 
sion of a will to submit to the control of a superior being. 

Strife and bloodshed and cattle-raiding are the features of 
their daily life. Polygamy is practised as in patriarchal days; 
and the woman is the household drudge. But she is also the 
object of man's solicitude and care. 

Whatever they may do, they never forfeit the esteem of 
their sex, nor the appreciation of men generally, and never 
fall into the terrible state of infamy that is reached sometimes 
in the centers of civilization. There are no abandoned wo- 
men, no victims of man's vicious nature, left to die in hopeless 
misery, scorned by all who confess that a woman gave them 
birth and nourished them with a boundless affection. 

A number of neat, clear photogravures enhance the interest 
and value of the book. 



Digitized by 



Google 



2SO New Books [May, 

This effort of a busy lawyer to 
SARLT CHRISTIAN HTMNS. spread the knowledge and love of 

the Church's treasury of song/ 
by providing accurate and agreeable translations of the Latin 
originals, cannot be too highly commended. The Breviary was 
not always and should not be to-day a closed book to the 
laity ; the movement for congregational singing, dating at least 
from St. Ambrose, should not stop until many of St. Ambrose's 
hymns, for instance, are as familiar to the pew-holder as to 
the pastor. The present volume contains one hundred and 
seventy songs, ranging in time from the fourth century to the 
sixteenth, containing the less known works of Prudentius, For- 
tunatus, Odo of Cluny, Urban VIII., as well as the ever ad- 
mired verses of St Bernard, Thomas of Celano, St Thomas 
Aquinas, and Jacopone da Todi. Judge Donahoe assigns thirty- 
two authentic hymns to St Ambrose, omitting some of the 
eighteen ascribed to him by other editors; he credits St 
Gregory with sixteen, while the Benedictines give him only 
eight; he does not include the Irish Liber Hymnorum^ nor 
hymns by St Felix Ennodius, St Peter Damian, and Adam of 
St Victor. The biographical notes are interesting, though 
sometimes too brief; the indexes are accurate; the appearance 
of the book attractive ; the price somewhat too high for the 
man in the street. One might wish that the translator had 
followed Cardinal Newman in variety of meter, and in concrete 
phrasing to a greater degree, especially from his success with 
the Node Surgentes and the Ecce Jam Noctis^ both excellently 
done in the Sapphics of the original. 

A neat little book f of answers to 
CONTROVERST. a number of objections and argu- 

ments frequently urged by the 
opponents of the Church has just been published by Dr. Lam- 
bert, of Ingersoll fame. He first treats a few of the objections 
urged against all religion and Christianity in general by free- 
thinkers; and then takes up those of Protestants against the 
Church ; closing with some excuses pleaded by Catholics to 
reconcile the opposition existing between their belief and their 

*£arfy CkrisHoM Hymns. Translated by Daniel Joseph Donahoe. New York: The 
Grafton Press. 

t Short Ansvurs to CommoM Ohftctions Agaimst Etli^ion, By Mgr. de Segur. Edited by 
Rev. L. A. Lambert, LL.D. Brooklyn : International Catholic Truth Society. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New BOOKS 251 

practice. Mgr. de Segur is direct, brief, and persuasive, with 
a tendency to infuse occasionally a little pungency into the re- 
torts to the adversary. 

The treatment of some historical questions might have been 
greatly strengthened by the editor if he had added recent 
non* Catholic historians— a resource for our controversialists 
which is, happily, growing larger and larger every day. 

The appearance of a third edition of Father Burke's little 
vest* pocket vade mecum for non-Catholics desirous of learning 
the nature of everyday Catholic ceremonies and practices in- 
dicates its popularity.* Catholics are frequently asked by well- 
disposed outsiders for something short to read concerning 
Catholic worship. They can meet the request with Father 
Burke's assistance. 

One of the most perplexing and 
RELIGIOUS AND MORAL most important cares of a pastor, 
TRAINING. the organization and maintenance 

of his Sunday- School in a state of 
vital, energetic efficiency, often rewards him with much less 
fruit than the zealous labor which he lavished on it might lead 
him reasonably to expect. Where lay the fault? Probably 
any one who has had this experience will find some light on 
past failure and help towards future success, if he studies Father 
Sloan's new book on Sunday-School work.f This one, addressed 
to directors, is marked by the same thorough acquaintance 
with the factors in the problem, the same sound judgment, 
and the same attention to seemingly trivial but really import- 
ant detail, as characterized the author's other work for the 
teacher. Here teacher and pupil, methods and material equip- 
ment, souls and bodies, are all considered from the point of 
view of the man who is ultimately responsible for the success 
or failure of this serious charge. How serious it is, and how 
far from successful, commonly speaking, it is in one or two 
very important respects. Father Sloan tells us very clearly. 
He treats the entire subject systematically and in an eminently 
practical way. 

* R*ms9nabUniss ef Catholic Ctttmoma and Practicis. By Rev. J. J. Burke. Third Edi- 
tioa. New York : Beneiger Bzx>thers. 

t TJU Sunday-SckoQl DinOof't Guide to Success. By Rey. Patrick J. Sloan. New York : 
Benziger Brothers. 



Digitized by 



Google 



352 NEW BOOKS [May, 

An excellent little book for teachers, but more especially 
for parents, is Mrs. Burke's Child Study and Education.^ She 
gathers into small compass some ripe fruit of modern scientific 
pedagogy, combined with solid ancient wisdom approved of by 
time, which some of the exponents of modem pedagogy are 
at times disposed to pass over a little too lightly. Her topic 
is chiefly the home-training of the child, and its bearing upon 
concurrent or subsequent school- education. It would probably 
be treated as a piece of revolutionary insolence to suggest that 
a book of this sort might be studied with profit in advanced 
convent schools. Yet some knowledge of bow best to train 
the child, religiously, morally, and intellectually, would not be 
a worthless or pernicious acquisition for girls who, in most 
cases, are destined to be the mothers of families. If they do 
not acquire, when at school, some systematic instruction to help 
them, in the future, to discharge one of the greatest duties of 
their office, where will they get it ? Mrs. Burke's book will be 
found to be most serviceable. 

In choosing this title f for a vol- 
THE SPRINGS OF HELICON, ume which contains the substance 

of his two official courses of lee- 
tures, delivered in 1906 and 1908, the occupant of the Chair 
of Poetry at Oxford University was not merely caught by a 
pretty or traditional phrase. In its original place, that phrase 
conveyed, in fine concentration, the truth that all European 
poetry is connected with and indebted to Greece; and that 
English poetry especially is indebted to the Grecian stream, 
from which it has borrowed, directly and indirectly, at three 
turning points of its development. These three stages, which 
Professor Mackail has selected in order to study the growth 
and progress of English poetry as a phase of life, are em- 
bodied in Chaucer, Spencer, and Milton. Each of these is 
treated at considerable length in an essay abounding in erudite, 
broad, and luminous criticism. Professor Mackail is learned 
and technical without being pedantic ; he has to convey subtle 
appreciations of the supra-sensuous and intangible in terms 
proper to concrete expression; but he manages to express in- 
telligibly what he wants to say, and he has always something 

* Ckiid Study and Education. By Mrs. B. E. Burke. New York : Benziger Brothers, 
t The Springs 0/ Helicon : A Study in the Prtgress of English Poetry from Chaucer to 
Milton, By I. W. Mackail. New York : Longmans, Green & Co. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New Books 253 

to say that is worth listening to. It is too late a day to find 
anything brilliantly original to say regarding these three poets; 
the field has been long since reaped and gleaned. But Pro- 
fessor Mackail has sifted and ground the wheat, and baked it 
with skilly as he added to the flour a sound leaven of his own. 
The excellence of this work is general throughout; so that 
there are few particularly striking passages that insist upon 
quotation. The following one, however, may be cited as a 
favorable example: 

There is a natural tendency in the human mind to confuse 
imagination with imagery. The difference between them is 
that between creation on the one hand and invention on the 
other, and it is vital. Spencer thought (so far as he did 
think) in Images. His inventiveness, his faculty for pouring 
forth an endless stream of imagery is unsurpassed, just as is 
his faculty for conveying this imagery in unfailingly fluent 
and melodious language. He is a complete master of decora- 
tive art, so far as this very fertility and fluency do not, as we 
may think, lead him to make his decoration too Intricate, to 
overload his ornament. But while all art is decoration, it is 
not in its merely decorative quality that art can be great art, 
can fully realize its function. To do this it must rise from in- 
vention to creation. Its imagery must be transmuted by im- 
agination ; it must not only adorn, but interpret, and, in a 
sense, make life. 

««« ,„,*»^ rv,^ r.T.^m^«r Scxtou Maglunis, with his glossy 
THE WILES OP SEXTON .„ . -. u- u -. j i* . a 

m^A/^rmro ^ilk hat, his somewhat adulterated 

MAGINrilo, . , . . , 

brogue, his unrighteous contempt 

for the unregenerate ''Dago," his well-founded respect for Her- 
self, and reverence suffused with salutary fear for his mother. 
in«law, has already made his bow in one of our magazines to 
what has proved an appreciative public. A critic suffering from 
the mania for classification might place this series of amusing 
sketches * alongside of My New Curate^ as an American counter- 
part of those inimitable scenes from Irish life, as seen through 
the rectory window. Dr. Egan, however, confines himself to 
the ripples on the surface, and does not touch the deeper cur- 
rents. He entertains us with a rapidly- moving set of situa- 
tions, illustrating widespread characteristics of clergy and laity 

• Thi Wiles •fStxtvH Ma^inmU, By Maurice Francis Egaa. New York : The Century 
Company. 



Digitized by 



Google 



254 NEW Books [May, 

as they are to be found everywhere in our towns and cities: 
the earnest, devoted, not over-cultured but theologically well- 
educated Father Dudley, who knows he understands the people, 
and sometimes finds his knowledge at fault; the refined con- 
vert. Father Blodgett, who, in Father Dudley's opinion, doesn't 
understand the people at all, and will certainly make a mess of 
his parish, yet who, somehow, manages to succeed, notwith- 
standing that he smashes all Maginnis' judgments concerning 
both social and spiritual values in respective application to the 
Ryans, the Moldonovos, the Germans, and a black atheist whose 
chief crime is that he is threatening to confer high distinction 
on the upstart Ryans. 

Maginnis is a very Machiavelli for plotting and design. 
But his purpose is usually ad majorem Dei Gloriam; and his 
methods are not by any means unfathomable. There is plenty 
of kindly humor throughout the book; and its strength is sub- 
dued to the capacity of the most delicate digestions. While the 
Doctor nowhere sets up a solid meal of entertainment, he treats 
us to an afternoon-tea variety of delicacies served, impeccably, 
according to rule. Now and again one meets an epigram that 
is worth quotation. For instance, a whole treatise on the 
economic character of a large proportion of Southern farming is 
summed up in the remark about the Virginian place of Willie Cur- 
tice. '^ The place had been worked ' on shares,' but there never 
seemed to be more than one share." And we have heard long, 
ponderous sermons which labored, with more or less success, to 
drive home the thought that is neatly and effectively sent into 
the bull's-eye in the following remark, made by a hitherto 
hopeless agnostic who has had Catholicism presented to him 
in the concrete, through the medium of a genuinely Catholic 
girl : '^ ' I say. Uncle,' he declared, as he bade good-bye to his 
reverend relative at the train, ' a religion that can produce such 
examples of virtue and correct living doesn't have to be ex- 
amined. A man's a fool who wants to analyze that sort of 
thing. You don't look at the roots of a big oak.'" Where 
occasion offers, the Doctor is almost as profuse in his literary 
allusions as Canon Sheehan himself; but he does not imitate 
the Canon's precision and definiteness; and judging from the 
one place where he makes one of his speakers quote St. Tho- 
mas textually, he is wise in refusing to commit himself in this 
way. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] NEW BOOKS 25 s 

A writer who jumped into public 
THE LITTLE GODS. notice some time ago by carrying 

off a handsome prize with his story 
of Fagan has made it the opening of a series of sketches descrip- 
tive of life in the Far East, as it is lived and viewed by American 
soldiers and officials.* The first story is distinctly the best of the 
lot; although they all show power and imagination. They are a 
Philippine counterpart of Kipling's pictures of Tommy Atkins 
in India — ''Put me somewhere east of Suez, where the best is 
like the worst/' The native, as Mr. Thomas draws him, is of 
three types, the bloodthirsty, treacherous, irreconcilable, with 
no tincture of civilization; the half-blood Spanish planter or 
trader, equally treacherous ; and the loyal servant who worships 
his white master. The soldiers are, of course, reckless roysterers, 
or abnormally cool gentlemen, flippant or jocular in the face of 
danger, for whom there are no ten commandments, but who 
usually make a successful bid for our sympathy by showing at 
a critical moment that, down deep in their hearts, there are 
strong fibers of feeling and generosity. The work lacks bold- 
ness, not of imagination, but of execution ; a little more indi- 
viduality in the characters, a little more of that force which is 
born of intimate personal experience, and The Little Gods would 
approach Kipling in fact, as nearly as it approaches him in 
aspiration. 

To be honest, we must confess to 
A CHILD OF DESTINY, have suffered a disappointment in 

this story.f The genuine gift of 
song, exhibited in some of the two collections of poems from 
Dr. Fischer's pen, raised the expectation that this novel might 
prove worthy of the very respectable dress which the publisher 
has bestowed on it. But a perusal of A Child of Destiny repeated 
the old story — Non omnes possumus omnia. Every one has his 
limitations. The Doctor's gift is song — not story* telling, or 
dramatic creation. The strongly edifying tone of the novel 
but adds to the regret that an excellent lesson is not con- 
veyed in a way that would deserve for it a wide circle of 
hearers. 

* Tk€ LUtU Gods: A Mosqut •/ ik€ Par East, By Rowland Thomas. Boston : Little, 
Brown & Co. 

t A Child ofDuUmy. By William J. Fischer. lUnstiated. Toronto : William Briggs. 



Digitized by 



Google 



2s6 NEW Books [May, 

Leaving the field in which he has 
THE SON OF SIRO. worked to the satisfaction of the 

boys, Father Copus has entered on 
a higher path in historical fiction. The Son of Siro^ is founded 
on the Gospel-history, and covers the earlier years of our Lord's 
life, as well as those of His ministry. Siro's son is Lazarus ; and 
Father Copus identifies Magdalen with Mary of Bethany. The 
story is a fine piece of imaginative construction, directed by 
good taste, which is so indispensable to any one who ventures 
to give a fictitious setting to the life of our Lord, The Master's 
picture is drawn with striking individuality; and, needless to 
say. His Divinity is uncompromisingly manifested. It would 
be exaggeration to say that this story is a rival to Ben 
Hur^ but it is not undeserving of being named with that mas- 
terpiece, though it is constructed on a much less ambitious 
plan, and the author was prohibited from drawing upon mate- 
rials which furnish much of the motives and incidents of Wal- 
lace's story. Persons unfamiliar with the Gospel-history cannot 
but read it with more intelligence and interest after they will 
have read this attractive story. The suggestion, we think, is 
valuable for both adults and children. 

Mrs. Brookfield has already shown 
A FRIAR OBSERVANT, her acquaintance with the times 

of the Reformation in England, 
and her talent for making the dead bones of history live again, 
and endowing them with the glow of life from the treasures of 
imagination. She now leads us over seas to make the acquaint- 
ance of a few of the prominent figures in the great upheaval. 
The story f opens in England at the time when Henry VIII. is 
commencing his violent campaign against the papal supremacy. 
A friar, who has been expelled from his convent, hurries to the 
deathbed of a nobleman, who is dying in penury and disgrace, 
a victim of his own loyalty and Henry's tyranny. The Earl of 
Lhanpylt, as a dying request, charges the friar to proceed to 
Germany, in order to seek the Earl's young daughter, who is 
at one of the German courts; and to deliver to her a packet 
of letters as well as a staff cut from a spot which she loved 
as a child. 



• Tht S9m o/Siro. Ry Rev. J. E. Copus, S J. New York : Benziger Brothers, 
t A Friar Observant, By Frances M. Brookfield. SU Louis : B« Herder. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] NEW BOOKS 257 

So forth the friar goes to the storm*center of the Reforma- 
tion; and before long he learns a great deal about the ''new 
faith/' and the new morals ; makes the acquaintance of a burly, 
violent, overbearing pastor, who ought to have been a leader 
of free-lances, but who is really Dr. Martin Luther. Soon, be- 
tween the loss of his package and staff and the accidental 
entanglements which his quest of the Lady Anne entail on him, 
the friar makes the acquaintance of Philip of Hesse and bears 
a part in the negotiations and wiles which that artful and reck- 
less man carries on to obtain the consent of Luther to a biga- 
mous marriage. The law of bigamy is expounded by Cardinal 
Farnese who, along with the Emperor, appears on the stage. 

The story has a strong element of romance in it; as you 
may judge from the fact that the friar assists twp young Eng- 
lishmen to abduct two ladies from the Castle of Philip, and af- 
terwards arrives at Philip's court, in the quality of commissioner 
of the Emperor, to forbid the marriage of Philip and Margaret 
von Saal, which he is just in time to witness without being 
able to deliver his message. This picture of the Reformation 
times lacks the fullness of detail and the variety of interests, 
types, and characters, we shall not say of Charles Readers novels, 
but even of Father Benson's. It presents only an episode ; but 
the episode is well-conceived and well- related, and the char- 
acters of Luther, Philip, and Margaret are boldly drawn, while 
the friar himself and the Lady Anne are mere marionettes. 
It is a stirring and picturesque tale of the times. 

In Aline of the Grand Woods * we 

ALINB OP THB ORAHD 8®^ "^^^^ ^^ sub-title promises 

WOODS. us, a story of Louisiana, full of 

the peculiar elements, physical and 
social, which distinguishes the old Creole State so sharply 
from every other portion of the country. The story is full of 
incident, and introduces us to quite a little world of characters, 
-each one of whom, however brief and transitory may be 
his or her part in the drama, possesses a distinct individual- 
ity, and is true to life. Perhaps the heroine herself is rather 
highly idealized to allow this to be said of her. The best drawn 
character in the book is neither Aline nor her favored lover— 

•AliM* oftJU Grand Woods. By NevU G. Henshaw. New York : The Outing Pablish- 
^ng Company, 

YOL. LXXZIX.— 17 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



2SS NEW BOOKS [May, 

for she has two, who have but little ia common except their 
attachment to her. Far better done are the delineations of 
Numa le Blanc, the wild, revengeful, bold, and treacherous 
half-Spaniard, who loves Aline; P^re Martian, the Cur^; old 
Telesse and. his friend the hunchback, the devoted protectors 
of the little girl, who grows up in the cabin of Telesse as his 
niece, but, as the reader knows, is a girl of rank; Monsieur 
Varain, a successful old storekeeper. Around these cling the 
distinctive Creole air which pervades the book. Negroes, 
too, add to the color of the picture ; they are not conspicuous,, 
but they are true to life, as they are to be seen in their earth- 
ly paradise — around the kitchen of an old palatial Southern 
home. The period of the story is the present day, and the 
writer spares us even the remotest reference to that overwrought 
motive, political sentiment The. story makes no pretension to 
solve character or moral problems. It is a good, downright 
story in the old-fashioned style, moving along the paths of 
real life, which it softens and colors with a tinge of romance. 

'' Which is the best manual of phi- 
THE £NEID IN ENGLISH losophy?'' was the question once 
VERSE. put to a professor who had pub- 

lished one himself. Without hesi- 
tation or doubt the answer came: ''My own, certainly; if I 
had not thought so, I would not have published it." What- 
ever might have been the worth of the judgment, here at least 
was an honest and sensible answer. The same sort of honesty 
and good sense abounds in Mr. Williams' preface to his versi- 
fied translation of the iEneid.* He speaks, indeed, rather more 
bluntly ; for not only does he reckon his owq version the best, 
but he declares, with something short of Virgilian grace and 
sweetness, that he has been almost unable to find anything 
worth borrowing from. his predecessors, while ''all the rhymed 
versions seemed to have a touch of the comic." Happy are 
the merciless if they obtain mercy I 

For ourselves, stern justice compels us to admit that Mr. 
Williams' version never, or very seldom, has a touch of the 
comic; that his phrasings are so frequently happy that only a 
successor of churlish originality will refuse to borrow from him }, 

. • Thi jEnHd of Vit^il, Translated into English verse by Theodore C. Williams. 
Boston : Houghton Mifflin Company. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] l^Jsiv Books 259 

and that his verse is usually melodious and of a sustained dig- 
nity. No oner expects him to reproduce the Virgilian sweet- 
ness and majesty; but he often catches something of the ease, 
the smoothness/ the rapidity of the Master. The measure he 
uses is the pentameter blank verse ; and in searching our mem- 
ory for an English poem which might convey an idea of Mr. 
Williams' versification, we lit upon Keats' Hyperion. There is 
here much of the same ease and flow in the rhythm, but also 
the same inability to give forth those deep organ tones that 
accompany the majei^tic march of Milton's verse ; while, on the 
other hand, Mr. Williams seldom attains the splendor of phrase 
or sweetness of melody that may almost be called the manner 
of Keats. 

Special attention is directed in the preface to the piety of 
Virgil, as this is usually overlooked or neglected at the pres- 
ent day. In the Middle Ages, surely, this aspect of the poet's 
work received due attention : Virgil was the poet of the Ages 
of Faith, and was almost counted among the prophets as an 
unconscious Christian. Some of our readers remember — and 
we wish Mr. Williams could have found room for a reference 
to it — the delightful comparison which Newman institutes be- 
tween the spirit of Virgil and the spirit of the Benedictine 
Order.* St. Benedict is Virgil Christianized and turned monk 
— assuredly a poetical, lovable, gentle monk, even though he 
did demolish the statue of Apollo. 

Reader, can we tempt you to take your Virgil to the sea- 
shore or the mountains ' this summer? If not the original, at 
least Mr. Williams' translation? Twelve books of the iEneid, 
one for each day of your two weeks' vacation — and on Sun- 
days you may read the Rule of St. Benedict 1 Leave at home 
your popular novel, which to-day is and to-morrow is cast into 
the rubbish- heap. Betake yourself to a noble poet, whose 
beauty is like a delightful summer eve, when the sky is filled 
with a soft, effulgent glory and Mother Earth sinks to rest in 
quietness and peace. 

TA^ New Scholar at St. Anne*s^\ 

JUVENILES. a sequel to The Madcap Set, is an 

entertaining little story of convent 

boarding-school life. It deals with the fortunes of the stu- 

*See HisUrual SJUteha, essays on Thi Missiom of th4 Benedictine Ordtr 9iXid TAeBene^ 
dUtine CeiUnries» 

t The New Scholar at St Anne's, By M arion Bnmowe, New York : Benziger Brothers. 



Digitized by 



Google 



26o NEW Books [May, 

dents and teachers when a new and uncomfortably original girl 
suddenly drops down into their rather quiet life. Encouraged 
by a doting and indulgent mother, the new scholar succeeds 
in overturning most of the rules of the school; but in the end 
becomes surprisingly docile. The characters are rather indefi- 
nitely drawn, but the management of the incidents shows a fa- 
miliarity with the atmosphere of a convent boarding- school. 

Madge^Make^the^BesUof^It^ needs no further commendation 
than to say that it belongs to the <'St. Nicholas Series/' and 
is worthy of its company. 

Cupa Revisited \ introduces young folk to the Califomian 
Indian as he is to-day; and incidentally gives them a lesson 
in history by drawing their attention to the contrast between 
the Indian's condition to-day and that which he enjoyed while 
the missions flourished. 

If we might, in the absence of the owner, borrow a favor- 
ite adjective of ex-President Roosevelt — ^we should like to de- 
clare Between Friends X simply "bully." It Is a story of a 
group of boys in a boarding-school, where a spirit of honor 
and loyalty is cultivated, together with a keen devotion to the 
glory of Alma Mater in the baseball field. 

The author who has delighted the juveniles with the pretty 
"Ridingdale" stories now addresses to their elders a set of life- 
stories,^ written with the same facile and graceful pen. These 
sketches, which, to borrow a phrase found in the book, may 
be called consolation stories, gather around the name of Claude 
Denville, a French artist who, with considerable experience of 
life recorded in his notebook, comes to Ridingdale, where he 
finds much addition to the acquaintance which he has made 
among lost and stolen sheep that were happily, through Provi- 
dential interference, brought safe to fold. 

* Madie-MaJu-iht-Bes^f^lU By M. E. Francis. New Vork : Benzigei Brothers, 
t Cupa Revisited, By Mary Manniz. New York : Bendger Brothers. 
X Between Friends, By Richard Aumerle. New York : Benziger Brothers. 
$ Ciaude Denville, Artist, By David J. Beame« S.J. St. Louis : B. Herder. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New Books 261 

America^ the new Catholic weekly, 

THB HEW CATHOLIC issued its first number on April 

WEEKLY, 17. It supersedes The Messenger^ 

the monthly magazine published 

under the same auspices. The editorial staff of the old monthly 

has been considerably increased. The new publication is under 

the direction of the Reverends John J. Wynne, S J., Francis S. 

Betten, S.J.» Lewis Drummond, S.J., Dominic Giacobbi, S.J., 

Michael Kenny, S.J., Michael J. O'Connor, S.J., and Edward 

P. Spillane, S.J. Fathers Wynne and Spillane were formerly 

of The Messenger staff. 

The first number of America contains twenty-six pages of 
reading-matter, under the departments of Chronicle, Ques- 
tions of the Day, Correspondence, Editorial, Literature, Educa- 
tional, Science, Art, and Ecclesiastical News. The feature of 
the week is the space devoted to Joan of Arc, recently declared 
Blessed by Pius X, 

The need in our country of an able Catholic weekly is a 
most pressing one. To America^ which aims to fulfill that need. 
The Catholic World extends a cordial welcome and its 
heartiest wishes for a long, prosperous, and successful life. 

Here, at last, is the satisfactory 

M. LOIST. discussion of the opinions of Loisy, 

with a criticism of them which 

shows that the man who set the world agog with A Little Book^ 

has found ''a foeman worthy of his steel.'' 

M. Lepin devotes by far the larger part of his volume * to 
a summary of the views of M. Loisy, given according to the 
chronological order in which his books appeared. This part of 
the work is done clearly and succinctly, with admirable dispas- 
sionateness and scholarly self-restraint. Of explicit criticism 
there is very little in the first 230 pages. 

But, even when he comes professedly to controvert M. 
Loisy's theories, Father Lepin is equally courteous, though by 
no means lacking in rigor of manner. 

Perhaps the predominating feeling of any Catholic who reads 
this book, will be one of amazement that M. Loisy could have 
so long and so stoutly maintained his claim of being a Catho- 
lic. It would be difficult to find, either among outright ration- 

* Lu Thiofus di M, Loisy. Sxposiet Critique. Par M. Lepin. Paris : Beauchesne et Cie^ 



Digitized by 



Google 



262 NEW Books [May, 

alists or liberal Protestants of the most ^Miberal" tendencies, 
so radical a criticism of the Christian dogmas, of the historic- 
ity of the facts upon which the Christian religion is founded, 
or of the documents warranting the facts. 

It is well known that Loisy, in the introduction to Le 
Quatriifne EvangiU^ expressly rejected any historical or bio- 
graphical value for St John's Gospel. And in his more recent 
gigantic treatise upon the Synoptics, he systematically elimi- 
nates every miracle or supernatural fact; he casts suspicion 
upon the authenticity of well-nigh every text that would make 
of Christ anything but an ordinary prophet in whose life and 
death there was nothing thaumaturgic or supernatural From 
the manger to the Cross, and from the Cross to the Ascension, 
scarcely any statement of historical or biographical fact es- 
capes what M. Lepin rightly names the '' pitiless rigor '' of his 
criticism. 

The narratives of the Infancy in Matthew and Luke, accord- 
ing to Loisy, have ''not the slightest historical foundation/' 
The genealogies were '' invented to prove the descent of Jesus 
from David '' ; and were '' elaborated in a circle which did not 
so much as have a suspicion of the virginal conception." The 
true and primitive Gospel-tradition points to Nazareth, not 
Bethlehem, as the birthplace of our Savior. And so he con- 
tinues, eliminating, root and branch, the historical statements 
of the Gospels. 

Even if we were to begin the life of Christ with the period 
of His maturity, as St. Mark does, still nothing historical re- 
mains undisputed. The hesitation of St. John the Baptist with 
regard to the baptizing of Jesus, is only a '' fiction.'' Christ was 
not conscious of any previous existence with God, nor of any 
unique association with Divinity; all texts indicating the con- 
trary are ruled out as unauthentic. 

The great miracles and the small are indiscriminatingly set 
aside. The miracle of the multiplication of the loaves is so in- 
credibly large that it must be only a '' symbolic instruction " ; 
the miracle of the coin of the tribute in the mouth of the fish 
is so small that it is only a childish invention. The healing of 
the sick, the raising of the dead, the curing of demoniacs, of 
the blind and the deaf, are, for the most part, legendary or 
symbolic; a few extraordinary cases may actually have oc- 
curred, but they could be easily numbered. And as of the 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] I^£lV BOOKS 263 

miracles, so of the mysteries. The last supper was simply a 
farewell repast, afterwards elaborated in the narrative by the 
introduction of St. Paul's ideas about the Eucharistic meal. 
The words ''this is My Body, this is My Blood'' were not 
spoken. 

The detail of the two asses in the story of the entry into 
Jerusalem, the Messianic acclaim in the temple, Judas' thirty 
pieces of silver, his repentance and death, the guard at the 
tomb, and all such historical incidents, are ''legendary inven- 
tions, and very weak inventions." 

The Resurrection of the Body of Christ cannot pretend to 
be a fact of history ; the claim of the foundation of a Church 
Society by Christ is a kind of ix post facto invention. 

So, we say, a Catholic wonders what can remain, not only of 
dogma, but of historic fact? Loisy shows himself less ortho- 
dox than Harnack or Weiss. His method, according to M. 
Lepin, is a revival of that of Strauss. He makes of the Gos- 
pels largely a concatenation of legends and symbolic narratives, 
and is more radical in his opinions of the historicity and au- 
thenticity of the sacred writings than perhaps any of his liberal 
contemporaries. 

All these things become evident to one who will actually 
read Loisy, rather than read what the newspapers say of him ; 
and if one's duty demand that he read Loisy systematically, 
he cannot do better than follow M. Lepin's order. Those who 
have not the melancholy necessity of following the thought of 
Loisy in his own works may be confident of an honest sum- 
mary, as well as a powerful refutation, in M. Lepin. 



Digitized by 



Google 



j^oteidtt petlobicals. 

The Tablet (13 March): Reports under ''Parliamentary News"; 
''The Suggested Enforced Military Service''; "Fair 
Wages in Government Contracts and Prohibition of Sub- 
letting." The subject of " Topics of the Day " is The 

Maid of Orleans— the story of her death and how the 
decision of the Holy See as to her horoic virtue is rati- 
fied by the verdict of all the ages.— ^" Dancing in 
Churches." Father Thurston throws a flood of light on 
this interesting subjecti and shows how widely the prac- 
tice once prevailed in Western Europe.— ^Mr. Belloc's 
statement that "No Moral Considerations are Involved 
in Socialism/' is criticised by A. P. Mooney, M.D., who 
gives extracts from the works of Marx, Keir, Hardie, and 
Mrs. Snowdon to prove the contrary. 
(20 March) : A profound impression was created in the 
House of Commons by the Prime Minister's speech on 
"The Government and the Navy." If Mr. Balfour is 
right, then the supremacy of the seas will pass from 

Great Britain in 191 1. "The Nation's Drink Bill" 

shows a remarkable diminution in the volume of the 
ocean of drink upon which the people still squanders its 
millions.— ^" Public Procession of the Blessed Sacra- 
ment" took place in Manchester as the closing func- 
tion of a great mission. Thousands of men and women 
marched in line carrying candles.— ^Apropos of Dr. 
Ingram's claim to be a lineal descendant of the Catholic 
pre< Reformation Bishops of London, Father Hay den, 
S.J., delivered a lecture on "Rome and Winchester in 
the Fourteenth Century." From authorities quoted, the 
Anglican Bishop's claim does not seem to rest on a very 
solid foundation. 

(27 March): Records the death of "Father George An- 
gus," a well-known convert from Anglicanism and a 
frequent contributor to the columns of The Tablet—^ 
"Rome and the Press." A letter by Mr. Chesterton in 
reply to a Protestant assertion that " Catholics seemed 
to be capturing the Press of the country." The writer 
is of opinion that the days of the bogus anti-popery 
revelations have passed away.— ^Mr. Roosevelt's edi- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Foreign periodicals 265 

torial in the Outlook on '' Socialism '' is quoted with ap- 
proval. If he cannot longer use 'Uhe big stick'' he 
can wield ''the big pen/' A correspondent, Mr. Os- 
borne, gives an account of a society in existence in the 
Anglican Church called ''The Living Rosary of our 
Lady and St. Dominic."— Under " Literary Notes/' 
we read that the late Francis Thompson's article on 
Shelley, which appeared recently in the Dublin Review^ 
has been issued in book-form. It appears that so far 
back as 1889 it was offered to the Review ^ only to be 
rejected. 

The Month (March): The place of honor is given to an article 
by Father Keating, S.J., on "Rights and Wrongs of 
Education." Taken all round, he says, a clever scoundrel 
is something much less desirable than a pious fool. Ac- 
cording to Catholic notions a child must not only know 
how to spell " soul," but he must learn to keep it clean. 

^The object of "Senlac," by Mr. Belloc, is to 

show that Freeman was mistaken in giving this un- 
couth name to the Battle of Hastings.— " The Main 
Problem of the Universe," by the Editor, deals with 
Natural Selection as a Vera Causa. Neither observa- 
tion nor statistics show that we are justified in regard- 
ing it as such.-^— Father Thurston, in "Some Recent 
Clerical Scandals," gives us what may be considered a 
parody of the controversial methods of such writers as 
Dr. H. C. Lea, who have a predilection for the shady 
side of ecclesiastical history.— Other articles are: "For- 
eign Missions," by the Rev. H. Ahaus. " The ' Last 

Supper ' by some Flemish Painters," by Veva Randolph. 

The Cfucible (March): In an address on "The Business Habit 
in Woman," Cecil Gradwell urges promptness and punctu- 
ality in keeping appointments and paying bills. She 
warns against over-sharpness in business, which verges 
on the dishonest. Dom Lambert Nolle, O.S.B., dis- 
cusses the "Woman Question" and her aptitude for 
public life. He complains that not infrequently women 
are appointed to positions, not because they are more 
capable than men, but because they are cheaper.-^ 
Alice Johnson, Medical Officer of the Lambeth Poor 
Law Schools, furnishes an article on "The Feeble- 



Digitized by 



Google 



266 FOREIGN PERIODICALS [May, 

Minded and How to Deal With Them." As an institu- 
tion where an ideal condition of things exists, she cites 
Waverly School, Massachusetts, some eight miles from 

Boston. In the " History of Religions," Rev. C. Mar- 

tindale, SJ., while deploring the scantiness of Catholic 
literature on the subject, gives what he calls an unblush- 
ing recommendation to the C. T. S. lectures dealing with 
this matter. They are thirty- two in number and are 
now being published as penny pamphlets. 

The Expository Times (March): Among ''Notes of Recent Ex- 
position," we find '' Can Christianity Justify Itself to the 
Present Age ?" It has done so in the past, it can do so 

to-day. "The Use and Abuse of an Earthquake.'^ 

We are to believe it is from the hand of God, but not 
that it is sent as a punishment for a sin with which it 
has no connection. ''The Religious-Historical Move- 
ment in German Theology," by Rev. J. M. Shaw. Its 
prime mover was Ritschl, who sought to recover for 
faith the absolute value of the personality of the his- 
toric Jesus. " The Development of the Religious Con- 
sciousness," by Principal Garvie. In damonism we have 
the earliest form of religion. There were many spirits; 
power was their attribute, and so man tried to get on 
friendly terms with them by his gifts and by his prayers. 
—^ Under the caption "The New Hcrzog" is given an 
exposition of Professor Ztrn's article on "The Trinity." 
The doctrine of the Trinity is a safeguard against Deism 
on the one hand and Pantheism on the other. The im- 
manent Trinity and the Trinity of Revelation must go 
together. 

The International (March) : " Some New Tendencies in Art," is 
an appeal against what the Editor calls one of the most 
unfounded platitudes of the age in which we live ; name- 
ly, "The burial of all artistic conceptions beneath the 
ultra- realistic life of the present day."— In " Sweating 
and the Fair Wages Report," Percy Alden reviews the 
findings of the Parliamentary Committee and suggests 
some remedies to alleviate the disease.— —That Germany 
is making a brave attempt at the reconciliation of justi- 
fiable Socialism and Individualism is shown by Adolf 
Damaschke in "Land and Land-Tax Reform."— ^"So- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] FOREIGN PERIODICALS 267 

cialism in America." The writer, Otto Salland, of New 
York, admits that the late Presidential election did not 
realize the hopes of the Socialists. In most cities the 
Socialistic candidate lost votes ; still he believes the leaven 
is working, especially among the intellectual classes. 
Rosine Handlirsch, in ''The Development of the Love 
of Nature in Art/' shows how the natural sciences have 
played an important part in the development of art, es- 
pecially in animal and landscape painting. Zola's phrase, 
'Met the sunlight in," has become the watchword. 

The International Journal of Ethics (April) : " The Meaning of 
Evolution in Ethics." What, the writer^ Norman Wilde, 
asks, has Evolution done for Ethics ? He discovers four 
things, and in consequence we have come to consider 
moral conduct as part of conduct in general.— In 
"Apologies for Political Corruption," Robt C Brooks 
suggests four main lines of argument usually advanced 
by the advocatus diabolu Not one of them however, he 

says, stands the test of analysis. "Experience for 

Science and Religion," by Frank Granger, shows that 
there is a likeness between the prophet of science and 
the prophet of religion, inasmuch as both classes of men 
declare a vision of truth.— —E. Belford Bax, in "The 
Interpretation of Ethical Evolution," predicts that the 
day is coming when certain courses of conduct, now re- 
garded as ethically justifiable, will be condemned by the 
moral law of the tim^.— ^W. R. Hughes describes "An 
Experiment in Social and Reljgious Education Without 
Creed Limitations." It is called "The Alpha Union'' 
and it aims at spiritual catholicity. 

The Hibhert Journal (April) : Opens with an anonymous article 
entitled " Credo," a confession of faith in one God im- 
manent and transcendent, ever reconciling the world unto 

Himself. That the doctrine of the Trinity is neither 

absurd nor unthinkable is the verdict of Professor Keyer 
of Columbia, in his article, "The Message of Modern 
Mathematics to Theology." "The Disillusions of Mere- 
ly Human Democracy," by P. T. Forsyth, has as its aim 
the insufficiency of social righteousness to supply effective 
sympathy. All true brotherly love has as its basis the 
grace of the cross. Professor Vida Scudder continues 



Digitized by 



Google 



268 FOREIGN PERIODICALS [May, 

her analysis of Socialism in ''Socialism and Class Feel- 
ing.'* What it aims at is not the transfer of privilege 
but the abolition of it In '' The Message of Mr. Gil- 
bert K. Chesterton/' Mr. John A. Hutton endeavors to 
tell why Mr. Chesterton believes in God. The trend 
of thought underlying the prevailing religions among 
western nations is exposed by Professor Muirhead in '' Is 
there a Common Christianity ? ''——'' Christianity among 
the Religions," by J. D. Buckham, D.D. ^While Pro- 
fessor James describes '* The Philosophy of Bergson '* as 
the breath of the morning and the song of birds. 

The Irish Ecclesiastical Record (March) : That the appeal which 
Socialists make to the early Christian Church to find sup- 
port for their theories and practices is untrue to fact is 
the trend of Doctor Hogan's article ** The Fathers of the 
Church and Socialism."— —The Rev. P. Morrisroe, in 
''The Quadragesimal Fast," gives a brief retrospect of 
the evolution of the Lenten cycle, and shows how in the 
matter of fasting we have degenerated from the rigorous 
practice of the early Church.— -In " Roger Bacon and 
Modern Studies " the Rev. T. J. Walshe claims that the 
celebrated philosopher ranks to-day amongst the greatest 
educators of modern times. At the same time it must 
be borne in mind that he was not the high-priest of In- 
duction, as is often stated ; his distinction was not to orig« 
inate but to develop the practical application of indue* 
tion.— ^Other articles are: "The Irish Mythological 
Cycle," by Rev. A« M. Skelly, O.P., of San Francisco. 
——And " A Northumbrian Monastery," by Rev. G. E. 
Hind, O.S.B. 

Le Correspondant (lo March) : [Under the heading "A People 
Who Do Not Wish to Die," M. Estienne Hennet de 
Goutel gives one hundred years of Polish history, point- 
ing out that the old antagonisms have practically died 
out and that the extension of civil liberties in Russia 

augurs well for the future of Poland. M. George Fon- 

segrive gives a melange of current literary opinion on 
the question of " Love, the Family, and Marriage." His 
conclusion is that two ideas of the married life hold sway, 
happiness and love. For the most part, he says, writers 
fail to grasp the true meaning of either one or the other. 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909-] FOREIGN PERIODICALS 269 

** The Catholic Renaissance on the Eve of the Prot- 
estant Reformation/* by Bernard de Lacombe, exposes 
the commonly accepted fallacy that the Reformation found 
a Church corrupt and without hope. On the contrary, 
it was a Church full of life, with the power and will to 

reform and renew herself. Other articles are : ** Catho. 

lie Congresses/' by the Bishop of Langres.<^-— '^ The So- 
cial Movement/' by A» Bechaux. 
£tudes (5 March): Luden Raure reviews the chief "Agnostic 
Theories/' He defends the Scholastic opinion and attacks 

the Modernistic. ''The Religious Life of Brazil'' is 

described by Joseph Bumichon.^-— Based upon evidence 
obtained in 1778, Jules Grivet gives an account of ''The 
Last Moments of Voltaire." He refused the administra- 
tions of the priests and died at enmity with God. 
Favorable reviews are given to ThureauDangin's recent 
work on The Royal Inscriptions of Sumer and of Accad. 
Also to L. W. King's and H. R. Hall's Egypt and West^ 
sm Asia, in the light of recent discoveries."^-— In the 
"Bulletin of Patrology" reference is made to a recent 
discussion between H. Harnack anc| E. Schwartz regard- 
ing the authenticity of a document relating to the Synod 
of Antioch in 324. The reviewer thinks M. Schwartz 
had the better of the argument. 

(20 March): Ferdinand Cavallera traces the history of 
" The Psalms and Odes of Solomon/' one of the apocry- 
phal books of the Old Testament. All trace of the work 
had been lost sight of until the eighteenth century, when 
it was discovered by D. Hoeschel, librarian at Augsburg. 

" Three French Physicists/' by Joseph de Joannis, a 

continued article, is occupied with an account of the 
discoveries of M. Gabriel Lippmann, of the Sorbonne, 

who has just gained the Nobel prize in physics. Paul 

Dudon reviews the first volume of M. Gustave Bord's 
Beginnings of Fnemasonry in France. His conclusions 
are these : The Jewish origin of the Lodges is chimerical, 
as is also their affiliation with Manichxism. He gives 
the middle of the seventeenth century as the date of 
the introduction of the symbolism of Solomon's temple 
and the founding of the three grades of apprentice, com- 
panion, and master. 



Digitized by 



Google 



270 Foreign periodicals [May, 

Revue du Monde Catholique (i March): Abb^ Mazeas discusses 
'' Buddhism/' its origin, doctrine, and morals. Special at- 
tention is given to a comparison of the teachings of the 

Buddha with •those of Christ. In *' French Apologists 

of the Nineteenth Century,'* Mgr. d'Hulst is considered 
as a philosopher and orator; his theory regarding the 
synthesis of Scholasticism and Science is explained.-*— 
Leon Leconte, in his article on ''The Jews,'* traces the 
expectation of the Messias gathered Vrom the Jewish 
sacred books ; and the relation of this expectation to the 
looking forward by nations, contemporaneous with the 
Jews, to the coming of a Deliverer.— ^Abb^ Chauvel 
relates strange incidents in '' The Devil and Table Turn- 
ing,*' telling of one case where a boy was crushed against 
the wall and of the demand of the table to be baptized. 
Adapting the old adage Timeo Danaos et eos dona ferentes^ 
he advises strongly against such dealings with the Evil 
One. 

(15 March): ''The Spanish Apologists of the Nineteenth 
Century," by P. At, exposes the life and work of Juan 
Donoso- Cortes. It was a protest against the debased 
idea of liberty which had been rife in Europe since the 

Reformation. In "Woman and Her Mission," M. 

Secard. deals with the sufferings of life and the part which 
woman is called upon to play in enduring them. The 
Mother of Sorrows stands forth as an example. How 
are they to be borne ? The remedy is detachment from 

the world, attachment to God. Abb6 Barrett furnishes 

the third chapter on " The Restoration of the Ecclesi- 
astical Chant." "The System of Cosmogony, in Ac- 
cordance with the Biblical Narrative/* by Marc Passami, 
shows the two- fold meaning of the word day^ and how 
the Mosaic account is in accord with science and reason. 

Revue Pratique d' Apologiiique (i March): "The Beginnings of 
Christian Apologetic,** by M. J. Lebreton, deals with 
the message of Christ according to the Synoptists. One 
thing seems to stand out clearly — the Divinity. The 
New Law, the Kingdom of God, the Heavenly Father, 
are so intimately united in Christ that we are justified 
in saying, with St. Irenxus, that "the manifestation of 
the Son, is the revelation of the Father.**— —The article 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909. J FOREIGN PERIODICALS t?! 

on ''The Foundation of Moral Obligation/' by M. Clodius 
Piat» is brought to a close. The ancients believed that 
their laws came from the gods^ the modernists, however, 
believe that they are a law unto themselves, and their 
rule of conduct is, get the most you can out of life. 
''The Theological Notion of Person/' by M. L. Labau- 
che. Person, as defined by Boetius, is Natura raiionalis 
individua substantia, so in person we are able to distin- 
guish three characteristics. In the human- creature there 
is a real distinction between substance and person, but 
in God the same substance is common to the three per- 
sons. 

La Revue des Sciences Ecclisiastiques et La Science Catholique. 
(March): M« Harault, in a fifth paper, concludes his re- 
view of "The Theology of William of Champeaux.'' 
The topic considered is the Holy Eucharist under its 
various modes of reception, namely Dipping (Intinction) ; 
Communicating children under one species; Communion 

under two species. "Apropos of the Miracles of 

Lourdes,'' by M. Camille Daux. The article is a con- 
sideration of St. Augustine's defence (De Civitate Dei) 
of the miracles of the Church. The position taken is 
from the point of view of the modern scientific tests of 
the miracles at Lourdes.— -" The End and Aim of 
Scholastic Philosophy," by M. Chauvin, is a review of 
a volume of conferences given by M. Janier at Notre 
Dame. The first four are concerned with sin under four 
aspects, as it affects our physical, moral, social, and super- 
natural life. The last two are upon eternal punishment. 

Other articles are: "The Structure of the Psalms," 

by I'Abb^ E. Neveut "An Example in Exegesis," 

by M. C. Hdber. 

Stimmen aus Maria^Laach (15 March) : M. Meschler, S.J., writes 
on "The Lay Apostolate." Our present time, in its 
struggle for individuality, independence, internationalism, 
has something titanic in its character. Much success 
creates presumption, with all its attendant miseries. The 
need of the hour is a lay- apostolate and never before 

had it such opportunities for doing good. J. Bessmer, 

S.J., writing on "Second Sight," does not profess to 
give a conclusive judgment, but attempts only to answer 



Digitized by 



Google 



272 FOREIGN PERIODICALS [May, 

some secondary questions, i.e.^ how much can be ex- 
plained by well-known natural influences.-^— J. Braun, 
S.J., gives an account of some newly discovered docu- 
ments in the history o{ the building of '^The Jesuit 

Church in Cologne/' ^Tbe attack on ''Haeckel's 

Methods of Research/* is continued by E. Wasmann, 
S.J. He shows that Haeckel {ailed to clear himself of 
the charge of falsifying evidence in order to uphold his 

theories. The character and works of the Italian poet 

''Silvio Pellico/' are sketched by A. Baumgartner, S.J. 

La Civilth Cattolica (6 March): ''Joan of Arc/' gives the his- 
tory of her heavenly call to deliver France, the condi- 
tion of the country in her day, and the false accusa- 
tions which brought about her downfall The action of 
the Church in her beatification, under Leo XIII., and 
what is being done at present, are commented upon. 

"Catherine II. and the Catholics of Russia." P. 

Pierling, S.J., reviews the action of Catherine and her 
jealousy of the Catholic Church. Before the close of 
her reign almost ten thousand parishes, over one hun- 
dred convents, and millions of Catholics had been forci- 
bly separated from the Roman See and united with the 
National church.——" Moral Education in Japan.*' Rev. 
Joseph Dahlman, S.J., begins an article on this subject. 
He points out that moral duty calls upon the Japanese 
to dedicate himself, first to bis country, then to his 
family. This, in brief, makes up his idea of morality. 

La Scuola Cattolica (March): "The Basis of Faith/' G. Bal- 
lerini considers at length the accusations of the follow- 
ers of the New Apologetics, who would make faith a 
blind and unreasonable act— -—"The Third Chapter of 
Genesis.'' An exposition, by A. Cellini, of the reasons 
of those who would have this chapter interpreted as an 
allegory. Solutions of their various difficulties are given. 

Under the title "Allah," B. Ricci describes the 

condition of the Arabian people at Mahomet's coming 
and tells of his mission among them; Mahomet's doc- 
trines, religious, moral, and social, are examined.—— 
"In Defence of Scientific Truth," by L. Nccchi. A dis- 
cussion of the accusation brought against Haeckel that 
he invented facts to fill up the lacuns of his investiga- 



Digitized by 



Google 



X909.] FOREIGN PERIODICALS 273 

tionsj to support a doubtful hypothesis. A. Gemelli 

writes on "The Teaching of Pastoral Medicine.**—— 
And E. Pasteris continues "The Myjths About Hell in 
Homer/' 

Kazan y F$ (March) : L, Murillo continues his articles on " The 
Holy See and the Book of Isaias/* treating especially of 
the Messianic prophecies in the light of tradition and of 
modern criticism.— ^In the life and works of " Lope de 
Vega, Man and Sacred Poet/* J. M. Aicardo finds, not- 
withstanding human weakness, a love of honor, of pa- 
triotism, a true devotion to Catholicism, and a super- 
natural contrition for his failings. £. Urgarte de 

Ercilla treats "The Theodicy of the Modernists/* and 
exposes their views as to the proofs for the existence 
and nature of God.— ^" The Human Element in His- 
tory.** Must it be told? Should it be exaggerated by 
the Modernists or glossed over by the fearful? Can it 
be co-existent with the sanctity of the Church? E. 
Portillo considers these questions.— ^N. Noguer finds 
no intrinsic difficulty in " State Aid in Co-Operative 
Associations,** but only in the time, manner, and limit 

of offering it. Florentino Ogara treats.St. John Chrys- 

ostom, ^'The Patron and Model of Preachers,** as ex- 
positor of the Bible. " Twelve Years of Radio- Activ- 
ity ** continued by Jaime Maria del Barrio. 

Espana y Amirica (i March): The death of D. Federico 01- 
meda calls forth a eulogy of his musical genius from 
Henri Collet. The breadth of his activity in quartets, 
Masses, fugues, symphonies, lyric opera, and his emi- 
nence in organ music make him one of the most inter- 
esting as well as technically one of the most competent 

modern composers. P. Mariano Rodriguez H. shows, 

in "The Restoration of the Republic of Cuba,*' the joy 
that succeeded the complicated party spirit and that 

augurs a brilliant future. *' Scientific Ethics,** with 

morality independent of metaphysics, of God, and of 
positive religion, is examined by P. Aurelio Martinez. 

P. E. Negrete reviews Gonzalez-Blanco's History of 

the Novel from the Romantic Period to the Present Day. 
^The fallacies of the " Mechanical Theory of the Orl- 

VOU LXXXIX.— 18 



Digitized by 



Google 



274 FOREIGN PERIODICALS [May. 

gin of Life*' from matter^ are exposed by P. I. Mar- 
tinez. 

(15 March): P. Santiago Garcia treats the Modernists* 
conception of the relations between '' Church and State/* 
and shows how baneful and how opposed to Papal teach- 
ing would be their separation, as witnessed by present 
conditions in France.— ^The article by P. Mariano Rod- 
riguez H., having received especial marks from both 
government and press of appreciation and gratitude, he 
continues to show how, in "The Present Situation of the 
Republic of Colombia/' peace, education, and labor will 
make sure its' glorious future.— ^Felipe Robles discusses 
further the "Philosophy of the Verb."— Musings on 
''The Close of Ovid's Metamorphoses," by Guillermo 

Jtinemann. P. M. Blanco Garcia does not believe that 

Cuba is really free, and proves it from the words and 
newspaper caricatures of '' the barbarians of the North," 
whose ''insidious politics" have been so well (or so 
badly) exhibited in Hawaii.— —Further topics discussed 
are the Japanese Question, the life of a Spanish- Amer- 
ican patriot, de Navarro, and the exibition of the work 
of SoroUa, the artist. 



Digitized by 



Google 



Current Events* 



The French ministry has had many 
France. causes for anxiety, and its exist- 

ence has been threatened repeat- 
edly, but so far it has emerged triumphant over all difficulties. 
The conflict between the Minister for Finance and the Minister 
for the Navy was averted by a compromise, the latter Minis- 
ter, in the end, agreeing to accept much less than he had at 
first demanded. How bad the state of the Navy has become 
is shown by the fact that the large sum of money (nearly forty 
millions of dollars) which, after so much difficulty, has been 
obtained, is not to be devoted to the building of new ships, 
but merely to make the ships already built really effective 
and fit for use. For this purpose guns have to be supplied, 
together with ammunition ; proper docks have to be provided 
in order to accommodate the ships. While the necessity of 
sea-power is recognized, France does not propose to enter upon 
any competitive contest with Germany or Great Britain, al- 
though, in order to keep the Navy from '^ regrettable fluctua- 
tions,'' an Organic Navy Law is being prepared in order to 
determine the nature of the naval programme, the number and 
class of fleets, their age-limits, and various other particulars. 
The Chamber of Deputies voted the credits demanded by the 
government, but at the same time appointed a Committee to 
examine into the bad administration of the past, antecedent 
to the advent to power of the present Minister, M. Picard. 

The long-discussed Income Tax Bill has at last been passed 
by the Lower House, and is now being subjected to the exam- 
ination of a Committee appointed by the Senate. It is gen- 
erally looked upon as certain that the Bill will emerge from 
this examination in a very different shape from that in which 
it left the Chamber; and this seems to be very likely, for al- 
most all the members of the Committee elected by the Cham- 
ber are known to be opposed to the Bill, while some are op- 
posed to every kind of Income Tax. But in the Chamber, 
Royalists and Socialists alike voted for the Bill, and the speech 
of the Finance Ministers was ordered to be placarded through- 
out the country. The chief opponents were a group of Liberal 



Digitized by 



Google 



2 76 Current Events [May, 

politicians of the old school of L6on Say. These stigmatized 
its proposals as reactionary! and as opposed to the traditions 
and aims of the French Revolution. But the Finance Minister, 
in the speech which met with such emphatic approbation of 
the Chamberj declared it to be the carrying out of a vast task 
for the relief of the people; so vast a task, indeed, that no 
French Parliament since 1790 had dared to undertake it It 
would lighten the burden of the small taxpayers; small land- 
owners and small storekeepers would have to pay much less; 
undemocratic privileges, still in existence, would be abolished — 
and this at a cost to the well-to-do classes of only two or three 
per cent more on their entire income. Of these classes the 
Senate is the representative, and, strange to say, its members are 
not willing to make this sacrifice for the benefit of their less for- 
tunate fellow-citizens* It is thought that the next elections will 
largely turn upon this question : Should the Senate have taken 
adverse action, or no action at all ? 

M. Clemenceau has been expatiating on the establishment 
in France of the reign of liberty which the republic has inau- 
gurated. While it cannot be denied that several beneficial 
laws have recently been made — the trade union law, laws for 
sick relief, a weekly day of rest, workmen's compensation, and, 
he says, a host of other measures — the officials of the State, 
employed in the Post Office, Telegraph and Telephone Offices, 
do not seem to think that they are living in a country which 
is free. At all events, they took steps which almost paralyzed 
the activities of civilized life, commerce, and industry, and even 
constituted a danger for the State. The strike took place at a 
time when the Servian question was in its most critical stage, 
and the action taken by the strikers, which included the 
cutting of telegraph wires, rendered it very difficult for the 
government to keep up communication with the Powers with 
whom negotiations were being carried on. It was a notable 
example of the power which working- people have, but also of 
the bad use to which that power may at times be put. The 
government stood firm and asserted its authority and the duty 
of submission to it as clearly as the Tsar or the Shah could 
have done. It treated the movement as an organized revolu- 
tionary agitation, as blackmail by strike, as a revolt against 
the nation. The Chamber declared its resolve not to tolerate 
the strikes of functionaries and voted confidence in the govern- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current Events 277 

ment*s measures {or restoring peace and order. Even the So* 
cialist-Sadicals concurred in this condemnation^ and only 69 
members of the Assembly were opposed to it. 

The strikers had» there is reason to believe, legitimate 
reasons for discontent, how legitimate it is impossible to say 
without intimate technical knowledge ; and some of these griev- 
ances were of ten years' standing. The Under-Secretary, who 
was at the head of the Post Office Department, was, it is said, 
unsympathetic and autocratic, and had at heart a thing which 
is always resented by subordinates — economy. It was at his 
door that all the blame was cast, and his resignation was 
vehemently and repeatedly demanded, and as vehemently and 
repeatedly refused. 

After nearly a week, during which France was brought to 
a condition bordering upon industrial and social anarchy, the 
strikers returned to work upon conditions which, while they 
were not detrimental to the principle of authority asserted 
throughout by the government, yet gave satisfaction to the 
strikers. The obnoxious head of the Post Office was not re- 
moved, nor did he resign; but it was intimated that, in the 
near future, a technically expert Under-Secretary would be 
appointed. All the strikers were permitted to return to the 
places which they had abandoned, and even those who had 
been sent to prison for expressing the desire that M. Simyan 
should be spit upon, were released and reinstated. The return 
to work is described as having been triumphant, and the whole 
movement was declared by its chief organizer as having been 
a marvelous advance towards liberty, a thing which should be 
highly pleasing to M. Clemenceau, although this advance is 
looked upon as being due to the unconditional surrender, in 
practice of principles which, he had proclaimed in the Chamber, 
he would always maintain. 

This, however, is too harsh a judgment. The claims of the 
men were in the main just, and had been recognized as such; 
and no remedy bad been applied, although often promised. 
The manner in* which, in the end, these claims were enforced 
cannot be approved; but is injustice to be persevered in be- 
cause the wrong way of seeking a remedy has been chosen ? On 
the whole, out of a very difficult position a very satisfactory way 
of escape has been found. While the wrongs which led to the 
strike have been righted, the Chamber has maintained the prin- 



Digitized by 



Google 



278 Current Events [May, 

ciple o{ national sovereignty and has refused to be dictated to 
by a group, however powerful, of civil servants. This deter- 
mination was expressed by the Chamber's declaration of its ap- 
proval of M. Simyan's administration by a vote of 417 Depu- 
ties to 67. These events have hastened on the preparation of 
a Bill regulating the status of civil servants, which will soon 
be presented to the Chamber. France has now to face the 
problem of how to reconcile freedom of association for legitimate 
objects with the rights of the State and of individuals. 

The relations with Morocco, since Germany has withdrawn, 
are fairly satisfactory. The mission to Fez has settled most of 
the points in debate, although it has been judged expedient 
to adjourn the discussion of some of these points. Mulai Ha- 
fid still maintains his position as Sultan, although he has had 
to fight with one actual Pretender, and to capture a Shereef 
who was on the point of becoming another. A good opinion 
is entertained of Mulai Hafid*s character. He is considered to 
be sensible, broad-minded, and reliable, and more anxious for 
reforms than are his subjects to be reformed. Whether the 
possession of power will spoil him remains to be seen. A 
whole month has passed without any sign of a disagreement 
with Germany, although France has co-operated with Great 
Britain and Russia in their attempts to settle the Austro- 
Servian question. In fact, the relations between these Three 
Powers is becoming so intimate that it is beginning to be called 
the Triple Entente. 

Prince Bulow has met with many 
Germany. difficulties in trying to secure the 

approval of the plan proposed by 
his government for raising the one hundred and twenty- five 
millions of additional taxation, and in holding together the 
Conservative- Liberal ^A?^ which lends its support to him. The 
Conservatives represent property and will not make any sac- 
rifice in order to maintain its privileges; the Liberals repre- 
sent the middle classes and have theories of taxation which are 
diametrically opposed to those of the Conservatives. It is no 
wonder, therefore, that it has proved hard to keep them to- 
gether. After long discussion a compromise was arrived at by 
the leaders, but on its publication it was condemned by the 
Liberal Press as a defiance of every principle of sound politics 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current events 279 

and of sound finance. The b/ac was {ormed, as is well known» 
in order to deprive the Catholic Centre of the power which it 
had theretofore possessed in the Reichstag. It is said that 
its members are now looking upon the situation with unveiled 
mirth, in fact it has become a question whether the bloc is any 
longer in existence, while the Social Democrats find in this 
compromise proposals which are an endorsement of their own 
principles. Taxation is a dry subject for discussion, but one 
which comes very near to each individual; and upon it the 
existence even of nations in the long run depends. It is im- 
portant for Germany that this question should be settled ; but 
a settlement seems farther off than ever. Nearly every one of 
the proposals made by the government has been rejected by 
the Committee of the Reichstag to whose consideration they 
were submitted. Strange to say, all parties agree to an in- 
crease in the tax on beer. The German system of adjusting 
taxation between the various States and the Empire is very 
complicated: the makers of the American Constitution were 
much more successful in their efforts. 

The necessity for this immense addition to the already 
heavy taxation is, of course, the construction of the Navy, with 
a view to Germany's becoming as strong at sea as she is on 
land. It is, however, being brought home to not a few Ger- 
mans that the price to be paid is very high, and they are be- 
ginning to ask themselves the question whether it is worth 
what it will cost. The Conservative Kreuz-Zeitung^ a leading 
organ of the party, plainly declares that: ''Germany is not in 
a financial position, over and above its supremely strong mili- 
tary power, to build and to maintain a fleet which could pro- 
tect its foreign trade interests and its colonies in a war with 
England.'* It proceeds to suggest that an arrangement with 
England would be a proof not of weakness but oi wisdom. 
The Social Democrats, the most numerous party in the Em- 
pire, are known to be of the same opinion. It would be well 
for the Empire if it came to be quite generally adopted, for 
there is no doubt that, so far as Great Britain is concerned, 
such a proposal would be welcomed by all but a few. It is 
upon social reformers that the British want to spend their 
money, not upon war matMil. Nor are there wanting French- 
men who would be glad to draw near to Germany in order to 
secure peace in the future. The well-known advocate of peace. 



Digitized by 



Google 



28o Current Events [May, 

Baron d'Estournelles de Constant^ is to give a lecture in Berlin 
upon a Franco- German rapprochement as the basis of a World 
Peace. How many Frenchmen share his views we do not 
know; but the wonderful growth of the Arbitration move- 
ment in a short time gives reason to hope for the best. The 
chief cause of trouble to the world is that Germany is just 
emerging from a period in which, under Bismarck, she had the 
undisputed hegemony of Europe, and many Germans find it 
hard to take a somewhat lower place. But Bismarck has gone ; 
there is no one to do a work equal to his ; France has been 
restored to her old position ; and so the change seems inevitable. 
We hope that it may be brought about peacefully; recent 
events, however, seem to make it clear that the old ideas will 
die hard. 

The interposition of Germany in the Austro- Servian dispute 
shows that the old spirit is still alive. Exactly bow this inter- 
position took place is not known. According to one account 
the Kaiser sent an autograph letter to the Tsar giving him 
twenty-four hours' notice that if be did not consent to recog- 
nize the annexation of Bosnia and Herzegovina, German troops 
would march into Russian territory. He went so far as to 
refuse to grant the request of Russia for time to consult with 
France and Great Britain. The truth of this, however, is de- 
nied, but that such a thing should be even credible, makes one 
grateful for living in a country where the peace and happiness 
of millions are not dependent upon the good-will of one in- 
dividual. We have many abuses and evils with which to con- 
tend, but our highest interests are not at the mercy of one 
man. 

Whatever doubt may exist as to the manner of the inter- 
vention, there is no doubt that in some way or other it took 
place, and that it was effective. For up to that time Russia 
bad been acting with France and Great Britain, and bad re- 
fused to recognize the annexation of Bosnia and Herzegovina. 
As a consequence of Germany's action, however, without wait- 
ing to consult with the two Powers, Russia intimated to Austria 
her willingness to recognize the annexation. Her weakness at 
the present time made it necessary to suffer this humiliation; 
but great states are not saints, and there is every reason to 
believe that Germany is laying up for herself wrath against 
the day of wrath; that is to say, chastisement when Russia 



Digitized by 



Google 



1 909.] Current Events 28 1 

becomes strong. It does not seem to be at all probable tbat 
Russia will withdraw from co-operation with France and Great 
Britain, or that the two latter Powers will resent her conduct 
in taking separate action. It is more likely, indeed, that the 
three will be brought closer together, for the necessity for their 
union has become clearer. 

The British Secretary of the Admiralty has caused great 
excitement by the announcement that the German rate of 
naval construction had been increased and the date of the 
laying down of the warship anticipated. Consequently, there 
would be seventeen battleships ready in 191 2 instead of the 
thirteen which had been calculated upon. This has led to a 
change in the British plans, and to an increase in the number 
of ships which are to be built, but not to so large an increase 
as would satisfy the Conservatives. It has also been the means of 
bringing into closer co-operation the various parts of the British 
Empire. New Zealand has offered one or two Dreadnoughts, 
Australia seems likely to do the same, Canada is willing to 
co-operate, but not precisely in the same way. The highest 
officials in Germany have publicly denied both the anticipation 
and the acceleration of rate. This has raised the question of how 
far these assurances can be trusted; and instances are being 
recalled to the public recollection of what must be called de- 
ception which has been practised by the highest German au- 
thorities. 

Prince Bulow*s admirers have lately been boasting that he 
is the first of the Chancellors who have succeeded Bismarck who 
has returned to that statesman's diplomatic methods, and readers 
of Busch's memoirs will not need to be told what those meth- 
ods were. One instance may be given: During the Franco- 
Prussian war, Russia set aside the provisions of the Treaty of 
Paris, which restricted the action of her fleet in the Black Sea, and 
did this without consulting the Powers who were parties to the 
Treaty. Prince Bismarck assured the British Foreign Minister 
that he was surprised by what Russia had done. It has now 
been proved, by Prince Bismarck's own reminiscences, that he 
had instigated the action in order to keep Russia neutral dur- 
ing the war with France. The truth is, German officials have 
learned to distinguish : when they speak of desiring peace, they 
mean a peace which is to leave Germany at tbe head; when 



Digitized by 



Google 



282 CURRENT EVENTS [May, 

they talk of laying down a ship, laying down means a much 
more advanced stage in the building of a ship than is so re- 
garded by other nations. Language is used as a means of 
concealing thought and purpose, and so it is hard to place a 
desirable confidence in the assurances given. 



After nearly six months, during 
Austria-Hungary. which Austria- Hungary and Ser- 

via were more than once on the 
verge of war, the question at issue has been settled peacefully 
so far as the immediate present is concerned. What the ultimate 
issue will be no one can say. Austria required from Servia an 
unambiguous disavowal of all the claims which she had been ad- 
vancing so vehemently and so long. Sir Edward Grey, the Brit- 
ish Foreign Minister, succeeded in obtaining a slight mitigation 
in favor of Servia, and thereupon all the Powers called for Ser- 
vians acceptance of them. As Russia, just before, had yielded to 
Germany, it was clear to the Servian government that there 
was no one to give support in a conflict with Austria- Hungary. 
Accordingly Servia sent in the required submission, in which 
she acknowledged that none of her rights had been injured by 
the annexation of Bosnia and Herzegovina, and that to what- 
ever action the Powers should take with reference to the Arti- 
cle of the Treaty of Berlin, which had been broken by the 
annexation, she would conform. She engaged herself to aban- 
don all opposition and to make no further protest, to change 
the course of her political action, to live as a good neighbor 
of the Dual Monarchy. The troops called out would be sent 
home, and the irregulars dismissed. Austria graciously ac- 
cepted this submission, and so the war was averted. 

The Servian people took the action of their government 
quietly and acquiesced, although they had been vowing for 
many months that they would never yield, and would rather 
sacrifice all that men hold dear. Perhaps if the Servians had 
had a better reputation they would have met with more ef- 
fective support. As victims of injustice they called forth a 
certain amount of sympathy, as also for being a weak power in 
comparison with their opponent ; but, from top to bottom, they 
are the most graceless people of Europe. Their kings have 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current Events 283 

been conspicuous for depravity, they themselves for cruelty ; the 
murder of the last king and queen and the practical condonation 
extended to it indicate the degree of degradation to which 
the kingdom has fallen. The Crown Prince, who has just re- 
nounced his right of succession, was forced to take this step, 
it is said, because he had been guilty of murdering one of his 
servants; and this was not the first but the last of a series of 
deeds of violence. So there was nothing but a pure love o' 
justice to move the Powers to act in favor of Servia, and this 
pure love was not sufficient to lead to active warlike measures. 

What has Austria- Hungary gained by the annexation of the 
Provinces? Additional territory has been acquired and the 
number of the population increased. To the already numerous 
Parliaments a new one is to be added. A step towards the 
iEgean Sea has been taken, and the road towards it made 
easier. On the other hand, immense sums of money have been 
spent, the confidence felt in Austria as a conservative and 
trustworthy power, the sympathy felt for it as having su£fered 
loss from unscrupulous neighbors, have been destroyed. The 
success she has attained is due largely to the support received 
from a Power which never makes a gift without exacting some- 
thing worth more in return. The Russian people have been 
alienated, and are now waiting for an opportunity to revecge 
themselves. Baron von Aehrenthal is being acclaimed as the 
most successful statesman of his time. But the real truth, we 
suspect, is that, although he nominally remains in power, the 
Emperor Francis Joseph has resumed control and that it is by 
his invincible love of peace that the outbreak of war was pre- 
vented. 

The formal recognition of the annexation of the Provinces 
of Bosnia and Herzegovina has been made. It seems very 
unlikely that a Conference will be called. Austria-Hungary 
has addressed to the Powers who were parties to the Treaty 
of Berlin a request for the abrogation of Article XXV. o' 
that Treaty, and a favorable response has been given. The 
Powers were able to do this the more easily, and without de- 
parture from principle, because Turkey had acquiesced by 
separate negotiations, although the documents have not been 
formally signed. 



Digitized by 



Google 



284 Current Events [May 

Perhaps, however, it would be rash 
Turkey. to anticipate that even this formal- 

ity will be achieved in view of the 
events which are taking place just as these lines are being 
printed. These happenings have disappointed the hopes, so 
long entertained, that the subjects of the Sultan would be de- 
livered from his accursed yoke without the shedding of blood. 
Who is to blame, it is too soon to say. It cannot, we fear, be 
denied that the Committee of Union and Progress had fallen 
from the high ideals to which they had at first been loyal. 
They usurped power by not submitting to the parliamentary 
rSgime^ which they had called into being, and consequently had 
lost the moral influence which they originally possessed. This 
gave an opportunity to the enemies of the Constitution — among 
whom must be included, in spite of all protestations to the con- 
trary, the ;Sultan« He then made an attempt to recover the 
power which he had lost; it is to be hoped that this attempt 
will lead to the end of the reign of a tyrant whose rule has 
long been a disgrace to civilization. 



Digitized by 



Google 



THE COLUMBIAN READING UNION. 

MR. ROBINSON NICOLL gives the following estimate of J. M. Syoge> 
the Irish dramatist, who died lately in Dublin, at the age of thirty- 
seven: 

He had been in delicate health for some years. Mr. Synge lived for 
many years the life of a wandering scholar, traveling from city to city, and 
from country to country. He knew Italy and Bavaria and Paris in those 
wandering years, but he wrote nothing till Mr. W. B. Yeats persuaded him 
to return to Ireland, and to go and live on the Aran Islands. He has done 
so by fits and starts for the last ten years, and has produced the plays by 
which he is known, "The Shadow of the Glen"; " Riders to the Sea " ; 
*' The Well of the Saints"; ''The Tinker's Wedding"; and others. Mr. 
Synge also wrote a prose work on the Aran Islands. * A writer in the Man- 
Chester Guardian^ says: '' His ' Riders to the Sea' is the tragic masterpiece 
of our language in our time. Wherever it has been played in Europe, from 
Galway to Prague, it has made the word tragedy mean something more pro- 
foundly stirring and cleansing to the spirit than it did. • • . But 
though he has died at thirty-seven, his fame is as safe as Shelley's; no one 
with a sense for the higher values in letters could touch his work, and not 
feel that it had authentic greatness, and that its heat and light came up from 
the central fires of human passion." 

This is high praise, but I am inclined to think that it is deserved. 
''Riders to the Sea" occupies only some twenty-three sparsely-printed 
pages, but every word tells. 

In an Aran cottage there are Maurya, an old woman ; Bartley, her son ; 
Cathleen, her daughter; and Nora, a younger daughter. The mother is 
lying down, and the daughters are speaking about Michael, a brother who 
has been lost at sea. The young priest has brought them a shirt and a plain 
stacking, got off a drowned man in Donegal. Bartley, the surviving son, is 
determined to go to sea in spite of his mother. He goes out without bread, 
and without his mother's blessing. She goes alter him with the bread, say- 
ing : "In the big world the old people do be leaving things after them for 
their sons and children, but in this place it is the young men do be leaving 
things behind for them that do be old." 

When she is out the girls cut the knot of the parcel. Nora takes up a 
stocking and counts the stitches, crying out: "It's Michael, Cathleen, it's 
Michael; God spare his soul, and what will herself say when she hears this 
story, and Bartley on the sea ? " 

The mother comes in very slowly with the bread still in her hand, and 
says she has seen Michael riding and galloping on the gray pony behind 
Bartley on the red mare. The daughters tell her that Michael is dead, and 
in a little while the people come in carrying the body of Bartley and saying : 
"The gray pony knocked him over into the sea, and he was washed out 
where there is a great surf on the white rocks. '^ 



Digitized by 



Google 



2 86 THE Columbian READING UNION [May, 

Maurya (raising her head and speaking as if she did not see the people 
around her) : They're all gone now, and there isn't anything more the sea 
can do to me. • • • Pll hare no call now to be up and crying and pray- 
ing when the wind breaks from the souths and you can hear the surf is in the 
east, and the surf is in the west, making a great stir with the two noises, and 
they hitting one on the other. I'll hare no call now to be going down and 
getting Holy Water in the dark nights after Samhain, and I won't care what 
way the sea is when the other women will be keening. Give me the Holy 
Water, Nora, there's a small cup still on the dresser. 

(Nora gives it to her.) 

Maurya (drops Michael's clothes across Bartley's feet, and sprinkles the 
Holy Water over him) : It isn't that I haven't prayed for you, Hartley, to the 
Almighty God. It isn't that I haven't said prayers in the dark night till you 
wouldn't know what I'ld be saying; but it's a great rest I'll have now, and 
great sleeping in the long nights after Samhain. 

Then there is talk of the coffin, but Maurya says nothing of that. She 
puts the empty cup downwards on the table, and lays her hands together on 
Bartley's feet. << They're all together this time, and the end is come. May 
the Almighty God have mercy on Bartley's soul, and on Michael's soul, and 
on the souls of Sheamus and Patch and Stephen and Shawn (bending her 
head) ; and.may He have mercy on my soul, Nora, and on the soul of every 
one left living in the world." 

• • • 

Apropos of the FitzGerald centenary, we think it well worth to quote 
the following words on his translation of the Rvbdiydt of Omar Khayyam, 
which appear in the London Athenaum : 

The oldest and most authentic accounts of his [Omar's] life show that his 
contemporary as well as his posthumous reputation rested almost exclusively 
on his scientific eminence. He was a learned astronomer and mathematician, 
and was also a successful astrologer, though it was remarked that he had no 
great belief in astrological predictions. Like many intellectual Moslems, 
who went beyond the strict warrant of the Koran, he was accused of being a 
freethinker and materialist. This charge does not amount to much, if we 
consider by whom it was made. That he was no mystic at heart may be 
gathered from the uncomplimentary terms applied to him by a well-known 
mystical doctor. It is recorded that he wrote occasional verse of an irreli- 
gious character, but in the ancient biographies of Persian poets his name is 
mentioned only fortuitously, and even at the present day his countrymen do 
not esteem him as anything better than a poet of the third class. Whether 
their verdict is just we are no longer in a position to decide. It has been 
proved that a large number of the quatrains attributed to Omar are to be 
found in the works of other poets, and were really composed by them. To 
these demonstrably spurious quatrains, the total of which might be doubled 
or trebled by an exhaustive investigation, we must add many more belonging 
to anonymous authors, which have been swept from all sides into the original 
stock ; for, as Omar gradually came to be looked upon as the prince of Per- 
sian quatrain-writers, the copyists followed in his case a maxim put in the 
mouth of the Prophet: ''Whatever good thing has been said, I have said 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Books Received 287 

it.'' Thus the collection^ as it has come down to us, is the result of a process 
of accumulation extending over six hundred years. It is impossible to iden- 
tify the genuine minority among the mass of spurious immigrants, and, 
except in one or two instances, we cannot say of any single quatrain that it 
was certainly written by Omar himself. On a moderate reckoning, three- 
fourths of the quatrains ascribed to him are not his. 

Bearing these facts in mind, the reader may judge what is likely to be 
the value of a personal system of philosophy constructed from such mate- 
rials, and at the same time he will see how natural it is that Omar should be 
variously depicted as an Epicurean sage, a fervent mystic, a mocking free- 
thinker, a gay sybarite, or a melancholy moralist. In truth, the Rubdiydt 
are a mirror of Persian life during the Middle Ages : they represent many 
diverse schools of thought, many discordant shades of opinion, many con- 
flicting views of the world; they express, not the changing moods of a single 
person, but the rich and manifold genius of the whole Persian race. So far 
as Omar was a typical Persian, we can find him in the poems with which he 
is forever associated, but where, it is to be feared, his distinctive personality 
is forever submerged. 

If the Persian original reveals little or nothing of Omar, the English 
paraphrase cannot be expected to yield more light. In making it FitzGerald 
selected with fine taste only those stanzas which were best suited to his pur- 
pose and most in harmony with his philosophy. It was inevitable that he 
should introduce fresh currents of modern speculation ; and even when he 
renders the general sense accurately he often gives it a peculiar turn of his 
own. What he has done, and done magnificently, is to transfuse some lead- 
ing and characteristic ideas of Persian literature into English poetry. 



BOOKS RECEIVED. 

Bbnziobk BaoTHBKS, New York : 

A Compendium 0/ CaUcJUtical InstmciUn, VoU. I. and II. Edited by Rev. John Hogan. 
Cufa Revisited, By Mary E. Manniz. Price 45 cents. Rimnd the World, Vol.vI. 
Price $z. Between Friends, By Richard Aumerle. Price 85 cents. The Law of 
Church and Grave. By Charles M. Scanlan. LL.B. Price $1.35. The New Scholar 
at St, Antu*s» By Marion T. Bninowe. Forgive and Forget, By Ernest Lingen. 
Price $1.50. The Life of St. Melania, By Cardinal RampoUa. Price $1.50. Bi^a- 
phies of English Catholics in the Eighteenth Century, By Rev. John Kirk, D.D. Price 
$a.7S. The Son ofSiro. By Rev. J. E. Copus, S.J. Price $1.25. 
Thb Century Company, New York : 

The Wiles of Sexton Maginnis, By Maurice Francis Egan. Pages'sSo. Price $1.50 
G. P. Putnam's Sons, New York: 

Dromina, By John Ayscongh. Pp. 477. 
John Lanb Company, New York : 

Carmina, By T. A. Daly. Pp. Z93. Price $z net. Postage zo cents. G. K. Chester-- 
ton, A Criticism, Pp. 266. Price $z.5o net Postage za cents. 
Fr. Pustbt & Co., New York: 

Handbooh of Canon Law^ By D. I. Lanslots. Pp. aSo. 

Mopfatt, Yard & Co., New York: 

The Romance of American Expansion. By H. Addington Bruce. Pp. 946. Price %U7^ 
net. 



Digitized by 



Google 



288 BOOKS RECEIVED [May, 1909,] 

Hbnsy Holt & Co., New York: 

Tfu Fate •ficiodorum. By David Starr Jordan. Pp. zzz. Price 90 cents net. 
Chaslbs ScKiBNBft's SONS, New York : 

Tk€ Churcha attd Wagt Earrnn, By Bertrand Thompson. Pp. Ix.-a99. Price $z net. 
Fathers of the Blessed Sackambnt, New York : 

Daily Communion. By Father £. Barbe, S.J. Pp. 40. Price 5 cents. 
New Yokk Catholic School Board. New York : 

Fifth Annual Rtport 0/ tJU Rtvtrtnd SuptrinUndenis ofCaikolic SckooU, CtnUtmial Year^ 
1908, 
Charities Publication Committee, New York : 

The Standard of Living Among IVoriingmon's FamiUis in New York CUy. By Robert 
Coit Chapin, Ph.D. Pp. XV.-360. 
The Catholic Education Press, Washington, D. C: 

Tht Making^ and the Unmaking of a Dullard. By Thomas Edw. Shields, Ph.D. Pp. 296. 
'The Catholic Correspondence School. Washington, D. C. : 

Religion, First Book, By Thomas Edw. Shields, Ph.D. Pp. 96. 
Government Printing Office, Washington, D. C. : 

Bulletin of the Bureau of Labor. November, 1908, 
H. L. KiLNER & Co., Philadelphia : 

TkeLifeof St. Leonard of Port Mamrice, By Rev. Antonio Isoleri. Pp.366. Price $1.50 

net. 
L. C. Page & Co., Boston, Mass. : 

The spell of Italy. By Caroline Atwater Mason. Pp. 393. Price $3.50. 
D. C. Heath & Co., Boston, Mass. : 

Dante s Inferno. By C. H. Grandgent. Pp. 283. 
The Gorham Press, Boston, Mass. : 

Just Iruh, By Charles Batteil Loomis. Pp. 175. 
Houghton Mifflin Company, Boston, Mass.: 

When Lincoln Died; ami Other Poems. By Edward William Thompson. Pp. 147. 
Price $i*as net. A Lincoln Conscript, By Homer Greene. Pp. 283. Price $1.50. 
Little, Brown & Co., Boston, Mass.: 

An Original Gentleman. By Anne Warner. Pp. 339. Price $1.50. Through RamoneCs 
Country. By George Wharton James. Pp. 406. Price $anet. 
B. Herder, St. Louis, Mo. : 

The Master Motive. By Laure Conan. Price $z. Heortolo^. By Dr. K. A. Keinrich 
Kellner. Price $3. Some Roads to Rome in America, By Georgina Pell Curtis. Price 
$1.75. The Treasure and the Field. By Isabel Hope. Price $1. 
St. Bonifaces Industrial School, Banning, Cal. : 

A Collection of Easy Hymns, Salvete Christi Vulnera. By Rev. B. Florian Hahn. Pp. z6. 
A. C. McClurg & Co., Chicago, III. : 

True Manhood. By James Cardinal Gibbons. Pp. 23. 
Kansas Department of Agriculture, Topeka, Kans. : 

Sixteenth Biennial Report of Kansas State Board of Agriculture, 
William Briggs, Toronto. Canada : 

Child of Destiny, By William J. Fischer. Pp. 272. 
Catholic Truth Society, London, England : 

Some Methods of Social Study. A List of Some Recent Works on Housing and on Rural 
Problems. Pamphlets. Price one penny each. 
Longmans, Green & Co., London, England : 

The Dawn of Catholic Revival in England (iy8i'iSi3). By Bernard Ward. Vols. I. 
and II. The Witness of the Wilderness. By Rev. G. Robinso» Lees. The Springs of 
Helicon. By Prof essor M acKail. Price $1.25. Prophecy and Poetry. By Arthur Rogers. 
Price $1.25. The Christ, the Son of God, By Abb^ Constant Fouard. Price 25 cents. 
Gabriel Beauchesne bt Gib., Paris, France: 

Le Besoine et le Devoir Religieux, Par Maurice S^rol. Une Anglaise Convertie, Par Le 
P6re H. ©'Arras. 
J. Gabalda et Cie., Paris, France: 

St. Thomas d Becket, Par Mgr. Demimuid. Insuffisance des Philosophies de T Intuition, 
Par Clodius Piat. 
P. Lbthiblleux, Paris, France : 

La Guerre Continue, Par Paul Barbier. Pp. Z28. Price 0.60. Jeanne d* Arc, Par J, 
Bricout. Pp. Z28. Price 0.70. 
Bloud bt Cie., Paris, France: 

L' Evolution PsychiquedeT Enfant, Par Dr. H. Bououet. Pp. zoo. Le Hachich. Par 
Raymond Meunier. Pp. 210. Travail et Folic, Par Drs. A. Marie et R. Martial. 
Pp. no. 



Digitized by 



Google 



JWake YouP Walls Washable. 

The ** Softone System " of Wall Enameling 
can be applied to plaster or burlap walls. It 
makes them non-porous, germ-proof, stain- 
proof » and as washable as tiling. 

FOR CATHOLIC IWSTITUTIONS AND HOMES, 

where cleanliness, health, general appear- 
ances, and economy are considered, it is the 
IDEAL wall finish. It makes kitchens, class 
rooms, dormitories, hallsy etc. , brighter , cleaner, 
,^ . ., ^ r ^ v^ and more sanitary — and does this at low cost. 

(Fac-stmilc of Label.) 

LET US PROVE ITS USE AND ECONOMY. 

To demonstrate that the ** Soflone System" is all we claim we ofiEer re- 
sponsible people sufficient material to do a small room-— free. 

Just send for the '^ Royal Decorator " Color Book and state size of the 
room you wish to finish at our expense. 

THE BBBinflH HHIEBICflH PBIHT CO., ., "T*- %,,. 

MANUFACTURERS. Chlcago, - liilnois. 



TbDiwasnBisiWiiiioBis 

For Institution or Family Use. 

DO PERFECT WORK. 

Wash everything — dainty fabrics as well 

as woolen blankets. 
The Electric Machines are favorites 

where current is available. 
The Gas or Gasoline Engine Machines 

fpr city gas, natural gas, or gasoline. 
The Ball-Bearing Hand Machines are 

the easiest running and most efficient 

manufactured. 

Fully Guaranteed. 
SENT FREE ON FOUR WEEKS' TRIAL 

^ Tell us your needs. Write for prices and Booklet i. 

/ HURLEY MACHINE COMPANY, 

^ 161.167 S. Jefferson St, 2507 Flat Iron Bnlldingr, 

CHICAGO. NEW YORK. 

njgitizeo uy ^v^-^^^v,^ -i ■.-^^ 



•a^ammn 4 /» M ttm»m^4»f»aff ^t»M »» tmtM^^Jnam -T^m /^^*^ttl»» IM^^^tti 



Digitized by 



Google 



JUNE 1909 



THE 



^atholie^opld 



Dante and His Celtic PrecuriorB 



Her Mother's Daughter 



De Smet in the Oregon Country 



In the Day of Fate 



The Holy Spirit and the Chrifltian Life 



Convent Life in Modem notion 



The Cures of Christian Science 



Edmund G. Gardner 

Katltarine Tynan 

Edwin V. GHara 

Christian Reid 

Thomas /. Gerrard 

Virginia M. Crawford 

Francis D. McGarry, CS.C, 



New Books— Foreign Periodicals 



Current Events 



Price— as cents I $s per Year 



THE OFFICE OF THE CATHOLIC WORLD, NEW YORK 

X90-zaa ^West 6otli Street 
gMAM PULi TmOB, TBUBIBR « 00. . Lti., Drytai flmw, 43 Qsmrd St, Ssks. iMtai. V 
riMDr la VnmH •! Its OslnlM masaiaM: ARTHUR SATARTR, 



ia U '* Rtfaa ia MflBla OalkoUfai." 76 Raa ta Salata^ana, 

BHTSmED AT NEW YORK POST-OFFICE 4S 9BCOSIXLAS8 llAma* . . 



?S^ogle 



MY SPECIALTIES. 

Pure Virgin Olive Oil. First pressing 
of the Olive. Imported under my Eclipse 
Brand in full half-pint, pint, and quart 
bottles, and in gallon and half-gallon 
cans. Analysis by Agricultural Depart- 
ment, Washington, showing absolute 
purity, published in Callanan's Magazine. 

L. J. Callanan's Eclipse Brand of 
Ceylon tea eclipses all other Ceylon teas 
offered in packages in this market, in 
quality and flavor. 

There is no better tea sold in this 
Country than my "41 " blend, quality and 
flavor always the same. No tea table 
complete without it. 

HLj ««43'' Brand of Coffee 

is a blend of the choicest coffees imported. 
It is sure to please lovers of good coffee. 
No breakfast table complete withoat it. 
My Motto, Everything in Groceries, 
Altar Wines, ^nd Cigars, everything of 
the Best. A visit to my permanent food 
exposition will pay you. "Copy Callanan's 
Magazine and price list mailed on request. 

L. J. C ALLANAN^ 

4 1 Md 43 Vesey Street, New York. 



MONASH 
RADIATOR SHIELDS. 

Easily removed during the 
summer months if desired. 



r ^*A\, TVV/AOi 



spots on a wall^are the dust stains above 
the radiators. 

Write for booklet. 

MONASH-YOUNKER CO. 

NE W YORK : CHIC A G O : 

86 Centre St, hom 5. Canal St, 



Ask any of your friends 
who use 

uoN oj;r.d miLK 

If it is not the best they can get at any 
price. Also if the premiums they get for 
Lion labels are not really worth while. 

Your grocer now has Lidn Brand 
Evaporated Milk in stock, and please 
remember that there is no better Evap- 
orated Milk made in this country or any- 
where else. 

During April, we are opening three 

New Premium Stores. 

The stock of premiums is larger and 
finer than ever. 

Wisconsin Condensed Milk Co., 

91 Hudson Street, 
Pfew Yorlc. 




Underwood 
Escapement 

b tht EsTjof Emy Typtwrite Mdnr 

It is more correctly designed 
— costs more — is better 
made — and gives the 

UNDERWOOD 

STANDAKD 

TYPEWRITER 

The orifftutor of 
writiBf.u-iifht" owMtrartka 

a greater durability than 
any other Typewriter on 
the market. 

The perfection of the Underwood 

Typewriter has opened the field 

and invited our many special forms 

of *' built-in " tabulators and 

modem book-keeping appliances. 

Whfn you buv a tyiJi»<lM«tr, don't 

buy a "Trailer"— g^et the machine 

that has always led the way. 

n* Uadtrwood Typewritw C^. lac 

Anyutktr* 



tid by 



Google 



In answerinf'thesAmdvtrtitmnt^MttAt*^** tm*m*is^ tlm n^^t.^t.-^ ox../^ 



THE 

CATHOLIC WORLD. 

Vol. LXXXIX. JUNE, 1909. No. 531. 

DANTE AND HIS CELTIC PRECURSORS. 

BT EDMUND G. GARDNER. 

Part I. 
I. 

||HE Divina Commedia, while summing up, idealiz- 
ing, and crystallizing the culture of nine cen* 
turies, and representing in mystical fashion the 
spiritual experiences of one man's life, is both a 
flPV^HS vision and an allegory. It is a vision of hell, 

* purgatory, and paradise, represented as seen on certain definite 

days in the year 13CX); a spiritual journey, in which the poet 
is led by Virgil, typifying human philosophy inspired by rea- 
son, through hell and purgatory to the Earthly Paradise, the 
Garden of Eden won back by man through the purgatorial 
pains; from which, guided by Beatrice typifying Divine Phil- 
osophy as possessing revelation, he passes upwards through the 
^ nine moving spheres into the empyrean, the true paradise of 

light and love, outside of space and time. Instructed by St. 
Bernard, type of the loving contemplation in which the eternal 
life of the soul consists, he has a foretaste of the Beatific Vision 
of the Divine Essence. It is an allegory of the conversion of 
the soul, and her progress, by slow degrees, through the mys- 
tical stages of purgation and illumination to that of union with 
the divine. 

We mast, therefore, seek for Dante's material predecessors 

Copyright 1909. Thb Missionakt Socibtt of St. Pavl thb Afostlb 

IN TRB STATB of NBW ToKK. 
VOL. LXXXIX,— 19 




Digitized by 



Google 



290 Dante and His Celtic Precursors [June, 

among the recorders or inventors of journeys through the other 
world, or visions of the life beyond the grave; and for his 
spiritually more significant precursors among the philosophers 
and mystics who have striven to express the eternal in the 
figurative language of a day, or to construct the celestial lad- 
der by which the soul passes up from the knowledge of sen- 
sible things to the contemplation of the supra-sensible. We shall 
find that Dante was indebted, in a slight degree, to legends of 
Irish origin for the details and machinery of his sacred poem ; 
and, more appreciably, directly or indirectly, to writers of 
Celtic race for that mystical philosophy which makes the 
Divina Commedia so immeasurably more than a mere vision 
enshrined in immortal verse of the world beyond the grave. 

II. 

There are two classes of legends, having their origin in Ire- 
land, which may have influenced the external form of the 
Divina Commedia; the stories of voyages over the ocean to 
seek the islands of the blessed, and the visions of hell and 
heaven, whether represented as revealed to the spirit separated 
from the body in a trance, as in those of St Fursa and the 
knight Tundal, or seen in an actual bodily pilgrimage, as in 
the traditions associated with the Purgatory of St Patrick. 

Mr. Nutt, in his learned and exhaustive essay on the 
'^ Happy Otherworld in the Mythico-Romantic Literature of 
the Irish,'' says of the former, the ''Oversea Voyage Litera- 
ture,'' that: ''Of all classes of ancient Irish mythic fiction this 
is the most famous, and the one which has most directly af- 
fected the remainder of West European literature." * 

It is most improbable that Dante had any direct knowledge 
of any of the earlier Irish romances dealing with these over- 
sea voyages, such as the Voyage of Maelduin or the Voyage 
of Bran. But the later Voyage of St Brendan, Navigatio Sancti 
Brendani, was widely diffused over Europe, from the eleventh 
century onwards, and Dante may well have met with it in one 
form or another. The "Island of Delight," the "Land of 
Promise of the Saints," to which Brendan and his companions 
finally come, has a certain superficial resemblance to the poet's 
Earthly Paradise. The saint is stopped by a river that flows 
through the island ; and Dante, too, found a stream that " took 

* Meyer and Nutt, Tht Voya^t pfBroHt Son •/ Fthal, to tkt Land of iht Living , I., p. z6z. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Dante and His Celtic Precursors 291 

from me further passage/' * To Brendan appears ** a youth of 
resplendent features and beauteous aspect/*^ who salutes him 
with the words of Psalm 83 : Beati qui habitant in domo tua, 
Domine. There comes to meet Dante and Virgil a no less love- 
ly lady, whose eyes shone so that ''I believe not that such 
light shone under the eyelids of Venus '* ; and she refers them 
to Psalm 91 : Delectasti me, Domine, in factura tua. Brendan's 
youth explains the nature of the island, ''the land that you 
have sought for a long time/' much as Dante's lady does the 
campagna santa, of which ''they who in olden times sang of 
the golden age and its happy state perchance dreamed/' f But 
in Brendan's Island of Delight there is no shadow, for light un- 
failing shines upon it as in perpetual noon; Dante's Earthly 
Paradise witnesses the daily glories of sunrise and sunset 
Brendan is bidden to return straightway to his native land ; 
whereas Dante, after a further revelation and a full personal 
confession, is drawn through the stream to penetrate the divine 
mysteries beyond and above, before he can carry back his 
message, in pro del mondo eke mat vive, " to the livers of the 
life which is a running unto death/' | 

There is, however, another episode — one of the most strik- 
ing in the Divina Commedia — which seems, probably indirectly, 
to be derived from some Irish legend of this class. This is the 
story of the last voyage of Ulysses, put upon the lips of the 
hero himself in the twenty- sixth canto of the Infetno, where, 
with Diomede, he is tortured in the flame wherein evil counsel- 
lors are punished. He tells the tale of how he sailed with his 
small* company to the west, to find "experience of the ! un- 
peopled world behind the Sun," and, urging his mad flight 
towards the morning, at last beheld what seemed the land of 
promise : 

" Five times the light beneath the Moon had been rekindled 
and quenched as oft, since we had entered on the arduous 
passage. 

" When there appeared to us a Mountain, dim with distance ; 
and to me it seemed the highest I had ever seen. 

"We joyed, and soon our joy was turned to grief; for. a 
tempest rose from the new land, and struck the forepart of our 
ship. 

" Three times it made her whirl round with all the waters ; 



• Furg., XXVIII.. 25. t Furg., XXVIII., 64-81. 

X Purg,, XXXII.. 103 ; XXXIII.. 53. 

Digitized by 



Google 



29a Dante and His Celtic Precursors [June, 

at the fourth, made the poop rise up and prow go down, as 
pleased Another, till the sea was closed above us/'* 

There seems no warrant for this voyage of Ulysses in the 
classics, and commentators regard it as entirely the work of 
Dante's own imagination, perhaps suggested by the Genoese 
expeditions in search of a western continent. To me it appears 
to be essentially a Celtic episode, having its ultimate source in 
the Irish '^ Oversea Voyage" literature, but completely modi- 
fied in spirit to meet the poet's allegorical purpose. For the 
lofty mountain, that Ulysses dimly perceived, was indeed the 
island of the blessed, crowned by the Earthly Paradise; but it 
was also the Mountain of Purgation, to be painfully surmounted 
before attaining to that state of blessedness; and to that not 
even the noblest pagan soul could reach, unless first illumined 
by a ray of divine grace. 

The earliest of the Irish visions of life beyond the grave is 
probably that of St Fursa, or Furseus, who died shortly after 
the middle of the seventh century. Dante may well have known 
the summary of his life and revelations included by St Bede in 
the third book of his Historia Ecclesiastica ; it is less likely, but 
not altogether impossible, that he may have met with the fuller 
account given in the contemporary life of Fursa, to which Bede 
refers, and which is published by the Bollandists.t 

Fursa in a trance quits his body from evening until cock- 
crow. ''He merited," writes Bede, ''to look upon the aspects 
of the choirs of Angels, and to hear their hymns of praise. 
He was wont to relate that, among other things, he clearly 
heard them sing: Ibunt sancti de virtute in virtutem; and 
again: Videbitur Deus diorum in Sion.'*t This may possibly 
have suggested the beautiful passage where Dante hears the 
hymn raised by the spirits of the warriors of the Cross in the 
sphere of Mars: Risurgi e vinci: "A melody that rapt me 
without understanding the hymn. Well I perceived that it was 
of lofty praise, for there came to me: Rise up and conquer; 
as to one that understandeth not and heareth." ^ 

Three days afterwards, Fursa has another vision. He is 
borne up by three angels, with whom the devils dispute for his 
soul. Looking down upon the world at their bidding, he sees 
"as it were a darksome valley beneath htm, set in the depths. 

* /)v/m XXVI«, Z30-142 (Carlyle's translation). t Acta Sanctorum^ January x6. 

\ Psalm 83. t Par,, XIV., 122-126. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] DANTE AND HIS CELTIC PRECURSORS 293 

He saw, too, four fires in the air not very far distant from 
each other; and, asking the angels what these fires might be, 
he heard that they were the fires that were going to inflame 
and bum up the world '' : mendacium^ cupiditas^ dissensio, impietas. 
Here we are a little reminded of a similar thought in the In^ 
femo: ''Pride, envy, and avarice are the three sparks that 
have set the hearts of all on fire."* Fursa looks on the saints 
and angels, and speaks with '' certain men of his own Irish na- 
tion, whom he had known by fame to have held, not ignobly, 
the priestly rank of old; from whom he heard many things, 
which would be most salutary to himself or to all who would 
listen thereto"; a passage that recalls Dante's words concern- 
ing the saints in paradise, in his letter to Can Grande: ''To 
make manifest the glory of blessedness in those souls, many 
things will be asked of them (as of those who look upon all 
truth) which have much profit and delight" f 

Thus far Bede. The older Vita Fursei names these Irish 
saints as Beanus and Meldanus, and gives their whole discourse 
at length. They speak of the end of the world, and the im- 
minent wrath of God upon the teachers of the Church and the 
secular princes, for the negligence of the former and the bad 
example of the latter. "The Lord is angry with the teachers, 
because they neglect the divine books and pursue the cares of 
this world with every delight." Even so, again and again, 
Dante raises his protest against the neglect of theology and 
the Scriptures by the clergy of his own time, in the quest of 
worldly success and temporal goods : " For this the Gospel and 
the great Doctors are deserted, and only the Decretals are so 
studied, as may be seen on their margins." t "^^^ two saints 
conclude : " Go then, and announce the Word of God to the 
princes of this land of Ireland, that, laying aside iniquity, they 
may save their souls by penance. Then to the chief priests of 
Holy Church announce that God is jealous against those who 
love the world more than Him, and neglect the welfare of 
souls to devote themselves to the gains of this world." This 
is, indeed, the attitude taken up by Dante throughout his 
poem, though ultimately, in both cases, derived from Jeremias 
the prophet : " I will go therefore to the great men and will 
speak to them."^ 

Inf., VI., 74, 75. t Efdst, X., 33 (transl. Wicksteed). 

XPar., IX.. 133-135 ; Epist., VIII.. 7. 
$ Cf. especially Par,, XVII., 127-143 ; XXVII., 64-66. 



Digitized by 



Google 



S94 DANTE AND HIS CELTIC PRECURSORS [June, 

While the three angels are bringing Fursa back, the devils 
throw a burning body against him, which scorches his shoulder 
and jaw. He knew that it was the soul of one from whom 
when dying, for charity's sake, he had accepted a legacy. All 
through his life Fursa bore the sign of this burning, which he 
had received in his soul, visible on his outward body. The 
analogy is obvious with Boccaccio's story of how, when the 
fame of Dante's Inferno had. spread abroad, the women of Ve- 
rona whispered that his beard was crisped and his skin dark- 
ened ** by the heat and smoke that are there below." As Ros- 
setti has it: 

"For a tale tells that on his track 

As through Verona's streets he went 
This saying certain women sent: 
'Lo, he that strolls to Hell and back 
At will ! Behold him, how Hell's reek 
Has crisped his beard and singed his cheek.'" 

A little later in date than Fursa was St. Adamnan, who 
died in 703, but the vision that bears his name is certainly not 
earlier than the ninth century. It has recently been the sub- 
ject of a learned work by Mr. C. S. BoswelL* The soul of 
Adamnin, "the High Scholar of the Western World," passes 
from his body on the feast of St. John the Baptist, and is 
guided by his Angel Guardian to behold the glory of heaven 
and the pains of hell, as also the temporal and tempered suf- 
ferings of the spirits who will ultimately be saved. It is quite 
impossible that Dante could have known of this vision in any 
form ; but Mr. Boswell has pointed out that " the punishments 
described contain many striking points of similarity to Dante, 
both in their kind, and in the vivid manner in which they are 
portrayed." I do not dwell upon this point, as I have always 
regarded this, the details of the horrors of hell, as the least 
significant part of the Divina Commedia. Rather would I agree 
with him in recognizing a dim anticipation of Dante's empyreal 
Rose of Paradise, where Adamndn hears the birds of heaven 
and the archangels "lead the music, and the Heavenly Host 
with the Saints and Virgins make response " ; while the Lord's 

* C. S. Boswell, An Irish Precursor of Dante : A Study on the Vision of Heaven and 
Hell Ascribed to the Eighth- Century Irish St. Adamndn, with Translation of the Irish Text. 
London, H^ \ ^^ : r, 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] DANTE AND HIS CELTIC PRECURSORS 295 

messengers, going to and fro from Him, bring messages of 
love to the blessed.* 

The twelfth century produced an extraordinary abundance 
of widely diffused visions of this kind, which could hardly have 
been totally unknown to Dante. Conspicuous among them are 
two Irish works written in Latin : the Vision of Tundal, which 
is placed in the year 1 149 ; and the visit of the knight Owen, 
or Eogan, to the Purgatory of St. Patrick in 1153. 

An eminent Irish scholar, Denis Florence MacCarthy, writ- 
ing of the legend of St. Patrick's Purgatory, declares that 'Mt 
is not too much to say that without it the Divina Commedia 
of Dante would never have taken the form it did.'' I must 
confess to finding this a hard saying — unless we merely take 
it as meaning that the legend suggested to Dante the idea of 
representing himself as passing bodily through purgatory for 
his own salvation. The traditions concerning this sanctuary 
may possibly have remotely given him the conception, of which 
we do not find a trace elsewhere, of purgatory being on an 
island. In the earlier years of the thirteenth century, Cssarius 
of Heisterbach had written : ^' If any one doubt concerning 
purgatory, let him go to Ireland, let him enter the Purgatory 
of St. Patrick, and he will doubt no more concerning the pur- 
gatorial pains." In the fourteenth century, after Dante's time, 
we find it referred to in the Dittamondo of Fazio degli Uberti 
and in one of the Letters of St Catherine of Siena, and read 
of pilgrimages undertaken to it at a slightly later period by 
various historical personages.! 

But when we turn to the legend as it took literary shape 
in the hands of Henry of Saltrey — the monk of Huntingdon- 
shire, who told the story of Sir Owen some time between 11 70 
and the close of the century — we trace fewer analogies between 
it and Dante's poem than in almost any other work of this 
class. To be sure, Owen is still in his body when he enters 
the purgatory, even as Dante is when he passes through the 
gate of hell. And he mounts up from purgatory to the Earthly 
Paradise, even as Dante does, though by a totally different 
way. But the actual details of the purgatory, with its fiends 
and horrible torments, have not the remotest resemblance to 

* op, Citt p. 185. But Mr. Boswellis in error in identifying Adamndn's " nine classes 
of Heaven " with the Dionysian arrangement of the nine angelic orders. 

t See the important article by H. Delehaye, LePlUrina^i tU Laurent di PdszsiMau Pur* 
gaUir%dt S. Patticif in the Analtcta BolUndiana, Tom. XXVII. 



Digitized by 



Google 



296 DANTE AND HIS CELTIC PRECURSORS [June, 

Dante's conception of the seven terraces, peopled by souls in 
joyful expectation of the assured bliss to come, purging away 
the stains of the world beneath the sun and stars, watched 
over by angelic forms of surpassing beauty and radiance. Owen 
does not enter the real hell (of which his purgatory is, how- 
ever, a very passable imitation), but crosses over it by the 
narrow and slippery bridge — a constant feature in these legends 
— which grows broader when he calls on the name of Christ, 
and by which he reaches the Earthly Paradise. Here, for a 
moment, we are reminded of Dante in the pageant of bishops, 
monks, and priests who come through the gate to meet him; 
and the heavenly food which descends from heaven in the 
form of flame, of which Owen partakes, is perhaps a little like 
the river of light which passes down upon Dante when he en- 
ters the Empyrean, and of which the poet drinks with his eyes 
that he may be rendered capable of beholding spiritual things.* 
Here, however, the resemblance ceases, and Owen returns to 
the world without having penetrated further into the celestial 
paradise. 

It is quite otherwise with the far more interesting work, 
the so-called Vision of Tundal or Tn{ithgal. This was the most 
widely di£fused of all these legends, and, under the title of 
Lihellus de raptu animcB lundali et eius visione tractans depcenis 
infemi et gaudiis paradisif was printed at least five times in the 
fifteenth century alone.f Written originally in Latin prose by 
Marcus, an Irish Bendictine from Munster, it was speedily trans- 
lated into almost every European language. Latin, German, 
and Middle English poems were based upon it, an Italian prose 
version is extant which apparently belongs to Dante's own 
epoch; but it is curious to notice that it did not appear in 
Irish until the sixteenth century. As Professor Kuno Meyer 
remarks: ^'Of all countries Ireland, the original home of the 
Vision, was the last to translate the work of brother Marcus into 
the vernacular." % '^hat Dante knew this vision in its original 
Latin form, and that he was directly influenced by it, is at 
least highly probable. 

Tundal is a noble knight of Cashel, leading an ungodly 
life and scorning all spiritual things, who has at Cork a kind 

^Par„ XXX., 46-60, 73. 83-90. CJ. Ward, Catalogue of Romances, II., p. 441. 
1 1 quote throughout the Latin text as edited bj Wagner, Visic Tnugdali, Erlanger, i88a. 
X Friedel and Meyer, La Visum de Tondaie, Textes Frangais, Anglo-Normand, et Irian- 
dais. Paris, 1907. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Dante and His Celtic Precursors 297 

of trance, daring which he lies as it were dead for the space 
of three days and three nights ; after which he returns to con- 
sciousnessy completely converted by a vision that he has seen. 
*' Receiving the body of the Lord and rendering thanks, he 
gave away all he had to the poor, and ordered the sign of 
Holy Cross to be put upon all the raiment that he wore. All 
things that he had seen he afterwards related to us, and ex- 
horted us to lead a good life; and whereas he had formerly 
ignored the word of God, he now preached it with great de- 
votion, humility, and knowledge/' 

The whole story is manifestly a pious work of fiction, com- 
posed by Brother Marcus, who professes to have heard the de- 
tails of the vision from Tundal's own lips. It is based, to 
some extent, upon the vision of Drythelm, a Northumbrian of 
the end of the seventh century, related by Bede in the fifth 
book of the Historia EccUsiasHca. It was written for a Bene- 
dictine abbess, the author's patroness, at Ratisbon, and proba- 
bly in 1 149, the year to which, in his dedicatory letter, Marcus 
assigns the vision. This was, as he tells us, the second year 
of the expedition of the Emperor Conrad to the Holy Land— - 
that second Crusade which St. Bernard had preached with such 
disastrous results, and in which, as we learn from the Paradise^ 
Dante's ancestor Cacciaguida had followed the Emperor to meet 
a glorious death in battle.* Marcus mentions St. Bernard as 
living and engaged upon the life of St. Malachy, who had died 
in his arms at Clairvaux in the November of the preceding 
year. 

At the outset of the vision, the soul is assailed by ^'a 
multitude of unclean spirits," like the fiends at Dante's gate 
of the city of Dis; and an angel comes to the rescue, "com- 
ing from afar like a most shining star," like Dante's celestial 
messenger crossing the Styx.f This is Tundal's Guardian 
Angel, who is to be his guide throughout, and whose relations 
with the soul are rendered with much beauty and tenderness 
— a clear anticipation of the scenes between Dante and Virgil. 
He bade Tundal follow him in almost the same words as Virgil 
does Dante. The demons cry out in protest against the divine 
injustice in thus letting Tundal be saved — a first hint, perhaps, 
for the wonderful scene of the redemption of Buonconte da 
Montefeltro in the Purgatorio : 

•Par,, XV.. 139-148. \Inf., VIII. and IX. Cf.^Purg,, XII., 88-90. 

Digitized by VjOOQ IC 



298 DANTE AND HIS CELTIC PRECURSORS [June, 

" The Angel of God took me, and he of Hell cried : O thou 
from Heaven, wherefore robbest thou me ? 

''Thou bearest hence the eternal part of this man, for one 
little tear that takes him from me/' * 

As in other visions of this kind, there are practically two 
purgatories : a lower one, only differing from the upper regions 
of Dante's hell, in that its punishments are not eternal; and 
an upper region, of a less dreadful nature, but still utterly 
alien from that conception of the purgatory of divine love to 
which the poetical genius of Dante and the spiritual experience 
of St. Catherine of Genoa have given imperishable form. In 
Tundal's vision, even the souls who are to be saved are com- 
pelled for a while to experience the torments of the lost The 
angel leads him to an enormous monster called Acheron, with 
eyes like burning hills and flame coming out of his mouth, 
Vwho devoureth all souls/' In his jaws, like two columns in 
a gateway through which the souls have to pass to the tor- 
knent within, are the two giants, Fergusius and Conallus — a 
detail which, perhaps, suggested to Dante the part played by 
the giants in his hell, as also the somewhat similar treatment 
of the three arch-traitors in the mouth of Lucifer, f The angel 
leaves him, and the demons rush upon him 'Mike mad dogs'' 
— much as the Malebranche, the " Evilclaws," rush upon Virgil 
" with that fury and that storm wherewith the dogs rush forth 
upon the beggar." % He is compelled to enter, until, after un- 
utterable torments, he realizes his own sins, and finds himself 
outside the monster, with the angel again by his side. He 
addresses the latter in the spirit with which we find Dante 
ever turning to Virgil: "O my sole hope, O solace unde- 
servedly granted me by the Lord, O light of mine eyes, and 
staff in my misery and calamity, why wouldest thou desert my 
wretched soul ? " 

It is needless to dwell upon the details of the torments. 
Many of them find obvious analogies in those of Dante's /n- 
femo^ but were so much the literary property of the age that 
it is unsafe to assume any direct indebtedness on the latter's 
part. In one case, the punishment of those who accumulated 
sin upon sin, we have an infernal smithy presided over by Vul- 
can, which closely resembles Dante's way of transforming the 
creations of classical mythology into torturing demons. There 

• Purg,, v.. 104-107. t /<•/., XXXIV., 55-60 ; XXXI.. 40-45. % InJ., XXI., 67-71. 

Digitized by VjOOQ IC 



I909.] DANTE AND HIS CELTIC PRECURSORS £99 

is little, if any, marked ethical or psychological connection be- 
tween the sin and its penalty, which can almost invariably be 
traced in Dante; nor does Tundal hold any converse with the 
souls of the lost as his great successor was to do. The lower 
hell, wherein Lucifer (who is entirely distinct from Acheron) is 
confined, is a gigantic well or pit, as in Dante, but one in which 
the torments are not ice, but fire. 

One solitary episode, though not precisely recalling anything 
in Dante, seems to have something of his spirit. From one 
mountain to another, over the infernal valley, there haags a 
bridge, ''which bridge no one unless elect could pass/' Tun- 
dal sees many souls fall from it, and no one, save one priest, 
passed over unscathed. "That priest was a pilgrim, bearing a 
palm and wearing a long cloak, and before them all he crossed 
it first and fearlessly.'' But, presently, in another region, Tun- 
dal sees him again, and this time he is being led to the tor- 
ments: ''That, having seen the penalties, he might bum the 
more ardently in the love of Him who called him to glory." 

" By another way," says the angel, " must we return to our 
country." They come to a lofty wall, beneath and outside which 
is a multitude of men and women, like the souls detained in 
Dante's ante-purgatory outside the Gate of St. Peter. These 
souls, who were mali sid non valde, suffer for some years be- 
fore passing into their eternal rest. The angel leads Tundal 
through a gate to the Campus LcetituB^ full of flowery delights, 
where the sun never sets, and in which is the fountain of living 
water. We are reminded at first of Dante's Earthly Paradise; 
but there is this complete difference : this place is inhabited 
by a multitude of exultant men and women, souls who were 
boni non valde, and who, though delivered from the torments 
of hell, do not yet merit to be united to the company of the 
saints. Their position still corresponds, in some sort, to that 
of the souls outside Dante's purgatory. 

Among them Tundal recognizes the kings Conchobar and 
Donnchad: "Whom when he had seen, marveling greatly, he 
said : ' What is this, Lord, that I see ? In their life these two 
men were right cruel, and foes to each other; and by what 
merit came they hither, or how have they become friends ? ' " 
Here we have probably the first hint of Dante's Valley of the 
Princes, where those who had been the deadliest foes on earth, 
sit together in the flowering valley in the ante-purgatory, ccm- 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



300 Dante and His Celtic precursors [June, 

forting each other, waiting hombly for the gate of purgatory 
to be opened to them.* And, a little farther on, the connect* 
tion of the two episodes is made clearer. They come to a 
great palace where King Cormac is enthroned, he who had been 
Tandars liege lord in the other life,t waited upon by attend- 
ants of whom the knight can recognize none. These, says the 
angel, '^are all the poor of Christ and pilgrims, to whom the 
king was bounteous with temporal goods while he was there 
in the body, and therefore by their hands eternal recompense 
is rendered him jhere without end/* But, once a day, he is 
still tormented for certain sins, for the space of three hours: 

" The house grew dark, and all the dwellers therein became 
sad; and the king was troubled^ and he arose weeping, and 
went out. And when that soul followed him, he saw this mul- 
titude, which he had before beheld within, with hands out- 
stretched towards heaven, most devoutly praying to God, and 
saying : * Lord God Almighty, as Thou wilt and knowest, have 
mercy upon Thy servant' And, as he looked, he saw the king 
in fire up to his waist, and from his waist upwards clad in 
hairshirt." 

Here is clearly an analogy, even if somewhat remote, with 
the assault made once a day upon the Valley of the Princes by 
the evil serpent ; when, as Dante tells us : ^' I saw that noble 
army silently gaze upward, as though in expectation, pale and 

humble/' t 

The angel leads the soul of Tundal up through the first 
heaven, that of the married life and family state, and the sec- 
ond, that of the martyrs and virgins (wherein is the mystical 
tree which, as in Dante's Earthly Paradise, typifies the Church), 
into the third, or true paradise, the abode of the angels and 
saints in general. When he looks down, he sees, like Dante, 
all the world together as it were under one ray of the sun- 
but the Irish monk and the Italian poet have both borrowed 
this feature of their vision from the Dialogues of St Gregory.^ 
Ruadanus, his patron saint, welcomes and blesses Tundal. He 
sees St Patrick, with a great band of bishops, among whom he 
recognizes four recently dead: Celestine, Archbishop of Ar- 

•Ar^r.. VII.. 91-136. 

t This is, of course, not the famous Irish king of that name, but Cormac, son of Muiread- 
hach, King of Munster, " the ancestor of all the septs of the MacCarthys," who was killed by 
treachery in 1138. See the Annals of Ireland by tkt Four Masttts, ed. Donovan, II., p. Z059. 

X Fur£„ VIII., 22 €t stq. $ Cf, Par,, XXII., 133-153 ; St. Gregory, Dialo^ts, II., 35. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Dante and His Celtic Precursors 301 

magh; St Malachy; Christian of Lyons (likewise an Irish- 
man); and Nehemiah of Cloyne: 

^^ There was also near them a seat wondroasly adorned, in 
which no man was sitting. Then said the soul: 'Whose is 
that seat ; and wherefore is it thus empty ? ' Malachy answered 
him, saying: 'This seat is for a certain one of oor brethren, 
who hath not yet departed from the body; but, when he de- 
par teth, he shall sit therein/" 

It may well be that this suggested to Dante the famous 
passage where, on entering the empyrean heaven, he is shown 
the empty throne prepared for his hero, Henry of Luxemburg: 

'' In that great seat, on which thou dost fix thine eyes, for 
the crown that is already placed above it, ere thou thyself dost 
sup at this wedding feast, 

''Shall sit the soul that will be on earth imperial, of the 
lofty Henry, who shall come to straighten Italy before she be 
disposed/' • 

It has recently been suggested, with much probability, by 
Dr. Friedel and Professor Kuno Meyer, that the vacant throne 
in Tundal's vision is intended for St. Bernard, whom Malachy 
had left on earth a few months before, broken in health and 
tormented in spirit by the failure of the Crusade, and who was 
destined to die in August, 1153, some four years later. This 
is, indeed, a most significant link between the romance of the 
Irish monk and the epic of the Italian poet, in the closing 
scene of which Mary's faithful Bernard was to be the guiding 
spirit : 

" ' O holy Father, who for my sake dost bear being here 
below, leaving the sweet place wherein thou sittest by eternal 
lot' 

" So did I have recourse unto the teaching of him who drew 
beauty from Mary, as from the sun the morning star."t 

» Par., XXX., 133-138. t Par., XXXII.. 100-108. 

(to be concluded.) 



Digitized by 



Google 



HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER. 

BY KATHARINE TYNAN. 

Chapter IX. 

THE INTRUDERS. 

HE fine people, who had been unconscious of 
Nesta Moore's existence as long as she lived at 
the Mill House, found her out at the Manor. 
The Moores received, and were received by, the 
smartest people in the county. To be sure Nesta 
was unexceptionable; and James Moore's personality, his size, 
his beauty, his compelling character, made him a notable per- 
son wherever he might be. 

^^The handsomest man in the county," the old Duchess of 
St. Germains pronounced him to be, sitting by Nesta's side, 
while a band played, and a number of finely dressed people 
wandered about over the velvety lawns at one of the garden 
parties of which Nesta gave several during her first summer at 
Outwood. 

The wife's heart leaped up with pleasure. The Duchess 
was supposed to have a fine judgment where handsome men 
were concerned. Had she not buried three husbands already; 
fine, stately gentlemen, all of them ? And was it not rumored 
that she might, perhaps, take a fourth? 

James Moore was helping his wife to do the honors. There 
was a blazing sun full on the lawn, and he was standing, ex- 
posed to the full rays of it, his head bent, in an attitude of 
courteous listening, towards a very frumpish old lady, who was 
the widow of one of the richest commoners in England. She 
was a dreary old person despite her money; but none would 
have gathered the fact from the air of close attention with 
which James Moore listened to her as she sat under the shade 
of her parasol. He was in white flannels; he had just finished 
a game of tennis and he was flushed and happy looking, while 
his curls were more Jovian than ever. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her MOTHEies daughter 303 

'* Dear me 1 how very polite he is to old Mrs. Greene 1 *' went 
on the Duchess, who had a way of talking to herself, perhaps 
because she stood on such a lofty social pinnacle as to be 
to all intents and purposes somewhat alone. '^ Yet I have seen 
blue-blooded gentlemen very ill-tempered, and showing it too, 
when they have had to take Mrs. Greene in to dinner. There 
was a man at my own table — never mind, he is not likely to 
be there again. Now, I wonder where your husband gets such 
fine manners, my dear ? " 

She did not in the least intend to be rude, and Nesta, al- 
though she colored a little, smiled too. The Duchess' indis- 
cretions were something of a jest to the county. 

"They seem quite natural to him,'* Nesta replied, with a 
sparkle of humor in eyes which had lost their shadow, ''But 
I don't know that it is a question of good manners, conscious, 
at least He is so interested in everything and everybody that 
I don't think he knows when he has lit on a bore. Probably 
he and Mrs. Greene have found something in common to talk 
about." 

'' It was a runaway match, wasn't it ? " the Duchess asked. 
And then, without waiting for an answer: "Well, my dear, I 
don't blame you. Most women would have done it. When 
was it ? Last year ? The year before ? " 

"We have been married three years," Nesta said, again 
with the delightful roguish dimpling of her face. 

"Dear me, you don't say so. And where have you been 
hiding yourselves, may I ask?" 

"No further away than Valley. I often saw you driving. 
Duchess, during those three years." 

" How very remarkable 1 But Mr. Moore cannot have been 
with you or I would have noticed him. In ways he favors 
Lord Tenby — my second. But he is a foot taller than Tenby. 
Ah, Mrs. Greene has let him go. Call him over here, my dear, 
I want to talk to him before any one else can get hold of him. 
And you must look after your guests." 

No matter what James Moore was doing, or to whom he 
was talking, as soon as he was free his glance roved about in 
search of his wife. If she was anywhere near and their eyes 
met a smile would pass between them, full of meanings. Oc- 
casionally one of the many unappropriated ladies of the county 
would wonder what that fine, handsome Mr. Moore could have 



Digitized by 



Google 



J04 HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER [Jonc, 

seen in his pale, pretty little wife. Bot whatever he had seen, 
he saw it still. He was never likely to emulate his brothers' 
wishes for him in the direction of a brilliant marriage. If he 
coold have chosen oot of all the world he would have chosen 
Nesta. 

He came at his wife's nod gaily, like a lover. She went a 
little way to meet him. 

'^Yoo are to sit down and talk t# the Duchess^ Jim/' she 
said, with a light touch on his arm. ''She admires you." 

'' I would rather talk to you/' he whispered, and she smiled 
and blushed. 

''Dear met" said the lynx-eyed old lady, whom nothing 
escaped. "Imagine a wife of three years positively blushing 
for her own husband. Pretty dear 1 To be sure he is an un- 
commonly fine specimen." 

" Come and talk to me, Mr. Moore, come and talk to me," 
she said, in her loud, imperative voice. " I'm ever so much 
more amusing than Mrs. Greene; but I'm not going to amuse 
you. It is you who are to amuse me." 

"Mrs. Greene and I talked business, your Grace," said 
James Moore, taking the seat beside the Duchess, who looked 
with approval at his columnar throat and the dominant Cassar 
Augustus head. 

" Ah, business. If you get the soft side of Mrs. Greene in 
business — " 

" I'm not sure that I do. I want to buy up some fields of 
hers which will be needed for my town presently. "I intend 
to buy up all around Valley. It is sadly cramped for space at 
present. I shall give Mrs. Greene her price. I see Valley an- 
other Birmingham." 

" And where am I to go to ? " her Grace asked with an air 
of dissatisfaction. "The Duke would have made short work 
of you if he were alive, Mr. Moore. He never could endure 
the railways. It was through him the line was kept ten miles 
oflf." 

"And a pretty penny it's going to cost Valley one of these 
days," James Moore said with grim humor. 

Nesta, who had been listening with a. smile, turned away 
at this point and began her pretty progress round the lawn. 
She was charming in her frock of lavender muslin and wide 
white hat; and James Moore, looking after her as she moved 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her MOTHEies Daughter 305 

from one person to another, had a sudden recollection of how 
she had been obscured during those years at the Mill House* 
'' Poor little Nesta 1 '' he murmured to himself. '' Poor child 1 '' 
The sharp old eyes watching him noticed the softening of his 
face and wondered what had caused it. 

''Your wife has been telling me that you've been married 
three years, Mr. Moore/' jihe said. '' Very odd that we shouldn't 
have met before, very odd, indeed.'* 

James Moore smiled an inscrutable, fine smile. ''I remem- 
ber now that Sophia Grantley objected to the marriage. Very 
narrow-minded of her. We all marry money nowadays — I must 
tell her my opinion about it. But, of course^ she has changed 
her mind now that there is no doubt about the fortune?" 

'' I'm afraid not. The estrangement has fretted my wiftt 
It is nothing to me. Miss Grantley is, I believe, very deter- 
mined. She said she would never forgive Nesta." 

''Stuff and nonsense 1 Never forgive. Why, it isn't Chris- 
tian. What's more, /'ve no patience with it. Sophia Grantley 
will come round fast enough when I've spoken with her. Ah — 
isn't that her grand-nephew I see over there ? Your wife's 
cousin, of course. That is your wife with him, is it not? They 
are just gone out of sight." 

" Yes, that is Godfrey Grantley. Nesta and he were brought 
up together. They are very fond of each other. I am glad 
Nest has had so much of his company this summer. I have to 
be so much away." 

" Ah 1 not jealous," said the keen observer of men and 
manners, in her heart. "Why should he be? What woman 
would look at a pretty fellow like Godfrey Grantley if this man 
wanted her?" 

Aloud she said: 

"There are two rather queer persons peeping through the 
yew hedge behind us. They have been there for some time. 
They are very ugly, wickedly ugly. One rather reminds me 
of a black beetle. I hope your house is well protected at night. 
There they go 1 " She stood up and pointed to two figures 
that moved along stealthily the other side of the hedge. In a 
second they were out of sight. 

"They are my brothers," James Moore said quietly. 

Even the Duchess was momentarily embarrassed. 

" Dear me ! " she said, " how odd ! They are so very unlike 

VOL. LXXXIX.— 20 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



3o6 Her Mother's daughter [Janc^ 

you! Bat, after all, ugliness like that is a distinction; it is 
sort of beauty in its way/' 

''I am sorry they went away/' James Moore said dryly 
^'else, perhaps, your Grace would have permitted me to intro- 
duce them to you*'' 



Chapter X. 

NESTA HAS A GRUE. 

Telling Nesta of the occurrence afterwards, James Moore 
laughed a little ruefully. 

** I wish they would polish themselves up a bit for my sake, 
he said. '^ For your sake and mine, so as to be fit to come in 
among our guests instead of skulking behind a hedge, to be 
taken for tramps by the Duchess of St. Germains. Very odd 
that they should have been there at all, at that hour! They 
are so devoted to the business of the mills. I can't imagine 
them both being absent at the same time/' 

A shadow of fear fell over the brightness which had recently 
become a fixed quantity in Nesta Moore's face. 

'' I wonder why they came ? " she said. Then : '' You should 
speak to them about it, Jim. It is not fair to you or me that 
they should come creeping and spying about the house. Why 
can't they be like other people ? They are always so unkempt, 
too, so ill-groomed. I don't like your brothers to be wild men 
of the woods." 

'' I'm afraid you must take them just as they are. Nest 
You'll never make dandies of my brothers." 

*'They ought to look clean." 

'^How vehement you are about it, dear! Poor fellows, na- 
ture has made them rough. I hardly know you when you are 
not pitiful. They are just my rough, faithful bulldogs, who 
would tear in pieces anything that threatened me. What is it. 
Nest?" She had uttered a low cry, as though his words had 
frightened her. '^They would guard anything dear to me as 
faithfully as a pair of dogs. How nervous you are, child 1 
Your hands are quite cold." 

There was a sough of wind in the trees outside, and an ivy- 
branch tapped on the window. 



Digitized by 



Google 



ii * 

it ' 



1909.] HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER 307 

** I think there is thunder coming/' she replied. ** I feel it 
I am nervous. Was that lightning ? '' 

James Moore ;drew the curtains across the windows of the 
room where he was dressing for dinner. It was one of the hap- 
piest hours of their day. She never could be sure of having 
him to herself. Sometimes he had been called away even after 
dinner in the evening. The business, with its ever-increasing 
ramifications, was perpetually needing its master. He usually 
arrived home only in time to dress; it was a concession to the 
ways of their fine new friends; and though James Moore had 
grumbled at it at first, half in jest, he never thought of shirk- 
ing it He always found his wife dressed, and ready to sit and 
Calk to him while he made his toilet 

''What matter about the lightning?'' he said cheerfully. 
''We shall not know anything about it shut in here together. 
You would not fear it with me?" 

You will not want to go out to-night, Jim?'' 
' Not if I can help it I've spent an uncommonly lazy day 
to-day, away from the mills nearly all day. To be sure those 
fellows are on guard, even if they did slip the chain for a 
while this afternoon. I daresay they only glanced at us. Per- 
haps they wanted to see us among our fine friends. They were 
going off at a swinging trot when I saw them. They ought to 
have overtaken you and Godfrey down by the river. I saw you 
going that way just before." 

He was fastening his tie with great care, else he must have 
noticed her pallor. She began going over hurriedly in her 
mind what had happened when she and Godfrey were down by 
the river. Godfrey had been falling head over ears in love with 
Lady Eugenia Capel during those weeks of idleness. She had 
been extraordinarily kind to him in her frank way; but, what 
had he to offer her? Even if Aunt Sophia should leave all 
she had to him — and he rather suspected that a good deal of 
it would go to various philanthropic objects — he would still be 
in no position to think of the only daughter of the Earl of 
Mount- Eden as a wife. And there was a successful rival; at 
least successful to all appearance. What chance could he have 
against William Stanhope, the brilliant politician, the keen ama- 
teur of the arts, the serious, handsome, stately person, who was 
so often at Lady Eugenia's side, in whose society she seemed 
to delight? Mr. Stanhope had made way once or twice for 



Digitized by 



Google 



308 HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER [June, 

Lady Eugenia's hopeless adorer; but it was because he was so 
sure that he could afford to be carelessly kind. 

Captain Grantley's leave was nearly up. He was wretched 
at the thought of going so far away from his idol, but quite 
hopeless about its being of any use to speak to her. Nesta 
hardly knew her cousin in this new humility. Godfrey had 
been in love, or had pretended to be in love, with twenty girls, 
including Nesta herself. But this was the real thing ; there was 
no doubt that he was genuinely in love at last. 

He had won a new dignity from his unhappiness. At first 
he had raved about Lady Eugenia to his cousin; who was al- 
ways sympathetic. But as things had gone deeper he had said 
less. This afternoon he had studiously avoided Lady Eugenia 
after their first meeting. Mr. Stanhope was by her side, his 
presence among them being a cause of great excitement to 
the good people of those parts. An observant person might 
have noticed that he sent queer, half-humorous, half-sympa- 
thetic glances from under his young* old brows^at Grantley, who 
had the air of a defeated man, although he had done his best 
to carry off things with spirit. 

Nesta's gentle heart had been disturbed by the sight of 
Godfrey, who had played through several games of tennis, free 
at last and fallen into a gloomy abstraction. She had thrust a 
cousinly arm through his and carried him off down the walk 
between the yew hedge and the river, her thought being to 
comfort him. They had sauntered and walked till she remem- 
bered that it was time to return to her guests. He had refused 
to go back with her, saying that he would go round to the 
stables, have a horse saddled, and ride over to see how Aunt 
Sophia was. She had not been well, of late. Then he had 
stooped his head and rested his eyes for a second in her hair, 
calling her the kindest and sweetest little woman alive. 

She remembered now after he had stalked away and left 
her that she had heard something move beyond the yew hedge, 
which was so thick as to be almost impenetrable. Some graz- 
ing cattle perhaps or a fawn with its doe in the lawn beyond 
the hedge. She had given no thought to it. Now — 

''I did not see them,'* she said in a small voice. 

'' They must have gone off by the path towards the stables,'' 
James Moore said carelessly. 

A peal of thunder rattled the sky outside with that strange 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her Mother's Daughter 309 

metallic sound which we associate with stage thunder. Through 
the drawn curtains leaped a javelin of light. 

James Moore saw it in the glass and turned about to draw 
the curtains closer. The great room beyond was lit up with 
the lightning. Through the archway which connected it with the 
dressing-room was now an obscure darkness, again a sudden 
white light which threw everything into brilliant relief, leaving 
the following darkness blacker than before. 

Nesta Moore felt a sudden fear of the room and the house, 
such as she had experienced on that wild autumn day when 
she had first laid eyes on Outwood Manor, when the fires had 
flamed in the panes only to fall suddenly into ashes. 

'' What is the matter ? ** her husband asked, filled with ten- 
der concern for her. '* Poor little girl, you are over-tired. 
Why you are quite pale.'* 

'' I've had a grue,'' she said, with an attempt to smile. '^ I 
thought of all the dead who have lain in that room yonder 
since this house was built.'' 

"I thought we had exorcised the shadows and the ghosts. 
You should have let me build you a new house, dear. I 
thought you were happy here. Come, let us see the child be- 
fore she goes asleep." 

He put an arm about his wife's slender figure and led her 
to the cheerful nursery upstairs, where Stella, in a white night- 
gown, was dancing like a little moon- elf, her eyes shining, 
her hair blown out in a wild cloud about her little head. 

The nurse went away and left the parents with the child, 
who clung fondly about her father's neck, sending bewitching 
glances at her mother, standing by smiling, although she was 
still pale. It was a charming picture of domestic happiness. 

After a little while James Moore, who was passionately fond 
of his little daughter, gave her up to her mother. 

''Mother is afraid, Stella, because the trains up in heaven 
are making such a noise," he said. 

''Poor Mother," the child said, with precocious tenderness. 
"Mother mustn't be frightened. Stella take care of little 
Mother." 

"And Daddy?" James Moore suggested. 

"And Daddy," Stella said, stroking her mother's cheek. 



Digitized by 



Google 



3IO HER MOTHEies DAUGHTER [June, 



Chapter XI. 

RECONCILIATION. 

After ally the Duchess had nothing to do with bringing 
Nesta and her great-aunt once more together. 

Captain Grantley came in to dinner, looking better for his 
ride, and with an astounding message for Nesta. 

''Aunt Sophia says: 'Tell Nesta to come to see me. I*m 
too old and too hardened in my ways to make the first ad- 
vances by coming to see her. I said I'd never forgive her, 
but Never is a long time, and I am breaking up. Tell her I 
am breaking up. I want to see the child, too— the only young 
thing in the world that is any kin of mine.* " 

Nesta colored with the ready flush which came to her pale 
cheeks for any small or great excitement 

" Poor Aunt Sophia 1 *' she said : " I am so glad. Is she 
really breaking up, Godfrey? She always seemed to be made 
of steel." 

" At seventy-six most of us are breaking up. By the way, 
I should go soon. Nest, else she may change her mind. And 
don't say anything to her about the message. Perhaps she 
didn't mean it to be given like that. Perhaps she only meant 
me to hint to you that you might go to see her without any 
fear of unfriendliness on her part." 

" I shall remember, Godfrey." 

The next day rose bright and beautiful after the storm of 
the preceding night The rain had drenched the roses, and 
the lawn was shining in the sun when he showed his face at 
last out of the wet mists. There was a silver fringe to every 
leaf and grass- blade. Every little stream was singing. Afresh, 
delicious odor of green things refreshed was in the air. The 
flowers lifted grateful faces to the sky. The birds were sing« 
ing riotously amid the wet leaves. 

After lunch Nesta ordered the little pony- carriage, which 
had been her husband's birthday present to her. She had 
carriages now and horses in the stable, and a fat coachman of 
whom she was secretly afraid. When she went out in state to 
pay calls — ^John, the young footman, sitting with folded arms 
on the box beside the coachman— Nesta, who was the simplest 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER 31 1 

creature alive, felt the drive and the occasion so much of a 
function that she could take no pleasure in it 

** I want something in which Stella and I can drive about 
alone/' she said. 

''The two most precious things I have on earth/* James 
Moore had responded. ''In fact, all my world. How am I 
going to trust you and Stella alone? Supposing there was a 
runaway as there was that evening when we were nearly 
smashed up, and Lord Mount- Eden's carriage had a narrower 
escape still.'' 

" If such a thing should happen we would be safer in ' the 
pony carriage — it would be easier to dispose of it— -than in the 
barouche, with Williams and John and the pair." 

"So you would be, little woman. Well, you don't want 
anything very 'sporty.' There's old Mrs. Mason's pony and 
phaeton in the market. The phaeton has been done up very 
prettily. The pony is not more than ten years old, I think. 
To be sure, it's a lazy little beast and full of tricks. But 
they're safe tricks, I think." 

" I should love that pony," Nesta said. " He used to 
make poor Mrs. Mason walk up the hills, even the very little 
ones. I remember the poor old lady saying to me that Ben 
had really prolonged her life— he made her do so much walk* 
ing against her will." 

"Well, you shall have Ben; only, don't let him play too 
many tricks." 

So Ben and the pony phaeton had come to be Nesta's own 
property ; and it was one of the sweetest things in her life, to 
own the little equipage, by which she and Stella could slip 
away from all the rest of the world and go picnicking in 
lonely country lanes and on the hillsides, for Ben was a sturdy 
little steed and so long as you let him take it easy you could 
depend on him to do your work. 

It was a joy to Nesta to have Stella dressed in her white 
silk frock, with a string of green beads about her neck and a 
wide green hat on her auburn head; to let Nurse off for the 
afternoon and go driving with Stella to display the wonderful 
little creature to Aunt Sophia. How strange that she should 
be going to see Aunt Sophia, to receive her forgiveness, after 
all those years I 

She wondered what Aunt Sophia would think of Stella^ 



Digitized by 



Google 



312 Her MOTHEits Daughter [June, 

To be sure^ children had not been persona grata at the Priory 
in the old days; but then Stella was different. She was not 
only the one child of the old lady's blood living, but she was 
Stella. There had never been any child, there never would be 
any child, like Stella. Poor Godfrey 1 She remembered that 
he had looked gloomy and troubled when he had told that 
portion of Aunt Sophia's message, which spoke of Stella as 
the only child of her blood. It was the look of a man who 
feels that because he cannot have the one woman, marriage and 
fatherhood are denied him. Poor Godfrey 1 To Nesta, Godfrey, 
for all his golden youth, was something without an anchorage, 
homeless, helpless, buffeted by winds of chance and fate. 

Nesta had often seen her great-aunt since the time when 
they had parted so stormily. But she had not seen her for 
some months, and the change in her grieved the girl's gentle 
heart 

Miss Grantley sat bolt upright in her chair, indomitable as 
of old, yet with the eyes of a sick woman. She had grown very 
thin, and there was a high flush on either cheek that told of 
pain. She stood up to receive Nesta, despite evident weak- 
ness, and imprinted on her cheek one of the chilly kisses which 
Nesta remembered from of old. 

** It was good of you to come so quickly," she said. ** I 
suppose Godfrey gave you a hint. You're looking well, Nesta. 
I hope you're not going to be a fat woman in middle age. 
Our family has never run to flesh. And so that is the child. 
I can't say I see any likeness to us in her." 

She put on her glasses to stare at Stella, who sat under 
the inspection like a mouse. 

''I was so glad that you would see me, Aunt Sophia," 
Nesta said. ''I have felt the estrangement." 

''Everything comes to an end, child, even justifiable anger. 
When one is on the edge of the grave, as I am, one discovers 
that. Besides, when the Duchess of St. Grermains visits yon 
it 18 time for me to restore your name to my visiting-list 
Your husband has done very well for you, I hear, very well. 
If worldly success can justify a rash marriage yours is justi- 
fied. I hear from the Duchess that he is a positively credit- 
able person. Not that I am one of those who think about 
money. I have not moved with my times. Yet a man whose 
fortune runs into seven figures must be a remarkable man; 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her Mother's Daughter 313 

one to whom the ordinary laws will not apply. I am told that 
yoar husband's fortune may rise to that if his schemes prosper 
and the Lord spares him/' 

'' I hope not/' said Nesta, with a frightened air. '' It would 
be terrible to be very rich." 

''You were always a fool, Nesta. I hope you don't bring 
up the child with those ideas." 

''At present Stella knows the value of nothing except love." 

"Stuff and nonsense! I've got on very well without love. 
It means a man to bother you, and children to cause you anxiety. 
And that reminds me — what's come to Godfrey ? " 

The abruptness of the question forced the truth to Nesta's 
lips. 

"He is head over ears in love with Lady Eugenia Capel, 
Lord Mount- Eden's daughter." 

" Love again I " There was an indescribable contempt in 
the spinster's tones. " And if he is, why doesn't he marry her ? '^ 

"He won't even ask her." 

"And pray why not?" He doesn't think she'd refuse him 
— a bonny lad like Godfrey ? " 

" He is too poor. You have been very good to him, Aunt 
Sophia, but he has only just managed to live in an expensive 
regiment" 

" If the girl is worth her salt she will take him on what I 
have to give him. One thing I wanted to tell you is that I 
am giving everything to Godfrey, everything. You will never 
need it. If I thought you would, I would remember you and 
your child, and let bygones be bygones." 

"Oh no, no"; said Nesta, with a feverish anxiety to be 
done with the subject. To her sensitive mind it was a painful 
one. "We shall never need it, Stella and I." 



Chapter XII. 

THE GIFT. 

There was a pause of a few minutes. Miss Grantley, though 
she sat as upright as ever in her high-backed chair, had closed 
her eyes. When she opened them again they were glazed as 
though with pain. 



Digitized by 



Google 



314 HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER [June, 

''There is nothing unjust in my leaving it all to Godfrey/' 
she said, ''that is^ all except a trifle. I am leaving you five 
hundred pounds. It will buy you a jewel which you can hand 
on to the child there. I say 'leaving/ but in fact I have the 
money here by me. I shall give it to you. If you like to 
keep it by you in case any emergency should ever arise— none 
of us can be sure — ^you may. It is in Bank of England notes. 
I am going to make Godfrey an allowance at once. I wish I 
could save him the legacy duties. I must talk to Cope about 
it ; you remember old Cope ? He does my business still. He 
was always old Cope to me, yet he looks younger now than I 
do." 

" Godfrey will value the love/' Nesta said unsteadily. There 
was something about this interview with Aunt Sophia which 
made her feel as though she did not know whether to laugh or 
cry. "As for me, I do not really need the money, Aunt 
Sophia, my husband is very generous." 

" I remember his father, a very respectful man to his bet- 
ters," Miss Grantley snapped. "I'm glad he gives you good 
pin-money. Still — I can offer my great-niece a present, for all 
his generosity. As for Godfrey, it is indelicate to talk so much 
of love, Nesta — indelicate and sentimental. Did you know that 
Grice was dead ? She had a nice little fortune when she died. 
Feathered her nest at my expense. However, she left it all to 
me, so I needn't grumble. It is her five hundred pounds I am 
giving you. She was always fond of you, Nesta, even when 
you were an unattractive child. Fond of you, alter me, you 
know. ' My beloved mistress,' the will said. Why I never was 
mistress in my own house so long as Grice lived. She liked 
you better than Godfrey — an odd creature. That is partly my 
reason for giving you the money." 

" I think Lady Eugenia must care for Godfrey," Nesta be- 
gan. She did not quite see yet how Miss Grantley was going, 
to make him speak it he would not speak. To be sure Aunt 
Sophia's money would bring him appreciably nearer the daugh- 
ter of the Earl of Mount-Eden; for, while he was the obvious 
heir to his aunt's moderate estate, so long as the thing was 
unsettled, she might leave it all to charities for what any one 
could tell. 

" To be sure she cares," Miss Grantley interjected snappily. 
" How could she help it ? I'll tell you what, Nesta, I'm not 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909-] HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER 315 

going to have them waiting for a dead woman's shoes. I want 
to see Godfrey married while Tm alive. I shall make over 
everything to him. If there is a way of cheating the legacy 
duties, for Godfrey's sake. Til do it, although I've always been 
a loyal woman and willing to pay any tax but the income tax. 
I'll do it when I'm alive." 

She stopped and stared at Nesta, who murmured something 
about her generosity. 

** I never was generous/' Miss Grantly said grimly ; ** and 
you ought to know it. I can't take it with me where I'm go- 
ing. All the gold in the Bank of England wouldn't purchase 
you a light in that darkness, unless you carried it with you. 
I've read my Bible regularly, and I've given to the poor — in 
moderation. Perhaps I'll have a farthing rushlight to take me 
along. No, I'm not generous. .I'm only giving up what I 
can't use any longer. And I've a fancy to see Godfrey's wife 
before I die." 

She got up from her chair and walked stiffly to the tall, 
spindle-shanked escritoire which Nesta remembered all her 
young days. She unlocked it, and stooping over it touched a 
spring which made a little drawer spring out. From the drawer 
she took a roll of banknotes, which she smoothed out and held 
for Nesta to inspect. 

** Bank of England notes for five hundred pounds/' she said. 
'* Take them, child. They will carry their face value anywhere 
over the world. That is the best of being bom English. 
Everything that is English is good. It is the best country in 
the world. I don't suppose the country I am going to will be 
much better." 

She smiled grimly at her jest. Then she handed the notes 
to Nesta. 

** Grice's little fortune," she said. ** I always paid my ser- 
vants well. I didn't mean it when I said Grice feathered her 
nest She was always faithful to me. There — put them away 
somewhere safe. No, not in your pocket ; in the breast of your 
gown. I wouldn't like Grice's little fortune to be lost. You 
can have any ornament of mine you fancy. They are rather 
old-fashioned. Godfrey's wife being a woman of title, will need 
to have them reset I shall tell Godfrey — or his wife — that 
you are to have anything you fancy. From the furniture, too, 
you can pick a souvenir. Something of moderate value. This 



Digitized by 



Google 



3i6 HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER [June. 

escritoire for example. Stay, I shall send it to you to-morrow, 
with my pearl brooch, my second best one. And my necklace 
of seed pearls for the child.*' 

'*Why should you strip yourself, Aunt Sophia?'' Nesta 
said, the tears coming into her eyes. '^ Please give me nothing* 
I don't believe Godfrey will let you dispossess yourself either." 

''You were always sentimental, Nesta. I am not stripping 
myself. Something stronger than I am is doing that for me. 
What do |I want with pearl brooches and escritoires? The 
doctors say I might prolong my life if I would let them oper- 
ate. I don't want my life prolonged — that way. I want to go 
to my Maker as I came from Him." 

She placed her hand against her breast with a sudden fierce 
gesture and drew herself to her full height. 

''Listen, Nesta," she said "You are not to tell Godfrey. 
He would only fret me urging me to submit to the knife. I 
tell you I will not do it* I am seventy-six years of age, and 
I will carry back an unbacked body to my Creator." 

Poor, lonely, heroic old soul! For a second pain and suf- 
fering were laid bare in her quivering face and the anguish of 
her eyes. Then she was herself again. 

" Even from Godfrey," she said, " I would not permit in- 
terference in a matter of this kind." 

(to be continued.) 



Digitized by 



Google 




DE SMET IN THE OREGON COUNTRY. 

BY EDWIN V. O'HARA. 

|N the present article the writer intends to present 
a narrative of the missionary activities of Peter 
John De Smet, SJ., in the Oregon Country* A 
recital of the story of this modern '^ apostle of the 
nations'' can scarcely fail to be of interest at a 
time like the present, when the memories of early frontier life are 
growing dim and the very names of the pioneers seem to be 
borne to us from a distant heroic age. The ** Oregon Country '^ 
is selected as the theater of the events we are to recount, both 
because De Smet's most effective and permanent work was ac- 
complished here, and because of the historical and geographical 
unity of the territory lying between the Rocky Mountains and 
the Pacific Ocean, bounded on the south by the Mexican Pos- 
sessions and extending as far north as latitude fifty-four de- 
grees and forty minutes — a territory known in De Smet's day 
as the Oregon Country. 

The first tidings of the Catholic faith reached the Oregon 
Indians through the trappers of the various iur-trading com- 
panies who had learned their religion from the pioneer mission- 
aries of Quebec and . Montreal. Large numbers of Canadian 
voyageurs accompanied the expeditions of Lewis and Clark in 
1805 and of John Jacob Astor in 18 10. This latter expedition 
especially — which resulted in establishing at the mouth of the 
Columbia the first white settlement in Oregon, the present 
flourishing city of Astoria— was accompanied by a number of 
Catholic Canadians, who became the first settlers in the Willa- 
mette Valley. The piety of these voyageurs may be seen in 
the rather unusual fact that the early missionaries on their ar- 
rival found a church already erected. Another agency instru- 
mental in bringing the faith to the Far West was the Iroquois 
Indians. These Indians, among whose tribe the seeds of faith 
had been sown at an early date by Father Jogues, were in the 
employ of the Hudson's Bay Company at its various forts. 
The trappers and Iroquois told the tribes of Oregon of the re- 



Digitized by 



Google 



3i8 De Smet in the Oregon Country [June, 

Ugion of the Black-robes, taught them the simple prayers they 
remembered, inculcated the observance of Sunday, and aroused 
among them a great desire to receive the ministrations of the 
Black-robes. An Iroquois named Ignace became a veritable 
apostle to the Flatheads. Such was the effect of his teaching 
and example that the Flatheads, together with their neighbors, 
the Nez Percys, sent a deputation to St. Louis in 1831 to ask 
for priests. 

It was to St. Louis rather than to Montreal that the In* 
dian3 turned for assistance, for since the days of the great tra- 
velers, Lewis and Clark, the traders had renewed their relations 
annually with that city. The deputation consisted of four In- 
dians. They found Clark still living in St Louis. Two of the 
company took sick and died after receiving baptism and the 
last sacraments. The return of the remaining members of the 
depatatton is uncertain. They had repeated the Macedonian 
cry : '^ Come over and help us.'' The Catholic missionary forces 
were too weak to respond at once to the appeal. But the pres- 
ence of Indians in St. Louis from far distant Oregon on such 
a mission was the occasion of a movement with far-reaching 
results. The incident was given publicity in the Protestant re- 
ligious press, and aroused wonderful enthusiasm and set on foot 
perhaps the most remarkable missionary campaign in the history 
of this country ; a campaign which was fraught with important 
consequences for Oregon. The Presbyterians sent out Dr. Whit- 
man in 1834 and the Methodists followed in 1836 under the 
leadership of Jason and Daniel Lee. Within a few years the 
Methodist mission in Oregon was valued at a quarter of a 
million of dollars and became the dominating factor in Oregon 
politics. 

But to return to our Flatheads. In 1835 the Flathead chief 
Insula went to the Green River rendezvous to meet those whom 
he was informed were the Black-gowns. Much to his disap- 
pointment he met, not the priests, but Dr. Whitman and the 
Presbyterian minister, Mr. Parker. On reporting his ill- success 
it was determined that the old Iroquois Ignace and his two 
sons should go in search of missionaries. They met Bishop 
Rosati at St. Louis, but were unsuccessful in their quest. Noth- 
ing daunted, they renewed the attempt, and a deputation under 
young Ignace again reached St. Louis in 1839. It was on this 
occasion that De Smet comes into view for the first time. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] De Smet in the Oregon Country 319 

Young Ignace and his companions paused at Council Blu£fs to 
visit the priests at St. Joseph's mission, where Father De Smet 
was stationed. 

Meanwhile certain other events transpired that afifected the 
Oregon Indians, In 1833 the second Provincial Council of Bal- 
timore petitioned that the Indian missions.>f the United States 
be confided to the care of the Society of Jesus. In July of 
the following year the Holy See acceded to the request. Hence, 
when the deputation of Indians visited St. Louis and obtained 
from Bishop Rosati the promise of missionaries, it was to the 
Jesuit Fathers that the Bishop turned for volunteers. 

Father De Smet, deeply impressed by the visit of young 
Ignace, offered to devote himself to the Indian missions. The 
offer was gratefully accepted by his Superior and by the Bishop, 
and De Smet set out on his first trip to the Oregon Country 
late in March, 1840. Past Westport (now Kansas City), he 
journeyed along the Platte River, through herds of antelope 
and buffalo, across the country of the Pawnees and Cheyennes 
to the South Pass across Continental Divide. Here, on the 
25th of June, he passed from the waters tributary to the Mis* 
souri to those of the Colorado. ** On the 30th '' [of June], says 
Father De Smet, "I came to the rendezvous where a band of 
Flatheads, who had been notified of my coming, were already 
waiting for me. This happened on the Green River, a tribu- 
tary of the Colorado.'' On the following Sunday Father De 
Smet assembled the Indians and trappers for divine worship. 
De Smet was now in the land of the Shoshones or Snake 
Indians. Three hundred of their warriors came into camp 
at full gallop. De Smet was invited to a council of thirty of 
the principal chiefs. '' I explained to them,'' he writes, " the 
Christian doctrine in a compendious manner. They were all 
very attentive; they then deliberated among themselves for 
^ about half an hour and one of the chiefs, addressing me in the 

p name of the others, said : 'Black-gown, the words of thy mouth 

I have found their way to our hearts; they will never be for- 

^ gotten.' ... I advised them to select among themselves 

a wise and prudent man, who every morning and evening should 
i assemble them to offer to Almighty God their prayers and sup- 

'\' plications. • . . The meeting was held the very same even- 

i ing, and the great chief promulgated a law that for the future 

the one who would be guilty of theft or of other disorderly 



Digitized by 



Google 



320 DE Smet in the Oregon Country [June, 

acty should receive a public castigation/' This was the only 
occasion on which Father De Smet met the Snake Indians. 
His subsequent trips to Oregon were, with one exception, by 
a different route. 

After spending a week at the Green River rendezvous. Fa- 
ther De Smet and his Flathead guides, together with a dozen 
Canadians, started northward across the mountains which sepa- 
rate the headwaters of the Colorado from those of the Colum- 
bia. They crossed the historic Teton's Pass and came to the 
beautiful valley at the foot of the three Tetons, of which Father 
De Smet has left a striking description. In this valley they 
found the camp of the Flatheads and of their neighbors, the 
Fend d'Oreilles, numbering about i,6oo persons. De Smet de- 
scribes the affecting scene of his meeting with these children 
of the wilderness and relates how astonished he was at their 
fervor and regularity at religious exercises. **. • • On the 
first evening I gathered all the people about my lodge. . . • 
I said the evening prayers, and finally they sang together, in a 
harmony which surprised me very much, several songs of their 
own composition on the praise of God, This zeal for prayer 
and instruction (and I preached to them regularly four times a 
day) instead of declining increased up to the time of my depar- 
ture." 

After two months among the Flatheads, De Smet deter- 
mined to return to St. Louis for assistance. He appointed a 
chief to take his place, to preside over the devotions and to 
baptize the children. He was accompanied by thirty warriors, 
among whom was the famous chief, Insula, whose futile trip 
to the rendezvous on the Green River in 1835 we have al- 
ready mentioned. Father De Smet reached the St. Louis Uni- 
versity on the last day of the year 1840. His first missionary 
journey to the nations of the Oregon Country had been ac- 
complished and, like another Paul, he returned rehearsing all 
the things that God had done with him and bow he had opened 
a door of faith te the Nations. 

On the feast of the Assumption, 1841, Father De Smet had 
again penetrated the Oregon Country as far as Fort Hall en 
the Snake River. 

When Father De Smet met the Flatheads at Fort Hall on 
this occasion he was better prepared to minister to their needs 
than on bis former journey. He was accompanied by two 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] De Smet in the Oregon Country 321 

priests and three brothers. The priests are well known in the 
early annals of Oregon. They were Fathers Nicholas Point 
and Gregory Mengarini. We shall meet them again in the 
coarse of oar narrative. De Smet had been saccessful, too, in 
securing financial aid for his missions. The Bishops and clergy 
of the dioceses of Philadelphia and New Orleans had responded 
very generously to his appeal. On reaching the Bitter Root 
Valleyi the home of the Flathead tribe, De Smet was thus en- 
abled to lay the foundations of a permanent mission. He chose 
a location on the banks of the Bitter Root River, about twenty- 
eight miles above its mouth, between the site of old Fort Owen 
and the present town of Stevensville. 

While the work of establishing the mission was in progress, 
Father De Smet received a delegation from the Coeur d'AIenes 
nation. They had heard of his arrival among the Flatheads 
and came to request his services. " Father,'' said one of them 
to him, ''we are truly deserving of your pity. We wish to 
serve the Great Spirit, but we know not how. We want some 
one to teach us. For this reason we make application to you.'' 
Their wish was granted and the little tribe received the Chris- 
tian religion with the same zeal and devotion that the Flat- 
heads had displayed. The Pend d'Oreilles, too, a numerous 
tribe who dwelt in what is now northern Idaho, welcomed the 
missionaries, as also did the Nez Percys. Father De Smet had 
little hope of converting the Blackfeet. ''They are the only 
Indians," he writes, " of whose salvation we would have reason 
to despair if the ways of God were the same as those of men, 
for they are murderers, thieves, traitors, and all that is wicked.'' 
Father Point established a mission among them, but the Black- 
feet are pagans even to this day. 

In establishing the Rocky Mountain missions Father De 
Smet and his companions had constant recourse to the experience 
of the Jesuit missionaries among the Indians of Paraguay. He 
expressly states that he made a Vade Mecum of the Narrative 
of Muratori, the historian of the Paraguay missions. The field 
west of the Rocky Mountains suggested to him many similar- 
ities with that among the native races of South America. The 
only obstacle to conversion in the one case as in the other 
was the introduction of the vices of the whites. That alone 
stood in the way of the ultimate civilization of the natives. 
De Smet refers to his missions as riductions^ a name bor- 

VOU LXXXIX.»2I ^ T 

Digitized by VjOOQ 16 



322 De Smet in the Oregon Country [June, 

rowed from the South American system where it refers to the 
settlements which the missionaries induced their nomadic neo- 
phites to adopt. 

One of the problems that De Smet had to meet at the out- 
set was that of Indian marriages. He acted on the principle 
that there were no valid marriages among the savages. Con- 
sequently, in the case of married parties, immediately after 
Baptism, the Christian marriage ceremony was performed, the 
necessary instructions having been given. The success of the 
Catholic missionaries in dealing with this most difficult prob- 
lem was all the more striking in view of the complete failure 
which attended the efforts of the other missionaries in this regard. 

During the closing months of 1841 De Smet undertook a 
journey from the Bitter Root Valley to Fort Colville on the 
Columbia. On All Saints* Day he met two encampments of 
the Kalispel nation, who were to be a great consolation to the 
missionary. The chief of the first camp was the famous Cha- 
lax. Although they had never seen a priest before, they knew 
all the prayers De Smet had taught the Flatheads. This is a 
striking proof of the nature of the religious sentiment among 
the Oregon Indians of the interior. Their knowledge of these 
prayers is thus explained by De Smet: ''They had deputed 
an intelligent young man, who was gifted with a good memory, 
to meet me. Having learned the prayers and canticles and 
such points as were most essential for salvation, he repeated 
to the village all that he had heard and seen. It was, as you 
can easily imagine, a great consolation for me to see the sign 
of the cross and hear prayers addressed to the great God, and 
His praises sung in a desert of about three hundred miles ex* 
tent, where a Catholic priest had never been before.*' 

Returning to his mission in the Bitter Root Valley, in De- 
cember, 1 84 1, with the provisions and implements secured at 
Fort Colville, Father De Smet spent the winter among his 
Flathead neophites. In April of the following year he set out 
on his first visit to Fort Vancouver and the Willamette Valley, 
a journey of a thousand miles. In the course of his travels, 
on thisf occasion, he evangelized whole villages of Kootenais, 
Kalispels, Coeur d'Al^nes, Spokans, and Okanigans, establish- 
ing, in almost every case, the practice of morning and evening 
prayers in each village. He found the Coeur d'AI^ne camp at 
the outlet of the great lake which bears their name. The entire 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] De Smet in the Oregon Country 323 

camp turned out to welcome him. An extract from one of bis 
letters will show how eagerly they listened to his words: ''I 
spoke to them for two hours on salvation and the end of 
man's creation, and not one person stirred from his place dur- 
ing the whole time of instruction. As it was almost sunset, I 
recited the prayers I had translated into their language a few 
days before. ... At their own request I then continued 
instructing the chiefs and their people until the night was far 
advanced. About every half hour I paused, and then the pipes 
would pass round to refresh the listeners and give time for 
reflection.** Never did De Smet experience so much satisfac* 
tion among the Indians as on this occasion, and nowhere were 
his efforts crowned with greater and more permanent success. 
The Cceur d 'Alines have still the reputation of being the best 
and most industrious Indians in the Rocky Mountains.. 

The journey from Fort Colville to Fort Vancouver was 
marred by an unfortunate accident. At one of the Rapids of 
the Columbia the barge containing De Smet's effects capsized, 
and all the crew, save three, were drowned. Providentiallyj 
Father De Smet had gone ashore intending to walk along the 
bank while the bargemen, directed the boat through the rapids. 
After brief visits at Forts Okanigan and Walla Walla, he has- 
tened on to Vancouver, where he received a most affecting 
welcome from the pioneer missionaries of the Oregon Country, 
Blanchet and Demers. The latter has related how Blanchet and 
De Smet ran to meet each other, both prostrating themselves, 
each begging the other's blessing. It was a meeting fraught with 
important consequences for the Catholic Church in Oregon. 

In his Historical Sketches^ Archbishop Blanchet gives us a 
few details in addition to those mentioned in De Smet's LeU 
Urs, from which it appears that Father Demers met the Jesuit 
missionary at Fort Vancouver and conducted him to the resi- 
dence of the Vicar-General at St. Paul. De Smet returned to 
Vancouver with Father Demers, followed a few days later by 
Father Blanchet, " to deliberate on the interests of the great 
mission of the Pacific Coast." At the conference it was de- 
cided that Father Demers should proceed to open a mission in 
New Caledonia (now British Columbia), leaving the Vicar-Gen- 
eral at St. Paul, while De Smet should start for St. Louis and 
Belgium in quest of more workers and of material assistance 
for the missions of Oregon. Dr. McLoughlin, though not yet 



Digitized by 



Google 



J24 De Smet in the Oregon Country [June, 

a Catholic, strongly encouraged Father De Smet to make every 
effort to increase the number of Catholic missionaries. On 
June 3O9 1842, De Smet bade farewell to his new friends at 
Fort Vancouver and set out for the East to secure recruits and 
supplies for the Oregon missions. 

Twenty- five months elapsed before Father De Smet returned 
again to Fort Vancouver. After visiting many of the chief 
cities of Europe he set sail from Antwerp on the brig In^ 
fatigable early in January, 18441 accompanied by four Fathers 
and a lay brother of the Society, and six Sisters of Notre Dame 
de Namur. The InfatigabU rounded Cape Horn on the 20th 
of March, 1844, and came in sight of the Oregon coast on the 
28th of July. After a terrifying experience they crossed the 
Columbia bar in safety on the 31st of July, the feast of St 
Ignatius. Father De Smet frequently refers to the "divine 
pilotage'' which brought them unharmed through the shallow 
passage and the treacherous breakers. From Astoria De Smet 
set out for Fort Vancouver in a canoe, leaving his companions 
to follow when a favorable wind would permit. He was re- 
ceived with open arms by Dr. McLoughlin and by Father 
Demers, who was planning to leave shortly for Canada to se- 
cure sisters to open a school. From Father Demers he re- 
ceived the good news that the missionaries in the Rocky 
Mountains had received a strong reinforcement from St. Louis 
during his absence. The Vicar-General, Father Blanchet, was 
at St. Paul when informed of De Smet's arrival. He immedi- 
ately set out for Vancouver, bringing a number of his parish- 
ioners with him and traveling all night by canoe. 

On the eve of the feast of the Assumption the newly ar* 
rived recruits for the mission left Fort Vancouver for St. Paul. 
'^Our little squadron,'' says Father De Smet, '^ consisted of 
four canoes manned by the parishioners of Mr. Blanchet, and 
our own sloop. We sailed up the river and soon entered the 
Willamette. As night approached we moored our vessels and 
encamped upon the shore. [This must have been within the 
limits of the present city of Portland.] The morning's dawn 
found us on foot. It was the festival of the glorious Assump- 
tion of the Mother of God. Aided by the nuns, I erected a 
small altar. Mr. Blanchet offered the Holy Sacrifice, at which 
all communicated. . . . Finally, the 17th, about eleven 
o'clock, we came in sight of our dear mission of Willamette. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909] DE Smet in the Oregon Country 325 

• • . A cart was procured to conduct the nuns to their 
dwelling, which is about five miles from the river. In two 
hours we were all assembled in the chapel of Willamette, to 
adore and thank our Divine Savior by the solemn chanting of 
the Te Deum/' 

On arriving at St. Paul, De Smet's first care was to seek a 
convenient location for what was intended to be the base of 
missionary activities in Oregon. The Methodists offered to sell 
him their academy, which they had decided to close. Ten 
years had passed since Jason and Daniel Lee founded the 
Methodist mission in the Willamette Valley; a quarter of a 
million dollars had been expended in the enterprise, but as an 
Indian mission it was confessedly a complete failure. Hence 
it was decided, in 1844, to supptess it and sell all the property. 
Father De Smet, however, secured a more advantageous loca- 
tion, where he laid the foundations of the St. Francis Xavier 
mission on the Willamette. 

When winter came on, Father De Smet was again among 
his Indians in the mountains. He revisited the Sacred Heart 
mission, founded among the Coeur d'Al^nes by Father Point 
in 1842. Leaving the Pointed Hearts he set out for St. Mary's 
mission in Bitter Root Valley, but was twice foiled in the at- 
tempt by the heavy snows and swollen mountain torrents. He 
was thus compelled to pass Christmas, 1844, among the Kal- 
ispels. He gives us an interesting description of the manner 
in which the day was passed. He writes: ^'The great festival 
of Christmas, the day on which the little band (of 144 adults) 
was to be added to the number of the true children of God, 
will never be effaced from the memory of our good Indians. 

• . . A grand banquet, according to the Indian custom, fol- 
lowed the first Mass. The union, the contentment, the joy, 
and the charity which pervaded the whole assembly might well 
be compared to the agape of the primitive Christians.*' On the 
same Christmas morning the entire tribes of Flatheads and 
Coeur d' Alines received Holy Communion in a body at their 
respective missions. 

The Paschal time, 1845, Father De Smet spent among the 
Flatheads at St. Mary's mission in the Bitter Root. As the 
snow began to disappear with the coming of spring, Father 
De Smet set out for Vancouver and the mission of St. Francis 
Xavier on the Willamette. He went by canoe down the im- 
petuous Clark's River to Father Hoeken's mission of St^gna- j 

uigitized by VjOOQIC 



326 De Smet in the Oregon Country [June. 

tius among the Kalispels. After selectisg a site for a new es- 
tablishment of St. Ignatius, ** in the neighborhood of the cav- 
ern of New Manresa and its quarries, and a fall of water more 
than two hundred feet, presenting every advantage for the 
erection of mills/' he hastened to Walla Walla, where he em- 
barked in a small boat and descended the Columbia as far as 
Fort Vancouver. 

At Vancouver he found Father Nobili, who ministered dur« 
ing the absence of Father Demers to the Catholic employees 
of the Fort and to the neighboring Indians. Of his visit to 
the Willamette settlement, De Smet writes: ''Father Nobili 
accompanied me in a Chinook canoe up the beautiful river of 
Multomah, or Willamette, a distance of about sixty miles, as 
far as the village of Champoeg, three miles from our residence 
of St. Francis Xavier. On our arrival all the Fathers came to 
meet us, and great was our delight on being again reunited 
after a long winter season. The Italian Fathers had applied 
themselves chiefly to the study of languages. Father Ravalli, 
being skilled in medicine, rendered considerable services to the 
inhabitants of St. Paul's mission; Father Vercruysse, at the 
request of Right Reverend Bishop Blanchet, opened a mission 
«mong the Canadians who were distant from St. PauFs. • . • 
Father De Vos is the only one of our Fathers of Willamette 
who speaks English. He devotes his whole attention to the 
Americans, whose number already exceed 4,000. There are 
several Catholic families and our dissenting brethren seem 
well disposed.'' It was De Vos who received into the Church 
a year later, at Oregon City, one of the most distinguished 
of the Oregon pioneers, Chief Justice Peter Burnett, after- 
-wards first Governor of California. 

Father De Smet went overland from St. Paul to Walla 
Walla past the foot of Mt. Hood. The trail to the Dalles 
was strewed with whitened bones of oxen and horses, which 
appealed to our traveler as melancholy testimonies to the hard- 
ships which had been faced by the American immigrants dur- 
ing the three preceding years. He becomes enthusiastic about 
Hood, ''with its snowy crest towering majestically upward, 
and losing itself in the clouds." Leaving Fort Walla Walla, 
Father De Smet traversed the fertile lands of the Nez Percys 
and Cayuse Indians, the richest tribes in Oregon. It was 
among these Indians that Dr. Marcus Whitman had established 
the Presbyterian mission, and it was here that the savage and 

Jigitized by v^ ^^ '*^rS 



I909-] De Smet in the Oregon Country 327 

brutal massacre of Dr. and Mrs. Whitman, in 1847, made the 
name of the Cayuse Indians ever memorable in Oregon annals. 
Our missionary spent the feast of St. Ignatius, 1845, at Kettle 
Falls, in the vicinity of Fort Colville on the Columbia, where 
nearly a thousand savages of the Kalispel nation were engaged 
in salmon fishing. He had a little chapel of boughs constructed 
on an eminence in the midst of the Indian huts, and there he 
gave three instructions each day. The Indians attended faith- 
fully at his spiritual exercises, and he spent the 31st of July 
(St. Ignatius' Day) baptizing the savages. He recalls that it 
is just a year since he crossed the Columbia bar " as if borne 
on angels' wings,'' and reviews the work of the Catholic mis- 
sions in Oregon during that period with deep appreciation of 
the kindly Providence which gave the increase in the field 
which he had planted. 

An interesting incident early in August, 16451 brings Fa- 
ther De Smet's views of public affairs to our attention. The 
Oregon question was then the all-absorbing theme. While De 
Smet was ascending the Clark River he had an unexpected in- 
terview on this subject. As he was approaching the forest on 
the shore of Lake Pend d'Oreille, several horsemen issued from 
its depths, and the foremost among them saluted him by name. 
On nearer approach, Father De Smet recognized Peter Skeen 
Ogden, one of the leading representatives oi the Hudson's Bay 
Company. Ogden was accompanied by two English officers, 
Warre and Vavasseur, who had been sent to Oregon to inves- 
tigate the charge that Dr. McLoughlin was unfaithful to his 
Company and his country. Their report had been unfavorable 
to McLoughlin and was the direct cause of the rupture which 
occurred between McLoughlin and the Hudson's Bay Company. 
De Smet was alarmed by the information he gleaned from the 
travelers regarding the Oregon question. He writes: ''They 
were invested with orders from their government to take pos- 
session of Cape Disappointment, to hoist the English standard, 
and to erect a fortress for the purpose of securing the entrance 
of the river in case of war. In the Oregon question John Bull, 
without much talk, attains his end and secures the most impor- 
tant part of the country; whereas Uncle Sam loses himself in 
words, inveighs, and storms ! Many years have passed in 
debates and useless contention without one single practical 
effort to secure his real or pretended rights." 

Some writers have gathered from these expressions that 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



328 DE Smet in the Oregon Country [June, 

Father De Smet was hostile to the claims of our country and 
would have preferred to see the Oregon Country fall under 
British sovereignty. This view was given wide circulation by 
the Protestant missionaries. For example^ Dr. Whitman writes 
from WaiilatpUy under date of November 5, 1846: *\ . . 
The Jesuit Papists would have been in quiet possession of this 
the only spot in the Western horizon of America not before 
their own. ... It would have been but a small work for 
them and the friends of the English interests, which they had 
also fully avowedi to have routed us, and then the country might 
have slept in their hands forever '' (Transactions of the Oregon 
Pioneer Association for 1893, P^S^ ^oo). The truth is, of course, 
quite the contrary to these representations. What Father De 
Smet feared was that Oregon might be lost to the United 
States, at least temporarily, by indecision on the part of our 
government. 

In a letter to Senator Benton, written in 1849, ^^ Smet re- 
counts a conversation which he had with several British officers 
on the brig Modest$^ before Fort Vancouver, in 1846, in which 
his attitude towards the Oregon question is made clear. The 
party was discussing the possibility of the English taking pos- 
session, not merely of Oregon, but of California as well. Fa- 
ther De Smet ventured the opinion that such a conquest 
was a dream not easily realized, and went on to remark that 
should the English take possession of Oregon for the moment, 
it would be an easy matter for the Americans to cross the 
mountains and wrest the entire country from them almost 
without a blow. On hearing these sentiments, the captain 
asked De Smet somewhat warmly: '''Are you a Yankee?' 
'Not a born one. Captain,' was my reply, 'but I have the 
good luck of being a naturalized American for these many years 
past ; and in these matters all my good wishes are for the side 
of my adopted country."' 

Father De Smet pushed on from Lake Pend d'Oreille, 
through dense forests, to the Kootenai River, where he en- 
countered a branch of the Kutenai tribe, which he calls the 
Flat- bows. He found them well-disposed and already instructed 
in the principal mysteries of the Catholic faith by a Canadian 
employee of the Hudson's Bay Company. On the feast of the 
Assumption (c845)he celebrated Mass among them and erected 
a cross, at the foot of which the Indians renounced their prac- 
tices of jugglery and superstition. The Kutenai tribe furnished 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



1909.] De Smet in the Oregon Country 329 

another illustration of the marvelous dispositions for faith which 
Providence, had planted in the hearts of the Oregon Indians, 
They remain Catholics to this day. 

In June, 1846, De Smet was baclp again at Fort Colville, 
and was there joined by Father Nobili, who had just returned 
from a missionary journey to Fort St James^ the capital of 
New Caledonia, situated on Stuart Lake. The end of June 
saw Father De Smet at St.. Francis Xavier's mission on the 
Willamette. A few weeks later he was making his way up the 
Columbia in an Indian canoe with two blankets unfurled by 
way of sails. At Walla Walla he enjoyed the hospitality 
of Mr. McBeaUi the superintendent of the Fort. This gentle- 
man was a Catholic and when Bishop A. M. A. Blanchet came 
to take possession of the diocese of Walla Walla, in September, 
1847, ^^ rendered the Bishop valuable assistance. Taking fare- 
well of Mr. McBean, Father De Smet visited the Nez Perc^s^ 
Kalispels, and Coeur d' Alines, among whom were stationed 
Fathers Hoeken, Joset, and Point On the feast of the As- 
sumption he was again among the Flatheads in the Bitter Root 
Valley. St. Mary's mission had prospered both materially and 
spiritually. He found the little log church which had been 
erected five .years before, about to be replaced by a large and 
handsome structure. Another agreeable surprise awaited him. 
The mechanical skill of Father Ravalli had erected a flour mill 
and a sawmill. ''The flour mill,'' writes Father De Smet, 
" grinds ten or twelve bushels a day, and the sawmill furnishes 
an abundant supply of planks, posts, etc., for the public and 
private building of the nation settled here." 

On August 16, 1846, Father De Smet left St Mary's mission 
in the Bitter Root and reached the University of St. Louis on 
December 10. His missionary work in Oregon was at an end. 
His biographers, summing up this period of his career, write 
as follows : '' The results of his labors, from a missionary point 
of view, were highly successful. The whole Columbia Valley 
had been dotted with infant establishments, some of which had 
taken on the promise of permanent growth. He had, indeed, 
laid the foundation well for a spiritual empire throughout that 
region, and but for the approach of emigration his plans would 
have brought forth the full fruition that he expected. But most 
important of all, from a public point of view, was the fact that 
he had become a great power among the Indian tribes. All 
now knew him, many personally, the rci^t by reputation. He was 

L/igitized by VjOOQIC 



330 DE Smet in the Oregon Country [June, 

the one white man in whom they had implicit faith. The Gov- 
ernment was beginning to look to him for assistance. The Mor- 
mon, the Forty-niner, the Oregon emigrant, came to him for 
information and advice. His writings were already known on 
two continents and his name was a familiar one, at least in 
the religious world '' [Chittenden and Richardson. Vol. I., p. 57). 

Father De Smet paid two subsequent visits to the scenes of 
his missionary labors in Oregon. The first of these visits was 
occasioned by the Indian outbreak in 1858, known as the Ya- 
kima war. The savages, viewing with alarm the encroachments 
of the whites upon their lands, formed a league to repel the 
invaders. Even the peaceful Flatheads and Coeur d'Al^nes 
joined the coalition. The United States Government sent Gen- 
eral Harney, who had won distinction in several Indian wars, 
to take charge of the situation. At the personal request of 
General Harney, Father De Smet was selected to accompany 
the expedition in the capacity of chaplain* Their party reached 
-Vancouver late in October, 1858. The news of the cessation 
of hostilities and the submission of the Indians had already 
reached the Fort. But the Indians, though subdued, were still 
unfriendly, and there was constant danger of a fresh outbreak. 
The work of pacification was still to be effected. Upon this 
mission DeSmet left Vancouver, under orders of the command- 
ing general, to visit the mountain tribes some 8cx) miles distant 

He visited the Catholic soldiers at Fort Walla Walla and 
there met Father Congiato, superior of the missions, from whom 
he received favorable information concerning the dispositions 
of the tribes in the mountains. By the middle of April, 1859, 
Father De Smet had revisited practically all the tribes among 
which he had labored as a missionary. On April 16 he left 
the mission of St. Ignatius among the Pend d'Oreilles to re- 
turn to Fort Vancouver. He was accompanied, at his own re- 
quest, by the chiefs of the different mountain tribes, with the 
view of renewing the treaty of peace with the general and with 
the superintendent of Indian affairs. The successful issue of 
Father De Smet's mission is shown by a letter of General 
Harney dated Fort Vancouver, June i, 1859. He writes: "1 
have the honor to report, for the information of the general- 
in-chief, the arrival at this place of a deputation of Indian 
chiefs, on a visit suggested by myself through the kind offices 
of the Reverend Father De Smet, who has been with these 
tribes the past winter. • . . These chiefs have all declared 

L/igitized by VjOOQIC 



I909-] De Smet in the Oregon Country 331 

to me the friendly desires which now animate them towards 
our people. . • . Two of these chiefs — one of the upper 
Fend d'Oreilles and the other of the Flatheads — report that the 
proudest boast of their respective tribes^ is the fact that no 
white man's blood has ever been shed by any one of either 
nation* This statement is substantiated by Father De Smet 
• . • It gives me pleasure to commend to the generaUin- 
chief the able and efficient services the Reverend Father De 
Smet has rendered/' Having fulfilled his mission, De Smet 
secured his release from the post of chaplain and returned to 
St Louis, visiting a score of Indian tribes on the way. It is 
typical of him that he should have planned, despite his three 
score years, to cover the entire distance from Vancouver to St 
Louis on horseback — a project which he was regretfully com* 
pelled to abandon because of the unfitness of his horses for so 
long a journey. 

Once more, in 1863, De Smet traversed the Oregon Coun- 
try^ renewing his acquaintance with the various missions and 
enjoying the hospitality of the three pioneer bishops of the 
province, at Portland, Vancouver, and Victoria. 

De Smet's missionary labors in Oregon had come to a close 
before the arrival of Bishop A. M. A. Blanchet in the Pacific 
Northwest But Archbishop Blanchet and Bishop Demers were 
co-apostles with him in this new comer of the Lord's vineyard, 
and with him had borne the burden of the pioneer work. Now, 
however, the pioneer days were over, and De Smet, as he set 
sail from Portland on the 13th of October, 1863, could bear 
witness to the altered aspect of the country. But with all the 
signs of progress about him, there was one undeniable feature 
of the situation which brought sadness to his heart The Indian 
tribes for whom he had labored with such apostolic zeal, the 
children of the forest, whose wonderful dispositions for Christian 
faith and Christian virtue had been his consolation and his glory, 
were doomed. The seed of the Gospel, which he had sown, 
had taken root and sprung up and was blossoming forth with 
the promise of an abundant harvest when the blight came. The 
white man was in the land. The Indian envied his strength, 
imitated his vices, and fell before both. ''May heaven pre- 
serve them from the dangerous contact of the whitest'' was 
De Smet's last prayer for his neophites as he bade farewell to 
the Oregon Country. 



Digitized by 



Google 



IN THE DAY OF FATE. 

BY CHRISTIAN REID. 

[E was sitting on the end of a bench in the orange- 
shaded plaza, basking in the warm sunlight, his 
shoulders bent with the pathetic droop of ill- 
ness, his thin, long-fingered hands clasped to- 
gether on his knees, and his slouched hat drawn 
down low over his eyes. He might have been supposed to 
be asleep, as he thus sat motionless, with every muscle re- 
laxed, if he had not started perceptibly when the sound of 
voices speaking English suddenly fell on his ear. It was a 
very unusual sound in San Juanito, which was seldom honored 
by the visits of tourists, being only an ordinary little Mexican 
town, lying at the foot of the Sierra, which stretched like a 
mass of carven lapis- lazuli behind it. To-day, however, there 
had been a freight wreck on the railway, and the express from 
the northern border was detained for several hours at the 
station a mile or so distant across the sun-parched plain, from 
whence the town, with its adobe houses and tropical gardens 
clustering around its graceful church tower, made an idyllic 
picture, which tempted the adventurous among the passengers 
to explore it. But — 

<'We should have been satisfied with admiring it from the 
train,'' a woman's voice declared in a high key of disapproval. 
^'There's nothing whatever here to repay us for that long, 
dusty walk." 

'^ Oh, I don't agree with you," a softer, better modulated 
voice said — a voice which made the man at the end of the 
bench start again, this time violently, and glance furtively 
from under the rim of his down-drawn hat at the speaker, 
who with her companions had paused almost immediately in 
front of him. 

'' It's all adorably picturesque, I think," the tall, handsome 
girl went on, sweeping the scene — the fountain-set plaza, the 
old church with its Carmelite belfry, the arcaded public build- 
ings, the vistas of houses painted in soft distemper colors and 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] In the Day of Fate 333 

covered with brown tiles — with her glance. '' I hope I will get 
my camera in time to take some pictures before we have to 
go back to the train/' 

<< You'll probably have time to take as many pictures as 
there are points of view in the place/' a man's deeper tones 
assured her. '^ We'll be lucky if we get away in the course 
of the next two or three hours. At least that is what I 
gathered from the conductor's remarks." 

''I wish you had asked him what there was of interest 
here/' the first speaker observed. '^ The church ? Oh« yes, of 
course we can go and see the church; but all the churches 
are so much alike; and if there's anything else — Perhaps"— 
hopefully — ''we might find something to buy, or — er— to eat 
— dulces, you know." 

'' Or to drink — even pulque not declined, in case of the 
absence of beer/' the masculine voice chimed in. "While we 
are waiting for Laidlaw to bring your forgotten camera. Miss 
Sylvester, we might put in the time rather agreeably with 
some liquid refreshments. But the question is where to find 
them ? " 

The man at the end of the bench did not stir, but he was in- 
tensely, horribly conscious that three pairs of eyes were fastened 
on him, and that three minds were considering whether he 
might not be able to answer this question. He knew what 
was coming when he heard a feminine whisper: 

'' Perhaps he isn't asleep — perhaps he's drunk." 

''Just the right party, then, to tell us what we want to 
know," the jovial, masculine tones replied. " Anyhow, nobody 
who goes to sleep on a bench in the plaza can mind being 
waked. Hello — senor I — sorry to disturb you, but can you tell 
us — Oh, hang it 1 doesn't anybody know enough Spanish to 
ask him where we can get a drink ? " 

" I haven't the faintest idea what is the Spanish for a 
drink/' Margaret Sylvester began with a laugh ; but paused 
abruptly, as the man addressed rose to his feet For an in- 
stant — barely an instant — he lifted his hat in acknowledgment of 
the presence of ladies, showing a sharpened, ghastly face be- 
neath, but replaced it quickly as he pointed across the plaza. 

"At the cantina over there you will find what you want," 
he said ; and then, turning quickly, stumbled away, for walking 
became difficult when even the bright sunshine grew black 



Digitized by 



Google 



334 IN THE DAY OF FATE [June, 

around him^ and he found himself hoping agonizedly that he 
might not drop until he had gained a place of shelter, a refuge 
from the eyes that had met his in one lightning-like glance, in 
which he read amazement, incredulity, struggling recognition. 

''Shell think it was only a chance resemblance— shell be 
sure she was mistaken,'' he muttered to himself as he concen* 
trated all his will on maintaining an upright position and 
walking — ^yes, walking away, instead of being carried, as would 
certainly result if this blackness increased before he gained 
the friendly shelter of the arcade, where he might halt, lean 
against a pillar, and take breath. 

He gained it while the group left behind looked anxiously 
after him, and then glanced at each other. 

''Apparently,'' Mr. Harkeson-Smythe remarked, "it wasn't 
a sleeping but a dying man that I roused. Poor beggar 1 — he 
seems pretty far gonel I hardly thought he'd make it over 
to the portales." 

"And he spoke English, too," Mrs. Warren added in an 
injured tone. "I suppose he heard me say that perhaps he 
was drunk ; but how could I know ? I thought he was of course 
one of the--er— :^^^^y/x, don't you call them ? " 

" He is probably an American," Miss Sylvester said, " and 
he looks very ill; so I am going after him to apologize, and 
— and see if I cannot do something for him." 

" Oh, Margaret ! " Mrs. Warren remonstrated, " I — I really 
don't think I would." 

Margaret gave her a significant glance. " I daresay you 
wouldn't," she replied, "so you and Mr. Harkeson-Smythe 
can get something to drink while I go." 

She moved away, her graceful head lifted, her clear eyes 
very bright, and followed the path of the man who had stumbled 
across the plaza to the shade of the portales. Perhaps he 
glanced back, as the darkness cleared away from his vision, 
and saw her coming, and perhaps the sight lent him fresh 
strength. At all events, when she reached the arcade he was 
gone. She looked around, and meeting the eyes of a Mexican 
woman seated by a pile of beans, her lips formed a stammer- 
ing but sufficiently direct inquiry. 

"The seiior — Americano? Where has he gone?" 

" A su casa, senorita!^ the woman replied, divining the ques- 
tion, though she did not understand the words. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] IN THE DAY OF FATE 335 

''Ah, to his house/' Miss Sylvester quickly translated. 

" And where — endonde estd la casa t " 

< The woman lifted her hand and pointed to a house distant 

^ a few paces down a street opening from the plaza. The door 

was closed. It had shut quickly behind a shaking, flying form 

as Margaret Sylvester crossed the plaza to the portales. Per- 

I haps she divined this, but she went on, down the sunlit street 

to the one-story dwellingi and knocked at the door. 

There was no answer. Again she knocked, and again there 
was no answer ; but it seemed to her that she heard something 
like the panting of a trapped animal within. This was possibly 
fancy — ^possibly what she heard was the loud beating of her 
own heart — but she knocked yet again, and again there was no 
reply. Then she put her hand on the latch. If it were fastened 
she could go no farther. But the latch yielded to her touch, 
the door opened under her hand, and she found herself entering 
a room which, after the blinding glare of sunlight outside, seemed 
of an almost cave-like gloom and coolness. Drawing in her 
breath sharply, she looked around the meager, poverty-stricken 
interior, saw the flat, hard bed, the plain pine table with its 
few books and writing materials, and the chair in which the 
figure of the man she had followed sat, or rather lay, with head 
thrown back, in an attitude of spent exhaustion. She moved 
across the floor and stood, her hand on her heart, immediately 
before him. He opened his eyes— eyes wonderfully large and 
bright in the white, sunken face — and looked up at her. Then 
she advanced a step. 

"John I "she cried with a thrilling and exultant note in her 
voice. " John Graham, it is you I You are — alive I John '* — 
she made another step nearer — '' why have you let the world — 
why have you let me think for two years that you were dead ? " 

He could not resist the imperative challenge of her tone. 
It forced him to rise to his feet and meet her gaze fully. But 
he did not offer to touch her hand ; and they stood looking at 
each other as spirit and flesh might look across the gulf which 
divided tl\em. 

** Margaret/' he said, ** you must know why I have allowed 
the world to believe that I am dead. It seemed — the shortest 
way. And it was only anticipating the truth. You see that I 
shall soon be dead/' 

'' But I see. that you are not dead yet," she replied, with 



Digitized by 



Google 



336 IN THE Day of Fate [Jone, 

the exultant note still in her voice. ''You are alive, and the 
first thing I have to tell you |is that I never for one instant 
believed that you had died in the manner it was said you had/' 

"You— didn't believe it?" 

''No; I never believed that John Graham, the John Gra- 
ham whom I — knew, had been coward enough to kill himself 
to escape anything." 

A vivid light leaped into the eyes of the John Graham whom 
she — knew. And then died out as quickly. 

" Yet/' he reminded her, " men have often killed themselves 
to escape disgrace." 

"Yes"; she returned, "men capable of doing disgraceful 
things have often proved incapable of facing the consequences 
of their acts. But I am sure that if you had ever done a dis- 
graceful thing, you would not have escaped the consequences 
by the coward's road of suicide." 

" Margaret 1 " — the man grasped tightly the edge of the 
table by which he stood — " you say, if I had done a disgrace- 
ful thing. Surely you know — " 

Her brilliant glance met and held his. 

" Shall I repeat my words ? " she asked. " The whole mat- 
ter is a mystery to me — no deeper mystery now, when I find 
you hiding here, than when you disappeared two years ago; 
but through all the mystery I have held fast to my belief that 
you would never 'shirk the consequences of any act of yours, 
and therefore it has been to me unthinkable that to escape dis- 
grace you had either absconded or committed suicide." 

He put his hand to his eyes for a moment, as if overcome 
by the greatness of her faith — or, perhaps, by the weight of 
his own unworthiness. Then, lowering it, he looked at her 
again with a gaze as direct as it was clear and sad. 

" But «^zef," he urged, " now you must believe it, when you 
find me here — hiding, as you have said." 

She threw back her head, smiling at him superbly. 

"Now that I see you again, I believe it less than evert" 
she declared. "And by my faith in you, a faith that has 
never faltered, I demand that you tell me why you have done 
this thing." 

He made a gesture of protest, while he sank back, as if 
overcome by weakness, into the chair from which he had risen. 
His head dropped on his breast, his eyelids fell. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] I^ THE DAY OF FATE 337 

'' Surely it is plain/' he said. '' Would a man give up his 
life, his ambitionsi his friends — above all, would he give up the 
privilege of sometimes at least seeing you — to go away secretly 
to a country where certain offenses are not extraditable, unless 
he had been guilty of one of those offenses?" 

'^It would hardly seem so/' she admitted; "yet what I 
have said holds good. Tell me why you have done this ? ** 

** Have you not heard ? '' 

'' I have heard many things/' she answered. '' I know it is 
said that you used money which did not belong to you, and 
that when you were confronted with exposure you gave up your 
fortune to replace what you had taken, and then — disappeared/' 

He nodded gravely. "That statement seems to cover the 
case," he told her, "and therefore what can you say to me, 
except good-bye?" 

Her eyes suddenly blazed on him. 

" I can say just this," she replied, " that I refuse to believe 
one word of that statement, unless you tell me on your honor 
— on your honor, John Graham! — that you truly did those 
things." 

"On my honor I" he repeated as if to himself. "She asks 
me to tell her — on my honor!" 

"Yes"; the inflexible voice said. "I demand it— on your 
honor!" 

" Oh, but this is absurd ! " he remonstrated. " A man who 
has fallen into the class in which I am, is not supposed to have 
any honor left." 

Then Margaret Sylvester laughed, and as the clear music 
rang out, the man started and let his glance pass swiftly around 
the walls of the room, which since he first entered it bad heard 
many sighs, but never before such a laugh. 

" How you betray yourself ! " she cried. " And how fool- 
ish — oh, John Graham, how foolish you are, to think you can 
deceive me! Haven't I known you since we were children; 
and haven't I always known that honor was to you an idol, a 
fetich, to which you were willing to sacrifice yourself and every- 
body else? Do you think I am a fool to believe that you 
could change sufficiently even to consider the doing of a dis- 
honorable act ? I might believe it possible of myself, or of 
anybody else that I ever knew; but never, never of you/' 

Again the man closed his eyes. Perhaps he would have 

VOL. LXXXIX.— 23 



Digitized by 



Google 



33* IN THE DAY OF FATE [June, 

been glad if death had come to him in the unlooked* for sweet- 
ness of that moment. '' Margaret 1 '' he whispered gratefully, 
-'Oh, Margaret!" 

''And so/' the thrilling voice went on, "I repeat that there 
is no good in trying to deceive me, I am sure that what has 
brought you here — ^the clue to this mystery, the key to this 
riddle — is to be found in some exaggerated idea of honor, to 
which you have sacrificed yourself, as I often prophesied that 
you would." 

John Graham regarded the speaker with a glance, in which 
something like a flicker of amusement, brought from the depths 
bf past memories, shone. " Yes," he said, " I remember. You 
have prophesied it — often." 

" But although I prophesied that you would some day sac- 
rifice yourself," Margaret continued, " I did not expect you to 
sacrifice me." 

He looked at her now with mingled amazement and appre- 
hension. " How have I sacrificed you ? " he asked. 

Her proud, bright gaze met his unwaveringly. "Do you 
think," she said, " although you never acknowledged it in words, 
that I didn't know that you loved me? And did it never oc- 
cur to you that I might — love you ? " 

" Margaret 1 " he cried in a voice in which rapture and 
agony blent And then in a lower tone : " My God, why have 
I not died ? " 

The passionate bitterness of the last words made the girl 
fling herself on her knees beside him. 

"You have not died," she said, seizing his thin, cold hand 
in the warm, strong clasp of hers, " because God meant to give 
me the happiness of seeing you again, and ending the anguish 
of doubt and anxiety about your fate which I have endured. 
Oh, how could you" — her voice rose in keen reproach — "how 
could you have been so forgetful of me, so careless of my 
sufferings ? For you surely knew what I felt for you, and 
what I must suffer 1" 

"No"; he answered quickly. "If I had known, if I had 
for an instant dreamed of it, I could never have done what I 
did. There was a time when I fancied that you might care 
for me; but then Laidlaw came, with his boundless assurance 
and his great wealth, and seemed to — absorb your attention." 

"And you never guessed that he absorbed my attention 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] ^^ THE DAY OF FATE 339 

because I wanted to give a lesson to another man who angered 
^ me by his stupidity ? '' she asked in a tone which seemed still 

scornful of that stupidity. ''It was the woman's old, foolish 
* device; but if it deceived you, it did not mislead him — at least 

*' not for long. Before you went away I had refused him/' 

• - Graham stared at her incredulously. '' You refused him be- 

2 fore I went away I " he repeated. " Are you sure of that ? " 

-' ''I am sure/' she replied. ''I not only refused him, but I 

told him the truth — told him that I had never cared for any 
:j one but you." 

t The veins stood out like whipcords on the man's forehead 

ii now as he leaned toward her. " You told him thatf " he queried 

again hoarsely. 
\t ''Yes"; she answered, " for I felt that I owed him candor. 

\c And he was very generous. I can never forget his sympathy 

when you disappeared. He gave me hope at first; and then 
j; later — later — " 

jf " Tried to induce you to surrender hope — yes. I see I *' 

( From his tone it was to be inferred that John Graham saw a 

'l great deal. "And now he is with you, is he not? I heard 

his name mentioned by one of your companions. Are you 

going to marry him?" 

, The question was harsh in its abruptness, but she answered 

it quietly. 

" If that had been asked me an hour ago, I should have 
^ said: 'Yes.' It did not seem to matter — then. But now every- 

thing is changed. You are alive I " She looked at him joy- 
ously. "Is it not strange that my heart always told me you 
were alive, even while he tried to convince me that you must 
be dead ? " 

"He tried to convince you of that?" 
"He has argued often that if you were living, and if you 
loved me as I believed, that nothing could keep you away from 
me. 

" Nothing could keep me away from you 1 " 
He appeared to repeat the words mechanically, while his 
glance turned toward a letter lying on the table beside him. 
Involuntarily he extended his hand, as if to push it out of sight; 
but Margaret's quick eye followed the motion and passed to 
the letter. The next instant she was on her feet, and it was 
in her hand. 



Digitized by 



Google 



340 IN THE DAY OF FATE [June, 

'' Laidlaw*s writing I '' she exclaimed. 

There was a moment's intense silence as she stood staring 
at it, then her flashing gaze turned again on Graham. '' What 
does this mean ? '' she demanded imperatively. '' You will tell 
me the truth now, or I will make him tell it. He writes to 
you — he knows that you are alive I '' 

" Yes '' ; the man answered quietly. '' He knows — he has al- 
ways known. I would not have told you, but the matter has been 
taken out of my hands. It seems that for us three this is the 
day of fate.'' 

"The day of fate for me, indeed," she echoed bitterly, 
''since in it I learn that you not only tossed me out of your 
life without a word, or apparently a thought, but that yon left 
me to be deceived by a traitor like thisl" She faced him 
passionately. "What is the meaning of it?" she cried. "If 
you cared nothing for me — that is plain enough now-^had you 
no care for yourself, for your own broken and ruined life? 
What power has this man to make you serve him by dishon- 
orable silence — you, Jehn Graham, whom I thought a very 
paladin of honor? What bribe has he given you? It is at 
least" — her brilliant, scornful glance swept over the bare pov* 
erty around — " not money." 

" No, it is not," John Graham said calmly. He rose as he 
spoke, supporting his weakness by leaning against the table. 
" I understand now/' he went on, " why death has delayed so 
long in coming to me, and why fate has brought you here to- 
day. It was too much that I should go out of the world and 
leave you to one whom you are right in calling a traitor — one 
who has betrayed me as well as you." 

She looked at the letter. " How can that be ? " she asked. 

"A little while ago," he said, "you spoke of what you 
have heard — what every one has heard — of me. Do you not 
know that Laidlaw is president of the company whose funds 
were — misappropriated ? " 

"I suppose I knew it," she answered indiiSferently, "but 
what then ? Are you going to tell me that you did — what is 
the euphemism ? — misappropriate those funds ? It is possible 
that I might believe it now." 

" No " ; he replied again, " I am not going to tell you that. 
It is time for the truth to be spoken between us. I did not 
take the money, but — my brother did." 



Digitized by 



Google 



19 



1909.] IN THE DA Y OF FATE 34I 

"Your brother?" 

"My half-brother^ Lucien Kent. He is, you know, much 
younger than I am, and has been more like a son than a 
brother to me ever since our mother gave him into my care 
on her death-bed. He was only a little chap then, but so 
winning, so brilliant, always so levable. Ah, well I " — it was a 
short, quick sigh — "those were the qualities which were his 
undoing. Every one spoiled him, and I no doubt worst of all. 

She nodded. "Yes, you worst of all"; she said, "for you 
allowed him to be a burden on your life and a drain upon 
your fortune. I have always known that. And so it was 
Lucien who has ended by ruining you, who had done every- 
thing for him I " 

"It was my fault," Graham said. "I should have held a 
sterner hand over him. But I never imagined how far dis- 
sipation and extravagance had carried him until he came, in an 
agony of shame and fear, and told me that he had taken thous- 
ands, many thousands, of the money of the company in which 
I, as one of its officials, had given him a position of trust." 

His voice fell, he moved across the floor, looked for an in* 
stant out of the iron-barred window on the sunny street, and 
then returned to where Margaret still stood, erect, silent, waiting. 

" Surely you see how it was 1 " he said in a tone of ap* 
peal. " I had to save him — the boy at the beginning of his 
life, whom my indulgence had allowed to go astray. Besides, 
putting all feeling for him aside, I made myself responsible 
for his acts when I placed him in the position which rendered 
his defalcations possible." 

"Ah, the ideal of honor!" she murmured. "I knew it 
would demand its sacrifice." 

" There could not be even a question of that," he declared 
firmly. "I went at once to Laidlaw, told him of Lucien's 
confession, offered all I had to replace in part what had been 
taken, and assured him that the remainder would in a short 
time be covered by my life insurance. All I asked was that 
Lucien should not be prosecuted, nor his guilt be made pub- 
lic. And then — " 

"Well, then—" 

" He made difficulties, talked in a high tone of morality, of 
setting a bad example. ' Such a crime cannot possibly be con- 
doned,' he said. 'We cannot refrain from prosecuting if the 



Digitized by 



Google 



342 IN THE DAY OF PATE [June, 

embezzler remains within reach of the law. If you wish to 
save your brother from the penitentiary, you must send him 
to Mexico — unless you are willing to go in his place* " 

Once more the speaker paused, and once more there was 
tense silence for a minute in the strange, bare chamber. Then 
he went on: 

'' It was some time before I grasped what he meant, before 
I understood that he was oiSfering me the opportunity to save 
Lucien from disgrace and degradation by taking the burden of 
his misdoing on myself. When I finally understood, I had no 
idea why he oiSfered this — I was so hopeless with regard to 
you that it never occurred to me that he wanted to remove a 
rival from his path — but it flashed upon me that it was a step 
which would cut many knots, end many difficulties.'' 

Margaret Sylvester put her hand to her throat. *^ Without," 
she cried in a half-strangled voice, '^ a single thought of me t ** 

*' On the contrary, with more thought of you than of any 
other human being,'' Graham told her gently ; '' for it was in 
thinking of you that the road of sacrifice opened as a way of 
escape from intolerable pain. You see, I not only believed 
that you would marry Laidlaw, but there was every reason 
why I was debarred from any hope of even trying to win your 
love. What had I to offer you? I was not only a ruined 
man, whom disgrace touched nearly, but, more than that, I was 
a man whose death-warrant had been read. Do you under- 
stand now ? I was ready to efface myself, since Laidlaw de- 
manded that as the price of giving Lucien another chance in 
life, because, in the first place, I did not believe that yon cared 
for me ; and, in the second place, I had the assurance of more 
than one physician that I would be dead within two years. 
So I went away — " 

'' And pretended to be already dead 1 " 

''No; that was an accident with which I had nothing to 
do. A passenger on the ship on which I sailed was lost over- 
board soon after we left port. No one knew him, so a rumor 
went abroad that it was I. Laidlaw was accountable for the 
rumor, but it mattered little to me — indeed, I was glad of the 
peace and freedom which it secured to me. I have lived here 
very quietly, unmolested even by curiosity — a dead man yet 
alive, for whom everything has ended, except just to sit in 
the sunshine and watch death coming a step nearer every day." 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909*] I^ ^^^ ^^y OF FATE 343 

Perfect quietness, the quietness of one for whom indeed all 
effort is over, and the end of the journey in plain sight, was 
in his tone, his face, his manner; but all the passion of human 
love and human anger was in Margaret Sylvester's voice when 
she suddenly flung herself upon him. 

''John," she cried, ''I cannot^-I will not endure itl We 
have been tricked and deceived, you and I; but if you will 
take courage, we can yet have our life together. Trust me to 
deal with that traitor as he deserves, if you will come back to 
the world. John — ^for my sake — you will come?" 

He smiled exquisitely as he put his arm around her. 

"Dear heart," he answered, ''I had such a strange sense 
of lightness when I waked this morning that I said to myself : 
'Surely the end is near at hand — surely I shall die before 
night comes again.' For I could not guess that what the day 
was bringing me was — you. It is a wonderful happiness to be 
given as a nunc dimittis, not only this glimpse of your face, 
but the knowledge of your love, the assurance of your faith. 
Ah, never mind the traitor — give him no further thought! 
After all, what has he done for us but to help us to learn, 
through pain and separation, that love is of the soul, not of 
the body, and that even death — death itself — will be power- 
less to separate — " 

He put his handkerchief to his lips, there was a moment's 
struggle, and then the red tide gushed forth, while with her 
strong, young arms the girl laid him back in his chair and 
knelt beside him. 

A little later a persistent knocking at the door was fol- 
lowed by an impatient hand pushing it open, and as a flood 
of sunlight rushed into the room, a man's figure stood in the 
brightness. 

" Excuse me," he said, '' but I wish to inquire if Miss Syl- 
vester is here?" 

Out of the gloom a clear voice answered him: 

'' Yes, Miss Sylvester is here, Mr. Laidlaw ; and so is John 
Graham — dead." 



Digitized by 



Google 



THE HOLY SPIRIT AND THE CHRISTIAN LIFE. 

BY THOMAS J. GERRARD. 

|HE Holy Father has recently condemned the opin- 
ion according to which '^ the dogmas of faith are 
to be held only according to their practical 
sense, that is, as preceptive norms of conduct, 
but not as norms of believing." And indeed it 
would be hard to conceive a more soul> withering doctrine than 
the one here reprobated. The slightest reflection ought to show 
one that belief in an objective fact must be established before 
man can enter into those serious moral relations which are im- 
plications of that fact. Only crass ignorance of psychology 
could hinder one from seeing that the spiritual value of a truth 
depends on its fact-value, and that if the fact- value were al- 
lowed to go, the spiritual value must go also. Some writers, 
however, in their worthy endeavor to insist upon this principle, 
have rushed to the other extreme, suggesting that there may 
be some dogmas of faith which have no practical value at all. 
The dogma of the Filioque — that the Holy Spirit proceeds 
from both the Father and the Son, and not from the Father 
alone — is triumphantly held up as an example. How, it is 
asked, can the double procession of the Holy Spirit teach us 
anything about our conduct here below? My distinguished 
friend. Dr. Adrian Fortescue, in his fascinating book. The Or^ 
thodox Eastern Churchy formulates this view with a boldness 
and vigor which to me are amazing. ** When looking back," he 
says, ''on this long and bitter controversy, one realizes most 
of all that the question, one way or the other, has never yet 
affected the piety or the practical faith of any human being. 
We all adore one Gad in three Persons, we all worship the 
Holy Ghost, the Lord and Lifegiver, Who with the Father 
and Son is adored and glorified. Has any one ever, when pray- 
ing to the great Spirit of God, stopped to consider and to be 
influenced by so high and dark a mystery as whether he pro- 
ceeds from both Persons or only from God the Father?"* 

♦ Th€ OrtJfiox EasUrm Church. By Adrian Fortescue. P. 372. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Holy Spirit and the Christian Life 345 

The theme of the following paper, then, will be to show first, 
that the dogma was revealed with a practical end in view; 
secondly, that it is eminently fitted to minister to piety ; thirdly, 
that as a matter of fact it has been taught by eminent writers 
in the Church with a view of influencing the practical faith of 
the multitude; and fourthly, that its negation has led to bar- 
renness in spiritual life. 

The revelation of Jesus Christ is not a flinging open of the 
gates of heaven so that we may see all Truth as it is. The 
revelation which has been made to the human race in its pres- 
ent condition, is a dispensation of that one great mystery which 
has been hidden from eternity in God. It is an economy 
analogous to that of a householder. Only a portion of possi- 
ble revelation has been vouchsafed to us. And even that part 
which has been given can be seen only as through a glass in 
a dark manner. God willed to reveal His secrets by degrees, 
a little through our first parents, a little through the patri- 
archs, a little through the prophets, and finally the full measure 
of all that was needful for the divine plan through Jesus Christ. 
Christ Jesus came into the world to save sinners. The Catholic 
Church was established for this and for no other end, the sal- 
vation of souls. Any action which did not minister to this 
end would be outside the scope both of the Incarnation and of 
the Church. The whole of Christ's revelation, therefore, was 
designed to save sinners. The various mysteries of that reve- 
lation were not ^independent of each other, but rather so or- 
ganically connected as to make up a mystical cosmos, a com- 
plete spirit world. And as each part is made for the whole, 
so each part must have its proper function in doing its share 
of the work of the whole. St. Paul, indeed, explicitly declares 
this purposiveness of the various parts of revelation when he 
says: ''To me, the least of all the saints, is given this grace, 
to preach among the Gentiles the unsearchable riches of Christ, 
and to enlighten all men, that they may see what is the dis- 
pensation of the mystery which hath been hidden from eternity 
in God, Who created all things: that the manifold wisdom of 
God may be made known to the principalities and powers in 
heavenly places through the Church, according to the eternal 
purpose which He made, in Christ Jesus our Lord." * If, there- 
fore, the whole of revealed truth was communicated with a di- 

* Eph. iii. 8-zi. 



Digitized by 



Google 



346 THE HOLY SPIRIT AND THE CHRISTIAN LIFE [June, 

vine purpose; if that purpose was the salvation of souls; if 
that truth was revealed according to a divine economyi so much, 
and no more and no less being needful; then it must be said 
that the Filioque was revealed with some practical end in view. 
For the lower life man may live by bread alone; but for the 
higher life he must live by every word that proceeds from the 
mouth of God. 

The special aptitude of this truth to minister to devotion 
and sa to forward salvation may be seen when one realizes that 
the Trinity is the central truth of the Christian revelation, and 
that an apprehension of the double procession of the Holy 
Spirit — of the procession of the Ho]y Spirit from both the Fa- 
ther and the Son as from one principle— is necessary for the 
due apprehension of the Trinity. The direct purpose of the 
revelation of the Trinity was to let man know whence he came 
and wither he is wending. By the natural revelation of reason 
man could have learnt about the One God. But only by the 
supernatural revelation of Christ could he know of that Triune 
God who was the archetype of love. The fact-value of this 
revelation is that there are three Persons in one God; the 
spiritual value is that we are to look upon that Triuaity as the 
consummate perfection of love, the source and origin of all 
created love, the ideal and end of all that love between God 
and His creatures, made possible through Christ, and accom- 
plished through the gifts of grace and glory. Without the 
double procession the apprehension of this ideal is utterly im- 
possible, for without this element it is no ideal at all, but only 
a ludicrous caricature. 

The first precaution, however, to be taken, in order to see 
the connection between this mystery and practical life, is to 
place prominently before our minds the fact that we can only 
appprehend the truth by means of analogies. No man hath 
seen God at any time, and no man hath seen the double pro- 
cession of the Holy Spirit The analogies may be more or less 
intellectual, more or less symbolical. But only through anal- 
ogies of some kind can we put ourselves into intelligent rela- 
tionship with the Trinity. The analogies may be what are called 
''pure'' ones, pertaining to God rather than to creatures, or 
they may be ''mixed/' pertaining to creatures rather than to 
God. I may conceive of the Trinity as a Divine Being con- 
sisting of one nature, two processions, three persons, four re- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The holy Spirit and the Christian Life 347 

lations, and five notions; or I may conceive of the Trinity as 
a picture in which God the Father is represented as an old man 
in whose embrace is Christ, and between the two the Holy Spirit 
in the form of a dove.* Both analogies are lawful, both are 
approved by the Church. But according to my temperament, 
education, and occupation will I be influenced by the more 
intellectual or more symbolical representation. The peasant 
must not be expected to think of God in the thought- forms of 
the theological professor, and the theological professor may be 
excused if, when saying his prayers, he dispenses with the 
thought- forms of the peasant. 

So in the matter of the procession of the Holy Spirit, it does 
not follow, because a man does not use the analogies adopted by 
the Ecumenical Councils of Lyons II. and of Florence, that 
therefore he does not use other analogies to express the same 
thing. The analogies used in definition by those great coun- 
cils were but translations from the inspired and popular anal* 
ogies of Holy Writ. And, indeed, it is to the inspired language 
of the Scriptures that we must look, rather than to the theo- 
logical language of the councils, if we are to find the analogies 
through which the faithful at large put themselves into rela- 
tionship with the eternal truth thereby expressed. The mys- 
tery is so profound and so difficult to express that even the 
doctors of the councils had need to have recourse to symbolism. 
Even the term "procession," used by the Greeks, was hardly 
considered strong enough by the Latin theologians, who em- 
phasized it by the term " Spiration,'' in the sense of animal 
breathing. 

Having insisted on the essentially analogical character of all 
representatives of this truth, whether theological or devotional, 
we may now go on to see the peculiar aptitude of the revela- 
tion as a means to salvation. It sets before us the archetype 
of perfect love, the fount of created love, the goal of created 
love. The inward mutual life of the Trinity ought not to be 
to us a mere notion so difficult of explanation that we ought 
to leave it severely alone. The mystery of the Trinity is one 
into which we may search and never tire of searching; only 
we must prepare ourselves by taking care not to displease the 

*". . . quae Deum Patrem continet in forma hominis senis, in cajus sina sit Christus 
et inter utmmque Spiritus Sanctus in forma columbae." Bes edict XIV., c. S^Uicitudint, 
z Oct., 1745. 



Digitized by 



Google 



348 THE HOLY Spirit AND the Christian Life [June, 

Trinity. Our religion is the direct antithesis of the Buddhistic 
religion. Our religion is life in its highest form and is intended 
to lead us to that perfect life where our activity attains its 
highest possible degree. Now, by grace, we participate in the 
divine life to a certain extent; then, by glory, we shall par- 
ticipate in the divine life to our utmost capacity. The revel- 
ation of the Trinity is a partial unveiling of the inner fecun- 
dity of that Divine Life, to share in which we are now striving. 
As the Buddhist seeks for annihilation in Nirvana, so we seek 
for our full satiety in sharing the rich fecundity brought about 
through the mutual communication of life between the Persons 
of the Blessed Trinity. 

As the life of God is so superabundantly rich and full, for 
He is Life itself , His fruitfulness is infinitely richer than the 
fruitfulness of any being outside Himself. This infinite outpour- 
ing of life can only be thought of as communicating itself to 
infinite Persons. And as the highest forms of life that we can 
conceive are knowledge and love, that inner wealth of Divine Life 
must be conceived as the perfect knowledge of absolute Truth 
and intensest love of absolute Good. This perfect knowledge 
and love will be brought about by the Divine Intellect and 
Will. The result and term of such knowledge and love must 
be those productions which faith reveals to us, the Son and the 
Holy Spirit. Holy Scripture tells us plainly that the Second 
Person is '' the Word." He is the begotten Wisdom of the 
Father. And if the production of the Second Person is that 
of the Divine Intellect, the production of the Third Person must 
be that of the Divine Will. Will is the faculty of love, and 
all through [Holy Scripture love is appropriated to the Holy 
Ghost. The Son is the Image of the Father. The Father, 
looking upon the Son, sees as in a mirror His own radiating 
splendor, and, enraptured at the sight, pours forth His torren- 
tial love of the supremely Fair. The Son, looking upon His 
Father, is likewise enraptured at the sight, and pours forth His 
torrential love of the supremely Good. The two loves being 
mutual are united, and proceed as one subsistent Love, the 
Holy Ghost, the Spirit of Love. When God has an adequate 
object for His infinite love He must give His whole Self, the 
whole infinitude of His substance and energy. And so the 
product of His giving must be a divine, infinite Person. 

An extraordinary surrender of self in a human being, an 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909-] THE HOLY Spirit AND THE Christian life 349 

unusual effort at commanicating one's inward feelings to an- 
other, is commonly represented by a sigh. A full outbreath- 
ing is expressive of giving one's whole life and soul to another. 
This analogy of the sigh or outbreathing is used to represent 
that mutual communication of love between the Father and the 
Son, which results in the Person of the Holy Spirit. The 
Holy Spirit is the infinite aspiration by which the fecundity 
of Divine Love is manifested. Thus« since the Holy Spirit is 
the means by which the Father and Son love Each Other, and 
since He is the expression and the result of Their mutual love. 
He is said to be Their bond of love. The lover gives himself 
to be possessed by the loved one and at the same time pos- 
sesses himself of the loved one. This is their agreement and 
their pledge. It is sealed with a kiss and an embrace. There- 
fore do the Fathers of the Church delight to speak of the dou- 
ble procession of the Holy Spirit as showing the Holy Spirit 
to be the '' pledge/' the '' kiss," and the '' embrace " of the 
Father and the Son. 

A human love, too, is recognized as a gift. The lovers 
give themselves to each other and in token thereof exchaoge 
presents. They may be united in spirit, but since they are 
built of body and spirit, they must needs have tangible things 
to foster the union of spirit. The double procession of the 
Holy Spirit of God reveals to us the infinitely perfect Self- 
giving. God could not satisfy His intrinsic need of giving 
Himself if He had only creatures on whom He could bestow 
Himself. His infinite yearning to pour forth His wealth of love 
could only be satiated by the presence of an infinite Person as 
the object of that love. Here, in one important respect, our 
analogy of *' gift " fails to represent its archetype in the God- 
head. With us a gift presupposes a receiver. In God the 
pouring out of Love produces both the Gift and the Receiver. 
When the Holy Ghost proceeds from the Father and the Son 
as Their one Love and as by one principle, there is revealed 
to mankind the infinite delight and happiness of the Godhead. 
Man knows in his human way the meaning of a sigh, a pledge, 
a kiss, an embrace, a gift ; then, by the aid of these analogies, 
he rises to a belief in their corresponding realities in the God- 
head. 

The application of human analogies to God, is, however, 
only fruitful when their due limitations are acknowledged. Only 



Digitized by 



Google 



350 THE HOL Y Spirit and the Christian Life [June, 

by stripping them of their imperfections and accentuating their 
positive value can we use them to put ourselves into effective 
relationship with the eternal realities behind them. Thus the 
analogy of ^' spiration/' the outbreathing consequent upon a 
violent emotion of the heart, is a most realistic figure of the 
effort to communicate one's vivid feelings of love to another. 
Its chief limitation lies in the fact that such an expression of 
emotion, although it may foster love in another, yet does not 
effect it Now the outbreathing of Love from the Father 
and the Son is actually and infinitely effective. It is produc- 
tive of the personal Spirit of Love. It is not as if the Father 
in loving the Son gave life to the Son, nor yet as if the Son 
in loving the Father, gave life to the Father. Their out- 
pouring of love proceeds from an absolute unity of life; and 
if that united life must have an adequate object for its love, 
it must be by the production of a third Person to receive the 
love. 

The defect by which the analogy of ." spiration ^* fails to 
express the personal nature of the effect produced, is made 
good by the analogy of Amor. Love is essentially the act of 
a person, and as a tendency or movement is distinctly marked 
off from that tendency or movement known in the lower orders 
of creation as appetite. As love is the bond of family life, so 
is the Holy Spirit the uncreated bond of love between the 
Father and the Son in the Blessed Trinity. Through the double 
outpouring of the love of the Father and the Son, the Holy 
Spirit constitutes with Them a substantial unity. The subsist- 
ent love, therefore, since it is the means by which the Father 
and the Son love Each Other, must be intelligent love, must 
be the love given to and reciprocated by a person. 

The analogy of Amor is further enriched by the analogy of 
''dove.'' Jesus at His baptism "saw the Spirit of God de- 
scending as a dove, and coming upon Him." Everywhere in 
Holy Scripture and in the liturgy of the Church the dove is 
the sign of innocence and love. So, when applied to the 
Holy Spirit, it symbolizes His place as the love*bond in the 
Trinity. The Divine Dove rises from the bosom of the Father 
and the Son, disturbed by their sigh of mutual satisfaction. 
The outbreathing from their locked embrace takes on a third 
Personality. Poised on outstretched wings the Spirit of Love 
overshadows Them with His presence, pervades and unites Their 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909- ] THE HOL V SPIRIT AND THE CHRISTIAN LIFE 3$ I 

inward life, brings to perfection the inner fecundity of Their 
vitality, lives as the eternal fruit of the happiness and the 
holiness of Their love. 

The devotional value of the double procession will now be 
evident in many ways. First, it gives to this life of ours a 
rich meaning. We understand in a general way that our end 
is to serve, praise, and love God and thus to save our souls. 
But when by these wonderful analogies we can learn so much 
of the sight that is in store for us at the other end of this 
valley of shadows, then what an interest and energy does it 
give to all our Godward efforts I When one realizes in some 
faint way what must be the torrents of delight in the Blessed 
Trinity wrought by that mutual love of the Father and the 
Son, which issues in the Personality of the Holy Spirit, then how 
flimsy and transitory must appear any unlawful creature-love 
which may hinder the progress of our homeward journey! 
When one comes to apprehend how the three Divine Persons 
are so infinitely content and happy with Each Other's company, 
and this realized only through the common action of the Father 
and the Son producing the Holy Ghost by Their love, then 
how one begins to realize something of the loving condescen- 
sion of the Blessed Trinity I The Blessed Trinity loves crea- 
tures merely for the good of the creatures. Any love which 
is returned to the Trinity adds nothing to the Trinity's happi- 
ness, for that is infinitely satisfied by the double procession of 
the Holy Spirit Whatever love, then, a creature gives back to 
God, is solely and entirely for the increase of the joy of the 
creature. Indeed, the very analogies by which the eternal 
procession is made known to us are used to express also that 
procession in time — foretold by Christ in the words ''Unless I 
go the Paraclete will not come to you " — by which the Holy 
Spirit operates in the created world. The Holy Ghost is that 
feminine ruack, the life-bearing Spirit who brooded over the 
face of the primeval deeps and brought forth all things out 
of nothing, separating land from sea, and light from darkness, 
and breathing into all things the breath of life. He symbolizes 
Himself in the birth of Eve, who was taken from the side of 
Adam, taken as a gift from Adam as to her body, actually 
vivified by the Holy Spirit as to her soul, and thus made the 
mother of all the living. 

The type is reflected again in the Church. The Church is 



Digitized by 



Google 



352 THE HOLY Spirit and the Christian Life [June, 

born from the side of Christ as He hangs on the cross. The 
Precious Blood is the means by which the Holy Spirit pours 
His life into the Church, which is the virginal Spouse of Christ. 
The eternal love, which proceeded from the Father and the 
Son forming and expressing the Holy Spirit, is now illustrated 
by a temporal procession in which the Holy Spirit is breathed 
out from the Heart of Christ and sent to refresh the hearts of 
men. The Dove swoops down from the Heart of God. It 
brings every best and perfect gift. It enters the human soul 
as the pledge of highest love. It is apprehended by the hu- 
man mind only through dark symbols, but It is received into 
the human heart by direct action. The action which we call 
grace, together with the corresponding action which we call co- 
operation, is the actual and most intimate ^'embrace'' between 
Creator and creature, it is the ''kiss" of God and man. 

The next point is to show that the dogma has not only 
been revealed and is wonderfully adapted to the end of foster- 
ing the spiritual life, but that it has actually been thus ex- 
pounded by eminent spiritual writers. The first book I take 
down is Bishop Bellord's volume of meditations. There, in the 
meditation on the procession of the Holy Ghost, the bishop 
shows the intrinsic connection between the eternal and the tem- 
poral mission. ''The Love in God," he says, "which produces 
the Holy Ghost is a universal love of all that is good, so that 
it includes in itself God's love for His creatures. For the 
model and type of all goodness is some perfection existing in 
God; and therefore all creatures are present to the mind of 
God from all eternity, and are seen by Him with the internal 
act of intelligence of Himself that produces the Son. Corre- 
sponding to this is the act of the Divine Will, which loves all 
that is in the intellect of God, and therefore all that will be 
represented in creatures. This explains the infinite, the neces- 
sary, and yet the unexpected love which God manifests for all 
mankind in spite of their demerits. At their worst they still 
bear some trace of their high origin which they cannot efface. 
God not only loves all men and all things, but He loves them 
therefore in the Holy Ghost. You should love the Holy Ghost 
as the source of all the good gifts of God in the work of 
creation." * Again : " It is the special peculiarity of the Holy 
Ghost that He is the bond of union between the Father and 

* AfeditatioiU on Christian Do^ma, Vol. I., pp. 96-zoi. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Holy Spirit and the Christian Life 353 

Son, Their harmony, Their peace, Their love. This is the case 
inasmuch as the Father and Son become one principle in the 
production of the Holy Ghost; They have one and the same 
relation towards Him; and He has one single relationship to- 
wards Them. This peculiarity does not belong, for instance, to 
the Father. He is not the bond of union between the Son and 
the Holy Ghost, because He stands in diiSferent relations to- 
wards Them ; viz. : in the relation of generation towards the 
Son, and of spiration towards the Holy Ghost. In another way 
also the Holy Spirit is the bond of union, as being the per- 
sonified propension, or inclination of the Father towards the 
Son, and of the Son towards the Father. He is the love of 
Each for the Other, and so binds the Blessed Trinity into a 
special union of Persons over and above the unity of Their 
essence and nature. It is the peculiarity of love to unite dif- 
ferent objects ; and the Holy Ghost, as being eternal, uncreated, 
infinite Love, is the accomplishment of the most wonderful of 
unions. Beseech this Spirit of love to be the bond of union 
between you and the Godhead, and between you and all your 
brethren." Once more: '' The production of the Holy Ghost is 
the great glory of the Son with the Father, as the generation 
of the Son is the great glory of the Father. The propension 
of the will towards supreme good is the completion of our 
activity as spiritual beings. So love is the accomplishment of 
the law; so love covers a multitude of sins.'* 

My second reference is to Father Faber. He did not live 
to finish his treatise on the Holy Ghost, but from a posthu- 
mous sketch* we may gather something of his thoughts. 
Speaking of the double procession of the Holy Spirit, he says : 
''We are going to dare to mount up into the eternal life of 
God, to see what we may be able to see regarding the Holy 
Ghost. . . . Our inquiry must itself be an act of worship, 
and its end be more holiness and fresh love. . . . Are we 
willing to hazard such an enterprise ? Let us see. The effects 
upon the soul of investigating any portion of the mystery of 
the Holy Trinity — The unworldliness which the inquiry gives, 
(a) because the images and ideas are all unearthly ; (b) because 
we know the intense and transcendental truth of it all ; (c) be- 
cause it helps towards either self-oblivion or self-contempt. 
His procession is not from the Divine essence viewed as apart 

* Notts on Doctrinal and SpirUual Subjects. Vol. !•» pp. 55-63. 
VOL. LZXXIX.^23 ^ , 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



354 THE HOL Y SPIRIT AND THE CHRISTIAN LIFE [June, 

from the Two Persons, but from Two Persons as subsisting. 
He proceeds from the Two Persons, as one principle. He pro- 
ceeds by the way of the will, as the Son by the way of the 
understanding: hence the procession is not generation. To 
use a human word, the method is by respiration — and therefore 
is: (a) from the interior; (b) from the ardor of love; (c) per- 
petually, by the, so to call it, identical reciprocity of the love 
of the Father and the Son; refreshing as it were the inward 
heat — the necessity in God of this refreshment, so to speak. 
The love of us and of all creatures, entered into the love by 
which He proceeded, not necessarily^ but as a matter of fact, 
. . . He is the bond or chain or kiss of the Father and the 
Son. . . . He is the term of the interior productions and 
necessary acts in God. Note, then, that the fullness of God and 
the repose of God are not in knowledge but in love ; the Holy 
Ghost is the uncreated sabbath of the life of God. His pro* 
cession is itself the endless everlasting, divinely musical, un- 
imaginable jubilation of the Holy Trinity, within Itself, and 
also in all creations lying in its external omnipresence. Such 
is the Holy Ghost, all beautiful, all holy in His unimaginable 
procession, and Who is condescending at this moment to be 
wrapping us all round with His eternal love, longing to lead 
us willing captives to the shores of His jubilant eternal sea.'' 

A third example is taken from the next book at hand, St. 
Francis de Sales : * '* The eternal Father seeing the infinite 
goodness and beauty of His own essence, so perfectly, essen- 
tially, and substantially expressed in His Son, and the Son see- 
ing reciprocally that His same goodness and beauty is origi- 
nally in His Father as in its source and fountain, ahl can it 
possibly be that this Divine Father and His Son should not 
mutually love One Another with an infinite love, since Their 
will by which They love, and Their goodness for which They 
love are infinite in Each of Them. • . . The Father breathes 
this love and so does the Son; but because the Father only 
breathes this love by means of the same will and for the same 
goodness which is equally and singular in Him and His Son: 
the Son again only breathes this spiration of love for this same 
goodness and by this same will — therefore this spiration of love 
is but one spiration, or one only spirit breathed out by two 
breathers. And because the Father and the Son Who breathe, 

* Trtatist pn the LovetfG§dt pp. X59-z6z. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Holy Spirit and the Christian Life 355 

have an infinite essence and will by which They breathe, and 
because the goodness lor which They breathe Is infinite, it is 
impossible Their breathing should not be infinite; and foras- 
much as it cannot be infinite without being God, therefore this 
Spirit breathed from the Father and the Son is true God. 
• • . But, O God I if human friendship be so agreeably love* 
ly, and spread so delicious an odor on them that contemplate 
it, what shall it be, my well-beloved Theotimus, to behold the 
sacred exercise of mutual love between the eternal Father 
and the Son. St. Gregory Nazianzen recounts that the in- 
comparable love which existed between him and St. Basil the 
Great was famous all through Greece, and Tertullian testifies, 
that the pagans admired the more than brotherly love which 
reigned among the primitive Christians. Oh I with what cele- 
bi^tion and solemnity, with what praises and benedictions, 
should be kept, with what admirations should be honored and 
loved, the eternal and sovereign friendship of the Father and 
the Son I What is there to be loved and desired if friendship 
is not? And if friendship is to be loved and desired what 
friendship can be so in comparison with that infinite friendship 
which is between the Father and the Son, and which is one 
same most sole God with Them ? Our heart, Theotimus, will 
sink lost in love, through admiration of the beauty and sweet- 
ness of the love, that .this eternal Father and this incompre- 
hensible Son practise divinely and eternally.'' 

Now, if belief in this dogma ministers so effectually to the 
life of piety and devotion, if the religion whose whole creed 
stands or falls together with this article of faith is known to 
the world by the distinguishing mark of holiness, it would seem 
natural to expect that the religion which denied the dogma 
and whose creed consisted chiefly in the denial should be sing- 
ularly deficient in spiritual life and manifestly wanting in the 
mark of holiness. And this is precisely what we find in the 
case of the Orthodox Eastern Church. I call upon the one great 
authority. Dr. Fortescue, to bear witness. '^ But the Byzantine 
Calendar," he tells us, *' contains some very astonishing names. 
It is well known that even far into the Middle Ages there was 
no regular process of canonization. Our present law, by which 
canonization takes place in Rome after a formal trial, was made 
by Urban VIII. in 1634. In earlier ages a sort of popular 



Digitized by 



Google 



356 THE HOL V SPIRIT AND THE CHRISTIAN LIFE [June, 

consent controlled by the bishop, who admitted the saint's name 
to his local litany or martyrology, was enough. There are 
numberless instances of a person being honored in one place 
but not in another. It is, therefore, quite natural that the 
Byzantine Church should have her own saints. She prayed 
first of all to those who belong to all Christendom: St. John 
the Baptist, the Apostles, St. Stephen, and so on ; she also ad- 
mitted to her Calendar some of the greatest Roman saints: St 
Laurence, St. Gregory the Great, St. Martin, etc., just as we 
pray to St. Basil, St. John Chrysostom, St. John Damascene^ 
And then she had her own local saints. It is these who as- 
tonish us. Never did the kingdom of heaven suffer violence 
as at Constantinople. Almost every emperor who did not per- 
secute the Church (and many who did), almost every patriarch 
who was not a heretic (and some who were), becomes a saint* 
St. Constantine (May 21st) was in his life perhaps hardly a 
model to be followed ; but then he was baptized on his death- 
bed, and baptism removes all stain of sin and guilt of punish- 
ment; St. Theodosius I. (January 17th) was at any rate a 
great man; St. Marcian (February 17th) had a very holy wife ; 
St. Justinian (November 15th) deserves the credit of two im- 
mortal works, the Codex and the Church of the Holy Wisdom ; 
but what can one say for St. Theodosius II. (July 29th); St. 
Leo I., the Emperor (January *20th) ; St Theodora, the public 
dancing woman who became an Empress, and was always a 
Monophysite ;(November I5tb); St Justinian IL (July 15th); 
St. Constantine IV. (September 3d)? 

''An even easier road to heaven is open to patriarchs, as 
long as they do not quarrel with Cassar. St. Anatolius (458, 
his feast is on July 3d,) we have heard of at Chalcedon; he 
had been a Monophysite and Dioscur's legate at court, but he 
was a poet who wrote some of the earliest Greek Stichera. 
St John IV., the Faster (599), deserves the gratitude of his 
successors for having left them the proud, if ill-omened, title of 
CEcumenical Patriarch. But not only he, every. Patriarch of 
Constantinople, from Epiphanius (535) to Thomas I. (610), is a 
saint, except only Antoninus I. It seems invidious to leave 
him out; but then he was a Monophysite, deposed by Pope 
Agapitus in 536. From 669 to 712 again every patriarch is 
canonized with five exceptions, Sergius, Pyrrhus, Paul, and 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909*] THE HOLY SPIRIT AND THE CHRISTIAN LIFE 35 7 

Peter, the four Monothelites condemned by the sixth general 
council (680), and John VI. , the accomplice of the usurper 
Philip Bardesanes (7ii-7i3)."» 

There have, of course, been even martyrs for the cause 
of Eastern Orthodoxy, just as there have been martyrs for 
the causes of Protestantism and Mohammedanism. But they 
pale into insignificance compared with the illustrious mar- 
tyrs for Catholic Truths The fact that their ideal is bad to 
begin with, and that their experts in sanctity make such a sad 
picture, must imply that the realization of their ideal and the 
average example of piety will not be such as to indicate a 
divine origin. Thus then Dr. Fortescue, after telling of their 
numberless sacramentals and other external signs of piety, 
sums up the morals consequent upon such a faith. ''Mean* 
while,'' he says, " the great popular feasts^ most of which have 
come down from pagan days — the Carnival, the feast of Spring 
in May, the Brumalia in November, etc. — are the occasion of 
every sort of license; magic flourishes and strolling magicians 
make fortunes by curing diseases, finding riches, and making 
women beautiful. The Court continually becomes a hotbed of 
unnameable vice. Byzantine society during all the Middle 
Ages, from Constantine (330) till the city fell (i453)» was by 
far the richest, most splendid, and most comfortable in Europe. 
It was an old society, long established, and, at any rate com- 
paratively, secure. These circumstances generally make for 
luxury, and then for vice. But it was not wholly bad.^'f The 
life of the monks is described as " quite simple, poor, and edi- 
fying,*'} but nothing very extraordinary. The religious life 
for them means " only one thing, to flee the world. It is that 
of the fathers of the desert One would describe them as be- 
ing all contemplative, except that they never contemplate. 
That, too, is a Latin innovation. They say enormous quan- 
tities of vocal prayers, sing endless psalms, fast incredibly; 
and that is all.'' The great center of religious life is the Holy 
Mountain^ Athos. But even there "the international quarrels 
that rend all the Orthodox Church flourish exceedingly. . • . 
Here, too, Greek, Bulgar, Vlack, and Serv hate and perse- 
cute each other. . . . And so on the Holy Mountain, too, 

* Thi Orthodox Eastern Church, pp. 103-Z04. 
t ibid,, p. Z20. \ Ibid,^ pp. 354 et seq. 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



358 THE HOL y SPIRIT AND THE CHRISTIAN LIFE [June, 

the traveler hears chiefly one endless wail of the Orthodox 
against each other/' 

We must admit at once that the doctrine of the double 
procession of the Holy Spirit does not find a prominent place 
explicitly in the average Sunday homily of the parochial clergy 
of the Catholic Church. There are ample reasons for this. 
First, the Church observes a sense of proportion in keeping 
the mystery in its proper place. One must not expect, there- 
fore, to find it relatively so prominent in Catholic life as the 
denial of it is prominent in Orthodox life. Secondly, one 
must attend to the implicit but nevertheless effectual way in 
which it is preached in the multitudinous sermons on the tem- 
poral mission of the Holy Ghost. Thirdly, one may justly 
regret that the doctrine does not find a more explicit treat- 
ment in the pulpit, at least when the feasts of Pentecost and 
Trinity come round. Perhaps it is that the difficulty of the 
subject — it is the deepest and most sublime mystery of our 
faith — inclines the preacher to the more general text : '' O the 
depth of the riches of the wisdom and of the knowledge of 
God I How incomprehensible are His judgments, and how 
unsearchable His ways!'' 

The Council of Trent anticipated this difficulty and made 
provision for it in its famous Catechism. There it directs '' that 
what is handed down in the Creed concerning the Third Per- 
son, that is the Holy Ghost, be also explained. In the expo- 
sition of this matter, pastors will employ all study and dili* 
gence; for in a Christian man, ignorance or error is not more 
excusable on this, than on the preceding articles." Then, after 
indicating the special fruits derived from a distinct knowledge 
of this article of the faith, the Catechism goes on to insist 
particularly on the [double procession. '' It must also be ac- 
curately explained to the faithful, that the Holy Ghost is God, 
so as that we must confess Him to be the ^Third Person dis- 
tinct in the divine nature and produced by Their will. • . « 
With regard to what follows: 'Who proceedeth from the Fa- 
ther and the Son,' the faithful are to be taught that the Holy 
Ghost proceeds, by eternal procession, from the Father and 
the Son as from one principle. . . . The pastor must also 
teach that there are certain admirable effects, and certain most 
ample gifts of the Holy Ghost, which are said to originate and 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Holy Spirit and the Christian Life 359 

emanate from Him, as from a perennial fountain of goodness* 
For, although the extrinsic works of the most holy Trinity are 
common to the Three Persons, yet, many of them are attributed 
especially to the Holy Ghost, to give us to understand that 
they proceed from the boundless love of God towards us: for 
as the Holy Ghost proceeds from the divine will, inflamed as 
it were with love, we can comprehend that these effects, which 
fire referred particularly to the Holy Ghost, arise from the ex- 
treme love of God towards us/'* 

If it be asked, then, where is the connection between the 
dogma of the double procession of the Holy Ghost and the 
practical faith of Catholic Christianity, the answer is as follows: 
First, it is an essential element in the constitution of the arche- 
type of love which offers to the faithful an Ideal for which they 
can live and for which they can die. Secondly, that Ideal has 
been the inspiration of those experts in the art of charity, who 
leaven the whole mass of the faithful, and who are the perennial 
witness of the divine origin of the Church. Thirdly, the dogma 
appeals directly to every faithful soul, in so far as it tells of the 
origin and nature of Him with Whose unction every human fac- 
ulty is anointed, strengthened, and adjusted to a life which is 
eternal, the one life begun here in grace and consummated 
hereafter in glory. 

* CaUckism •fUU C$uncil of Trent, Part I. , Chapter iz. 



Digitized by 



Google 



CONVENT LIFE IN MODERN FICTION. 

BY VIRGINIA M. CRAWFORD. 

manilestation of Catholic faith — with the excep«i 
tioQ perhaps of the Society of Jesus — has sur- 
vived such persistent denunciation from Protest- 
ant writers as convent life. To use a homely 
simile the cloister has ever been as a red rag to 
a bull to a certain class of mind. No charge against monks 
and nuns has been too monstrous, no interpretation too fantas- 
tic for their eager credulity. The simplest events occurring 
within convent walls have been invested with a sinister intent^ 
while the supernatural motive has been flouted or deliberately 
ignored. Books and pamphlets written from this standpoint 
have been scattered over the United States and England by 
hundreds of thousands, and cannot fail to have affected public 
opinion. I do not, however, propose to recall here the grotesque 
travesties of the religious life presented in the pages of authors 
such as Mr. Joseph Hocking, whose methods of falsification 
have been repeatedly exposed by Mr. J. Britten in The Month. 
We are all familiar with the anti-Catholic calumnies of certain 
much-read though mediocre novelists. It is a pleasanter task 
to turn from these to some of our acknowledged masters of 
fiction, to authors of to-day and earlier days whose literary 
repute cannot be gainsaid, and see how the same theme emerges 
from their hands. And if we find that their interpretation is 
a very different one, their estimation a far higher one, I think 
we may claim that the weight of literary testimony is on our 
side, even though the honors of a widespread circulation may 
possibly lie with our opponents. 

Perhaps the most obvious point of contrast when we come 
to compare the methods of these opposing tendencies of fiction 
-—the tendency to extol and the tendency to depreciate the 
cloister — is to be found in the fact that while the eulogists 
know their subject more or less intimately, the habitual weapon 
of the calumniator is ignorance. Men attack conventual life who 
know nothing not only of its first principles, but nothing even 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Convent Life in Modern Fiction 361 

of its daily rule, its most approved customs. They concoct 
an elaborate caricature, filling in the details at the suggestion 
of prejudice and malice, with the express object of dragging it 
through the mud. The ideals of the religious life are totally 
at variance with the materialistic conceptions of the '^ man in 
the street/' and he is not wholly to blame when he fails to dis- 
cern the mystical significance of observances that are new and 
strange to him. Even worldly-minded Catholics possess, as a 
rule, an instinctive appreciation of the beauty of the religious 
life to which any one brought up amid the rationalizing ten- 
dencies of modern Protestantism can rarely attain. Cardinal 
Manning was always anxious to bring prospective converts 
in touch with some convent or other, knowing the revelation 
it would be to them. ''You will find there,'' he used to say, 
** a life of which you can have no conception." Thus, while 
our indignation is justifiably poured out against writers who 
deliberately distort the truth and who make no effort to 
understand that which they have set themselves to denounce, 
we are, perhaps, at times unreasonably impatient of those who 
merely reproduce with their pens the tradition of prejudice in 
which they have been reared. 

Such writers are not always as far from the truth as might 
be supposed. In point of fact, some of the most eloquent 
testimonies to the value of the contemplative life have come, 
not from devout Catholics, not from authors writing with a 
view to edification, but apparently have been wrung, almost 
in spite of themselves, from men who, in their normal moods, 
are far from subscribing to all the teachings of the Cath- 
olic Church. Circumstances have brought them unexpect- 
edly face to face with the spiritual fruits of a life of prayer 
and renunciation; they have penetrated in imagination there 
where men of duller parts would have remained unobservant, 
and their artistic sense has compelled them to testify to the 
truth and beauty of what has been revealed to them. The most 
notable instance of this in recent years was the conversion of 
J. K. Huysmans. Every reader of En Route will remember the 
unwillingness of Durtal to embark on his week's visit to Notre 
Dame de I'Atre, the excuses he invented for himself, the de- 
lays he ingeniously suggested. Yet when once he found him- 
self within the walls of the Trappist monastery, when he had 
shed from his soul its garment of scepticism and worldliness. 



Digitized by 



Google 



362 Convent Life in Modern Fiction [June, 

how completely he was vanquished by what he saw around 
him I Bit by bit the true significance of a life of silence and 
obedience and contemplation was forced upon him, and he in 
his turn revealed it to his readers in some incomparable pages. 
His picture of brother Simeon, the ^Mivine swineherd," pos- 
sessed of the mysterious power of exorcising evil spirits, and 
dividing his silent life between his hours of prayer in the mon- 
astery church and attendance on his pigs in the farmyard, has 
no parallel in recent fiction. It was emphatically through being 
brought in contact with monastic Hie, led at a very high spir- 
itual level, that Huysmans, the author in earlier days of books 
of inconceivable coarseness, came to be accepted before his 
death as one of the most persuasive exponents of Christian 
mysticism of his day. 

Another witness, malgri lui^ to the need of the cloister as 
an outlet for religious faith, is to be found in Victor Hugo. 
Revolutionary and iconoclast as he was, he felt compelled to 
apologize to the readers of Les MisirahUs for the deference with 
which he treats therein of a religious order. He argues, briefly, 
that convent life is founded on prayer, and prayer is the link be- 
tween the soul and God, and it behooves therefore all believers 
in the infinite to write of convents not with scorn but with 
reverence. 

The convent in question is introduced in sufficiently dra- 
matic fashion. Jean Valjean, fiying with Cosette from the pur- 
suit of the implacable Javert through |the tortuous streets of 
Paris, scales a high wall and drops down into a garden where 
he comes across his old acquaintance Fauchelevent tending his 
melons with a bell tied to his leg. It was the garden of the 
Petit Picpus, a convent of Bernardines of the Perpetual Adora- 
tion. The order was of the strictest, the hours of prayer well- 
nigh interminable, and all night long a nun lay prostrate before 
the Blessed Sacrament, with a rope round her neck, interceding 
for sinners. None the less Valjean realizes that the sisters are 
serene and happy, while the merry laughter of the convent 
school children rings through the garden in the recreation 
hour. For Jean Valjean the years he spends as under- gardener 
at the Petit Picpus — Fauchelevent successfully passes him oflf 
as his own younger brother on the unsuspecting Prioress^form 
the one peaceful interlude in his stormy career. And in the 
long silences the ex-convict is led to draw a parallel between 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Convent Life in modern Fiction 363 

the cloister and the prison that one would like to commend to 
Protestant detractors. Externally there were many resemblances, 
and it seemed to him that life in the convent must be the 
harder of the two, food and sleep more spare, the silence more 
rigidly kept, the confinement life-long. But whereas in the 
prison men expiated their own sins with curses, in the convent 
women expiated with prayers the sins of others, ''the most 
divine of human generosities''; the prison produced hatred, 
resentment, and violence, the convent exhaled forgiveness and 
love. And before the sublime abnegation of the nuns Jean 
Valjean's whole nature became transformed, and he too grew 
patient and humble and forgiving. 

This same conception—of the unconsciously subduing in- 
fluence of the cloister atmosphere on violent temperaments— 
though worked out on very different lines — supplies the tnotif 
of a novel by a French author, whose testimony is as emphatic 
as it is unexpected. Pierre Loti is far from being a religious 
writer, and his sense of the spiritual is restricted to certain 
spheres of perception, and yet I know no single scene in fiction 
that reproduces the atmosphere of a convent more convincingly 
than the closing episode of his novel Ramuntcho. It is a tale 
of Basque peasant folk and of the devotion of a young smug- 
gler and pelota player to a companion of his childhood. The 
love between Ramuntcho and Gracieuse had grown with their 
years, until it seemed to form an integral part of their very 
lives, although Ramuntcho was wild and adventurous and Gra- 
cieuse felt an unaccountable attraction for the convent in which 
she had been educated. For family reasons her mother was 
irreconcilably opposed to the marriage, and when the girl's 
sweetheart was summoned to do his three years' military ser- 
vice her opportunity came. Long before his term was com- 
pleted Gracieuse was a professed nun in a remote convent in 
a Pyreaean village. 

On Ramuntcho's return home bis smoldering resentment 
flares up into furious anger, and he and Arrochkoa, Gracieuse's 
brother, resolve on her forcible abduction. All is planned out, 
passages to America secured, and a swift horse is in waiting 
when the two desperate men knock one May evening at the 
convent gate. They are admitted at once, and the unsuspect- 
ing Gracieuse hurries to meet them. The convent is quite un- 
protected ; the abduction would have been ridiculously easy of 



Digitized by 



Google 



364 Convent Life in Modern Fiction [June, 

accomplishment ; but something restrains the two [smugglers. 
The whitewashed simplicity oi the place« the placid cheerful* 
ness of the sisters, the sense of prayer enveloping the little 
convent as in an inviolable shroud, the calm aloofness of Gra- 
cieuse herself, now Sister Marie-Ang^lique, her altered aspect 
in the straight religious habit, all falls with a chastening chilli- 
ness on the passion of the visitors and paralyzes their wilte. 
Ramuntcho hardly dares to raise his eyes to the girl he had 
planned to carry off in his arms. "He understands that all is 
over, that his little playmate is lost to him forever. ... . 
The words of love and temptation that he had planned, the 
schemes that for months he had been hatching in his brain, 
all appear to him as mad, sacrilegious, impossible, the bravado 
of a child/' And so the two men eat their suppers timidly, 
behave with awkward propriety, and at the convent gate take 
a deferential farewell of Gracieuse and her Mother Superior. 

"To Ramuntcho she does not even dare to offer her cold 
little hand that hangs against her habit beside her rosary 
beads. 

"'We will pray,' she says, 'that the Blessed Virgin may 
watch over you in your long journey.' " 

It is to a somewhat similar convent, to one of the many 
hundred obscure little teaching communities that until a few 
years ago were scattered over France, that Ren^ Bazin intro« 
duces his readers in V Isolee^ the most poignant of all his 
stories. I have written of M. Bazin so recently in the pages of 
The Catholic World (May, 1907) that I need scarcely do more 
than recall the book here. Critics have differed as to the artistic 
merits of the final tragic episodes, but all are agreed as to the 
charm and the fidelity of the opening chapters describing the 
Sisters of St. Hildegarde in the busy everyday life previous to 
their dispersal. M. Bazin has deliberately taken convent life 
in its most banal, its least romantic aspects; his nuns are all 
drawn from the artisan class and their work consists mainly in 
the drudgery of teaching and influencing the poor children of 
the quartier. The virtue can scarcely be called heroic, the 
sanctity is in no way abnormal, and yet how different is the 
atmosphere of the humble little convent from that of a chance 
assemblage of " lay " workers. Here there are no petty fem- 
inine jealousies, no bickerings or gossip, and above all no 
tyranny of one over the other — only the firm maternal direction 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] CONVENT LIFE IN MODERN FICTION 365 

of the older woman and the happy, willing compliance of the 
four younger. 

The secret lies in the reality of the vocation that unites all 
their aspirations. Each of the five women has adopted the 
religious life from a different but always from a worthy motive, 
and each finds in it a higher and fuller expansion of all her 
faculties, spiritual and intellectual, than her ordinary domestic 
surroundings would have afforded. Even Pascale came, in her 
own words, to save her own soul, to become more saint-like 
by living among saints, and because, knowing the latent weak- 
ness of her character, she felt instinctively that unless she 
aimed higher than her neighbors she might, in the end, fall 
lower. Such aspirations are the very mainspring of com- 
munity life and no one is more fitted than M. Bazin to de- 
velop their full spiritual significance. 

Hugo, Huysmans, Loti, Bazin — these are a few of the French 
novelists who testify to the beauty of the cloister ideal, and 
here, as elsewhere, 

'' Beauty is truth, truth beauty.'' 

I could wish the ^English witnesses were as numerous and 
as distinguished. In the unnumbered host of our contemporary 
novelists how many have drawn inspiration from the eternal 
antithesis between the world and the cloister, between the doc- 
trine of pleasure and the doctrine of renunciation ? The theme 
clearly does not form part of the usual stock in trade of the 
English novelist ; it is something extrinsic to our daily nation- 
al thought, and suggests itself but rarely, save indeed to those, 
whom we are not discussing here, who for controversial pur- 
poses introduce into their novels melodramatic convent scenes 
that have no possible relation to the realities of life. It is 
true Mrs. Humphrey Ward, always painstaking and conscien- 
tious, introduces nuns into Helheck of Bannisdale^ that well- 
meant caricature of a Catholic layman. But her nuns are mere 
pious busybodies, much addicted to gossip about other people's 
affairs, whom the authoress herself has clearly not deemed 
worthy of more than casual treatment. Even when, we pur- 
sue our search into more jyomising quarters we do not meet 
with much success. I can recall no convent in any of Henry 
Harland's witty, idealistic tales, and Katherine Tynan's charm- 



Digitized by 



Google 



366 CONVENT LIFE IN MODERN FICTION [June, 

ing Irish heroines are wholly of this world. One turns in- 
stinctively to Mrs. Wilfrid Ward, who is always a writer with 
a purpose, even though the purpose be dexterously concealed; 
and indeed in One Poor Scruple^ the novel that made her re- 
putation by its vivid presentment of the old Catholic family as 
it survived in England up to quite recent years, there is a sub- 
tle analysis' of the growth of a vocation in Mary Riversdale 
who, sole heiress to her father, becomes a Sister of Charity, 
But we learn nothing of Mary inside her convent, any more 
than we see the hero of Out of Due Time in his Dominican 
celli but only in his somewhat theatrical reappearance before the 
world in a Roman pulpit. In neither case has the authoress 
ventured upon a presentment of the religious life in spirit and 
in fact I can recall but three men among contemporary novel- 
ists who have essayed it: Robert Hugh Benson, our Catholic 
novelist, Mr. George Moore, and a new writer, the author of 
Marotz^ who writes under the pseudonym of John Ayscough. 

No one in England to-day is so fitted as Father Benson to 
interpret the mystical significance of the religious vocation, and 
in two of his novels he has deliberately set himself to the task. 
To get the atmosphere that he needed — the sense that the 
monastic houses that he describes are a part of the normal re- 
ligious life of the nation — he has had to go back to the early 
sixteenth century, to the days before England was rent in two 
by the controversies between those of the old and of the new 
religion. It will be remembered how, at the opening of Th$ 
King^s Achievement the reader is introduced to the home of the 
Torridons at Overfield Court, and finds the younger son, Chris, 
preparing to enter Lewes Priory, to the joy and pride of his 
father, and the younger daughter, Margaret, ready to make her 
novitiate in the Benedictine Convent at Rusper. Not a little 
of the book is devoted to a study of Chris Torridon's mental 
development, the insistent conscience that drives him from his 
father's pleasant house to the stern rule at Lewes, the faults 
of pride and rash judgment and self-consciousness that he has 
to overcome, and his gradual growth into peace of soul and 
clearness of spiritual vision, till at length he stands ^^ a balanced 
soul ... a light with a tranquil grace within and not 
afraid to look at the darkness without.'' All this the monastic 
rule, about to be roughly swept off the face of England, had 
given to Chris as to others. The psychology of Margaret is 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Convent Life in Modern fiction 367 

far less minute, but there is an exquisite picture of the little 
convent on the eve of its dissolutioui bringing home to one, 
with poignant intensity, the brutality of Henry's policy. 

It is, in a sense, to the results of that policy, as they may 
be seen in our own day, that Father Benson has wished to 
draw attention in his most recent novel The Conventionalists. 
His hero, Algy Banister, has, like Chris Torridon, a vocation to 
the contemplative life, but his vocation comes to him, not as 
the spontaneous product of a religious upbringing, but as an 
extraordinary and startling inspiration from out of a veritable 
slough of stolid, materialism. The Banisters typify the conven- 
tional British Protestant middle-class family, content with life 
as they know it, self-centered, prosperous, deeply prejudiced, 
and wholly without imagination. We all know dozens of Ban- 
isters in daily life. Algy, ''the fool of the family,'' revolts, 
he scarcely knows why, against the futile existence he is ex- 
pected to lead in the conventional groove. Circumstances, that 
the world would call chance, bring him into contact with Catho- 
lic priests; he is instructed and received into the Church and 
soon his new friends believe they discern in him, beneath his 
somewhat ordinary exterior, all the marks of a religious voca- 
tion and of a singularly sensitive spiritual nature. Everything 
is against him — heredity, environment, social conventions — yet, 
after acute spiritual, suffering, grace triumphs and Algy enters 
the great Carthusian house of St. Hugh's, Parkminster. Father 
Benson diagnoses the soul's growth of his hero with an unfail- 
ing sympathy and veils his own scorn of the Banister family 
under a kindly humor. Yet the book is scarcely an exhilara- 
ting one; it reveals so surely all that England has lost by be- 
coming Protestant, and if it reminds us that a vocation is 
wholly a supernatural gift, it also makes it abundantly clear that 
whoever is so endowed can only attain happiness by following 
it, and that if he should be thwarted by circumstance or hu- 
man perversity his life is doomed to failure and his character 
to deterioration. 

It is only a Catholic, and indeed only a Catholic endowed 
in some measure with the mystical sense, who can arrive at so 
clear and reasoned an understanding of a call to the religious 
life. Outsiders may apprehend it sentimentally or aesthetically, 
never in its entirety. This is the limitation from which Mr. 
George Moore suffered when he set himself some years ago to 



Digitized by 



Google 



368 Convent Life in Modern Fiction [June, 

write a story in which the heroine was to retire into a convenL 
This much discussed novel, in two parts, entitled respectively 
Evelyn Innis and Sister Teresa^ tells of the musical triumphs 
of a beautiful prima donna and of her abandonment of the 
stage and its moral perils through the insistent reproaches of 
her own conscience, aided by a certain Monsignor Mostyn and 
a community of nuns at Wimbledon. Like Durtal and Jean 
Valjean, the singer, with her emotional, nervous temperament, 
finds herself soothed and strengthened by intercourse with the 
nuns, by their transparent purity and selflessness, and above 
all by the mysterious power of their prayers. As the story 
was originally composed, Evelyn ended her life in the convent ; 
but Mr. Moore has practically rewritten the book, and in the 
new version, which artistically shows a very great advance en 
its predecessor, the convent becomes only an episode in her 
career. Her vocation was never a true or even a plausible one, 
either to the author himself or to his readers. As the book now 
reads Evelyn enters the novitiate in an hysterical state after a 
period of great stress, is practically brought back to health and 
reason by the convent life, and leaves on the death of her 
friend the Prioress to earn her livelihood by giving singing- les- 
sons, and to devote herself to the care of little crippled boys in 
a country cottage. 

Frankly there are many things in the novel that Catholics 
will dislike, but it is impossible to ignore so accomplished a 
piece of literary workmanship in any estimate of fiction dealing 
with the cloister. Mr. Moore's incursion into the religious life 
stands by itself and cannot be placed in any category. It is 
obvious that he cannot* be accepted as an authoritative ex- 
ponent. One regrets as one reads that so accomplished a style, 
so skillful a talent for characterization could not have been al- 
lied to real understanding and to the instinctive sympathy of a 
Catholic with the religious ideal. As it is, the book gives the 
impression of a drawing that is out of perspective; it has all 
been studied from a wrong point of view. It presents a series 
of impressions, but there is an absence of mellowness and 
harmony in the picture, and this in spite of some really ex- 
quisite descriptions of nature as seen in the convent garden 
with the wide stretch of Wimbledon Common beyond, and of 
some charming scenes when Evelyn, for the sake of her health, 
digs and weeds under the supervision of Sister Mary John. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Convent Life in Modern Fiction 369 

For other writers it is the convent entity — far more than the 
individuals who compose it — that claims attention; they treat 
of the type, not of the individual, and the first essential has 
seemed to them to reproduce the religious atmosphere. Mn 
George Moore has adopted a contrary method: he has differ- 
entiated so keenly that the type has eluded him. As the con- 
vent scenes unroll themselves, we are less and less conscious 
of what all Catholics mean by the convent atmosphere, but we 
have in its place a little group of women visualized with so 
much success that each one stands out, a clear-cut figure in 
high relief. I can recall no nuns in fiction whose personality 
is so intense as that of the aged Prioress, of Mother Hilda the 
novice- mistress, and above all of Sister Mary John, musician 
and gardener. We see them not only individually, but in rela- 
tion to each other, and each in her relation to Evelyn, who was 
bound to prove a disturbing element in any community. It 
will probably be argued, with much plausibility, that no con- 
vent would have admitted an opera singer under such cir- 
cumstances; but novelists, like poets, may be allowed some 
license as long as their stories, in essentials, remain close to 
life. And Mr. Moore's nuns are very human and sympathetic, 
even though they be lacking in some of the characteristics of 
Catholic sisters. 

All that the reader may have missed in the convent scenes 
in Sistet Teresa he will find in Marotz, a novel that has ex- 
cited considerable attention since its publication a few menths 
ago. It is the work of an unknown author, who has been 
widely assumed to be a priest. Certainly internal evidence 
points in that direction, although the book is not written with 
any obviously religious intent. The convent constitutes only 
an episode in a somewhat rambling, leosely- constructed story, 
but it is for the sake of the one hundred pages devoted to it 
that the novel will continue to be read. I know of no de- 
scription of cloistered life in the English language that brings 
with it so swift a sense of conviction, the sense that here, at 
length, we have the real thing. There are no romantic rap- 
tures; the nuns are not portrayed as angels on earth, rather it 
is just because the author understands so fully and so sanely 
the mystical significance of a vocation that he is able to note 
with a kindly humor the small human weaknesses of the sisters, 

VOL. LZZXIX.— 24 



Digitized by 



Google 



370 Convent Life in Modern Fiction [June, 

their pride in their own congregation, their little feminine 
vanities. The institute is founded on the root principle of 
reparation — the belief that the voluntary suffering of the inno- 
cent will be accepted in expiation of the sins of the wicked — 
and with artistic skill the author has brought this general 
principle home to the average reader by connecting it fanci- 
fully with a celebrated and unexplained tragedy in the Haps- 
burg family. '^ Poor Sister/' as the Mother Superior likes to 
be called, gets permission to build a little chapel on the very 
spot in the Palace Gardens where her husband, a prince of the 
Imperial house, killed himself after having shot the friend he 
had betrayed. Here she and the sinning wife pray at first in 
solitude side by side, but when, years later, Marotz enters 
upon the scene, she finds a little community of women, strictly 
enclosed and leading a life of prayer and austerity. 

Marotz herself is the daughter of an Austrian father and a 
Sicilian mother, who first hears of the convent at a court ball 
and the next morning visits the chapel, and seeing above the 
cloister- door the inscription ** Magister adest et vocat te** feels 
the compelling power of the divine summons. Has she a true 
vocation ? That is the question she asks herself anxiously and 
sincerely during the four months she spends within the cloister, 
and finally answers in the negative. She never gets beyond 
being ''our little postulant'' to the community. Thus the au- 
thor is able to write with no pattupris ; he is under no ne- 
cessity of justifying his heroine, or of inventing slightly im- 
probable incidents in order to sustain the reader's interest in 
what ought to be a life shorn of external events. We are 
shown the daily life of the nuns partly through the wise words 
that fall from Poor Sister. It is the presentment of the found- 
ress that gives much of its spiritual elevation to the book. 
She is, it must be confessed, a somewhat idealized superior, a 
true servus servorum Dei rather than the ''Reverend Mother" 
as practical necessities usually mold her. 

"Her only recognized appellation was that of Poor Sister; 
and she sat always in the lowest place, nearest to the door in 
refectory and at chapter, furthest from the altar in choir." 
While the other nuns talk with some pardonable pride of "our 
order" and "our holy rule," the foundress herself "never 
praised her own work, nor seemed to wish that it should be 
praised." On her lips it was only "our little institute" and 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909-] Convent Life in Modern Fiction 371 

** our little rale/' for '^ fifty years had not made her think her 
own regulations of divine obligation.'* 

Thanks to Poor Sister the convent was, in truth, what the 
old nun called it: ^'a low porch to heaven to those whom 
God wills should wait here/' Marotz had not been long among 
them before she realized that: 

*' twelve more unselfish women she had never met, and 
twelve happier women she could not believe that the world 
contained. • • • Each of these women had a very clearly 
recognizable individuality, not swamped, though merged, in the 
common vocation; they were not all of one pattern, or cut 
out of the same stuff. Nevertheless, something had fused 
them into a peculiar union, unison, almost unity. That some- 
thing Marotz, with her swift power of correct intuition, per- 
ceived to be the genuine, common vocation. 

"Had she got it?" 

Nothing could be further removed from the attitude that is 
often attributed, even by certain Catholics, to convent superi- 
ors in relation to rich postulants than that of Poor Sister 
towards Marotz. She deliberately stands aside waiting for 
God's will to manifest itself, even when the girl presses her 
for an opinion. " Unlike numbers of good people she had not 
the habit of trying to force God's hand. . • . She had 
never allowed herself to desire that the girl should stay, and 
had certainly loved her too well to desire that she should go." 
And when Marotz confesses that she gets ''no nearer feeling 
certain" that God has really called her to the cloister, Poor 
Sister, intent only on the girl's spiritual welfare, warns her not 
for one moment to 'Met the wretched notion assail you that 
you are turning away from God, in the very least degree." 
One other shrewd piece of advice Marotz receives from one of 
her companions in religion: not to carry too many convent 
ways home with her, for "a nun in* domestic life is very try- 
ing to her family." 

John Ayscough brings us back to what is the kernel of the 
subject, the problem around which the whole controversy re- 
volves : the reality of the religious vocation. To the irreligious, 
and often too to the strictly Protestant mind, it has no exist- 
ence— monasticism is merely a means devised by the Church 
to strengthen her grasp on men's souls and fortunes. We hold 
that it is a divine summons, clearly expressed, which the soul 



Digitized by 



Google 



372 CONVENT LIFE IN MODERN FICTION [June. 

rejects at its peril. Magistet adest et vocai te. Yet in Catholic 
countries the full mystical significance of the call has seme- 
times been temporarily obscured by certain material advantages 
that, in days of prosperity, the Church incidentally offers to 
those who believe themselves drawn to the cloistered life: a 
shelter for timorous souls, provision for old age, a release from 
the wear and tear of crushing industrial conditions. When 
considerations such as these come to prevail to any extent 
over purely spiritual aspirations through the wealth of the re- 
ligious congregations, a reaction sets in, persecution follows^ 
and from out of a period of storm and suffering the true 
monastic ideal emerges once again, purified and vigorous. The 
maintenance of a neble conception of the religious state seems 
.to me as much a function of literature as of the pulpit. Even 
fiction has its part to play in this needful work. It can dis- 
sipate false conceptions and correct false history and present 
in concrete examples the ideals that we all cherish. Books of 
literary and spiritual value cannot, however, be produced to 
order, and it is only by deepening our religious life and widen- 
ing our culture that we shall evolve as we need it a Catholic 
literature worthy of the name, lifted above the region of mere 
controversy. 



Digitized by 



Google 




THE CURES OF CHRISTIAN SCIENCE. 

BY FRANCIS D. McGARRY, C.S.C. 

|F there is any one thing which should incline a 
thinking man towards realizing the necessity of 
some authoritative religion, it is the recent rise 
of innumerable sects that, upon purely natural 
or preternatural phenomena, are striving to build 
up anew the true Christianity, as they call it In Europe es- 
pecially, the materialist has been forced by evidence the most 
convincing to give up his former position and to accept the 
belief in an unseen and little-known world. In America we 
also have our modern Christianity in the form of untold num- 
bers of curative agencies, professing beliefs vastly different, but 
experiencing cures from disease through means seemingly un- 
proportionate or invisible. Great as may be their differences 
in belief, they all agree in making Christ their founder. To 
the spiritist He is the great Medium, to the hypnotist the 
great Hypnotizer, and to the various forms of .Faith-Curing 
sects He is the great Healer. Hence, nothing more is required 
in order to be a Christian than belief in Christ as the great 
medium or healer. The Gospel narrative of His life, death, 
resurrection, and ascension is distorted to suit their own re- 
spective theories. 

The importance of this subject may be the better realized 
when it is known that here in the United States these sects 
are increasing with great rapidity, both in* numbers and mem- 
bership. Christian Science is no longer a something merely to 
be laughed at and ridiculed. It is no longer local but is spread- 
ing itself far and near, making large inroads among the well- 
to-do and even among the educated. 

It must be reckoned with sooner or later. It is bound to 
become a greater social factor, a receptacle, as it were, for the 
masses drifting from Protestantism to unbelief, and of other 
true Christian believers, who having been witnesses of the facts, 
but not knowing their true nature and unable to account for 



Digitized by 



Google 



374 THE Cures of Christian Science [June, 

them, are deceived and led to believe that the *' finger of God 
is there/* In this the danger lies for the faithful, and hence 
the necessity of physicians and clergy to know and instruct 
those thus deluded both as to the nature of the facts and the 
great underlying principle which effects these cures. In other 
words, to teach them that they are but natural, and not super- 
natural, phenomena. 

Before considering the claims of Christian Science, let us 
see what is the curative agency at work which, according to its 
defenders, effects these cures. The fundamental principle or 
hypothesis of Christian Science is, according to Mrs. Eddy, its 
founder, the denial of matter; hence we have no body, and 
disease is therefore impossible. '^ The only realities,'' she says, 
'^ are the divine ipind and its ideas. . . . That erring mortal 
views, misnamed mind, produced all the organic and animal 
action of the mortal body." And she says elsewhere: ''Dis- 
ease is cured by the divine mind ; there can be no healing un- 
less by this mind, however much we trust in drugs or any other 
means towards which human faith or endeavor is directed.'' 

Hence Christian Science condemns and rejects medical aid 
and drugs, denies a personal God, and condemns all mind-curing 
sects as hypnotists. In other words. Christian Science is noth- 
ing else but a cultured pantheism. 

There are some religious teachings so ridiculously absurd 
that one only becomes more ridiculous in attempting a refuta- 
tion of them. Happily this is not our present lot, since we 
are concerned most with the phenomena of Christian Science 
and their explanation. However, one can scarcely resist the 
temptation which Hudson presents of subjecting Mrs. Eddy's 
teaching to syllogistic reasoning. Matter does not exist. Our 
bodies are matter. Therefore our bodies do not exist. Noth- 
ing more would seem to be required to demonstrate the un- 
soundness of this doctrine. 

But what are the facts? Before considering these it might 
be well to note the attitude of Christian Scientists towards men 
of simple, yet true, science. What that attitude is may be well 
judged from the following: Drs. Huber, of New York, and 
Goddard, of Clark University, Worcester, in the interest of sci- 
ence, sought from Christian Science certain credentials for the 
cures which it claims to effect and which, if true, would cer- 
tainly go far to prove the truth of its teachings. If the ad- 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909-] THE Cures of Christian Science 375 

herents ot Christian Science really believed that these cures 
occurred, then they would gladly welcome and invite fair and 
square investigation. If these same adherents of Christian 
Science did not really believe in these cures, then the attitude 
which they subsequently adopted is easily, explainable. 

Dr. Huber, in the Popular Scientific Monthly for October, 
1899, relates his futile attempts to obtain from Christian Sci- 
entists evidence whereby he might investigate the truth of one 
of the many cases of cures which they claim to have effected 
and which are held by medical science as incurable. Not even in 
one case could an interview be obtained with a person claim- 
ing to have been cured of one of these incurable diseases. 
Let me quote Dr. Huberts own account of the cases he in- 
vestigated: ^'I examined in succession, and without exception, 
the case of every Christian Science cure up to the number of 
twenty. All these were of their own choosing ; no doubt, then, 
they would be considered to be among their * good ' cases; their 
* failures ' I had no opportunity to examine. ... I could find 
in all twenty cases, and in all these twenty cases no cures that 
would have occasioned a medical man the least surprise. What 
did surprise me was the vast disproportion between the results 
they exhibit and the claims made by Christian Science healers. 
... I heard during my investigation of yellow fever, phthisis, 
cancer, and locomotor ataxia, which had been healed by Chris- 
tian Science, but the truth compels the statement that my efforts 
to examine these cases were defeated by the cheapest sort o 
subterfuge and elusion." After citing a number of wonderful 
cures obtained by Mrs. Eddy and other Christian Scientists, he 
asks: ''Who are the people that have been cured? What are 
their names ? Where do they live ? How can they be found ? 
Will Mrs. Eddy and her followers submit these cases for a scien- 
tific examination? I and other investigators are asking, and have 
for years been asking, these questions. We are still awaiting 
answers.'' 

In his work The Effects of Mind on Body as Evidenced by 
Faith Cures, Goddard writes : '' Christian Science has unwillingly 
yielded its facts and philosophy to our work. By means of many 
personal interviews with Christian Science healers, with people 
who had been healed, and with those upon whom the method 
had failed, and by a careful perusal of Science and Health, to- 
gether with a careful study of the life of Mrs. Eddy from 



Digitized by 



Google 



376 THE CURES OF CHRISTIAN SCIENCE [June, 

childhood, a clear view of the whole system has been ob- 
tained/' 

Christian Science claims a power which cures not only all 
diseases curable by medical science, but also those called in- 
curable. From Mrs. Eddy's welUknown work. Science and 
Healthy we quote the following cures as fair illustrations of 
their claims. One man is cured of asthma of twenty years' 
standing, of a rupture of ten years'; his left arm, dislocated 
for forty-two years, was cured during the night; his eyesight 
was improved ; constipation and indigestion left him entirely ; 
and he lost all desire for both drinking and smoking. Another 
is cured of cancer; still another of varicose veins, by reading 
Science and Health. A consumptive is helped from the first 
time he opened the book; the cure following. A woman testi- 
fies that her husband was cured of smoking and the liquor 
habit, and of Bright's disease^ pronounced by physicians to be 
in its worst form. Similar accounts could be multiplied ad in-' 
finitum. But these are fair samples of what the adherents of 
Christian Science profess to effect. What evidence do they 
produce in support of these cures? For these cases and all 
others mentioned, there is not a single certificate from any 
doctor testifying to the existence, much less to the cure, of 
these diseases. We have no better authority for these cures than 
Mrs. Eddy herself, who apparently has no other voucher than 
the word of the person writing. 

But what of the failures? While every remarkable cure is 
solemnly announced at the religious gatherings of Christian 
Scientists, and heralded to all parts of the globe, still no 
mention is made of failures, no correction of cures only appar- 
ent, no statement of relapses; and relapses and failures there 
surely are. Does this not seem like sailing under false colors ? 

We have seen that one of their principal tenets is the re- 
jection of all medical assistance; that is, they reject, and with- 
out sufficient reason, all the advancement made in medical and 
surgical science by mankind from the beginning of the world. 
They denounce dqctors and all medicines. Of what value, 
then, is the testimony of those who, rejecting, and at the same 
time ignorant of, the art of medicine, are judges of their own 
and others' ills? 

In answer to this question, we may quote from the book of 
Dr. J. M. Buckley, Faith Healings Christian Science^ and Other 



Digitized by VjOOQIC 

i 



I909-] THE Cures of Christian Science 377 

Superstitions : ** All honest and rational persons are competent 
to testify whether they feel sick and whether they seem better, 
or believe themselves to have recovered after having been 
prayed for and anointed. • • • But their testimony of what 
disease they had, or whether they are entirely cured, is a dif- 
ferent matter, and to have value must be scrutinized in every 
case by competent judges. In general, diseases are internal or 
external. It is clear that no individual can know positively the 
nature of any internal disease that he has. The diagnosis of 
the most skillful physician may be in error. Post-mortems in 
celebrated cases have often shown that there has been an entire 
misunderstanding of the malady. Hysteria can stimulate every 
known complaint, paralysis, heart disease, and the worst forms 
of fever and ague. Hypochondria, to which intelligent and 
highly educated persons of sedentary habits, brooding over their 
sensations, are liable, especially if they are accustomed to read 
medical works of diseases and of treatments, will do the same. 
** Especially in women do the troubles to which they are the 
most subject give rise to hysteria, in which condition they may 
firmly believe that they are afBicted with disease of the spine, 
of the heart, or, indeed, of all the organs. I heard an intelli- 
gent woman 'testify' that she had 'heart disease, irritation 
of the spinal chord, and Bright's disease of the kidneys, and 
had suffered from them all for ten years.' She certainly had 
some symptoms of them. . . . The foregoing observation 
relates to internal disease, but it is by no means easy to de- 
termine what an internal disease is. Tumors are often mistaken 
for cancers, and cancers are of different species, some incurable 
by any means known to the medical profession, others curable. 
It is by these differences that quack cancer doctors thrive. 
. . . There is also a difference in tumors; some under no 
circumstances cause death ; others are liable to become as fatal 
as a malignant pustule. • . . Often in the account given the 
cure has been exaggerated. Relapses have not been made public. 
Peculiar sensations still felt and resisted have been omitted from 
the description and the mode of cure has been restricted to one 
act or a single moment of time when, in response to questions, 
it appeared that it was weeks or months before the person could 
properly be said to be well. In all such cases it is obvious 
that written testimony is of little value; indeed, it is seldom 
that a published account in books supporting marvels of this 



Digitized by 



Google 



378 THE Cures of Christian Science [June, 

kind shows any sign of being written by a person wbo took the 
pains, if he possessed the capacity, to investigate the facts 
accurately. Frequent quotations of such accounts add nothing 
to their credibility or value. • • • .The object of these re- 
marks is not to discredit all testimony, but to show the condi- 
tions upon which its value depends/' In virtue of the evidence 
adduced, are we not justified in classifying many of the cures 
of Christian Science among those suggested by the above quo- 
tations ? 

Like innumerable other curative agencies Christian Science 
cures diseases. The questions that naturally suggest themselves 
are: ist If the cures of Christian Science are not what they 
are claimed to be, what is the nature of the cures which they 
actually do effect ? 2d, What is the curative agency employed ? 
Is it the Divine Mind or have these cures a natural explanation ? 
In regard to this question no one can reasonably find fault if we 
base our solution upon the principle that nobody is justified 
in giving a supernatural interpretation to facts that admit of a 
natural one. 

The history of cures presents many and interesting phe- 
nomena. Every age, every country, has its own remarkable 
cures and its own explanation of the same. In ancient times 
the Egyptians, Greeks, and Romans had their gods of disease, 
to whom they attributed the cures ot all ills. At a later period 
we have the powders of Paracelsus, the King's touch, the tomb 
of the deacon of Paris, and great rakes and many others who, 
together with our many modern systems of mind-cure, faith- 
cure, animal magnetism, and hypnotism, all have their wonder- 
ful cures. A careful study of these cures brings out two re- 
markable facts; namely, that men during every age have 
experienced cures from disease through means seemingly vn- 
proportionate or invisible, and that, no matter how illogical, in- 
consistent, and unreal their diff^re^nt . theories or beliefs may 
be, they all agree in one thing, namely, that they all cure dis- 
ease; and it would seem that here at least the remarks of 
Paracelsus would find its application : ** Whether the object of 
your faith be real or false, you may nevertheless obtain the 
same results.'' 

Another extraordinary fact is that it is always the same 
diseases that are cured; and in this regard all systems of '^ cur- 
ing " seem bound by the same limitations. This is the conclu- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Cures of Christian Science 379 

sion of H. H. Goddard, who perhaps has made the most recent 
thorough investigation in .the study of cures claimed to have 
been wrought through the influence of Christian Science and 
other mind-healing agencies. His investigation, in as far as it 
was possiblci was a personal one. His conclusions are the 
more valuable, because they are those of the impartial scholar 
having nothing to gain or to lose whatever by the finding. 
''The result/' says Goddard, ''of this investigation, extending 
over more than two years, is an absolute conviction based upon 
evidence, only one or two items of which we can give here, 
that the curative principle in every one of the forms is found 
in the influence of the mind of the patient on his body. In 
other words, however different the claims and the methods, 
the explanation of all is the same. We may mention a few 
of the items leading to this conclusion. They all cure diseases 
and they all have failures. They all cure the same kind of 
diseases and the same kind of diseases are incurable to them 
all. In those classes of diseases where the cures are wrought 
there are the same percentages of cures by all the methods. 
Stripped of a few characteristic phrases, all the reports from 
all the different forms are identical. A testimonial to a patent 
medicine, for example, reads precisely like some of Dowie's 
reports of divine healing cure. Again there are many records 
of people going from one school to another, and in this no 
one practice seems to show any advantage. Some fail after 
trying all. Some fail to get cured by divine healing, but get 
restored by Christian Science and vice versa. Others fail with 
Christian Science and are successful with hypnotism and vice 
versa.** 

This is the conclusion, if not of all, at least of almost all 
men of science on this subject. They agree in this, that all 
thesei " schools " cure diseases ; that all cure the same kind of 
diseases; and that all these diseases are cured by the same 
principle, i. ^., the mind. 

If this be true, we have a most remarkable phenomenon of 
countless schools and sects professing many different theories 
or beliefs and producing the same result. Needless to say, all 
these different theories and schools cannot be correct; if they 
are, then man must be the most discordant mixture of being 
in existence. Hence the fact that these cures are effected by the 
mind, and that the same cures are produced, would naturally 



Digitized by 



Google 



38o THE Cures of Christian Science [June, 

lead us to expect some common explanation for them all. 
This seems to be relected, partially at least, in the conduct of 
these different schools of mind-cures towards one another. The 
adherents of these different curative agencies, in their endeavor 
to defend their own particular school, call one another hyp- 
notists. The divine healer disparagingly brands Christian Sci- 
ence as hypnotism; Christian Science, in turn, calls Mental 
Science hypnotic ; and so on all along the line. But this is not 
strictly correct. For while in hypnotism suggestion plays a most 
important part, in fact so important a part that Bernheim, the 
great French hypnotist, prefers calling it suggestion, still hyp- 
notism implies more than suggestion. It implies sleep, which 
is not a factor in any form of mind-cure. ** In every form with 
which we are acquainted the patient is in full possession of 
his awaked consciousness. • • • In a scientific sense, how- 
ever, it is true that all mental therapeutics is hypnotism, i. e., 
it is suggestion. Suggestion is the bond of union between all 
the different methods. Divine Healing, Christian Science, Men- 
tal Science, etc. And the law of suggestion is the fundamental 
truth underlying all of them, and that upon which each has 
built its own superstructure of ignorance, superstition, and fa- 
naticism/' • 

Such is the conclusion of Goddard, that all these cures, 
which can be attributed to the influence of the mind, have their 
efficacy and explanation in suggestion. 

Touching on this subject George Coe says : *' All the prob- 
abilities are clearly in favor of the conclusion that all the 
successes of Christian Science healing fall under the law of 
suggestion. ''t 

Thus, as in suggestive therapeutics so also in mental thera- 
peutics, the fundamental law is the law of suggestion. The 
ideas suggested are different, but the results are the same. In 
mental therapeutics the mind is, as it were, possessed by the 
idea suggested, and in obedience to a psychological law tends 
to work itself out into a psychological expression or *'to ma- 
terialize itself in the body." ** This is the power of suggestion 
and the essential element in hypnosis, and in all mental thera- 
peutics.'' 

To enter more deeply into a psychological explanation of 

• Goddard, ^. cii„ p. 51. t TAi SpirUual Ufe, pp., 1967. 

Digitized by VjOOQ IC 



1909.] The Cures of Christian Science 381 

how these cures are effected through the agency of the mind 
would carry us too far afield. What is of importance to know 
is that the curative principle common to Christian Science^ Di- 
vine Healing, Mental Science, etc., is the mind. Knowing this, 
it remains for us to learn, in as far |as we can, what is the 
extent of this curative power of the mind over the body. 

To define the strict limits of the power of the mind in curing 
disease is a task which, perhaps, no one at the present time would 
dare attempt. But while we cannot fix its exact limits, yet they 
can be defined sufficiently for our purpose. In the treatment 
of this question, we will depend entirely on the opinions of 
scientific authorities. Dr. Hack Tuke, a man whose opinion 
carries with it great weight, speaking on this subject says: 
*^That imagination and faith can exert some influence over 
disease, no one I suppose disputes. The great question is^ 
what is the extent of this influence — what are its limitations? 
The imagination has two important bearings: one on the prac- 
tical employment of this power in medicine and the other on 
the truth of alleged miraculous cures. 

^* I think the cures recorded in these pages prove beyond a 
reasonable doubt that while the nervous affections present the 
grand field for physical therapeutics, diseases beyond the neu- 
rotic boundary may be amenable to the faith-heairng influence, 
as, for example, gout. On the other hand, I readily grant for 
serious organic afflictions the range of mental influence is de- 
cidedly limited. At the same time, seeing that it is indis- 
putable that the frame or attitude of mind acts powerfully on 
the skin, kidneys, and lungs, and seeing that the role ef the 
physician is to act upon these, there is no good reason for ex- 
cluding the beneficial influence of mental agents in some non- 
nervous affliction. That these may act injuriously, even unto 
death in organic diseases, daily experience proves; why, then, 
may they not act in the direction of health and life? Lastly, 
who shall venture to draw the line between organic and func- 
tional; and who shall pretend to assert that any tissue of the 
body is beyond the range of nervous influence ? " 

Touching on this subject George Coe says: '^ Medical men 
are pretty generally agreed that suggestion reaches directly 
none but functional disease, that is disease in which the organ 
remains intact, but shows excessive, defective, or otherwise 
irregular activity. Suggestion does not replace an arm shot 



Digitized by 



Google 



383 THE CURES OF CHRISTIAN SCIENCE [June, 

off in battle; it does not set bones broken or reduce a dislo- 
cation." • 

This iSf in substance, the opinion of all medical men on 
this subject. Many passages could be quoted to this effect, but 
we will content ourselves with citing two of unusual clearness 
on this point. C. Lloyd Tuckey, a man of no small authority, 
in the Nineteenth Century ^ December, 1888, in an article en- 
titled, ''Faith Healing as a Medical Treatment,*' says: ''One 
is asked whether treatment by suggestion has power over 
every form of disease. Over some it has none or only to a 
very limited extent. It cannot remove developed cancer, or 
tumor. It cannot reconstruct what disease has destroyed, nor 
make a mortified limb strong, nor do the legitimate work of 
the surgeon's knife. Neither can it stay the course of small- 
pox, diphtheria, and other acute maladies whose name is a 
terror. In the presence of these, so far as our present ex- 
perience goes, it is comparatively ineffectual, or it must at least 
go hand in hand with the ordinary system of medicine/' 

This passage reads much like the following by John B. 
Huber, M.D., whom we already have had occasion to cite. In 
an article touching on this topic in the New York Medical Jaur^ 
nal for February 14, 1903, he writes: "Undoubtedly through 
faith many functional diseases are cured, and so in their in- 
cipiency are many organic diseases, when this factor is made 
an adjuvant. We cannot definitely determine how far faith is 
effectual, to what extent, indeed, it can influence the making 
of a blood cell, the production of a drop of lymph, of a nerve 
fiber, the beating of the heart, the digestion, and the assimu- 
lation of food, secretion, respiration, etc. But we do know that 
faith has a very limited application. It will not of itself cure 
organic or surgical disease that has obtained a firm foothold.'* 

Was this the opinion of but three chosen out of the goodly 
number of eminent scholars who have written on this subject, 
we might feel as if treading on infirm ground in concluding 
with them "that there are diseases known as incurable diseases 
which none of the schools seem to cure, while diseases known 
as curable diseases may, and are being cured by all, cured by 
the direct or indirect effects of suggestion." But this, in fine, 
is the conclusion of perhaps all scientific men who have writ- 
ten on this subject. In fact, mental scientists, i. ^., those im- 

* George Coe : Spiritnml Life, p. 177. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Cures of Christian Science 383 

bued with a truly scientific spirit, do not, at the present time 
at least, claim more for mental healing than what is claimed 
by medical science. Thus, to quote from L. E. Whipple's 
work, Practical Health : ** The system " (mental healing), *^ as 
now developed and understood, possesses the power of cure 
for any case curable by any known means, except in surgical 
cases and those actually requiring mechanical aid." 

Hence the practical if not the unanimous conclusion of 
science on this question is, first, that the cures wrought by 
Christian Science and these different sects and schools have 
their cause in the mind. Secondly, that these cures are limited 
to functional,^and do not extend to strictly organic and surgical 
•diseases. This is a conclusion based not only upon a psycho- 
logical study of the mind, its power and its relation to the 
body, not only upon a study: of the history of cures thus ef- 
fected in the past, but upon a careful and thorough investiga* 
tion of the cures claimed to be wrought by these different 
systems. Add to this the fact that none of these curists have 
as yet disproved this conclusion, by bringing forth proofs suf- 
ficient to merit the assent of competent and unbiased persons, 
and we have grounds sufficiently solid to accept this conclu- 
sion and to reject these extraordinary cures of Christian Science 
and other faith-curing sects. 

In regard to these extraordinary cures of Christian Science 
there is little to merit one's consideration. For of what value 
is a statement declaring the cure of cancer, of ulcer in the 
stomach, when there has been absolutely no medical diagnosis ? 
Of what weight are reports, the accuracy and completeness of 
which may, with good reason, be questioned? What esti- 
mate is to be put on the conduct of that sect which flinches 
from the light of a fair and open investigation of its claims? 
None at all, except that which justifies us in concluding that 
its claims are not true. 



Digitized by 



Google 



flew Soobs. 

It is a high testimony to the char- 
A HISTORY OF SIMOHY. acter of this work* that through 

its merits the initials after the an* 
thor's name, signifying Licentiate in Sacred Theology, may now 
be set aside and replaced by those which represent the Doctor's 
degree. The book is the author's thesis for the doctorate in 
theology, at the Catholic University of America. It contains 
about two hundred and fifty pages, and, as the sub-title indi- 
cates, covers the topic with which it deals from the beginning 
of the Church down to the early years of the ninth century. 
Dr. Weber opens the subject with a somewhat severe criticism 
of St. Thomas' famous definition : ** Simony is a deliberate de- 
sign of buying or selling for a temporal price such things as are 
spiritual or annexed unto spirituals.'' For the word spiritual. 
Dr. Weber would substitute supernatural; and he objects also 
to the terms buying and selling, on the ground that any con- 
tract, as well as that of buying and selling, in which the above 
exchange takes place is simoniacal. St. Thomas himself, how- 
ever, it seems to us, sufficiently justifies the expression which 
he uses. The history of simony in the Church begins. Dr. 
Weber states, with the selling of our Lord by Judas; and the 
next fact of the kind on record is the case of Simon Magus, 
from whose name the crime has received its designation. 

The first age of the Church, up to the Edict of Milan, is 
covered by the first chapter, which resembles somewhat the 
chapter in a famous book on Ireland, which treated of the snakes 
of Ireland and consisted of one sentence : ** There are no snakes 
in Ireland." But with the accession of the Church to wealth 
and secular dignity the evil soon becomes serious; the stream 
of evidence swells into a mighty river, with confluent branches 
throughout the entire Western Church. The chief sources from 
which Dr. Weber draws his data, for the greater part of the 
period, are the ecumenical and national councils. The vigor- 
ous but unsuccessful e£Forts of St. Gregory in battling against 
the vice in Italy and Spain during his entire pontificate are 
recorded chiefly in the Pope's own letters. One of the main 

*A History of Simmy in tki Christian Chnrch, From the Beginning to the Death of 
Charlemagne. By Rev. N. A. Weber, S.M., S.T.L. Baltimore : J. H. Farst Company. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New books 385 

causes for the spread of simony the author shows to have 
been the interference of laymen in Church a£Fairs and the close 
relations existing between the Church and the secular powers. 
Summing up, he points out that it could hardly be expected 
that Roman paganism and German barbarism would, immedi- 
ately after their conversion, grasp and live up to the precepts 
of the Gospel. Patient and continuous effort was required by 
the Church in order to make these peoples understand the 
nature and power of the Sacraments. Men arose and became 
candidates for bishoprics who did not understand the obliga- 
tions even of the ordinary Christian life. 

The frequent and persistent occurrence of the sin of si- 
mony finds a partial explanation in these eccIesiastico*polit- 
ical conditions. But, if the commission of the sin was per- 
sistenty far more persistent were the vigilant efforts of the 
Church to suppress it. Prohibition after prohibition was is- 
sued to root out this "detestable crime, this species of her- 
esy.'' Councils, both general and provincial, insisted upon 
integrity among the sacred ministers and other officials con- 
nected with the administration of church affairs. Ecclesi- 
astical and civil rulers enacted laws forbidding, under the 
severest penalties, every form of traffic in sacred things. Dis- 
tinguished churchmen called attention to the gravity of the 
offense. Not only was the sin condemned ; its very appear- 
ance was to be banished from the sanctuary. 

The high mark of scholarship attained in this interesting 
work inspires the hope that the author, haying here given the 
story of the growth and prevalence of the evil, will now under- 
take the pleasanter task of relating how it subsided and dis- 
appeared. Unshackled by the limitations imposed on the writer 
of a formal dissertation, he will be at liberty to clothe the 
dry skeleton of narrative with the graces of style. 

The plan adopted by Mr. Bruce 

THE ROMANCE OF AMER- for relating in popular form the 

ICAN EXPANSION. story of the successive stages of 

the geographical and political ex- 
tension of the United States* indicates that he appreciates the 

* Tk€ Romance of AmirUan Bxpamsion, By H. Addington Bruce. New York : Moffat, 
Yard & Co. 

VOL. LXXXIX.— 25 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



3*6 New books [June, 

strength with which personality appeals to us. He has used 
eight well-known names to mark the story of eight strides in 
America's growth— Boone, Jefferson, Jackson, Houston, Benton, 
Fremont, Seward, and McKinley. The events related are 
the opening up of the West, the Louisiana Purchase, the ac- 
quisition of Florida, the annexation of Texas, the occupa- 
tion of Oregon, the conquest of California, the purchase of 
Alaska, and, finally, the acquisition of Hawaii and the Philip- 
pines. Obviously, in almost all these cases, the event was not 
exclusively the work of the man to whom it is ascribed; nor, 
on the other hand, are the man's character and historical sig- 
nificance fully represented by the achievement with which Mr. 
Bruce associates his name. For this double reason the book 
will not be ranked among important contributions to the his- 
torical library. It is excellently fitted, however, for that large 
class of readers who, while disinclined to serious study, seek 
not merely entertainment, but profit, from their book. The main 
facts are presented clearly, without trifling detail; and, as a 
biographer, Mr. Bruce is inclined to award the fullest praise 
that can be reasonably claimed for his heroes. If some occur- 
rences and measures are presented in a light more acceptable 
to patriotism than to rigorous historical impartiality, this effect 
is produced by passing as gently as possible over anything 
that is not quite creditable in the transaction. A notable in- 
stance of this is to be found in the account of the annexation 
of Hawaii. 

The monograph issued by the Cath- 

THE NAMING' OF olic Historical Society to celebrate 

AMERICA. the four hundredth anniversary of 

the discovery of America is very 
appropriate to the occasion. It is a beautifully executed fac- 
simile of what we might call the baptismal certificate of the 
American continent.* It is a copy, black letter, of the 1057 
edition of the Cosmographies Introductio of Martin Waldset^ 
millUr^ preserved in the library of Strasburg University. Be- 
sides the pamphlet of Waldseemiiller's, who, in it, first gave the 
name of America to the new continent, the volume contains, 
in black letter also, the four voyages of Vespucci; facsimiles 

* The C9SfiU!grt^kus IntroducHo of Martin WaldsumiilUr^ (In Facsimile.) Followed by 
the Four Voyages of Amerigo Vespucci, with their Translation into English. Edited by 
Charles G. Herbermann, Ph.D. New York : The United States Historical Society. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] N^IV BOOKS 387 

of Waldseemtiller's two famous maps, one of them, probably, 
the oldest wall- map ever published, exhibits the world as it 
was known to Columbus; a carefully prepared English trans- 
lation of the texts is given ; and the whole has been produced 
with the assistance of two competent specialists, Professor 
Fischer, the discoverer of the Waldseemiiller map, and Pro- 
fessor Von Weiser, of the University of Innsbruck. The So- 
ciety is to be congratulated on their happy design of producing 
a souvenir so appropriate, and on the highly artistic execution 
of the work. It will be treasured both for its intrinsic value 
and for the touch of sentiment that is associated with it. 

The marvelous strides of the Cath- 

CATHOLIC FOOTSTEPS IN olic faith in the archdiocese of 

OLD NEW TORE. New York, as evidenced by the 

recent centenary celebration, make 
this chronicle* timely and useful. It covers a period from 
1524 to 1808, with chapters on martyrs like Jogues, bishops 
like Carroll, and governors like Dongan; it rambles with Fa- 
ther Le Moyne up the Heere-Graft or Great Canal, now Broad 
Street, and calls on Dominie Megapolensis, that courteous host 
and would-be theological opponent of the early Jesuits ; it pays 
a tribute to the memory of James II.; exposes the fanatical 
bigotry of Jacob Leisler against the '^ Papists'' and gives a 
full picture of his downfall ; portrays the hallucination of the 
''hellish negro plot,'' following which ''the law passed against 
Catholic priests was only once enforced, and then to bring to 
death a Protestant clergyman." 

We can hardly learn too much of that pioneer missionary. 
Father Jogues, whose canonization many Catholics fervently 
desire. The author presents a vivid picture of this apostle to 
the Indians; and another of Father Carroll, "sincere patriot, 
zealous patron of liberty, and one of the real founders of 
American independence." But the number of figures intro- 
duced does not allow the author to sketch the others except in 
outline ; still we have vignettes of John Barry, " founder of the 
American navy"; Thomas Lloyd, "father of American short- 
hand"; Thomas Fitz Simons, friend of Hamilton, Madison, 
Carroll, and other famous Congressmen, who played "an im- 

* Catholic Pootstips in Old [New York, By William Harper Bennett. New YorkS 
Schwartz, Kirwin & Faiiss. 



Digitized by 



Google 



388 NEW BOOKS [June, 

portant part in forming the economic policies of the infant 
Republic"; Landais, Talleyrand, Jerome Bonaparte, and the 
saintly Mother Seton. 

It need not be said that the author has attempted no 
critical analysis of movements or of personages; he cares little 
for sequence, and wanders in many climes, not without bring- 
ing home some of their brightness; though he has consulted 
very many authorities, he makes no pedantic show of learning; 
he is devout yet just to opponents ; sometimes vigorous in style, 
and never dull. His book is excellently printed and bound, 
with a dozen fine illustrations and a complete index. To the 
growing class of educated Catholic readers it is to be cordially 
commended for its intrinsic merit and for its loyal tribute to 
the Church. 

The flow of literature on this sub- 
MODERNISM. ject, in the form of books, pam- 

phlets, and magazine articles, shows 
no sign of abating; but it is the attack, not the defence, that 
contributes most to the stream. One volume, however, has just 
appeared in English which champions modernism with un- 
measured zeal and, it may be added, with unmeasured violence. 
Needless to say the volume does not come from a Catholic 
source. The author, however, professes to be exceptionally 
qualified to speak, with the authority of him who knows, re- 
garding the feelings and convictions of large numbers of Catho- 
lics, lay and clerical, in Europe, concerning the issues that have 
gathered round the term modernism. M. P. Sabatier publishes, 
in book form, the three lectures on this subject which he de- 
livered in London last year on the Jowett Foundation.* An 
appendix contains an English translation of the Lamentabili 
Sane, the Pascendi Gr$gis^ the less known Papal letter, PUni 
PAnimo addressed to the Italian episcopate; also the remon- 
strance addressed to the Holy Father by a group of French 
Catholics. 

M. Sabatier's work may be divided into two parts, one a 
eulogy of the modernists in general, with special notice of M. 
Loisy,the Abb^ Murri, and Father Tyrrell, and a passing nod 
to M. Leroy ; the other is an arraignment of the Pope and the 
Vatican, whom he makes responsible for every utterance made 

* Modernism^ The Jowett Lectures, 1908. By Paul Sabatier, Translated by C. A . 
Miles. New York: Charles Scribner's Sons. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New books 389 

in newspaper and magazine, even those of various individuals 
whose chief purpose was to commend themselves to attention. 
He affirms that the modernists, M, Loisy in particular, destroy 
no Catholic truth; retain the old creed and all the soul of 
the old rites. But M. Sabatier skims the surface, without ever, 
it would seem, having examined whether there is any truth in 
the charge that M. Loisy retains the form of sound words but 
empties them of their original content Let us hear M, Sabatier 
himself in a characteristic passage: 

Once more» let me repeat, the Modernist Catholic destroys 
nothing and gives up nothing ; he accepts everything and 
makes it live. The Mass, the present center of worship, does 
not become for him an antiquarian rite, like the Buddhist 
ceremonies sometimes performed in our great capitals for the 
delectation of a sceptical and blasS public ; it remains what it 
is, or rather it gains new significance and new life. The sighs 
of the ages have passed into it ; the first dim struggles of 
awakening religious thought have left their traces there in 
the mysterious figure of Melchizedek ; the memory of the 
Jewish Passover pervades it, in wondrous harmony with the 
memory of the Upper Room. The Christian Passover is 
bom, a feast of love and communion, whose end is not only 
to nourish our life from day to day, but to give us strength to 
face the toil of the morrow — a feast from which the disciple 
rises, uttering no passive Fiat, but going forth to his work 
and to his labor. 

And this interpretation of the Eucharist^a typical example, 
in the author's judgment, of the modernist's method — M. Sabatier 
has the calm audacity to exhibit as a retention of the tradi- 
tional doctrine of the Real Presence of the Body and Blood of 
Christ under the appearances of bread and wine ! For refusing 
to permit this and similar evisceration of the main dogmas of 
the Church, Pius X. is represented as a well-meaning, but 
blind, stubborn obscurantist, who has dealt a deadly blow to 
the interests of the Catholic religion in his condemnation of 
modernism. Scarcely any orthodox pen has presented the an- 
tagonism existing between this modernism and Catholic faith 
as strikingly as M. Sabatier unwittingly sets it forth. M. Sa- 
batier professes to have intimate knowledge, not alone of the 
secret springs and wheels of the administrative machinery of 



Digitized by 



Google 



390 NEW BOOKS [June, 

Rome, but also of the views and psychological peculiarities of 
the highest personages, including the Holy Father himself. 
And the portrait drawn of Pius X. is nothing less than oiOfen- 
sive, though it will do little harm, because it is obviously a 
caricature. 

Incidentally, in his first lecture, M. Sabatier touches upon 
the Separation crisis in France, to repeat views which he has 
already published. It is to the Pope, here again, that all the 
unfavorable consequences of the Separation movement are to 
be attributed. Rome, so runs M. Sabatier's story, coerced the 
French bishops and the laity, and, through obstinacy, lost the 
favorable terms which the government o£Fered concerning the 
retention of all ecclesiastical property. Although the bias of 
M. Sabatier is obvious, yet the plausibility with which he pre« 
sents his views, and the many, not altogether beautiful, facts 
which he marshals to his side, will no doubt cause this volume 
to be regarded by non-Catholics as a trustworthy authority on 
the subject with which it deals. Unfortunately, with all that 
has been written on our side, there exists no English account 
of the entire movement that might be recommended ;as an 
antidote. 

The weighty words and strong in- 

CAXECHETICAL INSTRUC- junctions issued by the Holy Father 

TION. in his Encyclical on the teaching of 

the Catechism have borne fruit in 
many publications useful not only for the class-room and Sun- 
day-School, but also for the pulpit.* One of the most recent, 
in two large volumes, is a synthesis of three di£Ferent formu- 
lations and explanations of the section of the Catechism that 
embraces the Sacraments. First comes the text of a chapter 
of the Catechism of the Council of Trent; next the correspond- 
ing part of the Catechism of Pius X. ; and finally, a condensed 
version of Raineri's instructions on the subjects. For teachers 
who already possess a text of the Council's Catechism, the 
most serviceable feature of the present work will be the in- 
structions adapted from Raineri, whose catechetical discourses 
are among the very best examples of that very difficult art. 
They, of course, lose somewhat by the condensation; but in 
their compendious form they are replete with suggestion for 

*A Compendium of CaUcketical InstrucHen. By Rev. John Hagan, Vice-Rector, Irish 
College, Rome. 2 Vols. The Sacraments, New York : Benziger Brothers. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] NEW BOOKS 391 

amplification that each teacher may carry out along his own 
lines. 

The purpose of this very concise 
CANON LAW compendium • of a larger com- 

pendium of the Canon Law bear- 
ing upon congregations, as distinct from religious orders in 
the strict sense of the term, is to instruct superiors and other 
members of such communities in their respective obligations. 
The author states that a book of this kind ought to be at the 
command of every member. The work of Dom Pierre Bastien, 
from which Dom Lanslots has made this compilation, enjoys 
a high reputation; still, the present synopsis would not have 
su£Fered if the editor had consulted other standard authoritieF. 
Some of the topics are treated with less detail than the case 
requires; and, as a consequence, just such points as those for 
which the book might be consulted are sometimes left in ob- 
scurity. However, Dom Lanslots offers a quantity of accurate 
and useful information that is by no means well known to the 
members of our religious communities. When crucial difficulties 
actually arise, the religious who may have become familiar with 
this handbook will have the good sense to consult some living 
authority. We know the unfavorable estimate which the adage 
passes on the client of the man who is his own lawyer. 

This last reflection occurs with strengthened emphasis as ' 
we turn to another legal compendium, bearing the enigmatic 
title of The Law of Church and Grave f for the use of clergy- 
men. The title would seem to suggest that the laws dealing 
with interments and cemeteries would be the staple content. 
Only one chapter, however, out of twenty- four, is taken up 
with this and cognate matters. The scope of the work is to 
expound the bearing of the civil law upon the church, or 
churches, their organization and constitution, laws and regula- 
tions, personnel, property, religious services, educational and 
eleemosynary institutions, and a number of other miscellaneous 
matters regarding which the clergyman in his official capacity 
may come into relation with the civil law. To do anything 
like justice to the extensive collection of subjects noted in this 

* A Handbook of Cmnon Law. For Congregations of Women Under Simple Vows. By 
D. I. Lanslots, O.S.B. New York : Benziger Brothers. 

t Tlu Lam of Churth and Grave, The Clergyman's Handbook of Law. New York : 
Benziger Brothers, 



Digitized by 



Google 



392 NEW BOOKS [June, 

handbook would require several volumes. Here they are treated 
very summarily. The author usually supports his statements by 
quoting rulings^ sometimes from lower courts, sometimes from 
Supreme State Courts, or from the Supreme Court of the 
United States itself. Many of these decisions, therefore, are 
by no means final, or universally authoritative throughout the 
country ; and to accept them as authoritative might easily turn 
out a serious pitfall. The book contains, however, much in- 
formation that clergymen engaged in parochial work will be 
pleased to obtain. 

The official record of the Euchar- 
THE EUCHARISTIC istic Congress, held last year in 
CONGRESS. London,* will be to the future his- 

torian a monument marking what 
has been called, with justice, an epoch-making event. Few, 
even of those who assisted at the celebration, and nobody who 
depended for his impressions on the press, could compass the 
length and breadth of the demonstration. Its spectacular aspects 
were the most imposing features of the celebration. But they 
were necessarily transient, and the last verdict on them must, 
after all, be the universal Sic Transit. But the enduring ele- 
ments of the display were the collection of papers — all converg- 
ing from a variety of points, on the Blessed Eucharist — which 
were read at the series of conferences that continued during 
the course of the Congress. As, in many instances, two or 
more conferences were held simultaneously, it was impossible for 
any one to be present at all of them. All the conferences are 
collected in the present volume. With very few exceptions, 
they are of a high quality, both in scholarship and in literary 
finish. Together they form a valuable addition to Eucharistic 
historical theology. Many of them, notably one by Dom Gas- 
quet, on *'The Eucharist in England During the Times Pre- 
ceding the Reformation,'* and another by Father Thurston on 
''The Benediction of the Blessed Sacrament in England," are 
valuable historical monographs. Some of these papers deal 
ably with the actual question of frequent Communion. One of 
the most interesting on this topic is that of Canon Ryan, who 
treats the practice of Communion in Ireland, and shows how 
it came about that, up to comparatively recent years in Ire- 

^Rtport tf ihi Nineteenth Eucharistic Con^nss Held at Westminster, September, zgo8, 
London : Sands & Co. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New books 393 

land, fervent and exemplary men and women seldom received 
Holy Communion except at Christmas and Easter. The con- 
tribution which is the first in meriti from the scholar's point of 
viewi is P. de Puniet's original, critical account of some Coptic 
fragments written on papyrus, belonging to the sixth or seventh 
century, and recently discovered in Upper Egypt The docu- 
ment serves to exhibit the continuity of doctrine and discipline 
regarding the Blessed Sacrament. 

The record of the proceedings of the assembly is complete, 
and the pages are interspersed with portraits of the chief dig- 
nitaries who assisted at it. 

Madame Cecilia, who has frequent- 
WOMAN'S WORK. ly addressed to Catholic lay-wo- 

men the exhortation to be up 
and doing, and by implication, if not explicitly, taxed them 
with neglecting their opportunities, not to say their duties, 
again makes an eloquent appeal to the same effect. She pub- 
lishes, with some amplifications, a series of lectures * which she 
delivered last year to the Catholic Women's League in Lon- 
don. Her; general message is that, while the ** feministic '' move- 
ment, outside Catholic direction, is liable to fall into excesses 
or aberrations, yet the movement is something to be approved 
of if turned in the right direction ; and the needs of religion 
demand that Catholic women take a larger view of their social 
duty than they have hitherto done. With a firm grasp on so- 
cial conditions, Madame Cecilia's judgment is sane and practi- 
cal. She does not lose time in setting forth abstract principles, 
indisputable and barren, nor in enunciating platitudes, or unc- 
tuous exhortations without precise application. She goes into 
the details of family life and its social surroundings; points 
out the shortcomings of the woman of leisure or easy circum- 
stances; indicates a large array of neglected opportunities of 
practising the Gospel rule of neighborly love and service. Elo- 
quent when she exhorts the apathetic, she is still more effective 
when offering plain, common-sense counsel for the guidance of 
the zealous, whose enthusiasm sometimes, for want of wise di- 
rection, produces a larger crop of showy leaves than useful 
fruit; and, finally, she recognizes that the number of those who 
are willing to do their share in the Vineyard is very large, but 

* Laborers in GotTs Viniyard, By Madame Cecilia. New York : Benziger Brothers. 



Digitized by 



Google 



394 NEW BOOKS [June, 

that they are at a loss to know bow to begin. It is true tbat, 
as Madame Cecilia observes, the spirit of apostolic zeal is active 
among American Catholic women to a much greater extent 
than it is among their English sisters. Yet, among ourselves, 
the number of those who have awoke to the call of opportunity 
is pitifully small compared to the number of those who, either 
heedless or inadvertent, go their unremembering way without 
a thought for their genuine obligations in regard to want and 
sin that call loudly upon them, in the Master's Name, for a 
helping hand. There is no doubt but that this admirable lit- 
tle book would prove a revelation and a stimulant to many a 
woman to whom the reproach might be addressed : ** Why stand 
ye all the day idle?'' 

All those whose vocation is the 
THOUGHTS OF THE HEART, spiritual life and prayer, will be 

devoutlv thankful for such a book 
as Thoughts of the HearU^ When the well-springs of mental 
prayer are in danger of running dry, many a thirsty soul will 
find relief and delight in these short meditations or spiritual 
readings. They are short, four or five, or at the most six-page 
reflections on such topics as God, the First Cause; Grace; Eter- 
nal Love ; The Incarnate Life ; The Seven Words on the Cross ; 
The Holy Eucharist ; The Ten Lepers ; Mary's Fiat Mihi, and 
the like. There is order in the volume, but not too much order. 
Nor is there anything stately or stilted, nor anything so com- 
monplace as not to be suggestive even for acute minds. Further- 
more, though the meditations are primarily and invariably de- 
votional, they contain a very noticeable sprinkling of serious 
theology, just enough to prevent their being too light to be 
of permanent use. And there are enough of them to provide 
a new meditation for each day through a quarter of the year. 
And then, we dare say, the reader will be glad to begin them 
again. 

The Via Vita of St. Benedict f has 

PRATER AND THE RULE about it the sweet savor that 

OP ST. BENEDICT. characterizes the Benedictine type 

of piety, if we may use such an 
expression. The Rule of St. Benedict is given, one point to a 

• TJUu^JUi t/iki Hiort. By P. M. Northcote, O.S.M. New York : Benziger Brothers. 

t Th* Via ViUB of St, Bnudici. The Holy Rule Arranged for Mental Prayer. By Dom 
Bernard Hayes. With Introduction by J. C. Hedley, O.S.B., Bishop of Newport. New 
York : Benziger Brothers. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] NEW BOOKS 395 

chapter. A commentary on the Rule follows: and this in turn 
is succeeded by a '' prayer/' or rather a series of devout ejacu- 
lations. For example : Chapter LIII. is on '' Receiving Guests/' 
The text of the rule of the holy patriarch is given (in Latin 
and English). The thoughts then suggested are : first, '' The 
Supernatural View/' in virtue of which every visitor who comes 
to the monastery is to be considered as if he were the Lord 
Christi in person ; second, '' The Manner of Treating Guests '' is 
indicated; and third the delicate question of the influence of 
guests upon the discipline of the community is considered. 
Then come the ejaculatory prayers: ''Thou, dear Lord, dost 
come to us with every guest. My God, may we ever welcome 
Thee 1 Thou comest as a poor man : I will serve Thee, feed 
and clothe Thee. Thou comest as a stranger : I will be Thy 
friend.'' Such is the scheme of these simple, naive, and truly 
delightful little meditations on the Rule of St. Benedict- 
There are seventy-three of them. 

Just why Mr. Loomis permitted 
JUST IRISH. his entertaining book on Ireland* 

to be disfigured by a hideous and 
insulting design on the cover is not easily understood. He 
does not write solely for fun; why should he take pains to 
mar his circulation ? That the offensive '' stage Irishman " 
picture on the outside is not intended offensively one may 
see from the tenor of the book, in which there is nothing but 
admiration and praise for all things Irish; and in which Mr. 
Loomis exhibits an abiding determination to say nothing 
that could offend anybody and to drop prickly subjects as 
quickly as possible. Let us, however, turn from the cover to 
the contents. They are made up of a number of articles which 
Mr. Loomis contributed to the American press, giving an ac- 
count of his pleasant trip through Ireland. He makes no pro- 
fession of serious dissertation; he writes only to amuse. The 
various scenes of Irish life which fell under his notice, the 
people with whom he came in contact, the experiences which 
befell him, are told in his breezy, jocular style with good 
effect. 

He landed at Derry and remained in that vicinity for some 
time ; so Derry, Rathmullan, Elagh Mountain, Donegal Bay, the 

* Just Irish. By Charles Battell Loomis. Boston : Richard Badger. 



Digitized by 



Google 



396 NEW BOOKS [June, 

gray skies of Ireland, supply several chapters. Another chap- 
ter describes the humors of third-class travel. Mount Melleray, 
where the traveler spent a night with the monks, provided him 
with a host of novel experiences that have lost nothing in the 
telling. He seems to have drunk deep of the optimistic atmos- 
phere which is now prevalent enough to make the old designa- 
tion, '' the most distressful country/' a gross anachronism. On 
the question of the needs of Ireland, the prospects and expedi- 
ency of Home Rule, the alleged decline of the influence of the 
clergy, the effect of outside sympathy on the Irish people, the 
laziness or industry of the Irish laborer, Mr. Loomis, like a wise 
man, has no dogmatic conclusions to propound. He confines 
himself to presenting the conflicting answers which his ques- 
tions on these and other burning topics drew forth from vari- 
ous persons whom he casually encountered. 

For the encouragement of tourists, he draws attention to 
the fact that in Ireland one will be surprised to find how much 
further his money will go than at home; and he is at pains 
to eradicate the opinion which, whatever may have been its 
value some years ago, is quite erroneous now; viz.^ that the 
hotel accommodation in country places is highly unsatisfactory. 
'' Friends in America had told me that I'd not fare very well 
in Ireland except in the large towns. I would like to ask at 
what small hotel — ^New York or Chicago or Philadelphia — I 
would get as well cooked or as well served a dinner as was 
brought to me in Londonderry for three shillings and six 
pence ? If one is looking for Waldorf-Astoria magnificence and 
French disguises he'll not find them here, unless it is at Dub- 
lin; but if one is blessed with a good appetite, and is willing 
to put up with plain cooking, I fancy he will do better here 
than at home." 

The contents of the book receive our commendation, but 
we would earnestly recommend that the cover design be 
changed. 

The collection of lives of Irish 
IRISH BIOGRAPHY. celebrities, in the first volume of 

Ireland and Her People^^ has been 
gathered without any principle of selection that can be dis- 

* Ireland and Her Pe0pU, A Library of Irish Biography Together with m Popular His- 
tory of Ancient and Modern Ireland. Prepared by Thomas W.. Fitzgerald. Chicago: Fitz- 
gerald Book Company. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] NEW BOOKS 397 

covered by an inspection of the list. It is extensive, but not 
comprehensive; its sweep takes in St Patrick and the Duke 
of Wellington; it contains names of saints, soldiers, lawyers, 
statesmen, authors. Many names of extremely little importance 
are included, while others of much more consequence are omitted. 
The sketches are readable, and, in many instances, have liter- 
ary merit 

In this present volume,* as in his 

THE MAKING AND UNMAE- former work on the education of 

IN6 OF A DULLARD. girls, Dn Shields makes use of the 

dialogue form. He finds it the 
most natural form, and one that permits a subject to be most 
easily examined from diverse points of view. The beneficiary 
this time of Dr. Shield's efforts is the dull child who is the trial 
of the teacher ; and too frequently, insists Dr. Shields, the direct 
result of the teacher's method or want of method. After dis* 
cussing some general facts and principles. Dr. Shields enters 
on a biography of a boy who in his early years, after a short 
period at school, was withdrawn from it by his parents, who 
concurred in the opinion of the teachers that he was a 
hopeless dunce. Then he was put to work on a farm, and 
became known to his world as Studevan's omadhaun. In a 
short time he forgot the little he had learned at school; he 
was supposed to be too stupid to be worth speaking to, while 
any idea of instructing him was entirely abandoned. He was 
marooned, even by his relatives, on a lonely island of igno- 
rance. But the appellation given to him proved as inept as 
was the ** dull ox of Sicily ** to Aquinas. This intellectual Rob- 
inson Crusoe, after a long struggle, began to discover knowl- 
edge for himself, and to invent his intellectual apparatus, little 
by little, till one day, in a vessel of his own construction, 
he sailed away from the land of perpetual night to the sunny 
shores of scienccj where a goodly fortune was awaiting him. 
One need not be interested in pedagogy to find this striking 
record of pathetic struggle intensely fascinating. The author 
supports strongly his contention that not a little of the dull- 
ness of which teachers complain is the direct effect of vicious 
methods or incompetent educators. But has he given any 

* The Makimg and thd Unmakmg of a DuUard. By Thomas Edward Shields, Ph.D., 
LL.D. Washington : The Catholic Educational Press. 



Digitized by 



Google 



398 NEW BOOKS [June, 

grounds for the conclusion that every dullard has it in him to 
repeat the achievement of Studevan's emadhaun f The subject 
of the biography was an exceptionally gifted boy. 

In The Churches and the Wage^ 

THE CHURCHES AND THE Earners'^ we have an earnest and 

WAGE-EARNERS. well-informed discussion of a very 

serious problem. The author pro- 
poses to consider the present alienation between the churches 
and the masses of the laboring people, and, after having made a 
detailed and welUdocumented study of the facts in the case, 
he indicates the causes palpably contributing to the present 
condition, cites the attitudes assumed respectively by the repre- 
sentatives of labor and of religion, and draws attention to the 
changes and improvements that are required. Throughout the 
whole essay he shows a temper and a method which are 
thoroughly scientific. In consequence, he has made a book well 
worthy of being pondered, and none the less serious for being 
written in most simple and popular style. 

The indictment against the churches is a telling one, though 
the author writes with evident sympathy for the religious view- 
point. There can be no gainsaying the facts he brings for- 
ward to show the depth and width of the gulf that intervenes 
between the interests and activities of the churches and the 
workingmen. 

One or two things suggest themselves by way of comment 
on the book before us. Though the author brackets Catholi- 
cism with the other institutions under the generic title of 
'' churches," and though the strictures he records do to some ex- 
tent apply to all organized religion, yet it can safely be said that 
the Catholic Church does not lie open to the gravest charges 
brought forward in this volume. With whatever temporary ob- 
scuring of principles that may occur here and there, with what- 
ever human failure to work out distasteful conclusions, it yet 
remains true that in those moral teachings which Catholicism 
ever champions, and in the inevitable democracy of her insti- 
tutions and her ministry, there is for the Catholic Church an 
effectual safeguard against alienation from the living interests 
of toiling humanity. It is instructive to note the author's con- 

* Th€ Ckwrkes erndtke Wa^i-Bamets : A Study of the Cause and Cure of their Separa- 
tion. By C. Bertrand Thompson. New York: Charles Scribner's Sons. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] I^jE^ books 399 

ception of a church as an institution wholly shaped and de- 
termined by the choice of its members and its leaders. Now, 
though the individual member, or the local and temporary 
leader, of the Catholic body might be influenced in his policy 
by personal accidents, the Catholic conception of the Church 
implies the existence of a permanent, divine, and supernatural 
control which, in the long run, directs the Church to move in 
the way of the divinely established ideal. In a word, the 
Church cannot get away from her destiny, nor change her con- 
stitution, nor repudiate her principles, because these things are 
from God rather than from man. 

Mr. Grandgent, being the author 

AN AID TO DANTE'S of the most satisfactory grammar 

INFERNO. of the Italian language published 

in English, seems a natural and 
fitting person to append his name to the first annotated Amer- 
ican edition of the Italian text of Dante's Inferno.^ To say 
much in little compass, to pick out distinctly the salient points, 
to arrange everything in perfectly good order, and by these 
and other means to save the reader much useless labor, are 
among the achievements generally characteristic of Mr. Grand- 
gent's work. This present edition comes near to being adapted 
equally well to the beginner and to the scholar. The vast ac- 
cumulations of Dante literature make a forbidding labyrinth 
wherein the unlearned are loth to set foot save under the direc* 
tion of a prudent guide, and Mr. Grandgent is such a one. 
He seems to have discarded, and again to have retained, just 
about the proper amount of erudition. His book will be really 
an " aid." 

The sixth or seventh edition into 
CARMINA. which Canzoni^ Mr. Daly's former 

By T. A. Daly. volume, has run, sufficiently at- 

tests the favor it has met, partic- 
ularly in view of the well-known fact that many a volume by 
some of our most talked • of poets never succeeds in reaching a 
second edition. The present collection f of Mr. Daly's verse 

^Dmmtt Alighieri, La Divine Comnudia, Edited and Annotated by C. H. Grandgent, 
Professor of Romance Languages in Harvard University. Vol. I. In/em^, Boston : D. C. 
Heath & Co. 

t Carmina^ By T. A. Daly. New York: John Liane Company. 



Digitized by 



Google 



400 NEW BOOKS [June, 

deserves even a warmer welcome. It contains all the elements 
of his popularity, which are easily described. He is always 
sane, he is eminently human and genial, and takes a joyful at- 
titude towards life. The brighter and happier qualities of the 
Celtic character are revealed in his song. He writes without 
obscurity and on themes of popular interest. He has some- 
thing definite to say in each separate piece and knows how to 
build up a poem. Over all his work, according to his subject, 
presides a graceful fancy, or a true feeling, or a humor that is 
always natural and agreeable. Behind it all, especially in his 
Irish verse, we feel a secret charm of personality that finds ex- 
pression in a genuine, spontaneous gift of song. There is here 
nothing labored or strained. We may truly say of him, to 
combine the words of two poets, that he sings with full- 
throated ease in strains of unpremeditated art. At times, we 
acknowledge, a little more premeditation might be helpful, for 
the verse has an occasional lack of finish. 

These various qualities should be sufficient to bring favor 
to a poet — especially at a time when so many of our minor 
poets aim at the lofty and attain only the hifalutin — but Mr. 
Daly has had the further good fortune to strike, in his Italian 
dialect verse, an entirely new vein. Despite the very slender 
resources of this dialect, he has been able to produce little 
gems of characterization, of humor, of pathos, or of a poetic 
feeling for nature which give many Americans the charm of 
surprise, by revealing treasures of human sentiment where they 
are too little inclined to look for them, in the poor Italian im- 
migrant. 

But Mr. Daly is far more than a writer of graceful, pathetic, 
or humorous verse: he is a poet, and the fact has been ob- 
scured by the easy triumph he has won on a plane not highly 
poetical. If any one doubt this, we ask him to read the *' Song 
for May'' in the present volume. It is of imagination and 
feeling all compact : we are at a loss where to look for a finer 
expression of the joy and glory of a May morning. It is a 
golden poem ; and if Mr. Daly succeeds in giving us many of 
the same metal, the lovers of pure poetry everywhere will find 
him out. But there is much else here of precious material. 
Most of the ''Songs of the Months '' are excellent: let us point 
only to the music and the originality of conception in '' March,'' 
which could come only from a poet, to the rich feeling of 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] NEW BOOKS 401 

'' October *' and the exquisite fancy and tenderness of '' April '* 
(whichi with '' The Day of the Circus Horse/' will have assured 
places among children's classics). The reader will find much to 
enjoy in Carmina^ for there is variety in the themes, the moods, 
and the treatment; and though the poet cannot hide himself 
even in the Italian pieces — see '' Da Sweeta Soil/' or '' The 
Audience" — we think he more truly reveals himself elsewhere* 
The volume reprints, with slight changes, ten of the best pieces 
from Canzoni. 

With what seems to be an ad- 
THE NEW YORK WORK- mirable sense of fitness, the trus- 
IH6MAN. tees of the Russell Sage Founda- 

tion appropriated a generous sum 
to assist a scientific study of the conditions of living among 
the working people of New York. And so a large and hand- 
some volume,* newly published by Professor Chapin, contains 
the results of a carefully conducted investigation into the rela- 
tion of the New York workingman to a normal and socially 
justifiable standard of living. The investigation was inaugurated 
at the Seventh New York State Conference of Charities and 
Correction and consumed the greater part of two years. Out 
of a total of 642 families of Greater New York, selected as 
objects of study, 318 families are chosen as presenting the 
most significant field for observation, their annual incomes 
ranging from $600 to $1,100, and their members numbering in 
each case 4, 5, or 6 persons. The methods pursued in the prepar- 
ation of schedules, in the canvass of families, and in the tabu- 
lation of the data, seem to promise at least a very respectable 
approximation to scientific accuracy in the inferences deducible 
from the facts presented. A later and wider investigation, 
undertaken with some such thoroughness as the Bureau of 
Labor might command, would no doubt amend Professor Cha- 
pin's report in various particulars, but as a provisional general 
statement of conditions now prevailing in this city, the conclu- 
sions of the present volume are of very considerable value* 
The cost of the investigation was nearly $3,000, the whole of 
the expense being borne by the Fund above named. 

The central point of interest is the conclusion, based upon 

• Tk4 Standmrd of Living Amc^g WorAimgmm's Familiis in Ntm York Ciiy. By Robert 
C^it Chapin, Ph.D. New York : Charities Pnblication Committee. 

VOL. LXXZIX.— 26 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



402 New Books [June, 

the data here presented, that an income onder $800 is not 
enough to maintain a normal standard of living in the average 
family of the New York workingman — the normal standard, it 
may be noted, being "one which permits each individual of a 
social unit to exist as a healthy human being, morally, mentally, 
and physically'' (p. 256). Of 391 ^families well investigated, 
1 76 (45 per cent) had incomes below^the $800 indicated as the 
normal minimum. It is worth noting further that the data go 
to show that an income under $900 will maintain only the 
standard of living prevalent among Bohemians, Russians, Aus- 
trians and Italians, but not the more expensive standards of 
Americans and kindred nationalities. 

Important conclusions with regard to the cost of housing 
are deducible from the facts made clear in Professor Chapin's 
tables — one of them being that the percentage of rent stands 
in inverse ratio to income, rent increasing as the income de- 
creases. This is probably a condition largely peculiar to New 
York and gives point to the present agitation with regard to 
congestion of population, new subways, and so forth. A recent 
writer, recalling the saying of Jacob RiTs, "You can kill a man 
as surely with a bad tenement as with an ax,'' suggests that, 
"You can starve a man for lack of a street- car as surely as for 
lack of bread." The Survey quotes from 'Mr. Martin's pam- 
phlet on the need of rapid transit : " In brief, although the la- 
boring man in New York is paying more for rent than he can 
afford, a bigger share of his income than in any other part of 
any other city known, though he is actually going without 
food to get shelter, yet he is housed in such narrow, stifling 
quarters as to make decency and the rearing of good citizens 
well*nigh impossible." 

A sprightly book is Mrs. Mason's 
THE SPELL OF ITALY Spell of Italy. ^ Seeing that en- 
chanted land with admiring eyes, 
she has written a bright little story of her six months of 
wandering between Paestum and Milan. There are beauti- 
ful illustrations in the volume, too — many of them — and a gor- 
geously colored cover. 

In the foreword we are told that "whatever in these 
records of travel relates to Italy and to historic persons or to 

* The Spell 0/ Italy. By Caroline Atwater MasoD. Boston : L. C. Page & Co. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] I^isiy Books 403 

persons now in the public eye, is fact, in so far as the author's 
sincerity of intention reaches at least." The author's sincerity 
we have neither right nor inclination to dispute; but it seems 
fair enough to record here some of the things she has made 
bold to print and set before the public. She met a fascinating 
Greek who made the history and geography easy for her; 
and, naturally enough, some people suffered in his smooth 
summaries and generalizations. . With or without reflection, the 
author also sets down other views and estimates of her own. 
A good number of her pages are, for these reasons, quite 
annoying. 

Pius IX. was an '' old despot who sat sullen and silent '' in 
the Vatican (p. 41). The Italian Parliament has secured to the 
Pope "every permissible honor, emolument, and privilege'' (p. 
41). Vittorio Emanuele I. was ''a brave, bluff gentleman of 
not quite spotless reputation" (p. 35). Garibaldi should be 
''every woman's hero" (p. 34). ''For Mazzini one has religious 
reverence" (p. 29). These are the statements of the Greek, 
and Mrs. Mason implies acceptance of all he says. 

In her own name, the author has this to add, in comment- 
ing on the Vatican: "At least there is no hypocrisy at the 
Quirinal" (p. 145). The resemblance between Francis (of As- 
sisi) and Martin Luther at the Papal Capital suggested itself: 
" Both absolutely simple, sincere souls, brought in the fullness 
of a childlike confidence into contact with the crafty, worldly 
intriguing of Rome" (p. 233). "San Carlo Borromeo, Arch- 
bishop of Milan, and as despotic an old prelate as ever was 
canonized" (p. 321). "Carlo was qualified to judge, being 
sainted himself, and acquitting himself zealously in the burning 
of heretics, — Waldenses, and such, whose heads he sent in tri- 
umph to Rome" (p. 321). 

The author's daughter helps to bear witness, too: Curci 
" was required by way of retractation to assent to three propo- 
sitions. Of course this means that these propositions are what 
the Papacy holds as fundamental and essential. I forgot whether 
Curci retracted or was poisoned. Probably the last. They 
generally were" (p. 138). The Italians "let the Jesuits plot 
with the Socialists even to overthrow the Government" (p. 139). 

It did, indeed, irritate us, as we read, to find our in- 
telligent countrywoman thus ready to touch upon these various 
difficult and delicate matters, and to publish in print sentiments 



Digitized by 



Google 



404 ^JSW BOOKS [June, 

and opinions so little tested and sifted. But on other pages 
came other flashes of self-manifestation that helped to comfort 
and to explain. The author betrays a fondness for quoting 
Italian, and makes at least a half dozen errors in grammar and 
spelling (see pp. 58, 70, 189, 304, 384f 385)* She inserts a 
quotation from Wordsworth and gets it wrong, even the meter 
being spoiled (p. 67). Sometimes she writes carelessly even in 
English and even in prose: ^^That it was a misericordia, or 
funeral procession, appeared, to solemnize no one, and to us it 
bore the aspect of a brilliant carnival scene'' (p. 75)* Most 
consoling of all, on page 58, she tells us that a peasant went 
off " to milk his capri "—and capri^ you know, are buck-goats. 
Mrs. Mason may have written in haste and may not have 
seen proof; but the patrons of her publishers surely pay for 
careful writing and proof-reading, and editing too. 

That distinguished specialist and 
LIFE'S DAY. entertaining writer. Dr. William 

Seaman Bainbridge, has published 
a practical little volume which deserves to be widely read. 
Under the title Life's Day : Guide-Posts and Danger Signals in 
Health f^ he conveys an amount of useful information and of 
sane advice that will serve the uses of the general public bet- 
ter than a whole library of medical and surgical literature, and 
that may well be taken as a model by those numerous con- 
freres of his who seem utterly incapable o! telling lay persons 
anything intelligible or practically serviceable. The reader 
may look to rise from the careful reading of Dr. Bainbridge's 
pages with a clear and fairly thorough idea of what the medi- 
cal world can now say with confidence as to the proper way 
of caring for one*s health and the reasons thereof. The author 
obtrudes no pet theories, no fads, no panacea. He states clear- 
ly and directly the conclusions attained by enlightened science 
and sound common sense working harmoniously for the hygienic 
salvation of ordinary people in this present-day world. 

The careful little index in the book deserves its share of 
recognition, too. We hope Dr. Brainbridge will give the lay 
reader some more practical advice on the ever interesting topic 
upon which he has shown himself so well fitted to discourse. 

* Life's Day : Guidi-Posts and Danger Signals in Health. By William Seaman Bainbridge, 
A.Mm M.D. New York: Fredrick A. Stokes Company. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New Books 405 

Serious, patriotic Frenchmen, dif- 

MORALITT AND LITER- fering among themselves in their 

ATURE IN FRANCE. religious and political creeds, unite 

in regarding with profound ap- 
prehension many symptoms of decay which show themselves 
unmistakeably in the national life. The decrease of the birth- 
rate, increase of crime, corruption in political, and demoraliza- 
tion in private, life, diminution of the patriotic spirit, are the 
most striking manifestations that prompt the leaders of thought 
to put forth their best endeavors, in their respective spheres, 
to arrest the march of degeneracy. In the literary world this 
inspiration has resulted in prompting some of the most brilliant 
minds, during the past twenty years, to abandon the motto, 
art for art's sake, and, instead, to consider their pen as an in- 
strument for the promotion of practical ideas and principles. 
This movement has found its historian in Dr. Lecigne,* a lau- 
reate of the Academy, who throws his study into a series of 
pictures of the most conspicious figures in the movement ** from 
dilettanteism to action.*' They are Taine, Bruneti&re, Bourget, 
Lemattre, Maurice Barr&s, and Anatole France. The portrait 
of the last-named writer must have been introduced as a foil to 
give strength to the others. For, while Anatole France cer- 
tainly relinguished the rSU of the dilettante for the active pro- 
pagation of ideas, the principles which he expounds, with only 
too much verve and brilliancy, tend not to stop the trend towards 
moral chaos, but to make confusion worse confounded. 

Taine, M. Lecigne shows, found his road to Damascus in 
the journey which he made, in 1870, to Germany. The d^bd- 
cU opened his eyes to the structural weaknesses in the nation's 
life; and he chose as his field of action the task of restoring 
hope to his prostrate country. His first step towards his ob- 
ject was the creation of the ^ole Libre des Sciences Politiques^ 
which should train up Frenchmen who would think for them- 
selves in political affairs. *' It is not," he once declared, ^' ' ego- 
ism,' as the Germans say, 'that renders us feeble; it is the 
habit of allowing ourselves to be led by somebody, and of 
waiting for the signal from the voice of a leader; just as soon 
as we are willing to understand, and to act, for ourselves, we 
shall be strong.' " M. Lecigne traces the effect of Taine's new 
purpose through his great work Histaire des Origines de la 

*DuDii€tiamHm^^r Action ^tmd4sC§nUwtforain€s. Par C. Lecigne. Paris: Lethielleuz. 



Digitized by 



Google 



4o6 New Books [June, 

Francs Cantemparaine. The character of that work is epigram* 
matically summed up in Taine*s own remark. As I write it, 
he said, *^ I am sounding the cavities in the chest of a con- 
sumptive/' 

The paper on Bruneti^re is a vigorous sketch of the intel- 
lectual characteristics of the great critic who, on account of 
his talent, his courage, and his devotion to truth, has won M. 
Lecigne*s almost unqualified admiration. The one feature which 
is not to his liking — and the objection su£Sciently indicates one 
important trait of M. Lecigne's own mentality — is that Brune- 
ti&re was a champion of democracy. The idea that a man may 
legitimately rise from the lower classes to the heights ought to 
scandalize no one, writes M. Lecigne, but Bruneti^re went much 
farther than this: ''He accepted and willingly preached all the 
dogmas of democracy, even the equality paradox. This rigor- 
ous logician was in some things illogical. He loved order and 
regularity in everything ; and democracy easily ends in anarchy. 
He loved tradition ; and democracy will have none of it He 
abhorred individualism ; and this is the very basis of democracy. 
Here in the end he lost his bearings. He honored the Church 
as the harmonious society par excellence^ with its admirable 
hierarchy ; on the morrow he said : ' The Church is a democ- 
racy.'" This weakness, as M. Lecigne estimates it, has been 
the reason why Bruneti&re's influence, especially over some 
younger men, has not been as healthy as it has been profound 

In the study on Paul Bourget, more than in either of the 
two previous ones, M. Lecigne draws the materials of the por- 
trait from the books of his man; and confines himself more 
to purely literary criticism from his declared point of view. 
Nevertheless, he traces also the journey of Bourget's mind from 
unbelief to faith ; and emphasizes the proofs to be found in the 
novels, written after that event, of the sincerity and thorough- 
ness of the conversion. Now, some of these novels, though 
not every one of them, contain descriptions and scenes which 
will not pass our American standards of propriety. It is all 
very well to inculcate a sound moral idea; but the end does 
not justify the means. The conclusion of a romance may ren- 
der a new homage, as M. Lecigne says of Un Divorce^ to the 
Christian doctrine of marriage. But the lesson will be too 
dearly paid for, if, to receive it, a young man or a young 
woman is invited to read pages treating too frankly of sexual 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New Books 407 

psychology, or describing scenes and conversations that reck 
of sensuality. The moral of The Disciple^ for example, is a 
great truth, powerfully enforced — the teacher is responsible for 
the results of his teaching. But the critical event in the story 
is related with a realism and a want of reticence that are not 
far outdone by Zola. To do justice to M. Lecigne, it must be 
said that he does not entirely pass over this serious fault of 
M, Bourget in some of the stories written since his conversion 
to Catholicism. 

Maurice Barr^s' field of action, as M. Lecigne describes it, 
was to wage war, in the tribune of the Chamber of Deputies, 
and with his pen through the press, against the corrupt poli- 
ticians who, like a similar class nearer home, live on the people, 
and for themselves. M. Lecigne salutes J. Lemaitre as the 
champion of the old French ideals of self-sacrifice, generosity, 
and patriotism; and he anticipates the day when M. Lemaitre 
will pass over the chasm which, as yet, separates him from 
Christianity. 

In a Roundabout Way^^ by Clara MulhoUand,. is a double 
love story of four young people of the Irish gentry class. One 
of the girls is the supposed heiress (through her father's crime) ; 
the other, who has been brought up as a peasant, the real 
heiress to a fine estate. The plot is rather loosely woven ; the 
crime is not disposed of by detective methods, but by the 
opportune upsetting of a sailing boat. 

Forgive and Forget \ resembles the foregoing in containing 
the double love story, woven into complicated situations, of a 
set of refined young German people. The atmosphere of both 
stories is Catholic. 

An Original GenthntanX is a series of humorous comedy- 
stories, slight in content, well-constructed, and abounding in 
amusing persiflage. 

This edition of the Imitation % is meant for the members of 

* In A RotmdahmU Way, By Clara Mnlholland. New York : Benziger Brothers, 
t F9r^v€ and Forget, By Ernst Lingen, New York : Benziger Brothers. 
X An Original GintUman. By Anne Warner. Boston : Little, Brown & Co. 
\ TJUSodalisfslMitation 9 f Christ, By Thomas & Kempis. An English Translation by 
Father Elder Mullen, S.J. New York : P. J. Kenedy & Sons. 



Digitized by 



Google 



4o8 NEW BOOKS [June. 

oar Lady^s Sodality and for all who, with them, are likely to 
seek in the famoos work of 4 Kempis wholesome food for 
mental prayer. This translation produces the rhjrthm of the 
original, and the third and fourth books are restored to the 
original order. It will be found a useful book for daily medi- 
tationsy and as one of the best books of devotion we recom- 
mend it to all. Father Mullen Is doing great work in the ser- 
vice of our Lady's Sodality, and this volume, like the others 
which he has edited, is presented in neat form. 



''A mother, and forget? 
Nay I all her children's fate 
Ireland remembers yet 
With love insatiate I" 

The truth of Lionel Johnson's poignant stanza scarcely calls 
for reiteration ; yet here at hand is an added witness* to Erin's 
fair loyalty. For with the forewords of three faithful friend£ — 
Father Hickey, of Yorkshire, Seumas MacManus, and Justin 
M'Carthy— <:omes a collected edition of the poems of '' Eva " 
of the Nation. The present generation little remembers the 
part played by this- remarkable woman (Mary Eva Kelly, later 
Mrs. Kevin O'Doherty) in the Nationalist Movement of '' Young 
Ireland." With simple and unfailing devotion she sang and 
suffered and toiled for the well-fought-for ideals of her people. 
Most of her poems (as of her prose) had their first publication 
in the Nation^ and in them ''Eva" touched upon every chord 
precious to her countrymen. The Beloved Dead — the Patriot 
Mother— the '* Men in Jail"— the Wanderer Under! Alien Skies 
— all found in her a sympathetic minstrel: these, and not less 
the sunshine of ''sweet Tipperary," the hills and streams of 
Erin, her holy wells, and the immemorial legends of her past* 
And now, when the romantic career of "Eva" is drawing to 
its solitary close, the "true men" of her country are resolved 
to honor it by some fitting testimonial. For this object the 
present edition of her poems (extremely moderate in price) is 
being issued. We wish it every success. 

^Poims. By *' Eva" oi the Nsium. Dublin: M. H. GiU & Son, Ltd. 



Digitized by 



Google 



jForeidn petiobical6« 

The Tablet (17 April): Contains a monograph on ''Joan of 
Arc/' The first installment tells of the career of the 
Maid up to the time of the fulfillment of her mission 
with the ceremony of the crowning at Rheims.— ^Dr. 
Gairdner, writing on *' The Disestablishment of the Welsh 
Church/' claims that the endowments were given for the 
support of religion and ought not to be alienated. If 
the Established Church, is not doing her work, by all 
means take away the endowments and give them to some 
more wholesome form of religion.-^»''A Suffragette 
Meeting at Formby '' was presided over by the Catholic 
priest of the town, the Rev. Wilfrid Carr, who claimed 
that woman has a duty in the State as well as in the 
home. Votes for women, he said, meant purity in poli- 
tics.— Among obituary notices are those of ''Marion 
Crawford*' and ^'Algernon Charles Swinburne." Of the 
former it is said that he knew Italy as few strangers do, 
while the latter is described as the last of the great 
Victorian poets. 

(24 April): ''Can a Catholic be a Socialist?" Lord 
Mowbray and Stourton considers the question. He in- 
clines to think the answer must be in the negative.—— 
The plan of "The Disestablishment of the Welsh Church '' 
is outlined. The buildings are to be left to the Dis- 
established Church, and all benefactions, dating from 
1662, are to be retained, those of an earlier date are to 

be taken from it. "Blessed Joan of Arc"; Mgr. 

Barnes tells the story of the last stages of her career: 

of her capture, trial, and death by fire. Apropos of 

" The New Irish University," Cardinal Moran points out 
"the great failure of Cardinal Newman's life." It was 
his attempt to establish a university in Ireland and his 
utter inability to understand Irish character. 

TAi Month (April): "The Free Church Council Meeting" 
affords the writer, the Rev. Sydney F. Smith, an oppor- 
tunity of comparing and contrasting the spirit which 
dominated the three Congresses of the Anglican, Catholic, 
and Nonconformist bodies. In the first two the spirit 



Digitized by 



Google 



4IO FOREIGN PERIODICALS [Jttnc, 

of charity was conspicuous. The same, however, cannot 
be said of the last.-^— In "Man and Monkey'' the 
Editor deals with the unscrupulous methods employed 
by Professor Haeckel in propagating his doctrines.-^— 
In "The Dream of Gerontius and the Philosophy of St. 
Thomas/' Rev. T. A. Newsome states that the proofs 
afforded by philosophy for the immortality of the soul 
are difficult to understand. As far as poetry may be 
employed to lend a warmth to the abstract speculations 
of the Angelic Doctor, Newman has employed it in the 
Dream of Gerontius.——" Flotsam and Jetsam '' treats of 
the recent charge that Catholics are gaining possession of 
the Press in an underhand manner, also the derivation 
of the curious term Godon which Jeanne d'Arc com- 
monly used in describing her English adversaries. 

Expository Times (April) : Professor Jordan's new book. Biblical 

Criticism and Modern TAou^At, is reviewed. " The New 

Philosophy," by the Rev. J. G. James. Originally called 
Pragmatism, it is now to be known as Humanism. It 
signalizes a revolt against Intellectualism and appeals to 
the whole man. Rev. J. M. Shaw, on "The Religious- 
Historical Movement in German Theology," claims that 
it is an attempt to bridge over the gulf existing be- 
tween the Church and the cultured classes; to cut loose 
from tradition and give a "scientific" restatement of the 
Gospel ^Was " Yahweh Israel's Peculiar God " ? Ap- 
parently not, for Professor Delitzsch speaks of finding 
on three clay tablets in the British Museum the words 
Yahweis God; and these tablets belong to the age of 

Hammurabi, two thousand years before Christ. 

*'The Archaeology of the Book of Genesis," by Professor 

Sayce. "Two New Compositions of the Epistles 

of St. John." 

The Church Quarterly Review (April) : " Modernism," from an 
Anglican Church point of view, is the subject of an 
article by Herbert H. Jefferson. He deplores the way 
in which the movement has been met.«-— "The Origin 
and Development of the Moral Ideas," is the second in- 
stallment of a review of Dr. Westermarck's work. Ac- 
cording to his theory, morality stands on, and must al- 
ways have stood on, a basis independent of religion.—— 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] FOREIGN PERIODICALS 41 1 

In an apologetic, ^^The Grounds of Belief in God/' F. 
R, Tennant comes to the conclusion that in the Per- 
son and work of our Lord we have the best basis on 
which to build up a convincing proof of the Personality 

of God. ** The Resurrection Body " is a study in the 

history of the doctrine put forth on this subject, by the 
African School in the person of Tertullian, and the Alex- 
andrian School in', the person of Origen; the one material- 
istic; the other, to a large extent, founded up#n the 
teaching of St. Pauh— — " A Spanish University " ; the 
Oviedo Tercentenary, by Edward Armstrong.— -'* The 
Numeration of New Testament Manuscripts/' by F. G. 
Kenyon. 

The National Review (May) : '' Episodes of the Month '' is a 
lengthy contribution to the already extensive "war scare'' 
literature. Sir Edward Grey's late speech on a superior 
British navy ''fills one with despair, because it means 
that the German navy can count on fooling our Govern- 
ment to the end of the chapter."——" After the Storm " 
is the translation of a popular German pamphlet, Nach 
dem Sturm, published for the purpose of inflaming the 

German people against Great Britain. ^Three more 

articles deal with the question of Germany's aggressive- 
ness: "A Plea for a Comprehensive Policy of National 
Defense"; ''Sidelights on German Preparations for 

War"; "The German Army." "The evils resulting 

from adulterated milk will not be checked until the price 
of milk is raised," says Eustace Miles in an article en- 
titled: "Is Milk Too Cheap?" The present crisis in 

the national life of France is treated by William Morton 
FuUerton. 

The Dublin Review (April): W. S. Lilly, in his review of Dr. 
Gairdner's Lollardy and the Reformation, points to two 
serious divergencies from Catholic standards: one is 
when the historian asserts his belief in the Royal Su- 
premacy; the other is when he uses language which 
implies that the doctrine of Transubstantiation belongs 
to the philosophy of the past and has no meaning for 

tts at present. In " Moral Fiction a Hundred Years 

Ago," the writer, Wilfrid Ward, asks why Miss Edge- 
worth is but little read in our day? It is, he thinks, 



Digitized by 



Google 



412 FOREIGN PERIODICALS [June, 

because the old '' moral tale '' is suspected of being un- 
true to nature. '' Some Factors in Moral Education/' 

by Rev. Michael Maher, S.J., exposes the fallacy, some- 
what widely accepted, that the spread of education would 
prove an all-powerful factor in the regeneration of hu- 
manity. ^The name ''Niccolo Machiavelli '' at once 

suggests a picture of cunning and political trickery. 
That the life of the man hardly warrants such an un- 
enviable reputation is the trend of an article by Herbert 
M. Vaughan. Under the title "The Mantle of Vol- 
taire/' the writer, F* Y. Eccles, shows that it has un- 
doubtedly fallen upon M. Anatole France, by reason of 
his attack upon Christianity in his recent book, VIU 
des Pingouins. In ''The Needs of Humanity'' Cardi- 
nal Gibbons offers the Catholic Church and her teach- 
ings as a solvent for the perplexing problems of our 
day. 

Irish Ecclesiastical Record (April) : The Rev. George Hitchcock 
in his review of Dr. Rodkinson's History of the Talmud 
shows the value of such a work, for the questions re- 
garding Christian origins touch Jewish life at many 
points.— -In '' Historic Phases of Socialism*" the edi- 
tor, Rev. J. S. Hogan, D.D., shows that the root-idea 
of Socialism, in one form or another, has been proposed, 
tried, and rejected hundreds of times in the history of 
the world. ^The difficulties attendant upon the ex- 
planation of the miraculous are dealt with by the Rev. 
Malachy Eaton, in ''Apologetics of the Miracle/' The 
old gross materialistic theories are fast fading from 
view and the thought of spirit acting on matter is no 
longer repugnant to the scientific mind.— —In " Glimpses 
of the Penal Times," by Rev. Reginald Walsh, O.P., we 
have an account of the arrest, trial, and imprisonment of 
several priests in Ireland in the eighteenth century .-^» 
"The Reform of the Roman Curia" gives some practi- 
cal information to those who may be called upon to 
have recourse to such authority. 

Lc Correspondant (lo April): "The American -Japanese Conflict 
and Public Opinion in America " gives a risumi of the 
recent trouble. By virtue of its New Armada and 
great guns the United States must remain champion of 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] FOREIGN PERIODICALS 413 

the Pacific Our democracy, the writer says, is slowly de- 
veloping into an aristocracy of thought, manners, neces- 
sities of life, and social caste. In ^^The Art of Stag- 
ing a Play,'' Paul Gaultier traces the progress which has 
been made from the simplicity of the Mystery plays, say 
of the twelfth century, to the realism of to-day, when 
the setting of the play, the mise en scine^ as we should 
call it, has much to do with its popularity and success. 

*'In the Country of the Cork-Oak,'* gives an account 

of a journey through Algeria. 

(25 April): ''The Conversion of Pascal," by Henri Bre- 
mond, fixes the night of the twenty- first of November 
as the time when Pascal abandoned the God of philosoph- 
ical demonstration, and began to believe in the living 
God dwelling in the heart.— -Am^d^e Britsch, writing on 
" Democracy in the East," cites the case of the Greek na- 
tion. Patriotism, he says, appears to be a veritable re- 
ligion with them and they possess a supreme faith in the 
future of their country. ''Studies in Religious History," 
by Pierre de la Gorce, treats of the Ecclesiastical Oath 
of 1 791. The opinion of Pius VI. that, for the greater 
part, the clergy were faithful, will, he says, undoubtedly 
be the verdict of history.—" In Case of War " exposes 
the unprotected condition of Cherbourg from the land, 
and dwells upon the disastrous results likely to follow 
an invasion from this quarter. 
Studes (5 April) : M. Moisant writes on " Responsibility." To 
institute a comparison between the Rationalistic and 
Christian notions of responsibility, he cites at length the 
views of many rationalists, from Voltaire and George 
Eliot to Anatole France. He seems to question whether 
they considered man as a responsible being— —^f/A#i^j, 
a recent work on the history of religion, is criticized 
by L. de Grandmaison, who claims that the author, M. 
Reinach, is imbued with the spirit of Voltaire.-^— H. 
Lagier considers " Ramses II. to be the Persecutor of 
the Hebrews in Egypt." He exposes the various opin- 
ions generally held, but thinks that the historical facts, 
both of the Bible and the history of Egypt, point to 
the above-mentioned monarch.— -P. Schoener criticizes 
some of the statements of M. Prunel regarding the first 



Digitized by 



Google 



414 FOREIGN PERIODICALS [June, 

seminaries of France ; St. Nicholas was the real diocesan 
seminary, he maintains, though St Magloire bore the 
name. 

(20 April): Treats of ''Joan of Arc" under the follow- 
ing captions : '' Her Beatification/' by Mgr. de Cabri^res, 
Bishop of Montpellier.— — ''The Psychology of Her 
Case/' by M. Henri Joly.— — " Her Status in English 
Opinion," judged from the viewpoint of Shakespeare and 
Andrew Lang.—— "Her Position in French Art of the 
Nineteenth Century," an illustrated article by M. de 

Forceville. "The Joan of M. Anatole France," by 

Jean-Bapt. Ayrolcs.— — " At Poitiers," a play in verse 
by M. Joseph Boub^e. 

Revue du Mende Catholique (i April): "St. Francis of Assisi," 
a panegyric delivered at Versailles by R. P. Constant, 

O.P. M. Sicard furnishes another installment of "The 

French Clergy Before and Since the Concordat of 1801." 
— ^In " The Venerable Mother Mary of the Incarna- 
tion," Eugene Griselle supplies some incidents in the 
life of the first Superioress of the Ursulines of Quebec. 

"Who Will Regenerate France?" asks M. Romette. 

If it is not condemned to perish as did the Byzantine 
Empire, if it is ever destined to exercise again the in- 
fluence it once exerted on Europe and the whole world, 
then it must be regenerated, and regenerated by the 
Church, the bishops, the clergy^ the laity, each of whom 
jnust play his part. 

(15 April): Gives the "History of the Monastery of 
Marmontier." The opening chapters deal with it as it 
appeared in the time ot St. Martin. It was called the 
monastery of the Bishop, but after the death of the 

saint it became known as Majus monasterium. "The 

Spanish Apologists of the Nineteenth Century" ex- 
poses the life of Jean Don Cortes who, M. P. At says, 
was distinguished from all the writers of his race by 
basing his synthesis on theology.— —Abb^ P. Barret 
brings his article on "The Restoration of the Eccle- 
siastical Chant " to a close. He pleads for the use of 
the Latin tongue in the Liturgy as opposed to a bar- 
barous velapuk or espiranio. 

Revue Pratique d^ Apologitique (i April): "The Apostolate of 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909. J Foreign Periodicals 415 

Mercy '' is, J. Guibert says, founded upon our Lord 
Himself, Who went about doing good. The sick and the 
poor are its chief objects, but it also extends to all our 
fellowmen and means the cultivation of the social spirit. 
—^Wherein, asks A. de Poulpiquet, O.P., in "The 
Argument for the Martyrs/' lay the perfection of their 
virtue of endurance? It is to be found in certain dis- 
positions of the soul, and demands a special interposition 
of God to explain it— ^" Jeanne d'Arc in History," by 
Ph.-H. Dunand, is a criticism of the methods employed 
by MM. Thalamas and A. France. The writer claims 
that they are faithful imitators of their master, Pierre 
Cauchon, and just as inaccurate and dishonest as he. 
—^''Artificial Parthenogenisis." Notwithstanding, says 
A. Briot, the recent claim advanced by M. Delage, that 
he had developed sea-urchins by artificial means, man 
is still as far as ever from the secret of life. The writer 
points out that in many forms of lower animal life the 
female alone is necessary for production. 
Revue Th§miste (April): M. Farges writes upon "The Funda- 
mental Error of the New Philosophy." He associates 
M. Le Roy with Hegel, declaring that both deny the 
basic principle of philosophy, namely, that of identity 
and contradiction.^-^This number begins a series of ar- 
ticles from the pen of R. P. Cazes, O.P., upon "Mod- 
ernism." He treats of the decree Lamentabili and the 
encyclical Pascendi^ and quotes a number of theologians 
upon the question of the infallibility of these pronounce- 
ments. "The Authentic Works of St. Thomas," as 

furnished by the official catalogue, are presented by P. 
Mandonnet, O.P. They fall into three divisions. The 
first section comprises the works known as Opuscula ; 
the great classic treatises form the second; while the 
third contains lectures delivered by him, afterwards writ- 
ten out at length by his auditors.— ^" The Philosophy 
of Being and Ontologism " is a reply by R. Garrigon- 
Lagrange, O.P., to the Rivista Rosminiana^ which iden- 
tified St Thomas' doctrine of Being with that of Ros. 
mini. This the writer repudiates, showing bow Rosmini's 
error as to the nature of Being led to the condemnation 
of his sixteen propositions. 



Digitized by 



Google 



4l6 FOREIGN PERIODICALS [June, 

Revue Binidiciine (April): Gives an account of ''Three New 
Fragments of the Ancient Latin Version of the Prophets.'' 
They are found at the end of the manuscript of Sulpice- 
S^v&re. They apparently belong to the first half of the 
eighth century, and consist of portions of Isaias and 
Jeremias.— ^In ''An Unpublished Pelagian Treatise of 
the Fifth Century/' D. G. Morin refers to a work en- 
titled : De Induratiane Cordis Pharaonis^ commonly at- 
tributed to St. Jerome, and which, lost for one thousand 
years, has been recovered, in substance at least, in sev- 
eral manuscripts.-— " The Trial and Disgrace of the 
Carafa," by D. R. Ancel, gives the history of the pro- 
ceedings which resulted in the condemnation and execu- 
tion of the Cardinal and his three companions on charges 
involving murder, heresy, and political intrigue. 

La Scuola Cmttolica (April): G. Petazzi, S.J., explains, under 
the title " Credibility and Faith," the di£ference between 
the assent of the mind to the thing revealed because of 
the " evidence of credibility " and the assent to the thing 
revealed in se, which, according to St Thomas, is not 

possible without the influx of the will. "Judas Isca- 

riot" as he is portrayed by modern writers; as he 
appears in legend, in the apocryphal Gospels, and in 
tradition, is the subject of an article by D. Bergamaschi. 

B. Ricci continues the discussion about " Mahomet- 

anism"; the causes of its rapid propagation and its 
conquests. He shows that it had its own sects and 
heresies, Spinoza, Gibbon, and the rationalists to the con- 
trary notwithstanding. Dr. Surbled shows the inti- 
mate connection between the " Intelligence, Memory, and 

Language." "The Calabrian-Sicilian Earthquake," and 

"The Myths about Hell in Homer," are continued. 

Razdn y Fe (April) : R. Ruiz Amado begins a series of articles 
on "Patriotism," which he defines as love for one's 

fatherland. "The Human Element in History" is 

continued by E. Portillo. He treats of Pope Leo's 
canons of historical writing and of his opening of the 

Vatican archives. L. Murillo continues "The Holy 

See and the Book of Isaias." He treats of the prophet's 
epoch and examines the views for the authenticity of 
the work, replying to arguments agaicst the traditional 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Foreign periodicals 417 

view. U. Minteguiaga answers the statement ''The 

State is Incompetent to Repress Ideas/' by asking: 
'* What else did the State do when it overthrew the 
Catholic orders ? *' and '' How far should it allow attacks 

upon the family, morality, and the like?" "The 

Economic Importance of the Rai£feisen's System ** of 
rural banks is criticized by N. Noguer. Some treat- 
ises on dogmatic theology call forth A. P^rez Goyema's 

article on "The Grace of Christ/ '"Twelve Years of 

Radio-Activity/' " Sacred Music/' by Jos^ Alfonso. 

EspaHa y AnUrica (i April): "The Exegetical System of St 
Thomas Aquinas" has not been often discussed; the 
exegesis of his day, his own principles, and a brief ap- 
plication are treated by P. C. Fernandez.— ^P. de Velilla 
treats the " Commercial Importance of China," and asks 
why Spain is not getting her share of this trade.— 
"Christian Humility/' which the .Si^mma defines as "the 
subjection of man to God," is defended from the charge 

of immorality by P. M. V^lez. P. E. Negrete highly 

recommends Pere Sortais' book on The Esthetic Ideas of 
St. Augustine^ but defends the thesis that "Beauty is 

the Splendor of Order." Senor Moret's speech on 

the "Secularization of Social Functions," based on the 
doctrine of the unlimited authority of the State, is at- 
tacked by P. A. de los Bueis. 



The death of Peter Fenelon Collier has removed one who 
was not only a worthy example of the progressive Irish immi- 
grant, but also one who, as a Catholic, did much in his day 
for the cause of good literature, and interested himself in a 
quiet, yet none the less effective, way in worthy charities. His 
paper, Colliet^s Weekly^ has done and is doing heroic work in 
the cause of honesty and moral cleanliness in public life, in 
business, and in politics. The death of such a man must be a 
cause of regret to us all. 

VOL. LXZZIX.— 27 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



Current Events. 

There is a section of workingmen 
Franca. in France, including in their num- 

ber members of the Civil Service, 
clerks in the State Telegraph, Telephone, and other Departments, 
who describe themselves frankly as revolutionists, and as opposed 
to parliamentary government, declaring it to be a mockery, 
delusion, and snare. They aim at nothing less than the 
reorganization of society upon a new basis. They are not 
Socialists, for they do not wish the State to have supreme 
control; nor are they anarchists, for they wish the individual 
to be under control. Their hoped-for unit of control is, of the 
individual, the trade or professional organization to which he 
belongs, and o( the State as a whole the confederation of these 
unions is to be the master. The means by which they hope to 
effect these changes is a general strike ; the movement itself is 
called the ''syndicalist" movement. 

Closely allied with these, and haying the same object in 
view, are others who differ from them as to the means by which 
that object is to be secured. The new organization of society, 
for which both alike are struggling, the more moderate section 
of workingmen hope to secure by legitimate, parliamentary ac- 
tion. On the occasion of the strike, at the beginning of April 
last, the Chamber of Deputies refused by the vote of a laige 
majority to allow civil servants the right to strike. This they 
did on the ground that the injury which a strike would do to 
the country was so great, that its servants were bound, for the 
good of the country, to sacrifice themselves if necessary. This 
view of the subject did not commend itself to the minds of 
the more extreme. In fact, this vote was in direct conflict 
with the means by which they hoped to secure their ultimate 
object This was the cause of the recent troubles which have, 
it is said, brought France to the verge of a change in its fotm 
of government; at least extreme parties have had such hopes. 
This is the misfortune of France. A country that is so unsettled 
that fundamental changes may be looked for almost any day, 
and which ranks among its citizens those who are ready to pro- 
mote such changes, has an all too precarious existence. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current Events 419 

The failure of the e£Forts which were made to bring about 
a general strike makes it fairly clear that the movement is not 
so serious as the talk made about it would indicate. The gov- 
ernment stood firm and took adequate measures for every event- 
uality. The Chamber ^supported the government. In conse- 
quence, the renewed attempt to paralyze the activities of the 
country has failed. The fact is that not more than one-tenth 
of the workingmen of France are included within the trade 
organizations ; and that of this one-tenth not all are extremists. 
The great bulk of the working population is outside of all the 
organizations, and consists of hard-working, honest laborers, 
chiefly agricultural laborers. Their voice is not heard in the 
streets, nor do the newspapers record their thoughts. But they 
find a way to make their wishes known and to the doing of their 
will the powers that be must bend, under the penalty of 
ceasing to be powers. The maintenance of the existing order 
— so far as it deserves to be maintained— is rendered compar- 
atively easy when its assailants have the courage or the effrontery 
to give public expression to such sentiments as those of one 
of the leaders of the syndicalist movement— M. Yvetot: ''We 
workmen will have none of these little fatherlands. Our coun- 
try is the international world, and let me tell the Post Office 
employis that their English comrades are prepared, if necessary, 
to destroy (sab^ter) the incoming French mails." 

This extreme movement, as it has a cause, so it also has a 
use. The cause of the adhesion to it of civil servants is to be 
found, in part at least, in the fact that favoritism has for many 
years entered into the public service, that is to say, it has 
not been the merits of a candidate for promotion which have 
been considered, but the influence which he could bring to bear, 
perhaps even financial influence. Members of Parliament have 
been guilty of these corrupt methods to such an extent that 
Parliamentary government itself is being condemned and French- 
men are not wanting who are looking for a savior of society. 

The use, of course, to which this agitation should be put is 
to serve as a warning^to the government and to Parliament to 
remove abuses. So far as the government is concerned, it 
seems probable that it will learn this lesson and be both firm 
and tolerant. Its enemies, as well as the enemies of the ex- 
isting form of government, wish to drive it on to the measures 



Digitized by 



Google 



420 Current Events [June, 

of repression which are characteristic of former regimes. The 
problem set before the government is how, on the one hand, 
to maintain due liberty of action for the workingmen, and, on 
the other, to save the country from anarchy. 

The position taken by the government, in view of the pres- 
ent situation, is clearly indicated by the Premier in a recent 
speech. All their efforts, he said, would be by means of laws 
framed in the spirit of liberty to give to every French citizen 
the means of accomplishing his own emancipation. The gov- 
ernment would have nothing to do with those who feared to 
tell the people the truth. There might be flatterers of democ- 
racy as mean as those of monarchy, persons ready to hand 
over the rights of the country to demagogues. With these 
they would have nothing to do. Their design was that the 
democracy should learn self-discipline in order to practise self- 
government. They rejected the notion that the only choice was 
between a policy of arbitrary reaction and the abandonment of 
the primary duties of government. It was in this spirit that 
the government faced the recent difEculties, and it has so far 
met with an unexpected success. The apprehended disturb- 
ances looked for on May Day did not take place, and the re- 
newed attempt to bring about a general strike has failed. 
Public opinion gives its full support to the government. 

That things are not as they ought to be in France the evils 
which have been .brought to light in yet [another department 
of the service of the State render evident. A few months ago 
an Admiral was relieved of his command for having discussed 
in public some of the defects which he had found; but now 
that more money has had to be spent for naval purposes, on 
the demand of the new Secretary for Marine Affairs, the 
Chamber of Deputies insisted upon having a Commission ap- 
pointed for ascertaining definitely the actual state of things. 
This commission has brought to light the fact that things are 
much worse than was imagined. Vital defects have been found 
in some of the newest battleships; there are workshops and 
laboratories which are dilapidated and antiquated ; many of the 
auxiliary boats are declared to be utterly useless; in some 
cases the necessary ammunition for firing a gun is wanting, and 
in other cases the guns themselves cannot be fired or are un- 
suited to the ships in which they are placed. Nearly every 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current Events 421 

class of vessel in the navy has been found wanting in some 
respect. Contractors for all kinds of supplies have been al- 
lowed to defraud the State. Some of the ports are inadequate- 
ly defended. Worst of all, there has been a series of acts of 
insubordination among the men» which seems to indicate that 
the discipline, so all-essential for success in warfare, has been 
undermined. 

A leading politician, a member of the Commission, M. 
Doumer, sums up the situation in the assertion that the fleet 
is without men, without guns, and without projectiles; and 
characterizes the present position as a debdcle. These facts 
have been disclosed by the evidence brought before the Com- 
mission before it had made its report There may be some 
degree of exaggeration in the effect produced by a bare enu- 
meration; but it seems certain from a long series ol events, 
accidents and explosions, that, although the army is with reason 
believed to be in perfect order, the navy is in a very different 
state. 

There has been a long struggle 
Germany. over the proposals of the govern- 

ment for the raising of the 125 
millions of additional annual taxation. This struggle has led 
to friction between the group of parties banded together 
against the Catholic Centre and their from time-to time allies, 
the Social Democrats. This group was formed on what is 
called a national policy, that is to say, the policy to be adopted 
in relation to foreign powers and in the hope that no internal 
questions would become urgent. This hope, however, has been 
frustrated by the necessity of finding additional ways and 
means, a matter on which the allies are deeply divided. All 
are agreed in the desire to throw the burden off their own 
shoulders, but they all differ as to who is to bear the burden. 
The result has been that Conservatives within the bloc have al- 
lied themselves in certain proposals with its enemies, the Cen- 
tre, endangering the very existence of the alliance, and that 
rumors have been widely spread of the resignation of Prince 
Billow or of a dissolution of the Reichstag. Hopes, however, 
are entertained that the Radicals and National Liberals may 
yield, especially as the present generation of Radicals is quite 



Digitized by 



Google 



422 Current Events [June, 

different in this respect from the foregoing. It is time that 
an agreement was reached , for the proposals made by the gov- 
ernment have been under discussion many months. 

The present year has not proved an exception to what has 
in recent years become the rule. Both in the Empire and in 
Prussia there is a large deficit and no less a sum than 200 
millions has to be raised by loan. Experts say that this does 
not indicate that the state of things is as bad as it looks, for 
the resources of the Empire are very great, and that, in com- 
parison with many other countries, debt and taxation are not 
high. Doubtless this is true, but it cannot be satisfactory to 
the friends of Germany that the country cannot pay its yearly 
expenses, and it makes them ask whether it would not be well 
to lay aside schemes which entail such a burden. The terms on 
which the new loans are issued show that the financial position 
is looked upon as worse by the keen judges, who back their 
judgment by subscribing to loans. About four per cent has 
now to be paid, whereas in 1895 German Threes stood at only 
a small fraction under par. 

Vienna has been exulting in the 
Austria-Hungary. only success of the Dual Monarchy 

for half a century; but it may be 
doubtful whether the success is as great as it appears. The 
Provinces have, indeed, been annexed, the Servians have been 
thwarted, but confidence has been destroyed. Austria was 
looked upon as, although unfortunate, conservative and reliable. 
She now shares with her neighbor the doubtful glory which 
follows upon successful aggression. She, too, is now propos- 
ing to become a naval power; four Dreadnoughts are to be 
constructed as the nucleus of a future fleet. But where the 
money is to come from it is hard to see; for Austria already 
carries a weight of taxation which is almost overwhelming. 
The wish to endow the annexed Provinces with a constitution, 
the strength of which led Austria (so it was said) to take the 
steps which have caused so much trouble, has so far led to no 
actual results; but perhaps it is too soon to carry it out. It 
is to be hoped that it will not be so long deferred as has been 
the universal suffrage for which Dr. Wekerle's Coalition Cabi- 
net took office three years ago. Although this was the object 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current events 423 

for which it came into existence, it has done no more to re- 
alize it than to lay before Parliament a bill so unfair and unjust 
to all the races in Hungary, except the Magyar, that it seems 
to hare been thought unworthy even of discussion. And so, 
on a mere technics question, Dr. Wekerle has resigned, moral 
bankruptcy having ensued because the Cabinet retained office 
without fulfilling the obligations of office. The task is thrown 
upon the Emperor- King, Francis Joseph, of forming a new 
Cabinet under very complicated conditions, in an atmosphere 
of insincerity caused by the almost avowed duplicity of the lead- 
ing politicians. The fact that the strongest party is one whose 
principal object is to sever every connection of Hungary with 
Austria, except that of the Emperor's personal sovereignty 
over both, adds to the difficulty of the Emperor's task. 

The annexation has already brought forth fruit in causing 
a renewal of the bickerings which not long ago were chronic 
between Austria and Hungary. Hungarian financiers have re- 
ceived a concession from the administrator of the Provinces 
which the Austrian government declares to be usurious exploi- 
tation of the Bosnia peasants and an infringement of the rights 
of the Diet which is to be, and it has had to take steps to neu- 
tralize the concessions, steps which have displeased the Hunga- 
rians. 

This is in all likelihood only the beginning of woes; for 
the question has to be settled to which of the two — Austria 
or Hungary — ^the annexed Provinces are to be assigned, and if 
they are to be divided, in what way. Then may come a clash. 



Although in some respects Italy 
Italy. has met with an unlooked-for 

measure of prosperity, in others 
there has been a retrograde movement. This is especially true 
of the army and of the military defences in general. The latter 
have been neglected to so great an extent as to have made 
the voice of Italy powerless in the recent crisis. The experi- 
ment was tried a few months ago of appointing for the first 
time a civilian as Minister of War. It was hoped that he 
might prove more capable of putting affairs upon a business- 
like footing than military men had been able to do. The ex- 



Digitized by 



Google 



424 Current Events [June, 

periment, however, does not seem to hare succeeded ; for after 
a short time Signer Casana resigned and another general was 
appointed as Minister of War. The announcement has recently 
been made that the new Minister has made a plan for the 
much-needed reforms which has met with the approval of the 
rest of the Cabinet. 

The little kingdom of the Nether- 
Holland, lands, where ordered liberty has 

long been established, affords a 
pleasing contrast to the state of things to which absolutism 
has brought the Turkish Empire. The birth of an heir to the 
throne was not merely hailed with delight when it took place, 
but for months before elaborate preparations were made. Pres- 
ents were showered from all sides upon the Queen. Women 
and mothers in all parts of the country, and even Dutch women 
residing abroad, gave their savings and their labor to the prep- 
aration of gifts for the outfit of the royal child. So numerous 
were these presents that a public exhibition of them was held. 
So eager were the people for the news that on the slightest 
rumor the decorations which had been prepared were displayed 
prematurely. The close union which exists between the crown 
and the people was shown in many striking ways. The child 
of the queen was also the child of the people. Another reason 
there was for the anxiety manifested for the birth of an heir. 
In the event of the Queen regnant dying without offspring the 
crown would pass to the Grand Duke of Saxe- Weimar, and 
consequently would be brought more closely within the sphere 
of German influence. This would not be relished by the Dutch, 
whose affection to their own nationality is as strong as that of 
any people in the world. 

The glorifiers ef our own times 
Turkey. often write and speak as if op- 

pression and misrule had passed 
away and had become things of the past; whereas there are 
still large tracts of the earth's surface the inhabitants of which 
groan under evils as great as have ever been suffered. No 
little alleviation of the sadness this truth should cause is the 
fact that one of the worst rulers which the world ever had 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current Events 425 

has met with some, at least, of his deserts in this life, and 
has witnessed the failure of all his plans and the frustration 
of all his hopes. A complete and final failure we trust that it 
will prove; but it is impossible to be certain, for a people 
which has so long permitted itself to be dominated by such a 
ruler may prove to be completely demoralized and incapable 
of rising to better things. But this must be left for the future 
to reveal. 

How far Mohammedanism is compatible with a constitu- 
tional form of government is a disputed point; but, even if 
absolute rule is its only true expression, a legitimate way of 
eseape is permitted when things become intolerable, for the 
ruler may be deposed by the religious authority for the time 
being. This was what was done in the case of Abdul Hamid. 
A hypothetical case was laid before the Sheikh^ul- Islam. He 
was asked whether an Imam of the Moslems who removes and 
causes to be removed from a book of the Sheriat (that is, the 
Sacred Law) certain questions of the law of the Sheriat, and 
prevents the circulation of the aforesaid book, and causes it to 
be burned and destroyed by fire; who wrongfully expends the 
public treasures; who slays and imprisons the persons of his 
subjects; who perjures himself; who wilfully provokes troubles 
which throw affairs into confusion; may be forced to abdicate 
or may be deposed when his subjects have effected the destruc- 
tion of his despotism, and peace and concord can only be. se- 
cured by one or other of the two methods. To this case the 
Sheikh replied: 'Mt is permitted''; and what is called a Fetva 
to that effect was at once issued, and within a few hours Ab- 
dul Hamid had left the city on his way to Salonika, the head- 
quarters of the Committee of Union and Progress. Many Sul- 
tans have shared the same fate; in fact, his two immediate 
predecessors were forced to abdicate by Abdul Hamid himself. 

Our pages shall not be sullied by an attempt to particular- 
ize the crimes of which the deposed Sultan was guilty. The 
root and spring of them all may be mentioned. In his lust for 
power he centralized every species of it in his own hands. He 
gave orders, and saw to it, through the agency of some 20,000 
spies, that those orders were obeyed, that nothing should be 
done throughout the whole extent of his dominions except on 
his initiative; he made the Sublime Porte, which has had at 



Digitized by 



Google 



426 Current Events [June, 

least a consultative voice in the management of affairs, the 
merest tool of his own unbridled will. 

His successor, Mahomed V., on acceding to the throne, has 
made declarations of quite a different character. While recog- 
nizing the Will of the Eternal as the ultimate source of his 
accession, and legitimate descent as its condition, its immediate 
basis were the stipulations of the Constitution and the unani- 
mous wish of the whole Ottoman people. The aim of his 
government, he declares, will always be to guarantee liberty and 
equality to all his subjects. It is to the Constitution, and to 
the fidelity of all to its prescriptions, that he looks for success. 
Disorders are to be suppressed, the administration of justice and 
finance to be improved, and schools are to be opened in all the 
provinces. This is an admirable programme. Whether it will 
be realized depends, however, less upon the good will of the new 
Sultan than upon the good will of those who are the actual pos- 
sessors of power. At present it cannot be doubted that all power 
is in the hands of the army. In fact, all that has been done 
from the beginning has been done by means of the army; 
the revolution of July last, the attempted counter-revolution of 
April, and its defeat within the last few weeks. Military rule 
is, of course, the least desirable of all; is almost as bad, in 
fact, as anarchy or despotism; but it may be necessary in an 
emergency; and it seems probable that this emergency may 
last, for some time in Turkey. In the course of the recent 
occurrences, every other element of the community proved it- 
self untrustworthy. The members of Parliament hid themselves 
or ran away; even those members of the Committee of Union and 
Progress who were in Constantinople yielded to the storm ; the 
people, so far as they were represented by the inhabitants of the 
capital, applauded indiscriminately those who were in the as- 
cendant for the time being. The army alone stood faithful to 
the Constitution. And if we look to the Asiatic provinces, the 
necessity for a strong controlling power is quite evident. At 
the time the Constitution was restored even in these provinces 
there was every kind of demonstration of joy and satisfaction; 
all the different races fraternized in a way never known before. 
But when the recent attempt was made to overturn the Con- 
stitution, the Turks in many places, without the slightest provo- 
cation, proceeded to massacre the Christians; in one place no 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current Events 427 

less than 25,000 were slain. The necessity therefore, for mili* 
tary rule seems only too plain. 

The Shah has at last yielded to 
Persia. the representations of Russia and 

Great Britain, and has summoned 
a new Parliament which is to meet in July next; he is con- 
vinced, he says, that a Constitution is the only means of 
bringing disorder to an end. This conviction was not the fruit 
of his own thought, but was forced upon him by the fact that 
Russia had sent troops to Tabriz, that Great Britain had landed 
sailors at the other extremity of his dominions, while in half a 
dozen places rebellion had begun. Even the advocates of a 
Constitution had always declared that they would prefer to 
suffer the worst of evils from the worst of governments than 
be delivered by foreign intervention. The intervention, how- 
ever, has taken place, and in fact was forced upon the two 
Powers in defence of their own interests and to protect the 
lives of their subjects. It will, we believe, be brought to an 
end when the necessity for it ceases and the Persians will be 
allowed to work out their own salvation. 



Digitized by 



Google 



THE COLUMBIAN READING UNION. 

FROM Jane 27 to September lo, a period of eleven weeks, the Catholic 
Summer-School will present a varied programme of university extension 
studies at Cliff Haven, on Lake Champlain, N. Y. Prominence is given to 
the historical subjects relating to the Tercentenary Celebration of Samuel 
Champlain's first voyage through the lake which bears his name. The re- 
port of the committee on lectures, presented by the Rev. Thomas McMillan, 
C.S.P., contains the following announcements: 

First Week^ June 28-Jufy 2. — Illustrated lectures on Switzerland, In- 
dia, Spain, and the City of Washington, by Professor C, H. French, Cleve- 
land, Ohio. 

Second Weefcf July j-p. — Programme of Tercentenary Commission. 

July 7. — Reception to the President of the United States and members 
of his Cabinet, Address of introduction by Governor Hughes. 

Two evening lectures, July ^-9, assigned for Rev. Matthew C. Gleeson, 
Chaplain U. S. N., S. S. Connecticut^ describing the voyage of the American 
Fleet around the world« 

Third Week, July j^/d.— -Morning Round Table Talks, by Martha 
Moore Avery, Boston. Subject : Christian Civilization and Its Foes. 

Four evening lectures assigned to the Rev. Charles Warren Currier, 
Washington, D. C. The subjects will deal with Champlain's Voyage, and 
review the history of the battles fought by the French against the Indians and 
England* 

Fourth Week, July ig-2j. — ^Morning lectures by the Rev. John H. 
O'Rourke, S. J., New York City : Subject: The Church as a Bulwark of 
the Republic. 

Tviro evening violin recitals by Robert Burkholder, New York City. 

Two harp recitals by Loretta De Lone, New York City. 

Fifth Week, July 26-30. — Morning lectures by the Rev. James J. Fox, 
D.D. (Catholic University). Subject: The Immortality of the Soul as 
Manifested in the Religious Convictions of the Great Nations of the Ancient 
World. 

Evening lectures by Professor Thomas McTieman, New York City. 
Subject : Webster and Lincoln. 

Lectures by the Rev. Thomas J. Campbell, S.J. Subject: Early Mis- 
sionaries of the Champlain Valley. 

Sixth Week, August 2-6. — Morning lectures by the Rev. Robert 
Swickerath, S.J., Holy Cross College, Worcester, Mass. Subject: The 
Reformation, and Its Influence on Education. 

Four evening song recitals by Marie A. Zeckwer, Philadelphia. 

Seventh Week, August g-ij, — Morning lectures by Professor James C. 
Monaghan, Principal of the Stuyvesant Evening Trade School, New York 
City. Subject: Heroic Types of Catholic Womanhood. Reading Circle 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909-] THE Columbian Reading Union 429 

Conference, Monday, August 9, 10: 30 A. M* Reading Circle Day, Tuesday, 
August 10, 10: 30 A. M. 

Erening recitals by Edward Abner Thompson, P.S., Boston. 

Two lectures by the Rev. John J. Burke, C.S.P., Editor of The Catho- 
lic World, New York City. Subject : The Need and the Opportunities of 
the Catholic Press. .(August X2-13.) 

Eighth Weekf August 16-20, — Morning lectures by Dr. James J. Walsh, 
LL.D., Fordham University. Subject: Modern ''Isms." i* Hypnotism; 
2. T-elepathy; 3. Spiritism; 4. Christian Science ; 5. Psychotherapy. 

Evening lectures : Catholics in the American Revolution, by the Rev. 
Thomas P. Phelan, New York State Chaplain of the Knights of Columbus. 
Missionary Labors of the Oblates of Mary Immaculate Among the Indian 
Tribes of Canada, by the V. Rev. Michael F. Fallon, O.M.L, Buffalo, N. Y. 

Ninth Wukf August 2^-27, — Morning lectures by Professor Arthur F. J» 
Remy, Ph.D., Columbia University. Subject : Studies in German Literature. 

Evenings: Selected readings by Sophia G. Maley, Philadelphia. Two 
lectures on the Fighters in the Champlain Valley, the Heroes of Two Wars 
with England, by Dr. John G. Coyle, New York City. 

Tenth Week^ August ^oSept. j. — Morning lectures by the Rt. Rev. 
Monsignor McMahon, D.D., President of the Catholic Summer-School, in 
collaboration with the Rev. William J. White, D.D., Supervisor of Catholic 
Charities, Diocese of Brooklyn. General Subject : Problems of Dependency 
with Reference to Preventive and Constructive Methods of Relief in Large 
Cities. 

Four evening song recitals by Kathrine McGuckin Leigo, Philadelphia. 

Eleventh Week^ Sept. 6-10. — Four evenings assigned to Denis A. Mc- 
Carthy, Associate Editor of the Sacred Heart Review^ East Cambridge, 
Mass. September 6, Irish Wit and Humor ; September 7, Reading of His 
Own Poems; September 9, An Hour of Irish Poetry; September 10, Speci- 
mens of Irish Folklore. 

• • • 

Apropos of the Champlain Tercentenary Celebration, we give the follow- 
ing list of reference books relating to Lake Champlain and its historical 
associations. 

Documentary History of the Campaign upon the Niagara Frontier^ 
1812-1814. Cruikshank. 7 small volumes. 

Field Book of the War of 1812, Pictorial. By Benson J. Lossing. Very 
readable and interesting. 

Naval War of 18 12. By Theodore Roosevelt* From original official 
documents. Considered very accurate. 

Sea Power in its Relations to the War of 1812. A. T. Mahan. 

War of 181 2. By Rossiter Johnson. A good condensed story of the wan 

Naval Actions of the War of 181 2. By James Barnes. Well told 
sketches, illustrated in color by Carlton T. Chapman. 

Publications of Vermont Historical Society. 

Publications of New York State Historian. 

Life of Commodore Macdonough. By his grandson, Rodney Macdonough , 
No. 5 Branheld Street, Boston. 



Digitized by 



Google 



430 THE Columbian Reading Union [June, 

Voyages of Champlain, Translation of C. P. Otis. 

History of the Canadian People. By G. Bryce. 

Pioneers ef France in the New World. By F. Parkman. 

Champlain, the Founder of New France. By £. A. Diz. 1903. 

History of the Indian Tribes. By P. L. McKenny and J. Hall. 

Missions Among the Indians. By J. Gilmary Shea. 

The Jesuit Relations. 

History of Lake Champlain. By Peter S. Palmer. 

Life of Father Jogues. By F. Martin, S.J. 

Pioneer Priests of North America. By T. J- Campbell^ S.J. 

The Lily of the Mohawk. By £. H. Walworth. 

The Master Motive: A Tale of the days of Champlain. Translated 
from the French by T. A. Gethin. 1909. 

• • • 

Dr. Hartmanh's Oratorio, the *' Seven Last Words of Christ," was pro- 
duced in Carnegie Music Hall, New York City, on May 5, tor the first time 
in America, by the Paulist Chorister Society, of Chicago, under the direc- 
tion of the Rev. William J. Finn, C.S.P. The Oratorio was cordially re- 
ceived by the public. The society consists of one hundred and twenty-five 
men and boys, and in rendering Dr. Hartmann's composition the choir 
showed exceptional ability. Its work proved the possibilities of the trained 

boy voice. 

« * * 

Another noteworthy musical production heard in the United States for the 
first time, was ** Paradise Lost," an oratorio founded on Milton's epic poem 
and written by Theodore Dubois. The leading feature of this production was 
Mme. Kronold and her chorus of one hundred and fifty mixed voices. This 
chorus, composed of Catholic young men and women, was trained in the free 
singing classes of Mme. Kronold. 

* * * 

In the course of a short twenty-eight years, the late F. Marion Crawford 
produced at least forty novels and historical works. Since his death much 
has befittingly been written in praise of his achievements. He was an ex- 
cellent Catholic and exercised a wide influence among readers of the novel. 
He never wrote for a Catholic audience as such — financial reasons com- 
pelled him to make his work secular — ^but in a general way Marion Craw- 
ford has done Catholicism good service. He reached a large audience, and 
his occasional papers on Leo XIII. and other Catholic personages have done 
much good missionary work among non-Catholics. It is prophesied that 
his Italian novels, because of their faithfulness to Italian life, will become 
classic. At the time of his death Mr. Crawford was at work on his monu- 
mental History of Rome^ but it is feared that the fragmentary notes for this 
work are not sufficiently complete to allow it to be finished by another hand* 
Mr. Crawford was a loyal convert to the Faith. May he rest in peace. 

* « « 

Preaching at Canterbury Cathedral, Canon Mason, the Vice-Dean, made 
a reference to Mr. Swinburne and to the appreciation which appeared in Ths 
Times. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909*] IHE Columbian Reading Union 431 

He said that he felt it necessary to raise a protest against the way in 
which Swinburne had been spoken of> at least in some of the papers. 
** Poetry^" said one great paper^ which he gladly acknowledged to be usually 
on the side of that which was morally right, '^ is never a corrupting in- 
fluence, and no increase in sexual immorality . • • can be laid at the 
door of Swinburne's poetry. An artist of any kind suffers from his school 
. • • and Swinburne is not to be blamed because feebler persons than he 
have imitated his sentiments and parodied his inimitable manner." It mat- 
tered comparatively little what influence Swinburne might have had upon his 
school of imitators. Not many people read the works of minor poets> and 
the mischief that they did soon died out ; but his influence upon the general 
leading-publicy who had no idea of writing poetry themselves, was a very dif- 
ferent thing. It was a new doctrine, and one strenuously to be resisted, that 
men of great poetical genius were not responsible for the use that they made 
of their powers. Who was that article-writer who knew that poetry was 
never a corrupting influence? How could he tell that no increase of sexual 
immorality could be laid at the door of Swinburne's poetry ? It required but 
little knowledge of souls to know that there was no mere deadly poison than 
the portrayal of corrupt passion in glowing and artistic language. It was 
difficult to speak of those things, even for the purpose of warning, without do- 
ing more harm than good ; but when they were spoken of, not only without 
abhorrence, but with consent and approval and delight and with great literary 
skill, there was no more corrupt influence in the word. He did not judge of 
the man. Far be it from him to do so. He might have been much better 
than his poetry. He trusted that he was ; but certainly much lustral water 
and the most precious of all precious blood were needed to do away with the 
pollution which Swinburne's poetry introduced into English literature. 



Digitized by 



Google 



BOOKS RECEIVED. 

P. J. Kbnbdt & Sons, New York: 

The Sodalisfs Imiiatum of Christ, Bv Father Elder Mullan, S J. Pp. 56!. Price 75 
cents. In the CrucibU, By Isabel Cecilia WiUiams. Pp. 177. Price 85 cents. 

Chaslbs Scbibnbb's Sons. New York: 

En^loMd and thi English, By Price Collier. Pp.434* 
McMillan Company, New York: 

The White Sister, By F. Marion Crawford. Pp. 335. Price $1.50. Th4 Revival <0 
Scholastic Philosophy in the Nineteenth Century. By Joseph Louis Perrier, Ph.D. Pp. 
344. Price $1.75. 

Christian Prbss Association, New York : 

Latin Pronounced for Altar Boys, By Rev. Edw. J. Murphy. Pp. zo. Price 50 cents net, 

Nbalb Publishing Company. New York: 

When the Bugle CalUd. By Edith Tatunu Pp. I38. 
Statb Chabitibs Aid Association. New York: 

Thirty-Sixth Annual Report of [the State Charities Aid Association, November, i^. Six- 
teenth Annual Report of State Charities Atd Association to the State Commission in 
Lunacy* 

F. Wayland Smith, New York: 

Materialism and Christianity, By F. Wayland Smith. Pp. 36. Price 95 cents. ShaU 
W^ Choose Socialism f By F. Wayland Smith. Pp.86. 

Pbtbr Rbilly, Philadelphia: 

The Preachers* Protests. By Very Rev. D. I. McDermott. Pp. 58. Price 35 cents. 
Dolphin Prbss, Philadelphia: I 

Catholic Churchmen in Science, Second Series. Pp. 388. Price $z net ; 8 cents postage. | 

LiTTLB. Brown & Co., Boston, Mass.: i 

A Royal Ward. By Percy Brebner. Pp. 343. Price $1.50. The Strain of White, By | 

Ada Woodruff Andersen. Pp. 300. race $1.50. In a Mysterious Way, By Anne 
Warner. Pp. 990. Price $1.50. 

John Murphy Company, Baltimore, Md. : ^ 

Costume of Prelates of the Catholic Church. By Rt. Rev. John A. Nainfa. Pp. 193. ' 

B. Hbrdbr* St. Louis, Mo. : j 

De Personis et Rebus Rcclesiasticis in Genere, In Usum Scholarum. Edited by Dom. M. ( 

Prummer. Pp. 505. Price $a net. I 

FiTZGBRALD BOOK COMPANY, Chicago, 111. : 

Ireland and Her People. By Th«mas H. Fitzgerald. Pp. 430. Vol. L 
Lincoln Tbmperancb Prbss, Chicago, 111. : 

American Prohibition Year Booh for J^og, By Alonzo E. Wilson. Pp. 189. Price 95 
cents. 

Maybr & MiLLBR Company, Chicago, III. : 

Catechism of Christian Doctrine, By Rev. M. I. Boarmann, S.J. Pp. 60. 
Sands & Co., London, England : 

Report of the Nineteenth Eucharistic Congress, 190S* Pp. 684. 
Gabribl Bbauchbsnb bt €ib., Paris, France: 

Asserta Moralia, Par. M. Matharan, S.J. Pp. 376. Le Cantique des Cantiques. Par P. 
Jouon. Pp. 334. 

P. Lbthibllbuz, Paris, France : 

La Route Choisie. Par Marc Debrol. Pp. 351. Ames Juives* Par Stephen Coub^. 
Pp. 389. Price ifr, so. 

Librairb Critiqub, Paris, France : 

La Forme Idealistedu Sentiment Religieux. Par Marcel HAert. Pp. 160. Price 3/r. 50. 



I 



Digitized by 



Google 



]V[ake Yoat' Walls Washable. 



' ^ ' The '* Softone System '' of Wall Enameling 

can be applied to plaster or burlap walls. It 
makes them non-porous, ^erm-proof, stain* 
proof, and as washable as tiling. 

I FOR CATHOLIC IHSTITUTIOHS AHD HOMES, 

where cleanliness, health, general appear- 
ances, and economy are considered, it is the 
IDEAL wall finish. It makes kitchens, class 
rooms, dormitories, halls, etc., brighter, cleaner, 
. „ , , ^ , , and more sanitary — and does this at low cost. 

(Fac-simile of Label.) "^ 

LET US PROVE ITS USE ASD ECONOMY. 

To demonstrate that the *' Softone System" is aU we claim we offer re- 
sponsible people sufl&cient material to do a small room — free. 

Just send for the " Royal Decorator " Color Book and state size of the 

room you wish to finish at our expense. 

TBB GEBfllflN BniEHIDflN PBIHT CO., .,.»••«• «»•,„„,. 

MANUFAoruRERS. Ciiicago, - lllinois. 



TlioiWasliBisiWimgeis 

Par Institution or Family Use. 

DO PERFECT WORK. 

Wash everything— dainty fabrics as well' 

as woolen blankets* 
The Electric Machines are favorites 

where current is available. 
The Gas or Gasoline Engine Machines 

for city gas, natural gas, or gasoline. . 
The Bail-Bearing Hand Machines are 

the easiest running and most efficient ; 

manufactured, i 

Fully Gnaranteed. i 

SENT FREE ON FOUR WEEKS' TRIAL ^ 

1 Tell us your needs. Write for prices and Booklet i. J 

/ HURLEY MACHINE COMPANY, 

161467 8. Jefferson St., 2»07 Flat Iron Ballding:, j 
CUICAttO. NEW TOBK. i 

J 



^d^' 



Digitized by 



Google 



JULY 1909 



THE 




atholie^rld 



A Progninme of Social Befonn by LegiBUttioa John A. Ryan, D.D: 
Dante and His Celtic Frecnriors Edmund G. Gardner 



Her Mother's Daughter 

The Wonders of Lonrdes 

The Small and Harrow House ^ 

The Honrs of Oar Lady 

Catholic Uteratnre in Public Libraries 

Pre-Tractarian Oxford 



Katharine Tynan 

/. Bricout 

Pamela Gage 

Marian Nesbitt 

William Stetson Merrill 

Wilfrid Wilberforce 



The Arti iioi Shakespeare 

Hew Books--Foreign Periodicals 
Current Events 



A. W. Corpe 



Prlce-JS cental 1^3 per Year 



THE OFFICE OF THE CATHOLIC WORLD, NEW^TORK 

xao-xaa West 6otli Street 
BMAI PUl4nBHaB,nnnnBR a OCIM., nrytai Btai0,43amar«SL,8shs,.LoidoB. V 
' It Fhoist tl iM OoloaiM FnaeaiMf: ABffHUB SATABffB, Btttar 



tela' 



SffTBRSD 4T MXW YORK POST-OFFICB AS SBCOVX>-CLA38 MATTSJI* 



MY SPECIALTIES. 

Pure Virgin Olive Oil. First pressing 
of the Olive. Imported under my Eclipse 
Brand in full half-pint, pint, and quart 
bottles, and in gallon and half-gallon 
cans. Analysis by Agricultural Depart- 
ment» Wasnington, showing absolute 
purity, published in Callanan's Magazine. 

L. J. Callanan's Eclipse Brand of 
Ceylon tea eclipses all other Ceylen teas 
offered in packages in this market, in 
quality and flavor. 

There is no better tea sold in this 
country than my "41 " blend, quality and 
flavor always the same. No tea table 
complete without it. 

My "4S" Brand of Coffee 

is a blend of the choicest coffees im ported. 
It is sure to please lovers of good coffee. 
No breakfast table complete without it 
My Motto, Everything in Groceries, 
Altar Wines, and Cigars, everything of 
the Best. A visit to my permanent food 
exposition will pay you. Copy Callanan's 
Magazine and price list mailed on request. 

L. J. CALLANANy 

41 and 43 VeMy Strett, NewYorfc. 



Ask any of your friends 
Who use 



LION c^- HIM 

If it is not the best they can get at any 
price. Also if the premhams they get for 
Lion labels are not really worth while. 

Your grocer nbw has Lion Brand 
. E^porated Milk in stock, and please 
remember that there is no better Evap- 
orated Milk made in this country or any- 
where else. .. 

During April, we opened three 

Hew Premium Stores. 

The stock of premiums is larger and 
finer than ever^ 



Wisconsin Condensed lilk Co., 

91 HndMti Street, 
Xew York, 



Are you a graduate nurse ? 

Are you a member of a Nursing 
Sisterhood ? 

Are you ever called upon to nurse 
the sick ? 

If SO9 you will be the better able 
to do your duty, and will do it with 
less wear and tear to yourself, if 
you read 

THE TRAIN€D NURSE AND 
HOS PITAL REVIEW . 

a practical, working magazine for 
graduate nurses— but of value to 
all who nurse. 

(non sectarian.) 

Sample Copy Free. 

82.00 a year. 

Lakeside Publishing Co., 

II4-IK6 B. a)Btli Street, 
If ew York City. 



gitized by Google 



in answering tkese mdvertisemcnts please meniion The Catholic World 




THE 

CATHOLIC WORLD. 

Vol. LXXXIX. JULY, 1909. No. 532. 

A PROGRAMME OF SOCIAL REFORM BY LEGISLATION. 

BY JOHN A. RYAN, D.D. 

fBOUT a year ago Benjamin Kidd declared that 
the leading feature of our time is ''a movement 
of the worldft under many forms, toward a more 
organic conception of society'' (''Individualism 
and After/' being the Herbert Spencer Lecture 
at Oxford University, May 29, 1908, p. 34). In the politico- 
industrial order this movement, as Mr. Kidd sees it, is away 
from individualism, and toward Sociialism; away from voluntary 
co-operative action, and toward co-operation under the direc* 
tion of the State. Probably no competent observer of the 
present trend of things would refuse to accept this generali- 
zation. Assuming its truth, we immediately ask ourselves 
whether the tendency which it describes can or ought to be 
checked, and, if not, how far the tendency should be permitted 
to go? Few social students would admit that the movement 
can be entirely stopped, and not many would agree that it 
ought to be stopped. There remains, then, the practical ques- 
tion: Shall this movement toward a wider State intervention 
in matters industrial continue until it has embraced the full 
programme of Socialism? or shall it be confined within the 
bounds of feasible and rational social reform? At present the 
majority of Americans would adopt the latter alternative, al- 
though they would probably disagree widely concerning the 
precise content of such a programme. The following pages 
Copyright. 1909. Thb Missiomaxt Socistt of St. Paul thb Apostlb 

IN TBB STATB of NBW TORK. 
VOL. LXXXIX.*28 



Digitized by 



Google 



434 Social REFORM BY LEGISLATION [July, 

embody one statement of social reforms which the State here 
in America may advantageously and immediately begin to 
bring about. 

A reasonable programme of reform must obviously fit the 
conditions that are to be reformed. What are these condi- 
tions? What is the social problem for which a solution is 
sought through legislation ? The Socialist answers that the 
problem arises out of the private ownership of capital, and can 
be solved only through the substitution of collective ownership. 
We reject both statements as based upon unproved and un- 
provable assumptions. That the wage system is wrong, that 
the masses grow unceasingly wretched, that capital will con- 
tinue to be concentrated in fewer and fewer hands, until collec- 
tive ownership of industry becomes inevitable, that collectivism 
will bring about universal justice and universal happiness — all 
these assumptions are unwarranted by any concrete and ade- 
quate view of the facts and tendencies of our industrial life. 
We seek, therefore, some other statement of the problem. 

According to John Graham Brooks, the problem is created 
ohiefly by these conditions: first, the average laborer of to-day 
is less independent, less secure, and less favored with oppor- 
tunities for improvement than his prototype in the days before 
free land was all appropriated ; second, the inequalities of 
wealth and economic opportunity are too great and glaring; 
third, there is general discontent, owing to the decay of religion 
and the indefinite expansion of the current standards of living; 
fourth, the conviction has become quite general that an immense 
number of corporations have obtained unfair and enormously 
profitable special privileges. {The Social Unrest, Chapter III.) 
Number three of these factors must be dealt with by education 
and religion, rather than by legislation. In so far as the others 
are fit subjects for legislative action, they present a twofold 
problem, that of securing to the laboring classes a reasonable 
minimum of wages and other economic goods, and that of pre- 
venting the most advantageously placed capital from obtaining 
excessive profits through excessive prices imposed upon the 
consumer. More briefly, it is the problem of regulating the 
limits, both upper and lower, of industrial opportunity. 

The laborer must be protected against unjust exploitation, 
and the entire community must be protected against extortion- 
ate prices. Outside the field of natural monoply, the principle 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Social Reform by Legislation 435 

of competition should dominate industry, but the practice of it 
should be neither unrestricted nor debasing. Its limits must 
be narrowed and its plane raised, so that there shall be a 
minimum of exploitation, whether of laborer or consumer, and 
a maximum of actual opportunity for all. On this higher level 
competition can still be abundantly active, but its benefits will 
be determined to a much greater extent than at present by 
merit, effort, and efficiency, and to a much less extent by 
chance, cunning, financial power, and special privilege. With 
decent wages and decent conditions of employment generally, 
and the power to satisfy their wants at reasonable prices, even 
the poorest classes will be enabled to live human lives, and to 
struggle effectively for still greater benefits. Deprived ot the 
power to amass great wealth through special privilege, the 
richest classes will obtain and retain their advantages through 
superiority of ability and socially useful achievement. If this 
ideal seems to the Socialist inadequate and unscientific, our 
reply is that we shall cling to it until he shall have demon- 
strated that his proposals will be practically adequate, and that 
his "science'' is not a conglomeration of pure assumptions, 
one-sided assertions, and beautiful dreams. Indeed, the aims 
and expectations just outlined may themselves be impracticable 
for a long time to come, but they at least do not imply any 
excessive trust in human nature, nor contradict the laws of 
economics or the lessons of history. 

Since the elements of the social problem have been stated 
as twofold, the legislative S9lutions may also be grouped under 
two headings. The first will comprise those measures which 
are designed to better the condition of the working classes 
directly. The goods and opportunities in question here corres- 
pond in a general way to what Sidney Webb has felicitously 
called the "National Minimum" (Cf. Industrial Democtacy ; 
and The Contemporary Review ^ June, 1908). 

I. A Legal Minimum Wage. — While the existing statistics 
do not tell us even approximately how many American work- 
ers are compelled to accept less than living wages, they show 
quite clearly that the number is astonishingly large. Some four 
years ago the writer concluded, from a careful study of all the 
available sources of information, that at least 60 per cent of 
the adult male wage-earners of the United States in city oc- 
cupations received less than $600 a year {Cf. A Living Wage^ 



Digitized by 



Google 



436 SOCIAL REFORM BY LEGISLATION [July, 

Chapter VIII.) All subsequent statistics tend to confirm this 
estimate. Perhaps the most accurate and comprehensive state- 
ment of wages ever published in this country is contained in 
Census Bulletin No. 93, " Earnings of Wage-Earners/' A study 
of its figures will justify the assertion that in 1904 (when wages 
were about as high as they have ever been in our history) 58 
per cent of the three and three-quarter million adult males in 
our manufacturing industries were getting an annual income of 
less than $600 (p. 13). The proportion is probably quite as 
high in all other non-agricultural occupations. Now, $600 per 
year is the minimum upon which a man can support a mod- 
erately sized family in any city of the United States, and it is 
insufficient in very many of the larger cities (Cf. A Living 
Wage^ Chapter VII, and the Standard of Living Among Work* 
ingmen*s Families in New York City^ by R. C. Chapin, in which 
occurs this conclusion: ''It seems safe to conclude from all 
the data we have been considering, that an income under $800 
is not enough to permit the maintenance of a normal stand- 
ard." P. 245). There are, consequently, between four and seven 
million adult males in America who receive less than the low- 
est wage required for decent family life. Owing to their 
greater economic weakness, the proportion of women and chil- 
dren who fail to obtain decent remuneration is probably higher 
than in the case of the men* These facts contain of themselves 
all the elements of an acute social problem. 

The obvious objection to the proposal to fix^a minimum 
wage by law is that it would not work. This assertion may 
mean that our industrial resources are not adequate to a uni- 
versal living wage; that, even though the resources are suffi- 
cient, industry could not be successfully reorganized on the 
basis of such a law; or that, in any case, the law could not be 
enforced. As to the first objection, the burden of proof is 
clearly upon those who take it seriously in a country as rich 
as ours. The second may be urged against every effort of a 
trade union to obtain the union scale of wages, and against 
every law fixing a minimum number of hours of labor per day ; 
while the third is in some sense valid against any and every 
law whatever. If a labor union can establish a minimum rate 
of remuneration successfully, why may not the civil law be 
equally successful, so far as the organization of industry is 
concerned? Inasmuch as no law is obeyed perfectly, the en- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Social Reform by Legislation 437 

forcibility of any statute is relative. In the case of a law fix- 
ing a minimum wage, the difficulties of enforcement are pecul- 
iarly formidable, from the side of employer and employee, but 
they are not insurmountable. They have been so satisfactorily 
overcome in Australia and New Zealand that these countries 
have no intention of abandoning their minimum-wage legisla- 
tion. Moved by the Australasian example, the dominant party 
in the present British House of Commons has introduced a 
bill applying the principle to certain of the sweated trades of 
England. Even if such legislation should prove enforcible and 
effective in the case of only one- fourth of the American work- 
ers who are now underpaid, it would be well worth adopting. 
It would do more good than any other single measure of labor 
legislation that is now available. The authority of economists 
and legislators is, indeed, unfavorable to the plan, but it was 
likewise opposed to labor organization and factory legislation 
fifty or seventy- five years ago, and its arguments at that time 
were tiresomely suggestive of those now used against a legal 
minimum wage (Cf. Webb, Industrial Democracy^ Part III., 
Chapter I.) 

Inasmuch as the cost of living is not the same in all parts of 
America, the proposed legislation should proceed from the State 
rather than from the national legislature. The only difficulty 
here is that the minimum wage might be considerably higher 
in one State than in a neighboring State, where general con- 
ditions of living and of employment were practically the same. 
The result would be to put the industries of the former at a 
disadvantage. Nevertheless the same condition confronts many 
other legal regulations of industry, such as, those affecting 
railway rates, factory arrangements, and the hours of labor. In 
cases of this kind, as well as in the matter of a minimum wage, 
uniformity and thoroughness could best be attained through 
national laws applied and modified by State boards to suit local 
conditions. This would require amendments to both the State 
and national constitutions, but such amendments are inevitable 
as a prerequisite not only to any kind of a minimum wage-law, 
but to a satisfactory solution of the general problem of indus- 
trial regulation. Whether the law be State or national, the 
work of applying it and of fixing the precise terms of the 
minimum wage would necessarily be entrusted to commissions, 
boards of experts, as is now done in the matter of regulating 



Digitized by 



Google 



438 Social Reform by Legislation [July, 

railroads and other public service corporations. The principle 
involved and the conditions to be met are the same in both 
cases. 

The proposed law would, of course, apply to the wages of 
women and children as well as to those of adult males. It 
would thus have the special advantage of obtaining living wages 
for classes that are peculiarly unable to help themselves. In 
his recent excellent study of woman labor, Mr. William Hard 
has shown that women cannot organize effectively because their 
stay, as individuals, in industry is only temporary (Everybody s 
Magazine^ November, 1908-April, 1909). To remedy this con- 
dition he would have their hours and other conditions of labor 
so changed that they can continue as wage-earners after mar- 
riage. The first recommendation is good ; the second seems to 
be unqualifiedly bad. That the married woman's presence and 
functions in the home, her ideals of motherhood, and her re- 
lations to her children, should be revolutionized in the way 
that Mr. Hard suggests, cannot be accepted by any one who 
takes an adequate and healthy, albeit "old-fashioned,'' view of 
family life. The family cannot be made over in this arbitrary 
fashion without producing social and moral disaster. At pres- 
ent there are more than five million women engaged in gainful 
occupations in the United States, and the number is steadily 
increasing, both absolutely and relatively. In 1900 the number 
exceeded by one million the number that would have been at 
work had the increase merely kept pace with the increase in the 
total female population. The explanation of this disproportion- 
ate increase in the number of women in industry is chiefly what 
Mr. Hard declares it to be, namely, the fact that a large pro- 
portion of woman's traditional tasks have been transferred from 
the home to the factory. Woman is merely following them. 
It must be admitted, too, that the process is not yet finished, 
that the proportion of women wage- earners will inevitably in-, 
crease still further. Nevertheless we refuse to accept Mr. 
Hard's solution. No matter how many of woman's tasks have 
been removed from the home, the average married woman who 
does her full duty well as wife and mother, and who adequate* 
ly does all the work that can be better done at home than 
elsewhere, will find her time fully occupied by these during the 
child-bearing and child-rearing period. After that her labor 
usually will not and certainly ought not to be required outside 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Social reform by legislation 439 

the home. Moreover, if Mr. Hard's plan were followed, the 
number of women workers would be greatly increased, thus in- 
tensifiying their competition with men, and giving a further 
impetus to low wages for both. While they would then be 
better able to organize than at present, their organization would 
still be less efficient than those of male workers; and the 
latter have not succeeded in raising their remuneration to a de- 
cent level. Hence the only remedy that seems to be at all 
adequate to the many-sided evil of woman labor is a legal 
minimum wage» 

Concerning the morality of this measure, whether for men, 
women, or children, it is sufficient to say that the State has 
both the right and the duty to . protect its citizens in their 
right to a decent livelihood. In so doing it no more exceeds 
its proper functions than when it legislates for the safety of 
life and limb, or for the physical and moral health of the 
community. 

2. An Eight Hour Law. — ^This legislation would increase the 
demand for labor in many industries, and improve the physical, 
mental, and moral health of the workers^ At the present time 
the great majority of laborers work more than eight hours per 
day. In fact, the only exceptions worthy of mention are the 
building trades, printing and publishing, mining, and public 
employments. Even in the two former occupations, the eight 
hour day prevails only where labor is well organized. The 
obvious economic objection to the measure is that in many in- 
dustries it would be followed by a rise in prices and in the 
cost of production, and consequently by a decrease in the de- 
mand for goods. A further result would be either a lessened 
demand for labor, or lower wages for the same number of 
workers. On the other hand, if the same amount of product 
continued to be consumed, and if a large number of laborers 
were needed to produce it, the price would have to remain the 
same, and all the laborers would have to be satisfied with lower 
wages. The total wage payment would be divided among a 
larger number of persons. This is the usual way of stating the 
objection, but it overlooks certain important facts. Some con- 
sumers would not reduce their consumption proportionately to 
the rise in price; a part of the increased cost of production 
would come out of profits, through the elimination of the less 
efficient employers, the introduction of better industrial methods. 



Digitized by 



Google 



440 SOCIAL REFORM BY LEGISLATION [Jtlly, 

and the redaction of the exceptional gains of monopoly; and, 
finally, the productivity of the men themselves would be so far 
increased that in a very large proportion of cases they would 
turn out as much product in eight hours as they formerly did 
in ten. Through the operation of these factors it might well 
happen that the demand for labor would be considerably in- 
creased in some industries, without any decrease in wages or 
any marked reduction in the profits of the most efficient and 
socially useful employers. Where the eight hour day has been 
fairly tried, it does not seem to have financially injured either 
the laborer or the consumer. 

Probably its greatest benefits would be outside the region 
of wages and employment. The laborer would have more 
leisure for the development of his mental, moral, and social 
nature, and more opportunity for the rest and recreation that 
are so necessary in the intense strain of modern industry. 
When the demand upon muscle, mind, and nerves is so great 
that in many occupations a man becomes old at fifty, the re- 
duction of the working day to eight hours becomes a dictate 
of elementary humanity, to say nothing of economic efficiency 
and race conservation (CJ. Final Report of the Industrial Com'- 
mission^ p. 763). Here, again, the verdict of experience is all 
in favor of shorter hours. John Mitchell declares that the 
eight hour regulation has done more for temperance in the 
mining regions than all other influences combined. In this 
matter of the length of the working day, these words of a 
conservative writer are well worth pondering: ''When machin- 
ery is replacing men and doing the heavy work of industry, it 
is time to get rid of the ancient prejudice that a man must 
work ten hours a day if he is to keep the world up to the 
level of the comfort that it has attained. Possibly, if we clear 
our minds of cant, we may see that the reason why we still 
wish the laborer to work ten hours a day is the fear that we, 
the comfortable classes, may not go on receiving the lion's 
share of the wealth which these machines, iron and human, 
are turning out '' (Smart, Studies in Economics, p. 328). 

3. Legislation Restricting the Labor of Women and Chil- 
dren. — ^The effects of this measure would be very similar to 
those of an eight hour law. The total number of women and of 
persons under sixteen years of age engaged in gainful occupa- 
tions, is approximately seven million. It is obvious that neither 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Social reform by legislation 441 

of these classes should be permitted to work more than eight 
hours per day. In certain occupations which are exceptionally 
arduous, such as operating telephones, the hours ought to be 
still fewer. Night work ought to be entirely prohibited. Wo* 
men and children should be kept out of certain occupations 
for which they are physically or morally unfit. Married wo- 
men ought not to be permitted to become wage earners ex- 
cept in conditions of great poverty. The wages of women and 
of young persons ought to be the same as the remuneration 
of men for the same work. This would be good for the former, 
but better for the latter. Children should not be permitted to 
work under sixteen years, except for very special reasons, and, 
during the school term, no child ought to become a wage 
earner below the age of fourteen. It would be more humane 
to the child and more beneficial to society to relieve poverty 
through other methods. The enforcement of the legislation 
considered in this paragraph would help women and children 
by lessening competition, raising wages, conserving health, and 
increasing opportunity, and would react upon the remuneration 
of men by diminishing a very difficult and destructive form of 
competition. It goes without saying that the measures recom- 
mended under this and the preceding heads could not be fully 
applied to agricultural labor. 

4. Laws Affecting Industrial Disputes. — Legislation is needed 
to legitimize peaceful picketing, persuasion, and boycotting. 
The principle of the boycott is employed now and again by all 
classes, and within certain limits it is entirely lawful morally. 
Even the so-called secondary boycott, although peculiarly liable 
to abuse, is not essentially immoral. On this account, and be- 
cause it is not often likely to be employed, it ought not to be 
prevented either by statute law or by ''judge* made law." 
Well-meaning persons who oppose any limitation of the power 
of the judiciary in this matter, commonly forget that practical- 
ly the only legal warrant for the exercise of such power is a 
very general principle of the Common Law concerning con- 
spiracy, and a body of precedent created by judges who have 
attempted to apply this general principle to labor disputes. As 
applied by English judges, the principle has been called by 
Thorold Rogers, ''the most elastic instrument of tyranny 
which can be devised''; as applied by judges in the United 
States, it represents merely an attempt to enforce their own 



Digitized by 



Google 



442 SOCIAL REFORM BY LEGISLATION [July, 

conceptions of natural equity. But these were and are the 
conceptions of men who, as Theodore Roosevelt has recently 
reminded us, were and are unfitted by training, association, 
knowledge, or sympathy to do justice to the position and 
claims of the laborer. The British Parliament wiped out the 
reproach and injustice in 1906, by enacting a law which makes 
peaceful persuasion and boycotting legal ; but in this, as in 
m*8t labor legislation, European action is far in advance of the 
United States. 

We are far behind some other countries in laws providing 
for conciliation and arbitration. Most of our State boards have 
accomplished substantially nothing. The first effective step, the 
minimum that is worth getting, is the creation of State and 
national boards empowered to endeavor to settle industrial dis- 
putes even before they are invited to do so by either of the 
disputants. Until the board has exercised its good offices and 
failed to effect conciliation, both a strike and a lockout should 
be prohibited. A second step would embody provisions for 
conciliation, and also for the compulsory investigation of the 
causes of the dispute, together with the publication of the find- 
ings and decision of the board. In 'most cases a strike or 
lockout would then be opposed by the power of public senti- 
ment This is the principle of the Industrial Disputes Act re- 
cently enacted by the Dominion of Canada^ If neither of these 
measures proved sufficient, the law could go further and estab- 
lish not only compulsory investigation and decision, but com- 
pulsory acceptance of the decision, as obtains in Australia and 
New Zealand. The objections to this proposal are formidable, 
but the experience of these two countries seems to show that 
they are not insurmountable* 

5. Relief of the Unemployed. — In all but exceptionally pros^ 
perous times, the amount of unemployment is very large. Aver- 
aging the good times with the bad, it seems to be somewhere 
between eight and fifteen per cent. The first and simplest legal 
relief measure would be a system of State employment bureaus, 
such as that existing in Germany. State labor colonies could 
be of great benefit to certain classes of the unemployed, and 
would cost the community much less than any system of purely 
charitable relief. In the third place, there should be a system 
of State insurance against unemployment, and State subsidies 
for approved private agencies which provide the same kind of 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909-] SOCIAL REFORM BY LEGISLATION 443 

insurance. In Belgium the government contributes a certain 
proportion of the benefits paid out by the trade unions for 
this purpose. The same thing could be done for those unor- 
ganized laborers who have contributed to some voluntary in- 
surance society. Probably none of these measures, nor all of 
them together, would adequately solve this most difEcult and 
demoralizing problemi but they would relieve an immense amount 
of suffering, and prevent much economic waste, crime, and de- 
terioration of character. And there would still be plenty of 
work for individual charity and private relief organizations. 

6. Provision Against Accidents, Illness, and Old Age. — ^The 
contingency of unemployment is only one part of that insecur- 
ity which is, perhaps, the most discouraging feature of modern 
industry, and which almost continuously haunts a very large 
proportion of the laboring class. Some one has estimated the 
number of persons killed and injured by their occupations in 
America last year at 50O,cxx). Not one of our States has an ade- 
quate employer's liability law to meet this evil, and all of them 
are far behind most of the countries of Europe. We are still 
dealing with industrial accidents on the basis of the antiquated 
Common Law provisions concerning ''the fellow-servant rule,'' 
''assumption of risk," and "contributory negligence.'' These 
should all be abolished, the employer should be compelled to 
give reasonable compensation for all injuries received by his 
employees while at work, and the cost should be passed on in 
the form of higher prices to the consumer, where it belongs. 
Each industry should bear the burden of its own risks, whether 
to machinery, to animals, or to men. The problems of sick- 
ness and old age are dealt with differently in different coun- 
tries. In Germany there is an insurance fund created by con- 
tributions from the employer, the employee, and the State. 
England has a system of old-age pensions entirely drawn from 
the public treasury. Each system has its own advantages, and 
the two may be combined, as in Belgium. For the sake of the 
nation^ as well as in the interest of millions of its needy citi- 
zens, either or both of these plans ought to be introduced into the 
United States. To the objections formerly offered by believers 
in the inhuman and discredited policy of laissez-faire serious 
attention is no longer ^iven by well-informed students* 

7. Housing the Working People. — In our cities this problem 
grows steadily more perplexing and more dangerous. It is at 



Digitized by 



Google 



444 Social REFORM BY LEGISLATION [July. 

once a menace to the productivity, the health, the morals, and 
the contentment of large sections of our working people. As 
early as 1894, the proportion of slam-dwelling families occu- 
pying three rooms or less, was: in Baltimore, 55 per cent; in 
Chicago, 52 per cent; in New York, 83 per cent; and in 
Philadelphia, 62 per cent (Seventh Special Report of the Com'- 
missioner of Labor ^ pp, 87-88). In the lower East Side of New 
York, the population per acre was, in 1900, 382; in 1905,432. 
Fifty blocks in Manhattan have more .than three thousand in- 
habitants each. As a natural consequence of overcrowding, 
rents for all kinds of dwellings, especially the poorer houses 
and tenements, are constantly rising. Among the families stud- 
ied by the committee appointed by the New York Conference 
of Charities, rent had increased all the way from fifty cents to 
five dollars per month between 1905 and 1907. The smaller 
the income of a family the larger is the proportion of its ex- 
penditure for this purpose. 

Since private agencies will certainly fail to meet this situa- 
tion, the cities must undertake the work in the interest of self- 
protection and elementary humanity. They should not only 
condemn and prevent unsanitary housing and congestion, but 
erect decent houses and tenements for the poorest classes. 
These could be rented or sold, preferably sold, on easy condi- 
tions ; in some cases at less than cost. The problem of munic* 
ipal housing has been earnestly attacked by many of the cities 
of Great Britain, and some of the other countries of Europe. 

(to be concluded.) 



Digitized by 



by Google 




DANTE AND HIS CELTIC PRECURSORS. 

BY EDMUND G. GARDNER* 

Part II. 
III. 

IHROUGHOUT these Irish visions of the life after 
death, we have noticed certain minor features 
and secondary details that may have contributed 
to the external form of the Divina Commedia/ 
but hardly anything that anticipates, save quite 
indirectly, its inner spirit. There is no trace of the ethical 
basis of Dante's Inferno, so admirably expressed by Witte: 
''Hell itself is neither more nor less than the protraction of 
unrepented sin ; the symbolic interpretation of the sinful life.'* * 
Neither do we find that essential feature of his Purgatorio^ ac- 
cording to which the souls rush into the purgatorial pains, set- 
ting their wills by deliberate free choice upon them, yearning 
to be allowed to partake of them, and finding an ineffable sol- 
ace therein— so that the divine poet seems already to anticipate 
the great saying of St Catherine of Genoa: ''It would not be 
possible to find any joy comparable to that of a soul in Pur- 
gatory, except the joy of the Blessed in Paradise." f 

Again, there is nothing in these visions and legends com- 
parable to the unitive stage in the ParadUo^ that anticipation 
of the Beatific Vision of the Divine Essence that crowns the 
whole work. For this we must turn to the mystics. 

There is a pleasant legend of how the ancestor of the Pazzi 
family carried the sacred fire from Jerusalem to Florence, and 
was hailed as pazzo (madman) for his pains. Such a bearer 
from East to West of mystical light kindled at far-off shrines 
was John the Irishman, Joannes Scotus Erigena; and, after 
doubting whether to pity him as a madman, or to anathematize 
him as a heretic, the estimate finally settled upon was : htsnU 
icus putatus est. Says a mediaeval writer : " In certain things he 
deviated from the path of the Latins, while he fixed his eyes 
intently upon the Greeks. Wherefore he was reputed a heretic." 

* Essi^t on DanU. Translated by Lawrence and Wicksteedp p. i6. 
f Cf. Pufi., II., iaa.133 ; XXI.. 61-69 ; XXIII., 7a-7S ; "d Baron von Hligel, Tki Miys- 
tualEUnunto/RiUium, VoL I. 



Digitized by 



Google 



446 DANTE AND HIS CELTIC PRECURSORS [July, 

Erigena, beyond comparison the greatest scholar and most 
original thinker of the Dark Ages, came from Ireland to the 
court of Charlemagne's grandson, Charles the Bald, about the 
year 847, as a missionary of the Greek culture that had sur* 
vived in the island of his birth while almost forgotten elsewhere 
in the western world. In those days, as Dr. Sandys observes, 
^'the knowledge of Greek, which had almost vanished in the 
West, was so widely diffused in the schools of Ireland, that, 
if any one knew Greek, it was assumed that he must have come 
from that country."* His most recent biographer describes 
Erigena as an ardent searcher after truth, who '' possessed the 
energy of mind to think out a spiritual theory of the universe 
in a grossly materialistic age''; ''a recipient of the influences 
of the past,'' who in many ways anticipated the ideas of the 
present time.f His chief extant work, De Divisione Naturte^ 
has been called *' the one purely philosophical argument of the 
Middle Ages"; but it is more particularly in virtue of his 
translation of the mystical treatises of the Pseudo-Dionysius that 
he must be regarded as one of the chief precursors of Dante. 

It is worth noting, too, that, whereas those Irish visionaries 
whose work we have been hitherto considering prefer to heap 
up details of unutterable torments of the most repulsive and 
material kind in hell, Erigena, without definitely departing from 
the Catholic doctrine of eternal punishment, tends to believe in 
an ultimate destruction of all malice and misery— thus antici* 
pating, in a fuller sense, the splendid optimism of Juliana of 
Norwich in her settled conviction that '' All manner of thing 
shall be well I " 

In his rendering into Latin and his interpretation of the 
Dionysian work on the Celestial Hierarchy^ Erigena opened 
the treasure-house of angelic lore to western Christendom. 
From him the philosophers of the West first learned the great 
conception that is at the basis of all mysticism, and upon which 
the whole mystical sense of the Divina Commedia depends: 
that the soul's desire and will is made one with the '*Love 
that moves the sun and the other stars," t by the three ways 
of purgation, illumination, and union. This is ultimately de- 
rived from the Dionysian doctrine of the threefold function 
of an angelic hierarchy, and the effect of the divine light which 

* A History of Classical Scholarship, I., p. 451. 
t Alice Gardner, Shtdies in John the Scot, p. 145. \ Par,, XXXIII,, 145. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Dante and His Celtic Precursors 447 

they receive and communicate : purifying, illuminating, and ren- 
dering perfect : ** According to which, each one participates, so 
far as is lawful and attainable to him, in the most spotless puri- 
fication, the most copious light, the pre-eminent perfection."* 
Here, too, we find that particular division of the Angelic Hier- 
archies into nine orders of Celestial Intelligences— -each imi- 
tating the Divine Likeness in some special way — upon which 
the whole spiritual structure of the Paradiso rests. 

These mystical writings of the Pseudo-Dionysius seem to 
have first appealed in the early part of the sixth century, and 
were generally accepted by the uncritical temper of the Middle 
Ages, albeit the voice of protest was not unheard from the 
outset, as the work of the Areopagite, the convert of St* PauL 
Thus, Dante sees Dionysius among the great theologians that 
appear in the sphere of the sun, as '^ he who, in the flesh be- 
low, saw deepest into the angelic nature and its ministry " ; 
and, further on, he declares that this is not so wonderful, since 
he was instructed in such high matters by St. Paul himself: 
'' If a mortal upon earth uttered so great hidden truth, I would 
not have thee wonder; for he who saw it here above revealed 
it to him.'*t 

Taking the names of the nine orders of angels, which are 
practically found in the Prophets and in the Pauline Epistles, 
Dionysius combined them with the Neo- Platonic theory of 
emanations from the Divine Being, by making these emana- 
tions three hierarchies of celestial intelligences bearing those 
names given in the Scriptures. According to him, the pur- 
pose or meaning of a hierarchy is the utmost possible likeness 
to God and union with Him, in proportion to the divine il- 
luminations conceded to it; and each angel is as a mirror, 
that receives the beams of the primal and sovereign light, and 
reflects them upon all in accordance with the divine plan for 
the government of the world — thus wotking to make each 
created thing, in its degree, like to God and united with Him. 
The name of each order — Seraphim, Cherubim, Thrones, Dom- 
inations, Virtues. Powers, Principalities, Archangels, Angels — 
shows forth the special way in which it imitates the Divine Like- 
ness by representing some special quality or characteristic in God» 

Upon these doctrines of the Dionysian Celestial Hier^ 



* CtUiHal HUratcky, ch. X. (transl. T. Parker). 
t/'ar.,X., 115.117; XXVIII., 136-138. 



Digitized by 



Google 



448 DANTE AND HIS CELTIC PRECURSORS [July, 

arcky^ whether derived directly from Erigena or through the 
medium of St Thomas Aquinas (and« in either case, modified 
by the simplification introduced by the Angelic Doctor, and 
by a chapter in the D$ Consideratiofu of St. Bernard), Dante 
based the spiritual cosmography of his Paradise. 

Each of the nine moving heavens represents an upward 
grade in purification, illumination, and perfection— in detach- 
ment, light, and love— towards the divine union in the tenth 
heaven, the Empyrean, the true Paradise; and each is assigned 
to the charge and rule of one of the nine angelic orders. The 
representation of each heaven is largely colored by the special 
characteristic and function of the angelic order that rules it. 
In the heaven of the Moon, which is moved by the Angels 
who are the guardians of individuals and bear the tidings of 
God's bounty, Dante hears of the freedom of the will as ''the 
greatest gift that God of His bounty made in creating," * and 
other matters pertaining to the salvation of individuals. The 
heaven of Mercury is guided by the Archangels who preside 
over the destinies of nations and bring messages of special 
sanctity and importance ; here Justinian explains the working 
of Divine Providence in the whole history of Rome and her 
Empire, and Beatrice reveals to Dante the sovereign mystery 
of the Redemption by the Incarnation. In the heaven of 
Venus, which is swayed by the Principalities, the correspond- 
ence is somewhat obscured by the part played by this sphere 
in Dante's philosophy of love; but, even as the Principalities 
regulate earthly principality and draw princes to rule with love, 
so the souls of the purified lovers discourse with Dante con- 
cerning the constitution of society and the misgovernment 
that was bearing sanguinary fruit in the Italy that he had left. 
In the four higher heavens the souls appear who on earth co- 
operated in the work of their angelic orders, and were im- 
pressed by them to the imitation of the divine qualities that 
they represent. The great teachers, philosophers, and theolo- 
gians, in the heaven of the Sun, are associated with the powers 
who imitate the divine order and intellectual authority in com- 
bating the powers of darkness. In the heaven of Mars, the 
souls of warriors of God form the celestial sign of the Crucifix ; 
for this is the sphere of the Virtues, who are the angelic image 
of the Divine Fortitude, working signs and inspiring endurance 

*Par,, v., Z9-aa. 



1 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Dante and His Celtic Precursors 449 

among men. The Dominations are the likeness of the supreme 
Divine Dominion; so, in the heaven of Jupiter, which they 
govern, we have the sign of the imperial eagle formed by the 
souls of just and righteous rulers. Of the Thrones, Dionysius 
writes that their appellation "denotes their manifest exaltation 
above every groveling inferiority, and their supermundane ten- 
dency towards higher things • . • their invariable and firmly 
fixed settlement around the veritable Highest, with the whole 
force of their powers; and their receptivity of the supremely 
Divine approach, in the absence of all passion and earthly 
tendency; and the ardent expansion of themselves for the 
Divine receptions.''* Therefore, in the heaven of Saturn, which 
they rule, the contemplative saints, led by Benedict and Peter 
Damian, appear, and the ladder of contemplation reaches thence 
up to the very Heaven of Heavens. 

The name of the Cherubim '' denotes their knowledge and 
their vision of God, and their readiness to receive the highest 
gift of light, and their power of contemplating the super* Divine 
comeliness in its first revealed power, and their being filled 
anew with the impartation that maketh wise, and their un- 
grudging communication to those next to them by the stream 
of the given wisdom.^f They rule the eighth heaven, that of 
the Fixed Stars, and here Dante has his first revealed vision of 
Christ and of Mary, sees the souls that knew most of God, and 
is examined by the Apostles on the three theological virtues, 
that his memory, understanding, and will may be prepared for 
the vision of the Divine Essence. 

In the ninth heaven, that of First Movement, Dante be- 
holds all the nine angelic orders as rings of flame encircling 
God, '^ dancing round His eternal knowledge in the most- ex- 
alted, ever-moving stability,'' as Dionysius has it. This is the 
particular sphere of the Seraphim, the angelic order that espe- 
cially represents the Divine Love, named from excess of love, 
and subsisting by the fire of love. Here it is shown to Dante 
how creation illustrates this Divine Love, by Beatrice herself, 
who had been the supreme revelation to him of love upon 
earth. And when, in the Empyrean, he actually looks upon 
the proper forms of the angels in their eternal aspect, the 
Dionysian theory of their threefold function is translated into 
the symbolism of color: 

• CtUsHal Hierarchy, ch. VII. (Parker's transl.) Mbid, 

VOU LXXXIX.— 29 



Digitized by 



Google 



450 DANTE AND HIS CELTIC PRECURSORS [July, 

''Their faces had they all of living flame, their wings of 
gold, and the rest so white that no snow can reach that white- 
ness/'* The surpassing whiteness represents their work of 
purification, their golden wings the knowledge that illumines, 
the living flame of their faces the love that renders perfect. 

In the most striking passage of his famous letter to Can 
Grande, Dante appeals to ''Richard of St. Victor in his book 
De ContemplaHone** as the chief modern authority for the power 
of the human intellect to be so exalted in this life as to tran- 
scend the measure of humanity. And in the Paradise itself, 
among the glowing souls of the great doctors who appear in 
the fourth heaven, surpassing the sun itself in their brightness, 
St. Thomas Aquinas bids the poet mark the ardent spirit of 
"Richard, who in consideration was more than man/'f 

It was nearly three centuries from the days of Erigena 
when Richard, Dante's last Celtic precursor, came to Paris. 
The dark ages have passed away, and we are already in full 
mediaeval times. Peter Abelard is vindicating the claims of 
human reason, while soon to write in humbleness of spirit : " I 
would not be a philosopher, if I should kick against Paul. I 
would not be Aristotle, if that should sever me from Christ." | 
His great opponent, St. Bernard, is about to send vast armies 
of men to fight for the redemption of the Holy Sepulchre, and 
then to cry in the bitterness of his heart: "The sons of the 
Church and they who are called by the name of Christians lie 
low in the desert, slain by the sword or consumed by famine. 
Contempt is poured forth upon their princes, and the Lord hath 
caused them to wander in the wilderness where there is no 
way. Who knoweth not that the judgments of the Lord are 
true? But this judgment is an abyss so great that I seem to 
myself not wrongly to pronounce him blessed who shall not be 
scandalized in it."<^ 

Richard is thus an exact, probably younger, contemporary 
of the monk Marcus, who wrote the Vision of Tundal, though 
in comparison with the latter he seems almost a modern thinker. 
Nothing is known of his early life. Some time before 1140 he 
became an Augustinian canon in the abbey of St. Victor at 
Paris, in the records of which house he is described as natione 
Scofus, one guem tellus genuit felice Scotica partu — which pro- 
bably simply means that, like Erigena, he was an Irishman. 



*Par., XXXI., 13-15. \EfisL, X.. 28 ; Par,, X., 131. 

X Abelard's last letter to Heloise. % De ConsideratUntt II., x. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Dante and His Celtic Precursors 451 

The schools of Ireland were no longer what they had been 
in the days of Erigena, and Richard came to St. Victor's to 
learn rather than to teach. Here he found his master in the 
celebrated man whom the later Middle Ages regarded as a 
second Augustinci and whom Jacques de Vitry describes as 
'' the lutanist of the Lord, the organ of the Holy Spirit/' Hugh 
of St Victor. Although a German by birth, Hugh himself was 
not untouched by the Celtic spirit, and had felt the influence 
of Erigena, upon whose translation of Dionysius he composed 
a commentary. When Hugh died, in 1141, with the words of 
mystical achievement, consecutus sum, **I have obtained it,'' on 
his lips, Richard took up his work. For more than thirty 
years he went on producing treatises and commentaries, while 
his fame as a thinker and a teacher spread through Europe. 
A curious witness to his influence is found in a letter from 
John of Salisbury to St. Thomas of Canterbury, where the 
former says that the Bishop of Hereford (Robert de Melun), 
being a very vain man, might perhaps be flattered and won 
over from the King's side by a letter of remonstrance from 
some such scholar as the Prior of St. Victor — whom we know 
in that year (1166) to have been Richard. The last years of 
his life were embittered by the struggle of the better part of 
the canons against the English abbot Ernisius, who was de- 
stroying the eld spiritual life of the abbey and wasting its 
possessions. In 1172, Ernisius was compelled to resign his of- 
fice ; and Richard, after presiding over the chapter that elected 
the new abbot, died in the following year. 

Gifted with extraordinary insight into the secret workings 
of the spirit and with a fervid Celtic imagination, Richard 
completed what Hugh had begun in building up the fabric of 
the Church's mystical theology. Unlike St. Bernard, his writ- 
ings are purely objective, and he professes to know nothing by 
personal experience of the ecstatic doctrines that he sets forth. 
** I tell thee," he writes to a friend, ** that my mind shrinks 
from saying anything concerning charity, for I feel that neither 
my tongue nor heart suffices to treat it worthily. For how can 
a man speak of love who does not love, who does not feel 
love's power?"* It is tempting to connect this deliberate 
suppression of self with the supreme importance that he at- 
taches to the virtue of humility as the very foundation of the 

* Tractahu de Gtadibus CariiaHs, cb. I. 



Digitized by 



Google 



45 » Dante and His Celtic Precursors [July, 

spiritual life. He was a profound student of the Bible, which 
he regarded as the chief test of religious truth, the only sure 
guard against being deluded in his lofty mystical speculations. 
Knowledge of self is the high mountain apart upon which Christ 
is transfigured. This mountain transcends the loftiest peaks of 
all mundane sciencCi and looks down upon all the knowledge 
of the world from on high. Neither Aristotle, nor Plato, nor 
any of the philosophers could find it* But: 

** Even if you think that you have been taken up into that 
high mountain apart, even if you think that you see Christ 
transfigured, do not be too ready to believe anything you see 
in Him or hear from Him, unless Moses and Elias run to meet 
Him. I hold all truth in suspicion which the authority of the 
Scriptures does not confirm, nor do I receive Christ in His 
clarification unless Moses and Elias are talking with Him/'f 

Richard's great work, to which Dante (as St. Thomas before 
him) refers as the De ConUmplatione^ is more usually entitled 
De Gratia ConUmplationis^ or Benjamin Major — Benjamin be- 
ing for him the type of the highest contemplation, in accordance 
with the Vulgate reading of Psalm 67: ''There is Benjamin a 
youth in ecstasy ol mind.'' The particular passage for which 
Dante invokes his authority is at the opening of the Paradise^ 
where he declares that he has been in the Empyrean Heaven 
itself: 

''In that heaven which receiveth most of His light was I, 
and things I saw which whoso descends from on high hath 
neither knowledge nor power to relate. 

"Because, as it draweth near to its desire, our intellect 
plunges in so deeply that the memory cannot follow its track." $ 

" To understand these things/' he says in the letter to Can 
Grande, " we must know that, when the human intellect is ex- 
alted in this life, because of its being co-natural and having 
affinity with a separated spirit, it is so far lifted up that after 
its return memory fails it, because it has transcended the 
measure of humanity."^ 

And Richard himself writes : 

"When by excess of mind we are rapt above or within 
ourselves unto the contemplation of divine things, not only 

• Cf. SheUey : « Their.lore'Uught them not this, to;.know ^themselves " ( The Triumpk of 
Life). 

t Benjamin Mahr^ cap. 8z. % Par,, I., 4-9. $ Bfist., X., 98. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] DANTE AND HIS CELTIC PRECURSORS 453 

are we straightway oblivious of things external^ bttt also of all 
that passes in us. And. therefore, when we return to ourselves 
from that state of sublimityi we cannot by any means recall 
to our memory those things which we have erst seen above our- 
selves in that truth and clearness in which we then beheld 
them. Although we keep something thereof in our memory, 
and see as it were through a veil and in the midst of a cloud, 
we cannot comprehend nor recall the mode of our seeing, nor 
the quality of the vision. In a wondrous fashion, remembering 
we do not remember, and not remembering we remember, 
whilst seeing we do not behold, and gazing we do not per- 
ceive, and understanding we do not penetrate.^'* 

It could easily be shown that a number of passages and 
symbolical details in the Paradise come directly from this work 
of Richard of St. Victor. But Dante's indebtedness to it goes 
far beyond this, and it is not too much to say that the whole 
mystical psychology of the Divina Comtnedia is based upon 
the Di ConUmplatiane. Richard shows how the soul passes 
upward through the six steps of contemplation — in imagination, 
in reason, in understanding — gradually discarding all sensible 
objects of thought ; until, in the sixth stage, the object of its 
contemplation becomes what is above reason, and seems to be 
beside reason or even against it. Irradiated by the divine light, 
the soul knows and considers those mysteries at which all hu- 
man reasoning cries out. These are especially the Blessed 
Trinity and the Incarnation, mysteries which (according to 
Richard) seem contrary to human reason, but which Dante 
beholds in a flash of intuition at the consummation of the 
vision. Again, Richard teaches that there are three qualities 
of contemplation, according to its intensity: qualities repre- 
sented by Dante in the revelations of the Earthly Paradise, in 
the upward passage through the nine moving heavens, and in 
the crowning vision of the Empyrean, respectively. These are 
mentis dilatatio, an enlargement of the soul's vision without 
exceeding the bounds of human activity; mentis suilevatio, 
elevation of mind, in which the intellect, divinely illumined, 
transcends the measure of humanity, and beholds the things 
above itself, but does not entirely lose consciousness of self; 
and, lastly, mentis alienatio, or ecstacy, in which all memory of 
the present leaves the mind, and it passes into an ineffable 

* Bit^amin Afajcr, IV, » 23. 



Digitized by 



Google 



454 DANTE AND HIS CELTIC PRECURSORS [July, 

State of divine transfiguratioiii in which the soul gazes upon 
truth without any veils of creatures, not in a mirror darkly, 
but in its pure simplicity. 

If, in the De Contemplatiane^ we trace the whole mystical 
psychology of the Paradiso^ in other works of Richard we find 
many of the great conceptions that strengthen and bind together 
the framework of Dante's poem. In his commentary on the 
Canticle of Canticles^ Richard tells us: 

*' Through Mary not only is the light of grace given to 
man on earth, but even the vision of God granted to souls in 
heaven/' • 

Thus, at the beginning of the Inferno^ the Blessed Virgin 
sends St. Lucy, Lucia, type of illuminating grace, to Dante's 
aid, when he is wandering in the dark forest, and, at the close 
of the Paradiso, her intercession gains for him an anticipation 
of the Beatific Vision of the Divine Essence. 

Again, in his De Statu Interioris Haminis, Richard gives a 
most sublime exposition of the dignity of free will, the doc- 
trine that runs through the whole spiritual experience of the 
Divina Commedia from the lowest hell to the highest heaven: 

'* Among all the goods of creation, nothing in man is more 
sublime, nothing more worthy, than free will. What can be 
found in man more sublime or more worthy than that in which 
he was created to the image of God? Verily, liberty of the 
will beareth the image not only of eternity, but also of the 
Divine Majesty. By no sin, by no misery, can it ever be de- 
stroyed, nor even diminished. God can have no superior, and 
free will can endure no dominion over it; for to put violence 
upon it neither befits the Creator nor is in the power of the 
creature. If all hell, all the world, even all the hosts of 
heaven, were to come together and combine in this one thing, 
they could not force a single consent from free will in any- 
thing not willed." t 

This surely strikes the key-note of the whole Divina Com* 
media, which has been aptly described as the mystical epic of 
the liberty of man's will in time and in eternity. 

IV. 

It is noteworthy that Dante himself takes an entirely dif- 
ferent attitude towards the two classes of his predecessors or 

*ExplUaii§ m QuUka, cap. 39. t TruL, I., cap. 3. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Dante and His Celtic Precursors 455 

precursors which we have been considering: the writers of 
visions and the mystics. The former he entirely ignores, de- 
claring that he is to behold the celestial court per mode tutto 
fuor del modern^ use, *' by a fashion quite outside the modern 
usage ** ; * while he implies that no one had ever accomplished 
such an ecstatic pilgrimage as his: save iEneas, when, in the 
sixth book of the ^Eneid, he was led by the Sibyl through the 
realm of shades, to have unfolded to him res alta terra it 
caligine mersasp ** things plunged in the depth of the earth and 
in darkness '*; and St. Paul, when ^^ he was caught up into 
Paradise, and heard unspeakable words, which it is not lawful 
for a man to utter." f The mystics, on the contrary, espe- 
cially Richard of St. Victor, St. Bernard, and St. Augustine, 
he openly claims as his masters, appeals to their authority, 
and wishes the noblest part of his poem to be read in the 
light of what they had written before him.l 

The primal poetical source of the Divina Ccmmedia is un- 
doubtedly Latin rather than Celtic; the fountain* head must be 
sought in the poem of Virgil rather than in the Vision of 
Fursa or the Vision of Tundal. Nevertheless, for some of the 
external features, the stream absorbed and is in parts still 
colored by Irish elements, as it flows down into the great 
ocean of mysticism. But, when we pass to the deeper, more 
permanent signification of the sacred poem, where it is no 
longer a debatable question of indebtedness in minor details 
and particulars, we find writers of Celtic race in the front 
rank of Dante's precursors; and, through Joannes Scotus Eri- 
gena and Richard of St. Victor, it may fairly be claimed for 
Ireland that she provided the spiritual cosmography and the 
mystical psychology of the crowning portion of the greatest 
poem of the modern world. 

• /^.. XVI.. 4»'43. t Inf., II.. X3-33. X BpisU. X.. aS. 



Digitized by 



Google 



HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER. 

BY KATHARINE TYNAN. 

Chapter XIII. 

WIFE AND HUSBAND. 

I HE escritoire steod in its place in the little morn- 
ing-room which Nesta bad chosen for herself, be- 
cause it had long windows opening on a balcony 
from which one surveyed a lovely stretch of 
country. 

It had been so dark at the Mill House during those years 
that she had acquired a passionate desire for light. The three 
long windows gave her plenty of light. Everything in the room 
was gay and bright. There seemed to be no place theie for 
the ghosts of the house, especially when the child was there— 
the child whom Lady Eugenia had taken to calling the Grolden 
Girl, who carried the sun with her where she went for her 
adoring mother. The room was full of the singing of birds 
and the chatter of the child; and a couple of dogs padded 
softly about wherever they would. Whatever vague terror other 
rooms of the house held for Nesta Moore this room had none. 

She had shown her husband her great-aunt*s gifts to her. 
He had taken the bank-notes and turned them over between 
his fingers. 

'' Shall I put them in the bank for you, Nest ? '' he asked. 

^' I had a fancy to keep them just as she gave them to me," 
Nesta answered. 

" You are not afraid of burglars ? '' 

''They would have to break the escritoire before they dis- 
covered its secret." 

"What about fire?" 

''That is very unlikely. I think I will keep them in the 
place she took them from. Wasn't it strange that she should 
have talked about my having them in case of an emergency. 
What emergency could there possibly be for Stella and me?" 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her Mother's Daughter 457 

^^Why none, so long as you have me and the mills at your 
back. And if you had not me, you would still have the mills. 
Though I make money quickly, I make it cautiously, too. I 
don't gamble with your future or Stella's. Even without me 
that would be safe/' 

** Nothing would be safe for me without you, Jim. All 
would be ruin and destruction. My very life hangs on yours." 

He seemed to take pleasure in her protestation, and was 
cruel to her for his pleasure. 

'' Not now. Nest," he said, pinching her fair cheek. *' How 
satin-skinned you are ! You have filled out When I married 
you you were too thin — such a little hand, like a bird's claw I " 

''I was always delicate. Of course they thought I would 
die of consumption. I have grown strong on happiness. But 
really, really, Jim, I could not live without you," 

^'Then we must die together and leave Stella alone in a 
cold world." 

She shivered; and he was suddenly repentant. 

''She would be safe enough with my brothers," he said. 
'' But why should we talk about such things ? I am as strong 
as a bull, and you have become such a robust girl that I hardly 
know you. There is no fear of consumption now. You eat 
like a particularly hardy and hungry little bird." 

A few days later James Moore came calling over the house 
for '' Nest ! Nest ! " as he often did when he came in. Nesta 
was pouring out tea for Captain Grantley in the morning-room^ 
because it was an East- wind day, one of those blighting days 
which sometimes come in summer when the sky is coppery and 
there is a parching nip in the wind. 

She ran to his call and met him as he came along the cor- 
ridor to the morning- room. He had been away since early 
morning, and she had not expected him home so soon. 

She flung her arms about his neck and he held her clasped 
closely to him for a second or two, in that way which made 
them more like passionate lovers than married people of some 
years' standing. 

'' I got back earlier than I expected," he said, '' and I have 
done a good stroke of business, a very gaod stroke of business. 
Give me a cup of tea, and, afterwards, put on your hat and 
drive over to Valley with me. The child, too— wrap yourselves 
up. It is an unkindly day, although the sun is hot" 



Digitized by 



Google 



458 Her mother's daughter [July, 

They went into the morning-room, where, when he had taken 
the cup of tea from his wife's hands, he stood on the hearth- 
rug, his back to the fireless grate and talked and laughed, evi- 
dently in high spirits. 

He had certainly done a good bit of business. He had seen 
Mrs. Greene's lawyers and had concluded with them the pur- 
chase of the land upon which his mind had been set. The land 
had cost him a big sum ; but be thought it was necessary that 
he should have it. He had scraped up all the money he could 
lay hands on so as to finish the transaction. 

'' If the business is pinched, Nest," he said, '^ I shall borrow 
those bank-notes of yours.'' 

She knew so little of his business that she was not sure 
now whether he was in earnest or jesting; how much the sum 
might be which he had had to pay for those many acres of 
wood and pasture ; or whether the sum, whatever it was, would 
strain the resources of the business. It was something he had 
always kept her in ignorance of, telling her to ask of him what 
money she would and not to bother her pretty head as to 
where it came from. 

Her husband was in such high spirits that he hardly seemed 
to notice Captain Grantley's gloom, a gloom which Nesta had 
been trying in vain to dispel for some time back. As he talked, 
with his confident, triumphing air, which yet had no faintest 
touch of braggadocio about it, the young officer glanced at him 
•nee or twice enviously. 

''You business men have the ball at your feet," he said as 
Nesta stood up to get ready for the drive with her husband. 
'' I wish to heavens I'd been put into a shop instead of the 
army. There's no chance for a soldier, especially if he has the 
luck to be in a smart regiment." 

'' I should like to see you in a shop," James Moore an- 
swered, looking down with humorous enjoyment at the sleek 
parting of Captain Grantley's hair. '' I wonder what you'd have 
chosen to be, butcher or baker or candlestick maker? I like 
to think of you in an apron cutting rashers of bacon or maybe 
measuring out yards of flannel." 

''You hulking ass, it isn't that sort of a shop, I mean," 
said Captain Grantley, his eye lighting to the humor of the 
suggestion. "You're so beastly rich. You're no friend for a 
wretched beggar like me." 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER 459 

Nesta smiled as she went out» closing the door behind her. 
The affectionate, boyish terms on which her adored husband 
was with the cousin she was fond of exhilarated her. Jim had 
done more in a few minutes to win Godfrey from his gloom 
than she in her two or three hours of gentle reasoning. And 
now, Godfrey was off her hands for the afternoon. As she 
came downstairs again, holding Stella by the hand, with a couple 
of warm, light wraps over the other arm, he was just going out 
— having remembered a promise to play tennis with the Vicar- 
age girls. 

"What's the matter with the fellow?" James Moore asked 
his wife as they drove off in the dogcart, Stella cosily huddled 
up at their feet " He isn't half as jolly as he used to be. Any 
one he doesn't like leaving behind when he goes back — eh?'' 

''That is just it. It is Lady Eugenia." 

James Moore whistled. 

" I thought she was engaged to Stanhope," he said. 

'' It looks like it ; but I hardly believe she is or is likely 
to be. I have thought sometimes that she liked Godfrey: ske 
sends him such wistful looks when he is keeping away from 
her. Of course Godfrey would be a very poor match for Lady 
Eugenia Capel; but I don't think she would mind that if she 
cared. And she would bring her father round in time. He 
adores her so and has such respect for her judgment." 

'' If I wanted a woman," said James Moore, " I think I 
should have her, even if she were already engaged to another 
man. I suppose it would depend on how much I wanted her. 
If it were you, Nest, I would fight my way through all the 
barriers of the world to reach you. But, then, you are my 
woman — ^the one woman — there could never have been any other* 
Of course it would be hard on the other man, but I should 
do it." 

Nesta did not know whether to be delighted or shocked. 
In fact at the back of her mind she was delighted, as women 
always are at the masterfulness of the man they love. 

''It would be very wrong if I had been really engaged to 
another man," she began, the ready blushes rushing over her 
soft cheeks, "but of course I never could have been-^" 

" And equally, of course, if you had happened to be I should 
have been obliged to take you away from him; so it was as 
well there was no other." 



Digitized by 



Google 



\ 



460 Her mother's Daughter [Julyt 

He leaned to draw her Indian shawls which had come only 
a few days ago with the other gifts from Miss Grandey, closer 
about her throat. 

'^ Lovers always, Nest* aren't we?" he said. 

"Yes, Jim.'' 

Some of those who found James Moore an uncommonly 
hard man in business matters would have been amazed at this 
human aspect of him if they could but have looked upon it. 



Chapter XIV. 

THE RIVER. 

Arrived at the mills, James Moore handed over his horse 
to one of the hands to hold. 

" I shall be as quick as possible. Nest/' he said to his wife. 
'^Will you wait here, or go into the house?" 

''Stella wants to see the garden," put in that young per- 
son, in the plaintive, appealing voice which neither father nor 
mother could find it in their hearts to resist. "Stella should 
like to go see the pretty garden." 

"Well Stella shall then," laughed James Moore, lifting her 
out and then performing the same office for her mother. "I 
shall come to you in the garden as soon as I am ready to go^ 
Nest. It is a good thought of Stella's." 

They had to cross a couple of the wide mill-yards on their 
way to the garden, which Richard Moore kept in exquisite 
order, devoting to it every second of the time he could spare 
from the business of the mills. James Moore was with them 
as far as the second yard, where he left them, turning away to 
the little office which he and his brothers still found good 
enough for the transactions of their ever-increasing business. 

It was a relief to Nesta to pass out from the high squares 
of buildings, on to a quiet stretch of bleaching green. They 
came out by a low archway, leaving the mills behind. Facing 
them, beyond the bleaching ground, was the river: beyond that 
were fields and woods, the very fields and woods, indeed^ 
which James Moore had just made his own. The sunlight lay 
over the green and velvety place, lit the river where it flowed 
under its alders, and sparkled in the windows of an old Manor 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her Mother's Daughter 461 

House, a mile away across the intervening fields, its twisted 
chimney-stacks outlined against the sky. There were cattle 
browsing in the fields; and the call of the wood* dove and the 
sengs of many birds came sweetly to Nesta Moore's ear. She 
was grieved that all this beauty must be swept into the maw 
of her husband's great business. It would be different when 
there were mean houses over there beyond the river, and all 
the trail of ugly things that crowded humanity leaves in its 
wake. 

She said to herself that it was only men who defiled and 
degraded, not the animals. The quiet- browsing cattle, the 
sheep that were scattered over the hillside, were part of the 
beauty of the scene and the hour. How sadly different it 
would be when the squalid houses were over there I Closing 
her eyes she had a vision of it — hundreds of little yellow brick 
houses, built with a horrid sameness. Hundreds of little back 
yards, showing hideous under- garments flapping and filling in 
the wind. Intolerable! The nightingale, who had made the 
evening delicious in the wood and its neighborhood, must go. 
The birds and the little soft, furry animals and the quiet beasts 
must all go to make room for the crowded, mean streets of a 
factory town. It was an outrage against nature. 

She was leading Stella by the hand, the child dancing 
gaily, like one of the many daisies in the grass, in the sun- 
light. Beyond her ethereal looks she was a sturdy little child 
and had had less than her share of baby illnesses. And Out- 
wood Manor had done wonders to make her robust The Mill 
House had been too dark and stuffy for the child. As she 
danced along now in the sunlight once or twice she broke from 
her mother's hand. 

Facing the mills, with its back to the river, stood a little 
white house — three windows above, two below, with a green 
door in the middle. There was a small cottage- garden in 
front of it. 

As Nesta and Stella went across the green an old woman 
came down to the little gate, and stood, with a hand over her 
eyes to keep off the sun, staring at them. As they came 
nearer she recognized them, and, opening the gate, came to meet 
them with lively demonstrations of pleasure. 

She had a little wrinkled brown face; and her high cap 
and the apron she wore over her brown stuff gown were as 



Digitized by 



Google 



46l HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER [July, 

brilliantly white as laundering and bleaching could make them. 
She was James Moore's Aunt Betsy who bad come over from 
the North of Ireland many years ago to be with her brother 
when he got on in the world. She was still the old North of 
Ireland woman, who had worked in the mill while it was yet 
a small one and Andrew Moore but working manager. In 
her humble way she had helped in the beginnings of her 
nephew's fortune; and he saw nothing amiss with her. In 
fact, he would, if he could, hare had her living at Outwood, 
would have presented her without a misgiving to the Duchess 
of St. Germains and the rest of the county folk, which was 
in part due to the curious simplicity which underlay his clever- 
ness, partly too, no doubt, to his conviction that James Moore's 
belongings must be good enough for all the world. 

Aunt Betsy had been an alleviation of Nesta's lot during 
the years at the Mill House. ^'Puir lassie I" she would say, 
when Nesta walked across to spend an hour with her, as 
though she knew the things which were never spoken of be- 
tween them. 

She occupied alone the house where Andrew Moore and 
his wife had lived and died, a house which preserved a certain 
sacredness for their children. So it was that Richard Moore 
stocked the garden, sloping down to the river, with sweets of 
all sorts and worked there himself by way of recreation, while 
he left the garden at the back of the Mill House to go wild. 

They went in by the little green door and along a passage 
with boarded floor and white-washed walls shining with cleanli- 
ness; and out by another door into the garden. That day of 
high summer it was a riot of color. So great an abundance 
of flowers were there that it was only by degrees the orderli* 
ness of it dawned on the beholder. There were sweet-peas 
and gillyflowers, carnations, lilies, roses, pansies and phlox, 
hollyhocks and snap-dragons, all in fragrant masses. Just 
within the demure box> borders gooseberry and currant bushes 
stood in a line, as they had stood when James Moore and his 
brothers were children. Here and there was a gnarled apple 
tree. Again there was a little hedge of sweet-briar, a clump 
of lavender bushes covered with the delicious spikes, a bush of 
lad's love. One side was a kitchen-garden, which provided 
both the cottage and the Mill House with plenty of fresh 
vegetables. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her Mother's Daughter 463 

It was a place Nesta loved — when her brother in- law's 
shadow was not upon it. Now he was safe in the office, and 
she was free to delight in it. 

The child skipped along before them to the delight of the 
old woman. 

" She grows a strong lass/' she said, '' a strong lass. Time 
was I thought tha' would lose her. Others thought the same. 
I wouldn't wish for bonnier now.'' 

''She grows wild, positively wild," said the proud mother. 
'' I shall have to get a governess to keep her in order." 

As they went the old woman picked a flower here and 
there, collecting them into what she called a country bunch for 
Nesta. 

''I know what tha' hast at Outwood," she said, ''garden- 
ers' flowers, very fine, but never a patch on these." 

Presently her hospitable instincts asserted themselves and 
she must return to the cottage to find some milk and home- 
baked cake for Stella. After she had left them Nesta walked 
down to the end of the garden by which the river flowed so 
peacefully. Further, on it fell over a weir and was captured 
and caught into a mill* race to serve James Moore's purposes; 
Jbut here there was no hint of that destiny. Where it slipped 
passed the garden the ground curved to either side, making a 
tiny bay. In the middle of the river the current flowed 
strongly towards the weir, but nearer the half-moon of water 
was covered with a fleet of water-lilies. 

Nesta stood looking* about her holding the child by the 
hand. She wondered how long James would be. Soon the sun 
would be setting. But as yet it was bright and warm here in 
this sheltered place, out of the nip of the unseasonable wind. 

There was a step on the path, and she turned about, ex- 
pecting to see the friendly face of Aunt Betsy. Instead she 
was confronted by Richard Moore's darkly slouching figure 
coming along the path. 

She had a momentary sensation of fear, she knew not of 
what. In her terror she let go the child's hand. 

Stella, delighted to be free, made a few dancing steps, like 
a little golden moth. There was a shriek, a splash — nothing 
where the child had been. 

Like a mad thing Nesta Moore sprang after the child. 
Stella had sunk, just a little short of the bed of water-lilies at 



Digitized by 



Google 



464 Her Mother's Daughter [July, 

which she had been clutching, but her mother's hand seized 
and closed upon her hair. Nesta Moore could swim fairly 
well. She kept herself afloat for a second or two, trying to 
swim; but she had not counted on the matted roots of the 
water-lilies which were spread about. Still gripping Stella's 
hair she turned over on her back, striking out desperately with 
her feet, so as to free them from the entangling weeds — the 
child's fingers clinging convulsively to her neck. 

But, encumbered as she was with her clothes, she could do 
little to free herself. Her head sank beneath the water and 
the oozy slime filled her mouth and nostrils. The noise as of 
a rushing river filled her ears; then the weight was suddenly 
lifted from her breast. 

She rose again, panting and struggling desperately, and saw 
with smarting eyes the form of her husband's brother, Richard. 
In his arms he carried the child, ploughing through the muddy 
shallows towards the bank. He did not look at her, and only 
the broad and clumsy back was visible to hen Grood heavens I 
he was leaving her to drown. 

The shock made her arms nerveless. She struggled no 
longer. Again the stagnant water passed, bubbling horribly, 
over her face. Then the present went away from her into a 
vague and shadowy distance, in which there was neither pleas- 
ure nor pain. 



Chapter XV, 

THE WORD UNSPOKEN. 

When Nesta Moore came to herself she was on a chintz- 
covered sofa in Aunt Betsy's little sitting-room. She lay a 
minute without opening her eyes and heard the drip-drip of 
something on the loor. She opened her eyes and looked into 
her husband's face. It was from his clothing the water dripped. 
He was wet as a water-dog. The slimy water dripped from 
his hair and moustache. Where he stood a little pool was 
forming about him on the clean boarded floor. He was still 
pale with more than the shock of his immersion. 

''You are all right, darling, and the child is all right," he 
said. ''See, she is at your feet, wrapped up in blankets, as 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her Mother's- Daughter 465 

comfortable as a mouse. Can you drink a little more of this 
stuflF?" 

He lifted her head, keeping well away from her couch, and 
held a glass to her lips. She swallowed the brandy obediently, 
as she would have swallowed anything he gave her. She felt 
the river- water still in her throat and nostrils, and she was 
faint and ill. But, thank God 1 she was safe, and the child was 
safe. What would Jim have done without them ? 

''Come now and change, my bairn/' Aunt Betsy's coaxing 
voice said. ''See the mischief ye are doing. Ye're making 
everything as wet as yourself, Jamie. They are all right now. 
And here are some things ready to put on ye.'' 

But still James Moore delayed, protesting cheerfully that be 
would have to wait till the carriage could come from Outwood 
with fresh garments, since it would be quite impossible for him 
to get into those belonging to his brothers. 

He hung above his wife and child in a rapture of joyful 
thanksgiving because they were safe. 

" Look at Stella, Nest," he said. " She looks as if she 
were fresh out of her bath. Why she has a color and she is 
laughing, the little rogue. It will never occur again. Nest. I 
shall have the river fenced. It ought to have been done long 
ago. I can hardly forgive myself. You were going for the 
last time when I caught you. And Dick, old Dick, saved the 
child. We must never forget it for Dick, Nest. By the way, 
why doesn't he come back? He said he would when he'd 
changed. Here, give me the things. Aunt Betsy, and I'll see 
if I can get into some of them. A pretty sight I'll make with 
trousers up to my knees and coatsleeves to my elbows 1 " 

He went out of the room, holding the bundle of clothes at 
arms' length. But, having examined them, he decided on the 
impracticability of getting them on, and stalked off just as he 
was to the Mill House to borrow a dressing gown or some easy* 
fitting garment 

He had never had a serious illness in his life, and very few 
of the small ills flesh is heir to. He said afterwards that, as he 
went through the arched passages which led from one mill* 
yard to another, he felt chilled in his wet clothing. It was 
quite half an hour before he came back to Nesta's side with a 
dressing-gown belonging to his brother Stephen wrapped about 
him. He laughed when Aunt Betsy scolded him for his im- 

VOL. LXXXIX.— 30 



Digitized by 



Google 



466 HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER [July, 

prudence in having loitered so long in his wet clothes; and 
reminded her that he had been immune from colds as long as 
she remembered him. 

As they drove home in the brougham which had been sent 
over from Outwood, Nesta's head reposing on her husband's 
shoulder, she was full of a strange gloom and horror which 
she could not cast off no matter how she tried to banish them. 

Her memory went back to the accident, or what had been 
so nearly an accident, with the runaway milk cart. Then she 
could remember being steeped in a rosy and tranquil happiness 
in the hours that followed their escape. She and Jim might 
have been dead or dying or badly injured. Or one might have 
been injured or dead. And through the mercy of God they 
were alive and together; and it was exquisite to have escaped 
out of the danger, safe and unharmed. 

Now, she could not be glad. Her lips stirred mechanically, 
thanking God; but there was a chill horror encompassing her, 
the horror of that moment in which she had seen Richard 
Moore go away and leave her to her death. 

'' Jim,*' she said, whispering to him, " Jim — what was your 
brother Dick doing when you came and found me drowning ? *' 

''What was he doing? What an odd question, Nest I 
Why, now I come to think of it, I believe he was just doing 
nothing, but standing holding the dripping child and staring. 
A few minutes ago I didn't know I knew as much. But now 
you recall me to it I remember. For a second I did not know 
you were in the water too. Then I saw you come up. I for- 
got everything. And how those accursed weeds held me. They 
had the strength of cables. Nesta — my God I '' 

For a moment they clung together in a panic of memory. 
Then James Moore sat upright and shook himself. 

*' I am like an hysterical woman,'' he said. '* I didn't know 
I had nerves. Let us forget it and be glad that we are all 
safe and well. 

He smoothed his wife's hair with his fine, capable hand. 

''If you had not come, James, I should have drowned?" 
Nesta asked, in a small, shivery voice. " I should have drowned, 
should I not? The weeds would have dragged me down and 
held me fast at the bottom of the river." . 

'* Hush, Nesta. Thank God I came. I sent Dick first to 
tell you I was ready. Then I thought I must see Aunt Betsy. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her Mother's Daughter 467 

I was crossing the bleaching- green when I heard you screen), 
and my heart was in my mouth/' 

'^ I should have drowned, should I not ? " she repeated, odd- 
ly persistent. 

*^ Unless Dick had come to his senses in time. I remember 
now how he stood staring. It was too much for him. He was 
like a man in a dream. But he had saved Stella. We must be 
grateful to him forever because he saved Stella." 

"Yes." 

What a small, cold voice it was I Her lips opened and 
closed, opened and closed. She shared ^v^xy thought with 
him. Was she going to tell him that she believed his own 
brother, whom he loved and trusted, had been ready to leave 
her to her death? What a monstrous accusation he would 
think it ? Would he not turn away from her as from a mad- 
woman, full of horrible imaginings ? And supposing that, after 
all, Richard Moore had simply been spellbound, turned to 
stone, frozen with horror, and so unable to save her? Sup- 
posing there was something black and evil in her own mind 
that made her believe such horrible wickedness in a fellow- 
creature — and that the one who had saved Stella ? 

Her lips opened and shut, opened and shut — ^and remained 
silent. It was an accusation she did not dare to make. The 
secret must be between her and her husband in all the years 
to come ; and it lay as chill and horrible in her soul as though 
she herself had been the murderer in intention. 



Chapter XVI. 
a forlorn hope. 

During this afternoon, which had so nearly proved a ter- 
rible one for James and Nesta, Miss Sophia Grantley had gone 
paying visits. 

It was a long time now since she had done such a thing. 
For the last year or so she had been very home* keeping. She 
seemed to have plenty to do at home, putting her house in 
order, to judge by the many papers she docketed and filed and 
destroyed and sent away for safe- keeping during that winter 
which preceded Captain Grantley *s leave. Since the summer 



Digitized by 



Google 



468 Her Mother's Daughter July, 

had come in she had taken to a bath chair, being drawn about 
the quiet lanes by a trustworthy old servant, who took care 
not to jar his mistress. 

This afternoon, to the amazement of the coachman, he had 
orders to bring round the landau, a stately vehicle which had 
not been in use for a long time. Mr. Simmons rather resented 
the order. He had grown so accustomed to having his time 
to himself that it seemed the height of inconsideration for the 
old lady to go out driving at her time of life, and with a nip 
in the wind, too ; and Simmons of late, perhaps because of his 
easy life, had grown a bit wheezy and asthmatic, and looked 
upon himself as a man entitled to his well-earned rest. 

However, the carriage came round punctually, and Miss 
Grantley came down the steps supporting herself with one 
hand on her cane, the other on the arm of a rosy-cheeked, 
good-natured woman who had succeeded Grice as her maid. 

The old butler joined the woman on the steps as the landau 
rolled away from the long, low front of the Priory. 

"She do look fine,'' said Mrs. Sutton, "a-sitting up there 
so straight. She doesn't look her years, not by half." 

'' She has great spirit," said Wilkins, the butler. " Great 
spirit she has, our Missus. She'll hold her head high no 
matter how she be suffering till, Mrs. Sutton, till she* be car- 
ried out in her coffing." 

'' Dear me, and she do suffer, poor soul, at times some- 
think dreadful," said the sympathetic Sutton with a sniff. 

But even Sutton did not know how much her mistress suf- 
fered, nor guessed how near the time was when the indomi- 
table old spirit should yield to the inevitable, and enter upon 
the last grim fight, which could only be made lying down, 
which could only end one way. 

Miss Grantley had given the order — Mount- Eden. Sim* 
mons received the order with a little wonder. In the old days 
Lord Mount-Eden had been much abroad, and of late years 
Miss Grantley had not attended to her social duties, so there 
had been no visiting between them. 

During the drive Miss Grantley sat bolt upright. She had 
never been one for lolling. Time enough to lie down when 
she must, and that time was not very far off. The carriage 
went smoothly. The springs were still in excellent order ; but 
once or twice when there was a slight jerk, the old lady set 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER 469 

her lips tightly and the film upon her eyes deepened in in- 
tensity. 

She was fortunate in finding Lady Eugenia at home and 
alone. The servant preceded her out to the garden at tbe 
back, where the lady was sitting on a grass-plot under a copper 
beechf with a newspaper on her lap. 

When she heard the footsteps on the path she came to 
meet her visitor, under the pergola of roses which was one of 
the beauties of the place. She and Miss Grantley were slightly 
acquainted. Lady Eugenia welcomed the old lady with some- 
thing like effusiveness, taking her hand to lead her to where 
there was a group of chairs surrounding that on which she 
had been sitting. 

She put Miss Grantley into the most comfortable of the 
chairs, and set a footstool for her feet: then stood beside her 
looking down at her, so tall and smiling and kind, like a gra- 
cious young goddess. Yet she had been looking serious enough 
just before Miss Grantley made her appearance and the gravity 
was still in her eyes, although her lips smiled. 

'* It was so good of you to come,'' she said warmly. '' Do 
you know, I have often wished to call on you. Miss Grantley. 
I hope papa will be in presently. He and Mr. Stanhope have 
gone over to Burbridge to find out if there is any more news. 
Of course you have heard^'* 

"My dear,'' said Miss Grantley, interrupting her, ''you 
shall tell me your news later. I want to talk to you without 
fear of interruption. A dying woman doesn't pay afternoon 
calls. I want to talk to you about my nephew, Godfrey." 

"Your nephew, Captain Grantley?" 

Lady Eugenia's brown cheeks were suddenly irradiated. 

"He is very much in love with you, Lady Eugenia Capel. 
No; I'm not his ambassador. Godfrey can be his own am- 
bassador. Only I happen to know that he is in love with 
you — and that he does not dare show it, because he's a 
poor man and no match for the Earl of Mount* Eden's only 
daughter — " 

''Papa has enough money," said the lady, with a grave 
demeanor. 

"And because he thinks be has no chance against Mr. 
Stanhope," Miss Grantley said, watching Lady Eugenia's face 
with eyes which had suddenly become bright and observant. 



Digitized by 



Google 



470 HER MOTHERS DAUGHTER [July, 

** Mr. Stanhope — papa's friend and mine ? Mr. Stanhope 
has no pretensions, I assure you, Miss Grantley. There is 
some one else whom he worships — " 

'' If he has not, twenty others have. And my poor God- 
frey has barely a penny to bless himself with, as they say. 
Not that that is anything unusual among gentlefolk. It is not 
they who have the money now, but tradespeople. And they 
are received everywhere, even by those who ought to know 
better. I have always taken a di£ferent view. Although my 
own grand-niece married a man in trade, I wouldn't look at 
her for years. The Duchess of St. Germains helped to recon- 
cile me to the designs of Providence. She admires my great- 
nephew-in»law so very much. They are quite friends. It was 
a bit of a shock to me at first, for I have not quite dissoci- 
ated Nesta's husband from his very respectable old father, who 
used to stand hat in hand when we spoke to him.*' 

''It is such an interesting family/' said Lady Eugenia, 
with a sparkling eye. '' Old Mr. Moore's sister still lives in a 
cottage at the back of the mill. She is a delightfully clean, 
homely old body, with such a snowy high cap. I have gone 
with your niece to take tea with her. And Mr. Moore's brothers 
are so odd and interesting." 

'' I've always heard they were horrors," said Miss Grantley. 
" But — James Moore is really a remarkable person. From what 
the Duchess tells me I begin to understand my great-niece's 
infatuation." 

'' The Duchess thinks Mr. Moore a finer figure of a man 
than even the late Duke," Lady Eugenia said, with a flash of 
humor, ''and she ought to know. Her first husband died just 
in time to prevent her divorcing him, because she discovered 
when he went to court that he had no calves to his legs." 

Miss Grantley looked at her with the far-away contempla- 
tive gaze with which the old sometimes greet the sallies of 
the young. 

Just then a clock in the stable-yard struck, and Miss 
Grantley's gaze became alert. 

"How I am wasting my time," she said, "and at any 
moment some one may come and prevent my saying what I've 
come to say. A dying woman doesn't drive about the coun- 
try for the pleasure of making small talk. Yes, I'm a dying 
woman, my dear; and I should like to make some one happy 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her Mother's Daughter 471 

before I go. My great-nepbew, Godfrey, is in love with you. 
Lady Eugenia (Capel)/' 

She stared hard at the color that once more flooded the 
lady's cheeks. 

"And you are in love with him/' she said. "They were 
wrong who gave you to Mr. Stanhope." 

Lady Eugenia's eyelids fluttered nervously. 

" Captain Grantley avoids me/' she said in a low voice. 

" Because he is a high*minded, Quixotic boy. He has no 
money and you have much. That is why I am not going to 
wait for my death to give bim all I have. It is not much as 
fortunes go now-a-days, but at least he need not depend alto- 
gether on your bounty. Godfrey shall speak." 

Lady Eugenia blushed redly and then turned very pale. 

"I should like him to speak now/' she said; "but per- 
haps he never will. Perhaps, if he is as I think him, he will 
think I ought to be free. There is going to be war — and 
with savages; the worst kind of war. That was the news I 
wanted to tell you. Gordon is dead in Khartoum. We must 
talk and think of nothing else now. He will not speak. He 
will not be thinking of love. Ah, here comes papa/' 

For the rest of the visit Miss Grantley was strangely silent, 
so silent that Lord Mount^Eden, when he had returned, won- 
dered why the old lady had come only to sit mum-chaace 
like that. And Mr. Stanhope, who prided himself on a knowl- 
edge of what lay behind faces, wished she would speak; won- 
dered what it was, resolution or despair, that sat on the pale 
old lips so tight together. 

(to be continued.) 



Digitized by 



Google 



THE WONDERS OF LOURDES. 

BY J. BRICOUT. 

URING the past two years unusual attention has 
been given to Lourdes — the little village of the 
Pyrenees in which so^many marvels have occurred 
ever since that blessed eleventh of February, 
1858^ when the Queen of Heaven graciously ap- 
peared to the humble Bernadette. Pilgrims have flocked thither 
in larger crowds than usual. The happenings at the shrine, 
both past and present, have become once more the object of 
the most widely divergent views. 

What is to be thought of Bernadette's visions and the cures 
at Lourdes ? It will be worth our while to examine these 
questions thoroughly and without prejudice. 

But before we treat the matter directly, it may be well to 
glance at the attitude of both believers and unbelievers in this 
connection. 

We will not dwell on the "persecutions" or trials to which 
Bernadette and the first believers in Lourdes were subjected 
by the civil authorities, among whom were the Mayor, the 
Police Commissioner, the Prefect, and the Minister of Public 
Instruction and Worship. Many of the officials who tried to 
make Bernadette retract her assertions, and to check the popu- 
lar enthusiasm, were sincere Catholics. Others, while not posi- 
tively hostile to the Church, did not believe in the supernatu- 
ral. At any rate, they did not admit that, subsequent to the 
Gospel miracles, there was any need of Divine intervention in 
the world. 

Science and scientists naturally take a part in the debates 
provoked by the happenings at Lourdes. They have a right 
to do so. We have no thought of reproaching them for sub- 
jecting the wonders of Lourdes to the most exhaustive investi- 
gation. We blame them odly because they treat the question 
too summarily, and subject it to a sort of jugglery. 

A few examples will bring out our thought clearly. In its 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Wonders of Lourdes 473 

issue of June 27, 1872, V Union Medicale printed a conierence 
delivered by Doctor Voisin. of the Salp^tri^re. In it, as proof 
that hallucinations very frequently led to insanity, the learned 
professor asserted that Bernadette, having lost her rnisd, had 
been ''shut up in the Ursuline Convent of Nevers/' 

Two months later (Nevers, September 3, 187^) Dr. Robert 
Saint- Cyr, President of the Nievre Medical Society, wrote as 
follows to Dr. Damoiseauy President of the Orne Medical So- 
ciety : 

My dsar Coluagus : You could not have applied to a 
better source for information about the young girl of Lourdes, 
to-day Sister Marie-Bernard. As doctor to the community, I 
have long given my care to this young sister, whose delicate 
health at one time gave us cause for uneasiness. She is now 
much better, from a patient has become my infirmarian, and 
has accomplished her duties perfectly. She is slight and 
frail in appearance, and is twenty-seven years old. Natural- 
ly calm and gentle, she tends the invalids very intelligently, 
and without omitting any of the directions given. She has 
complete control of her patients, and I have entire confidence 
in her. 

You see, my dear colleague, that this young sister is far 
from being insane. I would say further that her calm, sim- 
ple, and sweet nature is not in the least compatible with any 
such tendency. . . • 

One month later, on October 3, the Bishop of Nevers wrote 
the following letter to the Universx 

DSAR Sir : As you very well know, it was asserted some 
little time ag6 by a professor at the Salp6tri^re, when devel- 
oping his theory on hallucination, that Bemadette Soubirous, 
in religion Sister Marie-Bernard, was detained in the Ursu- 
line Convent at Nevers as a mad woman. Will you kindly 
publish this letter, in which I declare : 

1. That Sister Marie-Bernard has never set foot In the 
Ursuline Convent at Nevers. 

2. That she lives at Nevers, it is true, but in the mother- 
house of the Sisters of Charity and of Christian Instruction, 
where she entered and remains of her own free will, like any 
other sister. 

3. That, far from being mad, she is an uncommonly sensi- 
ble person and of unequalled calmness of mind. Moreover, 



Digitized by 



Google 



474 THE WONDERS OF LOURDES [July, 

I have great pleasure in inviting the above-mentioned pro- 
fessor to come in person to verify this triple statement. 

If he will be good enough to let me know the date of his 
arrival, I will see to it that he is put into communication with 
Sister Marie- Bernard, and that he may have no doubt as to 
her identity, I will ask M. le Procureur of the Republic to 
present her. He will then be able to examine her and to 
question her as long as it pleases him. 

M. E. Arttts even promised xojooo francs to Dr. Voisin if 
he would prove his assertion. The 'professor remained silent. 
M. Artus then wrote to him: 

Allow me, Sir, to end this discussion by a reflection which 
is addressed to all those who, like yourself, have the honor to 
speak to the public, either by speech or in writing. In these 
conditions, any man who denies or asserts facts of such im- 
portance, without due consideration, or accurate verification, 
commits a social crime, for he falsifies or troubles the con- 
science of an innumerable class who have neither time nor 
opportunity to examine the matter for themselves, and who 
naturally tend to believe those whose duty it is to instruct 
them.* 

Dr. Balencie^ now attached to the Medical Office at Lourdes, 
knew and observed Bernadette from the time of the first appa- 
rition. Although a Catholic, he came to the conclusion, in his 
report to the Prefect, that the young girl was a victim of hal- 
lucinations. His testimony, then, has weight. Surely we may 
trust him when be affirms, with many others, that Bernadette left 
Lourdes of her own free will, out of humility and also out of a 
desire to escape the vain and tiring exhibitions which she could 
not avoid while there. 

How many doctors and learned men manifest the same lack 
of judgment as Dr. Voisin when treating of Lourdes? They 
imagine that there is nothing more to be said after they have 
spoken of '' the faith that heals " and the power of suggestion. 
They practically assert that only nervous diseases are healed at 
Lourdes, or that, at any rate, there is never any sudden resto- 
ration of any wasted tissue. Cases are cited which disprove 

* The text of these docaments is taken from TAbM Bertrin's book, A Critical History 
of Happenings at LourtUs, The abM is a professor at the Catholic Institute of Paris. His 
book is published in English by Bensiger Brothers, New York. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Wonders of Lourdes 475 

their assertions. They answer that these cases are undoubtedly 
apocryphal; that they do not exist. They seem to think that 
their denial ends the matter. It is, to be sure, one way of 
escaping a difficulty, but it surely is not honest and scientific. 
The facts ought to be studied at closer range. The question 
is a grave one, and of supreme importance for our moral and 
religious life. May we not charge those who flatly deny the 
evidence of facts, who do not hesitate to contradict themselves 
by ^* correcting '* or denying their diagnosis of a case, rather 
than admit a miraculous cure, with falsehood and dishonesty? 

One day a girl arrived at Lourdes with a medical certifi- 
cate, stating that she was consumptive. After a first bath in 
the piscina she felt cured. Examined at the Medical Office, 
it was found that there was no longer any lung disease. The 
evil no longer existed, if it had existed at all. 

The certificate which stated its existence was short, but to 
the point. From motives of prudence the doctor was wired 
to, to obtain a distinct and certain diagnosis. Nothing was 
mentioned of the cure which had taken place. The doctor 
telegraphed back : ** She is consumptive." 

It became known later that this was also the opinion of 
other doctors who had attended the patient. Meanwhile the 
girl returned joytuUy home, and Immediately went to the 
doctor to obtain a certificate of her cure. He gave her one, 
but very unwillingly. When she read it she found that he 
declared her to be cured, but cured of a cold. 

The phthisis, certified to In the previous certificate and In 
the telegram, had developed Into a cold ! The free-thinker 
had overruled the doctor and made him lie.* 

Those who will not admit the fact of a divine intervention 
at Lourdes, unless God raises a dead man to life or restores an 
amputated limb, are both thoughtless and unfair. According 
to them, the cures that have been e£fected there thus far are 
but trifles that do not merit serious consideration. They will 
believe only on more certain grounds. 

How can those prodigies, with which the history of Lourdes 
is filled, be treated so disdainfully ? They are of the very 
highest value. And what foolish pride there is in demanding 
that God work this or that miracle to order. ''If they hear 

* Bertrin, L§unUSt pp. 931-853, 



Digitized by 



Google 



476 The Wonders of Lourdes [July, 

not Moses and the prophets, neither will they believe, if one 
rise again from the dead/' 

These words are ever true. I know not if God will some 
day be pleased to work at Lourdes the stupendous miracles 
such critics ask, but I do know that if these miracles were 
performed, these same critics would quickly conjure up some 
other pretext for refusing to find the finger of God in them. 
^' After all/' they would say, '' why should it be impossible for 
a dead man to come to life again naturally? Why should 
not the soul, at times, come back to resume possession of the 
body it has left, and so reconstitute the living combination 
called man ? '' Or another difficulty would be brought for- 
ward. '' Is the fact itself absolutely certain ? '' Might it not 
have been merely an hallucination, due either to hypnotic or 
auto-suggestion ? For it is in this fashion that many have ex- 
plained the Gospel miracles, such as the changing of water into 
wine, the multiplication of loaves, the calming of the tempest, 
the raising of Lazarus from the dead, and the resurrection of 
Jesus. " Unbelievers are the most credulous of all men," said 
Pascal. How much wiser is the man of good- will, who loyally 
admits the facts that have been observed and bravely holds 
fast to the conclusions that follow from them I 

It is not merely scientific men who give evidence of 
thoughtlessness, and even of bad faith in connection with 
Lourdes. We will mention here only two names — Zola and 
Jean de Bonnefon. Zola, for instance, in his book on Lourdes 
gave his readers the impression that it was a true account 
of what actually took place at Lourdes. The press echoed 
the claim, yet the book is purely and simply a romance. 

Zola never saw Bernadette. He never consulted those who 
knew her and could study her at close range. What he wrote 
about her childhood is, on the whole, pure fancy, though he 
writes as if it were actual truth. He claims that Bernadette was 
a victim of hallucinations. He also imagines the cures that 
he narrates, fashioning them according to the needs of his 
thesis. They are altogether at variance with fact. His hero- 
ine, Marie de Guersaint, is a type of the hysterical patient 
cured by suggestion. His other '' miraculously cured '' charac- 
ters, have nothing of the supernatural in their cure. Their 
cure, if it is a case of cancer, has been gradual and imperfect ; 
if it is a case of bone decay, it has not been sufficiently estab- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Wonders of Lourdes 477 

lished; if it is a case of consttmption, it has not been permanent 
or real. All that is false. Dr. Boissarie and TAbb^ Bertrin 
have proved it superabundantly. But how few of Zola's readers 
will open books like those of Bertrin or Boissarie? They will 
take Zola's words as truth. 

One example will show how Zola plays fast and loose with 
facts. La Grivotte, whom he pictures with excessive realismi 
is none other than Marie Lebranchu. But while Marie Le- 
branchu was instantaneously cured of consumption, which 
would have soon proved fatal, and has had no relapse in six- 
teen years, La Grivotte, after a brief improvement which can 
be explained by suggestion, dies on her return from Lourdes, 

This off-hand manner of deriding truth, and daringly cheat- 
ing his readers, so upset the president of the Medical Office, 
that one day, when at Paris, he called on M. Zola and said : 

'' How did you dare to make Marie I<ebranchu die? You 
know very well that she is as well as you or I.'* 

'' What has that got to do with me? " was the audacious 
reply. '* My characters are my own. I can treat them as I 
like. I can make them live or die as I please. All I have to 
consider is the interest of my plot." 

I do not know what M. Boissarie then replied, but I know 
very well that he might have said : 

'' If you wished to take such liberties you should not have 
announced to the world at large that your novel is historical. 
Nor should you have said in the press you were going to ex- 
pose 'the truth, the whole truth, the truth which will profit 
everybody.' Once the public have received such promises, 
they have a right to expect their accomplishment. The 
author is bound to relate the facts faithfully, even if they are 
contrary to his personal opinions. If, then, a cured woman 
who maintains her cure is represented as undergoing a mortal 
relapse, the case is certainly one of perjury.* 

Undoubtedly some of the cures at Lourdes — apparent cures 
— are not permanent. We have no thought of denying that 
suggestion can afford temporary relief, even to consumptiveF. 
What we do say against Zola is, not that he makes La Grivotte 
suffer a relapse, but that he makes her case the ordinary rule 
and creates the impression that nervous diseases are the only 
diseases truly cured at Lourdes. 

•/wrf., pp. 347-348. 



Digitized by 



Google 



478 The Wonders of Lourdes [July, 

Zola was embarrassed by Marie Lebranchu*s existence. He 
tried to get this troublesome witness out of the way by bury- 
ing her in an obscure corner of Belgium. Marie Lebranchu her- 
selff in March, 1908, told about the visit Zola paid her in 1906, 
four years after her cure: 

'' He (Zola) said that M. Boissarie worried him all the time 
about my case, and reproached him for having made me die. 
He told me that if I wanted to leave Paris, and go to Belgium 
with my husband, he would see to it that we should not want 
for anything." 

** Then he suggested that you go to Brussels? •' 

** No ; not to Brussels, nor to any other large 'city. We 
would have to live in a country-place which he would get lor 
us himself. Then he pulled out his pocket-book, and took a 
bundle of bank-notes from it. I do not know how much it 
was, for he did not count them. He held them out to me, 
saying : ' Here, this will do for your first needs. It will be 
enough for a month. In that time I will look for what you 
want and I will myself secure you a place.* *' 

** Did you accept the offer? ** 

*' For a moment I was tempted to do so, for we were desti- 
tute at the time. But my husband, making up his mind 
quite suddenly, went up to M. Zola, took him by the arm, 
and threw him out, bidding him go away. M. Zola left and I 
never saw him again." * 

No matter what he may say to the contrary, Zola wrote 
bis novel in order to destroy belief in the supernatural at 
Lourdes. M, Jean de Bonnefon, in writing his newspaper arti- 
cles and gathering them into a volume, f aimed at the same 
end. M. de Bonnefon called himself a Catholic, but he wished 
to persuade the government to stop pilgrimages to Lourdes. 

M. de Bonnefon demands that they be forbidden on the 
ground oi public morality: Lourdes is but a shameful exploitation 
of human credulity. He calls for it in the name of public health : 
these sick people travel through France and are always likely 
to spread contagion. He calls for it in the name of public 
order: Lourdes is a hot-bed of political reaction. No doubt, 
he adds, simple people will be grieved by the closing of this 
'' bad place," where they think they see a little corner of heaven 

♦ Ibid,^ p. 577. tjean de Bonnefon, Lourdes et sis Tenanciers, 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



1909.] The Wonders of Lourdes 479 

dropped down on earth. But there are cases in which a sur- 
geon will not shrink from performing even the most painful 
operations. 

M. de Bonnefon does not prove his statements. I will not 
stop to show that Lourdes is not a center of political disturbance, 
nor a source of infection. There is hardly any one who has 
taken the editor of the Petite Ripublique and the Depiche (of 
Toulouse) seriously in these points. I may be excused, how- 
ever, for dwelling on what he continually speaks of as ''the 
lie of Lourdes." De Bonnefon writes : 

There is no need of a scientist to refute the legend. An 
historian's notes will do that. 

On several occasions he speaks as an historian who has 
ransacked archives, discovered unedited documents, and holds 
himself as an impartial critic. The truth is that M. de Bonnefon 
has done nothing, as a rule, but repeat lying rumors, long in 
circulation. For example, he has repeated the story concern- 
ing the source of the water-supply for the pools and pipes in 
the Grotto • 

On some points, however, he has furnished an unedited 
document for his readers. Unfortunately all that is interesting 
in this document bears strong traces of apocryphal origin. 
First let us hear M. de Bonnefon : 

M. Palconnety a magistrate, worthy of a place in old-time 
parliaments, was then ^'procureur g£ii6ral'' at the imperial 
court of Pau. On December 28, 1857, forty-five days befote 
the first apparition t he sent the following (unpublished) official 
note to the imperial " procureur " at the Lourdes court. 

Officb of thb Pubwc Proskcutor at thb Impbriai. 
Court of Pau. 
My d^ar Associate : I hear that certain manifestations 
pretending to be supernatural and apparently miraculous are 
planned for the end of the year. I beg you to see to it that a 
close watch is kept on them. I must know the details so as to 
judge under what articles of the Penal Code they may be prose- 
cuted. I fear that you can count but little on the local au- 

* This groundless and hundred-times-refuted story is to the effect that the water comes 
from the Gave through skillfully concealed pipes. 

t Th^ italics are M. de Bocnefon's. 



Digitized by 



Google 



48o THE WONDERS OF LOURDES TJuly. 

thoritlcs, either civil or religious. It is our duty to take the 
necessary steps to prevent a recurrence of scandals like those 
of La Salette,* and particularly because the religious demon- 
stration conceals a political scheme. 

Respectfully yours, 

E. FAI.CONNKT, 

Procureur giniral. 

During his New Year's receptions, M. Falconnet repeated 
the suggestions he had made to the Imperial Prosecutor at 
Lourdes. He then left for Paris and reported the impending 
events to his superior, the Keeper of the Seals. 

Apropos of this matter we will quote TAbb^ Bertrin, who 
has devoted a few pages of his new edition to M. de Bonnefon's 
unpublished document. 

This document may be characterized in one word. His 
apocryphal. 

We boldly challenge the man who quoted it for the first 
time, in 1905, to produce the original, or at least to tell where 
it can be seen, so that the public will be able to prove its ex- 
istence. The unknown agent, who brought him the copy, 
played a trick on him. The document never existed. 

M. Bertrin concludes his sharp, decisive discussion of the 
letter as follows: 

To speak seriously, it is plain that the whole story aims at 
making us ridiculous. This ''official note" is written in a 
style that is neither known nor approved in official circles. 
This extremely important official communication is never 
heard of until it suddenly puts in its appearance one day after 
the lapse of half a century. Then there is no telling where it 
comes from. It is, moreover, astonishing that all the inter- 
ested officials of the time, among them the supposed recipient 
of the letter himself, show by their words and conduct that 
they never even suspected the existence of this document. 
These suggestions were renewed at a New Year's reception 
which has been proved fictitious.t The trip to Paris was un- 
dertaken by a prominent personage just to give the Keeper of 

* La Salette is a village of the Alps. According to the common belief of the faithful, the 
Blessed Virgin appeared in 1846 to a little boy and girl who were tending their flocks on the 
mountain nearby. 

t It has been proved that M. Falconnet did not hold any reception on New Year's Day, 
Z858, nor on the days following. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Wonders of Lourdes 481 

the Seals information about a village rumor. . . . This 
whole extravagant story is evidently a romance. It is a badly- 
conceived romance, however, for it is too unreal and its im- 
probability is too evident. A critical mind need not give it 
another thought. There can be no doubt in the matter. The 
case is settled. 

Eight or ten months have already elapsed since M. Bertrin 
published this complete refutation, but M. de Bonnefon has 
not been heard from. Like Dr. Voisin before him, he is silent. 
He has no answer ready. Once again, however, we are forced 
to say that, in a certain world, honesty does not seem to be 
current coin. 

To put it briefly, I am of the opinion that the stand taken 
by the Church and by the faithful with regard to Lourdes is 
much more correct and honest than that taken by free-thinkers. 

I do not mean to say that Churchmen have no reason at 
all for self-reproach in this, as in other matters. One must be 
very guileless and childlike to pretend to find absolute perfec- 
tion here below. We know that men are always men. Even 
granting that the charges or insinuations of Henri Lasserre, 
Huysmans, Zola, and Jean de Bonnefon are not entirely ground* 
less, we will not be thereby scandalized. The all-important fact 
is that the clergy, as a body, have played a part at Lourdes 
which is approved by good sense, prudence, and honesty. 

L'Abbi Peyramale, the pastor of Lourdes, and Mgr. Lau- 
rence, the Bishop of Tarbes, began very wisely by holding 
aloof and by keeping silence. If it was God who was acting 
through Bernadette, He would easily furnish His credentials. 
They did not deny, a priori^ the objective reality of Berna- 
dette*s visions; neither did they affirm it off- hand. They waited 
for incontrovertible proof. 

The little girl's sincerity, however, was beyond question. 
Soon cures were worked by water from the spring which she 
had revealed. The people, with eager confidence, were con- 
vinced that it was the Immaculate Virgin who had appeared to 
her. On July 28, 1858, more than five months after the first 
apparition, Mgr. Laurence decided to appoint a committee of 
investigation. Almost four years more passed by before the 
Bishop gave his decision, authorizing his diocese to venerate 
our Lady of the Grotto of Lourdes. 
vou Lxxzix.— 31 



Digitized by 



Google 



\ 



482 THE Wonders of lourdes [Jwlyi 

This ordinance has not been left to stand alone. Others 
have appeared^ even quite recently* giving canonical judgment 
to the effect that certain cures have been wrought through the 
intercession of our Lady of Lourdes. 

Up to the present time, it is true, the Popes have not 
given any explicit, definitive judgment from which one could 
conclude that the Church teaches infallibly the supernatural 
character of the revelations to Bemadette or of the cures at 
Lourdes. There is no doubt» however, about their private 
opinion. Pius X., as well as Pius IX. and Leo XIIL, believes 
firmly that they are supernatural. Leo XIII. having author- 
ized an Office and Mass of the Apparition, on November 13, 
1907, Pius X. extended the feast to the whole Church. Hence- 
forth it is of liturgical obligation on February 11. M. Bertrin 
remarks that this is the only happening of its kind in eight 
hundred years. In all that time no other "apparition" has 
found entrance into the general liturgy. Many significant in- 
dications, furthermore, give ground for the belief that Rome 
will not delay to ''introduce the cause'' of the beatification 
and canonization of Bemadette. 

The judgment of Catholics in general, like that of the epis- 
copate, is firm and clear. The excellent works of Pere Cros, 
Dr. Boissarie, and TAbb^ Bertrin — I mention only the best- 
known — have fully enlightened the faithful. They know that a 
host of conscientious and well-informed physicians unhesitatingly 
guarantee the proofs of miracles effected by the Virgin of 
Lourdes. Two declarations in particular have been the object 
of widespread public attention. 

The first was made by more than a hundred physicians 
who met on October 21, 1901, under the presidency of the 
illustrious Dr. Duret, a professor of the surgical clinic in the 
Catholic Faculty of Medicine at Lille. Dr. Le Bee, the well- 
known surgeon of St. Joseph's Hospital in Paris, had explained 
the cure of Pierre de Rudder with the most scrupulous exact- 
ness. After an exhaustive study of the case, and with a per- 
fect knowledge of the facts, the assembly voted the following 
conclusions : 

The members of St. Luke's Society, after an examination 
of the circumstances connected with the cure of Pierre de 
Rudder, who was afflicted for about eight years with a sup- 
purating fracture of the leg, are of opinion 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Wonders of Lovrdes 483 

1. That the complete restoration of the bone, revealed by 
the autopsy, could not have been effected suddenly by natural 
means. 

2. That the testimony of many eye-witnesses, who visited 
the sick man immediately before his cure, is sufficient to at- 
test the continuance of the fracture, even if a medical certifi- 
cate had not been issued, as happened, at that very time. 
They think, consequently, that this sudden cure ought to be 
considered a fact of the supernatural order, or, in other 
words, a miracle. 

The second declaration is even more recent. It dates from 
1906- 1907. At the time that violent attacks were being made 
against pilgrimages to LoardeSi it was signed by 346 doctors. 
In it we read: 

The undersigned consider it a duty ... to admit that 
unhoped-for cures are effected at Lourdes in great numbers, 
by a particular energy or agency, whose secret formula science 
does not know as yet, and which it cannot explain reasonably 
by the sole powers of nature. 

The signers of this act of faith are not obscure men. 
Among them there are three members of the Academy of 
Medicine, a dozen professors of Faculties, forty-two surgeons 
and physicians from hospitals, fourteen heads of clinics or la- 
boratories, and forty»two acting or former internes. 

In the present paper we simply wish to state that, in view 
of what we have said about the sentiments of ecclesiastical 
authorities and competent scholars, Catholics have good reason 
to believe in the Virgin of Lourdes and in the miracles which 
her goodness bestows so freely. 

They should not be taxed with blind credulity for betaking 
themselves to Lourdes by hundreds of thousands and by mil- 
lions. Their confidence rests on sure foundations. 

There is, no doubt, something great and high* spirited in 
the stand taken by the scholarly free-thinker who confronts 
what is extraordinary with an undiminished faith in the power 
of science and tells himself that there will come a day in which 
science will explain and clear up what is now mysterious and 
apparently superior to nature, just as it has already explained 
many things that were but lately included in the realm of 
mystery. 



Digitized by 



Google 



484 THE WONDERS OF LOURDES [J^ly- 

There is something noble in the faith which buoys up and 
animates so many scientists — a faith often crowned with suc- 
cess. We also share this faith in so far as it is well-founded 
and legitimate. There is nothing to hinder our belief in the 
laws of nature and the indefinite victories of science. We re- 
ject only the excesses and vagaries of scientific faith. Nature 
and her laws are always subject to God» their sovereign Author. 
When He sees fit to do so in His Infinite Wisdom, He is al- 
ways free to act directly in this world and always able to 
make His intervention perceptible to men of good- will. 

I say to men of good-will. The reason why is because 
moral and religious facts or reasonings do not impose them- 
selves on men's minds with such constraining force as to take 
away all possibility of resistance and with it all merit. ^*I 
have believed because I have seen/' said Dr. Doyous, a phys- 
ician of Lourdes, a sceptic in religion. He had examined 
Bernadette carefully and admitted that he was overcome by 
the facts. Dr. Doyous believed because he had seen, I grant 
it, but also because the truth did not frighten him. Dr. Ba» 
lencie, of whom we have already spoken, Dr. Diday, and many 
others were also men of good- will. They had cast doubt on 
the miracle of Lourdes. They had denied it, opposed it, and 
even ridiculed it; but they ended by proclaiming it openly. 

Let free-thinkers who willingly acknowledge Bemadette's 
sincerity and the reality of the cures at Lourdes, have the 
courage to be perfectly honest with themselves. Let them 
resolve, sincerely, to accept the whole truth with all its prac* 
tical consequences. This good-will, we are sure, will open their 
souls to the sweet influence of the Immaculate Virgin of 
Lourdes. 

(to be continued.) 



Digitized by 



Google 




THE SMALL AND NARROW HOUSE. 

BY PAMELA GAGE. 

[HE house is the shell into which the man creepsi 
that strange erection of one box upon another 
which has become to him more than a shelter from 
the wind and weather, which contains all his ego- 
isms, and is spiritual or earthly, according to the 
nature of its owner. It is something inseparable from the man. 
He plants his character upon it Then it becomes home. If 
it should be only a home for a little while, the body of it be- 
longing to some one who has no more to do with it than that 
lifeless ownership, the soul of the house, nvhich for the time 
being is an image of the man's soul, departs from the house with 
him, and it is soulless, lifeless, till a new owner comes to give 
it a soul. 

When I have been in a house for a time but have had to 
leave it I have felt that the house was dead and I was closing 
its eyes when I turned my back upon it. It has been a little 
death to myself to leave a house which I have informed with 
my own soul, which has shared so many things poignant and 
pleasant with me. I have always felt that the house left soul- 
less was like a ghost that cried to one in the still watches of 
the night to come back and warm it. These square boxes be- 
come as so many tabernacles of the soul: within them life is 
begun and love is brought to fruition. Those walls look upon 
the tragedies of the soul when one lies awake at night and is 
solitary after an illness. They are acquainted with death and 
birth. The spirit is yielded up in them, and they have held 
the exquisiteness of children and the tenderness of parents and 
the silent hours of lovers and the communion with God. They 
become so sacred that it seems a thousand pities they should 
ever serve for one family after another. They ought to be 
Holy of Holies : and instead, with the great mass of people, 
they are but shelters from the wind and rain for three years 
or five years ; and then away to another house. It is no won- 
der the business of house-building has become degraded, since 



Digitized by 



Google 



486 THE SMALL AND NARROW HOUSE [July. 

what was once a temple is now a shelter for the night. It is 
fitting that houses should be jerry-built and topple soon to 
ruins. They are not fitted for what should be a house's high 
vocation. 

You have only to mark the difference between the beauti- 
ful old houses that have enshrined the same family for ages 
and the newer houses that are a public thing. It is not a dif- 
ference of age and beauty and strong building : it is something 
more subtle than that. A quite new house, though you lav- 
ished on it as much as Solomon did on the building of the 
Temple, would still be a dead thing : a mere empty shell await- 
ing its soul. Whereas the old house has a wisdom and vener- 
able charm all its own. It is like a beautiful old, wise mother 
who knows much and can impart much. 

On the other hand, there are houses that are always soul- 
less, and these are houses that one leaves without regret. They 
are those houses which are built for only temporary habitation, 
only concerned with the holidays of life, such as seaside chalets 
and villas. One feels no more grief at leaving them than at 
leaving an empty box. One has no memories of them. Where- 
as, leaving behind a many-hundred-year-old cottage, which we 
had inhabited for a couple of months, my very heart bled at 
forsaking it where it stood in its little cottage- garden. The 
moonlit nights, the exquisite mornings, the singing of birds, 
the golden summer days, seemed somehow bound up with it. 
When I left it so much had I lost, by so much was I the 
poorer and the older. The cottage had a soul, and the little 
windows under the timbered eaves looked after us as we turned 
away like the eyes of a friend who is forsaken. 

I have always thought that a house which is really a dwell- 
ing-place tells you its secrets as you cross the threshold. I 
think I can tell if love is there and peace. In a house where 
those who ought to love each other are at variance, on the 
brightest days I have seen the lurking shadows in the hall and 
on the staircase. In old houses about London, beautiful in 
their own way, I have smelt old sins in the rooms and have 
not been surprised to hear that this or that famous rake or 
famous courtesan inhabited there. In old houses in the coun- 
try, with the wind blowing through them and greenness and 
beautiful distances beyond the windows, I have been aware of 
the peaceful and simple lives that were lived there. As an old 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Small and Narrow house 487 

garden in London smells of the churchyard, while the country 
garden smells of box and roses, so the old London house, once 
a country house, hidden away picturesquely in a secluded 
place, is haunted by the ghosts of old sins. 

What gives a Queen Anne house or a Greorgian house in 
a London square or street its curious, old-world dignity? Is 
it not the beaux and the belles who once inhabited there ? 
When you have entered a house of this sort, insignificant, 
relatively, outside, within beautiful and spacious, with an or- 
dered, old-world dignity which hears no more of the roar of 
London than if it were a hundred miles away, it is not the 
body of the house that impresses you. It is its soul ; its soul 
which has taken on the impression of those dead and gone 
men and women. No mere adding together and grouping of 
bricks and mortar, marble and stucco-work, no carpets and 
curtains, tables and chairs, could give you that sense of a 
living personality. 

I have a fancy, a conviction perhaps, that I know, cross- 
ing its threshold, a house in which religion is a living force. 
It is the something light and bright which meets one at the 
door of a convent and makes every convent beautiful. I asso- 
ciate it nearly always with rather spare and austere abodes. 
There are other lightnesses and brightnesses. There is the 
warmth of a home where the mother is a loving and bene- 
ficent influence to her children. I have known such a one 
and there was a feeling of firelight in it all the year. Now 
the poor house stands empty, remembering the fire that has 
gone out. The last time I passed there the gates at which I 
used to turn in so certain of my welcome had flapping bills 
— '' To Let or to be Sold " — upon them. I came upon it 
suddenly, arriving there by a road which I had not known 
passed those gates which had been such a pleasant sight to 
me as the end of a pilgrimage. The bills were terrible to me, 
and the empty, unlit house in the midst of its fields and 
gardens. 

There is also a brightness and lightness of country air, es- 
pecially visible when one has come from the city. It used to 
hang in those cottage rooms lucent as well-water. It was an 
absence of course as well as a presence : an absence of the 
impurities that hang in London air, making it almost palpable; 
but a sweet, pure presence as well. The lightness and bright- 



Digitized by 



Google 



488 The Small and Narrow house [July, 

ness of holiness is another matter. It is so clear that some 
might find it cold« It attained its perfection doubtless in a 
small house at Nazareth some nineteen hundred years ago. 

I have crossed over a threshold and I have said to myself : 
** Here lives a saint/' I have found it in the little, damp 
cabin inhabited by an Irish village-dressmaker, who was the 
prototype of Mary as her sister was of Martha. Martha 
cooked and washed up, and swept and dusted, and dug in the 
little garden, and put wall- flowers in an old jam-jar by Mary's 
bed: for Mary sat in bed, propped up with cushions, and 
sewed, with the eyes of her soul in the other world, while the 
eyes of her body were occupied with stitches. She put in a 
prayer with every stitch, but she was never pietistic. Though 
she was always sitting at Some One's feet, yet she could talk 
cheerfully of gores and gathers and frills : and the long horse- 
face, which ought to have been ugly, was beautiful, ravaged 
by suffering, unhealthy in color from lack of the open air and 
the sunshine, yet beautiful always, as though there were a light 
behind it. She was a much better craftswoman than most of 
her kind; indeed, it was her devotion to her craft that had 
laid her low for life — for, sitting up late to finish a wedding 
dress for a rustic bride, in her green youth she sat on the 
cold stone flags of the floor, that discomfort might keep her 
awake, and so contracted the chill which twisted her out of 
shape. She was humbly apologetic to poor Brother Ass the 
body for the things she had laid upon it unthinkingly, and 
while she talked in her soft drawl I saw the lightness and 
the brightness in the room. 

I remember it also in a village post-office, where there was 
a pretty elderly spinster, with little hectic lights in her cheeks. 
There my memory of it is associated with the smell of lilies 
which in Julys long ago used to fill many receptacles. The 
floor was of clay, but the room had a strange dignity of its 
own, given it by the few pieces of old furniture which had 
survived the raids of collectors — a corner cupboard, a spinet 
with a high fluted back of faded red satin, a sofa with carved 
lions for feet and a high carved back, some quaint pieces of 
china and old spotted engravings. There was a beautiful order- 
liness about everything and the lightness and brightness hung 
in the air like a curtain, and the smell of the lilies smote 
sharply through it. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Small and Narrow house 489 

There was another house on a hill where a lady sat at a 
desk of mornings writing books in which scholarship was 
matched with a beautiful style. Later in the day she might 
have been met with in the hospitals or refuges of the town, 
consoling, helping, uplifting, with her strong, winning, human 
personality. She was no longer young, but she was nobly 
handsome, and she had eyes of youth, like Sweet Anne Page, un- 
der her banded gray-black hair, and her old husband used to say 
that her laughter was like a shower of fresh lilies. The house 
was very austere, hardly any hangings or curtains or carpets, 
bat white floors, a few comfortable chairs, pictures and books, 
and flowers. I know I came there of winter afternoons with 
one who was very dear to her, who used to give the signal 
by three little sharp, glad taps with the knuckles that it was 
she who stood at the door. But I always see the rooms in 
white sunshine, without a mote in its brilliance. And it is 
summer, for a blackbird is singing in the sycamore outside the 
open window and there is a smell of cleanliness and roses, and 
I can see the old husband against a background of open win- 
dow leisurely cutting the pages of a review and calling out now 
and again to his wife. There is always the lightness and the 
brightness. That too is fled away after her. As one goes on, 
the milestones of one's life come to be empty houses. 

There is nothing more dreadful than a house long empty, 
the dead body of a house calling out for the clay to cover it. 
I remember such a one in childhood, whose sinister aspect 
used to terrify me. It was haunted and no one would live in 
it— a dead body in which an evil spirit had taken up habita- 
tion. It had been a house of importance, and it was the more 
dreadful in its decay that it presented a long front of grimy 
windows, broken in places, curtained by long festoons of ragged 
cobwebs wherein the solitary spider had become a skeleton. 
The double hall-door was blistered all over and the grass 
sprouted between the flagstones of the steps. The flagged 
area was the receptacle of all manner of obscene rubbish. 
The long range of barred kitchen windows, coated with dirt, 
hid one knew not what terror. Even in the broad sunlight 
one passed it by quaking. People said that an uneaten wed- 
ding-breakfast moldered in one of the rooms, that the cheated 
and betrayed groom had turned the key of the door and walked 
out a hundred years ago. But an uneaten wedding-breakfast 



Digitized by 



Google 



490 THE Small and Narrow House [July, 

had never given the bouse so sinister a look. Like the bouse 
in Browning's poem one felt that 

''It must be wicked to bave borne sucb pain." 

Tbat house is in a city which contains many dead and dere- 
lict houses, a city storied out of all proportion to its size. The 
Modern Spirit has never taken possession of it to oust the 
Spirit of the Past. It is a city which has slept and dreamt for 
a long time ; and as one walks the wide thoroughfares one is 
elbowed by ghosts at every step and turn, some beautiful, some 
forbidding, some bright and heroic like stars in the firmament, 
others evil and blustering, cowards and traitors. There are as 
many ghosts in London Town but one is not aware of them, 
the tide of life runs so fast. Whereas in this city I think of, 
it is the ghosts who live and the living who are shadows. 

There the old houses are heavy with secrets. There is one 
gray and barred which I used to pass often — it was on the 
sunless side of the square, looking north, and it had a forbid- 
ding and prison-like air. It had net been occupied within my 
memory or the memory of people older than myself. It was 
one of the town's mysterious houses. After a long, long time 
an old lady died at a great age in a lunatic asylum somewhere 
down the country. When her death appeared in the news- 
papers some very old gentlemen and ladies remembered a dash- 
ing, handsome girl who had suddenly dropped out of the gay 
life of which she was a figure some fifty or sixty years before. 
It seemed that at the time she was certified a lunatic her 
estate was put into the hands of trustees, since she had no 
known relatives. The trustees had put caretakers into the 
house, an old couple who inhabited the dark, echoing kitchen 
and had no desire to pass the locked door of communication 
with the rest of the house at the head of the kitchen staircase. 
After the old lady's death the house and its contents were to 
be sold. The auctioneer sent in his men to catalogue the 
furniture which had remained undisturbed there during all those 
years. When the hall- door was opened, after considerable dif- 
ficulty, for the wards of the lock were rusted, they entered, 
but were driven back by a suffocating odor which made the 
atmosphere of the house poisonous. Some one had to go be- 
fore and break a window before it was possible to proceed. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Small and narrow house 491 

Some strange kind of dry rot had come upon the house; but 
there must have been dampness, too, for I was told that strange 
fungi were growing up through the carpets. Everything was 
rotting and rotten. The house had been furnished with beau- 
tiful old furniture, but something had eaten into it and the sub- 
stantial-looking things crumbled at a touch. 

All was extraordinarily noisome, as noisome as an evil 
swamp, and I was told that the men were overcome by the 
fumes at first and driven back till the air bad blown the 
poison away. The rooms were all in order till they came to 
the principal bedroom on an upper floor. There everything 
was in a disorder that suggested flight. Everything lay as it 
had been flung down in some wild impulse of flight fifty or 
sixty years before. The bedclothes were huddled in a heap; 
the towels were flung on the floor; brushes and combs were in 
disorder on the dressing-table; the water- jug lay on its side 
and the water of that last ablution had apparently dried in the 
basin. The wardrobe was filled with garments that crumbled 
to dust between the fingers. Very little had survived the 
mysterious blight upon the house. 

As it happened the auctioneer was a man of taste. In the 
bedroom, half-way under the bed, there was found a box cov- 
ered in scarlet leather, beautifully tooled and gilt, studded with 
gilt nails. It was locked and there was no trace of a key. 
The auctioneer knew the very person to whom the box would 
appeal, a lady who was a well-known virtuoso. They went 
through the house together the day before the general public 
was admitted. The lady was in ecstasies over the box. But 
she must see the inside of it. Some one was sent for to open 
it, since no key they could produce seemed to fit it. Within 
were the crumbling bones of a new-born baby. Isn't it like a 
story by Hawthorne? — one had almost said Poe, but Foe's 
colors would be too flamboyant. The subtle horror of this 
story of a house requires more delicate handling than his. 
They took away the little bones to the Surgeons' College of 
the city. And the house was pulled down so that the rich 
man next door might build an addition to his palace. But 
think of the house holding that secret all those years, and the 
terrified flight long ago, and the years and years during which 
the blooming young woman grew old and crazy! Only a su- 
perlative genius could do justice to the unique horror and fear 



Digitized by 



Google 



492 THE SMALL AND NARROW HOUSE [July. 

of it. But indeed the things that really happen quite transcend 
and surpass the imaginations even of genius. 

Not so far from where that house was still stands a house 
and will stand for centuries more if it is but permitted. It is 
a comfortablci beautiful old house, and it shelters kind and 
comfortable people. There, while you sit to afternoon tea, the 
little hostess will tell you of the ghost of the house, a little 
child. ghost that peers above the banisters and creeps feariuUy 
down the stairs. Then she will whisk away a rug and show 
you imprinted on the floor the bloody footprint of a little 
child, just the one little print. No washing has sufficed to re- 
move it. Then she will show you the bullets in the panel 
above the fireplace where some one had fought at close quar- 
ters. For the rest the house keeps the secret of the tragedy, 
the house, and the little ghost that comes stealing down in the 
gray of the mom^g — to kiss papa's dead face, it may be. Well 
— who knows? And, not knowing, speculation is a stupidity. 

Then again there is the house where the lady lived to be 
very old, and though she had been beautiful died unmarried. 
They said she had sent a lover to his death by her vanity and 
hard folly in her hey-day. Whatever she had done she had 
repented, for she was very devout and very good to the poor, 
and she was generally mourned for when she died. When at last 
she was dead, and the look of great suffering bad passed from 
her face, leaving only peace, some one took from her wrist the 
broad bracelet of black velvet which she had never been with- 
out night or day. Underneath it there was the imprint of a 
hand which had gripped it hard and burnt into it, a livid mark 
now, but not to be mistaken for anything but the scars of a burn. 

But if I were to tell the stories of those old houses I should 
never be done. Certainly in their outward aspect they show 
the terror and the mystery which lies behind them as plainly 
as ever did human face. 

And indeed our houses would seem to bear to us some- 
thing of the relation of the body to the spirit. We inform 
them with ourselves, and if the tenant be clean and comely the 
house is cheerful to look upon, like a body that houses a bright 
soul. But if the tenant be wicked the house has a sinister 
aspect. And like the body when the spirit has left it, when 
we leave them our houses are mere cerements and cast off 
garments no longer fit to cumber the earth. 



Digitized by 



Google 




THE HOURS OF OUR LADY. 

BY MARIAN NESBITT. 

NE method of honoring our Lady which, in the 
Middle Ages, was very general amongst the upper 
classes, and indeed amongst all those who were 
sufficiently educated to be able to read, was the 
recitation of her Hours, commonly known as the 
Mora Beata Virginis—ot, the Little Office of the Blessed Vir- 
gin; and this pious and praiseworthy practice having fallen 
greatly into disuse, even in the case of very devout persons, 
a few words on the subject may not be out of place. 

First it must be remarked, in passing, that the Roman Bre- 
viary contains three forms of the Office of our Lady— one for 
feasts, one for Saturdays, and one called the Little Office. It 
was this last which, being both short and devotional, became so 
general amongst the laity; and which, written in manuscript, 
and exquisitely illuminated, existed from the sixth century, 
** though it was revived, as well as revised, in the eleventh, by 
St. Peter Damian.'' 

It was also, reliable authorities tell us, one of the earliest 
books printed. St. Margaret of Scotland was in the habit of 
reciting this Office ''every day''; and, as she died in 1093, it 
would seem that the movement made some years earlier in the 
south of Europe, to revive the Office of our Lady, had already 
extended to Scotland. 

In this connection, it must not be forgotten that, until the 
time of the great religious rebellion, the form of our Lady's 
Office in England was usually after the ancient ''Sarum Use," 
which differed slightly from the Roman form, now so familiar 
to us; and, in all the Sarum primers certain subjects for con- 
templation during the recitation of the Office were engraved 
at the beginning of the different Hours. Though not invaria- 
bly placed in exactly the same order, the general arrangement 
of these subjects was as follows: the Annunciation at Matins; 
the Visitation at Lauds; the Nativity of our Lord at Prime; 
the Circumcision at Tierce; the Purification at Sext; the Ado* 



Digitized by 



Google 



494 THE HOURS OF OUR LADY [Julyi 

ration of the Three Kings at None; the Flight into Egypt at 
Vespers; the Assumption at Compline. 

It is interesting to note that the books, whether written or 
printed with the Hours of the Blessed Virgin, were commonly 
called primers, because they contained, besides other forms of 
devotion, elementary instructions on Christian Doctrine, the 
Creed, the Lord's Prayer, the Angelic Salutation, and the Ten 
Commandments. We also find the Seven Penitential Psalms, 
the Litanies of the Saints, the Passion of our Lord, and other 
beautiful prayers which might well replace many of those in 
our modern English books of devotion; these latter being, as 
a matter of fact, far inferior to the ancient primers. Besides 
the '' Little Office,'' which was the authorized form of devo- 
tion to our Lady, a glance into old books shows us another 
shorter office, called ** Of the Compassion of our Lady/' 

St. Bonaventure, the Seraphic Doctor, whose heart, like 
that of his holy father, St. Francis, was all on fire with divine 
love, composed one of these offices of the '' Compassion," and 
a longer one, called a Little Office of the Passion of our Lord. 
As St. Bonaventure died in 1274, the fact that he composed 
such offices is more than sufficient confirmation of the verdict 
given by several authorities on this subject, viz.^ that Little 
Offices were in common use from the middle of the thirteenth 
century at latest. 

Another Little Office of the Compassion of our Lady is at- 
tributed to Pope Clement the Fifth, A. D. 1305-13 14, who 
granted an indulgence of forty days to all who recited it. 

Again, if we examine MS. HorcB^ and the early printed 
prayer books and offices of our Lady, together with the Sarum 
HorcB and primers, we cannot fail to notice that, in the greater 
number of these books, the Hours of the Little Offices of the 
Holy Cross and the Holy Ghost are inserted immediately after 
the corresponding Hours of the Office of our Lady, thus prov- 
ing that they, as well as those of our Lady, were recited daily. 

An ancient prayer book, or rather prayer roll, of the thir- 
teenth century, which has been preserved in the miscellaneous 
records of the Tower of London, gives us a very true idea of the 
devotion of the period. It contains the first fourteen verses of 
St. John's Gospel in Latin ; an exhortation in French to recite 
five Paters and five Aves in honor of the Five Wounds of our 
Divine Redeemer. (This was a favorite devotion in mediaeval 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Hours of Our Lady 495 

times.) Then some French verses, to be used in adoration of the 
Blessed Sacrament; also a beautiful method of assisting at 
Holy Mass, comprising sixty-five verses in French, so arranged 
as to form a sort of litany of supplication to our Lord, with 
Latin prayers; this is followed by a method of reciting the 
seven Canonical Hours; some Latin prayers and selections of 
the Psalms recommended for various occasions; and lastly, a 
long and most devotional prayer in Latin. What better example 
could be found of a thoroughly comprehensive prayer book ? 

A description of this venerable prayer roll has been given 
in the following words: ''It is written on both sides of a 
narrow slip of vellum (or rather three pieces sewed together), 
about three inches wide and three feet long, and, when rolled 
up, about half an inch in diameter, so that it was well cal- 
culated for carrying about the person/' 

The method used by the laity, of participating to some 
extent in the Canonical Hours, and referred to in the above 
document, consisted in saying, instead of each hour, five Our 
Fathers and Hail Marys, with an appropriate prayer. It was 
very widely practised during the Ages of Faith; and the 
prayers being in Anglo-Norman verse, were easily committed 
to memory. 

In that deeply interesting old work, the Ancren Riule^ 
written in semi-Saxon, in the thirteenth century, very minute 
directions are given regarding the manner of reciting the Office 
of our Lady ; and it would seem that it was the duty of each 
nun to transcribe, or make a copy of, the Hours of the Blessed 
Virgin for her own use, as we find from the following in- 
structions : '' Let every one say her Hours as she has written 
them, say every service {i. e., each canonical division, such as 
Sext, or None) separately, as far as she can in its own time, 
but rather too soon than too late. ... At the one psalm 
she shall stand if she be at ease, and at the other sit, and al- 
ways rise up at the Gloria Patri and bow ; whosoever can stand 
always in worship of our Lady, let her stand in God's Name, 
and at all the seven hours say Pater Noster and Ave Maria.** 

Cassian tells us that the ancient monks of Egypt were per- 
mitted to sing their psalms whilst they worked ; and we know, 
from the old rules of their Order, that the Carthusians were al- 
lowed to say the Office of our Lady during their hours of labor. 

The latter pious custom seems to have been followed in the 



Digitized by 



Google 



496 THE HOURS OF OUR LADY [July, 

Ages of Faith in England, where it was costomary to learn 
the Hours of the Blessed Virgin by heart, and this from child- 
hood, as we find from the instructions to Lytyl (little) John, 
in the Boke of Curtesay (courtesy) printed by Caxton, about 
A. D. 1477. This book, which is most interesting, consists of 
a poem written by a pupil of Dan Lydgate; it contains many 
admonitions and lessons in manners for a little boy; and gives 
a vivid picture of what is expected from the son of a gentle- 
man at that period. Lytyl John is told, that after having 
''with Christ's Crosse" blest himself thrice, he must say de- 
voutly the Pater Noster and ''Ave Maria with the holy Crede''; 
" thenne all the day the better shal ye spede,'' says the author, 
adding 

While that ye be abouten honestly 
To dress yourself and do on your array. 
With your fellow, well and treatably. 
Our Lady's matins look that ye say. 
And this observance use ye every day. 
With prime and hours; and withouten drede (dread) 
The Blessed Lady will grant you your mede. 

It is evident from this that the Little Office might be said 
during one's daily avocations; also that it was commonly re- 
cited with a companion (fellow). The latter faet is again con- 
firmed by a report on the state of England, made by the 
Secretary to the Venetian Embassy in 1496-97, who draws 
special attention to the practice. 

" They " (the English), he says, " all hear Mass every day, 
and say many Pater Nosters (Rosaries) in public, the women 
carrying long strings of beads in their hands, and whosoever 
is at all able to read, carries with him the Office of our Lady; 
and they recite it in church with some companion in a low voice, 
verse by verse, after the manner of religious." 

Again, in the statutes of the royal college of Eton (see 
chapter XXX.), it is prescribed that every morning, *'as soon 
as they shall have arisen," the scholars, whilst making their 
beds, shall recite the Matins of our Blessed Lady after " Sarum 
Use" (see Ancient Laws^ etc., for King^s College and Eton^ p. 

552). 

The following is an old English Translation of the Little 
Office of the Blessed Virgin, date about 1400 : 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909 ] THE HOURS OF OUR LADY 497 

I. *'St. Mary, Maid of tnaidens. Mother and Daughter of 
the King of kings; solace in that we moun (may) have by 
thee the mede of heavenly kingdom, and with the chosen of 
God reign without end/' 

II. '' St Mary, most piteous of all piteous women, holiest 
of all holy women: pray for us that by thee maiden He 
take all our sins, that for us was born and reigneth above 
heavens; that by His charity our sins be forgiven us." 

HI. ''Holy Mother of God, that deservedst worthily to 
conceive Him that all the world might not hold; with thy 
meek beseeching wash away our guilt, that we, again bought by 
thee, may reach the seat of endless bliss; there thou dwellest 
with thy Son without time/' 

Everywhere we notice in what esteem this Office of our 
Lady was held. One example must suffice. 

At St. Paul's, London, a. D. 12 15, Eustace de Fauconbrigge, 
Bishop of London, assigned Lauds for the benefit of '' poor 
clerks frequenting the choir, and celebrating the Holy Office of 
our Lady"; and it was arranged that six clerks should be 
chosen every day, with one priest of the choir, by turns, to be 
at the celebration of the Mary Mass — u e., the Mass of our 
Lady, and also to say Matins and all other Canonical hours at 
her altar. "This foundation," we are told, ''was increased by 
the prior and convent of Thetford, in 1299." 

That holy bishop and martyr, John Fisher, in his " morning 
remembrance had (preached) at the month's mind of the noble 
Princess Margarete, Countess of Richmond and Derby, mother 
unto Kynge Henry VII.," tells us that every day "this noble 
and pious lady at her uprising, which commonly was not long 
after five of the clock, began certain devotions, and so after 
them with one of her gentlewomen, the matynes of our Lady." 

Here we again have an example of the recitation of the 
Hours of the Blessed Virgin with a companion. 

Bishop Fisher goes on to describe how the Countess heard 
"four or five Masses upon her knees," and spent much time 
" in her prayers," adding, " daily her Dirges and Commenda^ 
tions she would say, and her Evensong both of the day and of 
our LadyJ* 

Queen Katberine of Aragon also daily recited the Office 
of our Lady upon her knees; and of Sir Thomas More, the 
martyred Lord High Chancellor of England, we read that, 

VOU LXXZIX.— 32 

Digitized by VjOOQ IC 



498 THE HOURS OF OUR LADY [July, 

besides ''diverse other piotts praiers which he himself com- 
posed, he used everie day to say our Ladie's Mattins." 

'' When the Sarum rite ceased to exist in England/' says 
Mr. Waterton, in his deeply interesting work PUtas Mariana 
Britannica^ '' the Office of our Lady of the Roman use was in- 
troduced. Thousands and thousands of copies were printed 
abroad, principally in the Low Countries. They found their 
way to England and were well used, as I can testify from 
several old family ones in my possession, one of which bears 
the names of four generations by whom it was used.'' 

These handsomely bound, and often exquisitely illuminated 
Horce frequently contain the armorial bearings, and sometimes 
even the portraits, of their possessors, who are portrayed on 
their knees before our Lady, with their patron saints in attend- 
ance. They were looked upon as heirlooms, and many be- 
quests of such primers may be found in old wills. 

Michael^ Earl of Suffolk, leaves (a. £>. 1415) his "little 
prymer which belonged to John de la Pole, my brother ** ; and 
in her will, dated August 15, 1446, Matilda, Countess of Cam- 
bridge, bequeaths ''to my kinswoman, Beatrix Waterton, a 
gold cross which belonged to my mother, and my green (bound) 
prymer and a diamond, etc. ; to Katherine FitzWilliam a small 
black (bound) prymer ; and to Alesia, Countess of Salisbury, my 
cousin, my large best prymer" (sec Test Ebor.^ Vol. II., p. 121). 

A reliable authority tells us, when speaking of these inter- 
esting old MSS. and printed Hora, that the so-called Bedford 
Missal is, in reality, the Hora of our Lady, executed for the 
Regent of France ; and, in this connection, it is worthy of note 
that, up to the time of Louis the Fifteenth, it was customary 
in France to include in the trousseau of a bride, a pair of 
beads and a copy of the Office of the Blessed Virgin (see Egron, 
Culte de la S. Vierge^ Paris, 1842, p. 174). 

In the Ages oi Faith it was a widely accepted tradition 
that our Lady spent " every day '' in the Temple from early 
morning till Tierce, or nine o'clock, "in her prayers"; and 
the devout men, women, and children of mediaeval times, whether 
rich, noble, and highly cultured, or only sufficiently well-edu- 
cated to be able to read, believed that, in reciting the Hours 
of the Blessed Virgin, they did but imitate her example ; and, 
later on, when troublous times came, and cruel laws forbade the 
invocation of God's most holy Mother, as well as prayers, 
offices, and hymns in her honor, fervent Catholics would meet 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



1909.] The hours of our Lady 499 

together in some secret place, in order to recite her Hours; 
thottghy by so doing, they well knew they were risking both 
their possessions and their lives. 

The histories of holy confessors and martyrs, who suffered 
during the great religious rebellion, would furnish us with 
numberless proofs of their devotion to our Lady's Hours. The 
illustrious Philip Howard, Earl of fiX\xvAt\^ who died in 1595, 
after eleven years' imprisonment in the Tower for his faith, 
when entering upon his weary term of captivity, ^'sent,'' we 
are told, 'Tor the Office of the Blessed Vit^in, and a book 
treating of the Rosary, to the end that he might the better 
understand how to say it for the best benefit of his soul." 

Again, we read, that his *^ most excellent wife, Anne Dacres, 
Countess of Arundel, said daily our Lady's Office ** ; and special 
mention is made of ber devotion to the doctrine of the Im- 
maculate Conception, ''to which mystery she was so much af- 
fected, that she made a vow ever to follow the pious opinion 
of her (/. ^., the Blessed Virgin) being conceived without sin/' 

In the reign of Elizabeth we find Thomas Wright, Vicar 
of Seaham, confessing that he says ^^ daily in his house^ with 
certain others^ the Office of the Blessed Virgin** ; thus proving 
that devout persons continued the practice, despite Penal Laws 
and the vigilance of the so-called reformers. 

An act of Parliament, which received the sanction of King 
James I., in the year 1605, shows the prevailing bigotry in 
respect of Horce^ etc. These are the words of the document: 
"And be it further enacted by the authority of this present 
Parliament, that no person or persons shall bring from beyond 
the seas, nor shall print, sell, or buy any Popish prymers^ lady's 
psalters, etc. . . . And that it shall be lawful for any two 
justices of the peace within the limits of their jurisdiction or 
authority, and to all mayors, bailiffs, and chief officers of cities 
and towns corporate in their liberties, /f^«« time to time to search 
the houses and lodgings of every Popish recusant convict^ or of 
every person whose wife is, or shall be, a Popish recusant con^^ 
vict, for Popish books and relics of Popery** 

But enough has been said to prove how widespread was 
this custom of reciting the Little Office of the Blessed Virgin 
— how highly it was esteemed by all, whether young or old — 
and surely, in our own day, no better means of honoring God's 
holy Mother could be found. 



Digitized by 



Google 



CATHOLIC LITERATURE IN PUBLIC LIBRARIES. 

BY WILLIAM STETSON MERRILL. 

|HE public libraries of this country are adminis- 
tered largely by non-Catholics, while the funds 
upon which they are maintained come from taxes 
paid by Catholics and non-Catholics alike. In 
some cities Catholics have been appointed to 
positions upon the boards of public library directors and have 
been instrumental in securing Catholic books for the library. 
But the number of books written by Catholic authors to be 
found on the shelves of most public libraries is small, very 
small, in proportion to the funds contributed by Catholics to 
the support of the public library and in view of the standing 
of Catholic authors in the world of letters. 

Yet it would be unfair to lay the responsibility for this con- 
dition of affairs entirely to non-Catholic prejudice or unwilling- 
ness to yield to Catholics the full measure of their rights. The 
truth is that the Catholics have not been demanding or avail- 
ing themselves of their rights in regard to the public library. 
Catholics have not interested themselves so much in the affairs 
of the public library as have non-Catholics, and this is due partly 
to the fact that Catholics have not felt so much inclined to 
make use of it or to permit their children to use it. The rea- 
son is, ultimately, the serious concern that Catholics feel for 
preserving their faith and that of their children. They know 
that there are books in any public library administered by 
non- Catholics of which they, as Catholics, cannot approve, and 
which they are unwilling for their children to read. The clergy, 
as the guardians of the spiritual welfare of their flocks, cannot 
be indifferent to the dangers of indiscriminate reading. A 
Western Catholic Bishop, not long ago, even denounced public 
libraries as purveyors of irreligious and immoral books. The 
directors of a public library, knowing that it is supported by 
the money contributed by all classes and sections of the com- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Ca tholic litera ture in Public libraries 501 

manityy cannoti if they would, rule out non-Catholic books; and 
they certainly should not, if they are true to their trust, rule 
out Catholic books. 

Shall Catholics, then, abandon the public library, as they 
have abandoned the public school, and establish Catholic free- 
lending libraries under their own auspices and control? Cer- 
tain libraries now are controlled by Catholics, namely, those 
connected with Catholic colleges and schools. But the use of 
these libraries must necessarily be confined to the students 
connected with the institutions. The establishment of free Cath^ 
olic libraries intended for the people at large is, under present 
conditions, impracticable. The administration of a free public 
library of any kind is an. expensive affair. It calls for a suit- 
able building, a librarian and assistants possessed of certain 
professional qualifications that command fair compensation, and 
a fund for the purchase, cataloguing, and handling of books to 
be lent to a large number of borrowers. In many libraries the 
cost of administration consumes from three-fourths to two- 
thirds of the income, leaving but one-fourth or one-third to go 
to books. Only a generous endowment or support out of the 
public treasury is adequate to maintain a free public library. 
If Catholics are to have free libraries, they must utilize the 
libraries that are now maintained at public expense. How shall 
they do this without compromising their principles ? 

There are now in the United States of America over 10,000 
public libraries containing more than 50,000 volumes each, and 
fifty- nine of them have over 100,000 volumes each. Most of 
these libraries are suitably housed, ably administered, and are 
supported by taxes paid by Catholics as well as non-Catholics. 
Catholics may, without either compromising their principles or 
burdening themselves with expense, secure all the benefits to 
which they are entitled and really all they want (i) by prepar- 
ing, privately or by co-operation, lists of the Catholic books 
in each local library; (2) by drawing these books for home 
reading; and (3) by recommending the purchase of others by 
the library. 

Librarians, when reproached with the small number of 
Catholic books to be found on the shelves of their libraries, 
have replied by saying that Catholic books are not called for ; 
and that the purchase of books for the library, being limited 



Digitized by 



Google 



502 Ca tholic Litera ture in public Libraries [July, 

by appropriation, must be made along lines of reading followed 
by the majority of readers; and the librarians are right. If 
Catholics do not use the library, or ask for works by Catholic 
authors when they do frequent it, they cannot expect to find 
such books there. If, on the other hand, Catholic books are 
called for, the library authorities are bound to consider such 
requests, and unless there are good and sufficient reasons for 
not buying certain books. Catholics can force the bands of the 
directors by legal action. But, as has been said, a public library 
serves the needs of its constant patrons, and cannot be ex- 
pected to concern itself with making propaganda for those who 
do not put themselves in evidence. Moreover, the efforts of 
Catholic members of the library board are sometimes not known 
and appreciated as they should be. A catalogue, recently pre- 
pared at Chicago, lists nearly three thousand volumes written 
by Catholic authors and obtainable at the Chicago Public Li- 
brary. One well-educated man said to the editor when it was 
in course of compilation : " Why, are there any Catholic books 
in that public library?'' He seemed to think it scarcely pos- 
sible that there should be any. 

The whole situation was well summed up and some practi- 
cal advice was given in a resolution passed by the Federation 
of American Catholic Societies at a meeting held in Detroit, 
August 2 to 4, 1904. That resolution reads as follows: 

As immense sums are annually appropriated from State and 
municipal funds for public libraries, of which Catholics con- 
tribute no small share, justice requires that Catholics receive 
their proportionate benefit therefrom. To this end we would 
call especial attention to the following considerations : 

(i) Catholic schools, higher as well as elementary, should in 
fairness enjoy equal privileges in the supply of special class 
or traveling libraries with non-Catholic schools. 

(2) Catholics should Insist that public library directors 
should systematically purchase Catholic books, and wherever 
librarians are unable to make a proper selection of Catholic 
books, the Catholic citizen should demand the appointment 
of such a person as will respect the rights oi all. 

(3) Catholics should be quick to appreciate the opportuni- 
ties of such recognition of their rights, use the literature thus 
provided, and recommend it to others, and in this way meet 
the objection that Catholic books are not called lor. 



Digitized by 



Google 



i909*] Catholic Literature IN PUBUC LIBRARIES 503 

(4) Finally, that this activity to have Catholic books placed 
in public libraries be carried on in a systematic manner, 
chiefly by organizations. 

This resolution bore immediate fruit in the publication of 
A Comprehensive Catalogue of Catholic Books in the English and 
German Languages^ compiled partly from lists of fiction by 
Catholic authors prepared by the International Catholic Truth 
Society in 190I1 and partly from similar lists of books of Catho- 
lic origin on history, biography, travel, and other subjects, that 
had appeared in the columns of the Catholic Union and Times. 
The German titles were taken from the columns of the Buffalo 
Volksfreund and the whole work was edited by the Jesuits of 
Canisius College, Buffalo. This admirable list covers one hun- 
dred pages. The titles are classed under fiction, church history, 
secular history, biography, travel, philosophy and science, educa- 
tion, Bible study, controversial and devotional books, poetry and 
drama, essays and Catholic periodicals. Names of publishers 
and dates of publication are omitted, their place being taken 
by dotted lines on which it is intended that those who wish 
to use the catalogue in listing the books in a local library 
may do so by affixing the call- numbers of the books. In the 
following year a Catalogue of Books for Catholic Readers in the 
Free Public Library of New Haven^ Conn,, was compiled by T* 
H. Smith, assistant librarian, and published by the San Salvador 
Council No. 12 Knights of Columbus. 

The first list to be based upon the Buffalo list, so far as the 
writer is aware, was the Catholic Reading List: A Catalogue of 
Books (in English) by Catholic Authors in the Chicago Public Li^ 
brary, compiled by a Committee of the Catholic Writers Guild, 
published by the Chicago Chapter of the Knights of Columbus, 
November, 1908. This catalogue comprises, as has been said 
above, nearly three thousand volumes. In arrangement it fol- 
lows closely the Buffalo list, but differs from it in giving call^i 
numbers. One hundred copies of this catalogue have been 
presented by the Knights of Columbus to the Chicago Public 
Library for use in its reading-rooms and delivery stations, and 
one or more copies to each of the parish schools. Catholic 
colleges, convent schools, and other Catholic institutions of 
Chicago. In typography and style the Catholic finding list 



Digitized by 



Google 



S04 CA THOLIC LITERA TURE IN PUBLIC LIBRARIES [July, 

is similar to the regular finding lists of the Chicago Public 
Library, the idea in making it so being that non* Catholics, 
seeing it lying around on the library tables along with the 
other finding lists, may be led to look into it and read some 
of the books mentioned in it. Aside from the missionary 
work that such catalogues may incidentally accomplish, how- 
ever, their main value lies in their being safe guides for Catho- 
lic readers in making use of the public library. These pioneer 
efforts in that direction are bound to be followed by others 
and to produce good fruit. Only two months after the pub- 
lication of the Chicago list the Knights of Columbus in Seattle 
got out a catalogue of the Catholic books in the city library 
of Seattle. 

All of these enterprises were anticipated, however, by the 
List of Catholic Books in the Pratt Free Library^ Baltimore$ 
compiled and published in 1900 by Rev. John F. O'Donovan, 
S.J. The books are classified, call-numbers are given, and 
numerous useful notes and suggestions upon reading are inter- 
spersed through the list by the scholarly compiler. 

A few practical hints are in place here as to the best way 
to go to work to catalogue the books by Catholic authors in 
a public library. The task should, if possible, be intrusted to 
some one with a technical knowledge of libraries and methods 
of preparing lists of books. But such knowledge is not indis- 
pensable. Taking the Buffalo list as a basis, the names given 
in it should be looked up in the alphabetical catalogue oi the 
local library; such titles as are found to be in the library 
should be copied off upon cards of a uniform size. The au- 
thor's name, the title of one work, its date of publication, 
number of volumes (if in more than one volume), and call- 
number should be written on one card. Additional names of 
Catholic authors, obtained from the Chicago list or elsewhere, 
may be looked up in the same way, and cards written for such 
books as are in the library. When this portion of the work 
is finished, the cards should be sorted or classified by subject 
after the arrangement given in the Buffalo and Chicago cata- 
logues and the authors' names occurring under each subject 
should be arranged alphabetically. The cards should then be 
numbered consecutively and the ''copy'' is ready for the 
printer. No copying upon sheets is necessary ; any intelligent 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Catholic LITERATURE IN PUBLIC Libraries 505 

foreman, upon being shown one of the catalogues already 
made, will follow it and will direct the compositor to indent 
successive titles by the same author instead of repeating the 
name from successive cards. The headings for the classified 
subjects may also be written upon cards and inserted in their 
proper places. Proof-reading should be carefully done, es- 
pecially as regards the call-numbers of the books. Nothing 
will injure the prestige of the catalogue in the mind of some 
borrower more than to receive the wrong book from the li- 
brary because the list has a mistake in the call-number. A 
few brief directions for obtaining cards and books from the 
library should be printed on an introductory page of the list. 

Provided with such a list, the Catholic has within his reach 
a large •r small collection of books by Catholic authors which 
he may borrow for the asking. Doubtless there will be many 
books lacking in the public library. Catholics should take 
steps to remedy this shortcoming by drawing up lists of im- 
portant books by Catholic authors and submitting the list to 
the library authorities with a request that these books be 
purchased. The chances are that this request will be not only 
considered but welcomed as an indication of awakening inter- 
est in the affairs of the public library on the part of the 
Catholics in the community. When it comes to a question of 
voting annual appropriations for the public library. Catholic 
sentiment upon the subject is not without weight. If a board 
of library directors should, however, turn down such a request 
for Catholic books, then is the time for the Catholics to take 
active steps in the matter. 

What will be the effect upon Catholic literature, it may be 
asked, of a widespread movement to list Catholic books in 
public libraries? The effect, it is safe to say, cannot fail to 
be such as to stimulate and improve it. The more Catholic 
books are read, the more will they be written, and the greater 
will be the success of both authors and publishers. Some 
years ago the question was debated by librarians and pub- 
lishers as to the effect of public libraries upon the book- 
trade. The librarians claimed and the publishers came to see 
that public libraries were in themselves one of the best me- 
diums for the advertising of books. People who see a new 
book at the public library, or take it home to read, often con* 



Digitized by 



Google 



S06 CA THOLIC LITERA TURE IN PUBLIC LIBRARIES [July, 

ceive a desire to own it; or else they become interested in 
other books which they are led to read through the first one. 
The result jis increased reading, in any case, and increased 
reading is just what the publishers want. 

The reading of books differs from the reading of news* 
papers. Both are habits; but they call for different capabili- 
ties in the reader. Newspapers are written in a style that 
calls for a minimum of mental effort. Almost any one can 
read a newspaper with ease; only certain persons enjoy read- 
ing books, at least literature outside of fiction. Persons who 
have not as children acquired the habit of concentration neces- 
sary for reading a serious book, will seldom be able to read 
such books in adult life. Even the reading of a novel, which 
seems so natural and so easy to those who read fiction habitu- 
ally, is irksome and impossible to some persons. The appre- 
ciation of Catholic literature and the demand for it depends, 
therefore, very largely upon the habits of reading formed by 
the children in schools and colleges; if their parents do not 
care for reading books now, they will never do so, whatever 
sermons upon the encouragement of Catholic literature may be 
preached to them. To enlist the interest of teachers in our 
Catholic schools and colleges in encouraging habits of reading 
is most essential, therefore, to any widespread increase in the 
production and consumption of Catholic literature, not to men- 
tion any improvement in its literary quality. 

Some of the finest scholars and writers in the world are 
Catholics; some of the best fiction in the world, perhaps the 
very best, has been written and is written by Catholics. 
Catholic literature should lead the world in every department. 
That it does not hold a more prominent place in the world i^ 
large is due partly to causes beyond the power of Catholics to 
influence under present conditions, and partly to the fact that 
Catholic literature is not everywhere recognizable as Catholic. 
Who knows which are the Catholic writers of the day outside 
of a few prominent names ? Catholics themselves do not recog- 
nize them as their own. The compilation of lists of Catholic 
authors in every department of literature is the best way to 
«how the world what Catholics are doing in the world of let- 
ters. As the facts become better known, the prestige of the 
Church is enlarged by just so much dissipation of the mists of 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Catholic LITERATURE IN PUBLIC LIBRARIES 507 

ignorance — some of it honest enough ignorance. Non-Catholics 
do not know us because we do not know ourselves, and because 
we do not tell what we know and who we are. 

No writer will lose in the end by permitting the fact to be 
known that he is a Catholic. There is to-day in the world no 
organization or institution with the prestige of the Catholic 
Church. The man who is afraid to be known as a Catholic is 
courting the very odium that he dreads. If a man is ashamed 
of his religion, he can scarcely expect non-Catholics to respect 
either it or him. The man who glories in being a Catholic 
will not only be respected for his loyalty, but he may be the 
means of inspiring respect where before there had been noth- 
ing but contempt bred of ignorance. 

Catholic literature needs to be '' boomed'' — if the slang 
term may be pardoned; and the best way to boom it is to 
show the world what there is of it. Let every public library 
in the country be searched for it and let lists be published of 
what is found, be it much or little. However little there is 
now will be more as a result of publishing the fact. There is 
no nobler service that Catholic organizations all over the coun- 
try can undertake than to make known the Catholic literature in 
the public libraries of their vicinity and to take steps to increase 
its extent and use among Catholics and non-Catholics in the 
community. 



Digitized by 



Google 



PRE-TRACTARIAN OXFORD. 

BY WILFRID WILBERFORCE. 

[HE fascination of Oxford is so keen and so per- 
ennial that every book on the subject as it ap- 
pears is received with peculiar cordiality. This 
is specially true when the book takes the form 
of personal reminiscences. Mozley's chatty re- 
membrances of Oriel are still dreamt and pondered over, though 
we have had them nearly thirty years now. To read them is 
still like listening to the unstudied talk of an old friend as he 
sits in his easy chair and tells us of the tempus actum. Moz- 
ley was old when he wrote them, but Provost Hawkins was 
still older. Asked what he thought of Mozley's book, Haw- 
kins replied that it was the production of an impudent young 
man 1 Age, after all, is comparative. 

A few years ago the Rev. W. Tuckwell published some 
reminiscences of Oxford, which entered a second edition in 
1907, and this year he has given us an account of eight Oriel 
*'Noetics*' as they used to be called. Pre-Tractarian Oxford 
is the title of the book, a thick, well-printed and well-illus- 
trated volume, dealing with a period that has been somewhat 
thrown into the shade by the golden age of Newman, Keble, 
Froude, and the other illustrious members of the Oriel Com- 
mon Room at the time of the Tractarian Movement. 

The '' Noetics *' sketched by Mr. Tuckwell are eight in num- 
ber, and all but one — Provost Eveleigh — were personally known 
to the author, a fact which lends an added interest to his 
book. The list, besides Eveleigh, includes Provost Copleston, 
Archbishop Whately, Thomas Arnold, Renn Dickson Hamp- 
den, Provost Hawkins, Professor Baden Powell, and the unhap- 
py Blanco White. Of each there is a well-executed and life- 
like portrait, taken from original oil-paintings, while the fron- 
tispiece of the book shows the interior of the Oriel dining- hall, 
with one of the small-paned, deeply casemented windows, and 
the tall portraits that hang over the High Table. The scene 
looks quiet enough in the picture, but it recalls many a quaint 



Digitized by 



Google 



igog.] Pre-^Tractarian Oxford 509 

story of olden days — of the dish of ** comminttted meat" which. 
Mozley tells as, used to be provided for the special benefit of 
Whately, to protect him ''against the danger incident to those 
who talk and eat at the same time.'' The scene also reminds 
us of Newman's way of patting a stopper upon an indiscreet 
guest who insisted on broaching the Hampden controversy at 
dinner. ''Let me offer you a hot potato/' said Newman in 
his most acid tones. 

As is well known, Hawkins' election as Provost was the 
remote cause of Newman's delivering, in the University pulpit, 
the sermons which sent an electric thrill through England. 
Hawkins had deprived Newman, Froude, and Robert Wilber- 
force of their tutorship. It was the leisure created by the 
Provost's action that enabled Newman to set on foot the great 
Tractarian Movement. In this matter Hawkins may be regarded 
as merely the fly in the amber, but his character and great 
abilities, coupled with the very long period through which he 
ruled Oriel, confer a distinction which merits for him a wider 
knowledge, even among Catholics, than he actually possesses. 

Edward Hawkins, son of a country clergyman, and grand- 
son of a well-known surgeon. Sir Caesar Hawkins, was born in 
1789. He was sent to school at Merchant Taylors, and in 1807 
went up to St. John's College, Oxford, where, in 181 1, he 
gained the distinction of a Double First In 18 13 he was 
elected a Fellow of Oriel, a position which he had held for 
nine years when Newman became a member of the Common 
Room. In the Apologia we see a notable tribute to Hawkins' 
character and influence. Newman writes: 

He was the first who taught me to weigh my words , and to 
be cautious in my statements. He led me to that mode of 
limiting and clearing my sense in discussion and in contro- 
versy, and of distinguishing between cognate ideas, and of 
obviating mistakes by anticipation, which to my surprise has 
been since considered, even in quarters friendly to me, to 
savor of the polemics of Rome. 

And here I must enter a protest. Mr. Tuckwell has put 
inside inverted commas, as though it was the full quotation, 
only a part of a sentence, without any dots to show that words 
have been omitted. For instance, the quotation just given from 
the Apologia becomes in Mr. Tuckwell's book: 



Digitized by 



Google 



$10 PrE'Tractarian Oxford [July, 

He was the first who taught me to weigh my words and to 
be cautious in my statements. He led me to that mode of 
limiting and clearing my sense in discussion and controversy 
which, to my surprise, has since been considered to savor of 
the polemics (sic.) of Rome. 

Surely the mode of " distinguishing between cognate ideas 
and of obviating mistakes by anticipation/' might be consid- 
ered to ** savor of the polemics of Rome " quite as strongly as 
the ''mode of limiting and clearing." Another instance of Mr. 
Tuckweirs way of quoting may be cited. In his beautiful, 
humble way, Newman writes of Provost Hawkins : 

I can say with a full heart that I love him, and have never 
ceased to love him ; and I thus preface what otherwise might 
sound rude, that in the course of the many years in which we 
were together afterwards, he provoked me very much from 
time to time, though I am perfectly certain that I have pro- 
voked him a great deal more. 

The latter clause becomes in Mr. Tuckwell's book, with in- 
verted commas, as though he was quoting Newman's ifsissima 
verba — '' ' He provoked me very often,' said Newman, and, he 
added with a very probable surmise, 'I daresay I. as often 
provoked him.' " This instance of course is not serious, but it 
is slipshod and irritatiog. Hawkins and Keble were the can- 
didates for the Provostship made vacant by the appointment 
of Copleston to the bishopric of Llandaff. Newman considered 
Hawkins a better man of business than Keble, and though he 
could not have brought himself to vote against his dear and 
honored friend, it was probably a relief to him when Keble 
retired from the contest. ''Let good old Hawkins walk over 
the course," said Keble, and Hawkins did. 

Dean Burgon, who never missed the humorous side of life, 
has told us an incident that occurred when Hawkins had to be 
installed as Provost. It was the custom then, and perhaps now, 
for the newly elected Head of Oriel to stand outside the col- 
lege and knock at the clued gate for admission. The Fellows 
stood drawn up inside the quadraogle ready to receive him. 
Newman, as Dean, answered Hawkins' knock by the question: 
" Quis adest f " To every one's astonishment the quavering 
tones of a female voice replied: "Please, Sir, it's me," and 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] PrE'Tractarian Oxford 511 

through the opened gate walked the college washerwoman laden 
with her basket. 

The gate was immediately closed again, and then three loud 
knocks were heard, and in reply to Newman's question came 
Hawkins' solemn reply : ** Edwardus Hawkins ^ Hujusce Collegii 
ProepositusJ'* 

Many are the stories of Hawkins' rule. He was a strong, 
masterly Provost, and guarded his authority with a jealous eye. 
Possibly he recognized later that his high-handed act in de- 
priving the three tutors led to what he considered the calamity 
of the Tractarian Movement. That he did so consider it can 
not be doubted, though as early as 18 18, when Newman was a 
boy of 17, he had preached a sermon on Tradition which ran 
counter to the teachings of the so-called Noetics. Nearly half 
a century later, moreover, he condemned the notorious volume 
of Essays and Reviews^ ** not perceiving," as Mr. Tuckwell re- 
marks, ''that their teaching sprang lineally from that of his 
own Noetic brethren." Notwithstanding these hopeful aspects 
of his mind, Hawkins was distinctly opposed to Tractarianism 
— at least when it developed a ''Romeward tendency," as Mr. 
Tuckwell calls it. Hawkins always spoke of it as "the late 
unhappy movement" — warning people against it in volumes 
and pamphlets, though, as Mr. Tuckwell observes, it was impar 
congressus against the power of Newman, and, we may add, 
against the grace and mercy of God. The forty- six years of 
Hawkins' rule have gathered round them almost innumerable 
memories and anecdotes. 

So long a period of government must inevitably involve 
drawbacks as well as advantages, and Hawkins' Provostship 
was no exception. Mark Pattison, though an undergraduate 
at the time that the Provost was appointed, roundly maintained 
that the calibre of the men who obtained Fellowships deteri- 
orated from that date, and that the same applied to the un- 
dergraduates. Certainly the quality of the degrees suffered 
by the removal of the three tutors, and Dean Lake charges 
Hawkins, to quote Mr. Tuckwell's words, "with the dethrone- 
ment of Oriel from its supremacy among the colleges." 

That he was masterful and despotic has already been said, 
and many are the stories told to illustrate the fact. He gained 
an undisputed ascendency on the Hebdomadal Board, the pri- 
mary legislative authority, and as in great matters so in small, 



Digitized by 



Google 



512 prE'Tractarian Oxford [J^iy* 

he made his hand felt, in one instance at least, it must be 
owned, with scant regard for courtesy and good taste. At bis 
own table a guest, when the conversation turned on a certain 
magazine, remarked that it contained articles of his own. ''I 
daresay,'' said the domineering Provost, *' there is a good deal 
of trash published in it" 

But a most glaring example of his tyranny was shown by 
his treatment of an undergraduate, though it is only fair to add 
that the culprit was already in bad odor through his irregular 
habits. Hawkins noticed that the ivy in his garden had been 
brushed aside frequently. He called together the scouts and 
inquired from them the name of any undergraduate whose 
trousers had had green on them lately. In this way he dis- 
covered the disturber of his ivy and sent him down. On an- 
other occasion an undergraduate felt a call to preach in the 
slums of Oxford. Hawkins forbade him to do so any longer* 
''But, Sir, if the Lord, who commanded me to preach, came 
suddenly to judgment, what should I do?" Hawkins, whose 
mind was used to the burdens of government, replied that he 
would take the whole responsibility of that upon himself* 

One instance of a thing one would rather have left unsaid 
or expressed differently, has often been told of Hawkins, but it 
will bear repetition. An undergraduate asked leave of absence 
to attend the funeral of an uncle. '' You may go," said the 
Provost, '' but I wish it had been a nearer relation." 

This reminds one of the answer given by the Head of an- 
other college, who had made up his mind not to grant any 
exeats during the Derby week. One of the undergraduates 
made a wager that he would get permission from the Warden 
not only to leave Oxford but to go to Epsom. '' I have an 
aunt who is very ill. Sir. May I visit her ? " '' Is she seri- 
ously ill ? " inquired the Warden. ** Very seriously, indeed," 
replied the shameless boy. '' And is she very dear to you ? " 
"Very, Sir." "And where does she live?" "At Epsom," 
said the undergraduate, unabashed, though he must have 
thought that the reply would be fatal to his scheme. But the 
extraordinary want of knowledge on the Head's part saved the 
situation. " In that case," said the Warden, " I think I may 
let you go. Had your aunt been living at Detby^ I could not 
have given you permission." 

" Sharp and shrewd and practical," is the description given 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Pre^Tractarian Oxford 513 

by Mr. Tttckwell to Hawkins, and no doubt it was these quali- 
ties which caused him to be chosen for the Headship o{ Oriel. 
A man with a business head is more desirable as the ruler of a 
college than a mere litterateur^ and though Hawkins was a 
writer he was a practical manager as well. But his skill in 
detail prevented that breadth of mind that was so conspicuous 
in other Oriel men of his time. And yet this much must be 
said to his credit. His orthodoxy shrank from men like Jowett 
and James Antony Froude. To the latter he even refused a 
certificate when he stood for a Fellowship at Exeter College. 
Sewelly believing Froude to be a High Churchman^ got him 
elected and was therefore disgusted when he published the 
Nentisis of Faitk. 

A story used to be told in Oxford which, though of course 
pure fictioui shows how men regarded Hawkins as a good 
hater. Jowett had been bitten by a dog which was promptly 
driven from the college. The joke went about the University 
that Hawkins took in the dog and tended it. 

On the other hand, he seems to have shown tenderness to 
those already belonging to the college who showed signs of 
deficient orthodoxy. Even when Blanco White fell into Uni- 
tarianism and wrote to the Provost to announce the fact^ 
Hawkins refused to accept his resignation; and when pooi^ 
Clough's faith began to waver, he dissuaded him from resign^ 
ing his Fellowship. 

As stress has been laid upon Hawkins* masterful character, 
it ought in fairness to be recorded that he not only took pains 
to become personally acquainted with each individual under- 
graduate, but that he tried to prepare them for Communion, 
and he showed his kindness by shielding them from the wrath 
of tutors when they failed in "Collections." There was one 
fault, however, that he could not overlook. An undergraduate 
might hope for mercy for graver offences, but to smell of smoke 
was unpardonable. He looked upon tobacco with the utmost 
abhorrence, a fact which probably impaired his popularity with 
the younger men. 

He was a man of abundant charity. As Mr. Tuckwcll tells 
us: 

The springs of his private munificence were never dry ; 
no deserving case was ever put before him unalleviated. From 
the age of seventeen, when they became orphans on their 

VOL. LXXXIX.— 33 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



514 Pre-Tractarian Oxford [July* 

father's death, he played a father's part to each brother and 
sister in turn, until they were launched, self-supporting, into 
life. 

It would perhaps be difficult to find a nobler testimony to 
a man's work than this. 

Like Whately he loved children and they returned his love. 

At the end of his forty- six years of rule he accepted the 
Bishopric of Rochester. Here, as at Oxford, he made his 
authority felt, and when he was eighty years old he wrote to 
a friend that, owing to the age and infirmity of some of the 
canons, he found it necessary to give increasing attention to 
Cathedral business. When the end came he was in his ninety- 
third year. 

I have already mentioned that on the list of so-called 
Noetics, included by Mr. Tuckwell, occurs the name of Joseph 
Blanco White. In 1826 he came to live at Oxford, and as he 
was born in 1775, he was then a man past middle life. 

I have no intention here of dwelling upon the earlier years 
of this unhappy man. If any one desires to know the facts, 
he will find them detailed in one of Cardinal Newman's Lec- 
tures on ''The Present Position of Catholics in England." 
The main features of his early life are probably familiar to 
many of my readers; that he was ordained priest without a vo- 
cation, and apparently against his will, with the result which 
might, have been anticipated; that in the course of time he 
lost his faith, and was faced with the horrible dilemma of giv- 
ing up his career and his friends, or carrying on a life of 
hypocrisy and sham. He choose the former alternative. He 
left Spain, and in the March of 18 10 he landed at Falmouth, 
and traveled to London. His position was more comfortable 
than might have been anticipated. He had more than once 
shown kindness to English gentlemen traveling in Spain, and 
these were glad of this opportunity to help the lonely stranger. 
Lord and Lady Holland included him in their sumptuous 
hospitality ; he found an influential friend in Lord John Russell, 
then a young man at the dawn of his career, while the emi- 
nent man of science, Sir Humphry Davy, gave him a cordial 
welcome to his house* 

Nor were the civilities of these great people entirely un- 
selfish, for Blanco White seems to have been a lively and 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] PRE'TRACTARIAN OXFORD 515 

agreeable talker, though the effect of his conversation was im- 
paired in these early years by his strangely mingled accent of 
Irish and Spanish. His presence at parties was, however, made 
particularly welcome by his great musical talent. His skill on 
the violin was exquisite, and we can well imagine that the bril- 
liant assemblies at Holland House were delighted with his fin- 
ished interpretations of Beethoven and other masters. His 
more serious occupations were the editorship of a Spanish 
journal devoted to literature and politics, in which he wrote 
articles which are said to have alarmed the dominant party in 
Spain to such a degree as to beget rumors that they were 
seeking his life. To these labors Blanco White added a study 
of Greek. He fastened upon a remark of Addison, that a man 
can, in due course, master any subject to which he will devote 
half an hour a day* He tackled Greek, and, at the end of four 
years, was able to read without difficulty Homer, Herodotus 
and Plutarch. 

At the close of the Peninsular War, the English govern- 
ment gave White a substantial proof of their gratitude for his 
political writings by endowing him with ;^25o a year. Freed 
in this way from the necessity of gaining his daily bread, he 
turned his attention to a study of divinity. He examined the 
claims of the Anglican Church, which for the time convinced 
him, strange to say, and about 18 14 he qualified as an Eng- 
lish clergyman by signing the Thirty- Nine Articles. He then 
betook himself to Oxford, where he had access to libraries, 
only leaving it to undertake the tuition of Lord Holland's son. 
In 1822 he published a volume (originally written at the sug* 
gestion of the poet Campbell) on Spanish life and customs, 
and another book called The Poor MatCs Preservative Against 
Popery. Nobody reads it now, but in case it should come to 
the hand of some groper among old bookshops, such a one 
should bear in mind Newman's warning, that though what 
Blanco White testifies to as being facts within his own per- 
sonal knowledge and eyesight may be relied upon as true, his 
inferences as to places and people known to him by hearsay 
are quite untrustworthy. His truthfulness is not impugned, 
but his judgment is warped and distorted by prejudice. 

The fate of this book, written in disparagement of the 
Church by a priest who had left her fold, and given to a 
reading public greedy for anything hostile to Catholics, sup- 



Digitized by 



Google 



5i6 Pre-Tractarian Oxford [July, 

plies Newman with a pregnant text upon the insufficiency of 
truth to support the Protestant view of the Church. Here 
was a book relating facts detrimental not indeed to her truth 
and divine origin, but to the conduct and discipline of some 
of her children in one town in a foreign land, a book ''pub- 
lished," as Newman tells us, "under the patronage of all the 
dignitaries of the Establishment, put into the hands of the 
whole body of the clergy for distribution at a low price, 
written in an animated style, addressed to the traditionary 
hatred of the Catholic Church existing among us, which is an 
introduction to any book, whatever its intrinsic value/' But 
cold fact was not sensational enough for the English Protestant 
appetite. It did not ''catch on," and the wealthy firm which 
published the book did not care to incur the risk of reprint- 
ing it, so that Newman, who sent for a copy for the purpose 
of his lecture, was unable to get one. 

On the other hand, the tissue of lies written by Maria 
Monk still luxuriates like some rank vegetation in miasmic 
soil, and still, to their shame, numbers its readers by the 
thousand. 

In 1826 Blanco White once more settled at Oxford, where 
he was honored by the degree of M.A. and an Oriel Fellow- 
ship. He appeared in the University pulpit, and lectured at 
the Ashmolean on his favorite subject of music. He speedily 
made friends with many of the leaders of the Oxford world — 
with those of Oriel of course where he was a member of the 
Common Room, and with lesser men of other colleges. He 
and Newman seem to have been drawn to each other by their 
common taste for music. Many were the duets they per- 
formed together, and the trios with Reinagle and others. Spec- 
tators have contrasted the demeanors of the players — the statu- 
esque immobility of Newman, with his steel-cut features and 
adamantine jaw, his eyes aflame with enthusiasm, and the ex- 
cited gesticulations of Blanco, as his bow flew over the strings. 

Newman's impassive violin playing was well illustrated on 
the celebrated occasion when the messenger arrived to bring 
him tidings of his election to the Oriel Fellowship. "Very 
well," said Newman calmly, as he continued fiddling as though 
the news had no interest for him. It was not until the ser- 
vant had left the room that he flung down bow and fiddle and 
rushed off to impart the good news. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] pre^Tractarian Oxford 517 

It was during his residence at Oxford that Blanco White 
wrote the famous sonnet which will probably live forever. It 
has even been pronounced to be the finest in the English or, 
indeedyin any other language. Its m0iif \s wonderfully fice — 
the fear with which Adam first heard of Night, with its ap- 
parent blotting out of '* this glorious canopy of Light and Blue." 
And the sonnet ends: 

** Why do we, then, shun Death with anxious strife ? 
If Light can thus deceive, wherefore not Life?" 

Another sonnet from his pen, though very beautiful, is 
scarcely of the same callibre. It is written '' On hearing my- 
self for the first time called an old man/' 

The position of a foreigner in England, and in Oxford es- 
pecially, is liable to drawbacks. The life of the Common 
Room is essentially English. It exists probably in no other 
country in the world, and to appreciate it fully, enjoying its 
benefits and accepting its disadvantages, is scarcely possible to 
any foreigner. 

Several causes contributed to alloy Blanco White's happi- 
ness at Oriel. To begin with, he was foreign. Then his posi- 
tion as Honorary Fellow prevented his having precedence over 
the newcomers who might be subsequently elected. The morti- 
ficaton of this was increased by the reflection that, one by 
one, the Fellows who had chosen him would pass away, giving 
place to strangers who would probably have less appreciation 
of him ; and who (in his case literally) '' knew not Joseph." 

Besides this he was a man of sensitive nature, seeing 
offence sometimes where none was meant, and smarting under 
it. And even at kindness he was apt to shy. At a Merton 
dinner he remarked that the bread was nice. One of the Fel- 
lows ordered that a loaf should be sent each morning to 
White's lodgings. This was perfect torture to the sensitive 
man. He was eating the bread of charity. Yet how could he 
resent it without giving offence? Then his theological posi- 
tion was a further trial. He disliked Evangelicalism intensely 
on account of its Calvinistic aspect, and the Low Church 
party on their side regarded him as a malignant, and managed 
to hinder him from being employed on the Clarendon Press. 

Miss Guiney, in her monumental work on Richard Hurrell 



Digitized by 



Google 



5i8 PrE'Tractarian Oxford [July, 

Froude,* gives an interesting but provokingly transient glimpse 
of Blanco White and Froude. She writes : 

Proude at this time was associating a good deal with Blanco 
White, the Anglicized Spaniard and ex- priest who came to 
Oriel, aged fifty-one, when Tyler left it, and deeply interested 
Oriel men with his knowledge of the scholastic philosophy. 
For some three years he was in great repute among them ; his 
mental gifts were invalidated to them, later, by his aimless- 
ness and instability. To his practical acquaintance with the 
Roman Breviary, often demonstrated in his own rooms, alter 
dinner, to Froude, Newman, Pusey, and Wilberforce, Hurrell 
owed much, especially in conjunction with the able lectures 
on liturgical subjects being delivered by Dr. I^loyd (pp. 
46, 47)- 

Oddly enough, it was Peel's candidature which seems to 
have put the finishing touch to Blanco White's Oxford happi- 
ness, just as it perforated the friendship, afterwards torn by 
religious differences, between Newman and Whately, and when 
the latter was appointed to the Archbishopric of Dublin, he 
invited White to accompany him to Ireland as tutor to his 
sons. 

Though somewhat too impatient to be a successful teacher^ 
he won the hearts of all the children who came into contact 
with him. One who knew him as a child records the delight 
she felt in a 'Mittle toy canary organ" which he gave her, 
and '' the nurse in Hampden's family, where he frequently 
visited, encountering him on the stairs with an infant in her 
arms, told her mistress that the strange gentleman had bent 
over the child, and blessed it with words so beautiful that 
they could not fail to do it good." f 

A man who had been educated as a Catholic, however im- 
prudent his early teachers may have been, could never find 
peace or happiness in any form of religion other than that of 
the one truth. That Blanco White finally severed his connec- 
tion with the Church of England is assuredly no matter for 
surprise. The only wonderful thing is how he could so long 
have been content with a creed so barren and illogical. 

In Whately's house he wrote his Second Travels of an Irish 

^HumUFrmdi, Miwtomnda and C^mminis. By Louise Imogen Guiney. Methueik 

&Co. 

t Pn^TractMrian Oxfird, p. 847. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] PrE'Tractarian Oxford 519 

Gentleman in Search of a Religion^ in imitation of Moore's 
book» and as a sequel to it. He also published a pamphlet 
entitled Heresy and Orthodoxy. The working of his own mind, 
and a casual remark of Whately's about the unsuitability of 
writings indited in an Archbishop's palace being too radical, 
caused Blanco White to quit Dublin, much to the grief of 
the Whatelys. He settled in Liverpool, renounced Trinitarian 
doctrine, a conclusion to which he had long been tending, 
and frequented a Unitarian chapel in which Martineau often 
preached. 

From the Royal Bounty Fund he obtained, through the 
good offices of Lord Holland, a grant of ;f300, and his per- 
sonal needs were attended to by a niece who came to make 
her home with him. The last few months of his life were 
spent in acute pain and helplessness. He died in the house 
of Mr. Rathbone, at Greenbank. To the end he kept up an 
affectionate correspondence with the Whatelys, and he also ex- 
changed letters with John Stuart Mill, Channing, and William 
Bishop. 

His last recorded words are certainly curious, though they 
may also be called unintelligible : '' God to me is Jesus, and 
Jesus is God — of course not in the sense of divines''; a sen- 
tence which Mr. Tuckwell regards as the expression of ''his 
twofold ruling passion of devotion and of protest." And the 
same author finds in Blanco White — as characteristics constitu- 
ting ''the epitome and the apologia of his long remonstrant 
struggling life" — "a consuming desire to gain religious truth; 
an equal sense of sacred obligation to make known the truth 
which he believed himself to have discovered; a deep con- 
sciousness of the Divine Presence; a longing for kindred as- 
piration among his fellow-men, and for social communion with 
them in worship." 

Of some other characters who figure in Mr. Tuckwell's 
volume a few words must be said. 

When Newman gained his Oriel Fellowship Copleston was 
Provost. His name is enshrined in the Apologia in one of those 
brief passages which, as with the skill of a practised painter, 
Newman brings before us for a fleeting moment, the gait and 
words of some man whom he never has occasion to mention 
again. He writes: 



Digitized by 



Google 



sao PrE'Tractarian Oxford [July, 

I was very much alone and I used often to take my daily 
walk by myself. I recollect once meeting Dr. Copleston, then 
Provost, with one of the Fellows. He turned round, and with 
the kind courteousness which sat so well on him, made me a 
bow and said : '' Nunguam minus solus ^ quam cum solus.** 

A very few years later Copleston was transferred irom 
Oriel to the Bishopric of Llandafif, to give place to Hawkins 
and all that his election involved. During the twelve years of 
Copleston's Provostship many notable and interesting events 
occurred. Among them was the sad episode of Hartley Cole- 
ridge's election to a Fellowship and subsequent deprivation. 

Hartley was son of the great philosopher and poet, Sam- 
uel Taylor Coleridge, the friend of Wordsworth and De Quin- 
cey. He inherited his father's genius, and Copleston wel- 
comed him warmly to the ranks of the Oriel Fellows. But 
at the end of his probationary year his eccentric behavior 
made it impossible to confirm his Fellowship, and he was re- 
jected. In his dismay, Samuel Coleridge journeyed to Oxford 
to protest — one of his arguments being that the degree of intoxi- 
cation of which his son had. been guilty, was neither injurious 
nor disgraceful. He pleaded that there were four kinds of in- 
toxication, and that a distinction ought further to be drawn 
between intoxication and drunkenness. His ingenuity, however, 
was thrown away and Oriel knew Hartley no more. 

Copleston was a staunch Protestant, a friend of the Refor- 
mation, and a liberal subscriber to the Martyrs' Memorial, the 
graceful erection opposite Balliol. Oddly enough, the windows 
of the first Catholic Fellow and Tutor at Balliol since the Re- 
formation command a full view of it. The Memorial was put 
up as the protest of the anti-Tractarians against the volume of 
Froude's Remains,^ though the appeal for subscriptions was 
artfully framed so as to include men of widely divergent views. 
Their money has put up a very beautiful erection — more beau- 
tiful than the lives which it commemorates. One of the so- 
called martyrs, of course, was the infamous apostate, Cranmer, 
of whom Hurrell Froude (or was it Frederic Rogers ?) said that 
the best thing he ever heard of him was that he " burned well." 
Copleston also showed his dislike of ''Rome" by adding to 
the already copious stock of anti- papal sermons which no one 

* Mr. Keble called the Memoral " a public dissent from Froude." 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



1909.] pre^Tractarian Oxford 521 

now looks at, and by carrying in the House of Lords an 
amendment against opening diplomatic relations with the Vati- 
can; a piece of insular prejudice which Gladstone found so in- 
convenient some fifty years later. 

He detested ''terminological inexactitudes'' as fiercely as 
he, no doubt, regarded the things which have in our days re- 
ceived that title. He condemned the carelessness which con- 
fuses "facts", with "truth." "Truth" implies a report of 
something that exists. " Fact " means its existence whether 
reported or not. He distinguishes between "reason" and 
"cause," "infallible" and " inevitable," " impossible " and " in- 
conceivable." He disliked the common inaccuracies of speech 
which have surely become sanctioned by custom, such as " the 
sun sets," "time destroys," and the like. A little passage of 
arms with Newman is worth chronicling, though neither party 
could have imagined that its history would survive for over 
three-quarters of a century. Newman, soon after his election 
at Oriel, was serving a dish at dinner. " Mr. Newman," ex- 
claimed the precise Provost, " we do not carve sweetbread with 
a spoon; Manciple, bring a blunt knife." 

To exchange the secure, honorable, and comfortable posi- 
tion of an Oxford Head for the hardships and isolation of a 
Welsh bishopric must have required some coutage. But he 
threw himself with energy into his work, riding on horseback 
into every corner of his diocese and into some villages where 
a bishop had never before been seen, that is to say, a Protest- 
ant bishop. He died in 1849 after a few weeks* illness. 

The least known of Mr. Tuckwell's celebrities is Baden 
Powell, whose son has made the little South African village, 
Mafeking, famous for all time, and has caused a new word for 
riotous junketing to be added to the English language. 

Baden Powell was the one man of science on the list of 
Noetics. In private life he seems to have been possessed of 
singular charm, and the detailed reminiscences written by his 
daughter, written expressly for Mr. Tuckwell's book, make de- 
lightful reading. He had a perfect genius for teaching children 
and for captivating their minds. Astronomy, mathematics, 
music, natural history — all became fascinating, even to little 
children, under his potent spell. 

His ready wit must have made him a delightful companion, 
and his talent for drawing and caricature enabled him to il- 



Digitized by 



Google 



522 PRE'TRACTARIAN OXFORD [July. 

lustrate it ''Whately nsed to say/* says Mr. Tuckwell/'that 
Powell's fine sense of humor came out in his drawings more 
than in his words/* and he tells os that he has seen many 
sketches little valued by the artist, but treasured by Mrs. 
Powell, showing ** facial expression, sit of dress, significance of 
posture,'* nearly worthy of Cruikshank. The humorous or witty 
mottoes beneath these sketches are as clever as the pictures 
themselves. 

Enough has been said, perhaps, to convince my readers 
that in Pre- Tractarian Oxford they will find an interesting and, 
in some respects, satisfactory record of a little known period. 
That Mr. Tuckwell views men and events from a point of view 
totally opposed to that of a Catholic, goes without saying, 
iileaders who sympathize with the Tractarian Movement — ^those 
especially who owe to it the happiness of being children of the 
Catholic Church, will find much to jar upon their most cherished 
feelings and convictions, but even they will probably allow that 
Mr. Tuckwell has in some sense filled a gap by sketching, in 
an agreeable and accessible form, the lives of eight men — seven 
of whom, at least, are well worthy to be numbered in the list 
of Oxford leaders. 



Digitized by 



Google 



THE ARTS IN SHAKESPEARE. 

BY A. W. CORPE. 

^HILE we properly rank Shakespeare, because of 
his insight into human nature, his sympathetic 
receptivity, and the wealth of his imagination, 
the most universal of poets, we must not forget 
that the creator of ''tears and laughter for all 
time'* was necessarily influenced and limited by the circum- 
stances of the age in which he lived. It will therefore assist 
us, in studying his works, to take these into account. Accord- 
ingly, I propose briefly to consider how he stands affected by 
the arts, science, customs, and culture of his day. 

Poetry, in the sense of being the expression of emotion, is 
necessarily coeval with human nature : the songs of Miriam 
and Deborah, the hymns of the inspired Psalmist, and other 
pieces recorded in Holy Writ; the legendary poems of the 
siege of Troy, and the wanderings of Ulysses, the noble dramas 
of the Athenian stage; even the glories of the Augustan age 
of Rome, seem to reach us over an abyss of time, and yet are 
alive with the same passions and emotions that affect us to- 
day. With the decline of the Empire, literature declined, and 
the dark ages have left us almost no record. In Shakespeare's 
country a few names emerge. Chief among these is Caedmon, 
who lived in the seventh century, but it was not until about 
the time of the Norman Conquest that the first germs of Eng- 
lish, as we have it, began to make their appearance. Layamon, 
who lived at the end of the eleventh century, is the most con- 
spicuous name of this period. Layamon is not easy reading; 
but by degrees, the Anglo-Saxon and Norman French became 
blended, and by the middle of the fourteenth century we have 
from the pen of Geoffrey Chaucer a language which, with a 
little study, the Englishman of to-day can read with facility, 
and which, enriched from time to time from various sources, 
has continued, without substantial modification, to our own times. 
Here, then, we have the instrument Shakespeare was to use ; 
we are to see in what way he did use it. Poetry has always 



Digitized by 



Google 



524 THE ARTS IN SHAKESPEARE [July, 

demanded a rhythmical language : the earliest Greek poems are 
in hexameters; the Greek drama used the more severe form 
of the iambic trimeter, interspersed with choruses of various 
meters; the Romans used for their epics the hexameter; for 
poems of a softer description, the elegiac form where a penta- 
meter joined to a hexameter forms a couplet; Horace has 
familiarized us with odes in a variety of measures. The Romans 
did not use rhymes until the Post- Augustan age. In England 
the verse of the Anglo-Saxon period appears to have consisted 
chiefly in a kind of alliteration without any fixed number of 
syllables ; the Normans seem to have introduced rhymes, at all 
events rhymes were not used before the time of Edward the 
Confessor ; Chaucer used for his most important work, The Can- 
tetbury Tales^ a ten-syllabled iambic line with rhymes ; on other 
occasions, he used eight syllable iambic rhymed lines, and 
sometimes with alternate rhymes. During the following years 
a great variety of meters came into existence; it is only nec« 
essary to mention two or three: the fourteen syllable ballad 
verse, of which an early example occurs in " Amantium Irae,*' 
by Richard Edwards: ''In going to my naked bed as one that 
would have slept,'' with its refrain: ''The falling out of faith- 
ful friends renewing is of love." A couplet of these lines, each 
line divided in the middle, as in " The Nut-Brown Maid," where 
the eight syllable lines also have leonine rhymes, forms the 
familiar common meter of the hymnologists ; both this and 
the eight syllable line, with alternate rhymes, were common 
in Shakespeare's day. Quince, in "A Midsummer- Night's 
Dream/' proposes that the prologue to their play "shall be 
written in eight and six." " No " ; says Bottom, " make it 
two more, let it be written in eight and eight" An arrange- 
ment of fourteen lines of "eights," with a somewhat intricate 
system of rhymes, constituted the sonnet. 

For songs and odes and similar poems, various kinds of 
verses and stanzas were made use of, according to the fancy 
of the poet. But by far the most important step of all was 
the introduction of blank verse, of which Henry Howard, Earl 
of Surrey, towards the end of Henry the Eighth's reign, appears 
to have been the originator — at least the earliest known speci- 
men, a translation of part of the jEneid^ is by him. This in- 
novation appears to have come to England from Italy, where 
it was probably due to the influence of the Greek and Roman 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] T^HE ARTS IN SHAKESPEARE 525 

poetry, which, as we have seeo, was independent of rhyme. It 
gained ground rapidly, and, among the immediate predecessors 
and contemporaries of Shakespeare, was in common use. 
Sackville's tragedy of '' Gorboduc/' the earliest regular work of 
the kind, was in blank verse; Edwards"' Palamon and Arcite'' 
was in rhyme; Brooke's ''Tragical History of Romeus and 
Juliet'' was in ballad meter; but the majority of dramatists 
adopted the new manner. It will suffice to mention Peele, Kyd, 
Greene, Marlowe (whose mighty line Ben Jonson celebrates), 
Ben Jonson himself, Beaumont, and Fletcher, among others. 
Shakespeare himself, in his earlier plays, makes considerable 
use of the rhymed couplet; gradually he discarded it, so that 
its more or less frequency is an important indication of the 
date of the play. In the later plays it is entirely absent, ex- 
cept occasionally in the closing lines of a scene where it cer- 
tainly gives importance and dignity. In the poems Shake- 
speare makes use of the ten syllable rhymed verse in stanzas 
of various forms. In the songs occurring in the plays, various 
meters are used. 

In connection with this subject, it is curious to note that 
Dryden, influenced probably by the French style, which came 
in with the Restoration, strenuously maintained the superiority 
of the rhymed couplet for the drama. At the end of " Re- 
ligio Laici" he defends the use of it as "fittest for discourse 
and nearest prose." 

In the preface to his tragedy, "All for Love" (founded 
upon the same story as "Anthony and Cleopatra"), however, 
he says: "In my style I have preferred to imitate the divine 
Shakespeare, which that I might perform freely, I have disen- 
cumbered myself from rhyme, not that I condemn my former 
way, but that this is more proper to my present purpose." 

Even Byron, who said: "Prose poets like blank verse, I'm 
fond of rhyme," used blank verse in his dramatic pieces. We 
shall probably concur with Tennyson that: "Blank verse be- 
comes the finest vehicle of thought in the language of Shake- 
speare and Milton.*' 

Harrison has given us a picture of the state of England in 
the reign of Elizabeth, interesting since it shows the transition 
from the rudeness of earlier times and the contrast between 
domestic life of that day and our own; but, as far as Shake- 
speare's works are concerned, the manners of the times do not 



Digitized by 



Google 



526 The Arts in Shakespeare [July, 

very materially differ from those with which we are ourselves 
familiar. True, we know that rushes covered the floor even in 
palaces where we would expect to find carpets, and the tapestry 
and painted cloths served not only to ornament, but to cover 
the walls and to exclude draughts; thus, when Glendower tells 
Mortimer that his wife 

''Bids you on the wanton rushes lay you down. 
And rest your gentle head upon her lap. 
And she will sing the song that pleaseth you/' 

we understand that the rushes are no indication of want of re- 
finement in Glendower's castle, and we realize how often the 
convenient arras may have served to conceal eavesdroppers. 
In the two or three places in Shakespeare, where the word 
" carpet " is used, it is used for the covering of a table, as 
in " The Taming of the Shrew,'' for instance, where it is said : 
"The carpets are laid;" and a few lines earlier: ''the rushes 
are strewed*" 

To one thing which Harrison mentions, we should cer» 
tainly have expected some allusion in Shakespeare, viz.^ to- 
bacco, the use of which he tells us was held to be sovereign 
against "rewmes and some other diseases ingendered in the 
longes and inward partes/' The virtues of the "weed" and 
the mode of smoking it, or "drinking" it as seems to have 
been the phrase, are frequently alluded to by his contempo- 
raries, but we search in vain for any reference to tobacco by 
Shakespeare. 

It will scarcely be a matter of surprise if Shakespeare, whose 
experiences were necessarily confined to the circumstances of 
his own age and country, should translate the characteristics 
of foreign countries and remote ages into those of which he 
was himself cognizant : hence the Moor of Venice is represented 
as a negro ; hence he not only provides Brutus with a clock 
which strikes the hours, he makes it keep English time; possi- 
bly this was a condescension to the gallery ; but this can 
hardly be urged in the case of the artillery at Anglers in 
" King John." This peculiarity is by no means confined to 
Shakespeare; a remarkable instance of a similar kind— in this 
case deliberately intended — occurs in "Paradise Lost," where 
Milton provides the rebel angels with cannon, with which to 
assail the hosts of heaven. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Arts in Shakespeare 527 

Shakespeare so seldom allows any trace of bis own person- 
ality to appear in his dramatic characters, that we should 
scarcely expect to find in his plays any conspicuous reference 
to his own art as a poet The passage in '^A Midsummer- 
Night's Dream/' where Theseus ranks the poet with the lunatic 
and the lover, seems to have a touch of satire in it; but the 
latter part of the passage: 

"As imagination bodies forth 
The forms of things unknown, the poet's pen 
Turns them to shapes, and gives to airy nothing 
A local habitation and a name," 

exhibiting the creative faculty of the *' maker," as the old woid 
was, seems to come from Shakespeare's own mind. 

When in •' As You Like It " Touchstone tells Audrey that 
he wishes that the gods had made her poetical, she asks with a 
keenness, which we should have hardly looked for : '' I do not 
know what 'poetical' is: is it honest in deed and word? Is it 
a true thing ? " And then Touchstone admits that '' the truest 
poetry is the most feigning"; and quotes in illustration that 
"lovers arc given to poetry," which, whatever the reason, is 
equally true to-day. The graceful tribute to Marlowe (quoted 
from his " Hero and Leander "), which is put into the mouth 
of Phebe in the same play, must not be forgotten. 

In his poems Shakespeare is less reticent: in the dedica- 
tion of his "Venus and Adonis" to Lord Southampton, he 
speaks of it as the "first heir of his invention." That he was 
by no means unconscious of his ability or indififerent to its 
recognition may be gathered from Sonnet LV. : 

"Not marble, nor the gilded monuments 
Of princes shall outlive this powerful rhyme." 

A passage which seems redolent of Horace's " Exegi monumen- 
tum aere perennius," or perhaps Ovid's "Jamque opus exegi." 
Whether Shakespeare had any acquaintance with the classics 
in the original, must remain an open question. Dr. Farmer, 
in the eighteenth century, made an elaborate demonstration, 
that all Shakespeare's acquaintance with classical literature 
might have been derived from translations. Ben Jonson's 
allowance of at least some Greek would seem to imply the pos- 



Digitized by 



Google 



528 THE Arts in Shakespeare [Jalyt 

session of sufficient Latin to read Ovid^ whose works would 
furnish him with all he required. 

Shakespeare's references to mythological subjects, are nu- 
merous and apposite. To quote a few instances: Richard II. 
likens his fall to that of ^'glistering phaeton"; Bardolph's 
complexion reminds Falstaff's page of Althaea's firebrand, which 
he confounds with the burning torch which Hecuba dreamed 
she had brought forth; Althaea's brand is again referred to in 
Henry VI., this time correctly, York declaring that the realms 
of England, France, and Ireland bore the same relation to his 
life as did the fatal brand to that of Meleager. Imogen, from 
whom it appears that reading in bed was indulged in in Shake- 
speare's day, though possibly not known in that of Cymbeline, 
had been reading the tale of Tereus — how like her position to 
that of Philomela — while Tachimo lay concealed in her chamber. 
Florizel, in '' The Winter's Tale," refers to the disguises the gods 
assumed in the prosecution of their amours. 

''The gods themselves. 
Humbling their deities to love, have taken 
The shapes of beasts upon them: Jupiter 
Became a bull, and bellow'd ; the green Neptune 
A ram, and bleated ; and the fire-robed god. 
Golden Apollo, a poor humble swain. 
As I seem now." 

Falstaff, in '' The Merry Wives of Windsor," makes a sim- 
ilar reference with regard to himself. Benedick, after an en- 
counter with Beatrice, who, he says, misused him ''past the 
endurance of a block," likens her to "the infernal Ate." 
Rosalind will be called by the name of "Jove's own page," 
Ganymede, during the sojourn of Celia and herself in the forest 
of Arden. One might hardly suspect that in Jaques' comment 
on Touchstone's punning reference to Ovid, "Oh, knowledge 
ill-inhabited! worse than Jove in a thatched house," there lay 
a reference to the fable of " Philemon and Baucis." An allu- 
sion to the same story is made by Don Pedro in " Much Ado,'* 
in a form which certainly suggests acquaintance with Golding's 
translation of the metamorphosis. In "Twelfth Night" Sir 
Toby calls Maria Penthesilea. In "Henry VI." Charles calls 
the Maid of Orleans Astraea's daughter, probably hoping to see 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] THE ARTS IN SHAKESPEARE Sig 

the return of the Golden Age. In ^* Lucrece ** her smile is said 
to be so sweet 

"That had Narcissus seen her as she stood 
Self-love had never drowned him in the flood/' 

As was to be naturally expected, music, "the exaltation 
of poetry/' is frequently referred to in Shakespeare. True, the 
emotional, orchestral music to which we are accustomed had 
not come into being in Shakespeare's time, but the severe, 
contrapuntal music of previous time had given birth to the 
madrigal. Chamber music, especially for "chests of viols," 
was extensively practised, and every decently cultured person, 
man or woman, was expected to be able to play on the lute, 
which appears to have formed the usual accompaniment to the 
voice in song. From the crabbed figures of the contrapuntal 
schools pure natural melody had been evolved, and it is not 
improbable that the voice, untrammeled by the exigencies of 
fixed-toned instruments, adapted to be used in every key, 
was produced with a purity of intonation which our dulled 
ears fail to appreciate. Besides general references to drums, 
trumpets, hautboys, flutes, etc., there are numerous passages 
which make it clear that Shakespeare was not without some 
technical knowledge of music. In "The Two Gentlemen of 
Verona" Julia suggests to her maid, Lucetta, that some love 
of hers has writ to her in rhyme; she replies: 

"That I might sing it, madam, to a tune. 
Give me a note ; your ladyship can set," 

Julia, quibbling on the word, says: 

"As little by such toys as may be possible. 
But sing it to the tune of ' Light o' Love.' " 

Lucetta: "It is too heavy for so light a tune." 
Julia : " Heavy I belike it hath some burthen then ? " 

Burthen being, of course, the Bourdon or drone-bass. We 
learn from Margaret, in " Much Ado," that Light o' Love, 
"goes without a burden." 

In " The Taming of the Shrew " Hortensio gives an amusing 
account of his attempt to teach music to Katharina: 

"I did but tell her, she mistook her frets 
And bowed her hand to teach her fingering." 

VOU LXXXIX*— 34 



Digitized by 



Google 



S30 THE ARTS IN SHAKESPEARE [July, 

Cassio, having directed a band of musicians to play before 
the castle in which Desdemona is lodged, Othello^s servant asks 
them if their instruments have been to Naples 'Uhat they 
speak i' the nose thus ? " and presently gives them money and 
informs them that the General so likes their music, that he 
desires them to make no more noise with it, and he sends 
them away. Shylock also speaks of the nasal tone of the 
bagpipes. Sir Andrew Aguecheek who, besides his other ac- 
complishments, '' plays o' the viol- de-gamboys," must not be 
forgotten. The affectation of unwillingness, or inability, on the 
part of singers — an affectation as old as Horace^s time — is well 
ridiculed by Jaques. 

Nor are passages wanting in which music is treated of in 
a serious mood. The lines in ''The Merchant of Venice,'' 
where Lorenzo tells Jessica that the man who is without the 
love of music is not to be trusted, are almost proverbial, but 
the preceding lines are even more impressive. Lorenzo has 
said: 

'' How sweet the moonlight sleeps upon this bank 1 
Here will we sit and let the sounds of music 
Creep in our ears: soft stillness and the night 
Become the touches of sweet harmony. 
Sit, Jessica. Look how the floor of heaven 
Is thick inlaid with patines of bright gold: 
There's not the smallest orb which thou behold'st 
But in his motion like an angel sings, 
Still quiring to the young-eyed cherubins; 
Such harmony is in immortal souls." 

A passage evidently reminiscent of Job. Jessica remarks: 
'' I am never merry when I hear sweet music' 



»» 



He replies: 

''The reason is, your spirits are attentive." 
A touch similar to Jessica's occurs in Sonnet VIIL: 

"Music to hear, why hear'st thou music sadly?" 

It is interesting to observe that a note of Cassius' danger- 
ous character is that " he hears no music." But the rule does 
not always hold good. True, Shylock does not seem to have 
appreciated music, but then neither did Henry Hotspur. After 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Arts in Shakespeare 531 

Glendower had been saying that he had set ballads to the 

harp. Hotspur says: 

'' I had rather be a kitten and cry * mew ' 
Than one of these same meter ballad-mongers; 
I had rather hear a brazen canstick turned. 
Or a dry wheel grate on the axle-tree." 

Othello does not appear to have been fond of music. The 
use of music to a£fect« excite, or soothe the mind is frequently 
mentioned. When Bassanio is about to make his choice, Portia 
will aid him with music and a song. Prospero, when about to 
renounce his magic arts, requires ''some heavenly music." 
Paulina, proceeding to animate the supposed statue, exclaims: 

''Music awake her, strike I 
Tis time; descend; be stone no more." 

In the exquisite scene of Lear's return to sanity music 
plays its part and is made the moving power in his recovery. 
Desdemona, in her distress, recalls how her mother 

"had a maid called Barbara, 
. . . She had a song of 'willow*; 
An old thing 'twas, but it expressed her fortune. 
And she died singing it; that song to-night 
Will not go from my mind." 

And her woman, Emilia, dying, cries: 

" What did thy song bode, lady ? 
Hark I canst thou hear me ? I will play the swan. 
And die in music." 

We might call flowers the poetry of the inanimate world's 
beauty — " pure perfection " as the Ettrick Shepherd defined it 
— but without emotion. Shakespeare's references to flowers are 
always sympathetic. Both the poems and the plays contain 
frequent allusions to them. In " Lucrece " the heroine is pic- 
tured lying asleep. 

"Her lily hand her rosy cheek lies under. 
Cozening the pillow of a lawful kiss. 
. . . . . t 

Without the bed her other fair hand was. 
On the green coverlet; whose perfect white 
Show'd like an April daisy on the grass. 
With pearly sweat, resembling dew of night. 



Digitized by 



Google 



532 The Arts in Shakespeare [July, 

Her eyesy like marigolds, had sheathed their light, 
And canopied in darkness sweetly lay, 
Till they might open to adorn the day. 

The masquers' song in ''Love's Labour's Lost/' "When 
Daisies Pied," is perhaps the earliest reference in the plays. 

In '' The Winter's Tale " a charming scene occurs at the 
sheep-shearing: Perdita, as hostess, gives to Polixenes and 
Camillo "rosemary and rue," which Polixenes acknowledges in 
beautiful language. 

It may be noted that Greene's tale of " Pandosto," upon 
which Shakespeare based "The Winter's Tale," and which he 
followed to the extent of furnishing a seacoast to Bohemia, 
does not contain the beautiful scene, nor does the incident of 
the supposed statue occur in it^ Ophelia's song of her true 
love, whose white shroud was " larded all with sweet flowers " ; 
her mysterious distribution of rosemary, pansies, fennel, colum- 
bines, rue, daisies ; how her violets withered all when her father 
died ; how she hung over the glassy stream weaving coronets 
of wild flowers "when down the weedy trophies and herself 
fell in the weeping brook." How, notwithstanding what was 
judged to be a "doubtful" death, she was allowed 

"her virgin crants, 
Her maiden, strewments, and the bringing home 
Of bell and burial." 

How the Queen scattered flowers upon her coffin with "sweets 
to the sweet, farewell!" and bow Laertes pictured that from 
her pure and unspotted flesh violets should spring, are famil« 
iar to all. 

The fine passage in Henry VIII., where Wolsey solilo- 
quizes : 

" Farewell 1 a long farewell to all my greatness 1 
This is the state of man: to-day he puts forth 
The tender leaves of hope ; to-morrow blossoms. 
And bears his blushing honors thick upon him; 
The third day comes a frost, a killing frost, 
And, when he thinks, good easy man, full surely 
His greatness is a*ripening, nips his root. 
And then be falls, as I do, 

is, according to the critics, by Fletcher, Shakespeare's collabora- 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



1909.] The Arts in Shakespeare 533 

tor in this play. If so, it serves to show how nearly Fletcher 
could, on occasion, approach his exemplar. 

Akin to poetry is the presentation of it, and this leads to 
Shakespeare's own craft as an actor. The references to acting 
are not very numerous, but it is evident he had a high ideal 
of his art The words of advice to the players have become a 
commonplace, but his recognition and cordial reception of the 
actors as old friends, are significant. On Gildenstern's intro- 
duction, Hamlet addresses them : '' Gentlemen, you are welcome 
to Elsinore. Your hands — '' and further on : '* You are welcome, 
masters, welcome all; I am right glad to see thee well ; welcome 
good friends/' and adds personal compliments to certain of 
them. And later to Polonius: ''Good, my lord, will you see 
the players well bestowed? do you hear? let them be well 
used, for they are the abstracts and brief chronicles of the time. 

Julia, in her character as a page, in a beautiful passage in 
''The Two Gentlemen of Verona,'' tells Sylvia how at their 
pageants at Pentecost, 

"Our youth got me to play the woman's part. 
And I was trimmed in Madam Julia's gown." 

Juliet, about to take the Friar's potion, almost distracted by 
her apprehensions, reminds herself: 

" My dismal scene, I must needs act alone." 

The clown's play in " Midsummer-Night's Dream/' of course, 
furnishes material : what beards the actors should don ; the bill 
of properties ; the cue, etc. The Duke, in " As You Like It," 
has said: 

"This wide and universal theatre 
Presents more woeful pageants than the scene 
Wherein we play in." 

And the suggestion draws from Jaques the celebrated compari- 
son of the world to a stage. Coriolanus, overcome by the en- 
treaties of his wife and mother, exclaims: 

" Like a dull actor now 
I have forgot my part, and I am out. 
Even to a full disgrace." 

Macbeth, finding himself about to be besieged in his castle, 
is informed of his wife's death. He cries: 



Digitized by 



Google 



534 ^ra^ ARTS IN Shakespeare [July, 

'' Out, out, brief candle 1 
Life's but a walking shadow; a poor player 
That struts and frets his hour upon the stage 
And then is heard no more/' 

Two passages in the Sonnets give an almost painful impres-^ 
sion, of the feeling with which the low estimation, actors were 
held in, affected Shakespeare: 

''Alas, 'tis true, I hare gone here and there 
And made myself a motley to the view. 
Gored mine own thoughts, sold cheap what is most dear. 
Made old offences of affections new." (Sonnet CX.) 

'' O, for my sake, do you with Fortune chide. 
The guilty goddess of my harmful deeds. 
That did not better for my life provide 
Than public means which public manners breeds. 
Thence comes it that my name receives a brand. 
And almost thence my nature is subdued 
To what it works in, like the dyer's hand." (Sonnet CXI.) 

Of painting and sculpture Shakespeare has little to say; 
occasional mention is made of portraits and miniatures, those 
of Hamlet's father and uncle at once occur to us. Of the art 
of sculpture I believe the only reference is to the supposed 
statue in ''The Winter's Tale." No doubt authority can be 
quoted for the use of paint on statuary, but it does not belong 
to the best period of the art; it was obviously necessary here 
and it serves, incidentally, to heighten the fervor of Leonte's 
feelings. 

In no direction has so great an amelioration taken place 
since Shakespeare's day as in the medical art. In the direc- 
tion of science and mechanics hints of progress may be found 
in Shakespeare which seem almost prophetical; we learn how 
Ariel "would drink the air before him"; how Puck would 
"put a girdle round the earth in forty minutes"; the passage 
in " King John " where Philip, rejoicing in the projected mar- 
riage of his daughter, declares that "the glorious sun stays in 
his course, and plays the alchemist," might, with a little change 
in the application, pass for a forecast of photography ; Imogen's 
rapturous wish on hearing that Posthumus was at Milford 
Haven — "O, for a horse with wings. ... If one of mean 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Arts in Shakespeare 535 

aflfairs may plod it in a week, why may not I glide thither in 
a day ? " — has been more than realized by the motor car. But 
in the case of medicine we feel ourselves carried back to the 
Middle Ages : the qualities of herbs, mysterious potions, deadly 
poisons, healing salves, are the materia medica of the time. 
During the Wars of the Roses there must have been numerous 
opportunities for the exercise of conservative surgery, but the 
surgeon appears to have little resource beyond blood-letting. 
Many mentions of the power of herbs occur : Juliet's confessor, 
Friar Lawrence, is introduced as collecting 

'' Baleful weeds and precious-juiced flowers. 

• • • for many virtues excellent; 
None but for some and yet all different. 

• .•••• 

Within the infant rind of this weak flower 

Poison hath residence and medicine power; 

For this, being smelt, with that part cheers each part ; 

Being tasted, slays all senses with the heart" 

The Abbess, in ''The Comedy of Errors,'^ will administer 
''wholesome syrups and drugs,'' and aid them with "holy 
prayers." The Physician in " Cymbeline " endeavors to dis- 
suade the Queen from practising with "poisonous compounds 
which are the movers of a languishing death." We have the 
mysterious sleeping potions of Juliet and Imogen. Oberon 
tells us of the magic juice of the 

"little western flower. 
Before milk-white, now purple with love's wound." 

Jessica reminds us that it was by night, that 

"Medea gathered the enchanted herbs 
That did renew old iEson." 

Romeo gives us an amusing description of his visit to the 
Apothecary : he tells how 

"In his needy shop a tortoise hung. 
An alligator stuff'd, and other skins 
Of ill-shap'd fishes; and about his shelves 
A beggarly account of empty boxes. 
Green earthen pots, bladders, and musty seeds. 
Remnants of packthread, and old cakes of roses. 
Were thinly scattered to make up a show." 



Digitized by 



Google 



536 THE ARTS IN SHAKESPEARE [July, 

In "Airs Well That Ends Well," the story turns upon the 
success of a prescription left by Helena's father, whereby the 
King is cured of a fistula (this is so in the novel in the De^ 
Cameron, upon which the play is founded) after the patient and 
his physician "are of a mind, he that they cannot help him, 
they that they cannot help/' 

Othello had doubtless realized that " not poppy nor man* 
dragora, nor all the drowsy syrups of the world,'' could relieve 
the mind roused to jealousy. Lady Macbeth's physician is 
forced to admit that he is unable to "minister to a mind dis- 
eased," or " raze out the written trouble of the brain." 

The art of jurisprudence as exemplified in Shakespeare is 
interesting, not only on its own account, but because several 
of the references made to it show such a technical knowledge 
of the subject as to lead to the supposition that Shakespeare 
must have passed some time in the practical pursuit of the 
law. Anglo-Saxon and Norman customs had long been fused 
together, and legal documents were not uncommonly written 
in English, though many of the Norman-French terms sur- 
vived, as indeed they do to this day. The principles of land 
tenure were determined substantially as we know them; on 
the other hand, the vast body of social and commercial law, 
and the functions of the Courts of Equity were in their infancy. 
"The Merchant of Venice," the plot of which turns mainly 
upon the bond given by Antonio to Shylock, furnishes a com- 
plete view of a trial in a court of law of the time. 

It would be tedious to make any extended reference to 
Shakespeare's use of technical law terms. We may accept the 
dictum of the late Lord Campbell, who, as successively Chief 
Justice and Lord Chancellor, was peculiarly able to form an 
opinion, that while the technical terms used in law were of so 
special a character, that a layman could hardly fail to blunder 
in using them, Shakespeare has uniformly used them correctly ; 
but a few illustrations may be given : Shylock was to let An- 
tonio have half of his goods for Lorenzo after Shylock's death ; 
this strictly technical expression has reference to a device for 
avoiding forfeiture, which was the occasion of the famous act 
of 27th Henry VIII., known as the Statute of Uses. In "Love's 
Labour's Lost " a particularly technical reference to real prop- 
erty law is made. Boyet asks Maria to "grant pasture" for 
him, meaning to let him kiss her. " No, no, gentle beast," she 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Arts in Shakespeare 537 

sajrs, ''my lips are no common, though several thejrbe." That 
is to say, her lips are pasture for one person only, and not for 
all the world. The Countess Olivia, in '' Twelfth Night/' says : 
''I will give out divers schedules of my beauty; it shall be 
inventoried : • . • as, item, two lips, indifferent red ; item, 
two gray eyes, with lids to them/* This term, schedule, the 
use of which is almost exclusively confined to legal documents, 
occurs in three or four other places. Always in a sense agree- 
ing with its technical use. The seal, the most solemn form of 
assent to a document deriving its origin from the time when 
the art of writing was comparatively rare, has survived to the 
present day. Formerly the seal was affixed to the document 
by a slip of parchment called the label — a deed executed by 
Shakespeare himself, with the seals affixed in this way, is pre- 
served in the British Museum. Many references to the seal 
occur. For instance, Shylock says to Bassanio: 

''Till thou canst rail the seal from off my bond 
Thou but offend'st thy lungs to talk so loud." 

"Here is your hand and seal for what I did,'' is Hubert's 
reply to King John, touching the supposed death of Arthur. 
In one remarkable passage both the seal and label are men- 
tioned together: Juliet, learning from the friar that she must 
inevitably be married to Paris, says: 

"If, in thy wisdom, thou canst give no help. 
Do thou but call my resolution wise. 
And with this knife I'll help it presently. 
God joiu'd my heart and Romeo's, thou our hands; 
And ere this hand, by thee to Romeo seal'd. 
Shall be the label to another deed, 
Or my true heart with treacherous revolt 
Turn to another, this shall slay them both." 

In a different vein, we might quote the first gravedigger's 
famous reference to "Crowner's quest law" and Dogberry's 
readiness to lay " five shillings on't to one with any man that 
knows the statues." 

In conclusion we may congratulate ourselves on possessing 
in the works of Shakespeare, a living picture of a period not the 
least interesting in the history of civilization. 



Digitized by 



Google 



flew IBoohs* 

The rapidity with which the pro- 

THE CATHOLIC ENCTCLO- duction of this great work is pro- 

PBDIA. ceeding might raise a suspicion 

that celerity is bought at the ex- 
pense of quality. An examination of this,* as of the preced- 
ing four volumes, cannot but convince even the gentle sceptic 
that there is no ground for such doubt* If this one shows 
any difference from that of its predecessors, it is that the sense 
of proportion in the allotment of space is more conspicuous; 
and that there are no titles introduced which could claim a 
place only under the most liberal interpretation of the encyclo- 
pedia's scope. 

There are many articles which have offered the editors an 
opportunity to manifest the spirit in which they have conceived 
and are carrying out their task; that is, to combine uncom- 
promising fidelity to authoritative doctrine and traditional 
Catholic ideals with a due regard for the advance of learning. 
Probably one of the topics to which many will turn as a cru- 
cial instance in this regard is ** Evolution." There are two di- 
visions in the treatment of this question ; each paper is signed 
by the name of a writer who has already won respect in the 
field of biology. A general view of the theory and of the 
Catholic attitude towards it is given by Father Wassman, SJ. 
He draws attention to the fact that Darwinism and evolution 
are not synonymous terms — a piece of information which some 
well-meaning speakers and writers among ourselves will do 
well to take note of. The evolution theory, he holds, may be 
placed on a theistic and Christian basis; and with regard to 
man's origin he makes concessions that might, perhaps, seem 
strange to ears attuned only to the note dominant in our 
apologetic orchestra of thirty, or even fifteen, years ago. On 
this head he sums up as follows, in answer to the question, 
To what extent is the theory of evolution applicable to man? 

That God should have made use of natural evolutionary, 

* Tk€ Catholic Encyeloftdia. Ab International work of Reference on the Constitution, 
Doctrine, Discipline, and History of the Catholic Church« Edited by Charles G. Herbennann, 
Ph.D., LL.D.. Ed. A. Pace, D.D., Cond^ B. Pallen, Ph.D., Thomas J. Shahan, D.D., John 
J. Wynne, S.J. In Fifteen Volumes. Vol. V, Dioc-Faith. New York : The Robert Ap- 
pleton Company, 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] NEW BOOKS 539 

original causes in the production of man's body is per se not 
improbable, and was proposed by St. Augustine. The actual 
proofs oi the descent of man's body from animals is, however, 
inadequate, especially in respect to palaeontology, and the 
human soul could not have been derived through natural evo- 
lution irom that oi the brute, since it is of a spiritual nature ; 
for which reason we must refer its origin to a creative act of 
Ood. 

The other paper, by Father Muckermann, is an excellent 
sketch of the history and scientific foundations of the theory, 
condensed, with some illustrations, into about fifteen pages. 
With regard to the arguments offered for animal origin of man. 
Father Muckermann is more peremptory than his collaborator. 

There is no trace of even a merely probable argument in 
favor of the animal origin of man. The earliest human fossils 
and the most ancient traces of culture refer to a true Homo 
sapiens as we know him to-day. 

An article that, no doubt, will prove of interest and value 
to non-Catholics is that on '* Divorce.'' The subject has been 
treated clearly and thoroughly by Father Lehmkuhl. There 
will be no longer any excuse for a repetition of the miscon- 
ceptions regarding, for example, the difference between nullity 
and divorce, or the nature of the Pauline privilege, which so 
frequently turn up when some opponent undertakes to discuss the 
doctrine and discipline of the Church regarding matrimony. 
There is a remarkably concise yet comprehensive sketch, from 
the religious point of view, of the history of England before the 
Reformation, by Father Thurston, S J.; and the subsequent era 
is taken up by Mr. W. S. Lilly, who tells the story with his 
usual munificence in the matter of quotations, and manages to 
record Catholic emancipation without mentioning the name of 
''that Irish fellow, O'Connell." A group of articles on topics 
connected with the Oriental Church comes from the pen of 
Dr. Adrian Fortescue; while M. Boudinhon, the professor of 
Canon Law in the Catholic Institute of Paris, contributes sev- 
eral on canonical matters, of which the most important is '' Ex- 
communication.'' 

Father Cathrein's article on ''Ethics" contains an excel- 
lent brief outline of Christian ethics. One regrets, however. 



Digitized by 



Google 



540 NEW BOOKS [July, 

that when treating of the origin of civil authority he omitted 
— or shall we say avoided? — giving any notice of the demo- 
cratic doctrine of the scholastics and his illustrious confrere^ 
Suarezy that power comes to the ruler from God through the 
people. And it is somewhat arbitrary to lay down as Catholic 
teaching a view or theory which, while favored by some repu* 
table theologians, is not accepted by others. Father Cathrein 
explains the lawfulness of polygamy and divorce on the ground 
that God dispensed, for a time, from the obligations of the 
natural law; but some eminent theologians do not admit the 
possibility of any dispensation from the natural law, and solve 
the difficulties of ancient matrimonial practice in another way. 
The biblical subjects in this volume are comparatively few, and 
none of them of the first importance. An able article on ** Ex- 
egesis,'' by Father Maas, S.J., does not mark sufficiently the light 
which exegesis has been able to draw from the vast discover- 
ies made in ancient archaeology during the past century. 

As one turns over the pages of this volume one is tempted 
to enlarge beyond the bounds of a book notice the list of sub- 
jects that have been treated with conspicuous ability. But we 
must resist, and conclude with expressing the conviction that, 
while microscopic criticism might find some opportunities for 
stricture, this volume fulfils the promise of the encyclopedia to 
be a work that will meet the reasonable standards of the 
learned without neglecting the claims of the uncritical. There 
are, too, some articles, as, for instance, the splendid one on 
'' Egypt,'' that even specialists may study with profit. 

When the future historian comes 
CHURCH HISTORY. to write the story of the revival 

of Catholic historical scholarship 
in the nineteenth century he will note the name of Duchesne 
as the Eusebius of that movement. At length we possess an 
English version of his study on the early Church,* a study 
which, besides augmenting and correcting our previous knowl- 
edge of the first ages of Christianity, has helped incalculably 
ecclesiastical history by setting a model of exact scientific 
method. The work is so well known in the original that it would 

• Batly History of ike Christum Church Prom Its Foundation to tht End of the Third 
Ctntury, Jiij Mgr. Louis Duchesne. Rendered into English from the Fourth Edition. New 
York : Longmans, Green & Co. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New Books 541 

be saperflaoas here to present any synopsis of its contents or 
any estimate of its verdicts. 

We may, however, observe that in many places Mgr. Du- 
chesne's method destroys in advance arguments urged by op- 
ponents against Catholicism and the papacy, by frankly recog- 
nizing just how far historic proof is available in our favor; 
and then refraining from pressing the records to yield what 
they do not contain. For example, one might cite the dis- 
pute regarding Easter between St. Victor and the Asiatics. 
When the Pope, Mgr. Duchesne shows, undertook to excommu- 
nicate the Asiatic churches, St. Irenaeus and the other Asiatic 
bishops resisted him: ''though agreeing in the main, with the 
Roman Church, they could not, for such an insignificant matter, 
allow venerable churches, founded by Apostles, to be treated 
as centers of heresy, and cut off from the family of Christ*' 
Yet here, and on every other occasion where the most vital 
question of the supremacy of the Pope comes into censidera- 
tion, Mgr. Duchesne brings out the overwhelming evidence 
that exists for the Primacy. But, at the same time, he care- 
fully insists upon the fact, implicit rather than explicit recog- 
nition of the Pope's supremacy is what we generally find. 
Many zealous defenders of it have weakened their case by dis- 
regarding this fact. His exposition of the relations of the 
Roman See to the other Apostolic organizations is formulated 
so as to meet the classic objections drawn from this period 
against the supremacy — 

[The special authority of Rome] was felt rather than defined ; 
it was felt, first of all, by the Romans themselves, who, from 
the time of St. Clement, never had any hesitation as to their 
duty to all Christendom ; it was felt also by the rest of the 
world, so long as the expression of it did not conflict with 
some contrary idea, determined by circumstances. In the ex- 
ercise of her moral authority, an exercise which no one could 
have defined, the Roman Church was led sometimes to support 
men, sometimes to cross them. As long as she did not cross 
them, there was no expression sufficiently strong to express 
their enthusiasm and respect, and even the obedience they 
felt incumbent upon them. In the event of conflicting opin- 
ion, /. ^., in the times of Popes Victor and Stephen, then men 
did not consider the prerogatives of the See of Peter so self- 
evident. But in the ordinary course of events, the great 
Christian community of the Metropolis of the world, founded 



Digitized by 



Google 



542 NEW BOOKS [Jwly^ 

at the very origin of the Church, consecrated by the pres- 
ence and mart3rrdom of the Apostles Peter and Paul, kept its 
old place as the common center of Christianity^ and, if we 
may so express it, as the business center of the Gospel. 

The corresponding attitude of Rome, he shows, witnesses 
to the same purport : 

Rome kept an eye on the doctrinal disputes which agitated 
other countries; it knew how to bring Origen to book for the 
eccentricities of his exegesis, and how to recall the powerful 
Primate of Bg3rpt to orthodoxy. The situation was so clear 
that even the pagans were conscious of it. Between two 
candidates for the episcopal see of Antioch the Emperor 
Aurelian saw at once that the right one was he who was in 
communion with Rome. And yet, these relations were in- 
sufficiently defined. The fast approaching day, when centri- 
fugal forces come into play, will bring regret that the organi- 
zation of the Universal Church was not developed so far as 
that of the local churches. Unity will suffer. 

That useful little book Characteristics of the Early Church * 
has reached a second edition. It is a very brief conspectus 
of ecclesiastical history for the first five hundred years. The 
writer marks the significance of facts bearing upon apostolic 
succession and the primacy of St. Peter. There would have 
been a good deal of mechanical, and some labor of research, 
required if the author had appended precise references to his 
statements and quotations. But the labor would have greatly 
increased the value of the book for non-Catholics who find 
themselves drawn to examine the claims of the Church. 

Among the more conspicuous of 
MODERNISM. the recent refutations of Modernism 

may be mentioned that of P^re 
Mamus.f The author, following almost rigorously the lines 
of the papal encyclical, treats successively the aim of the 
modernists; the modernists and the Church; the modernists, 
reason, and religion; the modernists and doctrinal evolution; 
the modernists and dogma, scholasticism, the divinity of Christ, 

* CharaeUrisUcs of the Bariy Church, By Rer. J. J. Burke. New York : The Christian 
Press Association. 

t Lis Mtdemistis, Par Le P. Mamus. Paris : G. Beanchesne et Cie. 



Digitized by 



Google 



I©09.] N£JV BOOKS 543 

and Christianity. Covering thus the two distinct fields, the 
exegetical and the philosophical, this book has the advantage of 
being comprehensive. Bat, on the other hand, neither of the 
problems receives the thorough treatment which has been given 
to them by writers who have confined themselves to one or 
other of the divisions; as, for example, M. Lepin, whose able 
work was noticed in these columns. 

The philosophical errors indicated as the basis of modern- 
ism by the Holy Father — agnosticism and immanence — are 
discussed in two works which have a wider scope than the 
refutation of modernism, though this issue necessarily falls 
under review in its proper place. It is instructive to note that 
while one of these works makes agnosticism its direct target, 
and the other takes immanence for its subject, each one treats 
both topics, and merely reverses the rank accorded to them, 
respectively in the other book. In Les Deux Aspects de Vim-' 
manence^^ M. Thamiry has a constructive purpose. Recognizing 
that while absolute immanence means pantheism or monism, 
there is a partial or relative immanence which St. Paul ex» 
pressed when he said: *'In Him we live, move, and have our 
being/' M. Thamiry undertakes to reconcile with orthodox 
doctrine the truth which the exaggerated theories of imma- 
nence have distorted. In the doctrine of St. Augustine, which 
was followed by St. Thomas, relative to the existence of sem« 
inal principles {jrationes seminales), M, Thamiry believes there 
is a key to a luminous theory. He gives to this idea of rationes 
seminales an application far beyond the field of biology. In 
his hands it is used not alone to explain the origin of life, 
but also the genesis of our judgments concerning necessary 
truths and first principles, as well as our assents to dogmatic 
and moral doctrines — in bri^, not alone were rationes seminales 
lodged in matter for ultimate development into life, but there 
are also intellectual rationes seminales in the human mind which 
play a large part in the constitution of all our knowledge. 

The volume directed against agnosticism issues from the 
Catholic University of Toulouse. The special feature of the 
work is the unusually large measure of attention and space 

^ Lts Diux Aspects dtVImmantnctitU ProhUmt Rdiiuuz, Par Ed. Thamiry. Puis: 
Bloud et Cie. 



Digitized by 



Google 



544 NEW BOOKS [Julyf 

assigned to the psychological [side of the question.* For this 
reason M. Michelet will repay reading, as the subject has been 
passed over so lightly by many apologists that their writings 
fail to meet decisively the errors which they would destroy. 
This has not escaped M. Michelet's notice: ''Convinced/' he 
writes of himself, '' that apologetics ought to turn to its profit 
whatever is legitimate in present aspirations, and whatever is 
scientific in contemporary effort, the author has judged that as 
others labor for the divorce of the history of religions from 
its materialistic interpretations, it is necessary likewise, while 
rejecting firmly the doctrine of immanence, to maintain the 
legitimacy and utility of this new science of religious psychol- 
ogy.'' The character of these two able works indicates that 
the defenders of orthodoxy are now employing the most efficient 
tactics ; which is to demonstrate that the distorted truths which 
give error whatever plausibility and strength it possesses, find 
their natural environment, and can be incorporated, in their 
pure form into the orthodox system. 

As its title indicates, this volume f 
DON BOSCO. is the history of but a part of Don 

Bosco's life and works. It opens 
with his entry into the priesthood and closes with the year 
1866. The author, Father Bonetti, was a close companion of 
Don Bosco, so that he writes as an eye-witness, and from per- 
sonal information. His style of narration is charmingly simple 
and realistic. Anecdotes, incidents of daily occurrence in Don 
Bosco's career, and the critical trials through which he passed 
during the Italian disturbances, are woven into a narrative on 
the most generous scale, and presented with that simplicity 
which is the perfection of art. Long dialogues and conversa- 
tions are repeated with the fidelity of a Boswell. Before we 
have read many chapters we seem to know intimately, not alone 
Don Bosco himself, but also typical characters among his pro- 
t^g^s and most of the persons who conspicuously helped or hin- 
dered his loving labors; and the house of refuge in Turin is 
almost as much a reality for us as it was to the nearest neigh- 
bors. Much interesting sidelight is thrown upon Italian events 
and conditions during the struggle against Austria; and we 

* Dieu €t V AgnosHcismt C0nUmporaint, Par George Michelet. Paris: V. Lecoffre. 
t History of Don Boseo*s Early ApostolaU. Translated from the work of C. Bonetti, S.C. 
London : The Salesian Press. 



Digitized by 



Google 



I9O90 AlffF BOOKS 54S 

meet Cavoar himself in comparatively obscure surroundings. 
Seldom has the work of an apostle of charity found so inter- 
esting a chronicler. Chronicle is, perhaps, the most fitting des- 
ignation for the story; it has an air of directness and naivete 
that is seldom to be found in our latter-day biographers. 

All those who have read Helen 

THROUGH RAMONA'S Hunt Jackson's Ramona^ and many 

COUNTRY. who have not, will find Mr. James' 

book* a delightful complement of 

that famous novel. 

The author very earnestly explains that Ramona is *'a mo- 
saic of fact and of fiction/' Of fact, because *' there is scarcely 
a statement relating to the country " (Southern California) '* the 
Spanish home life, of description, of the treatment of the In- 
dians, etc., that is not literally true." Of fiction, because '' the 
hero and the heroine are pure creations of the author's brain." 
The present volume is largely a demonstration of the for- 
mer of these two statements. It is a running commentary on 
portions of the text of Ramona^ a commentary which gives the 
writer, who is evidently thoroughly well-informed, an oppor- 
tunity to make a thorough expos^ of the life, the manners, and 
customs of the South California Indians, and of their habitat. 
The result is an extremely interesting book. It is illustrated 
with many good photographs. 

Not since a witty Frenchman, some 

ENGLAND AND THE twenty years ago, set the world 

ENGLISH. grinning at the expense of John 

Bull, has any stranger recorded his 
impressions of the ''tight little Island" with such racy char- 
acterization as this American cousin. This book,t however, is 
much more serious, deeper, and fairer than Max O'Rell's flimsy 
caricature. Mr. Collier takes us at once to London, after land- 
ing from an American steamer, and plunges into the business 
of describing and explaining the things, the methods, manners, 
and types that strike the eye of an American in contrast to 
his own home experiences. We are informed at once that Mr. 
Collier does not propose to criticize, but to make a study. 

* Through Ramona* s Country, By George Wharton James. Boston : Little, Brown ft 
Co. 

t England and the English Jrom an Amtrican Point af Viiw, By Price Collier. New 
York : Charlei Scribner's Sons. 
VOL. LXXXIX.— 35 



Digitized by 



Google 



546 NEW BOOKS [Jttly# 

To this plan he sticks throughout; but, without assumiog the 
critic's attitude, he presents facts so clearly that they speak 
for themselves, and when their testimony is unfavorable to 
John, John has nobody to blame but himself. The study is 
taken up, for the most part, with the political and social life of 
the classes, rather than of the masses, though, of course, Mr. 
Collier touches upon the latter, generally to give shadow to 
his picture. The Englishman's self- sufficiency, self-reliance, and 
underlying selfishness are the features of the national character 
which Mr. Collier brings out a hundred times in bold outline. 
Speaking after thirty years' acquaintance with English society, 
he knows how to interpret the meaning of things which the 
casual visitor can judge but superficially; and he usually con- 
veys his meaning incisively by comparing or contrasting Eng- 
lish with American ways. 

His report of the Englishman's attitude towards the Amer- 
icans who become domiciled in England is unflattering only to 
these expatriated deserters. ''Americans who have become 
domiciled in England, who give lavishly to charities, who en- 
tertain luxuriously, would be surprised to know the attitude of 
mind of the average Englishman in regard to them. He looks 
upon them first, as people who have recognized his superiority, 
and, therefore, prefer his society; but secondly, and always, 
as renegades, as people who have shirked their duty as Amer- 
icans." This, Mr. Collier says, is characteristic of the English- 
man's own sense of duty; which, he shows, has been a mighty 
factor in the growth and maintenance of English success at 
home and abroad. After a short but thoughtful sketch of the 
origin and development of the national life, Mr. Collier de- 
scribes, with abundant illustration, the part played in political 
and social life by the policy of compromise, "the philosophy 
of subordinating high principles to practical exigencies," and 
the disinclination to believe that foreigners, whosoever they 
be, can do anything better than Englishmen. ''Are the Eng- 
lish dull ? " is answered in a very entertaining and instructive 
chapter, the tenor of which may be inferred from the follow- 
ing passage: 

The English have made man and men» and the best method 
of controlling them, their study without bothering about any 
preliminary bookishness. Apparently they are not only 
proud that they do not understand, but also proud that they 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] NEW BOOKS 547 

understand that it is better not to understand. They have no 
patience with, and no belief in, the restless intellectual activ- 
ity of the French, for example. A profound instinct warns 
them against intelligence, which they recognize as the great- 
est foe to action. 

Dull they are, thinks Mr. Collier, but ''out of this root of 
dullness has grown an overshadowing national tree.'' Has this 
national tree entered on its decline? Mr. Collier does not 
thresh out this acute question. But in his chapter on sport, 
where he shows the enormous place sport occupies in national 
interest and expenditure, he suggests that John, the florid and 
stout-hearted cricketer, horse-lover, and all-round sport, is 
destined to fall behind in the '' scientific game that Germany, 
Japan, and America are now playing.'' 

England, Mr. Collier says, extensively and with iteration, 
is a man's country, not a woman's. American women will 
find many texts for gratitude to Providence that they are not 
English wives or sisters. But they, or at least a certain class 
of them, will find that Mr. Collier does not consider that the 
prominence given to women in the ranks of wealth is a favor- 
able symptom for America. '' The English woman knows that 
tradition, the law, and society demand of her that* she shall 
make a home for a man ; the American woman has been led 
astray by force of circumstances into thinking that her first 
duty is to make a place for herself." But this class, he con- 
cedes, is ''a small, very small knot of women in America, but 
a company so highly- colored, so vociferous, and so advertised, 
that they stamp themselves on the superficial foreigner as be- 
ing typical, when, as a matter of fact, they are merely hyster- 
ical." In many other places, also, we find a shrewd observa- 
tion on affairs at home. For example: 

The recent discussions about more money for our ambas- 
sadors seem to omit the pith of the problem, which is that our 
ambassadors are not in Europe to play up to a king or to an 
aristocracy, but to represent the American people. When our 
ambassadors need a score of flunkies to make a setting for 
their diplomatic mission they no longer represent America. 
Franklin, Jay, Bayard, Lowell, and Choate impressed these 
sensible English people more, and be it said some of them 
did far more for their country's honor, peace, and prosperity 
than any millionaire ambassador could do. 



Digitized by 



Google 



548 NEW BOOKS [Jaly, 

The American, and he is legion, who fancies that England 
gets no return from the immense sums which her aristocracy 
absorb, will find, here, reason to revise their opinion. 

The enormous amount of unpaid and voluntary service to 
the State, and to one's neighbors, in England, results in the 
solution of one of the most harassing problems of every 
wealthy nation ; it arms the leisure classes with something 
important to do, not only their willingness to accept, but their 
insistence upon the duty owed to the nation by the rich and 
the educated has, I believe, more than anything else, given 
them the lead in national predominance that they have held 
until lately. 

One of the grave symptoms showing that this national pre- 
dominance is threatened, and that England may be at the part- 
ing of the ways, is the recent tendency towards encouraging the 
individual to lean upon the State : ** Not until the Saxon ceases 
to be a Saxon," says Mr. Collier, echoing an idea dominant in 
his entire study, ''will he really take to this kindly and eagerly. 
If that time ever comes, then, indeed, will the British Empire 
crumble fast enough.'' There is a chapter on Ireland, contain- 
ing a brief review on an unmitigated condemnation of British 
rule in Ireland ; with some intimations that '' the Irishman has 
become far too much imbued with the notion that his business 
is agitation rather than exertion '' — ^an opinion that would meet 
with the approbation of the Sinn Fein itself. But the value of 
the book lies not in the author's views on Ireland, still less in 
the two or three incidental remarks through which he indi- 
cates his views on religion, but in the lessons which it has for 
Americans. 

In 1863, as the news from Gettys- 

A LINCOLN CONSCRIPT, burg reached the intensely patri- 

BY HOMER GREENE. otic little village of Mount Her- 

mon, in Pennsylvania, the boys of 
that place voted against permitting Bob Bannister to become 
a member of their local regimental company. The reason for 
this disgrace was that Bob's father was an irreconcilable cop- 
perhead, who hated the war and denounced Abraham Lincoln.* 
Shortly after the father was held up to odium at a public 
meeting, and, within a very short time, was drafted for the 

* A Linc0lm Conscript, By Homer Greene. Boston : Houghton Mifflin Company. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] NEW BOOKS 549 

Union Army. He refused to obey ; Bob tried to settle matters 
by volunteering in his father's place, but his scheme failed. 
Under durance vile the father soon reached Washington, met 
with Lincoln, who converted him ; and soon both father and son 
were on the firing line away down South in Dixie ; whence they 
returned, in due time, to receive a heart-stirring welcome from 
their townsmen. A very readable story, with a good portrait 
of Lincoln as he appeared to those who met him in his shirt 
sleeves. 

A King of Ireland de Jure, a King 
DROMINA. of England de jure, a King of 

France de Jure ; a Gipsy King, an 
Emperor of Hispaniola, and a Roman Pontiff, de Jacto^ with a 
suitable accompaniment of minor personages, with a stage cov- 
ering Ireland, Rome, Spain, California, and Hispaniola, bespeak a 
novel on a large scale,* and one that would take some liberties 
with history. In truth Mr. Ayscough might easily have made 
three stories out of the materials which are crowded into one, 
wherein he strives to enlist the reader's interest in three gener- 
ations following each other on the scene. 

The story opens in Ireland, during the reign of George III., 
at Dromina Castle, the residence of the McMurrogh, the head 
of a decayed Irish family, and, in his own opinion, the lawful 
King of Ireland. We are soon in retrospective, and listen to 
the history of McMurrogh's early life and his marriage in 
Rome to an Italian lady of rank. We meet the Pope of the 
day, as well as Cardinal Henry Stuart. Returning to the period 
of the opening, when the McMurrogh family is grown up, there 
comes to the castle grounds a band of gypsies, whose nominal 
chief, Ludoire, is the son of Louis XV. of France. The young 
McMurroghs become interested in the gypsies; and soon one of 
them goes to Spain at the instance of Ludoire's step-mother, 
the real head of the clan, to negotiate a marriage between 
Ludoire and the daughter of the King of the Spanish gypsies. 
The ambassador fails in his mission, but obtains a wife for him- 
self, and becomes a hidalgo in California, where he brings up 
his son, the future Emperor of Hispaniola, a modern Sir Gala- 
had, who dies a martyr to the Blessed Sacrament. It is almost 
brutal to present in crude outline the thread of the narrative — 
for to do so brings out the weak point of Mr. Ayscough's work, 

* Dromina, By John Ayscough. New York : O. P. Putnam's Sons. 



Digitized by 



Google 



550 NEW BOOKS [July, 

which is loose constraction— without a hint of the skill with 
which each individual Jink in the preposterously long chain is 
wrought and ornamented. Each separate part is well executed ; 
it is only the whole that is unsatisfactory. The character of 
the young enthusiast, who makes himself Emperor, his in- 
fluence, on Ludoire, and on another still less exemplary in- 
dividual, is a beautiful conception. 

Anybody who may have felt in- 

THE RELIGIOUS PERSE- dined to think that there was 

CUTION IN FRANCE. any semblance of correctness in 

M. Sabatier's widely circulated 
views on the Separation in France, cannot do better than read 
M. Barbier*s compendious narrative of the government's pro- 
cedure, which culminated in the law of separation.* Contrary 
to M. Sabatier*s contention that the French anti-Catholic party 
desired only to curb overweening clericalism, M. Barbier, by 
simply stating the facts of the case, proves that the aim of the 
government has been to destroy the Church and Christianity. 

In another brochure f this indefatigable observer and student 
of the present struggle furnishes an appreciation of the actual 
situation. He finds many signs that the situation is far from 
being as dismal as some people have represented it to be« 
The modernist extremists, he is certain, have exercised but lit* 
tie influence on the clergy, no more on the educated laity, 
and none at all on the great masses of the people. It is en- 
couraging to listen to M. Barbier's cheerfully courageous note 
amid so many depressing voices. It is true that he himself 
states that his friends accuse him of too much optimism. But 
optimism is often the cause of its own ultimate verification. 

Those who believe that the crimes 
THE PRUSSIAN PERIL, of nations bring their own punish- 
ment may find confirmation of their 
theory in the present political situation in Europe, where the 
dominance of Germany cows France, keeps England awake o' 
nights, leads Austria like a docile Dalmatian coach dog, and 
has recently administered a sore snub to Austria, t All this 

* L* Sgiist dt Pfonu it la Siparathti. Par Paul Barbier. Paris : LetkieUenx. 
\ La Crisi Intimi dt I *Sgiit€ dt Pramct. Par Paul Barbier. Paris : Lethielleuz. 
% Lt Pint Pnusitm, an iitu d'un Scktllim, dts Milliardth Par Dr. D'OkTietko. Paris : 
Lethielleux. 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909.] New BOOKS 551 

situation is traceable^ in the opinion of men who echo the judg- 
ment of the iate Lord Acton, to the obliteration of the King- 
dom of Poland from the map of Europe, through the machina* 
tions of Prussia, Austria, and Russia, assisted by the conni- 
vance of England and France. The latter two countries are 
now in a position to understand the fatuity of the blunder 
which has raised Prussia to be the practical dictator of Europe. 
The logic of events issuing from the downfall of Poland is ably 
unfolded in a short historical sketch by a Polish writer in 
French, who takes for his text the expression used by Lord 
Napier in his note to Prince Gortchakoff, in 1863, when inter- 
vention in favor of Poland by France and England was feared 
by Russia: ''England will not sacrifice a shilling in favor of 
Poland.'' This pamphlet may be read with interest in the 
light of an article in the June number of one of our contem* 
poraries, discussing the menace constituted by Poles to the 
unity of Germany. 

The Decree of Pius X., Sacra 
DAILY COMMUNION. Tridentina Synodus, regarding 

daily, or frequent, Communion, 
has not evoked in this country one-half the attention called 
forth by his pronouncement on Church music. Yet, whether 
the importance of the matter, or the historical significance of 
the disciplinary measures introduced by the two documents re- 
spectively, be considered, the former decree is incomparably 
more significant In view of the fact that Spanish theologians 
were the first to advance, and the most persistent to maintain, 
the opinion which the Pope has authoritatively approved, it is 
interesting to note that Spanish names are associated with the 
most conspicuous efforts made, through the medium of English, 
to promote obedience to the mandates of his Holiness. Father 
de Zulueta, S.J., publishes two earnest little pamphlets on the 
subject. One is addressed to parents,* urging them not to 
thwart the explicit guidance of the Holy See by putting obsta- 
cles in the way of their children's adopting the practice of 
daily Communion. He draws attention to the earnestness of 
the Pope's words; and begs parents to put aside the vain ap- 
prehensions which they may entertain, as a result of having 
been trained in more rigid ideas, concerning the dispositions 
necessary for frequent Communion. 

^ Pofints and FnquiMi C^mmtmion •J CktUnm. By F. M. de Zulaeta, S.J. St. Louis : 
B. Herder. ^'-^ t 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



55a NEW BOOKS [July# 

A recent pamphlet similar in tenor is addressed to laymen.* 
He take3 up and aas^ers, one by one, the reasons usually of- 
fered by worthy religious persons against approaching the sacred 
table with what they would consider irreverent frequency. 

A more weighty work^f perhaps the most complete treat- 
ment of the subject that has appeared, comes from the pen of 
a Spanish Jesuit, professor of Canon Law and Moral Theology 
at Tortosa. It has been translated into English by a confrere. 
The most valuable part of Father Ferreres' book consists in a 
brief review of theological opinions in the Church, bearing on 
the question of the dispositions necessary for frequent Com- 
munion. Though he writes as an enthusiastic advocate of the 
Pope's measures, he exposes the historical controversy with 
perfect impartiality; and admitting that, 'Mn support of the 
view maintaining the necessity of further dispositions for fre- 
quent Communion than a right intention and absence of mortal 
sin, may be cited doctors of the highest repute, eminent saints, 
and the most brilliant theologians,'* he cites an imposing list of 
men remarkable for sanctity and learning, and another of great 
theologians who maintained the same opinion. Then he recites 
the roll of those who held the adverse view, beginning with the 
Jesuits Salmeron and Crestobal de Madrid, who had the honor 
to be, in opposition to such an impressive array of traditional 
authority, the first to advocate the doctrine which has now xt^ 
ceived the highest official sanction. In his detailed commentary. 
Father Ferreres introduces much historical information, and 
brings out with precision the full intention of the legislation. 
He calls attention emphatically to the limitations which the 
Pope's command places upon the authority of superiors in re- 
ligious houses and confessors to impose restriction upon their 
subjects regarding frtquent Communion. He reminds priests, 
who would look with apprehension at a prospective increase of 
labor in the confessional consequent upon an increase in the 
frequency of Communion, that daily Communion does not re- 
quire daily, or weekly, or even monthly confession. This little 
manual ought to be welcomed as a much needed supplement 
to our text- books of theology, which on many important points 

* Frequent and Daily Communion, Even For Men. By F. M. de Zulueta, S.J. St. Louis : 
B. Herder. 

t The Decree on Daily Communion, A Historical Sketch and Commentary, By Father 
Juan B. Feireres. S.J. Translated by H. Jimenez, S.J. St. Louis : B. Herder. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New Books 553 

regarding the discipline of Holy Communion have, as Father 
Ferreres shows, been rendered obsolete by the Decree Sancta 
Tridentina Syncdus. 

Another book whose title might convey the impression that 
it dealt with the papal decree, Th$ Holy Eucharist and Fre- 
quent and Daily Communion,^ does not touch upon discipline. 
It is a brief exposition of the dogma of the Blessed Eucharist 
and the Holy Sacrifice, accompanied with devotional reflections. 

The nature, necessity, and means 

THE LITTLE BOOK OF HU- of acquiring the virtues of humil- 

MILIT7 AND PATIENCE, ity and patience are set forth in 

this neat little handbook f through 
the medium of a collection of judiciously chosen extracts from 
the two highly esteemed works from the pen of that revered 
master of the spiritual life, Archbishop Ullathorne. 



MR. LOOMIS' "JUST IRISH." 

Leonia, New Jersey, June 12, 1909. 
Father J. J. Burke : 

My dear Sir : I have been told that there is a very pleas- 
ant review of my new book. Just Irish^ in The Catholic 
World, but that the reviewer says the cover is scandalous— 
or words to that effect. 

My dismay when I saw the cover was very real. I hurried 
at once to my typewriting machine and asked my Boston pub- 
lisher to put on a new cover at once; that there was nothing 
in the book of the green- whiskered stage Irishman variety, and 
that the cover would be a most successful bar to the sale of 
the book, as it could not help arousing indignation in Irishmen 
of all creeds. 

My publisher at once changed to a green cover with a 
golden shamrock, but the books for review had gone out bear- 
ing the chip on both their shoulders. 

I had too pleasant a time in Ireland to wish to wound any 
one's sensibilities, and I trust you may see fit to publish this 
letter. Yours sincerely, 

Charles Battell Loomis. 

* Th€ Holy Eucharist amd Frequent amd Daify Communwn, By Very Rev. C. J. O'Connell. 
New York : Benziger Brothers. 

t The LittU Beoh ef HumUUy and Patience, By Archbishop Ullathorne. New York : 
Benxiger Brothers. 



Digitized by 



Google 



Thi Tablet (8 May) : *' A Contrast in Disestablishment '' shows 
how the organs of the Established Church, which had 
nothing to say in behalf of the French Church when it 
was despoiled, are now loud in their denunciations of 
what they describe as robbery, when it comes to be 
applied nearer home.— In the notice of ''The Royal 
Academy '* special mention is made of Sargent's " Israel 
and the Law/' By it ''America has added yet another 
work of genius to its treasury of art."— In the reply to 
the Canterbury Canon, on " St. Anselm and the Immacu- 
late Conception," W. H. K. shows that, although the 
passage quoted does prove that St. Anselm held that 
our Lady was "conceived with original sin," yet his 
whole thought on the subject does not express any such 

conclusion. At "The General Chapter of the Re- 

demptorists" Father Patrick Murray, an Irish religious, 
was chosen as the new General. 

(15 May): It is pointed out that in "The Last Con- 
sistory" no fewer than 135 new bishops were "pre- 
canonized." Ten such consistories, it is said, would 
give an entirely new hierarchy to the Catholic Church. 
— " The Discussion on the Budget " centers principally 
around the beer and land taxes. The former apparently 
is to come out of the pocket of the poor man, while the 
latter adds four new ways to the already existing seven, 
in which the man who buys or inherits land is mulcted. 

^The Rev. Herbert Thurston, S.J., is his lecture on 

"Titus Oates' Test" shows up the ignoble source of 
the King's Protestant Declaration. In a correspond- 
ence in The Guardian Dr. James Gairdner makes some 
very awkward remarks about the " Blessed Reformation," 
and says that the Establishment was its fundamental 
principle. The Despotism of the Tudors, and nothing 
else, banished Papal authority in England. ^Accord- 
ing to Italian papers his Holiness intends to found in 
Rome a special "Institute for Higher Biblical Studies." 
(22 May): The second reading of "The Catholic Dis- 
abilities Bill" has been carried in the House of Com- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909] FOREIGN PERIODICALS 555 

mons by a majority of ten. Under the heading ''An 

Hereditary Giver/' the Duke of Norfolk is spoken of as a 
national benefactor who is being lampooned because he 
has accepted $305,000 tor a Holbein which the National 

Gallery refused to purchase. ^The offer of $150,000 to 

''The University of Oxford/' on the condition that 
compulsory Greek be abolished^ has been accepted. 
Greek is now no longer required for a degree in Arts. 

The Rev. Herbert Thurston, S.J., writes on the much 

debated " Miracle of St. Januarius.'* The various theories 
advanced for the liquefaction of the saint's blood are ex- 
amined and the writer's conclusion is that they are not 
satisfactory. 

The Month (May) : The celebration of the eighth centenary of 
the death of "St. Anselm of Canterbury "has led the 
Rev. Sydney Smith to write a brief synopsis of his life, 
pointing out how by saintly persistency he secured for 
the English Church a degree of liberty which the Crown 
had striven to destroy.— In "Intolerance, Persecution, 
and Proselytism," the Rev. Joseph Keating says that 
the conception which Pagan Rome formed of the early 
Christians, as being unpatriotic and holding principles 
subversive of civil liberty, is precisely that which the 
English ultra- Protestant expresses of his Catholic fellow- 
citizen to-day.— —To show that the old sneer, that the 
conquests of the Catholic Church in England have been 
chiefly among women, is without much force, consider- 
ing the share which women have had in the diffusion 
of Christian ideals, is the trend of "The Catholic Wo- 
men's League " by P. " Blessed Joan of Arc in Eng- 
lish Opinion," by Rev. Herbert Thurston, S.J. Appar- 
ently the earliest mention of her is in the first half of 
the fifteenth century; since then frequent references are 
to be found, the majority of which are appreciative. 

Th€ Intimational (May): "Social Insurance," as Dr. Broda 
sees it, is but a step along the road which ultimately 
leads to Socialism.— —The Rev. J. Campbell discusses 
" The Economic Aspects of the Women's Suffrage Move- 
ment," under the various heads of wifehood, motherhood, 
and woman workers. Give women the vote and you put 
an end to many of the wrongs inflicted upon the sex. 



Digitized by 



Google 



556 FOREIGN PERIODICALS [July, 

——To the old traditions of the Hansa League, coupled 
with motives of self-interest among the seacoast towns, 
which are on the outlook for naval contracts, Germani- 
cus traces ''The Origin of German Naval Enthusiasm." 

"The Miracles at Lourdes/* Dr. Felix Regnault, 

of Paris, comes to the conclusion that there are co 
miracles at Lourdes in the ecclesiastical sense of the 
word. Now and then, very rarely, curious cases of heal- 
ing do occur. These he attributes to hypnosis.—— 
" Progress in Photography,*' by Fernand Mazade, is an 
account of the marvels brought to light by chronophoto- 
graphy. Views of fishes have been obtaiued in thirty 
fathoms of water, while processes such as the growth of 
plants and the expansion of bodies by heat can be made 
visible. 

The Expository Times (May) : Did the Lord appear to Moses 
in ''The Burning Bush"? The writer says He did not, 
as God cannot be seen by the human eye. It is but 
an Oriental way of describing the call of Moses to the 
prophetic office.— —That Johannine theology is becom- 
ing more and more interwoven into the religious life 
and thought of the day, is the verdict of the Rev. J. 
Iverach, D.D«, in his review of the Kerr lecture — "The 

Tests of Life." The aim of " the Religious- Historical 

Movement in German Theology," to recommend the Gos- 
pel to " the modern mind," is a good one, says the Rev. 
J. M. Shaw. But we cannot accept from theology any 
scientific pictures whose purport is to blot out that of the 

historical Christ. The misleading "Nomenclature of 

the Parables" forms the subject of the Rev. R. M. 
Lithgow's article.— —To-day, says the Rev. J. S. Cooper, 
in writing on "The Virgin Birth," the doctrine is re- 
garded as a proof of our Lord's Divinity. In Apostolic 
days it was regarded as a proof of His humanity. 

Le Correspondant (lo May): P. de la Force concludes his 
" Studies in Religious History." The period he writes 
on is the disastrous one following upon the Revolution. 
He portrays the action of Talleyrand and the religious 
struggle which ensued.——" The Centenary of Essling," 
by Edouard Gachot, from some unpublished documents, 
reviews the German campaign and the battles of the 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] FOREIGN PERIODICALS 557 

twenty^first and the twenty-second of May. The evil 

effects of utilitarianism and commercialism upon the 
stage are exposed by Felicien Pascal in ''The Theater 

and Money." "The New Picture Gallery in the Vati- 

can'' is described by Pietro d'Achiardi. He gives an 
account of the improvements and the various schools 
of painting represented.— —That many of the ills that 
flesh is heir to result from unwholesome food and poor 
cooking is set forth by Francis Marre in ''A Rational 
Cuisine." 

(25 May): Comte Charles de Motiy writes from an ac- 
ademic point of view, on the requirements necessary 
for the minister who should hold the '' Portfolio of For- 
eign Affairs" in a government— L. Dufougeray gives 
''The Unpublished Correspondence of Lamennais" with 
Madame de Lacaw. Extending over thirty- six years, it 
reveals the changes that swept over his soul as he passed 
from religious intolerance to the depths of incredulity. 
— " History of Religions " is a review of a recent work 
by Mgr. le Roy on Primitive Religions, in which he 
takes the ground that religion, to be properly understood, 
must be traced back to its original sources, in which it 
finds its best interpretation,—" Exposition of One Hun- 
dred Portraits of French and English Women of the 
Eighteenth Century in the Tuileries," by L^andre Vail- 
lat, is a comparison of the methods employed by the 
masters in the two schools^ producing such different re- 
sults. 
Aiudes (5 May) : The Editor contributes a short biography of 
Rev. Eugene Portalie, one of the principals in the re- 
cent Portalie-Turmel controversy, who died at Am^iie- 

les- Bains on April 20. A sketch of the life and works 

of the artist "Murillo" is given by Joseph Tustes. 

Xavier Moissant, continuing his essay on "Responsi- 
bility," asserts that the Rationalists have signally failed 
in their explanations of man's freedom and the voice of 

conscience. ^Treating the " Recent Postal Strike " in 

France, Henri Leroy describes the attitude of the strik- 
ers, parliament, and the public, one to another. Then 
he exposes the causes and consequences of the trouble. 
-^->M. Jules Lebreton characterizes the recent work of 



Digitized by 



Google 



558 FOREIGN PERIODICALS [Joly» 

Father Lagrange, O.P., L0 Messianisme chex Its Juifs^zs 
a masterpiece.— —In his "Bulletin of Ethics'' Lucien 
Roure gives a criticism of some of the views expressed 
at the recent Congress of Pragmatists at Heidelberg. 
(20 May): Jules Lebreton reviews some recent biblical 
literature. The views of M. Jacquier, in his History of 
the Books of the New Testament are characterized as clear 
and judicious but by no means original.——'' Heroism in 
the Theater/' by Alphonse Parvillez, is an inquiry as to 
whether the plays of Edmond Rostand are morally up- 
lifting.— —Apropos of the recent "Congress in Honor 
of the Blessed Virgin/' held at Saragossa, in Spain, 
Pierre Brticker urges a similar organization in France. 
—J. Delattre relates the measures that were adopted at 
"The Vatican Council" to preserve a holy priesthood. 
^The " Piusverein " of Austria, its history, and influ- 
ence, especially on the press, should be an incentive for 
a similar organization in France. 

Annates de PhilosophU Chretiinne (May): Charles Danan ex- 
poses " The Nativistic Philosophy of Zeno," as opposed 
to Empiricism. It falls back upon the problem of the 
antithesis between the one and the many, and for Zeno 
the idea of any agreement between unity and multi- 
plicity does not exist. For him it is all one or all the 

other. "The Devil of Socrates and the Religious 

Beliefs of Greece," by M. Louis, shows that our ideas of 
demonology vary with each generation and its way of 
looking at the subject. In order to understand the 
"familiar spirit" of Socrates, we must not only study 
the matter by the laws of psychology, but above all in 
the light of the religious beliefs of the Greeks as ex- 
pressed in their theories of inspiration and divination.—— 
"The System of Physics and Metaphysics" v&Kmilange 
by Ed. Gasc-Desfosses of the theories advanced by dis- 
tinguished representatives of these sciences. Their views 
have been collected by M. Thomas of the Lyceum Ver- 
sailles and published under the title 7he System of the 
Sciences. 

Revue Pratique d' Apologitique (l May): "Was Pascal a Mod- 
ernist?" is the question answered in the negative by 
Clement Besse. In his works he uttered his defiance to 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Foreign periodicals 559 

naturalism in religion. No doubt Pascal believed in the 
intuitions of the hearty but he believed also that God makes 

the advances. ''The Origin of Christian Apologetic/' 

by J. Lebreton, treats of the apologetic system of St. Paul 
as we find it in his epistle to the Romans. Dealing with 
Gentiles he showed that God, as revealed in nature, with 
wisdom and power will judge them by Christ— —''The 
Place of Apologetic in Preaching.'' Why, asks A. Picaud, 
do the sermons of to-day apparently prove so ineffective? 
We need, to-day, to have the doctrine we preach trans- 
lated into human life. Therein to a large extent lay 
the secret of the success of Lacordaire and the Cur^ 

d'Ars. "The Ethics of the Laity, their Source and 

Results." The equivocal meaning of the word has dis- 
appeared and to-day it stands for war with Catholicism 
and with Christianity in general. 

(15 May): There are two reasons why "Frederic Oza- 
nam " should be remembered by posterity. First because 
he was the founder of the St. Vincent de Paul conferences, 
and secondly on account of his apologetic work, which 
is the subject of Alfred Baudrillart's article.— In an 
illustrated article the Abb^ BroussoUe shows the place 
occupied by "The Apostles in the Art of the Renais- 
sance." By degrees throughout Italy we find the old 
impersosal representations passing away and particular 
events in the lives of the Apostles are depicted by the 
artists.— —How to reconcile grace with free-will is the 
subject dealt with by Ph. Ponsard in "Grace and Liberty." 
"The Ascension," as a mystery of faith, justice, hope» 
and joy, is treated by H. Ldsetre. 
Revue du Monde Catholique (i May) : Contains a number of con- 
tinued articles. "Towards the Abyss" dealing with 
Liberalism in Lower Canada, by Arthur Sava&te. "His- 
tory of Mormontier," by Dom Rabory. " The First Su- 
perioress of the Ursulines of Quebec," by Eugene Gri- 

selle. ^Alexander Harmel gives the first chapter of an 

article on "How La Fontaine Presents His Animals." 
The charm and success of his work lie in this, that 
he loves the animals he describes. 
(is May): "The Ways and Products of the Bees," by 
Maurice du Fresnel, gives a minute account of the 



Digitized by 



Google 



56o Foreign Periodicals [Jaly* 

geometrical constraction of their cells and the mar- 
veloos ingenaity displayed. *' Henri Lassere/' in a meas- 
ure a founder of the Rivue du Monde Catholique^ is the 
subject of an article by Etienne LaabarMe. The man, 
the writer, and his work, are in turn taken up and de- 
picted. ''Philosophical Meditation on Man/' by Ar- 
thur Sava^te. ''The French Clergy Since the Con- 
cordat of 1801/' by M. Sicard. 

La Revue des Sciences Ecclesiastiques et La Science Catkolique 
(April): "Itinerary of a Saint." M. TAbb^ E. Roupain, 
reviewing the life of Jeanne d'Arc, comes to the conclu- 
sion that either Jeanne never existed, and her epoch is 
only a myth, or we. knowing the historical facts of the 
case, must admit that she was. as she herself said, the 

envoy of God. Apropos of " The Miracles at Lourdes." 

M. Camille Dauz considers the diabolical possession and 
obsession which took place at Hippo, and shows that St. 
Augustine regarded the cures as miraculous. 
(May): "Philosophical Consultation.'' M. le Chanoine 
Chauvin answers M. Lablanche. who inquires about per- 
sonality. The latter claims that certain theologians re- 
gard personality as the existence of the rational substance, 
in so far as this existence is really distinct from sub- 
stance. " Unpublished Works of Mgr. Plantier." An 

account of his journey to Rome in 1858.— —Apropos of 
" The Miracles at Lourdes/' M. Camille Daux treats of 
the Church's attitude towards miracles; also of their 
evidence in canonization and the methods employed by 
the Church to determine their credibility. 

Stimmen aus Maria- Loach (27 April): "St. Mark at Venice" 
is the subject of a study by St. Beissel. S.J.. on the 

value of unity of style in church architecture. 1. 

Bessmer. S.J.. concludes his paper on "The Second 
Sight." He calls special attention, in the examination 
of a case, to the necessity of ruling out all motives that 
can be accounted for by other influences.— —C. A, 
Kneller. S.J.. discusses the old question of " St. Irenaeus 
and the Church of Rome." apropos of the new interpre- 
tation by Professor Harnack of that well-known passage 
of Irensus on the Roman See.^^E. Wasmann. S.J., 
shows in his concluding article on "Old and New Re- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] FOREIGN PERIODICALS 561 

searches of Haecker' that in his latest book this leader 
of Monism resorts again to his usual insincere methods. 

Razon y Fe (May) : L« Murillo gires the internal arguments in 
favor of the authenticity of the book of Isaias, namely, 
its title, '' The Vision of Isaias, the Son of Amos/' and 
the unity of matter and plan of the entire discoursei the 
uniform elegance of conception and of style, and the 
prophecies of the last eighteen chapters. " Evangeli- 
cal and Modernistic Systems of Morals" are compared 
by E. Ugarte de Ercilla. The sublimity of the former, 
its immutability, and the fidelity of the Church in con- 
serving and defending it, are contrasted with the attack 
upon the ''passive'' virtues, the autonomy of reason, 
the "progressive" morality, and the exaggerations of 
utilitarian pragmatism upheld by the latter.^^N. No-» 
guer treats ''The Social Transcendance of Rai£feisen's 
System " and its relations with agricultural progress, 
social pacification, social evolution, and the representa- 
tion of classes and of interests.— ^" Absolution in the 
Primitive Church," by Z. Garcia, is treated under four 
points ; the faith and discipline, public and private con- 
fession and penance.^— R. Villada shows the meaning 
of "The Obligation of Voting Under the New Election 
Law," and urges Catholics to aid in selecting suitable 
candidates and in supporting just laws. 

EspaHa y Amirica (i May): A South American" epic, "Tabard," 
is highly praised by P. R6mulo del Campo, who would 
compare it with the Odyssey were it not for the doubt- 
ful insignificance of the protagonist and the apparent 
absence of a supernatural force or fate. P. M. V^lez 
shows that "Christian Humility" as taught by the 
Church, is not opposed to that of Christ nor to the 
" Know Thyself " of Greek philosophy, and that it does 
not imply a renunciation of personal endeavor or a love 
of the beautiful in art and nature.-— " The Interna- 
tional Politics of Germany," as viewed by P. Graciano 
Martinez, reveal the quality of German patriotism, the 
advantages of a European confederation, the efforts of 
the Kaiser to turn his nation's artistic and metaphysical 
hegemony into a gun-boat, and some reflections on the 
Algeciras conference.— —P. C. Fernandez finds in the de- 

▼OL. LXZZIX.— 36 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



562 FOREIGN Periodicals Doly. 

fective knowledge of Palestinian geography common to 
St. Thomas' time a difficulty in his construction of a 

system of exegesis. ''The Administration of Justice 

in China/' by P. Javencio Hospital.— ^ A tale, ''John 

the Galley- Slave/' by P. F« Bakofiore. Book reviews 

include Spanish translations of Benson's Lord of the 
World and of Newman's Development of Dogma. 
(15 May): Admiring the unity and the progressive social 
efforts of the Catholic clergy in Germany and Belgium, 
P. Bruno Ibeas appeals for greater organization among 
the Spanish priests, for insurance societies, for circula- 
ting libraries, for mutual assistance in legal matters, for 

active interest in popular improvements. P. M. Velez 

refutes the charge that the Church inculcates humility 
in her members in order to enslave their souls, and 

shows from history her attitude toward the poor. 

"The Philosophy of the Verb/' by Felipe Robles, con- 
tains the substitution of modes and tenses and the re« 
lations in the metaphysical, logical, and grammatical 
trinities of thing, idea, and word.— —P. Gaudendo Cas- 
trillo, in " An Excursion Through the Province of Hu- 
Nan," describes the rich productions of a Chinese region 
where Augustinian missionaries have been zealously la- 
boring. In an "Historical Bulletin" P. C. de k 

Puente describes the numerous recent historical con- 
gresses and laments the loss of A. Luchaire, whose 
works have been of such value to the Church. 



Digitized by 



Google 



Current Events^ 

It cannot be dented that the French 
France. government took a better course in 

dealing with the second attempt of 
the civil servants to destroy the whole life of the community 
engaged in commerce and industry in order to obtain the re- 
dress of certain grievances of their own. In the first attempt 
all the words of Ministers were brave and their speeches elo- 
quent — so eloquent as to be placarded over the whole of 
France. Their deeds, however, did not correspond. In fact, 
the result was looked upon as virtually a victory for the 
strikers. It was not so on the second attempt; every pre- 
caution was taken in advance; other means of communication 
were got in readiness ; the latest resources of science were util- 
ized : such as automobiles, and wireless telegraphy ; and the ser- 
vices of the military were requisitioned. When the strike broke 
out, those who took part in it were summarily dismissed, no fewer 
than 7CX) postmen being deprived of their places. The Chambers 
supported the government, and the law for dealing with such 
derelictions of duty was strengthened. That Ministers and mem- 
bers of the legislature acted so firmly was due more to the good 
sense of the country than of themselves. The voice of public 
opinion was so strong as to remove all hesitation. The postmen 
who began the strike openly defied the law which forbids the 
employis of the State to take part in a strike, because of the spe- 
cial privileges which such employis enjoy, and also of the disas- 
trous effects to the whole country which a strike on their part 
would involve. This notwithstanding, some of the postmen en- 
rolled themselves in a syndicate and entered into association with 
the General Confederation of Labor, the avowed object of 
which is, either by a general strike or by more gentle methods, 
to overturn the present order of things. 

The Confederation was called upon to support the postmen 
by ordering the so-long-threatened general strike. After some 
hesitation this was done, but the order was given too late, 
and, better still, was not obeyed. Scarcely any attention was 
paid to the commands that were given. The strike collapsed, 
and due punishment was meted out to those who had taken 
part in it 

But it cannot be said that all is peaceful in the industrial 



Digitized by 



Google 



564 Current events [July, 

world. The prospect, in fact, is still gloomy. The seamen in 
several ports of France have refused to work, and have there- 
by caused grave inconvenience. The remedies which have 
been adopted show the governmental character of French 
methods — how authoritative they are. The mails have been 
sent by torpedo boats and destroyers, while sailors from the 
navy have been distributed among merchant vessels, in order 
that some of them at least may be navigated and their freight 
saved. Other signs, such as the cutting of telegraph wires, 
show that the appeasement is superficial. In truth, tbe fear of 
more far-reaching disturbance is widespread; and is due to 
the fact that there is a large organization, the avowed object 
of which is to revolutionize the existing organization of in- 
dustry. This organization is the above-mentioned Confedera- 
tion of Labor. Its numbers, indeed, are not very large, when 
compared with the vast mass of workingmen. Out of a total 
working-class population of some nine millions only 900,000 
are organized at all. Out of this 900,000 only 300,000, or one- 
third, are members of those trade unions which are affiliated 
to the General Confederation of Labor. And of the 300,000 
who are so affiliated, there are only 100,000 who are support- 
ers of the general strike which is to bring to an end the ex- 
isting state. The remaining 200,000 have the same object in 
view, but wish to accomplish it by a series of gradual reforms. 
Saiali, however, as is the minority of the extremists, it is 
not to be despised. A few men often work great mischief. 
And so many friends of France are greatly apprehensive of 
even the immediate future, especially when there seems for the 
majority of Frenchmen to be no object of veneration or respect. 
Religion has been widely rejected, the bourgeoisie have now no 
regard for those whom they once looked upon as worthy of 
respect; and, in their turn, they are hated by the proletariat. 
Whatever may be said of liberty, equality and fraternity are 
still unrealized ideals. But while there are reasons for anxiety, 
there is also reason for hope. The responsibility of self-gov- 
ernment is being ever more and more deeply realized, and calm 
consideration is being more and more given by larger numbers 
of the people to the questions which arise. The recent crisis 
gives proof of this. It was the good sense of the people at 
large that saved the situation. This constitutes ground for 
hope. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current events 565 

Although the French government has taken so firm a stand 
in opposition to the illegal action of the civil servants, it has 
not adopted a nen-possumus attitude towards the whole move- 
ment, and has not refused to admit that they had real griev- 
ances. The well-being of the people has often been sacrificed 
for the good of a monarch's favorites; but when, instead of a 
single ruler's dependents, provision has to be made for those of 
some three or four hundred Deputies to Parliament, the case 
is worse. And in some degree this is what has taken place of 
late in France. Owing to the influence of the Deputies, the 
ranks of the Civil Service have been recruited, and within 
those ranks promotion has been given, not according to fitness 
and well-doing, but for political and personal reasons. In this 
way injustice has been done for many years past. As a remedy 
for these evils, the government has brought in a Bill which 
allows the civil servants to combine in their professional in- 
terests, and also determines the rules and regulations which 
are to govern their promotion. It hopes, thereby, to reduce to 
the lowest the risks of favoritism. Promotion is to be made by 
the Minister of each department of the public service by means 
of lists drawn up in co-operation with the servants themselves. 

In drawing up the Bill the government claims to have been 
actuated by the broadest and most liberal spirit. In this way 
it is giving proof of the practical good sense which does not 
attempt to rule the actual world on abstract principles. Per- 
haps it would be more accurate to say that it was the French 
people as a whole that adopted this course, for it seems 
clear that it was the commonsense of the nation that, in this 
instance, made its voice heard and enforced upon ministers and 
deputies alike the necessity of listening to it. Self-government 
has its duties as well as its privileges, and of those duties one 
of the principal is that each and every one should make his 
voice heard when the necessity for so doing arises. 

During the recent crisis in the Near East very little was 
heard of arbitration or of the Tribunal established by the 
Hague Conference for settling international questions. It had, 
however, we believe, some influence, for the spirit out of which 
the establishment of such a Court grew made the nations less 
ready to enter upon hostilities, unwilling to affront the gen- 
eral sentiment in favor of peace which was known to exist. 
A more distinct triumph for the strength of the peace move- 



Digitized by 



Google 



566 Current Events [July, 

mcDt is to be found in the fact that Germanj and France re- 
ferred their differences, about the incident at Casablanca, to 
the Tribunal for adjudication, and thereby avoided, as some 
think, the breaking out of war. The decision of the Court was 
given a few weeks ago and has been accepted by both of the 
parties. On the whole it is more favorable to France than to 
Germany and some think that it would have been more favor- 
able still if the judges had been strictly logical in the applica- 
tion of the principles which they laid down. They allowed the 
desire to give something to both sides to temper the rigid ap- 
plication of international law. In consideration of the satisfac- 
tory outcome, all are ready to pardon this concession to ex- 
pediency. There is, however, some reason to regret that a 
compromise has been made, rather than an authoritative decision 
given. According to the terms of the decision the German 
Consulate at Casablanca acted wrongly and through a grave 
and manifest error, although the Consul himself committed only 
an unintentional error, while, on the other hand, the French 
military authorities were wrong, not so much in what they did 
as in the manner of their doing. General satisfaction has been 
manifested by the Press of both countries with the settlement. 

Very little progress has been made in settling the affairs of 
Morocco. This is due partly to the continued state of unrest 
which prevails in States under a single ruler, especially when 
his possession of the throne is not firmly established. Mulai 
Hafid's reign has been endangered in various ways. Yet another 
brother developed aspirations for power. His movement, how- 
ever, was frustrated in its earliest stage of development, and 
he has since conveniently left this life. France remains in pos* 
session of Ujda and of Casablanca and of the district immedi- 
ately surrounding the latter place. The number of troops has 
been reduced, although a fairly large force still remains. The 
French mission to Fez was only partially successful ; but there 
seems to be widely entertained a considerable confidence in 
the good faith of the present Sultan. The mission which he 
has sent to Paris has been well received by the President and 
the government, and hopes are strong that a complete settle- 
ment will soon be made. Then complete evacuation will take 
place. 

The Commission for the examination into the state of the 
Navy has not yet reported; but many ugly facts are being 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current events 567 

alleged, affecting not merely the administratioo, but also the 
good fame of conttactors of the highest standing. And if the 
proposals of the Navy Council are accepted by the gOTemment 
France will enter into the competitive race with Germany and 
Great Britain for the biggest navy. The Navy Council propose 
that 57 ships of the line shall be built by 1920 — to be built at 
a cost of some 600 millions. The French Fleet would then 
be about equal to the German Fleet if the arrangements now 
made are not changed. 

It is satisfactory to be able to record an improvement in 
the vital statistics of France. In 1907 the deaths exceeded 
the births by 199892. In 1908 the opposite was the case, the 
births having exceeded the deaths by 461441. These figures 
are, however, not so good as they look, for although there is 
an increase of births over deaths, it only amounts to 18,067. 
The balance of 48,266 is due to a decrease in the number 
of deaths. The effect of the development in 1908 is to aug- 
ment to 12 for every 10,000 the relative increase of the 
population, and this compares with an average of 18 for 
every 10,000 for the years 190 1 to 1905, of 7 for the year 1906 
and of 5 for 1907. 

It will be remembered that the 
Germany. majority which supports Prince 

Btilow is made up of the Con- 
servatives of the Right and the Liberals and Radicals of the 
Left banded together, in despite of fundamental differences on 
most points, against the Catholic Centre, in order to deprive it 
of the position which it so long held as the dominating party 
in the Reichstag. This bloc has worked fairly well for some 
time, the Radicals and Liberals having shown a wonderful 
capacity for swallowing principles completely opposed to those 
for the sake of ,which they have hitherto existed. But when 
the financial proposals of the government for raising the large 
additional taxation of 125 millions a year came up for dis- 
cussion, it was found impossible to maintain harmony any 
longer. The Conservatives are very anxious to place most of 
the burdens which this taxation involves upon the shoulders of 
the masses of the people, and to prevent its being placed 
upon their own. We regret to say that the Centre has not 
proved itself indisposed to help them. Liberals and Radicals 



Digitized by 



Google 



568 Current events [July, 

opposed this, and so far as the financial proposals go the 
majority is no longer in agreement. It is still in donbt whether 
the government can or will propound a scheme which will re- 
store harmony, and, if not, whether the hloc will break op en« 
tirely, thus restoring the Centre to its former position of power 
and infiuence. Prince Bulow has often proved himself a skillful 
driver of unruly teams, and people now are looking forward 
with interest to see how he will manage this time. 

The Navy League has not relaxed in its demands, in spite 
of the heavy burden which the realization of its projects is 
putting upon the country. It has been holding meetings in 
which further additions to the Navy are demanded, and, not- 
withstanding the courtesies, in the shape of mutual visits which 
have been taking place lately between Germany and England, 
the German government gives countenance to the League, and 
therefore, it would seem, to its programme. The special ma- 
noeuvres which took place recently at Kiel, in order to show 
respect to the League, manifests the attitude taken by the 
government. The election of four out of the seven socialists who 
were returned to the Prussian Diet has been invalidated on a 
legal technicality, nor has any sign been given by the govern- 
ment that it intends to redeem its promise of a revision of the 
Prussian franchise — the worst, according to Bismarck, in the 
world. The question of ministerial responsibility to the Reich- 
stag, which was referred to a Committee for report, is still left 
in abeyance; perhaps, some think, it will not be raised again. 

The Kaiser has been making a round of visits, two having 
been paid to the King of Italy, and one to the Emperor Francis 
Joseph. A fourth has just been made to the Tsar ; and there 
seems reason to think that all of them are likely to have im- 
portant results. 

It is somewhat strange that while in France there is a small 
improvement in the birth-rate, in Prussia, for the first time ever 
recorded, the] movement is in the opposite direction. The total 
number of births was less by 10,621 in 1907 than in 1906, and 
was actually less by 1,058 than in the year 1901. It is, how- 
ever, still much higher than that of France, and indeed of 
many other countries, being at the rate of 33.23 per i,cxx>. 
The rate stands: 34.00 in 1906; 33.77 in 1905; and 35.04 in 
1904. That of England has fallen to 26.3 in 1907, the lowest 
on record. Calculations have been made that for Germany 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current events 569 

the annual excess of births over deaths will soon be i^ooo^ooo; 
so that in the near future the Empire will number 70, 75, 80, 
or more millions. At present, however, the excess is about 
900,000, and if the criminal disease elsewhere existent spreads 
into Germans these expectations will fail of realization. 

The annexation of Bosnia and Her- 
Austria-Hungary. zegovina has, indeed, been suc- 

cessfully accomplished. The price, 
however, in reputation and in money, in the disturbance too 
of what seemed to be the beginning of settled peace for the 
much harassed Powers of Central Europe, has been very high. 
And already this annexation has involved an increase of the 
many anxieties of the aged monarch, with promises of still 
further troubles. Dr. Krek, a distinguished Slovene prelate, de- 
clared in the Reichsrath that the view taken of the Bank con- 
cession which we mentioned last month, by which Bosnian 
peasants are given over to the tender mercies of Hungarian 
bankers, was expressed by the formula that the Emperor of 
Austria had bought from the Turks the inhabitants of Bosnia- 
Herzegovina and sold them to the Hungarians, and that by 
this action Austria had utterly discredited herself among the 
Southern Slavs. The promised constitution, which formed the 
pretext for the annexation, has not yet been granted, nor, so 
far, are there any signs that it is on the point of being granted. 
In fact, the perennial contest between Austria and Hungary 
seems to be about to break out yet once more; and in Hun- 
gary itself the Cabinet crisis has not yet been settled. Hence 
there are not wanting excuses for the non-fulfillment of the 
promises. 

The jubilations over Austria's one success for many a long 
year have been accompanied by celebrations of the one victory 
over Napoleon which was gained by Austrian arms, although 
this is so little of a victory in the eyes of the French that one 
of Napoleon's marshals took bis title of Prince from the same 
battle. So small, too, were the results, that within a few days 
the capital of the Empire was occupied by French troops. 
There are not a few who in view of the recent action of Austria, 
which was the cause of so much unrest and which almost led 
to a European war, would not be very sad if the success may 
prove as transitory in its effects as was the victory. 



Digitized by 



Google 



570 CURRENT Events (July, 

The German Emperor's visit to the Emperor- King Francis 
Joseph is declared by the German Press to be a fitting cele- 
bration of Aostro-German solidarity and of the victory doe to 
German support which Anstria- Hungary has recently obtained. 
Every subject of Francis Joseph, so it said, knows that his 
country's success was due above all to the help of Germany, 
and should rejoice in promulgating the fame of Germanism 
throughout the world, and in manifesting to all the unshakable 
strength of the Austro- German alliance. The Austrian way of 
expressing the matter is rather more pleasing, for while it 
recognizes the debt which is due to the Kaiser, his support 
is valued not as leading to domination, but for its having 
saved the country from war. In the Emperor Francis Joseph's 
words the Kaiser is welcomed as ''the steadfast furtherer of 
all peaceful endeavors." The love of peace and gratitude for 
its preservation was also the keynote of the speech which the 
German Emperor made in reply. 

It is not easy to ascertain the 
Italy. exact attitude of the Italian peo- 

ple towards the other two coun- 
tries, Germany and Austria, with which she is allied. During 
the recent Near Eastern crisis it seemed for a time as if there 
might be a rupture of the Alliance, so far, at all events, as 
Austria and Italy were concerned, and if this had taken place, 
as subsequent events proved, it would have involved a rupture 
with Germany also, for Germany was Austria's backer. Italy's 
Foreign Minister placed himself on Austria's side, but the 
speech which he made was censured far and wide, and his 
resignation was looked upon as inevitable. The feeling of the 
country was entirely in favor of the Young Turks, and Aus- 
tria's action was looked upon as jeopardizing the success of 
their movement. Unfortunately the Alliance has had for one 
of its results the placing of Italy in some degree at the mercy 
of Austria, the border fortifications having been allowed to 
become more or less dilapidated, while the Army has not been 
kept up to the required standard and even the Navy has been 
neglected. Consequently, the government has to be prudent 
and was afraid to offer open opposition to the Austrian plans. 
Its support, however, was so cold that it is believed the King 
of Italy received some plain admonitions from the Kaiser on 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current Events 571 

the occasion of his first visit. It is to be presumed^ however, 
that every point of difference has been settled by the second 
visit, for the two monarchs, William and Francis Joseph, united 
in sending a message to King Victor Emmanuel from Vienna 
to assure him of their unalterable friendship. The Italian 
Foreign Minister remains in office and as the questions that 
were at issue have been settled the country will doubtless ac- 
quiesce. But measures are to be taken to restore efficiency to 
the Army, the estimates for a considerable additional sum to 
be spent upon it having been accepted by the Cabinet, while 
a much larger amount is to be spent upon the Navy, if the 
plans of the present government are carried out. 

Notwithstanding the spoliation which the religious commu- 
nities have suffered, their numbers have so much increased that 
the enemies of the Church are getting alarmed, and in the 
Italian Parliament a vote of censure was moved. This vote 
was resisted by the government, which did not deny the facts. 
It refused, however, to take any action, on the ground that all 
Italians were entitled to equal treatment and to fair play and 
that so long as the laws were observed no legal association 
would be interfered with. Religious associations are to have 
the same freedom as lay associations. All are to be equal in 
the eye of the law and enjoy equal freedom and justice. This 
is the government's ideal as expressed by the Minister of Jus- 
tice. To share the toleration which is extended to such news- 
papers as the Asino is no great honor, but it is all that the 
Italian government vouchsafes. 

The affairs of Russia have not ex- 
Russia, cited much attention, and this is 
due to the fact that there has been 
some improvement. The Duma is becoming an established in- 
stitution, and although the limits of its power are circumscribed, 
yet it is getting the possession of a very real authority, and a 
yet wider influence. The questions which arise are not ques- 
tions as to its continued existence, but as to whether the min- 
istry of M. Stolypin will remain in power or be superseded by 
one reactionary in policy. The question of religious disabili- 
ties has been discussed, but the Orthodox ^Church throws all 
the weight of its influence against every extension of such 
liberty. Most of the members of the Duma^ on the contrary. 



Digitized by 



Google 



572 Current events [July, 

support the extension. The Tsar now ventures to appear in 
publiCi and he is to pay a visit to France and England in the 
course of the coming month. The trial of a high police official 
has brought out the criminal methods by which order (such as 
it was) was maintained in Russia a few years ago. 

There have been a half-dozen of 
Turkey. Cabinets since the restoration of 

the Constitution, the latest of which 
will have been in power for nearly two months when these 
lines are printed. The hope that it will be more stable than 
its predecessors rests upon the fact that it has, if we may be- 
lieve his public profession of faith, the hearty good-will of the 
Sultan, and also that it represents the various sections of the 
Committee of Union and Progress, to whose action the resti- 
tution of the Constitution is due. The Committee will not, 
therefore, be exposed to the temptation of endeavoring to thwart 
the government or to work, as it has been accused of doing, 
by unconstitutional methods in order to secure the much- 
needed reforms. Unless these are made Turkey will be left in 
as bad a condition under a Parliament as it was under a Sultan. 
One of the measures which had to be taken as a conse- 
quence of Abdul Hamid's e£forts to regain his lost power— the 
proclamation of a state of siege in the capital — still stands, we 
believe, in the way of the full enjoyment of constitutional 
rights, but this is only a temporary expedient and may be 
justified by the emergency. A number of executions have taken 
place of the worst of the conspirators, and as a salutary warn- 
ing their bodies have been exposed in public places in a way 
highly revolting to Western nations. But each nation knows 
best its own business, and necessarily acts according to the 
stage of advancement at which it has arrived. What that stage 
is in Turkey may be judged by the way in which the Arme- 
nians and other Christians were treated in Adana and other 
places in Asia Minor during the recent crisis. Without the 
slightest provocation or warning they were attacked by the 
soldiers with the connivance of the local authorities, acting, it 
is said, under orders telegraphed from Constantinople by Ab- 
dul Hamid himself. The motive for this fiendish action was his 
desire to discredit the reformed government, to show that it 
was unable to maintain order in the provinces, at the same 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current Events 573 

time that he in the capital was carrying out his plans for its 
overthrow. It must be admitted that he found willing instru- 
ments of his cruelty. Towns and villages were set in flames 
simultaneously throughout a wide district. Thousands oi men 
and women and children were shot by the soldiers. In some 
cases the women and children were spared, the men being or- 
dered to stand apart, and they were then shot in the presence 
of their families, for some of whom a worse fate was reserved, 
as the girls were taken for Turkish harems. Refugees in 
churches were in one case roasted alive, while in another the 
victims perished by being thrown into a river. 

In one village the soldiers made some sixty men come out 
one by one and killed them, the onlookers applauding by 
clapping their hands, while in another the wife of a Turkish 
governor looked on at the massacre and smiled her approval of 
the doing of the will of Allah. For four days in many districts 
the carnage went on, the victims being estimated at from 15,- 
000 to 20,ooo. Space does not permit us to go into further de- 
tail. The awful consequences following upon an individual's 
lust of power is what is exemplified by these events. That 
fifteen of the leaders have been executed, and that others are 
undergoing trial, is satisfactory so far as it goes. We hope it 
may be taken as an indication that the era of law and order 
has supplanted the arbitrary will of one-man power. 

The Committee appointed to pre- 
Persia. pare an electoral law has taken a 

long time in doing its work. The 
delay has been due on this occasion not to the Shah, who has 
submitted to the demands of Russia and England, but to the 
unwise demands of the Nationalists. The country has suf- 
fered so long from bad government, oppression, corruption, 
and every kind of debasing influence, that it looks as if no 
wise men were left. It is now generally admitted that the 
Shah had some reasons which gave apparent justification for 
his dissolution of the former Parliament. The demands of its 
members were unreasonable and their proposals foolish and 
wild. And, at the present time, there is a repetition of their 
former mistakes. The possibility of a protectorate being es- 
tablished, as the only way of saving the country from an- 
archy, is forcing itself upon the attention of statesmen. 



Digitized by 



Google 



THE COLUMBIAN READING UNION. 

THE following notice has been sent out by Edward Feeney, National Presi* 
dent ; Anthony Matre, National Secretary : 

The Eighth National Convention of the American Federation of Catholic 
Societies will be held in Pittsburgi Pa., on August 8 to ii. 

Oar information from Pittsburg is that elaborate preparations are being 
made by the Catholics of that city to extend a most cordial welcome to the 
delegates to the Convention. That staunch friend of Federation, Right Rev. 
Regis Canevin, D.D., appeals to us to rally, and visitors may be assured of a 
most hospitable reception in his diocese. 

The Convention will open with Pontifical High Mass at the Cathedral. 

There will be two great mass meetings at Carnegie Hall, at which ad- 
dresses will be made by Most Rev. S. G. Messmer, Archbishop of Milwaukee; 
Right Rev. James McFaul, Bishop of Trenton, N. J., who will speak on the 
'^ Apostolate of the Laity"; Thomas B. Minahan, Esq., of Seattle, Wash., 
on '* Federation From a Layman's Standpoint "; Professor J. C. Monaghan, 
on '* Socialism "; Walter George Smith, Esq., of Philadelphia, and others. 

We most earnestly urge every National Catholic Organization, Diocesan, 
State, and County Federation, Catholic Institution, Society and Parish, as 
far as possible, to be represented in the Convention. 

We especially request the bishops and priests of the country to assist in 
making the coming Convention even more successful than the great gather- 
ing of 1908. They can do so by urging representative Catholic laymen to at- 
tend as diocesan or parish delegates, or to be with us themselves. 

While Federation is essentially a layman's movement, it is primarily in* 
tended to advance the interests of our Holy Church. The two great Sover- 
eign Pontiffs, Leo XIH. and Pius X., have blessed the labors of Federation, 
and its work has the approval of the Apostolic Delegate and the hierarchy of 
the United States. 

Federation is advancing. We want the co-operation of every Catholic to 
extend its influence. If we hope to make an impression on the social and in- 
tellectual life of the nation. Catholics must be united. We invite every Cath- 
olic to become an Associate Member of Federation, and thus insure beyond 

peradventure the permanency of the organization. 

* * * 

The Editor of the American Catholic Who's Who finds that an idea has 
gained credence in some quarters that the book is to be a mere social register. 
She wishes to point out that it is not to be a '' roll of honor," but a reference 
book, stating what Catholic men and women are doing, and what positions 
they hold in Church, college, and the professions. 

The proposed work, therefore, is not a social blue book. Its line of in- 
clusion is drawn at what people have done for the Church, for education, 
literature, science, art, and society. Its purpose is to make Catholics better 
acquainted with what they are doing, and of bringing them into greater mu- 
tual acquaintance and unity. 

With this better understanding as to the object of the American Catholic 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Columbian Reading Union 575 

Who's WhOf the Editor makes an earnest appeal that all who have been asked 

to send her their record will do so without delay. 

* * * 

The Nineteenth Annual Report of the Christ Child Society^ Washing- 
ton, D.C., is an emphatic proof of the good and widely extended work car- 
ried on by the members of the Society. The efforts of the past year show 
a remarkable increase both in the number of members and the amount of 
work which the Society has been able to accomplish. The report for 1909 is 
not limited to the Washington branch, the mother, so to speak, of the So- 
ciety, but includes the reports of the different cities in the United States 
where the Christ Child Society has been established. These reports, one 
and all, are most encouraging. The purpose of the Society, as our readers 
knpw, is to aid and instruct needy children. From year to year the Society 
grows in scope and influence. It does not limit itself to any one particular 
work, but branches out in a most praiseworthy way to meet the needs of each 
particular district where centers for the work have been established. 

The Settlement for Italians, undertaken at the request of Cardinal 
Gibbons, is a most important part of the Society's work, and the zealous ef- 
forts put forth in this branch have produced most encouraging results. The 
work of visiting the hospitals promises to become one of the Society's per- 
manent and fruitful activities. 

This great charity is aided in its work by the co-operation of Catholic 
men and women, by contributions received from contributing members and 
those interested in promoting the influence of the work, and by the personal, 
active service of members in the different settlement centers. May the 

harvest of the coming years be abundantly fruitful. 

• • • 

The Seventh Annual Report of the Association of Catholic Charities 
gives a fair idea of the organized charitable endeavors of Catholic women in 
and about Manhattan Island. 

The Reports of the Association show, year by year, an increase in statis- 
tics, for a larger number of existing organizations are affiliating one with an- 
other, and the work of the central body is more widely extended. 

Since the preceding meeting of the Association a National Organization 

of Ladies' Catholic Charitable Societies was formed. 

* * * 

Dr. Henry Van Dyke, in a recent letter, gives his views on French uni- 
versities and university life. He finds that '* the chief defect in the univer- 
sity life of France is the lack of a free, healthful, democratic comradeship 
among the students. They are intelligent, ambitious, hard working. Bu^ 
they do not know how to live together on a wholesome, manly basis. They 
are not prepared for the business of life by the excellent discipline of learn- 
ing to regulate themselves in the liberty of a student-republic. 

** Nothing is more notable in France than the variety and the sharpness 
of the political divisions. The French are an extremely logical people, and 
they carry their theories through to the end. The tolerance and good 
humor of the American spirit seem to them very strange. It is hard to 
make them understand that precisely this spirit of * live and let live ' has 
been the secret of liberty and union in our republic." 



Digitized by 



Google 



BOOKS RECEIVED. 

Funk & Wagnalls, New York : 

Tkt New Schaff'Hertog Encyclopedia of Religious Knowledge. By Samuel M. JacksOB, 
D.D. Vol.111. Pp.500. 
Charlbs Scribnbr's Sons, New York : 

Social OrganixatioM, By Charles Horton Cooley. Pp. 419. Price $1.50. 
McMillan Company, New York: 

Misery and Its Causes, By Edw. T. Devine. Ph.D. Pp. 274, Price $i.aS. 
Fr. PasTET & Co., New York : 

Holy Water and Its Signijkamee for Catholics. By Rev. J. F. Lang. Pp. 63. Price 50 
cents. 
ROBBRT Appleton COMPANY, New York : 

The Catholic Encyclopedia, Vol. V. Pp« 795. 
United States Catholic Historical Society, New York : 

Historical Records and Studies, Vol. V. Part II. April, 1909. Pp. 53^* 
Cathedral Library Association, New York: 

The Roman Church Before Constantino, By Rt. Rev. Mgr. Louis Duchesne. Pp. 44. 
Price 10 cents. 
State Charities Aid Association, New York: 

Fifth Annual Report of N, Y, C, Visiting Committee of State Charities Aid Association, 
igo8. Pp. 68. 
Isaac Pitman Sons. New York : 

How to Become a Law Stenographer, By W. L. Mason. Pp. 165. Price 75 cents. Biui- 
ness Correspondence in Shorthand, No. 7. Pp. 40. Price 25 cents. 
Board op Publication op Repormbd Chitrch in America. New York : 

The SodoUgy of tha Bible, By Ferdinand Schenck. D.D.. LL.D. Pp. 428. Price $1.50 
net. 
John J. McVey, Philadelphia: 

Ltje of John Boyle O'Reilly, By James J. Roche. Pp. 786. Price $a. 
Little, Brown & Co., Boston, Mass. : 

Red Horse Hill, By Sidney McCall. Pp. 361. Price $1.50. TheKin^Umot Earth, 
By Anthony Partndge. Pp. 329. Price $1.50. The Governors. By K. Phillips Op- 

?enheim. Pp. 300. Price $1.50. The Harvest Within, By A. T. Mahan. Pp. 280. 
tice $1.50. 
Houghton Mifplin Company. Boston, Mass.: 

Choosing a Vocation, By Frank Parsoas. Pp. 165. Price $1. The People at Play, By 
Rolaad Lynde Hartt. Pp. 317. Education in the Far^East, By Charles F. Thwing. 
Pp. 277. Price $1.50. 
Government Printing Office, Washington. D. C. : 

Report of the Commissioner of Education for Year Ended June jo, igo8. Vol. II. 
B. Herder* St. Louis, Mo. : 

Report of the Ntneteenth Eucharistic Congress, Held at Westminster September, igoS, 
M. H. WiLTZius Company, Milwaukee : 

Some Incentives to Right Living, By Rt. Rev. Alexander McGavick. Pp. 203. 
Catholic Truth Society, London, England: 

The Roman Breviary. By Dom Jules Baudot. Pp. 260. Price aj. 6d, net. Sis^ Ye to 
the Lord. By Robert baton. Pp. 344. Price 2j. ^, net. AuxUium Infirmorum, By 
Robert Eaton. Pp. 202. Price ^, net. Three Socialist Fallacies, iiy Catholic Social- 
ist, Secular Solution of Educational Difficulty, St, Aldhelm, Bishop of Sherborne, 
Aquinas. The Religion of the Athenian Philosophers, The Religion of Unitarianism, 
The Religion of China, The Modem Papacy. The Religion of the Koran, Pamphlets. 
Price one penny. 
LiBRAiRiB Critique, Paris, France : 

Le Discemement du Miracle, Par P. Saintyves. Pp 352. Price 6frs, 
Bloud et Cie., Paris, France : 

L Existence Historique de Jisus et le Rationalisme Contemporain. Par L. CI. Pillion. 
Pp, 63. Price ofr, 60. L'Intemelle Consolacion Saint TMse— Pascal — Bossuet— Saint 
Benoit Labre^Le Cured*Ars, Pp. 66. Price o fr. Go. La Vie et la Ligende de Saint 
Gwennole. Par Pierre Allier. Pp. 62. Price o fr. 60. Le Principe des Diveloppenunts 
Thiologiques. Par Henry N. Oxenham. Pp. 60. Price o />*. 60. La Mission de 
Saint Benoit, Par le Cardinal Newman. Pp. 64. Price o fr, 60. Traite du Devoir 
de Conduire Ues Enfants d Jisus Christ. Par A. Saubin. Pp. 62. Price o fr, 60. 
LeModemisme, Par Cardinal Mercier. Pp. 60. Price ofr, 60. 
Gabriel Beauchesne et Cie., Paris, France: 



Albert Hetsch, T>t\uAhmtJ£.6Xi\oxi. Vols. I^and II. Pp.320. La Doctrine de V Islam, 
Price 3 fr, Bouddhisme, far L. de la Vallee Peussln, Pp. 420. Price ^fr. 



r9X le Bon Carra de vaux. Fp. 318. fnce 4/r. Le Lotur de Jesus, far Marcel 
Baron. Pp. 320. Price ^fr, 50. Vers les Cimes. Par M. I'Abb^ Chabot. Pp. 360. 
Price 3 fr, Bouddhisme, Par L. de la Vallee Peussln, Pp. 420. Price ^fr, 

Heitz. 

Google 



I. Gabalda et Cie., Paris. France: 

Essai Historique sur les Rapports entre la Philosophic etla Poi, Par Thomas Heitz, 



Digitized by ^ 



JWake Your Walls Washable. 

The ** Softone System " of Wall Enameling 
can be applied to plaster or ^burlap wi^lls. It 
makes them non-porous, germ-proof, stain- 
proof, and as washable as tiling. 

FOR CATHOLIC lUSTirUTIONS AND HOMES, 

where cleanliness, health, general appear- 
ances, and economy are considered, it is the 
. IDEAL wall finish. It makes kitchens, class 
rooms, dc* nitories, halls, etc.^ brighter, cleaner, 
.r. fr^ rt u.x and more sanitary — and does this at low cost. 

(Fac-simile of Label,) "^ 

LET OS PROVE ITS USE AND ECONOMY. 

To demonstrate that the '* Softone System" is all we claim we offer re- 
sponsible people sufficient material to do a small room — free. 

^ Just send for the/' Royal Decorator'' Color Book and state size of the 
room you wish to finish at our expense. 

THE BBHniHH flfllEHICBH PfllHT CD , ^^'^ «•„„.. 

MANUFAoruRERS. Chlcago, • Illinois. 



EMIGRANT 

INDUSTRIAL 

SAVINGS BANK 

51 Chambers St, New Tork 

The Board •( Tnisucs taai declar«d a Scml-Aonual Dividend at the rate of 

FOUR PER CBNX PER ANNUM 

On all depoaita eailtled tbereto, from $5 to $3*000, for the aix and 
thre^ montha ending June 30, J909, 
Intereat will be cr^ited under date July i,. 1909, and payable 
on and after Monday, July 29, 1909* 

DEPOSITS HADE ON OR BEFORE JULY 10, 1909, WILL DRAW 
INTEREST FROM JULY 1, 1909. 

John J. Pulleyn, Thomas M. Mulry, 

Comptroller, President ,^^-^ _ _ il 



Wtllt IbrCatelofM D Md «splMMtfM«* 

r V05B • SOW pufto Co.. Bosrq^. Mass. 




Housefurnismng 
Waieiooms 

(Established 183s*) 

Kltclieii Vtett^ils 

Cutlery, China, Glassware. 

Ronsecleaninir Articles 

Bmahea, Brooms, Dusters, Polishes 
for Floors, Purniture, and Metals. 

•• BEST QUALITY ONLY." 

Refrigerators 

THe PerDeetioit of cieatillneM» 
COicteticyt auil Economy* 

ThA ^'Eddv"^^^^ SUadard for a 
AAifV ' M«a«aj quarter Century * 

The " Premier '* ^^^ "«^ 

Correttpondetice Invited. 

Z30 & 13a West 4ad St.y 

MB W TORK, 



MENNEN'S 

BORATED TALCUM 

TOILET POWDER 

"1 



*' Baby's Beat Friend'' 

ri<! Mamma's ifrcatost comfort. MenncR^s relieves and prevents 
*rk-kl> Heat, Chiiflnc and Sunburn. 

I ur yunr i-rotc-ction ihc s^jiuine is put up in non>r«fllIftble 
ny,,— the "Box that Lox/* with Mennen'ti faru on tot., 
.w.iraiitcc.l by the Gerhard Mennen Co. under the l-oud and Drill's 
ut, Jiuic 3'. i<><K Serial No. 1542. »>oId -tiTcrywhcre or by iiinil 
- tut-,, S,i>'t/>:r /y.e. Try ]ll«*nn«»n*H Violet (M..rntr<lj T.ikum 

Milct F-jwdcr. Ithasthcscentoffrosh-cut Parma Violets. .^.trnfU/^ct 

GERHARD MENNEN CO.. Newark, N. J. 

Jlcnnen'* l{«nil4Nl Sktn Honp (blue wrapper) 1 

Specially prcpnrecl for the luiritry. KVi? sam^Us 

Jlenneo't Skn I'Mig TollK rowder. Oriental Odor ) 
HoM OBI7 at 8torr« 



WH0LE50B1E THROUGH AND THROUGH 



/ 
^ 



Teach the Chll^<en to ask for 

Necco Sweets 

TeU Ihem .boitl dte NECCO SEA^-Ac gi>»>lee ol 
f(»o<inai m confedioiKor. It i. ifaeir pntedm auiiul 
Dtenonljr.* CMitioDtheatoloakfDriL . 

and mora diaa five himdrcd ether Yanetiesof Necco Sweate 
are youri and theif% to choM from. Siiiiple five, ten ancfSllea 
ceot package* of clear' fruit flavon. cLocolale cotfed mibt, 
moWes clupt. peppermials. creams, cte., f or tbe ItBle 
Of fancy^ elaborate art boiet filled widi toodunme <' 
lor 8iowii.ups. Sold evaywfieie— always fieih, 

JIBW ENCUND CONncnONERT COMFAffT. 1 " 



Digitized by 



Google 



5 ■ 

: AUGUST 1909 



THE 



». 



<[Jatholie^pld 

Ib BUhop Orafton Fair ? Lewis Jerome a Hern, C.S.P. 

Her Mother's Daughter Katharine Tynan 

A Programme of Soolal Beform by Legislation Jo/m A. Ryan^ DM. 
The Wonders of Lourdes /. Bricaut 



A Lost Dog 




Mary Austin 


The End of a Long Joomey 




/. Prendergast, SJ. 


1 

A Modem Saint 




The Countess de Coursou 


The South Isles of Arran 




Et/iel C. Randall, Ph.D. 


Ohnrch and State in Franee 




M. /. Costella 


New Books- 


-Foreign Periodicals 


Current Erents 





Price—as centsj #3 per Year 



THE OFFICE OF THE CATHOUC WORLD, NEW YORK 

zao-zaa West ttotla Street 

IBQAI PA1l&,nBI0H.nilBnB k 00.. UL, Dryin BMM. 43 OMtari ft, IM*. ImAm. ¥ 



fMr la ftUM •! IM OriMiM FtUMliH: AHIDB lAf ARE, , 

nnolMV te la "Ima ia laHa OaaMliaa.''n Rm.Im Satata^efaa. PMa 



-oogle j 



MY SPECIALTIES. 

Pure Virgin Olive Oil. First pressing 
of the Olive. Imported under my Eclipse 
Brand in full half-pint, pint, and quart 
bottles, and in gallon and half-gallon 
cans. Analysis by Agricultural Depart- 
ment, Washington, showing absolute 
purity, published in Callanan*s Magazine. 

L. J. Callanan*^ EcHpse Brand of 
Ceylon tea eclipses all other Ceylon teas 
offered in packages in this market, in 
quality and flavor. 

There is no better tea sold in this 
country than mv " 41 " blend, quality and 
flavor always the same. No tea table 
complete without it. 

My "48*' Brand of Coffee 

is a blend of the choicest coffees imported. 
It is sure to please lovers of good coifee. 
No breakfast table complete without it. 

My Motto, Everything in Groceries, 
Altar Wines, and Cigars, everything of 
the Best. A visit to my permanent food 
exposition will pay you. Copy Callanan's 
Magazine and price list mailed on request. 

t. J. C ALLANAN, 

4 i and 43 Vesey StrMt, New York. - 



Ask any of your friends 
who use 



LION 



Brand 
Condensed 



nniiK 



If it is not the best they can get at any 
price. Also tf the premiums they get for 
Lion labels are not really worth while. 

Your grocer now has Lion Brand 
Evaporated Milk in stock, and please 
remember that there is ino better £vax>- 
orated Milk made in this country or any- 
where else. 

. During April, we opened three 

Hew Premium Stores. 

The stock of premiums is larger and 
finer than ever. 

Yiseoiudn Condensed lilk Co^ 

9X jaudsoii street^ 
Bfemr ITork. 



Are you a graduate nurse ? 

Are you a member of a Nursing 
Sisterhood? 

Are you ever called upon to nuise 
the sick ? 

If so, you will be the better able 
to do your duty, and will do it with 
less wear and tear to yourself , if 
you read 

THE TRAINED NURSE AND 
HOS PITAL REVIEW. 

a practical, working magazine for 
graduate nurses— but of value to 
all who nurse. 

(non sectarian.) 

Sample Copy Free. 

82.00 a year. 

Lakeside Publishing Co., 

Ti4-ii6 H. aStli Street t 
Mew York City. 



Digitized by 



Google 




THE 

CATHOLIC WORLD. 

Vol. LXXXIX. AUGUST, 1909. No. 533. 

IS BISHOP GRAFTON FAIR? 

AN ANSWER TO *' A REJOINDERS 
BY LEWIS JEROME OHERN, C.S.P. 

IJOCTOR CHARLES C. GRAFTON, Protestant- 
Episcopal Bishop of Fon da Lac, has published A 
Rejoinder^ to our article, which appeared in the 
February number of The Catholic World, 
entitled ''Bishop Grafton and Pro-Romanism." 
The discussion pertains chiefly to Papal Supremacy and In- 
fallibility, and the validity of Anglican Orders. Some apology 
is due those to whom this answer to Dr. Grafton's Rejoinder 
is addressed for the reiteration of arguments and quotations, 
which, in this self-same discussion, have been worn threadbare 
by writers of books and pamphlets innumerable during the 
past half- century. But such repetition is justifiable when we 
recall that it is the duty of a teacher to repeat his corrections 
as long as the willing student, in an earnest endeavor to learn 
the truth, continues to make mistakes regarding the matter in 
hand. 

Doctor Grafton repeatedly and eloquently assumes the posi- 
tion of an eager pupil, as, for example, in his introductory 
paragraph : 

" I do not write for victory over opponents, or to build up 
oae*s own Communion, but solely for the Truth and the Truth's 
sake. I humbly pray God that whatever I say erroneously 

• A Rejoinder, To • pamphlet by the Rev, Lewis J. OHem, C.S.P. By Charles Chap- 
man Graiton, S.T.D., Bishop of Fond du Lac. Milwaukee: The Young Churchman Com- 
pany. 

Copyright. 2909. Tbb Missionabt Soobtt op St. P>lvl thb Afostlb 
IN THB State op Nbw Yoxk. 
VOL. LZXXIX«— 37 



Digitized by 



Google 



578 IS BISHOP GRAFTON FAIR? [Auif., 

may be shown to be an error, and that God will especially 
bless those who antagonize my writings to the elucidation of 
the Truth.'' 

This is apparently not idle rhetoric. If Dr. Grafton had 
circalated his Rejoinder among non-Catholics only, or, to put 
the supposition more strongly still, if he had followed the ex- 
ample of another well-known opponent of the Church, and dis- 
tributed the Rejoinder secretly, his protestations of love for the 
truth, taken in conjunction with several statements in his 
pamphlet to which we will have occasion presently to refer, 
would have had the aspect of insincerity. On the contrary. 
Dr. Grafton, it appears, has submitted his Rejoinder to almost 
every Catholic priest in the United States. This is really a 
stirring auto da // in the righteousness of his cause. By the 
most conservative calculation it must represent an outlay of at 
least one thousand dollars. The bishop of a poor American 
diocese does not incur such an expense without mature de- 
liberation. 

When Dr. Grafton was contemplating the gift of his pam- 
phlet to the Catholic priests of America, he must have re- 
membered that, naturally, they would be opposed to his con- 
clusions, and that they were to be won, if won at all, only by 
sound reasoning, and influenced only by unimpeachable author- 
ity. And he knew that the Catholic priest is a thoroughly 
trained logician, and that poor, indeed, is the priest's study 
which is not equipped at least with a compendium of apolo- 
getic literature sufficient to control the most frequently dis- 
cussed quotations from the Fathers. The conclusion is in- 
evitable that Dr. Grafton sincerely believes in his own argu- 
ments, and that he honestly trusts in the authorities he cites. 
He brings his understanding of the facts concerning Papal 
Supremacy and Infallibility, and Anglican Orders, to the Cath- 
olic clergy of his native land, and says: ''I humbly pray God 
that whatever I say erroneously may be shown to be an error, 
and that God will especially bless those who antagonize my 
writings to the elucidation of the Truth." 

This makes an examination of his, pamphlet full of human 
interest, and no one can fail to rejoice in every effort put 
forth to assist so distinguished a seeker after enlightenment. 

But it is mere flippancy to pretend that human interest is 
the only vital issue, preliminary to this discussion, which 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Is Bishop Grafton Fair? 579 

hinges on the sincerity of Dr. Grafton's desire for ''the elu- 
cidation of the Truth." Sincerity alone can justify this polite 
but genuine contest between professed servants of Christ, in 
which questions concerning the mind and will of Christ Him- 
self are disputed. Herein the debater who is not sincere in- 
sults the self-respect of his opponent, violates the counsels of 
prudence, provokes a wicked waste of time, and might easily be- 
come guilty of irreverence towards God and the Truth of God. 

If, therefore. Dr. Grafton's sincerity is not an established 
fact, any attempt to win him in a discussion of this kind 
would be as inexcusable as an attempt to make ropes of sand. 
It is only on the hypothesis of his sincerity that his Rejoinder 
can be considered at all. This makes it all the more impera- 
tive that his will to be fair should be established beyond the 
shadow of doubt. 

Now, even a casual perusal of Dr. Grafton's Rejoinder acutely 
raises the question of his fairness, and at times even of his 
earnestness. 

A striking instance is afforded by his paragraph entitled : 
" Father O'Hern's Witnesses." 

In the paper he criticizes, an attempt had been made to 
conciliate Dr. Grafton by appeal to those who stand shoulder 
to shoulder with him in his own Church. The writer reasoned 
plausibly that correction from his own distinguished brethrea 
would be to Dr. Grafton not only more welcome, but also more 
convincing than appeal to authorities identified with the Church 
he opposes. It is greatly surprising to find that Dr. Grafton 
disposes of the opinions, arguments, and citations of his co- 
religionists by caustic depreciation of the men themselves, 
summing up his respects to them in the sentence: ''A few 
belligerent flies crawling on the window pane are not going to 
tear down the house." ''What," he says, "do the opinions of 
these unimportants " (Dr. Briggs, Spencer Jones, Father Paul 
James) "amount to against the judgments of a great number 
of learned and saintly Anglican divines, . • . statesmen, 
jurists, and historians, . . . who have examined and rejected 
the Papacy ? " It is obviously impossible to take up, one by 
one, this mighty host and compare the credentials of each 
with Dn Briggs, Spencer Jones, or the editor of The Lamp. 
Beyond bare mention of their names. Dr. Graiton himself prac- 
tically ignores the great majority of these men in his quota- 



Digitized by 



Google 



58b Is BISHOP Grafton Fair f [Aug., 

tions. Contrariwise he adorns many of his pages with the 
name and the words of Dr. Littledale. This is confusing to 
an outsider who desires to o£Fer congenial authorities to an 
Anglican bishop. We read in the Anglican Guardian (New 
York, 19 February, 1881) that the most conspicuous features 
of Dr. Littledale's writings, and of men like him« are, '' a pre- 
tentious, prophetic oracularity; audacity of self-assertion; flip- 
pancy of tone in speaking of things sacred, and the astonish- 
ing complacency with which they allude to their own labor 
and learning, and the immodesty with which they contemptu- 
ously express themselves of all others in the Church." Bear- 
ing this estimate in mind, how could a mere outsider know 
that Dr. Littledale would be to Dr. Grafton a model of learn- 
ing and a congenial witness to truth, whereas Dr. Briggs '' has 
not well imbibed the traditions of our Communion," and Father 
Paul James '' has hardly a recognized standing '* ; in fact both 
of them are '' belligerent flies '' ? 

Do these distinctions, insisted on by a bishop seeking after 
** elucidation of the Truth," argue for his fairness and sincerity 
and good -will? 

Scarcely more engaging is his frequent use of Anglican 
clergymen ''returned from Rome," as witnesses against the 
Church. Even the man in the street distrusts the bias of an 
apostate. Are these fairly to be opposed to the distinguished 
Anglicans we quoted? 

Another authority quoted approvingly by Dr. Grafton is 
''the Roman Catholic Professor Launoy."* Who is this Lau- 
noy? Let Dr. Rivington tell us: 

"Launoy was a writer of most equivocal reputation. Almost 
all his books were placed on the Index. He was committed to 
various errors on predestination and grace, besides his op- 
position to the Papacy. He is accused of altering writers in 
quoting them with an 'incredible shamelessness.* What author- 
ity, therefore, can a man like Launoy be?"t 

Still another authority cited by Dr. Grafton is Du Pin, 
whom he describes as " one of the most learned writers of the 
Roman Church." | 

Now it happens that Du Pin is not "a learned writer of 
the Roman Church" at all, but a disciple of Launoy, and a 

* Rijnnder, p. ax. 
t Authority. By Luke Rivington, M.G. London : Catholic Truth Society, pp. 35-6. 

%Ri;oindtrt p.az. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Is Bishop Grafton Fair f 581 

Jaasenist. Surely Dr. Grafton would not bave thus referred to 
this writer had he read ''Bossuet's Criticisms on Du Pin's 
History of the Counsels of Chalcedon and Ephesus/' for he 
would have seen that this learned writer ''makes free use of 
altered documents, defective and even false translations, spu- 
rious quotations, and wilful omissions of important testimony; 
that he is especially unfair and evidently so when dealing with 
the authority of the Roman Pontiff."* 

This bitter Galilean should have been quoted by Dr. Graf- 
ton as a pious Anglican^ for he was on intimate terms with 
William Wake, Anglican Archbishop of Canterbury, and in 
perfect accord with the Anglican creed, regarding the aboli- 
tion of confession, religious vows, fasts, abstinences, corporal 
austerities, the celibacy of the clergy, but, above all, on the 
doctrine of the Lord's supper, and the rejection of papal 
authority. For these teachings he was deprived of his chair 
at the Royal College and his writings were condemned by the 
Archbishop of Paris and the Sorbonne. 

Now, since Dr. Grafton tells us he has ''investigated the 
Papal claims to the fullest extent of his power, and not a book 
of ability has escaped him,"t we must suppose him to be ac- 
quainted with the foregoing facts. But if he is cognizant of 
them, how can he, with a sincere desire for the "elucidation of 
the Truth,'' quote Du Pin as one of the " most learned writers 
of the Roman Church ? " 

"The Pre-Eminence of Peter," in Dr. Grafton's hands, 
again raises the question of his fairness. We challenge any 
one not under the spell of Swedenborgianism, to read the 
topological contrast between St. Peter and St. John, and St. 
Peter and St. Paul in the Rejoinder^ and then say, this man is 
single-minded in pursuit of the truth, the whole truth, and 
nothing but the truth. 

He opens the discussion on page 11 by saying: "It will 
clear the ground if we begin by admitting the pre-eminence 
given to St. Peter in the Gospels and the first portion of the 
Acts." This leaves us rather unprepared for the declaration 
found on page 14: "Pre-eminent as was Peter, there is no 
question of the greater pre-eminence of John." Still again we 
are surprised to read, on page 16, that "St. Paul outranks 
Peter in the gifts of pre-eminence bestowed upon him." 

» Tht True Faith of Our F§rifathers, p. X07. t Rijoinder, p. 7. 



Digitized by 



Google 



582 IS BISHOP Grafton Fair t [Aug., 

Is it possible that Bishop Grafton really means to tell ns 
that SS. Peter, Paul, and John were each and all, individual- 
ly and collectively, simultaneously and equally, pre-eminent in 
the Apostolic College? 

Pre-eminent means ''first in rank, or merit; to hold the 
first place " ; and surely all three could not be first and hold 
the first place at one and the same time. 

Dr. Grafton tells us that St Peter's true pre-eminence con- 
sists in this: that ''he was the representative of the old dis- 
pensation within the apostolate,** while St« John represents the 
new.* This is proven because " St. Peter, like onto Israel, 
joined in covenant with God, is the married man, while St 
John is the virgin disciple.*' f 

The same rule, of course, would hold good to-day, and, 
therefore, the married bishops and clergy of the Anglican 
Church are the representatives of the old dispensation, while 
the bishops and clergy of the Catholic Church, followers of the 
virgin disciple, represent the new. Dr. Grafton will sorely 
not blame us if we push his principles to their logical con- 
clusion. 

In his efforts to minimize the pre-eminence of St. Peter in 
the New Testament Dr. Grafton continues: 

"Father O'Hem says there are four lists of the Apostles 
in the New Testament, and Peter's name appears at the head 
of each list Here he falls into error. In St Matthew's Gospel 
St Peter is mentioned as first, but after this, then the order 
given, as in the second chapter of Galatians, verse xi., is ' James, 
Peter, and John."'| (Italics are ours.) 

Let us see who has fallen into error. There are about five 
and twenty places in the Gospels and the Acts where the name 
of Peter occurs together with the other Apostles, and in every 
single case the name of Peter stands first There is ontj one 
place in Holy Scripture where St. Peter is not mentioned first 
in rank, and that is the following passage in Galatians, referred 
to by Bishop Grafton: 

"And when James, Cephas, and John, who seemed to be 
pillars, perceived the grace that was given unto me, they gave 
to me and Barnabas the right hands of fellowship " (Gal. ii. 9). 

When describing the Transfiguration, St. Matthew says: 
''And after six days Jesus taketh Peter, James, and John his 

• Ibid., p. 17. t Ibid,, p. X3. X Ibid., p. x6. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] IS BISHOP Grafton Fair f 583 

brother, and bringeth them up into a high mountain apart" 
(Matt. xvii. i. King James' Version). 

Again, when describing Christ's departure for Gethsemane, 
St. Matthew says ; " And He took with Him Peter and the two 
sons of Zebedee " (Matt. xxvi. 37. King James' Version). 

What justification is there for the insinuation that mfter this 
(his first enumeration) St. Matthew uses the order, James, Peter, 
and John? 

Dr. Grafton has accused the learned Dr. Briggs of being 
'^ very superficial in his comment on the New Testament about 
St Peter."* We are left the sad alternative either to believe 
that Dr. Grafton, in the foregoing comment on St Matthew, is 
himself superficial, or else that he is unfair. 

Undoubtedly there was some special reason for this unusual 
order found in Galatians. Very probably St. James was the 
first of the three seen by St. Paul, and St. John the last 
Anyhow, this order is so unnatural that, in commenting on 
the passage, TertuUian, Chrysostom, St Jerome, St. Ambrose, 
and St Augustine quote St. Paul as saying : ** Peter and James 
and John."t 

The distinguished Protestant critic, Tischendorf, gives the 
names of no less than eight of the oldest MSS. of Holy Scrip- 
ture, in which Peter's name is written first in this text (in 
Galatians) and he quotes the Syriac, the Coptic, the Armenian, 
and the Ethiopic versions as giving the same order.| 

In John, i. 44, Andrew and Peter are not named as Apos- 
tles, but as citizens, and in I. Cor. the order is that of the 
ascending scale, thus giving Peter the place of honor. 

Another consideration to be borne in mind is this: It is 
an established principle of exegesis that an isolated or obscure 
text must be interpreted in the light of those that are numer- 
ous or transparent. Any other system would upset the whole 
theology of the Bible. Here we have a single instance which 
must be interpreted in the light of five-and-twenty which are 
perfectly clean 

" THE THREE TEXTS." 

In his examination of the ^' three texts upon which Rome 
builds her pretentious claims to the Supremacy '' Dr. Grafton 
argues as follows: 



*/^id., p. xo. t TAi Trut Paiih of Our Fortfaihtrs, pp. X73-X75. 

f M 7*. Grmcit UpHt^t X873, p. 635. 



Digitized by 



Google 



584 Is Bishop Grafton fair t [Aug., 

"Now what docs this rock refer to, Peter or Christ? Our 
Lord says: 'Thou art Peter (or Petros) and upon this rock 
(Petra) I will baiid My Church/ The two words are of dif- 
ferent genders; therefore, as Peter or Petros is of the mascu- 
line gender, and Petra, feminine, Petra cannot refer to him.''* 

" Now what does this rock refer to ? " Dr. Grafton asks, 
" Peter or Christ ? " Not to Peter, because Peter is masculine 
and Petra is feminine, he argues. Ergo^ it refers to Christ 
This, he says, the Apostles would naturally infer — presumably 
at the expense of saying that Christ is feminine. This may, 
or may not, be logic. Just now we are chiefly concerned with 
the inquiry whether it is sincere effort after "elucidation of 
the Truth " ? 

"Nor is the argument answered," continues Dr. Grafton, 
"by saying our Lord spoke in Syriac or Aramaic, for in this 
language the same distinction of gender is preserved." Dr. 
Dollinger pleased the Prelate of Fond du Lac by " repudiating 
the Papacy and dying excommunicate." Is he equally pleas- 
ing in his statement: "The Greek translator of the Aramaic 
text was obliged to use Petros and Petra; in the original, 
Cephas stood in each place, without change of gender. 'Thou 
art a stone, and on this stone,' etc., Cephas being both name 
and title "?t 

Robert Wilberforce, commenting on this text, says : " . • . 
in Syriac, as appears at present from the Peschito version, the 
term in each member of the sentence is identical. Had St. 
Augustine, for instance, known that our Lord's words were: 
' Thou art Cepho, and on this Cepho I will build My Church,* 
he would not have employed the argument he does in his Re- 
tractions." t 

Dr. Grafton assures us that he has read the work from 
which these passages are quoted. Was it insincerity or bad 
eyesight which caused him to adopt the contradictory state- 
ment? Dr. Thompson reminds us that insincerity has been a 
temptation to others. Commenting on this passage he says: 
"Protestants have betrayed unnecessary fears and have there- 
fore used all the hardihood of lawless criticism in their attempts 
to reason away the Catholic interpretation." ^ 



* Rejoindtr^ p. z8. 
t England amd thi Holy Set, By Spencer Jones, M.A. Longmans, p. 104. 
) Ibid, $ Mon^ttssifon, p. Z94. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Is Bishop Grafton Fair? 585 

THE APPEAL TO THE FATHERS. 

Having proved that Christ could not have referred to Peter 
in Matt xvi. 18, Dr. Grafton appeals to the Fathers to prove 
that his own interpretation is the correct one. 

''The majority of the Fathers/' he says, "refer the rock to 
Christ or Peter's confession of His Divinity. The quotation 
Father 0*Hern makes from St. Cyprian, that 'He who forsakes 
the Chair of St. Peter, upon whom the Church is built, let bim 
not feel confidence that he is in the Church of Christ,' is stated 
in the ante-Nicene Christian Library . . . as undoubtedly 
spurious!*^ 

Perhaps it will be news to Bishop Grafton to learn that 
two of the greatest living patristic scholars regard this quota- 
tion as undoubtedly genuine. 

A few years ago Dom John Chapman, O.S.B., made a care- 
ful examination of the earliest extant copies of St. Cyprian's 
letter, and, as a result, declared that it was St Cyprian him- 
self who made the marginal notes under dispute. The treatise 
by St. Cyprian on " Unity " was first written against Felicis- 
simus of Carthage, and later a copy was sent to assist Pope 
Cornelius to quell the Novatians in Rome, and this copy con- 
tained marginal notes that were finally embodied in the text 
This opinion has been endorsed by Dr. Harnack as follows : 

"In my judgment, the author (i>., Dom Chapman) is right 
. . . The interpolation is St. Cyprian*s own work . . « 
the conclusion forces itself upon the critic verily as the most 
probable solution. One may not only say it is unimpeachably 
certain, but one is justified in maintaining that it rests on the 
soundest proof. It is no longer open to any one to treat the 
group of passages as a discreditable Roman forgery.** \ 

Dr. Grafton's attempt to discredit the testimony of St. 
Cyprian is most unfortunate, for almost invariably where the 
saint refers to St Peter, it is in these words: "Peter, upon 
whom the Church is built" Let us look at some of these 
passages from St. Cyprian: 

"Peter, on whom the Church had been built by the Lord 
Himself."! 

"There speaks Peter, upon whom the Church was to be 
built:* % 

* RefHmder, pp. xo and 90. 
t The Princi of the Aposilts, p. zaS. Garrison, N. Y. : The Lamp Publishing Company. 
I Ep. W. ad Corml.t p« X78. $ £p. bdz. ad Pupian,^ p. 265. 



Digitized by 



Google 



586 Is BISHOP GRAFTON FAIRf [Aug., 

'^ There is one baptism and one Holy Ghost, and one 
Church, founded by Christ our Lord upon Peter, for an original 
and principle of unity/' * 

** For not even did Peter, whom the Lord chose the first, 
and upon whom He built His Church!* etcf 

" For first to Peter, upon whom He built the Churchy and 
from whom He appointed and showed that unity should 
spring/' t 

'' Peter, likewise, on whom the Church was founded by the 
good pleasure of the Lord/' ^ 

'' Upon that one (Peter) He builds His Church, and to him 
He assigns His sheep to be fed." || 

Origen is the next Father taken up by Dn Grafton, whom 
he tries to make a witness against Peter's Supremacy. 

But Origen, likewise, proves a singularly refractory witness. 

" Peter," he says, " was, by the Lord, called a rock, since 
to him is said: 'Thou art Peter, and upon this rock I will 
build My Church.' " f 

'^ Peter, upon whom is built Christ's Church, against which 
the gates of hell shall not prevail, has left behind him bat one 
epistle that is universally acknowledged." ** 

** See what is said by the Lord to that great foundation of 
the Church: 'O Thou of little faith, why didst thou doubt?'" 
(Matt. xiv. 3i).tt 

Dr. Grafton refers to a passage in the works of TertoHi^ 
but neglects to tell us that it was written after Tertullian had 
become a Montanist and had left the Church. We presume that 
even Dr. Grafton, who has written a whole book^l to prove 
that he is not only a Christian, but a Catholic, will hardly ac- 
cept his doctrine from Tertullian the Montanist. 

Speaking of the passage in question Dom Chapman says: 
^'This treatise is about his latest and most spiteful, writtefl 
when he had been some twenty years outside the Church." ^^ 

Tertullian, when a Catholic, wrote as follows: "Wassizy- 
thing hidden from Peter, who was called the rock whereon the 
Church was to be built ; who obtained the keys of the b'oE' 

* £p. Izx. adJmmuur. et Ep. Numid,^ p. 270. t Ep. Ixzi. ad Quimiitm, p' ^ 

X Ep. Ixxiii. ad Jubaian,, p. 280. $ De Bono Patieniittt P* 494« 

IDe UnitaU, p. 397. f T. III., Comm. in Matt., n. Z30, p. 927 {Alib, Tr. 35)* 

*» T. IV., in Joan.. Tom. V.. p. 95 {Ex. Eusth,, H. E.. VI.. c. 25). 
\\ T. II., Horn. V. in Exod., n. 4, col. 2, p. 145. ft CkHsHam and Caihilit* 

$$ BisMop Gort and the Anglican CkUms, Longmans, Green & Co. P. 50* 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Is Bishop Grafton Fairt 587 

dom of heaven, and the power of losing and binding in heaven 
and on earth?"* 

** I presume him (Peter) a Monogamist, by the Churchy which 
built upon him, etc"f 

Dr. Grafton further states that St. Hilary is ''among the 
Fathers who held that Christ, or the confession of His Divin- 
ity, was the rock." | But St. Hilary protests in these words: 
"For it was with Him so sacred a thing to su£fer for the sal- 
vation of the human race, as thus to designate with the re- 
proachful name, Satan, Peter, the first confessor of the Son of 
God, the foundation of the Church, the doorkeeper of the heavenly 
kingdom, and in His judgment on earth a judge of heaven."^ 

"The fear excited in the Apostles by the lowliness of the 
Passion (so that even the firm rock upon which the Church 
was to be built trembled), after the death and resurrection of 
the Lord ceased." || 

"O happy foundation of the Church, and a rock worthy 
of the building up of that which was to scatter the infernal 
laws, and the gates of hell, and all the bars of death." ^ 

Dr. Grafton claims St. Basil on his side, but we have the 
following testimony from this Father: "When we hear the 
name of Peter ... we at once . • • think of . . . 
him who on account of the pre-eminence of his faith received 
upon himself the building of the Church," ** 

" One also of these mountains was Peter, upon which rock 
the Lord promised to build His Church." ff 

St. Ambrose is taken up next. What could have tempted 
Dr. Grafton to cite this Father, who was so staunch a " Papal- 
ist," utterly escapes our comprehension. We could give pages 
of quotations from St. Ambrose in favor of Peter's Supremacy, 
but will have to content ourselves with the following: "It is 
that same Peter to whom He said : ' Thou art Peter, and upon 
this rock I will build My Church.* Therefore, where Peter is, 
there is the Church." || 

"For how could that be agitated, over which he, Peter, 
presided, in whom is the foundation of the Church ? " ^^ 

* De Pr€ucript, Hartt,^ n. 23, p. 209. t Dt Afono^amia, n. 8, p. 529. 

X Rejoinder t p. 2Z. $ Tract, in Ps. czli., n. 4, pp. 502-3, t. I. 

I Tract in Ps. cxli., n. 8, p. 603, 1. 1. 1[ Comm. in Matt., •. zvi., n. 7, pp. 749-50. 

** T. I., p. I. , z. II., Adu, £uHom,t n. 4, p. 340. 

tt T. I., p. II., Comm. in Esai., c. ii., n. 66, p. 604. 

tl T. I., in Ps. xl., n. 30, pp. 879-80. 

$$ T. L., Expos, in Luc. L. IV., n. 70, 71, 77, pp. 1353-4. 



Jigitized by 



Google 



588 IS BISHOP GRAFTON FAIR f [Aug., 

'• For they have not Petet^s inheritance who have not Petet^s 
chair:' • 

Dr. Grafton quotes St. Augustine as saying, in his Retrac- 
tions^ that '' Christ was the rock''; but since his interpretation 
was based, as he tells us, on a mistaken view of the Syriac 
language, we must agree with Wilberforce in saying that " had 
St. Augustine known that our Lord's words were 'Thou art 
Cepho, and on this Cepho I will build My Church,' he would 
not have employed the argument he does in his Retractions." 

Here is a passage St. Augustine never retracted, and no 
Catholic of to-day could express the teaching of the Church 
more concisely: 

'' I am kept in the Catholic Church by the consent of peo* 
pies and nations. By an authority begun with miracles, nour- 
ished by hope, increased by charity, confirmed by antiquity. 
By the succession of priests from the Chair of Peter the Apos- 
tle — to whom our Lord, after His resurrection, gave His sheep 
to be fed — down to the present Bishop. In fine, by that very 
name of Catholic which this Church has alone held possession 
of; so that though heretics would fain have called themselves 
Catholics, yet to the inquiry of a stranger, * Where is the meet- 
ing of the Catholic Church held ? ' no one of them would dare 
to point out his own basilica."! 

St. Cyril of Alexandria is cited by Dr. Grafton as referring 
the rock to ** the most firm faith of the disciples." | 

The distinguished scholar, Waterworth, however, says : This 
passage **\s not Cyril's, but by another author subsequent to 
St. Cyril." § 

This opinion reaches a high degree of probability from a 
consideration of the following passage from St. Cyril: ''He 
suffers him (Peter) no longer to be called Simon, • . . but 
by a title suitable to the thing; He changed his name into 
Peter, from the word Petra (rock); for on him He was after- 
wards to found His Church." || 

Again we find St. Cyril addressing Pope Celestine as " Arch- 
bishop of the Universe." IT 

Would Dr. Grafton thus address his Holiness, Pope Pius X. ? 

Dr. Grafton quotes St. Gregory the Great in a passage 

• T. IL, De Pan, L. V., c. vi., n. 33, p. 399. t C^n, Ep. Manich,, I., 5-6. 

X RejoindeTt p. 22. $ Faith of Catholics, Vol. II., p. 47. 

n T. LV., Comm. in Joan., im loc,, p. 131. 
H Horn, in Deip., p. 384, od, Aubert, 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] /^ Bishop Grafton Fair f 589 

which must be sorely strained to seem favorable to the Grafton 
idea. St. Gregory, of coarse, is unequivocal in his teaching, as, 
for example: "By the voice of the Lord the care of the whole 
Church is committed to Peter, the head of the Apostles.'' * 

Has Dr. Grafton never read the famous passage from Mil- 
man in reference to the times of St. Gregory ? ** It is impos- 
sible to conceive what had been the confusion, the lawlessness, 
the chaotic state of the Middle Ages, without the mediaeval 
Papacy; and of the mediaeval Papacy the real father is Greg- 
ory the Great.'' 

Even Dr. Littledale does not lay hands on St. Jerome, as 
Dr. Grafton boldly does. We commend to Dr. Grafton this 
from Littledale: ''The most direct and cogent passage in favor 
of Papalism in the whole of the Fathers is this from St. Jerome, 
in an epistle to Pope Damasus, written A. D. 376: 'I speak 
with the successor of the Fisherman and the disciples of the 
Cross. I, following no chief save Christ, am counted in com- 
munion with your Blessedness, that is, with the chair of Peter. 
On that rock I know the Church is built ; whoso eats the Lamb 
outside this house is profane." f 

We have now examined Dr. Grafton's chief witnesses among 
the Fathers, and find that all are in perfect accord with Cath- 
olic teaching. If they have at times referred to Christ as The 
Rock on whom the Church is built, it is in that primary sense, 
admitted by all Catholics, and which St. Paul had in mind when 
he wrote: "Other foundation can no man lay than that is laid, 
which is Christ Jesus." | 

" It must be clearly understood," says Father Ryder, " that 
we in nowise reject the application of The Rock to Christ, or 
to faith in Christ We maintain that such interpretation does 
not at all militate against its application directly to St. Peter; 
not indeed to his person, but to his office." 

St. Peter is the secondary foundation, so made by Christ 
Himself — the visible Head on earth, representing the chief and 
invisible Head, Jesus Christ in heaven. 

THE FORGED DECRETALS. 

Our seeker after truth tells us that the real basis of the 
Papacy is not to be found in Scripture at all, or in the Patristic 

* Lib, IV., Ep. 32. t Plain Reasons Against Joining thi Chunk o/Rome^ p. 194. 

% I, Cor. iii. zz. 



Digitized by 



Google 



590 Is BISHOP GRAFTON FAIR t [ Aug.^ 

interpretation of the Petrine texts, bat in the *' Forged Decree- 
tals which Gratian worked into the Canon Law of the Church/' 
He continues: ''We ask our readers: Do you think that Al- 
mighty God, if He wanted to develop the supremacy of the 
Pope, would have resorted to man's lies to do it? Does God 
need man's lies to carry out His plans and do His work?''* 

The Forced Decretals themselves furnish the best answer 
to Dr. Grafton's question, for the Papacy was in full bloom 
centuries before the Decretals were thought of, and continues 
in undiminished vigor long after these forgeries have been dis- 
covered and rejected. But what is the history of the Forged 
Decretals f When were they compiled, and where and by 
whom, and why? 

It is admitted that they cannot have originated earlier than 
the year 845, nor later than 857. From end to end they 
proclaim their birthplace to have been not Rome but Western 
France. It is plain, too, that these Decretals were not the 
work of Rome or Rome's Bishop. Their compiler was either a 
provincial bishop or one acting in his name and for his bene- 
fit. Modem writers are agreed that the immediate object of 
the Decretals was to win respect for Episcopal authority. If 
they sometimes touch on the prerogative of the Pope it is 
never in the interests of Rome, but always in those of the 
bishops. The Decretals did not obtain any official footing un- 
til the middle of the eleventh century, and never exercised any 
serious influence on the government of the Church. So far as 
we have been able to ascertain, there is no writer of to-day, 
except Dr. Grafton, who holds that Papal Supremacy was built 
up through the instrumentality of the Forged Decretals. Dn 
Gore, Anglican Bishop of Birmingham, though he has written 
bitterly against the Catholic Church, does not agree with Dr. 
Grafton in his allegation that ''crimes innumerable, the greed 
of worldly power, forgeries and lies^ marked the rise of the 
Papacy." t (Italics are ours.) 

Bishop Gore decisively declares: ''No one can fairly con- 
template the greatness of the Papacy, or consider how vast 
the position it occupies in the whole of history, without being 
satisfied that it is something more than could have ever been 
created by the ambition or power of individual Popes or by 
the evil forces of injustice and fraud. It is one of those great 

^RHointUTt pp. 30-3Z. il^ut,, p. 50/ 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Is Bishop Grafton Fair? 591 

historic growths which indicate a divine purpose latent in the 
tendencies of things and the circumstances of the world/'* 

This statement should really be taken as final, for Bishop 
Gore would not have conceded so much unless historic truth 
and the consent of the world's scholarship had compelled it. 
Nevertheless, we offer it to Dr. Grafton only tentatively, hav- 
ing no means at hand whereby we can know whether Dr. 
Gore belongs in Dr. Grafton's mind to the corps of belliger- 
ent flies. 

PETER IN ROME. 

Was Peter in Rome? This question has been considered 
for the last twenty-five years as thoroughly disposed of and 
settled. But, ** consider the evidence," cries Dr. Grafton. ** Holy 
Sctipture does not state that he was there. . . . And can 
you suppose, that Almighty God will condemn His children 
... for not submitting to the Papacy when He does not 
tell us that Peter was at Rome ? " f 

''The church which is at Babylon saluteth you,"| is one 
of St. Peter's own contributions to Holy Scripture. The 
Speakers^ Commentary ^ edited by the Anglican Archbishop of 
York, makes the following comment on this text: 

''We have to remark • • • that all ancient authorities 
are unanimous in the assertion that the later years of his 
(Peter's) life were passed in the west of the Roman Empire. 
W$ find an absoluU consensus of ancient interpreters that ' Baby'- 
Ion ' must be understood as equivalent to Rome. We adopt with- 
out the least misgiving this explanation of the word as alone 
according with the mind of the Apostle and also the testi- 
mony of the early Church." 

Again Dr. Ellicott, Anglican Bishop of Gloucester and 
Bristol, in his commentary on the same text, says: ** Nothing 
but Protestant prejudice can stand against the historical evidence 
that Peter sojourned and died in Rome.^*% 

Rev. William W. Whiston, an Anglican theologian, says: 
" That St. Peter was at Rome is so clear in Christian antiquity 
that it is a shame for any Protestant to have to confess that any 
Protestant ever denied it.** || 

In reply to Dr. Grafton's assertion that "there is slight 

^Hmmam CtUJUlie Claims, p. zo6. t Rmindtt, p. s8. 1 1. Peter v. 13. 

% The Bible Commentazy, Uc cit. I 3fgmnrt, 2750. 



Digitized by 



Google 



593 Is BISHOP Grafton fair? [Aug., 

evidence for St. Peter's being at Rome/' * we submit the names 
of the following non^Catholic writers who unanimously agree 
that Peter was in Rome, and died Bishop of Rome: Credner, 
Bleek, Wieseler, Meyer, Hilgenfield, Rebab, Mangold, Grotius, 
Cave, Lardiner, Whitby, Macknight, Hales, Claudius, Mynster, 
Schaff, Neander, Steiger, De Wette, and Lightfoot But why 
multiply authorities ? '' Nay, an' thou'lt mouth, I'll rant as well 
as thou I " 

ANGLICAN ORDERS. 

Dr. Grafton solemnly tells us that the new form of ordina- 
tion was introduced into the Edwardine Ordinal, not because 
the so-called Reformers had any idea of denying the '' Catholic 
doctrine of the Eucharist, hut because th$ old one was am-- 
N£uous" t 

This is really a remarkable statement when we pause to 
consider how the change itself, because of its ambi£uify, plunged 
the Church of England into a state of chaotic confusion re- 
garding the priesthood, from which it has never since emerged. 
Few clergymen of the Anglican Church to-day agree as to just 
what the powers of the priesthood are. Some, like Dr. Grafton, 
are copy-cat Catholics, laying claim to everything the Catholic 
priest holds, while others are {out-and-out Protestants, denying 
everything, and each claiming that his interpretation is the 
true one. 

"We think," Dr. Grafton continues, "we have fairly an- 
swered Father O'Hern's misstatement that the Anglican Orders 
had been pronounced invalid by the Greeks, Russians, and Old 
Catholics." t 

What answer does Dr. Grafton give ? The private opinion 
of private individuals in these various churches. Now the fact 
that these individuals consider Anglican Orders to be valid no 
more proves that such is the official teaching of their Church 
than the fact of Dr. Grafton's belief in the Real Presence proves 
that such is the official teaching of the Anglican Church. It 
is a matter of historical record, which Anglicans know but too 
well, that these Churches have never officially recognized the 
validity of Anglican Orders. Let us hear the testimony of the 
one living scholar, best qualified to speak, who has examined 
all the original documents in the Vatican library concerning 

*Re;9indert p. 38. f Ibid,, pp. 49-50. %Ibid,, p. 43. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Is BISHOP Grafton Fair? 593 

Anglican Orders, and whom Dr. Grafton will not dare to ac- 
cuse of making a misstatement: 

''The early English Reformers rejected the Sacrifice of the 
Mass and all that the notion implied — altars, vestments, and 
priesthood. They drew up a rite of ordaining ministers, in 
which, by exclusion, this notion was strongly emphasized, and 
which was wholly diflferent from the ancient Catholic rite. Fur- 
ther, there can be no doubt whatever that those who were re« 
sponsible for drawing up the rite, and those who first used it, 
would have rejected with scorn and by the use of the strongest 
language, any idea of making bishops and priests in the Catho- 
lic sense. Why, therefore, will their successors in religion^— 
the members of the English Established Church, or those bodies 
which sprang from it — take it amiss if Pope Leo XIIL, as the 
result of his examination of the question, came to agree with 
their forefathers in all this, and declared that, in his opinion, 
they succeeded in their design ? He is not, be it remembered, 
the first who has come to this decision; for the same judg^ 
ment had already been passed upon the validity of Anglican Or- 
ders by tJie Greeks and Russians, and by the Jansenists and Old 
Catholics:' • 

Dr. Grafton must have heard of that embarrassing little 
affair in connection with the Pan- Anglican Congress of 1908. 
Dr. Blyth, Anglican Bishop of Jerusalem, on that occasion, 
addressed a communication to the Eastern Patriarch of Jerusa- 
lem regarding the ** formal recognition between the two churches 
of the validity of Holy Baptism and Holy Orders.'' Here are 
some extracts from the answer of the Jerusalem Patriarch: 

''We cannot give an affirmative reply to the question con- 
tained in this communication about the validity of Baptism and 
Orders in the Anglican Church. . . . We have belonging 
to us men who have looked deeply into these questions, and 
have demonstrated, both from canonical and other considera- 
tions the impossibility of the complete recognition of the valid- 
ity of both these Sacraments which are consummated in the 
Anglican Church after a method of its own. . . . Various 
reasons do not permit the Eastern Orthodox Church to accept, 
without being on her guard, the validity of the Baptism of 
Anglicans. . • . The same reasons hold good in relation to 

* Tki QuitH^n 0/ Am^liean OrdinaiUns, By Abbot Gasquet, O.S.B., D.D. Notre 
Dame, Ind. : The Are Maria Press. 
VOU LXXXIX.^38 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



594 ^^ BISHOP Grafton fair f [Aag. 

the question of the Orders of Anglicans. . • . Our Church 
. • • has the profoundest sentiment of rigid orthodoxy ^ and 
that which is befitting in order to preserve this deposit uninjured.*^ 
(Italics our own.) 

The general drift of this letter convinced the Pan-Anglican 
Congress that Rome was not solitary and alone in its distrust 
of Anglican Orders. 

Though we have been able to analyze only a few of the 
leading statements made in Dr. Grafton's Rejoinder, we have 
ourselves begun so seriously to doubt the perfect sincerity of 
Dr. Grafton's desire for ''elucidation of the truth/' that we 
mast await further assurances from him on this point before 
we can proceed. 

The quotation from St. Cyprian, with which our former 
article* closed, was rejected by Dr. Grafton ''as undoubtedly 
spurious." We shall close this one with a quotation which we 
know to be genuine: The writer is a Jesuit, as staunch a re- 
presentative of the Catholic mind as St. Cyprian himself. In 
speaking of the dishonest methods which often characterize the 
adversaries of the Catholic Church, he says: 

" Te give their accusations some show of plausibility, they 
have had to tamper with the text or grossly misrepresent the 
author's meaning. Sheer ignorance would be a poor palliation 
of such conduct, and the conviction is forced upon one that 
writers like Dr. Littledale" (and must we insert, like Dr. 
Grafton, too?) "make playthings of the minds of men. They 
trifle with human weakness and have recourse to the old de- 
vice: 'Cry it loud, my masters, and cry it often; there must 
always be some who cannot, and some who will not, investi- 
gate the truth of your assertions.' " f 

* " Bishop Grafton and Pro-RomaBism/' Thk Catholic World, Febniaiy. Z909. 
t Salrator M. Brandi, S.J., Thi Catholic Mind, November aa, Z903, p. 3a. 



Digitized by 



Google 




HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER. 

BY KATHARINE TYNAN. 

Chapter XVII. 

THE SHADOW OF FEAR. 

}OME months had passed since that afternoon when 
Miss Grantley had called upon Lady Eugenia 
Capel, and had returned to find her nephew 
putting his things together with an air of breath- 
less hurry. 

** I am going to offer myself for active service, Aunt Sophia/' 
he said, looking up at her from the portmanteau into which 
he was laying all manner of things higgledy-piggledy. " I 
hope I shall be accepted. I'm tired of being a carpet* soldier. 
I want to win some glory if I can." 

She sat down heavily in one of the chintz-covered chairs. 
He was too excited to notice how stone-gray was her face, 
and how a perspiration had come out in little beads upon it. 

''I am going up to town to-night, lest I should lose my 
chances/' he said. ''I wouldn't be left at home for anything. 
Fancy going back to India to play in gymkhanas and dance 
at Government House when there is fighting to be done. I 
have never had an opportunity before. I want to win glory 
if I can." 

She gazed at the handsome head bent now in the task of 
getting an ill -packed, over-full portmanteau to close. By some 
strange intuition she could read his heart. If he had said : " I 
want to win glory for my dear" she could not have under- 
stood more plainly. His face was irradiated. Of late it had 
been gloomy. 

''Why didn't you get a man to do that for you?" she 
asked. "You are ruining your clothes; yet you were always 
so particular about them." 

" In time of peace," he said ; " now it is time of war. I had 
to do it myself. I couldn't stand by while a servant did it. 



Digitized by 



Google 



596 Her Mother's daughter [Aug., 

I shan't need very much. I am leaving most of my things 
behind/' 

''Yes, my dear boy. You will find them all when you 
come back/' 

She was tolerably certain that he would not find her; but 
the house was to be his. He would find it waiting for its 
master. She would leave it so that the servants should stay 
on — they were old and faithful servants. She almost opened 
her lips to speak; then closed them again. She would not 
send him away with the knowledge that he was leaving her 
to die alone. Why, for the matter of that, she had lived alone. 
Even to Godfrey she had been chary of manifestations of 
affection. She had sheltered him in youth and paid for his 
education; but she had not tried to keep him at home with 
her as another lonely woman might. He had gone into the 
army, and when the time came for his regiment to go to 
India he had gone with it. He had chosen the life of soldier- 
ing for himself, and she had not protested, nor urged, as a 
softer woman might, the claim of her loneliness. Now that he 
was to have his first chance of active service, she was not go- 
ing to hamper and hinder him with the thought of a sick old 
woman of his blood, who had been like a mother to him, dy- 
ing alone. 

'' You will say good-bye for me to all my friends ? " he 
said, standing up and shaking himself. ''Nesta was out driv- 
ing with Moore when the news came. I couldn't wait till they 
got back. I will write from town. I am very glad that you 
and Nesta are reconciled. You will miss me less." 

''Now you are talking nonsense, Godfrey. Nesta and I 
had never much in common. I shall miss you, of course ; but 
you will come back. And, now, where do you suppose I have 
been?" 

" I haven't been thinking about it. But to be sure you 
have been driving. You keep too much at home. It will do 
you good being out this glorious weather. I wish you could 
go out more." 

" I went to call on Lady Eugenia Capel." 

He was busy with his despatch box, fitting a key carefully 
into the lock, but the color came to his cheeky and Miss Grant- 
ley saw it 

"She is in love with you, Godfrey," she said. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her mother's Daughter 597 

He dropped the bunch of keys with a rattle. 

'^You are mistaken; she is in love with Stanhope/' he 
said frowning. 

" She is in love with you." 

<'Did she tell you so?'' ] 

"Now I come to think of it, I don't believe she did. But | 

we talked of you, and she was a woman in love. Godfrey, all 
I have will be yours. I was going to give it to you even in 
my lifetime, that you might be happy with her." 

He came over to her and kissed her. 

" You are too good to me Aunt Sophia ; you always were," 
he said. "But, of course, I could not let you strip yourself 
of your money for me. I confess I have been presumptuous 
enough to lift my eyes to Lady Eugenia Capel. If I live to 
come back I shall have something to o£fer her — I shall be less 
unworthy." 

Two months had passed and Miss Grantley was dead and 
buried more than a month. The Priory, with the old sta£F of 
servants, stood waiting for the new master. She had not died 
in loneliness. Nesta Moore had been often with her — would 
have been with her constantly, if it were not that the dying 
woman seemed to prefer Lady Eugenia Capel, with whom she 
had formed a close tie of friendship, bewildering to the unin- 
itiated. 

She had died, as she had hoped to do, almost without lying 
down; had returned to her Maker, as she had desired, un- 
marked by the surgeon's knife. She had gone very quickly in 
the end, the merciful end hastened by a week of bitter weather 
in which she had taken a chill. 

Nesta had been with her at the last. An hour or two be- 
fore she died she awoke out of a doze, and her eyes were 
bright. 

" You have that five hundred pounds I gave you, Nesta ? " 
she asked. 

"I have it quite safely." 

" Keep it safely. How can we tell but you might need it ? 
You are as safe as any mortal can be; at the worst, Godfrey 
would take care of you. But I might have made it more. I 
bope I did not do wrong in not making it more." 

Nesta assured her that she had not done wrong; and Miss 

uigitized by VjOOQ IC 



598 Her MoTHEFfs Daughter [Aug., 

Grantley listened, looking at her with eyes in which the bright- 
ness died like a sinking candle* flame. 

When all was over. Lord Mount-Eden and his daughter 
went away on a tour round the world which had been planned 
for some time and only postponed by Lady Eugenia's determin- 
ation to stay with Miss Grantley to the end. No one could 
say that the young lady did not need the change. She had 
looked harassed and worried out of all proportion to such a 
thing as the quiet dying of an old woman who was no kin to 
her and but a recent friend. Few suspected her absorption in 
the news from the seat of war, where already there had been 
two bloody engagements and Captain Grantley's name had 
once been mentioned in despatches. 

But she was of the heroic stuff, and she would not keep 
her father when he was anxious to go ; so they had been gone 
some weeks before the time came when Nesta Moore was first 
smitten by her great fear. 

James Moore had taken a chill that summer evening, when 
he had plunged into the river to save his wife and afterwards 
had delayed to change his wet garments. He had taken a 
chill, to his own indignant disgust; but, while he was obliged 
to admit that he was more vulnerable than he thought, noth- 
ing in the world would induce him to treat himself like any 
ordinary mortal. 

An unpleasant little cough settled on him, which became 
worse with the approach of winter. He had never been ill in 
his life; and he was as difficult to manage as such men are 
apt to be. He would not take doctors* stuffs; he would not 
stay indoors and nurse his cold; he would not take any of 
the ordinary precautions. 

Just at that time the mills had received their first Govern- 
ment contract. The hands were working overtime, and fresh 
hands had to be brought in. Houses were springing up in 
many directions to receive the newcomers. Shops were being 
built to supply their needs. A Methodist meeting-house had 
arrived, and a Baptist was in process of building. Valley was 
busier than a hive. There were to be baths, recreation halls, 
a laboratory, a library, for the use of the hands. James Moore 
had gone for his plans to a certain garden^city built by a 
Northern manufacturer for the use of his employees. He was 
going to make Valley a wonder of its kind. 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909-] Her Mother's Daughter 599 

''The hands will serve me twice as well if they're healthy 
and contented/' he said to his brothers, who were somewhat 
alarmed at the great proposals, " and I am quite willing that 
they should be the better of our prosperity/' 

All the time his cough increased and grew upon him. 
When he had a fit of coughing in their presence, his brothers 
would look at each other with such haggard faces as woul(| 
win any one's pity. They had asked him in vain to see a 
doctor. 

" It is the woolen stu£f and fluff in the air makes me cough/' 
he said. ''I shall be all right in a day or two." 

He was not one to be persuaded against his will. The time 
came when the brothers looked in each other's faces and ac- 
knowledged with bitterness in their hearts that an appeal to 
the woman they detested and misjudged was the only way. 

Dick Moore had avoided Nesta more markedly since the 
day when, to please her husband, she had thanked him with 
averted eyes for saving her child. He had muttered in reply 
something about Stella being ''Jim's kid," as though Nesta 
might think that it had been done for her. So it was Stephen 
that came on the embassage. Stephen, who could be so gen- 
tle with birds and animals, who might perhaps in the begin- 
ning have liked Nesta if he had not been so much influenced 
by the other. 

"You should make Jim see a doctor," he said, shufiling 
from one foot to another. "He has a nasty cough." 

" Do you think I haven't asked him ? " Nesta returned, 
black fear coming down like a cloud upon her heart. 

" If you want him to live," said Stephen scowling, " you'll 
use women's ways to get him to listen. Might happen the 
cough 'ud turn to pneumonia. Make him see a doctor." 

If he had been looking at her he would have seen the fear 
in her face; but her husband's brothers never looked at her 
when they were in her presence. 

"I shall do my best," she said, in a small, terrified voice. 
"Indeed I have tried; but he wouldn't listen to me. You 
think the cough is so bad as — all that?" 

" If you cared as a wife should care," Stephen Moore said, 
without lifting his head, " you wouldn't ask : ' Is it so bad ? ' 
You'd know how bad it was." 

But Nesta scarcely heard him. If she had thought of him 

Digitized by VjOOQ IC 



6oo HER MOTHER* S DAUGHTER [AiJ£r*# 

at all, she would have taken the speech as a part of the ill- 
conditioned attitude of the brothers towards her. But in the 
terror that had come upon her there was no room for anjr 
other thought than that her beloved was in danger. 



Chapter XVIIL 
the secret journey. 

To think that they — the two who hated and misjudged her 
— should have had to plant that sword of fear in her heart 
She wrung her hands when she thought upon it. She had been 
comforting herself with false comfort, because he was strong 
and big and bonny and had never had an illness in his life. 
And because he had given reasons for the cough, such reasons 
as had not deceived his brothers, and had put her o£F with 
promises that when spring came and the great rush of things 
was over they would go away to the South, just themselves 
and the child. They would have their long- postponed honey- 
moon : in the clear air, under the spotless skies, he would get 
rid of the dust that was in his throat. She must be patient 
In a little while he would do all she asked. Now he was tco 
hard-pressed. There was no time to see a doctor — no time to 
be careful. 

Aunt Betsy came in on Nesta when she was in the cold 
grip of the fear. She had made a great expedition for her, 
because she, too, was anxious about Jim*s troublesome cough. 

''Put your arms about his neck, dearie. Coax him. A 
man can't resist the wife he loves as Jim loves you, if she but 
takes him the right way. My bonny boy!'' said the old 
woman, and the falling note on which she concluded made 
Nesta tremble like a leaf. 

She pleaded with her husband at the first opportunity; 
and this time her pleading was not in vain. He confessed at 
4ast that the cough had left him with a certain lassitude, which 
was a new thing in his experience. He had heats at night 
and awoke tired. Yet there was something he must do before 
he could find time to rest He was buying out a rival com- 
pany ; taking over their premises ; going to run their mills 
with his own. It entailed a deal which he could delegate to 
no one. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her mother's Daughter 601 

''Let it be safely accomplished, Nesta/* he said, ''and 
Madeira will soon make me all right. But I will see a doctor 
if you like. You shall take me up to town next week. Wait 
till I see— Tuesday, Wednesday, Thursday, Friday^I think I 
can n^anage Friday.'* 

She was glad to get so much from him, and did not press 
him further; only living in terror that, after all, he might not 
go to the doctor's on the Friday. 

However he did, and she went with him. It was character- 
istic of his attitude towards her that he saw the doctor alone, 
leaving her in the waiting* room. 

It seemed a long time that he was away from her, behind 
that deeply- recessed, mahogany door, in the wall covered with 
a red flock paper, which was as a door to the judgment»hall 
to Nesta. She sat listening with her very heart for the turn- 
ing of the handle in the door which should preface her hus- 
band's coming back to her. She sat at a table covered with 
the Christmas numbers of papers and magazines, gaily-colored 
and with an intention of jollity. There were other people in 
the room. A pale child opposite to her lay against his moth- 
er's arm with an air of weakness, and could not be induced 
to look at the gaily-colored pictures. Every time be coughed 
his mother pressed him a little closer to her side and a tremor 
shook her frame. 

At last the door, which had let out so many reprieved or 
sentenced to death, opened and James Moore came out. He 
smiled at Nesta as he came towards her; but to her terrified 
fancy he was pale. Yet his whisper was reassuring. 

"Nothing too bad, little one," he said. "I've got to be 
careful and we must spend the spring out of England, since 
we can afford to do it. Doctors are great humbugs. If you 
were to believe them, the poor man would never recover, for 
the poor man could not do the things they prescribe for their 
patients; yet, I daresay, the poor man pulls through as often 
as the rich." 

" Did he say you were to rest ? " 

"He gave me that impossible prescription. I shall not 
rest while I am here. But after Christmas we shall get away 
somewhere where I shall find it easy to laze. We will loaf 
through the spring, you and I and Stella. Where shall it be. 
Nest ? " 



Digitized by 



Google 



603 HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER [Aug.» 

Daring their lunch at a smart hotel and in the train going 
home they talked of where the spring should be spent; and 
at intervals the cough shook James Moore's big frame. 

''It is nothing, nothing/' he said. ''Yon shall see how I 
will throw it off when I get out of this murk/' 

But Nesta was not satisfied. At night when her husband 
slept, his sleep broken now and again by the rattling cough, 
she lay awake, contemplating or trying to contemplate, for 
her soul shrank back in panic, the wreck and ruin of a life 
without Jim. 

After a day or two she could not endure the suspense, and, 
since business took her husband away for the better part of 
two days, she made an expedition to London on her own ac- 
count and saw the lung specialist. 

"Your husband," he said, looking at her kindly, "has a 
splendid frame and a splendid constitution. With care he should 
throw off the cough which he has unfortunately contracted, A 
cough is always a serieus matter if it continues." 

He looked at her for a moment as though considering. 
Then he asked if there was consumption in James Moore's 
family. 

" You are not to be frightened by the question," he added. 
" We doctors have to search in all possible directions for facts 
that may have a bearing on our patients' health." 

"I have never heard of such a thing," Nesta said. "I 
used to be very delicate myself, and it was feared that I might 
be going into consumption, but I have grown very strong 
since then." 

" You look perfectly healthy," the doctor said slowly, " per- 
fectly healthy. Let me see your husband again before he 
goes. He promised me another visit And do not delay about 
getting away. It has been an open winter so far. We may 
expect the bitter weather after Christmas." 

" I will do my best," said Nesta, only half- comforted. 
" But I cannot always make my husband do what he wills not 
to." 

The doctor laughed. 

"No, indeed, I should think not. A very dominant man, 
I should say. A most remarkable and striking personality." 

When Nesta arrived in a crush of travelers at Burbridge, 
the station for Outwood, she was too occupied with her own 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER 603 

thoughts to take mach heed of the press on the platform along 
which she hurried, to the little gate that led out into the wet 
country road. The visit to the doctor was a secret one, to be 
hidden from her husband, so she kept her veil down, and in 
the mourning she was wearing for her great aunt, she might 
easily have escaped observation in the ilMit, small station. 

As she hurried along, her bead bent before the wind, she 
did not notice Dick Moore coming towards her on the path- 
way. She brushed against him in fact, and hurried on faster 
than before. She was not accustomed to be out in the dark- 
ness by herself and she was vaguely frightened of those who 
were out with her. 

After he had passed her he turned round and stared— 
stared a second — and then followed her. Up the steep incline 
from the railway station into the Main Street of the little 
town. In front of the inn, the Three Widgeons, which had 
lately put on a new red-brick front that sadly marred its 
ancient beauty, she stopped and lifted her veil the better to 
read the legend on one of the windows which told that post- 
ing was done by the inn. Her face was full in the cheerful 
light that streamed from the bar-parlor and the man lurking 
in the shadow watched her with an expression which was the 
incarnation of hatred. 

Chapter XIX. 

THE END OF ALL THINGS. jv 

1'' 

The small sense of comfort which Nesta derived from her %, 

visit to the doctor did not last her long. Her husband came 
back from his expedition, a little weaker, more languid; his 
cough more persistent. Rest and care were the only prescrip- 
tion the doctor had given him ; they seemed impossible to him, 
so long as this business of the amalgamation of the mills re- 
mained unsettled. 

For the next few weeks he worked with feverish activity, 
as though he foresaw the night close at hand when he might 
not work. It was always a little while longer, a little more to 
be done, and he would let Nesta take him away to the South 
and a long, long rest. 

Meanwhile it became ever more and more apparent to those 
about him that a term was coming to the strenuous life. His 

uigitized by VjOOQIC 



604 HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER [Ang., 

wife carried a heart heavy as stone in her breast. His brothers 
were so haggard and piteous that they would have moved her 
to tears if she had any tears to weep. She had none to weep 
for them or for herself. She said to herself that when the 
hour came in which Jim should be taken from her she must 
surely die, and what» then, would become of the child? Only 
for the child she would have taken comfort from the atrophy 
that seemed to have come upon her life, the loss of appetite 
and sleepi the weakness, the weariness. If she and Jim could 
only go together 1 But then there was the child. What would 
become of their child, hers and Jim's, if both father and 
mother were taken ? 

The day came, all too soon, when James Moore confessed 
himself beaten. 

One morning, after a restless, exhausting night, he thought 
he would like to stay in bed. 

'^I shan't be too long dying, Nesta," he said. ''I want 
you to remember me big and strong and the happiest fellow in 
the world having you, not as a sick and querulous invalid. 
That London doctor told me I had the symptoms of consump- 
tion. He talked of cures and the natural vigor of my consti- 
tution and so on. He said I was the last man in the world to 
be a victim to consumption, and wondered how the foe could 
have slipped in 'past such well-guarded gates. Well, Nesta, 
we shall not dislodge him now. He has the keys of the for- 
tress. But I have made things right for you and the child. 
Stella will be very rich one day. I have been killing myself 
securing her fortune, and I am dead-tired/' 

During the weeks that were left he talked much in this 
strain. His wife sat in dumb despair, which took little heed 
of the things he said about his money. If only she and Jim 
could tramp the world together — in rags, but together — she 
would be the happiest woman in the world. Without him, with- 
out her darling, her hero, her king, she would be forever des- 
olate. 

The brothers came and went, took his instructions about 
one thing and another — ^for his mind was yet clear and fixed 
upon bis business — and, standing by his sofa or his bed, had 
tiie burning, unslaked eyes of souls in torture. They were 
uglier than ever, lean and haggard and fierce ; and their e£Forts 
to step softly in the sick room and to subdue their rough 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her MoTHEies daughter 605 

voices, which in these days were cracked and hoarse, moved 
the little brown, kind, pious nurse to the profonndest pity. It 
was one of the saddest cases Sister Mary had ever met with 
in all her professional experience, the great, splendid, beautiful 
man galloping along the road to the grave and leaving such 
broken hearts behind him. 

The light burnt fiercely while it lasted. It was not far 
from extinction when James Moore forced bis wife to listen to 
and to understand what he had to say about the disposition 
of his affairs. He sent away the nurse for a little while with 
orders that they were not to be disturbed. It was late after- 
noon and the darkness had fallen except for a band of blood- 
red light which lay in the west beyond the tree- tops, and showed 
through the diamond panes of the window. There was only 
firelight and the shaded lamp in the room; and the splendor 
in the sky deepened and grew more lustrous in color and was 
reflected on the walls of the bedroom. 

Sitting by the bedside, with her head upon her husband's 
pillow, Nesta Moore remembered that evening, barely a year 
ago when she had first seen Outwood Manor; and there had 
been just such a boding sky as to-night filling all the windows 
with phantom fires. She remembered how in this room she 
had had a foretaste of what she was now enduring. She re- 
membered how James Moore had said that they would banish 
the ghosts and set up their own hearthfires in the house. 
Well, they were but adding another to the ghosts of the house, 
a ghost of ruined happiness as terrible as any that the old 
house had known in all its years of existence. Now she knew 
why she had been terrified. The old ghosts they had banished 
for awhile had come and sat down by their hearth, and the 
fire they had lit upon it was dust and ashes, dust and ashes. 

''You had better let this house. Nest,** the dying man's 
voice went on. ''You would be lost in it without me. Stella 
can live in it when she is grown up and married. I should not 
like it to be sold. You must live where it will be least lonely, 
dear. I shall not fetter you in any way. You always bated 
Valley. You can get quite beyond sight and hearing of the 
mills, if you like.'* 

She shivered as though he had struck her. A low moan of 
wind rose and shook the doors and windows and cried in the 
chimney. 



Digitized by 



Google 



6o6 HER MOTHER* S DAUGHTER [Aug., 



"1 



^ It will be a rough night/' he sighed^ ** and I shall go ont 
with the torn of the tide. Those two poor fellows will be here 
presently. Yon must be good to them. Nest. This will nearly 
kill them. They have lived in me, never for themselves. They 
have missed all that men care for, their only interest in life 
being to serve me. Had ever man snch devotion?'* 

He paused, tired out with the speech he had made, pain- 
fully and with painful breaths between the words. She felt that 
she ought to speak, but what could she say that would not 
disturb his dying moments? She could have forgiven them 
because they loved him, but they would never forgive her. 
Through all the dazed misery of those last weeks she had seen 
that they looked at her with hatred. What had she done — 
poor woman — except to love their brother who had loved her 
—that they should hate her so much ? 

She kissed his hand instead of speaking; and after a little 
the laboring voice began again. 

''They will take care of you, Nest, of you and the child. 
I have left you entirely in their hands. Poor little child, what 
would you know of business matters? They will toil for you 
and the child as they have for me. And you will have no 
risks, Nest, no risks at all. I have taught them to be wise 
and prudent. They will not do big things as I would have 
done ; but they will not waste my work. They are free to act 
as they will. They know all my wishes regarding you. You 
will be safe in their hands.'' 

She lifted her face from where it had lain and it was paler 
than before. The scarlet from the west lay now in great gouts 
and splashes on the bed and the bed- curtains. 

'' Do you mean, Jim," she said, '' that we shall be altogether 
in their hands, Stella and I ? " 

For herself she would not have cared. For the child, even 
In this moment of desolation, she could plead and struggle 
against his indomitable will. 

''That is it. Nest. I leave everything in their hands. It 
will be just as though I were there and watching them. It will 
be Moore Brothers still." 

"Jim, Jim," she groaned, " do not leave me to them. They 
hate me. As much as they love you they hate me. They 
wrong me in their thoughts." 

He raised a weak hand to stroke her hair. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her Mother's Daughter 607 

^'Yott never understood thenii Nest; you never did them 
justice. They are as faithful as my dog. Because they are 
ugly and misshapen, so that no woman will ever love them; 
because they are set apart by their unlikeness to other men; 
those things ought to make your pitiful woman's heart gentle 
to them.'' 

*' Do not leave us to them. Jim ; do not leave us to them. 
They will have no mercy on me/' she cried. 

''I thought I was doing my best for you," he said curling 
a ring of her hair weakly about his finger. *' What does a ten- 
der child like you know of business? Why, they would not 
dare play me false. They will do all the work for you, and 
you must get as much into the sunshine as you can, as much 
as you can, without me." 

He closed his eyes, and there was a strange sound in his 
breathing which terrified the wife. The flare of the window 
had reached his pillow, turning it red as blood. 

''I did not know — you would mind — so much—-" he said, 
with a greater feebleness than before. '' If there were time to 
call Lee here I would — since you wish — give you a controlling 
interest. Send some one— for him. I am tired. Lie down 
beside me. Nest, as we have lain during those happy years." 

She nestled close to him, and his face was wet, wet and 
cold. He was asleep. The brothers came too late. The solic- 
itor, hastily sent for, came too late. He lingered through the 
night still sleeping, and, as he had said he would, went out 
with the turn of the tide. 

(to be continued.) 



\ 



Digitized by 



Google 



A PROGRAMME OF SOCIAL REFORM BY LEGISLATION/ 

BY JOHN A. RYAN, D.D. 

much for measures directly in favor of the 
working classes. Let us now consider some leg- 
islative projects which aim at benefiting the 
whole body of consumers by limiting the power 
of exceptionally favored industries and capital 
to obtain excessive prices and excessive profits. 

I. Public Ownership of Public Utilities.— Under this head 
are included national and State ownership of railroads, express 
companies, telegraphs, and telephones, and municipal ownership 
of gas and electric lighting, water-works, street railways, and 
telephones. The chief benefits expected from this change are 
better service, lower charges, equal treatment of all patrons, 
and better conditions for employees. Better service is likely, 
because a publicly owned utility is more responsive to the 
people's needs, and will meet these needs more e£Fectively than 
a private corporation which is not subject to competition. 
Lower fares will be possible, inasmuch as the service can be 
provided at cost, and the cost itself can be lowered owing to 
the cheaper rate at which capital can be borrowed. Equal 
treatment of all patrons will give a larger measure of industrial 
opportunity, and remove the chief agency through which mo- 
nopolies have been created and competition crushed. Employees 
will be better treated, as is always the case in public employ- 
ments. Another very probable good e£Fect would be the nar- 
rowing of the field for private investment, and the consequent 
tendency toward a general fall in the rate of interest. Compe- 
tition among private capitals would be more active than it is 
at present. The arguments against public ownership are, indeed, 
weighty, but many of them — for example, the one drawn from 
political corruption — can be urged with greater force against 
private ownership. Perhaps the most decisive general answer 
to these objections is the fact that the policy of public owner- 
ship is gaining ground every day in every country, and that 

* The first part of this article appeared in Thb Catholic World of July, Z909. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Social Reform by Legislation fo9 

no country now enjoying it has any thought of reverting to the 
other system. At any rate, the obstacles to the introduction 
of the proposed system in this country are so numerous and 
varied that it can be accomplished only gradually, so gradually 
that both friends and foes will have ample time to anticipate 
and counteract its dangers. 

2. Public Ownership of Mines and Forests. — Both the states 
and the nation should retain the owcership of all mineral and 
forest lands that have not yet been alienated. The mines should 
be leased at a fair rental per ton of ore removed, and the same 
principle should be applied to the forests. It was a great mistake 
to have sold any of these lands outrighti for the compensation 
received by the State has beeui on the whole, utterly inadequate, 
and a comparatively small number of private individuals have 
reaped enormous and unnecessary profits. One of the richest 
and most necessary of the minerals, anthracite coal, has passed 
into the control of a monopoly which exacts exorbitant prices 
from the consumer; while climatic conditions have been ad* 
Tersely a£Fected, and a lumber famine is threatened as a result 
of the reckless and wholesale destruction of the forests. 

3. Adequate Control of Monopolies. — The case of most natu* 
ral monopolies has already been considered under the head of 
public ownership. With regard to those which are not based 
upon natural advantages — for example, the Steel Corporation 
and the Standard Oil Company — three courses are open to the 
State. The first is to permit them to charge whatever prices 
they please, so long as they do not use illegal methods of com- 
petition. This is the plan at present in use, but it is obviously 
untenable and intolerable. If a corporation can employ fair 
methods toward its competitors and still become a monopoly, 
it must be regulated in the interest of the consumers. History 
shows that human beings cannot be trusted to use such great 
power justly. The second plan would prevent the evil by pre* 
venting its cause, that is, it would prohibit any corporation to 
control more than half of the business in which it was engaged. 
This method approves itself to all those who believe that the 
economies of a monopolistic combination are not an adequate 
substitute for the benefits of competition. They would have 
competition enforced, as it were, artificially. Yet if the saving 
to be e£Fected through mere concentration, combination, and 
great masses of capital is as large as some authorities assert 

VOL. LXXXIX.^39 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



6lO SOCIAL REFORM BY LEGISLATION [Aug., 

(the qaestion is still an open one) the theory and the method 
just described ought to be rejected. It would seem preferable 
for the State to permit all monopolies that, without either nat- 
ural advantages, special privileges, or unfair methods of compe* 
tition, arise in obedience to the so-called 'Maws of industrial 
evolution,'' but to extend to the consumer some of the bene- 
fits of combination by regulating prices. 

This could be done by a government commission similar to 
the commissions that now regulate railway rates. In both 
cases we have the same principles and substantially the same 
difficulties. To those who are still under the tyranny of an 
exploded taissiz-faire philosophy this proposal may seem revo- 
lutionary, but to those who have some acquaintance with eco- 
nomic history and who try to see the facts of industrial life 
as they are, it will appear quite natural and quite rational. 
In an address delivered just ten years ago on ** American 
Trusts,'' Professor Ashley said : '* I see nothing for it but that, 
in countries where the monopolizing movement is well under 
way, the Governments should assume the duty of in some way 
controlling prices" (Surveys Historic and Economic, p. 388). 
Even President Gary, of the United States Steel Corporation, 
recently suggested this method to a committee . of Congress. 
To the obvious Socialist objection, that the State ought to own 
these ** evolutionary " monopolies as well as those natural 
monopolies which are called public utilities, there is an equally 
obvious answer. The former industries are more complicated 
and probably much fewer than the latter, and we do not want 
to multiply the industrial functions of the State unnecessarily. 
When the Socialist theory of the inevitable concentration and 
monopolization of all industries has been demonstrated, and the 
policy of State regulation of prices has failed, it will be time 
enough to consider the experiment of State ownership of arti- 
ficial monopolies. 

4. Income and Inheritance Taxes. — Both these forms of 
taxation, especially the latter, are in vogue to some extent in 
this country. They ought to be made universal. And the 
rate at which the tax is levied should be progressive; that is, 
increasing with the amount of the income or bequest For the 
larger a man's income or wealth, the less important are the 
uses to which he devotes all of it above a certain minimum 
for necessaries and comforts, and the smaller is the sacrifice 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909 ] SOCIAL REFORM BY LEGISLATION 6ll 

that he will make by giving up a given per cent of it {cf. A. 
Vermeerschi SJ., Quastiones de JustiHa^ pp. 108-129). Ob* 
vioQsly the rate should not progress indefinitely up to a point 
where it would be confiscatory or dangerous to the spirit of 
enterprise. At a certain limit it should either become fixed, 
or its increments should begin to decrease. The precise limit 
which should mark the maximum rate is a matter of detail 
that need not be discussed here, but it might, consistently with 
morality and expediency, be higher than it is in any country at 
present. Mr. Carnegie's proposal of fifty per cent for the 
largest inheritances seems very high, indeed, although the rate 
of the inheritance tax would properly be higher than in the 
case of incomes. Through these forms of taxation a large 
part of the burdens of government would be transferred from 
classes that are overtaxed to classes that are now undertaxed, 
and the State would be able to undertake necessary works of 
public improvement, such as waterways and good roads, and 
provide insurance for unemployment, sickness, and old age. 
In a word, distributive justice, both as to public burdens and 
public benefits, would be more nearly realized than at present. 
5. Taxation of the Future Increase in Land Values. — This 
proposal is much more important in cities, especially in the 
greater cities, than in agricultural districts. Frederick C. Howe, 
a high authority, estimates the increase in land values in New 
York City between 1904 and 1908 at $786,000,000, and during 
the single year of 1908 at $284,000,000, or $120,000,000 in 
excess of all the city's expenditures for that year. It seems 
altogether just that a considerable portion of this increase, 
which is created by the community, should be recovered by 
the community. As a result taxes on production and on the 
necessaries of life could be materially lowered or perhaps abol- 
ished^ and the city would have a fund for civic and social 
improvements, especially for housing the poorer classes. In- 
creased land values, which make rents high, would thus par- 
tially undo their own evil e£fects. Nor would this tax be an 
unfair discrimination against land; for other forms of property 
do not, as a rule, increase in value without the expenditure of 
labor. Where they seem to do so, the increase can in most 
cases be traced to the land with which they are connected. 
It is proposed to tax the future increases in land values, not 
those that have occurred in the past To take the latter or 



Digitized by 



Google 



6i2 Social Reform by Legislation [Aust., 

any part of them by thid method of taxation would in tbe 
majority of cases be to confiscate values that have been fully 
paid for by their actual possessors. It has been said that the 
tax should appropriate ** a considerable portion *' of future in- 
crements in value, for there are reasons both of equity and of 
expediency why it ought not to take the entire increase. 
What proportion should be taken, and what exemptions and 
modifications should be made, are matters of detail. In Ger- 
many, where the system has been very widely adopted and is 
being rapidly extended, the highest rate is thirty-three and 
one-third per cent. (Some account of the plan and some dis- 
cussion of its moral aspect will be found in Stimmen aus Maria* 
Laach^ October, 1907, by F. Rauterkus, SJ.) 

6. Prohibition of Speculation on the Exchanges. — While 
this proposal may at first sight seem of insufficient importance 
to have a place in a programme of social reform, it points to 
a change that is greatly needed on moral as well as economic 
grounds. Among the moral evils attendant upon speculation 
in stocks and produce are: the development of the gambling 
instinct in thousands upon thousands of persons who would 
never have indulged that instinct through the more ordinary 
and publicly condemned practices; the cultivation of a desire 
to get money through lucky deals and the manipulation of 
existing wealth, instead of through new wealth produced by 
personal labor, and the consequent inability to appreciate any 
ethical di£Ference between the two kinds of gain; and the 
conscious or unconscious participation in the numerous forms 
of dishonest manipulation which are almost continuously prac- 
ticed upon the exchanges. The chief economic evils are the 
formation of '' corners *' or monopolies in stocks, commodities, 
and the necessaries of life, and the creation of artificial and 
unjust prices; the unjust depression of the prices of stocks 
and produce, with the resulting hardship and injustice to the 
possessors of these properties ; the absorption of immense sums 
of capital that are needed for productive commerce and in- 
dustry; and an unhealthy inflation of general prices which 
sometimes hastens the arrival of a financial panic. The ex- 
changes have legitimate and important functions as markets 
for securities and produce that are sought as a permanent in- 
vestment and for consumption ; but they ought not to be used 
for traasactions in which the purchaser of the thing ostensibly 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] SOCIAL REFORM BY LEGISLATION 613 

bought has no intention of getting genuine possession of it, 
but merely desires to make a profit from its changes in price. 
Such operations are essentially wagers, are utterly unproductive, 
and comprise the great majority of all the transactions on the 
exchanges. In the interest of the moral and economic health 
of the nation they ought to be prohibited by law. 

Some of the readers of these pages will not improbably 
call this programme ** Socialistic.'' They have a right to do so 
if they have the right to construct their own definition of So- 
cialismi or to apply the term to every extension of the indus- 
trial functions of government. But if they are reasonable and 
reasoning beings they will not forthwith condemn it on this 
sole ground. A proposal may be discredited, but it cannot be 
refuted by the easy and indolent device of calling it a bad 
name. Oa the other hand, if Socialism is to be understood 
correctly, in the sense in which it is accepted not only by its 
advocates but by all who try to think and speak precisely, 
none of the measures outlined above is Socialistic, nor do all 
of them together constitute Socialism. They fall far short of 
collective ownership and management of all the means of pro- 
duction. Another reason why they are not Socialistic is be- 
cause they are not to be introduced by the Socialistic method. 
Indeed, the genuine Socialist would probably treat this pro- 
gramme with more contempt than the doctrinaire individualist. 
For the first principle in the Socialist platform of method is 
that the system can never be realized until the control of 
government has passed into the hands of the working class. 
Hence the contempt of the thorough- going Socialist for what 
he calls the ''capitalistic State Socialism'' of New Zealand. 
He does not recognize these State activities even as steps in 
the direction of genuine Socialism. And he would pass the 
same judgment upon the present programme, so long as it was 
to be brought about by a government not in the control of 
the working class. 

Nevertheless, the programme is perhaps paternalistic, and 
unduly restrictive of individual liberty. Paternalistic it may be, 
but it is not opposed to sane individualism. As said above, 
you cannot rightly condemn a proposal merely by hurling in- 
appropriate epithets at it recklessly. The only individual liberty 
worthy of the name is that which o£Fers to the individuals of 
the community a reasonable measure of opportunity. Any 



Digitized by 



Google 



6i4 SOCIAL REFORM BY LEGISLATION [Aug. 

system of individoal liberty^ however specious in theory, that 
in practice enables a few exceptionally favored persons to ex- 
ploit and oppress large numbers of their fellow- men, is a delu- 
sion and a mockery. It is neither an individual nor a social 
good. Judged by these tests, our programme seems to be 
sound. Its proposals do not exceed a reasonable amount of 
economic opportunity. To secure this to all its citizens is as 
truly a function of the State as to protect the property of 
those who happen to have property. To those citizens who 
have little or no property, economic opportunity is much the 
more important consideration. And it is a commonplace of 
politics that the State is concerned with the welfare of all. 

No attempt will be made here to indicate which of these 
measures is the most important, nor which ought to be adopted 
first, nor how soon any of them may safely be introduced. 
The aim has been merely to describe all the legislative pro- 
posals that seem sound and worth striving for at the present 
time. Every one of them is in force in at least one country; 
a great many of them exist together in one or more countries, 
as in Australasia and Germany; and no country shows a dis- 
position to abandon any of them. While the arguments offered 
in favor of the di£Ferent measures in these pages have been of 
necessity very general and far from adequate, they constitute 
at least a respectable presumption in favor of the whole pro- 
gramme. If it were put into operation it would probably cause 
the social problem, upon which so much precious thought, 
energy, and apprehension are now expended, to assume com- 
paratively insignificant proportions. In the meantime it sug- 
gests a practical ideal for all who believe that the problem 
cannot be solved without a considerable increase of activity 
and co-operation by the State. 



Digitized by 



Google 




THE WONDERS OF LOURDES. 

BY J. BR!COUT. 

II. 

BERNADETTE'S VISIONS. 

|N our preceding article we told bow the happen- 
ings at Lourdes were viewed by unbelievers and 
by the Church. We wish now to give a more 
detailed study of Bernadette's visions and of the 
marvelous cures that followed. 
With reference to Bernadette's visions two questions may 
be asked: 

Granting that Bernadette was undeniably sincere, can we 
say as much for Abb^ Peyramale and the first actors in the 
drama of Lourdes? 

Was not Bernadette herself the dupe and victim of a sickly 
imagination? Were the apparitions she spoke of anything 
more than unconscious hallucinations? 



Free-thinkers themselves readily attest Bernadette's sin- 
cerity. That cannot be questioned. Even if she had conceived 
a desire to mystify the world, how could this simple, unedu- 
cated girl have worked out her plan ? The many shrewd, 
searching inquiries to which she was subjected would have 
speedily exposed the lie; she would have become confused 
and would have given contradictory answers. Moreover, she 
was too simple, too frank, too retiring, too bumble, too disin- 
terested to have thought of any such deceit. She spoke of 
her visions only when questioned, and then spoke of them 
without the least vanity. She would never accept even a tri- 
fling present for herself or her family, though they were poor. 
Daring the twenty years that she lived after the visions, she 
never for a moment manifested any hesitancy in her belief 
that the apparitions were real, and she died repeating: ''I 
saw her; yes, I saw her.'' 

We know well that there are knaves in the world. How 



Digitized by 



Google 



6l6 THE WONDERS OF LOURDES [Aug., 

mmy msdiutDs, for example, are only clever sleight-of-hand 
performers or simply common cheats ? History also reminds 
tts of remarkable liars. Such a one was the celebrated Mag- 
dalen of the Cross, a Franciscan sister of Cordova, thrice 
abbess of her convent in the beginning of the sixteenth cen- L 
tary. Oat of pride, and a keen desire to pass as a saint, she | 
Inflicted on herself the Stigmatic wounds ; persuaded her com- /I 
panions for eleven years that she never took any food, thoagh | 
she was secretly procuring it all the while ; and succeeded for | 
thirty-eight years in deceiving the court nobles, the greatest 
theologians, the BlshDps, and the Inquisitors of Spain. 

In the long run, however, even the most skillful mediums 
are caught in some fligrant act of trickery and dishonesty. 
Magdalen of the Cross * herself closed her career, when seri- 
ously ill, by publicly acknowledging her lie. The dissimilarity 
between Bernadette and such impostors should be noted. 
They were clever, fairly educated, very vain, and very self- 
ccntered. Bernadette had none of these traits. 

But why insist on her sincerity, when even Zola and Jeao 
de B^nnefon leave it unquestioned? It will be better to take 
up at once what M. de B^nnefon, at least, denies — the honesty 
of Abb^ Peyramale and those ecclesiastics who were concerned 
in the first events at Lourdes. 

The reader remembers M. de Bonnefon's ''discovery/' 
which we discussed in our first article — the famous unpublished 
letter which he thought sufficient to prove beyond contradic- 
tion that the Virgin's appearing to Bernadette was *' known 
beforehand, was expected, planned, and worked out by an 
organized society." The reader remembers also the judicial 
arraignment of M. de Bonnefon's unpleasant air of mystery, 
and the very significant silence in which he has taken obsti- 
nate refuge. Since he does not answer the reasonable objections 
made against his position, since he fails to tell his opponents 
where he found that famous unpublished document, whose 
authenticity he will not let them investigate, we have the right 
to set aside his assertion. 

M. Jean de Bonnefon brings forward a second piece of 
evidence in support of his thesis. This testimony! is not an 

* For farther information about Magdalen of the Cross, see Lis Graces tTOnusoMt by 
R. P. Auffuste Poulain, S.J.. p. 336. 

i Zola also mentions Abh6 Ader's presentiment, but he does not make him an accomplice 
of Abb^ Peyramale {Lomdes^ PP 99 loi). 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Wonders OF LouRDES 617 

''unpublished*' document^ but it was '^ solicited'' and 'Mnter- 
preted in a" very '' original fashion." It is the Traveler* s 
Guide to Lourdes, by Barbet» who was a teacher at Bartres 
when Bernadette made a rather mysterious stay there (in 1857). 
We trust a somewhat lengthy quotation from de Bonnefon will 
not be thought out of place: 

Bernadette did not go to school, but she faithfully followed 
Abb6 Ader's catechetical instructions. In those days of offi- 
cial piety, the schoolmaster, under ecclesiastical supervision, 
taught catechism when the priests were unable to do so. As 
a consequence, Barbet saw Bernadette and took notice of her. 
A frank and imprudent chronicler, he writes as follows : 

''During Bernadette's last stay at Bartres, where I was 
teaching, she attended catechism classes in the Church. 

** One day the pastor, Abb6 Ader, a very pious priest, being 
indisposed, asked me to hear the catechism lesson for him. 
When it was over, he asked me what I thought of Bernadette. 
I answered : 

" ' Bernadette finds it hard to remember the catechism word 
for word, but she makes up for her defective memory by the 
care she takes to get hold of the inner sense of the explana- 
tions. She is a very pious and modest girl.' 

** • Yes '/ said the Ahhi^ ^ you have the same opinion of her 
as L She seems to me like a flower of the fields^ breathing forth 
a divine fragrance. When I look at her^^ he added ^ */ have 
often thought of the children of La Salette, Surely^ if the 
Blessed Virgin appeared to those children^ they must have been 
simple y pious y and good like Bernadette. ' * 

' ' Some weeks later I was walking with Abbd Ader along a 
road outside the village. Bernadette passed by with a flock 
of sheep. Abb6 Ader turned several times to look after her 
and then, resuming the conversation, he said : 

** * I don^t know what it is that comes over mCy but every time I 
meet that child ^ it seems to me I see the little shepherdess of La 
Salette:'' 

The honest, pious teacher, himself a devout worshipper at 
the Grotto, concludes the revelation, the bearing of which 
he does not realize, with the following words : 

" A little while later Bernadette returned to Lourdes and 
found herself in communication with the Queen of Heaven." 

Thus does the good Barbet prove that Abb^ Ader, at Bar- 
tres, exercised a hypno- suggestive influence on Bernadette's 

* The itafics in this quotation are M. de Bonnefon's. 



Digitized by 



Google 



6i8 The Wonders of Lourdes [Aug.^ 

imagination and prepared her for the apparitions. It is hard 
to admit that the Abb6 had, six months in advance, an in-- 
tuition of events that were to take place on February ii, 1858. 
It is more natural to believe that the good apostle labored to 
make Bemadette a new shepherdess of La Salette— one who 
would not be self-conscious, and who would be free from the 
entanglement of a shepherd accomplice. Moreover, the pro- 
prietors oi the Grotto were not slow to see the danger to 
which they were exposed by the imprudent Barbet's Guide, 
They long ago purchased the edition and it seems impossible 
to find on sale a single cepy which contains the above-quoted 
passage. 

I do not know whether M. Jean de Bonnefon is exact in 
saying that the *^ proprietors of the Grotto '' bought up the 
issue of the Guide. There are many reasons to distrust his 
most positive assertions. Besides it is quite hard to believe 
that the shrewd '^ proprietors '* of Lourdes committed them- 
selves to the useless destruction that he mentions. I am like- 
wise unable to say whether or not he tells the truth about 
Abb^ Ader's movements. M. de Bonnefon continues; 

It is likely that the prudent churchman (the pastor of 
I/>urdes) chose an intermediary for the suggestive control of 
Bernadette. This agent was the innocent victim's confessor 
at I/>urdes. 

In an unpublished report of M. Dutour, the Imperial-Pro- 
curator at Lourdes, under date of April 14, 1858, we find this 
curious note : 

'' It is now known that an ecclesiastic, her confessor, has a 
great influence on her conduct ; that she speaks to him out- 
side of the confessional about what she does and what is done 
to her, and that he advises her after this fashion : ' They can- 
not keep you from going to the Grotto ; go there without 
fear.* If the Virgin tells Bernade (jtc) a secret, it is M. 
TAbb^ Pomian who authorizes or forbids its publication. He 
will say to her : ' That is a secret which ought to be kept for 
the person who will undertake to build a chapel. . . ."' 
Secrets, just as at La Salette. 

And why not ? Why should the Virgin be forbidden to do 
at Lourdes what she has done elsewhere? Why suspect and 
accuse Abb^ Pomian on such flimsy pretext ? He hears Berna- 
dette's confessions and counsels her; consequently, he has ex- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] THE WONDERS OF LOURDES 619 

ercised and still exercises a hjrpno- suggestive influence on her« 
just like Abb^ Aden What splendid reasoning I 

M. Jean de Bonnefon belongs to the school of Anatole 
France. M. France, writing about Joan of Arc, said: "It 
ought to be so; therefore it is so/' M. de Bonnefon thinks 
and speaks about Bernadette in exactly the same fashion. 
And both of them imagine* or at any rate, try to make 
their readers believe, that they are real and reliable historians. 

There is nothing to be gained by following up M. Jean de 
Bonnefon's story. His assertions of a personal character are 
not backed up by even the slightest proof. God Himself has 
undertaken to prove the reality of Bernadette's visions by the 
miracles worked at Lourdes. 

II. 

Bernadette, as we have seen, was sincere, and was not 
influenced by hypno-suggestion. But was she not the sport 
of her own nerves? Those who do not believe in the super- 
natural at Lourdes unhesitatingly affirm that she suffered from 
hallucinations. They say that the fact is evident. 

Evident, indeed, it does seem, for those who deny, a priori^ 
all possibility of the supernatural. The Virgin Mary could not 
have appeared to Bernadette ; therefore Bernadette could not 
have seen her. But it has not been proved that miracles are 
really impossible. 

An attempt is made to advance other arguments. There 
have been many mentally deranged patients in our hospitals, 
who have imagined that they saw God, Christ, the Virgin 
Mary, or St. Anthony of Padua. 

We know this as well as anybody, but it does not prove 
Bernadette a victim of hallucinations and we will very soon 
see that she is altogether different from the visionaries to whom 
she is likened. Bernadette's father, it is further asserted, was a 
drunkard; she herself suffered from asthma, and the sort of 
life she led at Bartr&s was such as to develop in her the germs 
of hysteria. 

What is the real truth with regard to all this? First, as 
to the statement that her father was a drunkard. M. Jean de 
Bonnefon makes the assertion, but he does not prove it As 
he is the only one who says so, so far as I know, I confess I 
am not convinced of it. But, even if it were the truth, the 



Digitized by 



Google 



620 THE Wonders of lourdes [Aog^ 

conclttsion drawn from it woold be extravagant. Do we not 
all know children of intemperate parents who never suffered 
the slightest hallucination? The daughter of a drunkard is 
not necessarily hysterical. 

Nobody denies that Bemadette was afflicted with asthma. 
We mast remember, however, ''that the asthmatic condition 
developed much later on, in consequence of repeated attacks 
of bronchitis, caught on the banks of the Gave to whidi 
strangers continually led her/'* Besides, how many asthmatic 
patients there are who are not at all given to hallucinations I 

As for Bemadette's visits to Bartr&s, they were much briefer 
than has been maintained. The facts about them, too, are 
quite different from the fables that have been written on the 
subject. What has been written about the telling of marvel- 
ous tales in Bernadette's presence by Abb^ Ader or some 
other priest; about the reading of pious or fanciful books be- 
fore her ; about the vigils in which she took part before the 
altar of Bartr^s, is very far from being proved. 

As a matter of fact, there is nothing to prove in all this 
that Bsraadette was a victim of hallucinations. 

Taking the offensive, we can go further and show positively 
that Bernadette saw what she thought she saw. 

We know with certainty that Bernadette was well-balanced, 
and of an unaffectedly gay disposition. There was nothing 
extraordinary, nothing sickly about her piety. She was neither 
morally nor physically predisposed to hallucinations — to mys- 
tical hallucinations. 

Moreover, on certain days, the apparition in white did not 
manifest herself, though Bernadette waited for her and called 
for her. Auto-suggestion, consequently, did not create the 
image which filled her whole being with ravishing delight 
After July i6, 1858, she never saw the apparition again. The 
Virgin, who cured so many other sick people, never healed 
her infirmities. 

Djring the vision Bernadette is fully self-possessed. She 
speaks to her comrades; relights her candle; goes and comes 
like one in a normal state. One who suffers from hallucina- 
tions acts mechanically and as if under the exclusive control 
of aa idea which has possession of him. Finally, contrary to 
what generally happens in the case of those who suffer from 

* Boissarie, Lts Grands GmMsomt de LounUs, p. 5x9. 



Digitized by 



Google 



«909.] THE WONDERS OF LOURDES 621 

hallttcinations, Bernadette did not become insane and God 
Himself has deigned to guarantee by miracles the supernatural 
reality of the apparitions. 

The thousands of miraculous cures which have followed the 
apparitions at Lourdes have guaranteed their divine character. 
In our concluding article we will dwell on those marvelous cures 
and show their supernatural origin. At present it will be 
enough for us to point out the intimate connection between 
them and the apparitions. It is by invoking the Virgin who 
appeared to Bernadette, and by using water from the sprirg 
which she pointed out, that these cures are effected. Is not 
this a guarantee, given by God Himself, that the apparitions 
were genuine? 

With this question of Bemadette's visions two others are 
closely connected, one as to the name under which the '' Lady '' 
appeared to her, and the other as to the type of Madonna 
which she made known to the world. 

'' I am the Immaculate Conception." This is the title under 
which the apparition made herself known to Bernadette. M. 
Bertrin writes: 

Those words had never been spoken in her presence before* 
and in her childlike simplicity she had no knowledge of the 
profound dogma they express. It was at this time that, 
through fear of forgetting the unfamiliar expression which 
she wished to report faithfully to the priest at Lourdes, she 
kept repeating it to herself all along the road. But she pro- 
nounced it wrongly as she repeated it. That aitemoon she 
went to M. Bstrade's house and told him what had happened 
. in the morning. '' When she had finished/' said M. Bstrade, 
''my sister corrected the word ' Conception' which she had 
just treated so badly. The child started, turned to my sister, 
and asked with frank embarrassment: 'But, Mademoiselle, 
what do those words mean ? ' " 

Besides, continues the learned author : 

Bernadette had also discovered, or rather she had seen, a 
new type of Madonna, and a type as beautiiul, if not more 
beautiful, than the most famous Virgins of the great Renais- 
sance artists. 

Neither at Lourdes nor at Bartt^s, the only places in the 
world that she knew, had the dear child ever seen any statue 
which resembled what she described, either as a whole or in 



Digitized by 



Google 



62t The Wonders of lourdes [Aug., 

the details. It was all revealed to her. If one does not want 
to believe that, one most admit that she made it all up her- 
self. That would be contrary to every scientific observation 
made of those under hallucinations. I say that her Madon* 
na is as remarkable for beauty as for newness. It must not 
be judged simply by the marble model which the sculptor 
Pabisch fiuhioned according to her descriptions — ^the statue 
in the Grotto in the niche above the wild*rose bush. 

Whether it is due» as M. Pabisch said, to the artist's in- 
ability to reproduce an Ideal, even his own, or to the poor 
child's inability to find in her plebeian tongue the precise 
words needed for a good description, the statue was not a 
faithful reproduction of the image that she had always kept 
alive before her eyes. When she saw it, she exclaimed : 

''It is beautiful, but it is not she. Oh, no! The differ- 
ence is as of earth from heaven." 

It has never been known that a victim of hallucinations dis* 
covered or invented really beautiful things. At most, by com* 
bining elements stored up in memory, such a one might create 
some strange monster or some old novelty. Experiences gained 
in hospitals and the '' revelations '* of mediums have proved this 
repeatedly. 

Just here I might call attention to one or two considera- 
tions that are too commonly neglected. I had occasion to dwell 
on them before in my essay on Joan of Arc, but it surely will 
not be superfluous to treat them briefly again. 

A vision may be real, even though it is not exterior^ that 
is, is not perceived by the eyes of the body; even though it 
is simply imagittativt^ or perceived by the imaginative faculty. 
A material object is really perceived but without the help of 
the eyes. There are likewise imaginative words; real words, 
remember, but perceived by the imaginative sense without the 
help of the ear. 

Suppose then — what has not been and never will be proved 
— that the Immaculate Virgin was not physically present at 
Massabieille ; suppose even that, in the absence of her sacred 
body, her likeness was not directly imprinted on the retina of 
Bernadette, even then Bernadette's vision would not necessarily 
have been an hallucination — the creature of a disturbed brain. 

* The word imaginaty is not so good as ima^imoHvi in this connectioB, because it may be 
ambiguous. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] THE Wonders of Lourdes 623 

In sttch a case it might well be that the Virgin or God acted 
directly on the young girl's interior imaginative faculty to 
produce in it words and sights that would be real, though 
simply imaginative. Between these imaginative words and sights 
and hallucinations of sight and hearing there is a great gulf. 
It is enough, then, for us to prove unequivocally that when 
Bernadette said she saw the Immaculate Virgin, she really did 
see her. 

It is equally important to note the fact that a vision may 
have a supernatural origin and yet may contain a human ele- 
ment which is, as it were, the private, personal, individual stamp 
of him who has the vision. '' It may happen in a vision,'' writes 
Father Poulain, who is particularly competent in these matters, 
''that the human mind will retain the power of co-operating 
to a certain extent with the divine action. It would conse- 
quently be a mistake to attribute the knowledge thus gained, 
entirely to God. At times it is the memory which pushes for- 
ward its recollections ; at other times it is the inventive faculty 
which acts." The same author condemns as false the principle : 
^'A revelation which is not diabolical is either entirely divine 
or entirely human/' History and psychology seem frequently 
to justify his assertion. 

If, then, it were shown that Bernadette, before her visions, 
had heard of the Immaculate Conception or had seen an image 
of the Immaculate Virgin, one would not have ground for the 
conclusion that she had merely manifested what was previously 
in her sub- consciousness, and that there was nothing super- 
natural in the apparitions at Lourdes. Bernadette would have 
co-operated to a certain extent with the divine action — only 
that and nothing more. God makes Himself all things to all 
men. He does not disdain to adapt Himself to the human in- 
strument which He uses. 

The essential point is that we have solid reasons for believ- 
ing in the supernatural origin of Bernadette's visions. The 
most important of these reasons is to be found in the unnum- 
bered miraculous cures so intimately bound up with the appa* 
ritions. To them we will devote the whole of our third and 
last article. 

(to be concluded.) 



Digitized by 



Google 



A LOST DOG. 

BY MARY AUSTIN. 

|ARGARET AVERY was an artist in a very small 
way. She illustrated advertisements for the 
ladies* papers. Now and again, if she was extra 
fortunate, she sold one of her sketches of chil- 
dren. The drawings were delicately whimsical. 
Only one man had discovered how charming they were. Had 
he lived he would have given Margaret her chance, for he was 
the editor of a magazine; but he died after a few days' illness, 
during a winter in which influenza was rampant; and Margaret 
lost her one influential friend. 

Since then she had become innured to disappointments. 
She sent in drawing after drawing to obdurate editors, only to 
have them declined. She would walk with them to the office to 
save postage, and she would call back a few days later for her 
answer. The liveried officials who live in the mahogany boxes 
behind the guillotine-windows marked "Inquiries" grew quite 
accustomed to Margaret Avery's gentle, timid face and shab- 
bily-clad figure. Nearly always there was a roll of paper to 
be returned to her when she called the second time. 

She had her mother to look after as well as herself. Mrs. 
Avery was a delicate semi-invalid who helped Margaret all she 
could to eke out the starveling pittance which was all Harold 
Avery had been able to leave his wife and daughter, although 
he had at one time been an artist of repute. She did type- 
writing when she could get it to do; she worked at an ex- 
quisite embroidery which would always fetch its price if only 
one could do enough of it; but it was very, very slow work 
and very wearing on the eyes ; and so many people were satis- 
fied with the machine-made article that the money for the 
embroidery was hard-earned. 

Mother and daughter had a tiny flat in a mean street in 
Fulham. It was not so bad if one could but get away from the 
neighbors and the noises of the streets. Their sitting room 
window opened on a little balcony in which it was possible 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909.] A Lost Dog 625 

to grow a few flowers in pots and boxes. Unfortunately it 
overhang the street, so that the flowers grew very dusty and 
very parched — for they were on the southward- looking side of 
the street 

There was a tiny kitchen, an infinitesimal bath-room, and 
two little bedrooms side by side. The flat had been decorated 
with some idea of prettiness; and if it had not been for the 
houses that pressed closer and closer to them, the jangling 
pianos, the street-organs, the noisy people in the adjoining 
flats who sometimes quarreled and sometimes were merry, the 
screaming of the children when they were let loose from the 
big Board- School at the back of the flats, they could have 
been happy. It was a neighborhood that hardly slept one 
hour out of the twenty-four. There was hardly that much in- 
terval between the last light going out in the houses and the 
arrival of the early morning milk at the big dairy around the 
corner. 

The noise was the one intolerable thing to mother and 
daughter; but they did not talk much about it They had 
made two or three moves in search of a quieter neighborhood 
since they had been compelled to settle in London, but none 
of the changes had brought any improvement ; if there was not 
one thing there was another; and Acacia Gardens, if it were 
not for the noise, afforded them a cheerful little refuge. 

Mrs. Avery used to sit nearly all day on the sofa by the 
window while she worked at her embroidery. Beau, her little 
King Charles, used to lie at her feet and keep her company 
while Margaret was out. The little flat was wonderfully clean 
and neat. Poor as it was, everything had the daintiness one 
associates with ladies. They did all their work themselves* 
Some time before Margaret was expected home Mrs. Avery 
would put away her embroidery, covering it over with a clean 
muslin cloth, and would set the table for their simple meal. 
It was very simple indeed — perhaps no more than an egg and 
a cup of tea, with a little fruit in the season when fruit was 
cheap. But there was always a flower or two in a glass; 
and always the daintiness, the purity, that made the little meal 
inviting when Margaret came in, dead- tired and discouraged. 

Daring the qoiet hours when Mrs. Avery worked at her 
embroidery — she was always glad when she embroidered rather 
than did typewriting — she thought incessantly of Osiers, the 

VOL. LXXXIX«-*40 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



626 A LOST DOG [Aug., 

cottage in the country, where she and Harold and the child 
had lived so peacefully for twenty years. Osiers stood in six 
acres of orchard and garden. It was a wonderful place, espe- 
cially in the spring of the year, when the daffodils and nar- 
cissus danced in myriads under the orchard trees; when the 
pale primroses lay in drifts; and later, when the ground was 
blue as the sky with the wild hyacinths and the boughs were 
the most wonderful rose and white; when the great trees that 
ringed round the little demesne showed the exquiate pale leaf* 
age and the blackbirds and thrushes sang their love- songs all 
the day. She thought incessantly of Osiers; and she put into 
her embroidery her thoughts of the flowers and birds, where- 
fore it ceased to be formal and conventional and had some- 
thing of the wild grace of life. 

One day she had a great stroke of good fortune as she 
counted it, for she got a new customer for the typewriting: 
and this time no dreary circulars, no law folios and such 
things as usually came to her share, but a novel by a writer 
who was not indeed popular, but was something better. 

It was almost as good as the embroidery to typewrite Mr. 
Bellatrs' MS. It was a difficult handwriting to start with — 
all dots and dashes, and queer up-and-down lines; but after 
a little study of it Mrs. Avery came to understand it, helped, 
perhaps, by her interest in the story. 

Considering all that she had passed through and her years of 
ill-health she was really a very youthful person at heart She 
adored love-stories and would read all she could get, in all 
the time she could give to them. Many times Margaret bad 
discovered her mother over a book with tears in her eyes; 
and, because of those ready tears, she could hardly read aloud 
the things that touched her, while Margaret worked. 

She had been obliged to read all manner of books, for at 
the Free Library one took what one could get. But she knew 
what was good, and she was like a child escaped from town 
and running in the fields after daisies and buttercups, over 
Anthony Bellairs' Comedy of Summer. She read the manu- 
script through before she typed it. While she was typing it 
she read bits aloud to Margaret. 

''Isn*t it delicious?" she would cry in an ecstasy. ^'Wouldn't 
any one think he knew Osiers? Just listen to this where- he 
describes a night of May and the nightingales.'' 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] A LOST Dog 627 

" He is evidently a real country-lover," said Margaret. " I 
wonder why he should live in ClifFord's Inn? I suppose he 
goes U the country for week- ends." 

''It is not the same," Mrs. Avery said. ''To get the full 
sweets of the country you must live there all the year round." 

She sighed as a hawker cried raucously along the street; 
and the Board-School children were let free with a babel of 
noise that for the time put reading aloud out of the question. 

It was June now, and the two women, mother and daughter, 
wore the look of fatigue, the fainting, withered look of a 
flower that wants water, which always came to them with the 
high summer and increased until October brought the cool 
weather. There was no margin of their slender resources to 
enable them to go to the country or the sea. A day in the 
fields near London, or in Epping Forest when no Bank Holi- 
day was in sight, was as much as they could procure, and 
these left them thirsting more and more for the country. 

One day Margaret came home with an interesting piece of 
news to tell. She had been waiting at the office of one of 
the illustrated papers for the usual roll of returned drawings 
when a gentleman had asked for the editor. He gave his name, 
" Mr. Bellairs," and he was shown up at once with an effusive- 
ness very different from the way she was accustomed to be 
received. The liveried gentleman had spoken to one of the 
clerks — 

"That's Anthony Bellairs, the novelist," be bad said. "I 
was to show 'im up at once. Time was we used to keep 'im 
waiting like the others; but times is changed." 

Margaret had glanced with shy curiosity at Anthony Bel- 
lairs. Though she was unaware of it, her expression was a 
most flattering one. Anthony Bellairs was an unspoilt, unspoil- 
able person. 

" Poor little thing I " he thought to himself as he went up 
the stairs to the editor's sanctum. "She has a face like a 
primrose — a primrose in an east wind. I wonder why she 
looked at me like that." 

He was curious enough to ask as he passed out the name 
of the lady who had been standing at the desk when he came 
in. The official remembered with an effort. 

"She's a Miss Avery," he said. "We sometimes use a 
droring of 'ers, but not hoften." 



Digitized by 



Google 



628 A LOST DOG [Attg.^ 

''Avery/' Anthony Bellairs had some association with the 
name, but he was half-way home to his rooms in Clifford's Inn 
before he recalled that it was the name of the typist to whom, 
on the recommendation of a rery good fellow, a cleric who had 
been a chum of his at Oxford, he had sent his latest MS, It was 
unlikely there could be any relation between theoL Arery 
was not an uncommon name. He wondered what sort of a 
hand Mrs. Avery was making of his work. He hoped she 
wouldn't botch it and give him a lot of trouble. It was a 
nuisance that poor Tomlinson, who had worked for him for 
seven years and understood his writing perfectly, bad broken 
down just at this time and been ordered to take a complete 
rest — a rest which, by the way, Mr. Bellairs had been instru- 
mental in procuring for him. 

Margaret gave a vivid account to her mother of Anthony 
Bellairs' looks. It was wonderful how much she had contrived 
to see in that one shy glance. The handsome, clean-shaven 
face and bright eyes, the soft, dark hair tossed away from his 
forehead— he had taken off his hat as he came in from the 
glare of the streets— the brown suit he was wearing, the air as 
of a chained athlete; she could describe them all. 

Mrs. Avery listened with an indifference which at last forced 
itself upon Margaret's observation. 

''What is it, Mumsie?" she said, pulling up short, midway 
in her description of Mr. Bellairs. "What is the matter?" 

"It is Beau, Madge. He has not been well — ^not himself 
at all. He has been so uneasy, so restless. And he shivers. 
He Is growing very old." 

"He has a chill," said Margaret, "or he feels the hot 
weather, like the rest of us. Poor little Beau, he is old — I 
was eight years old when he came to us. Twelve years is 
quite a great age for a dog." 

That night Beau died quietly in his sleep. 

At first Mrs. Avery was quite grieved. She cried for the 
faithful companion of so many years, little Beau, who had been 
with them at Osiers, who had never wanted to leave her skirt. 

For a day or two Margaret, too, was depressed. Her 
mother seemed to have lost so many things with little Beau. 
His death seemed to bring back the older, greater sorrows. 
At Osiers he had been a frolicsome puppy ; and Harold 
Avery had been alive, and they had been happy. And now 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] A LOST DOG 629 

Beau was dead ; she was old and a widow, and she and poor 
Madge were living in a London slum, just keeping the wolf 
from the door. What was to happen to Madge when she was 
gone? 

The morning of the third day after Beau's death her tears 
were dried. A thought had come to her in the midst of her 
grief of the great goodness of God Who had sent her such a 
loving friend for twelve long years. She looked up at Mar- 
garet quite brightly as she told her of the strange, sudden 
consolation that had come to her. 

** I am really quite happy about the dear little fellow/* she 
said. "And now — I am going to finish Mr. Bellairs' MS. to- 
day. I feel quite cheerful and ready for work.*' 

Margaret was immensely relieved. She had a certain ex- 
pedition in her mind. She had sold a drawing for a better price 
than she had hoped for. They were going to have something 
good out of it. To-day her mother might finish Mr. Bellairs' 
novel. To-morrow they would put up a modest lunch, take 
the train out into the country, and spend the day in the fields. 
And there would be a little addition to their party of which as 
yet Mrs. Avery knew nothing. 

Mrs. Avery was a born dog- lover. She had said that she 
would never have another dog after Beau; but even as she 
said it her eyes contradicted the speech. She would open her 
arms, her daughter knew, to some poor homeless dog who 
would find heaven in her ownership and protection. Margaret 
remembered the old days at Osiers, when every halt and blind 
and hungry and hurt dog found its way to her mother's care 
and physicking. She remembered her mother's quixotic in- 
terferences when she thought a dog was being ill-treated. She 
was quite sure of the reception awaiting the dog she should 
bring home. 

At the Home for Lost Dogs the obvious strays, those who 
had a home somewhere and some one who grieved for their 
absence, glanced at her indifferently and then returned to their 
attitude of watching and listening for the face and the step 
that should lift them from depths of despair to heights of 
rapture. Not one of them seemed interested in Margaret. 

*' Many of them will be claimed," the official said. '' For 
the others we shall be able to get homes. These are well-bred 
dogs." 



Digitized by 



Google 



630 A LOST DOG [Aug., 

They walked on. There broke out a terrific clamor, faun* 
dreds of dogs climbing tfae sides of their enclosure, yelping 
piteously to her to take them and care for them, their poor eyes 
a passion of entreaty, of hope, of anticipation, of despair. 

She was hurrying past quickly. It was more than she could 
endure. 

'^A few of these poor chaps may find homes,'' the official 
said kindly. ''The majority are just homeless strays. The 
kindest thing for a homeless dog is to let him die painlessly — " 

Margaret hardly heard him. Her attention was attracted 
by a small white dog who stood apart from the clamor and the 
shrieking. While she looked at him he turned a grave somer- 
sault; then, standing on his hind legs, he begged prettily, 
working his little paws eagerly as though he prayed her to 
have him. 

" You pretty creature I '' said Margaret, her heart going out 
to him. "Please may I have him? He deserves a home be- 
cause he begs so prettily." 

" Oh, that one," said the official. " I was rather hoping 
you'd take a fancy to that one. He's a pretty little chap, and 
he has been some one's pet at some time, or he wouldn't have 
these tricks. But he's a mongrel — a cross between a poodle 
and a terrier." 

" I don't mind a bit," said Margaret. " He's a dear. Please 
let me have him." 

The dog did an ecstatic cart-wheel as though he knew. 
She moved on a little way, her hands to her ears, her eyes 
averted from the piteous crowd of dogs. In a few seconds 
the dog was brought to her, made hers for the sum of half-a* 
crown. 

She had to walk home, since the busses would not admit 
the dog, and when she tried the experiment of putting him 
down he followed at her heels as though he dreaded losing her. 

She opened the door with her latchkey when she arrived, 
and went in quietly. Her mother was sitting with her head 
outlined against the door that led to the balcony. Some- 
where over the tops of the houses the sun was setting; but it 
was prematurely dusk in the noisome, wind-swept street. The 
figure against the open doorway looked lonely and sad. 

" See what I have brought you 1 " said Margaret going up 
to her mother and depositing tfae dog in her lap. He leaped 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909.] A LOST DOG 631 

and frisked about Mrs. Arery as he had done with Margaret, 
but making not a sound. 

"What a dear I" said Mrs. Avery. "Do light the lamp 
and let me see him. Where did you get him? And is he 
really for me? But, oh, Margaret, do you think I ought to 
have him Beau would be so jealous if he could know.** 

" Ah, well, he doesn't know, dear little dog I ** Margaret 
said, lighting the lamp. "And you owe it, because one dog 
made you happy, that you should rescue another from death, 
and homelessness, that is worse than death to a dog. I got 
him at the Dogs' Home. You should have seen those other 
poor things. I wished I could have bought them all.*' 

"He will be such company for me when you are away," 
Mrs. Avery said, capitulating. "I am sure little Beau would 
have wished me to be happy, and forgotten about himself. 
Now, what shall we call him ? " 

They called him Rough, he was such a fuzzy thing, from 
head to foot, more of the wire-haired terrier than the poodle 
in his looks, but with the trained intelligence of the poodle. 

As the days passed he proved a great acquisition to the 
little household. Poor Beau had been old, and of late asleep 
nearly all day, whereas Rough was young and full of pretty 
tricks and a thorough gentleman in all his ways. When Mrs. 
Avery took her slow walks abroad to do the marketing Rough 
followed closely at her heels* When she kept the house he 
was quite content to do likewise. All the time they were in- 
doors, while she was busy, he lay in a chair, watching her 
with bright, attentive eyes. If she was inclined to play with 
him, he was quite ready to play. 

This cheerful companionship seemed [to work wonders for 
Mrs. Avery. She seemed much less of an invalid than be- 
fore Rough had come. One day she even got so far as to 
cross the bridge and get on to the open space beyond, where 
there was a fresh breeze from the river and one could sit in 
the shade of trees. She had not attempted such a journey 
before and it delighted Margaret while it frightened her a little. 
" Of course," Mrs. Avery said by way of explaining her temer- 
ity, "it was cruel to a dog to keep him shut up among houses." 

They had had Rough about three weeks. Long ago Mr. 
Bellairs' typescript had been completed and sent home; but 
no word had come from him. Margaret was certain he was 



Digitized by 



Google 



632 A LOST Dog [Aug., 

oat of town, as was every one who could a£Ford to be. He 
was at the sea or in the country, on the moors or the moun- 
tains. It was late July now and hotter and dustier than ever. 
There were days when even Rough seemed to feel the heat, 
when he was content to lie all day and watch his new mis* 
tress instead of playing his tricks for her pleasure. The sky 
was molten ; the houses so many ovens that gave back at night 
the heat they received all day. People prayed for a thunder-- 
storm; the hapless people who must stay in town. And Mrs. 
Avery, sitting languidly at her embroidery-frame, was quite 
sure her work had failed to please Mr. Bellairs, since he had 
not written, had not paid the starveling sum she had asked for 
the work. 

Margaret, who had been working at home all day, had 
taken Rough for a walk as^ far as the Green. She had come 
back along the sun-baked streets with a lagging step. 

Approaching her own door she became aware that there 
was some one standing at the door, waiting to be admitted, a 
tall, loosely-knit figure in a brown suit, at the sight of which 
her heart gave a leap of excitement. It was surely Mr. Bel- 
lairs. He had come himself with the cheque. She wondered 
how long he had been waiting. Mrs. Loftie, who occupied the 
ground-floor flat and was supposed to open the door, was 
rather deaf. She hurried forward to open it with her latch-key. 

Then an extraordinary thing happened. Rough, who had 
been lagging at her heels, suddenly uttered a piercing yelp of 
joy and flew to Mr. Bellairs, leaping on him with the most 
extravagant demonstrations of affection. Was Rough gone 
mad? But, no; or, at least, Anthony Bellairs was quite as 
mad. For he had picked up Rough and was holding him in 
his arms, the dog's two paws upon his shoulders, the little 
head buried in his neck. He turned a face of joyous delight 
to the girl. 

''Where did you get him?'' he asked. ''My little Trust? 
I have been heart-broken since I lost him a month ago. He 
must have been stolen for the sake of his silver collar. I 
haven't been able to do anything because of his loss." 

"I bought him at the Dogs' Home," Margaret said; and 
her face fell. " We shall be very sorry to lose him. My mother 
especially had grown very fond of him. She lost her old dog 
recently. She has not many joys in her life." 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] A LOST DOG 633 

^'Ah; but you can hardly contest the fact that he is my 
dog, seeing that he shows it so plainly. Don't you, Trusty ? '' 

The words sounded cruel. 

" He seemed very fond of us/* Margaret said without look- 
ing at him. '^ If I had not bought him he would have gone 
to the lethal chamber.'' 

She was opening the door as she spoke. 

'' You wish to see my mother, sir ? " she said, as she pushed 
open the door. ''She has been hoping to hear that you were 
satisfied with her work. She will be greatly grieved about the 
dog." 

'' Do not let us tell her, just yet," he said. '' Trusty has 
always been gracious. He won't forget his new friends even if 
the old are dearer." 

His eyes were very kind as they rested on Margaret's spir- 
itual little tired face, as she looked back at him gratefully. 
She had done him an injustice; he was kind; what a pleasant, 
courteous, charming voice he had I 

He put down Trust at the sitting-room door. The dog re- 
paid his confidence in him, for he trotted before and jumped 
up to Mrs. Avery, reclining on her sofa. 

Bellairs glanced round the poor room, charming with its 
suggestion of refined womanhood. It pleased his fastidious 
taste. Mrs. Avery, with the little old fichu of embroidered 
muslin draped round her thin shoulders, was an image of deli- 
cate ladyhood. 

''This is Mr. Bellairs, Mother," said Margaret. "We met 
on the doorstep." 

A shy color came into Mrs. Avery's cheek and she looked 
at him with the expression in her eyes which Margaret's had 
held for him on the day of their chance meeting at the office 
of The Upper Ten. He bowed low over her hand. 

"I was so glad, so privileged," she said, her color coming 
and going, "to type A Comedy of Summer. But I've been 
afraid the work was ill-done." 

"On the contrary," he said, "it was incredibly well-done. 
If you could know what I have suffered in the past from in- 
competent, unsympathetic typists and secretaries, and I have 
lost the one who understood my writing. When I read your 
letter, and what you said about the book, I said to myself that 
at last I had found the ideal secretary." 



Digitized by 



Google 



I 



634 A LOST DOG [Aug., ^^ 

'' Oh I " said Mrs. Avery, her pale face suffased with pleas- 
ure. '' I was afraid I ought not to have expressed an opinion. 
It was not like a typist — '* 

''It was not in the least like a typist/' he agreed; ''but it | 

pleased me. Not only did you understand my hieroglyphicst | 

but you understood my point of view. I was coming to thank 
you, only I had lost a friend. It put everything out of my 
head." 

" Ah, I am sorry—" 

" But I have found him again,'* Mr. Bellairs went on, rather 
to Mrs. Avery's bewilderment. She had not noticed that the 
dog had deserted her and was fawning quietly about the visit- 
or's feet. " And — I have an odd proposition to make to you. 
I have just taken a country cottage in Hertfordshire. I want 
a secretary. Would you be willing to undertake the position? 
There are a good many things I shall want looked after. A 
man is very helpless with servants. I shall not overtax your 
strength. A book a year — " 

Her eyes looked at him longingly. 

" Hertfordshire," she repeated. " We used to live in Hert- 
fordshire. I should love it. But my daughter?" 

"There will be plenty of room for her at Osiers. I am 
often away. You can have your own apartments. You will 
look after things for me, and type my MS. when I am work- 
ing ; see to my correspondence. I shall not intrude upon you 
too much." 

Osiers 1 Did she hear aright? 

"You are very good, sir," she said, lifting herself up on 
her elbow. " It sounds too good to be true. And I have noth- 
ing really the matter with me. Only I have had so much 
trouble. And Osiers— did you say Osiers ? Our old house was 
called Osiers. It was near King's Abbey. I love it better than 
any spot in the whole world." 

"Ah — what a coincidence. How lucky that I should have 
stumbled on the place, and in the time of daffodils, else per- 
haps I should not have thought of it. It is rather in disre- 
pair. You shall advise me about its restoration. How very 
glad I shall be to be the means of restoring you to your old 
homel" 

While he said it he looked at Margaret with a half-shy 
gaze. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] A LOST DOG 635 

''It seems the mercy of God that I should be at Osiers 
again before I die/' said Mrs. Avery in tears. 

He looked directly at Margaret now. 

''You will put no bar in the way?'' he said imploringly. 
''You shall see just as little of me as you will. It will make 
your mother so happy. And I am under a great debt to you.'' 
He was caressing Rough's hard little head. '' I have not been 
able to do any work since I lost Trusty. I can see before me 
a time of perfect peace, with a secretary who can read my 
writing and will stand between me and women-servants." 

His voice had a coaxing sound in it which was wonderfully 
pleasing to the tired girl's ear. 

" I can only say that it is too good to be true. I am sure 
I shall wake up and find it a dream. Such fairy stories do 
not happen in real life." 

'' Ah, but they do, sometimes/' Bellairs replied, his eyes 
fixed on Margaret's happy face. *' Even more wonderful things 
might come to pass." He hurried up, as though he had been 
guilty of an indiscretion. ** And now, when will you be ready 
to come? I shall send some one to pack up for you. You 
can take whatever you will with you of course. But anything 
you do not particularly care for I should sell. You can fur- 
nish your rooms as you will at Osiers." 

''But you may send me packing for a more efficient secre- 
tary," Mrs. Avery said, between laughing and crying. 

" Ah, no " ; he said, with that air which made him delightful 
to women. " I know how to appreciate the gifts of the gods. 
You must not leave me — and Trust You must make us happy." 

His dark eyes glowed and lightened. They sought for Mar- 
garet's eyes and met their gaze. It was as though heart spoke 
to heart 



Digitized by 



Google 



THE END OF A LONG JOURNEY. 

BY J. PRENDERGAST, S.J. 
I. 

N the Cosmopolitan for May, 1909, there began a 
series of articles dealing with the teaching in 
American universities. To sum up the first arti- 
cle in the words of the editor himself : ''In hun- 
dreds of classrooms it is being taught daily that 
the decalogue is no more sacred than a syllabus; that the 
home as an institution is doomed; that there are no absolute 
evils ; that immorality is simply an act in contravention of ac- 
cepted standards; . . . that the change from one religion 
to another is like getting a new hat; that moral precepts are 
passing shibboleths; that conceptions of right and wrong are 
as unstable as styles in dress.*' 

This summary seems to be adequately borne out in the 
spirit, and sometimes in the letter, by the statements that follow 
from the professors of many colleges and universities. Pro- 
fessor Blackmar, of the University of Kansas, teaches that the 
''standards of right perpetually vary in social life.'* Professor 
William G. Sumner, of Yale, asserts that ethical notions are 
"mere figments of speculation,^' and "unrealities that ought to 
be discarded altogether.'' Professor William James, of Harvard, 
contributes his article to the creed of destruction, that it is 
possible to spoil the "merit of a teaching by mixing with it 
that dogmatic temper, which by unconditional thou-shalt-nots 
changes a growing, elastic, and continuous life into a system of 
relics and dry bones." Professor Zueblin, of Chicago, declares 
that "there can be and are holier alliances without the mar- 
riage bond than within it." 

It is needless to quote further in order to show the general 
trend of the teaching which seems to have invaded the Ameri- 
can universities from the Atlantic to the Pacific. Its note is 
clearly anti- Christian and destructive. One asks: "Can these 
men imagine that they are advancing civilization by tearing 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] T^^ END OF A LONG JOURNEY 637 

down its morality?'* Sorely all advancement must be along 
constrttctive, not destructive lines. Above all else, civilization, 
as we know it, is built upon ethics, whether it be Chinese, 
Graeco-Roman, or Christian civilization. 

When Washington insisted upon this fact in his Farewell 
Address, he simply reiterated the warning of all history. Sav- 
agery, with its immorality and decadence, is the natural outcome 
of such doctrines as these, as in fact it has been historically 
the outcome, when the Goth and the Vandal overran the cor- 
rupt Roman State. These professors are doing from the spir- 
itual side what the anarchist and the bomb-thrower are attempt- 
ing to do by natural force. The destructive doctrines, however, 
which constitute their spiritual bombs in the warfare against 
Christian civilization, are more forceful than dynamite for shat« 
tering the edifice of Christian society. Bombs do but destroy 
the framework; these doctrines destroy the plan. Such men 
and such doctrines made a wreck of the ''grandeur that was 
Greece and the glory that was Rome.*' Such men and such 
doctrines will inevitably wreck any civilization over which they 
gain sway. And they seem to be in a fair way of gaining sway, 
if the article describes exactly what is taking place. 

" The student takes in ethics as he absorbs Euclid and equa- 
tions. Automatically the teachings of the professor sink into 
the student mind. What the scholar in the chair of authority 
says is gospel. He is usually a man of force and genius and 
often magnetic. He has a following. Some of the classrooms 
are so crowded that seating room is at a premium/' If in all 
this we could but act the part of disinterested spectators and 
complacently wait for the catastrophe, which, if '' history be 
philosophy teaching by example," is philosophically certain I 
But we cannot be disinterested. What should rouse us from 
our apathy, if we are apathetic, is the absorbing fact that we 
happen to be members of the civilization which they are striv- 
ing to wreck. In shaking down the temple of Christianity on 
their heads, these Samsons of destruction are going to bury 
with them, in the ruins, you and me. If they are going to suc- 
ceed the outlook is very black indeed for us. It might well 
move us to pray like St. Augustine of old, when the Vandals 
were thundering at the gates of Hippo, that God might take 
us before the destruction came. But let us hope that greater 
things are in store for our present America than the addition of 



Digitized by 



Google 



638 The End of a long Journey [Aug., 

a chapter to the history of the Mound Builders over whose 
dead civilization the savage hunted and fought. 

In a sense it is to be feared that much mischief is already 
done. For such doctrines as these, more often than not, come 
after the fact, and seek to justify in theory what has been ac- 
tually accomplished. Indeed one of these professors has ex- 
plained that these were not doctrines, but simply statements of 
conditions as they are. Therefore, when it is said *^ the notion 
that there is anything fundamentally correct implies the exist- 
ence of a standard outside and above usage, and no such stand- 
ard exists,'' the professor is not to be held to mean that God 
did not give the commandments, but that society at present is 
acting as if He had not given them. This is but too sadly 
true, in the case of divorce, for instance, or race suicide* Against 
all this one barrier remains still, the same that broke the onset 
of barbarianism upon the Roman State and with the remnants 
of culture constructed modern Europe, the Catholic Church. 
She is acting to»day as a check upon this wild onslaught di- 
rected not against a Church, if they but knew it, nor a State, 
but against Christian civilization. 

The writer of the article in the Cosmopolitan looks upon 
these American professors, apparently, as a sporadic upgrowth. 
He is inclined to have no concern with the origin of their 
teaching. But they are not original thinkers, far from it. 
Their doctrine is the product of the German university of the 
last century, where many of them in fact have studied. 

Of those men quoted in the Cosmopolitan^ Professor Sumner, 
of Yale, had studied in G5ttingen ; Professor Bogart, of Prince- 
ton, in Berlin and Halle; Professor Willet, of Chicago Uni- 
versity, in Berlin ; Professor Coe, of the Northwestern Univer- 
sity, in Berlin ; Professor Patten, of the University of Pennsyl- 
vania, in Halle; Professor Veditz, of George Washington Uni- 
versity, in Berlin and Leipzig ; Professor Fetter, of Cornell, in 
Halle and Wittenberg; Professor Ross, of Wisconsin, in Berlin; 
Professor' Mathews, of the University of Chicago, in Berlin ; 
Professor Zueblin, of Chicago University, in Leipzig. 

And these men form the second generation sent forth from 
the German mother-home to do, or rather undo, the Christian 
edifice, as in the former generation Charles A. Briggs, sometime 
professor in the Union Theological Seminary of New York, and 
before-time of Berlin, has undone it before them. All this 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.J The End of a Long Journey 639 

teachingi immoral and subversive, is nothing sudden, but the 
end of a long journey. To give my readers an idea of its 
length, with its grand halting-places, this article has been 
written. 

II. 

Some fifteen years ago the writer of these lines sat in the 
Aula Maxima of the Royal University of Berlin, listening to 
Adolph Harnack, the foremost of non-Catholic Church histor- 
ians. Harnack is worth listening to. In fact, one must listen 
to him, for the magnetism of the man prevents any other out- 
come if one fall within the range of his voice. Restless, now 
standing and bent forward, now sitting on the edge of the 
desk, but never in his chair, this lecturer, typically un- German 
in manner and typically German in method, urged his facts 
and his conclusions upon his hearers, who formed far and 
away the most numerous of any class in the University. 
Among those hearers filling up the front benches and drink- 
ing in the German words of the master with open American 
ears, sat a line of American students for the ministry. Con- 
gregationalists were there, and Episcopalians and Lutherans 
and Presbyterians; every Church had sent its disciple to be 
brought abreast of the latest religious thought in the fin du 
sihle land of modern religious teaching. And they heard 
things strange to Christian ears. Now and then the professor 
shocked their orthodox Protestantism by a sudden dive in the 
direction of Catholicity. 

''My friends" (I translate from notes) ''the idea that the 
Papacy is a late development in the Church, is false, false 1 
It was there already at the beginning of the third century.'* 
But such shocks were rare. The sentences and views that 
went to undermine altogether their belief in the divinity of 
Christ were far more frequent. We must not suppose that 
Harnack comes out with what the Germans would call plumpe 
atheistische assertions. No, for is he not himself a Lutheran 
minister, a teacher moreover in the stronghold of Lutheranism, 
the Royal University of Berlin ? But he gives it clearly to be 
understood, and drunk in by the young Americans and others 
at his feet, that the belief in the Godhead of Christ is very 
crude. (He would be sadly behind the times, instead of stand- 



Digitized by 



Google 



640 The end of a Long Journey [Aug., 

ing well in the forefront of intellectual leaders of Germany, 
did he teach anything else.) For Lutheran Germany is rotten 
to the core with infidelity. 

It would be well if our American apples had not been 
placed in German barrels and had not come into contact with 
this corruption. But there they have been placed and thence 
the rottenness passes, through American professorial chairs and 
pulpits, to our American life — the good tidings that there are 
no good tidings, the gospel of no gospeL Such is the imme- 
diate genesis of our ''new thought'* in America. It is neither 
new nor American. It is '' made in Germany.*' But let us 
now make a backward march through the years and investi- 
gate this modern phase of religious thought at its source. We 
shall find that it ought rather to claim the honors due to 
hoary antiquity than those of the debutante. It is older than 
Christianity and though utterly defeated by Christ at His 
coming, it has never ceased to fight 

Such an investigation furnishes us as well with an interest- 
ing evidence of what the Protestant movement ever was and 
whither it legitimately tends. 

This last phase of development is no belated straggler from 
the Protestant main line of march. It is but the farthest 
camp beyond Luther, for his army, like John Brown's soul, 
''keeps marching on." 

IIL 

That we may discover whence Protestantism came, we must 
travel back to Italy and the beginnings of the movement 
which is called comprehensively " the Renaissance." 

The complete reason for that awakening of humanity from 
its reposeful quiet in the besom of Catholicity, which took 
place in the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries, it is impossible 
to assign. Nay more, just how much of each of the many 
reasons brought forward contributed to the effect may never 
be told. One would dwell on the Crusades with their impor- 
tation into Europe, by the returning armies, of much Eastern 
degradation. Another would look gravely upon the Avignon 
exile of the Papacy and the great Schism of the West as a 
mighty solvent of the reverential bonds between humanity and 
the Catholic Church. But certain it is that one thing con- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The End of a Long Journey 641 

tributed wonderfully to the awful license of thought and of 
action which has come out of the Renaissance, and that was 
pagan Greece. Greek art, Greek literature, in a word, Greek 
civilization, passed over with the Renaissance into Italy. Too 
great emphasis cannot be laid upon the literary aspect of the 
Renaissance. It furnished the spirit of revolt with a philoso- 
phy, a literature, and a defense. There is no doubt that this 
spirit is, to use the scholastic phrase, the ''form** of Protest- 
antism, as the remnants of Catholic doctrines and practice 
contained in it are its ''matter.*' The paganism of the Renais- 
sance strangely fed and encouraged it. For paganism is a 
mixture of culture, monstrous superstition, and boisterous con- 
tempt for its gods, accompanied by an inner revolt against the 
dictates of conscience enshrining the moral law. (If we seek 
contemporary authority for that statement, let us turn to the 
first chapter of St. Paul's Epistle to the Romans.) 

Paganism, therefore, provided not so much a system — for 
revolt has no system — as an atmosphere in which Protestantism 
found itself quite at home. The Renaissance was the revival 
of paganism. Before it anything like a general interest in 
what we now term classic learning, had almost died out of 
Europe. A few forgotten Greek manuscripts lay covered with 
dust in some monastic library, a few Latin authors were still 
cursorily scanned; but there was no thorough and intimate 
knowledge of the Greek or Grsco-Roman modes of feeling 
and thought. A deeper draught came to Italy under Petrarch; 
with him the great humanist movement began. In its intellectual 
value as a mind-training, the writer is not at present interested. 
The Jesuit Order adopted it, used it through a careful selection 
of classic authors as their chief instrument in forming youth- 
ful minds. How far they succeeded or failed with their in- 
struments, it belongs to others to say. It is with its aspect as 
a moral and religious solvent of old Christian ideas that I am 
now concerned. For be it known that the humanists as a 
body made no careful selection, as did the Jesuits, of the 
classics they perused^ Martial, Tibullus, Catullus, Ovid's Ars 
Amandi^ Aristophanes, all were eagerly devoured. The result 
was, to quote the words of Owen, that "were we to sum up 
in a single word the literary and philosophic proclivities of 
Italy in the fourteenth and following centuries, we could 
hardly select a better word than paganism. It seemed as 

VOL. LXZZIX.— 41 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



642 THE END OF A LONG JOURNEY [Aug., 

if the disembodied spirit of the old classical world had again 
risen from its tomb, and, invigorated by the repose and oblivion 
of centuries, was preparing to renew its life-and-death strug- 
gle with Christianity/' (Sceptics of the Italian Renaissance.) 

Now there are two ways of regarding this ''disembodied 
spirit of the old classical world." Here is one of them from 
John Addington Symonds, assuredly capable of describing it: 
''Like a young man newly come from the wrestling ground, 
anointed, chapleted, and very calm, the Genius of the Greeks 
appears before us. Upon his soul there is no burden of the 
world's pain ; the creation that groaneth and travaileth together, 
has touched him with no sense of anguish ; nor has he yet felt 
sin. The pride and strength of adolescence are his — audacity 
and endurance, swift passions and exquisite sensibilities, the 
alternations of sublime repose and boyish noise — grace, pliancy, 
and stubbornness and power, love of all fair things and splendors 
of the world, the frank enjoyment of the open air, free merri- 
ment and melancholy well beloved '' (Symonds, Studies of the 
Greek Poets. Vol. II., p. 363). 

Behold a sympathetic pagan's view of paganism. Against 
this, place the words of St Basil, and you see looming up 
dimly through all Greek civilization the gigantic misshapen 
spirits of which the Psalmist said: "The gods of the heathen 
are devils." I translate St. Basil's Address to Young Men as 
literally as may be : " We shall not, therefore, praise the poets, 
who revile, who scoff, who picture lust and drunkenness, nor 
follow them when they bound all happiness by a plentiful 
board and loose songs. Least of all shall we attend when they 
discourse of the gods, enumerating of them many, nor these 
agreeing: for brother opposes brother; parent, child; and the 
children again wage war against their begetters — implacable 
war. As for the adulteries of the gods and their loves, and 
chief of all of Zeus, as they relate, which one might well blush 
in attributing to the beasts of the field, let us leave them to 
the stage." 

There is another view of paganism, and, strange as it may 
seem, I venture to assert that if my readers can read as well 
between the lines of the first view, as along them, they will 
find the second already there. This was what the Renaissance 
readers did. Add to this the utter irreverence with which 
the Greeks treated their gods, an irreverence manifested for 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The End of a Long Journey 643 

example in The Fregs of Aristophanes, where the drunken 
Dionysus plays the arrant coward and buffoon, and yon have 
the ingredients that seasoned the draught prepared by pagan- 
ism for the Renaissance and by it deeply quaffed. But open, 
unvarnished statements of the fact, except in magazine articles 
by some young enthusiast, are difficult to find. It is put 
rather in a gently guarded way, as, for example, Walter Pater 
puts it in his preface to The Renaissance: ** The care for phys* 
ical beauty, the worship of the body, the breaking down of 
those limits which the religious systems of the Middle Ages 
imposed on the heart and the imagination," this is the mildly 
delicate method of stating that there grew up an utter loose- 
ness of thought upon what had before been considered the 
essentials of Christianity, and, as a concomitant and conse- 
quence, a more utter looseness, if that were possible, of life. 

In Boccacio, Macchiaveili, Pietro Aretino, the Italian phase 
of sensuous defilement is most vividly portrayed. Of necessity 
I must leave it there, for to instance examples of immorality 
from Macchiavelli's Mandragola or Aretino's Cortigiana would 
be of no benefit. But of the effect upon religion we may say 
a few words. It is one more instance of the Scriptural warning, 
" Into an evil mind wisdom enters not, nor dwells it in a body 
subject to sin/' that these sensuous devotees of the Renais- 
sance soon corrupted their philosophic ways as well. ''Cau- 
tiously, but yet clearly enough,'* says Pastor, the historian, of 
the book of Lorenzo Valla On Pleasure^ ''and with seductive 
skill, the Epicurean doctrine was put forward as defending a 
natural right against the exactions of Christianity. Nature is 
the same, or almost the same, as God " (Pastor, History of the 
Popes. Vol. I., p. 15). Do you recognize anything modern 
here? In this same work Valla describes continence "as a 
crime against kind nature." This too needs no manipulation 
to modernize it. "In christening their children," says Sy- 
monds, " the great families abandoned the saint of the calendar, 
and chose names from mythology " (Symonds, Revival of 
Learnings p. 396). 

Hector, Achilles, Lucrezia, Hannibal, these became fashion- 
able. Parallel with these our Violets, Luthers, Homers, and 
Daisies. God became Jupiter Optimus Maximus^^ Our Lady of 
Loreto, Dea Lauretana;\ Peter and Paul, Dii tutelares Romce^ 

* Jupiter Best and Greatest. t The Lorettan Goddess. 



Digitized by 



Google 



644 THE END OF A LONG JOURNEY [Aug., 

'' the guardian divinities of Rome/* Cardinal Bembo recom- 
mends some one not to read the Epistles of St. Paul for fear 
of spoiling his Latin style. And yet it is a far cry from all 
this, foolish as it is, to the doctrine with whose description I 
opened this article. Let us pass on to the next halting-place 
of the march toward the point where ^'the change from one 
religion to another is like getting a new hat'* 



IV. 

It would require a book to tell how the Renaissance passed 
slowly over into France, beginning with the sixteenth century. 
Its promise of fair fruit was realized in the wondrous Augustan 
Age of Louis XIV. That long reign of over half a hundred 
years is filled with mighty names in the drama, the pulpit, 
the field of criticism. You have, too, the court overflowing 
with the evidences of the Renaissance spirit, in its unbridled 
license of intrigue and polished debauchery, but one thing is 
yet lacking, for though there peep forth faces that are strangely 
marked with unchristian lines, for example, that of Moliire, 
the reign of Louis XIV. remains Christian and Catholic. 

It needed a further evolution to show the full venom of the 
poisoned cup this reign had been drinking. The next step 
came with one born almost at the close of Louis' reign, 
Fran9ois Marie Arouet de Voltaire. ^'I am tired," said he, 
" of hearing it repeated that twelve men were enough to estab- 
lish Christianity. I want to show them that one will be enough 
to destroy it.'' In so far as a keen intellect, prepared thorough- 
ly for the work, alas, by the full classical training that the 
Jesuit could give, was able to accomplish it, he fulfilled his 
promise. A thorough pagan, more willing as is evidenced in 
this drama of Mahomet to glorify the Mussulman than Christ, 
he threw off every mask of Christianity. For example: ''The 
most probable inference from the chaos of histories of Jesus 
written against Him by the Jews, and in His favor by the 
Christians, is that He was a well-meaning Jew, Who wished 
to get influence with the people. . • • It is probable that, 
like all those who choose to be the head of sects. He got 
some women on his side, that several indiscreet discourses 
against the magistrates escaped Him, and that He was cruelly 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The End of a Long Journey 645 

put to death. ... It is certain that His disciples were 
very obscure, till they met some Platonists in Alexandria who 
supported the dreams of the Galileans by the dreams of 
Plato." 

Here is the true ring of Goethe and the Tubingen School. 
The trouble with Voltaire, however, was that he was too bit- 
ter, too evidently bent on destroying. In so far he had gone 
beyond his brief as a true Renaissance spirit, for the mark of 
Renaissance work is a genial absence of any too evident vehe- 
mence in pulling down Christianity. Its effect is rather brought 
about after the manner of a beautiful stream, which trickles 
along a fragrant meadow bank, undermining slightly here, until 
a flower looses its roots and drops into the current, washing 
away a handful there, but making no boast, nay, rather making 
light of its own destructiveness. This Voltaire did not He 
was not yet the right Mephistophelian mixture of doubt. He 
was too acrid, had too little of that '' sweetness and light '' that 
belongs to the Greek genius ''anointed, chapleted, and very 
calm,** who would usurp the place of Christ. Such an expo- 
nent was yet to seek. One more march and we shall find him, 
the coryphaeus of modern paganism, Johann Wolfgang von 
Goethe. 

V. 

Born in 1745, at the time of the full influence of France 
on Germany, Goethe drinks in Renaissance ideas almost with 
his mother's milk. At twenty-nine he is an editor writing of 
theology and reducing all dogmas to one, that of 'Move,** 
which he most industriously exemplifies in his own person by 
falling in and out of love as often as the unwholesome, but 
graphically realistic, soldier of the Barrack Room Ballads. 
He writes a drama for lovers, '' Stella,** which deifies free-love. 
Here are all the elements of a true Renaissance prophet. If 
he has but the culture requisite, he may stand "anointed, 
chapleted, and very calm** and point the way from Christ to 
Jupiter Optimus Maximus, the benign heathen All- Father, with 
great hopes of success. Culture he has to the full. He writes 
the most beautiful of poems, and the most sceptical, " Faust.*' 
He writes of light and of crystals and of anatomy. He is 
director of the theater for the Duke of Weimar; writes the 



Digitized by 



Google 



646 The end of a Long Journey [Aug.^ 

plays and trains the actors; he is prime minister for the Duke 
as well. Here is another of those many-sided geniuses that 
the Italian Renaissance once brought forth, re-incarnated in 
Germany to finish the work they began. He finds his father- 
land Lutheran and leaves it what it is now, unbelieving, honey- 
combed with infidelity. A sigh goes up from hellenized 
Germany for the lost divinities of Greece in that diabolically 
beautiful poem of Schiller, '* Die G5tter Griechenlands.'' How 
exquisitely it opens: 

Da ihr die schone Welt regieret 

An der Freude leichtem Gangelband, 

Selige Geschlecter noch geftihret, 
Schone Wesen aus dem Fabelland 1 

Ach da euer Wonnedienst noch glanzte 
Wie ganz anders, anders war es da! 

Da man deine Tempel noch bekranzte, 
Venus Amathusial 

While the smiling earth ye governed still, 
And with rapture's soft and guiding hand 

Led the happy nations at your will. 
Beauteous Beings from the fable-land 1 

Whilst your blissful worship smiled around, 
Ahl how different was it in that day 

Whilst the people still thy temples crowned, 
Venus Amathusia 1 * 

It needed but some theological school to complete, on 
pseudo-scientific lines, the undermining by this Titan of 
what was left of German Christianity. '* The Tubingen Scbool,"^ 
rising up in his later days, supplied the want. With it came 
the biblical criticism which has done its best to make of the 
Gospels a debris of wreckage, floating together from shattered 
fairy tales; of the Epistles a lot of clever forgeries in party 
interests; of the Catholic Church a colossal imposition upon 
humanity, built on the distorted life and misrepresented plan 
of a well-meaning mixture of imposture, fanaticism, and folly^ 
labelled Jesus of Nazareth. The American universities for 
the last fourscore years have outvied one another in the work 

* This is Browning's attempt at translation. 



I 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The End of a Long Journey 647 

of destruction. It is at the breasts of this mother, modern 
German criticism, that our professorial babes have been avidly 
sucking, hundreds of them, in these late days, and thence re- 
turning, for the furthering of the great cause. Where will it 
end ? It ended in France on the memorable tenth of November, 
1793, in the enthronement of the Goddess of Reason, represented 
by a variety actress, within the once Christian Cathedral of 
Notre Dame. It was saved from a like disastrous ending in 
Italy only by the Council of Trent, with its drastic reforms^ 
and by a sainted pope, Pius V., who saw to it that they were 
carried out. It needs no prophet, then, to see its outcome, 
were it allowed to run its course here in America. It was 
this paganism, lestering and foul, that undermined the stability 
of Grxco-Roman civilization and made it an easy prey for 
the barbarian hordes from beyond the Danube. But as Chris- 
tianity, with its life-giving doctrine, saved the remnants of 
that wrecked civilization and built them up into modem Europe, 
so let us hope and pray that it will take the many remnants 
of good left in our Protestant doubt and decay, and build them 
up into a great Christian America. 



Digitized by 



Google 



A MODERN SAINT. 

BY THE COUNTESS DE COURSON. 

jSNLY four years ago, in 1905, there died at Lille, in 
P the north of France, an old man whose long life 
I is full of valuable lessons. It goes far to prove 
^ that humility and prayer, more than much talk, 
y are the secret of real usefulness; that the most 
opposite characteristics may be united in a soul without con- 
tradiction or clashing, provided they are mellowed and har- 
monized by grace; that one who was essentially a mystic and 
a contemplative became, by a curious and uncommon combi- 
nation, an excellent man of business, and a first-rate organizer. 
It, indeed, seldom happens that successful business capacities 
go hand in hand with a supernatural spirit; it was so, how- 
ever, in the case of M. Philibert Vrau, the subject of the 
present sketch, commonly called ^'the holy man of Lille." At 
a time when the religious condition of the French Catholics is 
fraught with anxiety, the example of M. Vrau has peculiar 
meaning and value. It helps the harassed children of the 
Church to realize that, in order to fight the good fight, they 
have but to use the weapons that God Himself has put within 
their grasp. If they cannot dispose of such large sums of 
money as seemed to flow into the hands of M. Vrau merely 
to be directed into the channels of charity, they possess, as 
he did, other means as safe and as sure. He performed his 
task and achieved success less by his princely generosity than 
by a strenuous personal effort and an absolute self-effacement 
that may be practiced by all. 

As our readers know, Lille stands high among the manu- 
facturing towns of the north ot France ; it is now distinguished 
no less by the activity and intelligence of its manufacturers 
than by the depth and earnestness of their Catholic spirit ; and 
this last development is due, in a great measure, to the silent 
old man, now dead, whose day-dream was the sanctification 
of his native city. 

Philibert Vrau was born at Lille in 1829. His father was 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909.] A MODERN Saint 649 

the possessor of a factory for the manufacture of sewiog- 
tbread, which, in spite of his efforts, was only moderately 
successful. His mother, a Parisian by birth and education, 
was intelligent and refined, and, like many of her country- 
women of the middle class, was gifted with a remarkable capa- 
city for business. She was in all things her husband's right 
hand, and, though she had had no previous training, she mate- 
rially helped him by her good judgment and advice. Madame 
Vrau was, moreover, a devout Catholic, and trained her son 
in the practices of her faith, but, although he was pious as a 
child, Philibert, as a young man, seems to have been led away 
by the free-thinking spirit of the day, and during several years 
he ceased to fulfill the duties of a religion that, illogically, 
he continued to respect. 

In 1854, however, he became once more a practical Cath- 
olic, and, curiously enough, his conversion was partly brought 
about by practices that have since been condemned by the 
Church. Together with many of his comtemporaries, Philibert 
Vrau indulged in the pastime of table-turning, which, at that 
moment, was all the fashion in France. In the eyes of even 
devout Catholics it seemed at first a harmless amusement, but, 
by degrees, the incoherent and sometimes blasphemous answers 
given by the so-called ^^ spirits" excited suspicion, and finally 
the practice was condemned. What impressed Philibert was 
the homage paid, almost unwillingly, by the spirits to the 
truths of the Catholic faith. Other more healthy influences 
helped him on his upward path; his mother's prayers, the ex- 
ample of his father who, after years of neglect, returned to 
the practice of his religion, and, last though not least, the 
advice and sympathy of his friend, M. Camille Fer6n, a 
young doctor, who eventually became his brother-in-law and 
partner. 

It was in the summer of 1854 that Philibert Vrau became 
once more a practical Catholic, and almost immediately, with 
the thoroughness that marked his character, he expressed his 
wish to become a priest or a religious. Out of deference for 
his parents he gave up the execution of this cherished desire. 
His father became involved in grave financial difficulties and 
Philibert, being his only son, was naturally expected to share 
his cares and responsibilities. 

The sacrifice of what he believed to be his vocation was a 



Digitized by 



Google 



650 A MODERN Saint [Aug., 

sharp wrench to M. Vrau, but, having once made np his mind, 
he turned his face steadily towards the object that Provi- 
dence seemed to have set before him, put his shoulder bravely 
to the wheel, and, with the assistance of Camille Fer6n, who 
married his sister, he raised the ** Maison Vrau " to the sum- 
mit of prosperity. It seemed as though God wished to re- 
ward his servant's generous self-sacrifice by pouring temporal 
blessings on one whose heart was too firmly set on things 
spiritual to be weighted down by earthly riches. 

After the death of his father, in 1870, Philibert's responsi- 
bilities increased. In accordance with her husband's wish, 
Madame Vrau remained the nominal head of the firm; her 
son and son-in-law were her devoted helpers and the three 
worked together in perfect harmony. A large portion of their 
profits were given to the Church and to the poor. 

Although he scrupulously fulfilled his duty as one of the 
heads of the '' Maison Vrau," Philibert's favorite interests were 
of the supernatural order. All that touched the honor of God, 
the welfare of his neighbor, was of paramount importance in 
his eyes. The list of the great and good works, begun and 
safely carried out by this extraordinary man, would fill pages, 
yet — and in this lay his chief characteristic^although his 
money, his influence, and his strenuous work were everywhere 
felt, he seldom appeared in public. He never filled any po- 
sition that was merely one of honor, and sought, above all 
things, to pass unnoticed. One who knew him well has told 
us how, when at the cost of untiring labor, a great under- 
taking had been set on foot, its prime organizer suddenly disap- 
peared ; others came forward and reaped the success and glory, 
but M. Vrau, to whom the work in hand owed everything, 
was nowhere to be found. 

He was one of the chief benefactors of the Catholic Uni- 
versity of Lille; he established Catholic clubs and schools, 
built churches and hospitals, created institutions of every kind 
calculated to promote the spiritual and temporal welfare of the 
working classes, of those especially who were employed in the 
^'Maison Vrau"; but perhaps the work he loved best, because 
it appealed to the mystical and contemplative side of his nature, 
was the Nightly Adoration of the Blessed Sacrament, which, 
through his endeavors, was established at Lille, whence it 
spread to all the large towns in France. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] A MODERN SAINT 651 

He was also one of the originators of the Eucharistic Con- 
gresseSy the last of which took place in London in September, 
1908. These Congresses were a delight to him, but, though he 
devoted himself heart and soul to their organization, he care- 
fully kept out of sight when the work he had originated was 
certain to succeed. Besides the enormous sums that he spent 
to promote these public acts of faith and charity, M. Vrau's 
private donations were magnificent, but his biographer is un- 
able to give even an approximate idea of the amount ex- 
pended. He was ingenious in hiding his good works; many a 
struggling priest was surprised to find an anonymous gift of 
thousands of francs in his letter box; other subscriptions or 
donations were sent in the name of Madame Vrau, or else of 
an ''anonymous well-wisher,'' whose personality was easily 
guessed at, although none of his friends ventured to approach 
M. Vrau on the subject. 

As years went by, his humility became deeper, his personal 
habits simpler, his hours of prayer longer. During his mother's 
lifetime, he shared her house, but after her death he retired 
to a tiny room, resembling the cell of a monk rather than the 
living-room of one of the wealthiest men in Northern France. 
It was in this bare little room that he died. As time went on his 
brother-in-law and his sister with their son, M. Paul Fer6n-Vrau, 
took the responsibility of the firm off his shoulders in a great 
measure. Their spirit and their methods with regard to their 
subordinates were the same as his, and under their direction 
the ''Maison Vrau" continued to be an ideal usine, where 
the rights and duties of both employers and workmen were 
considered in a spirit of Christian justice and charity. 

The greater liberty he now enjoyed enabled M. Vrau to 
devote more time to his works of charity; they gradually ab- 
sorbed his life and, in spite of his constant efforts to pass un- 
noticed, this small, unassuming, poorly-dressed old man became 
the best known and most respected citizen of Lille. He loved 
his birthplace, as he loved his neighbor, with a love wholly 
supernatural ; and the dream of his life was that Lille should 
become a city of saints. It was to forward this purpose that 
he built churches and schools, established associations and con- 
fraternities, and laid so much stress on the Adoration of the 
Blessed Sacrament. 



Digitized by 



Google 



652 A MODERN SAINT [Aug,, 

He was singularly active and every minute of his busy day 
was devoted to his self-imposed duties, but he believed in 
prayer more than in mere human activity and all his great 
worksi the foundation of the Catholic University, the organi- 
zation of the Ettcharistic Congress, etc., were preceded and ac- 
companied by long hours of silent prayer. 

Although the salvation of his fellow-citizens was his dearest 
wishi M. Vrau*s interest extended to the whole Church ; he was 
almost as well known at the Vatican as in the streets of his 
native city and, in spite of his humility, the magnificence of 
his gifts to Peter's pence occasionally became public. As years 
went on his favorite virtue of humility wrapped round him 
more closely than ever, and when^ only two years after his 
death, Mgr. Bannard, the eminent French author, undertook to 
write his life, he found neither letters nor papers to help him 
in the fulfillment of his task. The workings of M. Vrau's 
mindy the outpourings of his soul, the miraculous graces which 
he is supposed to have received, all these things might be 
guessed at by the witnesses of his daily life ; but no written 
notes remained to serve as landmarks. He never wrote about 
himself, and spoke still less. 

It was consistent with these habits of reticence that when, 
in the spring of 1905, Philibert Vrau fell dangerously ill, he 
made no deathbed adieus and expressed no high-flown or edi- 
fying sentiments. Those who watched by his side during long 
weeks of agony, noticed the ecstatic look of happiness that il- 
lumined his worn features when, every morning, he received 
Holy Communion. They marked, too, his gentle thoughtfulness 
for others, the absence of any word of complaint, but on the 
whole he revealed little or nothing of what was passing in 
his soul. He lay quite still and silent — absorbed in prayer. 

The end came on May 16, 1905; it was a singularly peace- 
ful death; he had received the last Sacraments with perfect 
consciousness and breathed his last sigh while making the re- 
sponses to the Rosary, which his family recited at his side. 

The works of faith and charity that were originated by M. 
Philibert Vrau are still carried on by his nephew, M. Paul 
Fer6a-Vrau, whom he loved as a son and who is one of the 
leading French Catholics of our day. Not only has he devoted 
enormous sums of money to keep up the foundations that owe 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] A MODERN Saint 653 

their existence to his uncle, but he has assumed new responsi- 
bilities in the service of the same cause. M. Paul Fer6n-Vrau 
has lately bought the fine " hotel de Cond^/' once the property 
of the princes of that name, and placed it at the disposal of 
the Archbishop of Paris, whom the Government, as our readers 
know, has robbed of his palace. He is also the head of a gi- 
gantic undertaking, la bonne Presse^ which, by promoting a 
wide diffusion of healthy literature, endeavors to counteract 
some of the evil influences that are undermining the faith of 
the French people. 

The traditions of unstinting charity and whole-hearted devo- 
tion to the Church that were so dear to M. Philibert Vrau, are 
cherished by his nephew and representative ; who is, moreover, 
deeply imbued with his uncle's methods in carrying out his 
great undertakings. A personal knowledge of la bonne Presse 
has taught us that its leader, one of the wealthiest and most 
influential of the French Catholics, is also one of the most un- 
assuming. The spirit of the ''holy man of Lille,*' humble, si- 
lent, and prayerful, pervades the work. 



Digitized by 



Google 



THE SOUTH ISLES OF ARRAN. 

BY ETHEL C. RANDALL. Ph.D. 

(OW few there are who know the Arran Islands in 
the Bay of Galway as they are 1 They have stood 
for centuries upon centuries. To-day they are 
the survival of the strongest portions of a shore 
line that once shielded Lough Lurgan from the 
ocean's fury by a barrier from Witches' Head to Travor Bay. 
NoWy as then, they rear their sullen crests full- fronted against 
the Atlantic to sentinel the middle western coast of Ireland, a 
last bit of terra firma between it and America two thousand 
seven hundred miles across a turbulent Atlantic. 

To-day these islands — Inishmore, Inishmaan, and Inisheer — 
with Tory Island and its neighbors off the coast of Donegal, 
form the last stronghold of the Irish Gaelic tongue. District 
and county alike in Ireland have submitted to the inevitable 
and become English-speaking. Though there are villages in 
Galway, Connemara, Donegal, and the Rosses, where Gaelic is 
to a limited extent the language of the cottagers, it is rare to 
meet a peasant who cannot make himself at least understood 
in English. The very old people profess ** to have no English," 
and now that the Gaelic League has awakened a latent patriot- 
ism and loyalty of regard for things that are Gaelic, the young 
men and women would give much were they able to make a 
like declaration. But on the islands I speak of, how different 1 
Cut off from Galway by a stretch of choppy sea that often 
for weeks at a time defies the coracles of the islanders, they 
lie sea-girt and alone, a fitting mausoleum to entomb what must 
have seemed, a few years since, the relic of Celticism, a solemn 
nursery wherein to foster that which a fresh hope cherishes as 
the adolescence of a reborn Gaelicism. 

The approach to the islands, if one should contemplate a 
stay there, is a matter for consideration. If one goes to Inish- 
more only, the simplest aspect of the problem presents itself, 
since the large island boasts a wharf, and, in consequence, is 
open to traffic except when occasionally weather- locked. If, 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The South Isles of Arran 655 

however, laishmaan or Inisbeer are the goal, then arrangements 
must be made beforehand by letter or through some one con- 
nected with the islands, as there is no means of entertainment 
for strangers at either place. A faint idea of the primitive con- 
ditions existing on the smaller islands can be gleaned when it 
is understood that there is no ships' landing of any sort what* 
soever, no public- house of any description upon cither, no 
priest, clergyman, doctor, nurse, no guardians of the law ; and 
upon Inisheer, no post-office nor telegraph- station. Yet several 
hundreds of human beings inhabit each rock-heap, are born 
here, marry and are given in marriage, live their austere lives 
to a close, many of them without ever having set foot upon 
the adjacent islands, and find a resting place in a tiny plot of 
consecrated ground under the shadow of a chapel built from 
the stones of St. Kenery's Oratory. Unbelievable, you say, at 
a distance of only twenty-eight miles from a town the size of 
Galway. Perhaps, but the truth notwithstanding. 

We boarded the diminuitive steamer plying across Galway 
Bay between the town of Galway and the islands one Satur- 
day noon. A cold blue sky arched over us, and the typical 
haze that so often and so tantalizingly obscures the view ex- 
cept on days favored of fortune was absent. Once away from 
the low -browed heights over which Galway rambles, the coun- 
try spread itself in panorama before our eager gaze. The Bay 
hedged us in a semi-circular basin of tumbling water rimmed 
by Connemara's twelve great peaks — the ^^ Twelve Pins of Ben- 
nabeola " — that dominated the view to leaward, by the wooded 
prominences of the Galway hills behind us, and by the tiers 
of the Burren of Clare that project into the bastion-like cliffs 
of Moher at Miltown Malbay, bluff and sterile to the port 
side. 

As yet we could see nothing of the islands beyond a re- 
mote, wavering line of gray along the horizon when the marine 
glasses were trained to a certain quarter, but two-thirds of the 
way out the breeze freshened till patches of clear blue reflec- 
tion glazed the trough of the waves, and almost at the same 
instant the islands came into view in the guise of squat, black 
hummocks that even as we looked evolved into a wilderness of 
crags manifesting no signs of habitation. The wild water 
climbed to the very scarp of the cliffs, receding with reluc- 
tant movement suggestive of the forced retreat of an animal of 



Digitized by 



Google 



656 The South Isles of Arran [Aug., 

prey. The chill of things forsaken enfolded them in a deso- 
late grandeur as provocatiTe of pity and dry- mouthed terror 
as any human tragedy. We saw no mode of approach to the 
islands and said as much. Then some one pointed out a covey 
of dark flecks upon the face of the permanent way, which we 
had taken to be gulls or sea-mews, with the explanation that 
they were the curraghs coming to take us ashore. Yet this 
did not wholly reassure us, for even such small boats as these 
appeared to be could not land near those cliffs. Presently, 
however, the channel which the steamei was following carried 
her within the curve of an elbow of Inishmaan, and the gray 
fa9ade unbent to disclose a wedge of shelving beach. 

The boat slackened speed at a distance of about half a 
mile from the island, since it could not go with safety nearer 
the impaling rocks. Scarcely had she begun to sway dizzily 
to the swell, now that she was lying to, when like a swarm 
of insects the curraghs drove under her forefoot. There were 
fourteen of them, each manned by three rowers who mingled 
their torrent of hails in Irish with the shouts and commands 
and greetings from our ship. The Duras, as one by one the 
curraghs watched their opportunity to dart alongside. Oars 
and boat-hooks were brought into play to keep their canvas- 
covered craft from being dashed to pulp against our hull. The 
time available for work was limited to that in which a roller, 
curling deck- high, would hold the curragh poised on a level 
with the railing. The skill displayed was amazing: Barrels 
of flour, bags of wool, sacks of dried fish were transferred 
from steamer to curragh, and from curragh to steamer, with 
a dexterity that excited our admiration. 

A last curragh that had been riding on her oars while the 
others were loading and scurrying away now came up. The 
oarsman stationed amidships was voluble in some command or 
explanation unintelligible to us. Before I realized it, stalwart 
hands grasped me under my arms and I was swung lightly 
over the rail and seated upon it, my feet dangling over the 
water. I looked for the little boat, leaning as far over as the 
restraining arms of the man holding me would permit. The 
little craft was sinking into the furrow ploughed open beside 
the steamer, down 1 down I as one sinks into space and eter- 
nity in a dream, without visible motion and with incredible 
rapidity. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The South isles of Arran 657 

I expected it to disappear wholly in some cavern of the 
ocean^ but in mid-flight it reversed and began its ascent on 
the long. leisurely swell of the water. The men in the bow 
and stern were ready with their oars braced to keep the 
proper distance from the hull. As the steamer lurched I lost 
my balance as I thought; but it was merely that the arms 
above had swung me clear and let me go. The standing rower 
straightening himself, caught me before my feet could touch the 
bottom of the curragh. '' Sit there/' he ordered, indicating the 
steamer trunk of my friend. He left me to be placed there bodily 
by the boy in the stroke-seat, while he turned his attention to 
the safe disposal of my companion. Then, amid the laughter 
and cap-waving of our late fellow- passengers and the screech 
of the whistle, we were o£f with a sweeping pull of six great 
oars that edged the boat's nose on, leaving the Duras to 
chum the water into a welter of froth as she caught her 
course for Aranmore. 

The men struck a northerly course, and before we realized 
that we were making any considerable headway, the stretch of 
shingle within the jealous frame of stone was staring down 
upon us like the gaze of a great, blank face from the rim of a 
bonnet. Though midsummer, the sun filtered through the air 
with that appearance of long, slant rays which we associate 
with autumn. The stillness that rimes with such days was em- 
phasized by the barrenness of the land. So, I thought, must 
have been the first glimpse of the island to the saints who 
sought upon its menacing shores peace of mind and long days 
of uninterrupted devotion. My longing to tread the rocks 
trodden by those ancients quickened with every sweep of the 
oars. 

The entire population had seemingly congregated to wel- 
come back the curraghs, as if some breath of the wider life 
represented by the little steamer might be wafted to them. 
The little group drew back to allow us the freedom of the 
pathway. For a moment we stood, hesitating, uncertain what 
to do, till a tiny girl in a scarlet kirtle and plaided shawl came 
forward timidly to slip her hands into ours and greet us with 
the beautiful salutation, Beannact hat I *^ Blessings upon you 1 '' 
She ''had English" she told us, and we were to stay with 
her mother who had remained at home that she might give 
us blessings as we crossed her threshold; besides, Seumas would 

VOL. LXXXIX.^42 



Digitized by 



Google 



6s8 THE South isles of ARRAN [Aug., 

bring up our bags, and would we be pleased to come this waf. 
The islanders smiled and bowed their welcome, nodding ap- 
proval of Ethna's action and her flow of quaint, musical English. 
They fell into a parti-colored train behind, their subdued voices 
and rich laughter intermingling pleasantly to our ears as we 
wended our painful way up the slope. The roadway was pos- 
sibly three feet wide, and was made of small chunks of stone 
the size of one's fist, sharp and penitential to walk upon. Walls 
of loose, flatish stones, piled one upon another without cement, 
rose on both sides of us to a height of two and a half or three 
feet. Nothing gave evidence of human dwelling, unless the 
network of stone hedges similar to those defining the pathway 
could be considered such, and to all intents and purposes the 
track ran unincumbered the length of the island. 

Our progress was necessarily slow. Finally the road forked 
abruptly and the village came into view. It consisted of strag* 
gling rows of cottages facing one another, stone-walled, slate- 
thatched, lying sheltered under the backbone of the island, 
where it rears a lofty forehead crowned by Fort Connor, or, as 
the Irish has it, Dun Conchobhair^ one of two ancient raths 
which date from the dawn of Gaelic history. A step farther, 
and we were well into the street The majority of cottages are 
set back a few paces from the road to allow for a patch of 
stony ground or a yard of flag between the front door and 
the inevitable stone-wall which is now and again dignified 
by a little wooden gate. Some ten or twelve were white- 
washed, all had doors painted red. Gardens are unheard-of, 
since on the whole island there is not a tree to break the 
monotony of the cluttering rocks. Occasionally the flanges 
and platforms of stone are screened by straggling willow and 
hawthorn bushes and furse of stunted growth, or overrun with 
trails of ivy draped and festooned in picturesque abandon. 
The grooves in the flags yield exquisite maiden-hair fern, 
green the year round, rock- roses, large-eyed daisies, and an 
infrequent bluebell. Along the water's edge a kind of grass, 
commonly known as ''bent-grass'' because slanted inward by 
the sea- wind and weight of salt from the spray, grows sparsely; 
but of verdure, as we understand the term, the island has none. 

Well on toward the end of the street we came upon a ter- 
race of four houses commanding a view of the ocean. At the 
third of these a stout young woman waited in the doorway 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909-] 7»:^ South isles of Arran 659 

till Ethna had ushered us through the gate. Then she hurried 
forward with a little bustle and flurry to pour out softly • spoken 
welcome and greeting. At nine o'clock the man of the house 
came in with several companions from the fishing and gave 
us welcome to his home. As he was wet through we left him 
to the luxury of a supper of potatoes and milk served in a creel 
and piggin on a low stool before the fire. A backward glance 
into the kitchen showed us the dresses of the woman and child 
vying with the brilliant coloring of the yarn looped from peg to 
peg along the walls. On the dresser opposite the fireplace 
were crowded odd bits of crockery from Galway. 

Mrs. Cahal was seated beside her husband on a four-legged 
stool about a foot high placed directly in front of the minia- 
ture pyramid of peats on the flagged hearth. Ethna was 
tucked away on a bag of salt in the farther corner of the 
chimney-piece, under a canopy of bream hung up by the tails 
to dry in the smoke. With every fresh supply of turf the 
flames whipped zig-zagging up the chimney-throaty so that the 
comers of the room were startled out of their obscurity for a 
moment. The place stood revealed in all its unstudied har- 
mony of tints and arrangement. The shadows of the group 
about the hob were elongated behind them. Now and again, 
by the fantastic shifting of the flames, these shadows were 
thrown upon the rafters, where the large oval fish baskets were 
suspended, the creels, the drying nets, and the lines of rye- 
straw ropes that serve with a wooden rack or two in lieu of 
wardrobes. 

As the days passed the women visited us and dances were 
made in our honor. Now a true Irish ceilidh is a gather- 
ing where the spirit of sociability rules supreme. On the day 
of the party we would don the fanciest waists forthcoming 
from our steamer trunks — this after a hint from Mrs. Cahal as 
to what was expected of us — and set off at dusk in her com* 
pany. Arriving at our destination we would be conducted at 
once by the woman of the house to the seat of honor, usually 
the square canopied bed to the left of the fireplace. When 
all the bidden guests arrived they were seated according to 
rank and age upon the bed, the chairs, the table (if there were 
such), the stools, the up-turned baskets, and the piles of nets. 
Whoever else cared to crowd in was quite as welcome, nor 
was any objection made to the children who swarmed in 



Digitized by 



Google 



66o THE South Isles of arran [Aag., 

silent and admiring groups about the uaglazed windows and 
doorway. Some one who can lilt is brought forward to a 
place near the hearth among the colliaghs and aged men, 
when there is no musician, and the evening might be said to 
have commenced. The onlookers would flatten themselves 
against the walls — the ladder used in ascending to the loft, 
the spinning wheel, and everything likely to obstruct the floor 
having been previously removed— and the dancers take the 
floor in a four or eight-hand reel, a ^' fairy '* reel danced by 
four girls and two men, the ^' Waves of Tory,*' the Rinka Fad^ 
or "Long" dance. 

As the dancing becomes more furious the fire would be 
drowned out, the back door opened to admit the pungent, 
clinging night air, and several additional oil lamps brought in 
from next door and hung upon a hook high up in the stone walL 
These would magnify a hundredfold the homeliness and cheer 
as their wavering streaks of light, intensified by the fluted tin 
reflectors, fell through the open door upon the gritty drizzle 
without. If for a moment or two there was a lull, some old 
man or boy would take the floor in a jig, or a girlish treble 
would shrill into a song startling with wild crescendos break- 
ing in upon a monotone burden, or an old woman would 
croon and her voice would blend with the dirge of the 
waters that grieve day and night about the islands. Then the 
dancing would recommence with vehement stamp and shuffling 
of sandaled feet upon the earthen or flagged floor, with quick, 
impetuous swirl that wreathed the crimson kirtles into sem- 
blances of huge exotic blooms, and rhythmic lacing of figure 
into figure— all to the exulting ''Oufl oufl'* that lifts the 
tune from measure to measure and rallies the mettle in the 
flying feet At half- past ten or eleven o'clock at latest, the 
ceilidh would break up. In a trice after the guests had gone 
the kitchen would be swept and restored to its accustomed 
order, and the borrowed lamps, chairs, and what not, returned 
to their owners' cottages. 

The social life of the Aranites is extremely simple. Cut 
off as Inishmaan is from the mainland, except for precarious 
fair-going, and from ail intercourse with Inisheer and Inish- 
more beyond the most casual, the islanders are thus thrown 
back upon their own resources in matters of work and play 
alike. Their island is to them the world. Galway, Dublin, 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The South isles of arran 661 

America — I put them in the order in which the Aranite in- 
variably speaks of them — are other worlds, unexplored , only 
vaguely known, and hence untilled fields for romance suitable 
for the evening's story*telling. 

At best the islanders are mere beneficiaries upon the bounty 
of a capricious ocean. The men fish morning and night, winter 
and summer, at every opportunity of going to sea, because 
the land, for which they pay an annual tax or rental of 
between two and three thousand pounds, would not support 
them. And, since the curraghs afford the only means to that 
«nd, the wonder is that the toll of the sea is not heavier. 
On the oceanward side of the islands, in calmest weather, the 
spindrift plays and the water grinds and drills the friable rocks. 
The cliffs have come to resemble the reaches and pilasters of 
a vast cathedral. In squally weather the Puffin Holes— -caverns 
reinforced by apertures near the brink of the cliffs — suck the 
pounding waters into their clefts to hurl them as from mighty 
catapults in soaring columns mast high, that, toppling, disin- 
tegrate and sheet the drop of the height with cataracts of pow- 
dering, steely water. But again, there are oftentimes days and 
weeks at a stretch when the men are storm^stayed. Then if 
the sea should come up, one sweep of its arm is sufficient to 
engulf the patches, of grain, that after months of toil have 
been brought to harvest. From whatever angle the physical 
eye sees them the islands appear always as if lying in shadow; 
but to the mental eye of those who know their people they 
lie in a shadow deeper than any cast by the gloom of a gray 
day. 

One murky afternoon when the fog smoked over the ocean 
we landed upon the big island from Inishmaan. After a de- 
tour of the pier we reached the highroad that, beginning here, 
traverses the entire length of the island, and branching at some 
little distance farther up in the town of Kilronan, circles the 
bight which is guarded at one tip by the wharf and at the 
other by the village of Killeany, a matter of approximately 
two Irish miles. This road is macadamized and on the straight 
line runs nine miles. Once well upon the highway we passed 
the doors of cottages like those on Inishmaan, but dark and 
straw-thatched and untidy. Next came the public-houses, two- 
storied, rough- cast; then the constabulary barracks, beautified 
by beds and window- boxes of portulaca. Farther on we passed 



Digitized by 



Google 



662 The South isles of arran [Aag., 

the Protestant church standing isolated and barren, with its 
three«quarter face tarned from the road as if protecting its 
handful of pitifully bare graves from the stare of the passer-by. 
Then we came upon an irregular line of the familiar white- 
washed cottages behind low stone walls. 

One cottage, noticeable among its neighbors for a deeper 
front yard with a superb fuchsia tree rioting in a wealth of 
crimson blossoms, was charmingly situated. Immediately in 
front of it across the road was the manse of the Protestant 
minister, built in a little hollow and so smothered in trees — 
almost the only trees on the island — that merely the roof could 
be glimpsed from the over-looking road. On a clear day the 
sea in the distance gambolled and sparkled, or shone glimmer- 
ingly like the surface of a mirror when the mists enveloped 
the water. 

As it persisted in raining for the next few days, we were 
forced to content ourselves with the aspect of life and manners 
afforded by the immediate surroundings. We spent the greater 
part of our first days, therefore, installed in the doorway under 
the eves or in the sitting-room window, either of which com- 
manded a view of the roadway. The trees in the hollow of 
the minister's grounds beyond swayed their moisture- laden 
branches almost on a level with the street Women and girls, 
with buckets on their heads, went down to the spring hidden 
among the trees, to reappear and go their ways up or down. 
Many were old, too old for work, some wore short Galway 
flannel skirts, some were barefooted and barelegged; the ma- 
jority, however, had long skirts of dark material, their feet 
were incased in brogans, their heads and shoulders shrouded 
in large black shawls. 

Men in tiny Tam-o*-Shanters of Galway manufacture saun- 
tered past, pipe in mouth, in twos and threes. Young boys, 
unchildishly sedate, went by in charge of the two-wheeled carts 
stacked high with peat or sea-weed, or driving a cow or a 
handful of skinny black goats along the road, or astride the 
diminutive donkeys that could scarcely walk under their loaded 
panniers of water, bream, or drift-wood. Babies, clad in a 
single garment, laughed and gurgled on the roadside under 
the feet of the passers-by. Larger children ran across and 
backward and forward in tag and races, and half-grown girls^ 
who had seen service in Dublin possibly, or in Galway, stepped 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The South Isles of Arran 663 

by infinitely less picturesquely clad than the fisher-girls of a 
like age. 

We noticed at once, and were surprised by, the change in the 
physiognomy of the people of Inishmore from that of those in 
Inisbmaan. The former are slighter in build on the arerage, 
and their faces are more mobile and darker. The women's, 
especially, are indicative of the difference that even a few years 
of modified environment can effect. The people of the middle 
island gaze into the future with calmness and self-control, and 
their faces mirror the reserved strength and steadfastness of 
their character and outlook. The people of Inishmore, on the 
contrary, having glimpsed a wider view, gaze out nervously 
from their eager souls, the old solidarity of their lives shaken 
by the new and untried element of civilization. We noticed* 
also, that grown girls and young men were rarely to be met 
with. Where are they? we asked. We heard in reply the 
answer we were ever hearing throughout Ireland, '* Gone to 
America.'' 

The very young passed our door with a glance of curiosity 
from under their black brows at the 'Madies from America,'' 
whither they are resolved to go. The old would set their 
water-pails down upon the stone paling, or slip the strap from 
their shoulder, and with hesitating step come up the little 
path to hear, possibly, a word of a son or daughter that had 
been driven by the home-poverty and lack of work to put the 
ocean between him or her and the family hearth. Numbers 
never wrote or sent word back as to their whereabouts, and 
it was difficult to know how to answer. Yet many others sent 
glorified accounts of the successes they were enjoying, with many 
a five and ten dollar bill, and many a promise to return soon 
on a visit. And there are mothers in Ireland who daily watch 
for the boat or train that they may slip the kettle on the hob 
to have a fresh drop of tea against the chance of their boy or 
girl coming that day, as I know one mother did day in and 
day out for years. 

Those whom I have been mentioning are the islanders 
proper, so to speak. But there is another class of permanent 
residents upon Inishmore— the constabulary and the coast- 
guardsmen. These, with their wives and children, stay the 
proscribed term of years, going at appointed hours upon their 
rounds by road or shore as duty demands, knowing the islanders 



Digitized by 



Google 



664 THE SOUTH ISLES OF ARRAN [Aug. 

but not mingling with them or ever becoming an integral part 
of their lives. They are as familiar figures here as in the larger 
towns on the main seaboard. On any week-day one may meet 
them cycling to and fro, while on Sunday they are conspicuous 
as they wend their way to the Protestant church, past the multi- 
tude of islanders going in the opposite direction to Mass in the 
chapel. Since as a general rule they are English, or at least 
North of Ireland, they are better situated than the majority of 
Aranites and know something of the world. Over and above 
all, however, the fundamental barrier is the one of difference 
in temperament. From our vantage-point at the window we 
saw the native with a quiet deference, real or assumed, pass 
and repass the alien, physically almost touching, mentally worlds 
apart, separated by all for which a difference of ages of tradi- 
tion can account. 

Inisheer for several reasons does not have the interest for 
travelers that its sister islands possess. Being nearer the main- 
land than either — cut off from Doolin in Clare by the South 
Sound at a distance of only five miles — it has progressed in the 
ways of civilization as taught in the Claddagh and at the 
fairs, to the detriment of its former beautiful, self-absorbed, 
self-sufficient life. 

Such are the South Isles of Arran. Grim, severe, they lie 
with ribs of rock exposed to view through their entire length 
and breadth. As we look upon their cold, rocky surface, their 
shores racked by the insurgent seas, we feel that they were 
fitter abiding-places for the restless hordes that first came to 
them than for the anchorites whose incumbency justified their 
description as a place where are interred the remains of 'Ma- 
numerable saints, unknown to all save Almighty God alone,'' 
and won for Inishmore the title '' Ara-Naoimh " or '' Ara of 
the Saints,'' and for the islands ^* Isles of the Saints." 



Digitized by 



Google 




CHURCH AND STATE IN FRANCE. 

AFTER THE BATTLE. 
BY M. J. COSTELLO. 

|N the persecution against the Church, waged by 
successive governments in France during recent 
years, events have followed thick and fast since 
Waldeck-Rousseau raised the shibboleth of the 
''Ministry of Republican Defense/' We wish 
first to review very briefly some of those events. 

Waldeck-Rousseaui when Prime Minister, brought in his 
Associations Law, which was meant to control the religious 
communities; at least so said its author when he found that 
in the hands of his successor, M. Combes, the religious of both 
sexes were compelled to leave the country. The Prime Min- 
ister, a pathetic figure as he arrived for the last time in the 
Senate, uttered these useless words: 

" // ne fallait pas transformer une lot de controle en lot d^ex^ 
elusion.** It was too late. Many fair-minded men were not 
opposed to certain just restrictions upon the religious com- 
munities; but the power of the former Premier had departed; 
a partisan was in the saddle, and he meant to ride until his 
steed stopped from sheer exhaustion. Then came the visit of 
President Loubet to King Victor Emanuel II. Pius X. pro- 
tested against what was considered an insult to the Head of 
the Church. A Protestant ruler might visit the Quirinal were 
he so minded, but the Chief Magistrate of a Catholic nation 
could not do so without offending the Sovereign Pontiff. It 
has been stated that the protest sent to the other Powers was 
worded differently from that which was sent to France. The 
French Minister to the Vatican was recalled ; the Papal Nuncio 
was sent away from Paris; and for the first time the ''Eldest 
Daughter of the Church ** had no diplomatic representative at 
the Vatican. The Concordat, or agreement entered into be- 
tween Napoleon on the one hand and Pius the Seventh on the 
other, was abrogated. Pius the Tenth refused to accept cdr- 
porations (Assoeiations CuUuelles) as proposed by the Govern- 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



666 Church and State in France [Aug., 

ment for the holding of church property. Papal letters were 
also issued against what is known as the law of 1881, which 
classed meetings for divine service with ordinary secular meet- 
ings; that is to say, assemblies that might be dismissed at 
will by the police. 

Next followed the expulsion of Monseignor Montagnini, who 
had been secretary of the suppressed nunciature. Now the 
Government is busy taking away the last vestige of property 
held by the Church under the old system ; to wit, pious founda- 
tions or money left for Masses for the dead. 

It is obvious, and indeed the leaders boast of the fact, that 
the fight is against Christ and Christianity. M. Viviani, the 
Minister of Labor, used the following words in the Chamber 
of Deputies on November 8j 1906: 

Altogether, first our fathers, then our elders, and now our- 
selves, have set to the work oi anti-clericalism, or irrelig^on ; 
we have torn from the people's soul all belief in another life, 
in the deceiving and unreal visions of a heaven. To the man 
who stays his steps at set oi sun, crushed beneath the labor of 
the day and weeping with want and wretchedness, we have 
said : '' Behold these clouds at which you gaze so mournfully, 
these are only vain dreams of heaven." With magnificent 
gesture we have quenched for him in the sky those lights 
which none shall ever again rekindle. Do you think our 
work is over ? It begins. 

M. Viviani is the man who, with indiflference to the feel- 
ings of many of his compatriots, went to live in the house 
from which the late Cardinal Richard, Archbishop of Paris, 
had been evicted. 

Here is an extract from a speech in the Chamber of Deputies 
by the eloquent Jean Jaures, whose name is synonymous with 
the extremest kind of socialism: 

If God Himself appeared before the multitude in palpable 
form, the first duty of men would be to refuse Him obedience, 
to consider Him not as a Master to Whom all should sub- 
mit, but as an equal with Whom men may argue. 

We quote again from a welKknown mouthpiece of the minis- 
terial majority: 

The triumph of the Galilean has lasted twenty centuries ; 
it is now His turn to die. The mysterious voice which once 
in the mountain of Epirus announced the death of Pan, to- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Church and State in France 667 

day announces the end of that false God Who promised an 
era of justice to those who should believe in Him. The de- 
ception has lasted long enough ; the lying God in His turn 
disappears. 

Equally emphatic against the Christian idea are the fol- 
lowing words of M. Briand, Minister of Education: 

The time has come to root out of the minds of French chil- 
dren the ancient faith which has served its purpose. • • • 
It is time to get rid of the Christian idea. 

That Cardinal Merry del Val should speak of the battle as 
a ''War against Christ'' was to be expected. And yet Prime 
Minister Clemenceau declares that never as long as he is in 
office will a church door be closed. France's Prime Minister 
will doubtless keep his word. But since the law (Article V.) 
prohibits the giving of religious instruction to children between 
the ages of five and thirteen who are inscribed in the paro- 
chial schools or destined to enter such, it is obvious that, if 
this law be observed, the coming generation will not be Chris* 
tian. The indications are, however, that this law is to be 
honored more in the breach than in the observance. 

The present condition of the Catholic Church in France is 
not that of disestablishment. There has been no State Church 
in France. Lutherans, of whom there are 65,000; Calvinists, 
of whom there are 500,000 ; and Jews, of whom there are 100,- 
000, received State aid as did the Catholics. Neither can ex- 
isting conditions be fairly described as a separation of Church 
and State. For, as the witty Harduin of Le Matin expresses 
it, the State is separated from the Church, but the Church is 
not separated from the State. Another writer sums up the 
situation, saying that the law, while separating, would separate 
without separating. M. de Pressense tries to express the actual 
condition by the formula '' A free Church in a sovereign State." 

Against mere separation there is not now, and there was 
not at any time, serious objection. The insuperable obstacle 
is that the State will not allow the Church to go her way in 
peace, but at every turn harasses her with the charge that she 
refuses to form corporations (Associations Cultuelles) in which 
to vest property. On the other hand, the Vatican continues 
to declare urbi et orbi that such corporations, or associations 
cannot be formed without violating sacred rights belonging to 



Digitized by 



Google 



668 Church and State in France [Aug., 

the very life of the Church. These societies, says Cardinal 
Merry Del Val, would be organizers and directors of Church 
worship. The Cardinal's contention is that those who wish to 
make an end of Christianity cannot be permitted to direct and 
control its worship. 

Thus it has come about that there is a deadlock between 
Church and State so far as the holding of property is con- 
cerned. As the law stands at present Catholics, as such, can- 
not hold property in a corporate capacity. The State says 
that the Church refuses to form corporations (Associations Cul- 
twites) required by law for , the holding of property. Hence, 
the property of the Church becomes bona derelicta^ and conse- 
quently reverts to the State. The same reasoning may, of 
course, be applied ,to all property acquired in the future by 
the Church. 

The Church contends that the corporations (Associations 
Cultuelles) demanded by the State are in formal contradiction 
to the principles of the Catholic religion. The official position 
of the Church was enunciated by Pius X., in an Encyclical 
dated January 6, 1907. It says: 

To declare Church property ownerless by a certain time, if, 
before that time, the Church has not created within herself a 
new organization; to subject this creation to conditions 
which are directly opposed to the divine constitution of the 
. Church and which the Church is, therefore, obliged to reject ; 
then to assign the property to a third party, as if it had been 
goods without a master; and, finally, to assert that .by such 
action the Church is not despoiled, but only that property 
which she has abandoned is being disposed of— all this is not 
only to reason like a sophist ; it adds derision to the cruelest 
spoliation. 

On this line of reasoning fifteen thousand Catholic schools, 
all the property of the religious communities, the churches, 
seminaries, presbyteries, bishops' houses, endowments, have 
been taken over by the government. The reasoning applied to 
religious communities differs somewhat, however, from that by 
which other Church property is being made to revert to the 
State. These religious communities or associations have, it is 
argued, been dissolved by the State. As they no longer exist, 
they cannot hold property. Therefore, the property, being 
without any legal owner, must go to the State. The Socialists 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909. J Church and State in France 669 

give the property rights another twist. They defend their vote 
by saying that the State has rights over all property accumu- 
lated collectively by a group of citizens. 

Priests are still being evicted from their presbyteries. In 
those districts where the mayor and local authorities are fa- 
vorably disposed, the clergy-house is let at a reasonable rent; 
where the authorities are hostile, the clergy are being forced 
to seek domiciles elsewhere. The money left for Masses or 
pious foundations will also be passed over to the State very 
soon. M. Briand reasons in the usual way. As the Church 
refuses to establish corporations (Associations Cultuelles) to 
take over this money, the money is without an owner. But 
Paul Constans justifies the Socialists by a process of reasoning 
which frightens property-holders. He says: 

This law will serve as a precedent. It is a partial appro- 
priation of private property for the benefit of the whole, an 
establishing oi benevolence, a community of interest for the 
whole nation. 

All that now remains to represent the property left to the 
Church by the Concordat, and of the enormous amount of 
property accumulated since, is the use of the churches, and 
the use is had not by right, but by toleration. The loss is so 
enormous as to be almost incredible. 

Let us suppose that Catholics were to buy or to build new 
places of worship. These could be taken from them without any 
compensation, according to the existing law. As a matter of fact 
new parishes are being established. A few months ago Mon- 
seigneur Amette, co-adjutor to the Archbishop of Paris, laid 
the foundation stone of a new church at the important suburb 
of Suresnes. Suppose King Alfonso of Spain were to make a 
present of a pulpit to the parish church wherein he worships 
when in Paris, as King James the Second presented the now 
historic pulpit to the church in St. Germain-en-Laye. The King 
of Spain's gift would not belong to the Church, because there 
is no Association CultuelU to own it legally. To a foreigner it 
is incomprehensible why the French Catholics, who form by 
far the majority of the population, should permit themselves 
to be outside the law as far as holding church property is 
concerned. And the surprise deepens when we remember that 
Catholicism is still the religion of the bulk of the French peo- 
ple, at least in the great events of their lives. Nearly all the 



Digitized by 



Google 



6jo Church and State in France [Aug., 

thirty* eight millions of nominal Catholics are baptized, make 
their First Communion, are married and buried according to 
the rites of the Catholic Church. That eminent journalist, the 
late M. Cornelly, used to say that the Frenchman will defend 
everything by his vote except his religion. His political lead- 

^ ers teach him that the Catholic Church is the enemy of the 

I Republic Certainly the late Leo XIII. taught differently. 

I He saw that the monarchy was dead in France, and to the 
^ late M. de Blowitz, the Pontiff said: 

y " VEglise du Christ ne s^attachi qu^ a un seul cadavre^ k celui 

^^^uf est luumime attachi sur la croix.** 

If the Republic presses heavily upon a certain section of 
the people the fault lies in part, and chiefly, with the voters 
who do not take sufficient interest in parliamentary life, and 
partly, also, with the constitution. There is no constitution as 
in the United States, and there is no time-honored custom as 
in England, to check the rule of the [majority in the French 
Parliament. Hence the rule of that majority is an absolute 
monarchy in France. So little interest do the voters of France 
take in elections that in those of 1898 and of 1902 the number 
of votes for the elected were less than the combined number 
of those who abstained from voting and of those who lost 
their votes for one reason or another. The following sugges- 
tive figures are taken from a study by M. Henri Avenel en* 
titled How France Votes. 





V»t*t oitaaud by 


VtUtmt 




the BUcUd. 


StpnttmUd. 


I88I 


4,776,000 


5,600,000 


1885 


3,042,000 


6,000,000 


1889 


4,526.000 


5,800,000 


1893 


4,513,000 


5,930.000 


1898 


4,906.000 


5,633,000 


1902 


5,159,000 


5,818,000 



The Church has now to depend entirely upon the voluntary 
contributions of the faithful. No uniform system has been 
adopted for the collection of these contributions. That they 
are entirely voluntary is certain, and any attempt to coerce 
the people by refusing the ministrations of the clergy has 
been frowned upon by Rome. To all, poor as well as rich, 
however, is given an opportunity to contribute. The 50,000,000 
francs which constituted the budget set aside by the State for 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909.] Church and State in France 671 

the Catholic Church before the Separation Law was only a 
modicum of the expenses required to carry on the works of 
the Church in France, 

It was estimated that the Church in France received annu- 
ally from all sources, including the National Government, local 
grants, legacies, donations, the casuel^ etc., 450^000,000 francs. 
Now, Peter's Pence and the Foreign Missions, to which France 
contributed more money annually than all other nations together, 
have to suffer. And for the first time in her history we see a 
Pope, instead of receiving money from France, sending a gift 
of 100,000 francs to the Catholic Institute of Paris. The richer 
dioceses, like those of Paris and Lyons, help the poorer ones* 

Some of the clergy have taken to secular callings in order 
to support themselves. Hence we find some priests breeding 
poultry; others, birds; others, rabbits; others, edible snails. 
One finds cur^s who are tailors, or upholsterers, or book- 
binders, or photographers, or turners, or bicycle-makers, or 
manufacturers of sewing machines. Here a priest makes 'Mn* 
violable envelopes"; there, one sees a clerical compositor, or 
an ecclesiastical printer of visiting cards. Some cur^s are 
painters and sculptors and live by the brush and by the chisel. 
The working cur^s have formed a Union and have founded a 
newspaper to protect their interests. The Abb^ Louis Ballu, 
cur^ of Parnay, Maine-et-Loire, has published a work entitled 
Trades Suitable to a Priest of To-day. The Abb^ Pelissier, 
now a clock^maker, has voiced the spirit of the working priests 
this wise: 

I ignore this season of persecution. I repair clocks, sew- 
ing machines, watches, locks, and toys. I bind books. The 
anti-clericals respect me and patronize me. I charge them 
less than others in order to prove that a priest is a good man. 

The suppression of the Budget des Cultes has brought about 
no reduction in taxes. The taking over of the property of the 
Church has not furnished money for old age pensions. It was 
the promise of these which made the people accept so quietly 
the spoliation of church property. They allowed churches, 
schools, convents, monasteries, presbyteries, seminaries to be 
taken; they stood by with comparative calmness when Byzan- 
tine reliquaries brought home by knightly crusaders, massive 
gold ornaments adorned with gorgeous gems, remonstrances 
which are masterpieces of the gold- workers' art, votive offer- 



Digitized by 



Google 



672 Church and State in France [Aug., 

ings of powerful seignetsrSf of wealthj bourgeois, of the hum- 
ble, of the infirm, the guilty, the despairing, were all inven- 
toried and handed over to the State or the Commune. 

On October 14, 1900, Waldeck- Rousseau first used the ex- 
pression Le Milliard des Congregations. This whetted the ap- 
petite of the multitude, and the masses held out their hands 
for the loaves and fishes just as the greedy nobles grasped at 
the monasteries in the days of Henry VIII. But the people 
have to go away empty. Not a single promise has been 
kept, and the billion of which Waldeck-Rousseau spoke has 
vanished into thin ain The sales of the church property have 
left no money in the State exchequer and the billion has 
dwindled down to a mere rhetorical flourish. The sales of this 
enormous amount of property do not seem to be regulated 
either by statute law or by common law. Rather does it seem 
to be dominated by a desire to keep the cash. When the re-, 
ligious communities were broken up individuals asked that the 
dowry they brought when entering be returned. The receivers 
or officials invariably refused. Banks, butchers, bakers, in a 
word, all creditors, since the suppression of the religious communi- 
ties, are refused payment on the ground that as these communi- 
ties did not legally exist they could not legally contract debts. 

By request of Ex- Prime Minister Combes, a commission 
has been appointed by the senate and is now investigating 
what has become of the proceeds of the sales of church 
property. M. Combes declares he never thought that the 
law which he applied so vigorously could have resulted in 
such a series of scandals and forgeries. Take the property of 
the Grande Chartreuse, for example, the members of which are 
now settled at Tarragona in Spain. That property was esti- 
mated at 40,000,000 francs. When it was all sold and the 
officials paid, the State received 7.50 francs. Some of the offi- 
cials have not yet turned in their accounts, and talcs are told 
where the expenses of the sale exceed more than the proceeds. 

The new order has resulted in notable loss for the cities 
where the churches are regarded as public monuments. The 
city of Paris, for instance, had to pay last year the sum of 
2,745,000 francs for the upkeep of her churches. Why? 
Because the law of December 9, 1905, makes the city of Paris 
a present of the churches. I quote from a recent report of 
M. de Selves, Prefect of the Seine: 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909.] Church and State in France 673 

The city of Paris is proprietor of the religious edifices, sub- 
ject, however, to the reserve that she leave to the faithful the 
gratuitous use oi them. She is proprietor of the churches, 
temples, aud synagogues, just as she is of the moou and stars. 
She can look at them in passing. Her people, sentimental 
and sceptical, would never forgive the city were she to allow 
the old church walls which are her pages of history in stone 
to fall to pieces. 

Before the separation Paris paid only 25090cx> francs a year 
towards the repair of the churches. 

French Catholics had not been accustomed to contribute 
directly to the support of their own clergy. Nevertheless the 
Church has never died out in any country for lack of money. 

The injury inflicted upon the material side of the Church 
seems to have quickened it spiritually. Last Christmas the 
churches were not large enough to hold the number of wor- 
shippers who would assist at midnight Mass. The renowned 
Madeleine had to close its doors at half-past ten, although 
divine service did not begin until midnight. During Holy 
Week the churches were crowded, and again on Easter Sunday 
they were too small. Parishes, formally too large for thorough 
spiritual ministrations, have been divided. This was not easy 
in the past, as an act of Parliament was required to create a 
new parish and a decree of the Council of State to open a 
chapel. The present situation further shows that Gallicanism 
is dead; that schism is impossible; and that neither Bonapart- 
ists nor Royalists have any reason to expect co-operation 
from the Church. The Church has now much more liberty. 
It is no longer necessary to get government permission for the 
promulgation of Papal briefs and encyclicals. The police au- 
thority over churchmen is much less, and bishops may meet in 
council without going to the government for permission. They 
can go to Rome to consult the Head of their Church without 
first obtaining the authorization of the civil authorities, as was 
required by the organic articles of the Concordat. The Church 
is rid of the slavery of the Concordat and the clergy are no 
longer State functionaries. The Pope can now select his own 
bishops, whereas formerly he was compelled to preconize those 
chosen by the State. The bishops can now choose their parish 
priests, and they need not present them to the State to be 
accepted. 

VOU LXXZIX.'43 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



flew £ooft8* 

When, only a short generation 
HISTORY OF RELIGIONS, ago, the study of comparative 

religion was taken up scientifical- 
ly, our theologians were inclined to treat it as essentially a 
demonstration against supernatural revelation, and, consequent- 
ly, a form of investigation in which Catholic scholars could 
not, in conscience, participate. The character of the pioneers 
in the science, and the frame of mind in which they conducted 
their studies, excused this view. But a little reflection and 
experience were sufficient to reverse the first judgment Divine 
Revelation has nothing to fear from truth, wheresoever truth 
may be found ; and it is quite in conformity with the tradition- 
al teaching of the Church that even the most corrupt religions 
contain some relic of primitive revelation, or elements which 
are the true expression of the human soul naturaliUr Christiana. 
Let but the study of comparative religion be pursued without 
prejudice, and its results fairly interpreted; then its findings 
cannot but add a new testimony to the teaching of Jesus Christ. 

This later view has borne fruit in the institution of chairs 
of comparative religion at some of our Catholic centers of 
learning; and has caused the work to be taken up by many 
of our scholars. The importance of not leaving this branch of 
investigation to be monopolized by the enemy is becoming 
daily more obvious. It has been said — and the assertion is 
quoted by the Catholic Truth Society in the initial number of 
its series of Lectures on the History of Religions,* that the 
battles of the future between faith and unfaith are to be on 
the fields of psychology and comparative religion. 

Unfortunately as yet we possess in English an extremely 
meager supply of works on this subject, written from the 
Catholic standpoint; while popular works of this kind from 
able scholars who ignore or deny the supernatural are increas- 
ing daily. For these reasons the Catholic Truth Society of 
London deserves our gratitude for having undertaken a series 
of short popular pamphlets, or lectures, treating of the various 
great religions of the Ancient World, and many forms of modern 
religious thought. The projected series will consist of thirty* 

* History pf Religwns, C. T. S. Lectures on the History of Religions. London : 1 he 
Catholic Truth Society. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New books 675 

two numbers^ which will doubtless be extended. The following 
lectures have already been published: The Study of Religions ; 
Syria; Egypt; Greece; Athenian Philosophers; Early Rome; 
Imperial Rome ; Methraism; The Hebrew Bible ; The Early 
Church; Thirty -Nine Articles; Modem Judaism; Unitarian^ 
ism. Those in the above list which have been submitted for 
review in The Catholic "Wokld— China ; Egypt; The Study 
of Religions ; Athenian Philosophers — are written by priests who 
are all competent scholars in the subjects which, respectively^ 
they have treated. Necessarily the note of the treatment is 
extreme condensation in the case of ancient religions ; for each 
writer has to handle the historical changes of thousands of 
years, and a perplexing variety of ideas and practices. But 
careful and methodical arrangement has helped to meet this dif- 
ficulty. Even apart from their apologetic valucj and considered 
merely as contributions to culture and general information, 
these publications deserve, and will no doubt obtain, wide cir- 
culation among the reading laity. They will serve as a need- 
ful corrective to much exceedingly dangerous literature that, 
in periodicals and in our public libraries, is being thrust into 
the hands of the people. They will probably serve, too, to 
stimulate in many of the clergy who have the necessary leisure 
a desire to follow up, in larger works, this interesting and use- 
ful study. Those who wish to do so will find ample guidance 
to extensive reading in the well-selected bibliographies attached 
to each lecture. 

Does any priest feel inclined to question whether such an 
academic subject as the comparative study of religions is really 
being presented in such form as to attract popular attention, 
and, thereby, become a danger that those who bear the re* 
sponsibility of directing souls ought to be in a position to 
cope with? If so, let him examine The Shelburne Essays^ 
which, as its title-page indicates, is a study in religious dual- 
ism. This is no heavy manual or tome appealing only to the 
student, like a volume of Jastrow or Hopkins. The work is that 
of one of the most accomplished of American literary critics and 
reviewers; its pure and simple style is the vehicle of wide 
learning digested into deep and serious thought; Mr. More's 
range of philosophic and religious knowledge is immense ; while 

* TJU Skttturm Essays, By Paul Elmer More. New York : G. P. Putnam's Sons. 



Digitized by 



Google 



676 NEW BOOKS [Aug., 

his power of analysis compels admiration even when we dissent 
most emphatically from the results which it reaches. 

On a superficial view the essays might seem to be a col-^ 
lection of unrelated topics. Indian Philosohy; St. Augustine; 
Pascal; Sir Thomas Browne; John Bunyan; Rousseau; Soc- 
rates; and Plato^is not this a list which suggests immeasur*> 
able divergence rather than proximity in religious thought ? 
Before, however, one has followed Mr. More far 'into the dis* 
sertation on Indian philosophy (The Forest Philosophy of India ; 
and The Bhagavad Gita), the dominant idea on which he con- 
structs his synthesis strikes the eye. Before we attempt to 
extract it, we may parenthetically observe that Mr. More's 
interpretation of the religious significance of the Upanishads 
controverts the prevailing opinion, that this philosophy is dis- 
tinctively pantheistic. On the contrary it is, he insists with 
incisive argument, fundamentally dualistic. Together with minor 
authorities, Mr. More holds, Deussen made the mistake of 
torturing into the mold of his own hard intellectualism, the 
Indian expression of what, at bottom, was a religious human 
experience. Prepossessions derived from Spinoza and Kant 
must not be injected into the Upanishads. They are not meta- 
physical disquisitions; the truth of the Upanishads lies in the 
vivid consciousness of a dualism in our own nature. 

Here is no room for pantheism, and no word is more apt to 
give a false impression of the early Indian philosophy than 
the term " monism " which is so glibly applied to it. 

With terse accuracy Mr. More describes the genesis of pan- 
theism ! 

For what, in the end, is pantheism or religious ** monism " ? 
It is either a vague and lax state of reverie, or, if pronounced, 
as a consistent theory of existence, an attempt to fuse together 
the metaphysical denial of one phase of consciousness with 
the mythological projection of man's aspiring spirit into the 
void. It is thus a barren hybrid between religion and phil- 
osophy, with no correspondence in our emotional or rational 
needs. To say flatly that God is all, and that there is noth- 
ing but God, is simply a negation of what we know and feel. 

The i(Ue mire of Mr. More is that the consciousness of evil, 
the sense of sin, the conviction which St. Paul expressed when 
he spoke of the two laws fighting within him, is the funda- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] NEW BOOKS 6J7 

msQtal religious fact, which, innate and ineradicable in the 
soul, has been the root of every form of religion that has ever 
arisen on this earth — ''the spiritual history of the human race 
as the long writhing and posturing of the soul (I mean some- 
thing more than the mere intellect — the whole essential man, 
indeed) to conceal, or deny, or ridicule, or overcome, this cleft 
in its nature." As he discusses the Bhagavad Gita, St. Au- 
gustine, Pascal, Rousseau, Bunyan, and the other religious or 
philosophic thinkers, Mr. More's preoccupation is to examine 
how each has given expression to this consciousness of the 
moral and spiritual conflict within the soul, ** the sense of that 
deep cleft within the human soul itself which springs from the 
bitter consciousness of evil." 

As we read Mr. More, we inevitably recall the chapter of 
the Apologia in which Cardinal Newman eloquently argues that 
this fact points unmistakably and unswervingly to the doctrine 
of original sin. Sad to say, it leads Mr. More, not to Paul 
and Christ, but to Socrates and Plato for a solution of the 
problem; or, rather, to some practical rule of life; for Mr. 
More leaves the great problem without attempting an answer. 
One cannot but regret this conclusion as one feels the earnest- 
ness of the man, and his keen spiritual hunger, which he fre- 
quently voices with eloquence; as, for instance: 

When once the sting of eternity has entered the heart, and 
the desire to behold things sub specie aternitaiis^ when once 
the thirst of stability and repose has been felt, for that soul 
there is no longer content in the diversions of life ; and try as 
he will to conceal from himself the truth, with every pleasure 
and amid every distraction^ he tastes the clinging drop of 
bitterness. 

Again he writes in a similar strain: 

To one whose eye has opened, though it be for a moment 
only, upon the vision of an indefectible peace, there is hence- 
forth no compulsion that can make him rest satisfied in pass- 
ing pleasures ; the end of desire has devoured its beginning, 
and he is driven by a power greater than the hope of any re- 
ward '^to fast from this earth." 

This book reflects a frame of mind not rare among men 
who, like Mr. More, have found that the wells of their an- 
cestral Protestant faith have dried up under the scorching winds 



Digitized by 



Google 



678 NEW BOOKS [Aosr., 

of modern criticism. But their religious instincts have remained 
vigorous enough to make them shun the bleak void of i^nosti- 
cism, or the sty of materialism, or the temporary but illusive 
promises of humanitarianism, and they endeavor to dig for 
themselves wells in the wilderness. How can theism be pre- 
sented to them ? By metaphysics ? They smile at metaphysics 
as placidly as they do at, to use one of Mr. More's phrases, *' the 
babble of pragmatism.'' By the moral argument? But here 
is an acknowledgment of the sense of responsibility as the piv- 
otal fact of the life of man going hand in hand with the reduc- 
tion of the belief in a personal God to *' a projection of man's 
soul into the void." This phase of contemporary religious un- 
rest emphasizes the truth that, as far as one may judge, the 
belief in a personal Grod — ^and what other conception of God is 
worthy of the name ?— can be safeguarded only by the historic 
proofs for the Divinity of Jesus Christ, and for the authority 
of the Church which He founded. 

This is a respectable and respect- 

THE REVIVAL OP SCHOLAS- ful volume, bearing the impress 

TIC PHILOSOPHY. of the printing press of a great 

secular university, and treats of 
scholastic philosophy.* One is led to think of George Henry 
Lewes, the historian of philosophy, who, scarcely a generation 
ago, dismissed scholasticism as a farrago of nonsense which, 
he added, without losing his sense of self-respect, nor, it 
would seem, the respect of the scholarly world, he had never 
read. This unmistakable proof of revival tempts one to drop 
into quotation from The Second Spring. The main purpose of 
this work is to relate the story of the movement, brought to a 
successful issue by Leo XIIL, to restore scholastic philosophy. 
As a necessary preamble to a proper understanding of that 
story the writer first presents a synopsis of the philosophy, in 
seven chapters. If he stops short of playing the part of advo- 
cate, he equally declines to undertake that of adverse critic^ 
and he exposes the main tenets of scholastic doctrine with 
lucidity, impartiality, and a thorough grasp of . the matter; 
not entirely without a tinge of sympathy. In several places — 
notably where he draws the distinction between hedonism and 

* Th€ Revival of Scholastic Philosophy in the Nineteenth Century, By Joseph Louis 
Perrier, Ph.D. New York : The Columbia University Press. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New Books 679 

Aristotelian ettdaemonism — he is at pains to remove erroneous 
conceptions that have prevailed regarding the system; and, 
conversely, he drives his scalpel deep into some of the weak 
points of antagonistic theories. 

The history of the movement he opens with a chapter 
treating of the forerunners of the neo-scholastic movement, 
beginning as early as the time of Bossuet and Fenelon, and 
spreading in Germany and France throughout the eighteenth 
century, only almost to die out towards the beginning of the 
nineteenth. To Sanseverino he rightly assigns the honor of 
having been the first man to call before the tomb ''Lazarus, 
come forth/' Then Mr. Perrier relates, with fidelity, the action 
of Leo XIII., beginning when he was Bishop of Perugia; the 
resistance offered by the most distinguished Jesuits of the day 
to the Pope's first measures in Rome; Leo's insistance and 
final triumph. Next follows a review of the revival in the 
various countries of the world, in the course of which Mr. 
Perrier enumerates almost every publication worthy of note, 
whether book or magazine article, that appeared anywhere, ex- 
pounding or discussing scholasticism or scholastic doctrine. 
The remarkable acquaintance which he shows with the litera- 
ture of the subject is further manifest in an opulent bibliography 
of one hundred pages. The initiated will, perhaps, indulge in 
an occasional smile as they note some of the appreciations of 
works and their authors; but they will admit that if Mr. Per- 
rier errs at all it is always on the side of generosity. 

Altogether the book is remarkable, not alone as a tribute 
to the space which scholasticism occupies in the mind of the 
learned world to-day, but also as a piece of scholarly research 
and erudition. 

We have heard it said recently, by 

A PLURALISTIC UVIVERSB. one who is in a position to judge 

By William James. of the comparative merits of the 

various Harvard faculties, that the 
one which enjoys the least prestige in the academic world is 
the faculty of philosophy. The quality of Professor James' 
latest work* could hardly be offered as a peremptory argu- 
ment for or i^ainst this estimate. It is an attempt to answer 
the question which divides philosophers into two camps: Is 
the ultimate reality one or several ? Is Being a unity or a 

* A PluraiisUc Uniutrsi^ By William James. New York : Longmans, Green & Co. 



Digitized by 



Google 



68o NEW BOOKS [Aug., 

manifold? Mr. James declares against monism; and, in the 
introduction of his exposition, reviews the present position of 
philosophic thought in England. There, he claims, a reaction 
from the trend towards idealistic monism has set in. He in- 
stitutes a contrast between the materialistic and the theistic 
way of looking at the universe. His presentation of the strictly 
theistic conception is drawn on scholastic lines. But, failing 
to give due consideration to the reservations and qualifications 
attached by scholastics to their main principle of dualism, he 
holds them responsible for conclusions which we vehemently re- 
pudiate. In describing the scholastic doctrine of creation he 
dwells upon the principle of transcendence to the exclusion of 
the other equally important doctrines of the relation of the First 
Cause to secondary causes. In the light of the recent storm 
raised over the statements made by Bishop McFauI, regarding 
the atmosphere of non-Catholic universities, the following pas* 
sage is worthy of note: 

The theological machinery that spoke so livingly to our 
ancestors, with its finite age of the world, its creation out of 
nothing, its juridical morality and eschatology, its relish for 
rewards and punishments, its treatment of God as an external 
Contriver, an "intelligent and moral governor," sounds as 
odd to most of us as if it were some outlandish savage reli- 
gion. The vaster vistas which scientific evolutionism has 
opened, and the rising tide of social democratic ideals, have 
changed the type of our imagination and the older monar- 
chical theism is obsolete or obsolescent. 

In fact, although defending theism against monism, the pro- 
fessor puts forth such a view of the relation of God to things, 
and especially to the human mind, that his theism is little bel- 
ter than monism in masquerade. True, he rightly and vigor* 
ottsly protests against the illogical character of the monistic 
doctrine that the universe is one with the absolute, and that 
the absolute is perfect. 

The ideally perfect whole is certainly that whole of which 
the parts are also perfect — if we can depend on logic for any- 
thing, we can depend on it for that definition. The absolute 
is defined as the ideally perfect whole, yet most of its parts, 
if not all, are admittedly imperfect. Evidently the concep- 
tion lacks internal consistency, and yields as a problem rather 
than a solution. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New Books 681 

Another point which he makes, with elaboration, against 
the monists is, that they are bound to concede that there ex- 
ist some differences between the absolute and its various com- 
ponents, and differentiations among these parts themselves; 
and in making this admission the monist is inconsistent with 
his first principle. 

A lecture is devoted to Fechner, to emphasize the value of 
this philosopher's doctrine that conscious experiences freely 
compound and separate themselves; and then the professor, 
taking this as a text, in a lecture which is the most valuable 
portion of the book, proceeds to show how Hegel and his in- 
tellectualist followers have made the far-reaching mistake of 
assuming that objects are as completely distinct and isolated 
from one another as are the concepts by which the mind repre- 
sents them to itself. Pursuing this principle of the inadequacy 
of concepts to things, in his own fashion, beyond the just mean, 
Professor James retraces the steps which led him to abandon 
intellectualism in order to find in M. Bergson a leader who 
conducted him into pragmatism. This theory he touches upon 
only incidentally. Within the space of a page he states its 
main tenets in a way that uninitiated readers will find much 
more clear than the diffuse exposition which he has given of 
the system in the series of lectures professedly devoted to it. 

A conception of the world arises in you, somehow, no mat- 
ter how. Is it true or not ? you ask. 

It might be true somewhere, you say, for it is not self- 
contradictory. 

It may be true, you continue, even here and now. 

It is fit to be true, it would be well if it were true, it au^ht to 
be true, you presently feel. 

It must be true, something persuasive in you whispers 
next ; and then — as a final result — 

It shall be held for true^ you decide ; it shall be as if true, 
for you. 

And your acting thus may in certain special cases be a 
means of making it securely true in the end. 

This is pragmatism in a nutshell. The neatness of the for- 
mula simplifies the task of confutation. What I may think and 
desire to be true may be in flat contradiction to what you 
may think and desire to be true, what then? Must we assume 



Digitized by 



Google 



682 NEW BOOKS [Aug., 

that one or the other of us is in error ? not at all, according to 
Professor James; we may both have the truth — another way 
of saying that there is no such thing as truth at all. 

To many lovers of Browning and 

BROWNING AND ISAIAH, to many lovers of Isaiah these 

By Arthur Rogers. two names would suggest a con- 

trast; while more would, probably, 
deny that any common ground sufficient to institute a contrast 
could be found between the Seer of Israel and the greatest of 
the Victorian poets. The author of the ''Bohlen Lectures'' 
for 1908, which are here presented in book form/ undertakes 
to establish a parallel between them. Or, perhaps, in order to 
give him the credit of success, we might consider his aim to 
have been the discovery of some striking points of contact 
between these widely removed poets. In the opening lecture 
Mr. Rogers maps out a field of thought and emotion common 
to poetry and religion. Religion, as he conceives it, is the 
going out of man to God; his coming to himself among the 
husks of matter, and claiming for his own the Father's home 
from which he came. 

Poetry, on the other hand, is "man's highest thought about 
himself — the world he lives in, the problems which he has to 
face. It is inevitable that such thought should, sooner or 
later, lead to God." In a rapid survey of the world's great 
literature, Mr. Rogers cites some examples in confirmation of 
his assertion. Then he discusses the position of Isaiah among 
the Hebrew prophets ; the conditions of the times in which he 
delivered his message; what manner of man he was; and the 
success which attended his mission. Similarly, the literary ante- 
cedents of Browning; the influences which formed him; his 
relation to the earlier and the contemporary great English 
poets are surveyed by Mr. Rogers, who pronounces some ex- 
cellent criticism along the way. He takes up the charge of 
grotesqueness so frequently urged against Browning, and, while 
admitting that there is some basis for it, and that the gro- 
tesqueness sometimes jostles elbows unpleasantly with the sub- 
lime, he holds that Browning sins only venially in this respect. 
Of the other charge of pedantry Mr. Rogers acquits Brown- 
ing completely; for Browning's seeming pedantry rises from 

* BrowHing' and Isaiah. By Arthur Rogers. New York : Longmans, Green & Co. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New Books 683 

the fact that he anconsciously assumed his prospective readers 
to be as well informed as himself. Likewise, his obscurity is 
due, generally speaking, to his addressing a weighty message 
only to those who have ears to hear it. 

The main resemblances between Isaiah and Browning are 
their common fight for righteousness, their sense of an overuling 
Providence, and faith that the justice of God will be vindicated. 
'' With each of them there is the same enthusiasm of living, 
the same vigorous utterance, the same appreciation of the 
worth of what they have to do; with each of them is the same 
wide vision^ the same instinct of catholicity." The argument 
of Mr. Rogers in support of resemblances between the charac- 
ters, and between their respective times, are frequently some- 
what strained ; but as the main gist of his brief may be con- 
densed into the statement that both the Hebrew and the 
Englishman were men of high moral purpose, unbending hon- 
esty, and independence, he certainly makes out his case. The 
value of the book is at least as much in its critical obiter dicta 
as in its development of the comparison which it proposes. 

The public to whom Captain 
THE HARyEST WITHIN. Mahan is known only through 

the brilliant list of works which 
have given him a unique rank as the first of naval historians 
will doubtless be surprised to find him giving to the world a 
book of an entirely different character *— one touching the 
deepest things of the Christian soul. Yet there ought not to 
be any room for wonder on finding that a Christian gentleman, 
eminent in a noble profession should have profound religious 
sentiments and principles; and that, if he be gifted with the 
power of literary expression, he should seek to exhort and 
edify his fellows by communicating his religious reflections and 
experiences. It is a severe stricture on the times if we are 
surprised to find a successful and eminent man of the world 
also a man of piety. 

Captain Mahan informs us that the essays or papers which 
he presents are merely fragmentary and occasional thoughts. 
But although there is not any obvious methodic arrangement, 
there is a thread of unity running through all the chapters. 

• Tht Harvist Within, By A. T, Mahan. D.C.U, LL.D., Captain U.S. Navy. Bos- 
ton : Little, Brown ft Co. 



Digitized by 



Google 



684 NEW BOOKS [Aug., 

His recurrent purpose is to show that Christ, as pictured in 
the Gospels, is the Way, the Truth, and the Life, worthy of 
our supreme love and devotion. The writer exhibits great 
familiarity with the Holy Scriptures, keen spiritual insight, and 
earnest piety, which express themselves fervently. He insists 
sometimes on the individualistic side of religion to an extent 
beyond that which Catholic teaching can approve. But he by 
no means favors the doctrines of unqualified individualism. 
One of his most interesting chapters inculcates the necessity of 
corporate unity and worship among believers. He writes: 

The life of the Christian is the life of a member of an organic 
body, which has a life of its own distinct from, and superior to, 
the aggregate lives and wills of its members. The life of the 
body is not separate from that of the members, but it is dis- 
tinct. It will continue though any one of them dies ; yet, 
though thus independent, the maintenance of this life in full 
vigor requires, like the other purposes of God, the active co- 
operation of men who are members of the body. He who 
withholds prayers due to others, injures each and in each all. 
In each instance he injures also Christ. Thus St. Paul says : 
If one member suffers all the members suffer with it. 

Many pages might be cited containing nothing but Catho- 
lic spiritual doctrine — a fact which makes one regret the more 
that the writer's scheme of the Christian life does not embrace 
the principle of authority. One would wish also to see a more 
categoric affirmation of the Divinity of Jesus Christ, "true 
God and true man/' However, taking the book as it stands, 
we must welcome it as an offset to the sad evidences which 
abound on all sides of the widespread decay of all Christian 
faith that is rapidly reducing non- Catholic Christianity in our 
country to agnosticism or naturalism. A book of this kind 
from the pen of a distinguished layman will exert an influence 
among wide circles that would be impervious to the profes- 
sional divine. 

A miscellaneous gallery of worthy 
SOME GREAT CATHOLICS, men and true is to be found in 

this little volume.* The writer has 
not indicated on what principle his selection is made ; and no- 
body is likely to surprise his secret. The list of sketches con- 

• Satmi Great CatA^Ucs of Church and SiaU. By Bernard W. Kelly. London : Relie Bros. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New Books 685 

tains the names of Camoens, Sobreski, Bishop Hay, Daniel 
Rock, Orestes Brownson, Cardinal Manning, Marshal McMahon, 
F^ndlon, Richard Crashaw, Garcia Moreno, and Lord Russell 
of Killowen, among others of equally diverse origin and achieve- 
ment. The sketches are so very well composed that their brev-- 
ity — two or three small pages is the average length — provokes 
one to indulge in a little mild indignation against the author 
for not having been a good deal more generous in his measure. 

We are accustomed to statistics 
A PIONEER OF OHIO. arrayed for the purpose of con- 
veying in impressive form the rapid 
growth of the Church in America during the last half century. 
But more instructive for this purpose than any statistical dis- 
play is the story of Bishop Machebeuf's missionary career* 
from the day that he entered the West, in 1839, till his death, 
in his See of Denver, in 1889. For the greater part of this 
half century Father, afterwards Bishop, Machebeuf labored amid 
privations and trials, with an apostolic zeal and success that 
place him among the great missionary bishops of the American 
Church. To indicate, in a word, the extent of his labors, it 
may be said that the history of his life is at the same time a 
history of the Church in Colorado and a great part of New 
Mexico; while its earlier chapters relate work done in Ohio 
under missionary conditions. 

Though Father Hewlett modestly disclaims any pretension 
to picture the spiritual side of the bishop, he nevertheless does 
justice to Machebeuf's sterling character ; and loyally vindicates 
it against some misrepresentations. He speaks with the author- 
ity conferred by twenty- four years' acquaintance with the man. 
One of the imputations that he meets is that Bishop Mache- 
beuf failed to become wealthy — not, even if it were proven, a 
charge which St. Peter •r St. Paul would consider an unpar- 
donable crime in a bishop. Father Howlett deserves thanks for 
having placed the edifying story of Bishop Machebeuf's life 
safe from the waters of oblivion, and for having put into per- 
manent form a record of value for the general history of the 
American Church. 

•Ufi 9fikt Right Rev. Joseph P, Mackebiuf, DM,, Piomer PrUst of Ohio, New Mexico, 
Colorado, and First Bishop of Denver, By Rev. W. J. Howlett. Pueblo, Colorado : The 
Franklin Press Company. 



Digitized by 



Google 



686 NEW BOOKS [Aug., 

The high position attained in the 
MADAME SWETCHINE. Parisian society of her time by 

Madame Swetchine was not due 
to any of the qualities to which the other women whose names 
have become famous in the history of the salons owed their 
success. She was a foreigner, a Russian by birth; she was 
destitute of outward attractions, and had little conversational 
or social brilliancy; her literary abilities were not of a high 
•rder, if one may judge from her more sustained efforts. Her 
letters, indeed, claim a more favorable judgment; yet they 
cannot pretend to inscribe her name on the immortal list headed 
by Madame de Sevign^. She was, withal, the valued friend of 
some of the most intellectual people of her day — De Maistre, 
De Tocqueville, Montalembert, Madame R^camier, and Lacor- 
daire. Miss Taylor* defines happily the secret of Madame 
Swetchine's power: " Her popularity, due, in part, to the grace 
and charm of a woman of the world, was probably to be laid 
still more to the account of the inexhaustible patience and 
kindness at the service of all who stood in need of them, and 
a sympathy so great that — to use Marivaux's definition : ' votr€ 
affaire devenait riellement la sUnm* '* Miss Taylor has compiled 
a selection of pithy and epigrammatic sayings, drawn chiefly 
from among Madame Swetchine's stray notes, with a few from 
her essays and letters. They show a vigorous, sound judg- 
ment, close observation of life, and a deeply religious nature. 
Miss Taylor's translation is as good, probably, as could be 
made. But characteristic French thought turned into Eng- 
lish is a skylark in a cage. The book is an appropriate con- 
tribution to the '' Science of Life Series,'' consequently a com- 
panion volume to Health and Holiness^ of Francis Thompson, 
and The Science of Life, of Mrs. Craigie. 

The secular priest engaged in pa- 
RULES FOR PASTORS. rochial work will find a wise and 

sympathetic counsellor in the anon- 
ymous author of this little volumcf It first discusses the priest- 
ly dignity, the rule of life proper to a pastor, the importance 

* The MiLximsof Mada'me Swetchitu, Selected and Translated, with a Biographical Note, 
by I. A. Taylor. St. Louis : B. Herder. 

t Rules f9t the Pastors of Souls, From the German. By Rev. T. Slater, S J., and Rev. 
A. Rauch, S.J. New York : Bensiger Brothers, 



Digitized by 



Google 



1^09.] NEW BOOKS 687 

of a systematic disposal of time, and the just medium to be 
observed regarding the care of one's health. Then it passes 
on to the behavior that the priest ought to observe towards 
the various classes of persons with whom he comes in contact 
relatives, the housekeeper, brother priests, the members of his 
flock, the civil authorities, and persons of a di£ferent faith. The 
writer is a man of wide experience and prudent judgment; 
and he speaks in a tone of earnest piety that adds weight to 
his advice and warnings. 

With a sympathetic and kindly eye 
THE PEOPLE AT PLAT. Mr. Lynde has observed closely 

the chief forms of public recrea 
tions in which the working classes seek relaxation from the 
strain of toil and the congestion of the tenement house.* He 
invites us first to the '' Home of Burlesque,'' the cheap theater 
sordid enough it is, in its material make-up; and its vulgar 
.repertoire, full of 'Mat quick, snappy stu£f/' is beneath criti- 
cism. But it must be said that, as Mr. Lynde describes it, 
with ample illustration, it is not vicious. . Whatever may be the 
character of the audience, the play usually inculcates the home- 
ly virtues of honesty, loyalty, and self* sacrifice. The thunders 
of applause are ever at the call of the family affections, and 
the pruriency which runs rampant in some of the fashion- 
able theaters is unknown. From the theaters we pass to the 
amusement parks, the dime museums, the moving pictures, the 
biographs, and the innumerable varieties of nickel-catching de- 
vices, whose name is Coney Island. In a chapter entitled 
''Society," Mr. Lynde describes the career of a typical work- 
ing girl, from the day of her emancipation from maternal con- 
trol — her Declaration of Independence was her first pay envel- 
ope — till she is the despot of a hardworking husband. The 
path she treads is marked by many pitfalls into which some of 
her sisters irretrievably fall, as our guide, with delicate reticence, 
allows us to understand. There is a fund of close observation 
seasoned with a fair sense of humor in Mr. Lynde's descriptions 
of the life of the poorer classes; and only the misanthropist 
will be able to read this book without feeling an increase of 
sympathy for the hard lives of the toilers, and a more pro- 
nounced disposition to look with tolerance upon their short- 
comings. The book would lose nothing by the elimination of 

* Tlu PetpU at Play, By RoUin Lynde Hart. Boston : Houghton Mifflin Company. 



Digitized by 



Google 



6S8 NEW Books [Au^r., 

the last chapter, which is devoted to baseball; for the stibject, 
as Mr. Lynde treats it, scarcely harmooizes with the other 
scenes of the ''short and simple annals of the poor/' 

One of the standing complaints of 
IRISH FOLKLORE* the champions of Ireland is that 

her immense wealth of natural re* 
sources has never been properly exploited. Until recently a 
similar charge might be made in the world of literature. Since 
the collection and study of the folklore of various peoples have 
become the pursuit of grave savants seeking in that direction 
for light upon prehistoric times, almost every country has been 
laid under contribution. Yet the inexhaustible store preserved 
orally among the Irish peasantry has scarcely been tapped. 
The rapid changes which are going on in Ireland threaten to 
sweep away this treasure-house, unless these quaint, eerie old 
tales, so redolent of Gaelic other-worldlincss are soon pre- 
served in type. The recent literary movement in Ireland has 
extended to this field. The latest contribution,* small in quan- 
tity but of exquisite quality, comes to us by the somewhat 
circuitous route of an English village. The collector writes: 

When I first opened eyes on a Saxon world— a small exile 
of Erin at one remove — ^the village was almost an Irish one- 
The '' neighbors " had put the saw through the cottage doors 
of their quarter, and made '' half-dures," over which to chat 
the more conveniently of warm evenings. In colder weather 
you fumbled vainly for the latch from without-^that is if you 
were not ** wan o' the neighbors' childer." If you were, you 
sagaciously pulled a thong hanging through the latch-hole. 
The door opened as if by magic, and you walked in saying : 
** God save all here." ** God save you kindly," was the re- 
sponse, and you sat down unbidden, and as of right, on the 
best seat and nearest the fire. 

In such surroundings did Mr. Hannon pick up this collec- 
tion of stories from the lips of Yellow Dan. This personage 
was ^'a quaint and very holy little handful of a man, who had 
been half-fisherman, half-cottier, somewhere Bandon way, till 
the ' bad times ' came. Then the great hunger drove him to 

* Tk4 Ki$tgs and tkt Cats. Munster Fairy Tales for Old and Young. Written by John 
Hannon. Illustrated by Louis Wain. New York : Benxiger Brothers, 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909.] NEW BOOKS 689 

England, and he eventually drifted into an orchard district of 
the Thames valley, with many other famine exiles/' The book 
is tastefully bound and illustrated. 

With a few glimpses of Italy to 

COUSIN SARA. enliven the somber e£fect, the scene 

By Rosa Mulholland. of Miss MulhoUand's latest story* 

is laid in the vicinity of unromantic, 
commercial Belfast. The moral of the tale, for Miss Mulhol- 
land is old-fashioned enough to hold that a novel ought to 
contribute something more in return for the reader's time than 
a thrill of excitement or esthetic satisfaction, is that the simple 
life and the things of the mind, rather than riches, are the 
way to a contented life. The heroine is the daughter of an 
impecunious old military officer, who, to eke out his means, 
tries his hand successfully at mechanical invention. In the 
course of the story his invention is stolen by a young man, 
the black sheep of the circle. This man has already wickedly 
ruined the character of another young fellow, his rival in the 
good graces of their patron and employer. The injured hero, 
in whose veins flow the artistic blood of Italy, leaves the un- 
congenial atmosphere of a Belfast counting-house to cultivate 
in Italy his talent for painting. Sara, who loves the artist, is 
wooed but not won by the temporarily successful rascal. 
Nemesis comes through the medium of the stolen invention — 
literally a case of Deus ex machina ; and, after witnessing a 
repentant deathbed, we watch the curtain descend on a happy 
bridal party. The story rolls along in the leisurely fashion 
which may be traced back to Jane Austin, if not to Richard- 
son. Before it is finished, we become so well> acquainted with 
the characters that they acquire distinction, though the drawing 
is not conspicuously bold. 

For those who have read the Re- 

IH A MTSTBRIOnS WAT. juvination of Aunt Mary t\itxt ne^d 

By Anne Warner. be no recommendation of Anne 

Warner. Her latest book, In a 
Mysterious 7ra^,t overflows with humor; although hilarity does 
not stand foremost, as in her previous work. In a vivid and 
entertaining story of rural life, we get some fine delineations 

•C^utmSara, A Story of Arts and Crafts. By Rosa Mulholland. New York: Ben- 
f iger Brothers. 

iln a MysUfiaus Way, By Anne Warner. Boston : Little, Brown & Co. 

VOL. LXZXlX.*-44 ^ T 

Digitized by V^OOQlC 



690 NEW BOOKS [Atig.f 

of character. The heroine, if not always pleasantp wins ns to love 
her and to admire her ideals, as do die minor characters in the 
tale-^n a mysterioos way. 

The latest work* of the distin- 

THE WHITB SISTBR. goished novelist, F. Marion Craw- 

By Karion Crawford. ford, is decidedly the work of a 

practised hand, though it does 
not measure op to the author's full literary power. The ex- 
treme simplicity of his style, his skill in handling the most 
complicated rituations, oftentimes save The White SisUr from 
being entirely melodramatic, in spite of the fact that the hero- 
ine is, in turn, an heiress, an outcast, a nun, and a wife. The 
hero— if we can so call a man capable of the deeds perpetrated 
by Giovanni — is also, in turn, a lieutenant in the Italian army, 
a bondsman in Africa, a [desperate lover, and a figure in the 
explosion of a dynamite magazine. But Mr. Crawford saves 
his literary reputation by tefusiug to become theatrical The 
characters in the book are strong and clear-cut. The story 
abounds in delicate touches of feeling and serious thinking, is 
powerfully presented, and gives play to Mr. Crawford's talent 
for handling dramatic situations. He puts Angela, the White 
Sister, through a series of most trying circumstances, and 
although the probabilities are a little strained at times, and 
Catholic sensibilites a little raffled, we remember the artist's 
claim of privilege. Through the whole story the strength and 
dignity of Angela claim the attention and admiration of the 
reader, but this admiration su£fers shock in the concluding 
chapter. It is difficult to realize why Mr. Crawford lessened 
the strength and power of his story by bringing Angela and 
Giovanni together as he does. This last chapter is, to us, 
wholly disappointing. Mr. Crawford's nuns may not be just 
the kind that live in real convents, but they are entertaining 
creatures and will scarcely do harm to any one. 

A new edition of the ancient and celebrated Bridgettine 
Breviary has just been published. f Years have been spent 
upon its preparation and it comes to us as an exceptionally 
worthy example of press work and of binding. The work will 
be of interest to priests and to religious communities. The orig- 
laal manuscript from which this edition was compiled belongs 

* Th$ Whiii Sistir, By F. Marion Crawford. New York : The Macmfflan Company^ 
t Brtviarium Saavnm Vir£immm OnL SS* SmlvaUris, tm^ SamcUt Bit^ttim. Romse : 
Desd^ et Soc 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



1909.] NEIV BOOKS 691 

to the fifteenth century'; it may^indeedi date from the fourteenth. 
The breviary contains all the canonical offices of the entire 
year according to the Bridgettine Rite. The present publica- 
tion is the fruit of the labors of the nuns at Syon Abbeyi 
Chudleighy South Devon^ England, and copies may be obtained 
by addressing that abbey. 

Poetry written for a purpose is never poetry of a high order. 
When a writer uses verse as a deliberate and studied mean for 
an ulterior end he is almost inevitably predestined to failure. 
And the office of a reviewer in this particular instance is the 
more painful because the purpose of the present volume is so 
eminently worthy. The author* seeks to cultivate among his 
readers a love of mental prayer, in which endeavor he will sure- 
ly have the sympathy of every right-minded man. His verses 
are devotional, exact, and thoroughly orthodox; and as en* 
deavors to present in pleasing language the great truths of 
religion they are praiseworthy. But they lack the essential 
notes that go to make true poetry. For the verse that really 
leads, and we might say that almost drives, one to mental 
prayer, we need but go to Crashaw, or Coventry Patmore, or 
Francis Thompson, not to mention other great Catholic poets. 
Nevertheless we cannot but wish, with the author of this volume, 
that some may find his verses helpful. 

There is a scarcity of popular literature on the significance 
of the sacramentals of the Church, so we welcome the publi- 
cation. Holy Water and its Significance for Catholics^ translated 
from the German by Rev. J. F. Lang. The booklet presents 
the teaching of the Church, and it is a comparatively comple^ 
exposition of the subject. It is published by Fr. Pustet & 
Co., of New York. 

The latest edition of Short Answers to Common Objections 
Against Religion^ by Mgr. Segur, shows that over three hun- 
dred thousand copies of the little book have already been sold. 
The work deserves a wide circulation. The price is but fifteen 
cents and it may be obtained from the International Catholic 
Truth Society of Brooklyn, New York. 

This same Society has issued a pamphlet of forty- eight 
pages. Religious Unrest — The Way Out^ a series of comments on 

* SpifUmal Pirns as Aids io Menial Prt^ir^ By the Rey. J. B. Johnson, M.A. New 
York : Longmans, Green & Co. r~^ \ 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



69a New books [Atig. 

the lectures of the Rev. A. G. Mortimer* D.D.» Philadelphia, 
by J, A Lafferty. 

A new paper edition of the able and practical lectures of 
Father Damen has just been published by the Catholic Record 
Publishing Company of London, Canada. 

Latin Pron$unced for Church Services, by Rev. E. J. Mur- 
phy, is intended for those who have no knowledge of Latin* 
In this publication the sounds of the Latin words are so pre- 
sented to the eye, that children, who have learned to spell and 
pronounce primary words, will be able to sing the Latin ser- 
vices correctly and distinctly by sight or after a few readings. 
The book will find a broad field of usefulness in choirs, schools, 
and sodalities. 

Latin Pronounced for Altar Boys, a like publication, is a 
very practical handbook for boys who are .learning to serve at 
Holy Mass. Both books are published by the Christian Press 
Association, New York. 

A manual for the sick entitled, Auxilium Infirmorum, pub- 
lished by the London Catholic Truth Society, comprises some 
thirty-six chapters of readings for the sick. They are to give 
help and encouragement to those who suffer, and we think them 
admirably suited to their purpose. 

How to Become a Law Stenographer^ by W. L. Mason, pub- 
lished by Isaac Pitman & Son, New York, is a practical aid in 
securing a familiar knowledge with law work. It is compiled 
in an able manner and will be of valuable service to individual 
stenographers as well as to teachers preparing students for 
legal work. 

Style Book of Business English, by H. W. Hammond, is 
another of Pitman's useful and practical commercial publications. 
tt is not an exhaustive treatise, but has for its purpose the 
object of correcting many defects in English made by beginners 
in correspondence and typewriting. 

Business Correspondence in Shorthand is one of a series of 
booklets containing forty business letters in model shorthand 
with the usual English consulting key. 



Digitized by 



Google 



jfoteidn pedobicals. 

The Tablet (12 Juq«): ''Mr. Carnegie's Gift to France." On 
the assumption that war between the French and Anglo- 
Saxon nations has become impossible. Mr. Carnegie has 
set aside a snm of $1^000,000 to form a fund for the 
benefit of French heroes. ''Did the Church of Eng- 
land Reform Herself?" For an answer the work of Dr. 
Lingard on Anglican Continuity is cited, in which the 
author shows that the Reformation was really the work 

of the civil power. ^"The Island of Saints." That 

England, like Ireland, was once known bjr this name is 
proved from a speech of Pius IX. 's and also from Leo 
XIII/s Epistcla Apostolica ad Anglos.'^^ApTopoB of " The 
Miracle of the Liquefaction," a correspondent asks what 
sensible benefit, such as we find in the case of other 
miracles, accrued to the human race from the miracle 
under consideration ? 

(19 June): "The Welsh Disestablishment Bill "has been 
withdrawn, with the Grovernment's assurance that it will 
be the first measure proceeded with next year. A 
victory for "The Dutch Catholics "in the General Elec- 
tion is reported. A remarkable feature of the polling 

has been the rout of the Socialists. ^Writing on "The 

English Church Pageant" an Eye- Witness draws atten- 
tion to some historical and liturgical inaccuracies, and 
asks why St. Dunstan should have used two croziers 
and walked about the country wearing a pallium?—— 
For incitement to resistance against the law the Clemen- 
ceau Grovernment has begun the " Prosecution of Car- 
dinal Andrieu." In refutation of Mr. Birrell's state- 
ment that " no Irish Protestant becomes a Roman Catho- 
lic" several distinguished names are mentioned. 
(26 June): "London Protests Against the Budget" in 
a meeting which is said to be unparalleled in its history. 

"An Incitement to Schism" is to be found in the 

action of the President of the French Republic, who 
signed over the Church of Sains-les-Fressin to the as^ 
sociation cultuelle. The head of this body is an ex- 
communicated priest.— —Under "Correspondence from 



Digitized by 



Google 



694 FOREIGN PERIODICALS [Aug., 

Rome '^ it is [reported that the professors in the new 
Biblical ;Institttte are to be nominated by the General 
of the Company of Jesus ; it is not, however, supposed 
that they will be exclusively Jesuits.— —'' Vandalism in 
Rome/' Attention is drawn to the action of Commenda- 
tore Boni in destroying ancient Christian churches for 
the sake of unearthing one scrap of antique bronze or a 
little inch of paganism. 

Th$ Month (June): Dom Bede Camm, O.S.B., in ^'The Found- 
ers of Beuron/' furnishes a brief history of the life of 
the Right Rev. Dom Placid Wolter, whose loss the whole 
Benedictine Order is mourning.— —In '^ Enigmas for Dar- 
winians '' J. G. advances some difficult problems for the 

champions of Natural Selection to solve. " A Report 

on Moral Instruction '' is a review of a book by Gustav 
Spiller, in which he has gathered most of the Moral In- 
struction Syllabuses of the various countries of the world. 
The reviewer, S. F. S., while admitting the value of the 
compilation, claims that its conclusions cannot be accepted 
as satisfactory to Catholics. The Rev. Herbert Thurs- 
ton, in '^ Obsolete History," objects to some of the state- 
ments made by Mr. Percy Dearmer in commenting se- 
verely on Innocent III.'s dealings with King John. 

The effort made by a number of French publicists to 
inaugurate a system of social reform by publishing a 
series of tracts bearing on the subject is explained in 
" L' Action Populaire." 

The Expository Times (June) : That the Epistle to the Hebrews 
was written by a woman or if not by a woman alone, 
by a man and woman together, ^'Aquila and Priscilla,'' 
is regarded by Dr. Rendel Harris " as an entirely rea- 
sonable hypothesis and capable of strong support.' * 
Apropos of the discovery of a cemetery of new-bom 
infants at Gezer, Professor Driver asks the question : Is 
there evidence for the Foundation Sacrifice in Israel? 

He thinks so and gives his reasons. Dr. Conybeare's 

latest book, Myth^ Magic^ and Morals^ attempts to make 
a distinction between the real Jesus of the Gospels and 
the " fictitious " Christ.— That Abraham proposed sac- 
rificing his son not on Moriah but on Sinai is sug- 
gested by the Rev. Gordon Clark in ''The Site of the 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909.J FOREIGN PERIODICALS 695 

Sacrifice of Isaac/'— -^Professor Grutzmacher, of Heidel- 
berg, gives a short biography of Synesius, '' Bishop of 
Cyrene/' the pupii of Hypatia, and one of the most re- 
markable personalities of his age. 

Ihi Intemaiianal Journal of Ethics (July) : ** Moral Education : 
The Task of the Teacher" is a refutation, by J. S. 
Mackenzie, of the statement ''that virtue cannot be 

taught at all/* '' Moral Education : The Training of 

the Teacher " is a discussion, by Mrs. Millicent Macken- 
zie, on the preparation necessary for the teaching of 
morals. Teachers must be given the material for moral 
instruction as well as be trained to use it.— In ''The 
Nietzsche Revival'' Herbert L. Stewart declares that 
nothing quite so worthless has ever attracted so much 
attention from serious students of the philosophy of 
morals. The rhapsody of Zarathustra is the hoUowest 

cant of a canting age. That the countries where no 

remarriage is allowed show a lower standard of marital 
faithfulness than is shown in the countries that grant 
absolute divorce for serious causes, is the opinion of 
Mrs. Anna Spencer of New York in " Marriage and 

Divorce." Mrs. Husband, in "Women as Citizens," 

appeals to her sisters to defend the family, for the home 
is the center of the morality of the nation.— —"The 
Right to Property," by Professor Hoffman.— —" The 
Ethical Element in Wit and Humor," by Rev. B. Gihnan. 

Thi International (June) : Some of the changes likely to result 
from the invention of aerial machines are discussed by 
Rodolphe Broda in "Aerial Navigation and Civiliza- 
tion." That Mr. Lloyd George has triumphantly suc- 
ceeded in his " First Budget," where he was confidently 
expected to fail, is the opinion of L. G. Chiozza Money, 
M.P.^—-" Austria's Rule in Bosnia and Herzegovina." 
If the proverb that '* where there is plenty of light there 
are also deep shadows" holds good anywhere, it may 
certainly be applied in connection with the future of 
the above provinces.— Francis de Pressen^, in "The 
European International Situation," shows that the trans* 
formation of Turkey into a Great European Power would 
tend to establish a lasting and universal peace.— —That 
a " Pan-American Railroad" is no mere fantastic chimera 



Digitized by 



Google 



696 FOREIGN PERIODICALS [Aug., 

of the brain, bttt an idea the realization of which is 
making rapid headway, is exposed by Dr. R. Hennig. 

The Irish Ecclesiastical Record (June): That "English Civiliza- 
tion" in the eighties was not what it is generally 
vaunted to be is the purport of R. Barry O'Brien's 

article. "Early Modern Socialists/' by ** The Editor," 

reviews the work of the French equalitarians, beginning 
with BaboeJuf and ending with Prondhon. The perni- 
cious effects of their teaching are to be seen in the 
present day as expounded by the socialist Herv6 and 
the anarchists of Barcelona.-*— The enormous dispro- 
portion between religious and an ti- Christian journals in 
France is shown in "The Catholic Press in France." 
One of the greatest mistakes made by the Catholics was 

that they underrated the value of the press. The 

subject of "Glimpses of the Penal Times," by Reginald 
Walsh, O.P., is Father Randall McDowell, O.P., who 

died in Newgate, Dublin, in 1707. W. H. Grattan 

Flood gives a short biography of " St. Richard of Dun« 
dalk," a study of whose life appeared in this journal 
forty-four years ago. 

Le Correspondant (10 June): In "The Rivalry of England and 
Germany," Albert Touchard says that England can, by 
reason of her greater power at sea, destroy her rival's 
fleet and paralyze her trade. Germany's object is to 
get a base of operations. Such a base she hopes to find 
in the Belgian port, Anvers, and the road from Berlin 
to Anvers passes through Paris.— Emile Faguet re- 
views a book of M. Gaston Strauss on The Principles of 
Renan. Renan was an aristocrat by birth and education. 
This latter being clerical and idealistic colored all his 

work. Apropos of the new edition of The Memoirs of 

Cardinal Richelieu, published by the Historical Society 
of France, Robert Laodl^e gives a sketch of the im- 
pressions produced by a preliminary study of the manu- 
scripts. In "Germany and Ourselves" Jean V^zirc 

dwells on the unpatriotic spirit which has already worked 
such harm in France and contrasts the two countries in 
this respect. 

$tudes (5 June) : Yves de la Bri&re defends " The Primacy of 
St. Peter in the New Testament" against Orthodox 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] FOREIGN PERIODICALS 697 

Protestants, Rationalists, and Catholic Modernists. In 
"The First Catholic Impressions of St Augustine'' M. 
Louis de Mondadon shows that the saint saw in philos- 
ophy not a barren exercise of a single faculty but the 
first step towards perfection by a perception of the unity 

of the whole. Under '' Latin America " Joseph Burne- 

chon treats of Brazil and its capital, Rio de Janeiro. 
The panorama in the bay baffles description and out- 
rivals in beauty that of either Naples or Constantinople. 
If "Feminism" means the regarding of woman as an- 
other man then the writer, Pierre Suan, is opposed to 
it On the other hand, the movement which has as its 
object the improvement of woman's position is in ac- 
cordance with the teachings of Christianity and the 
practice of the Catholic Church.^— In "Dante Alig- 
hieri " Louis Chervoillot reviews two recent works on 
the poet by Frenchmen : The New Life and The 'Divine 
Comedy^ 

(20 June) : In " The Primacy of St Peter " Yves de la 
Bri^re shows that the text "Thou art Peter" is histor- 
ical and not the work of a redactor, elaborated little by 
little between the passion of our Lord and the writing 
of the Gospel.——" From Hamid to Mahomet V." is an 
account of the recent imente in Constantinople. With 
Hamid absolutism disappeared and Mahomet gathered 
around him the most popular leaders of the State.—— 
The interest manifested to-day in " The Religious Ques- 
tion" evidenced by the number of recent works bearing 
on the subject is, Lucien Roure believes, a most happy 

omen. ^Louis Marias writes on " The Discovery of the 

Odes of Solomon " which, together with the . eighteen 
Psalms of Solomon, form an apocryphal literature, con- 
taining many allusions to the life and work of our 
Lord. 
Revue Thomiste (May-June) : P. Mandonnet, O.P., continues his 
account of " The Authentic Writings of St Thomas," as 
found in the catalogues of Ptolemais of Lucca and Ber- 
nard of Guidon. ^Writing on " The Evidence of Credi- 
bility" P. Et Hugueny, O.P., draws attention to two 
classes of belief. The one which depends for its assent 
on what is known of the veracity of the witness — 



Digitized by 



Google 



698 FOREIGN PERIODICALS [Aug., 

the faith of science; the other which confines itself to 
the evidence without considering its guarantee — ^the faith 

of authority. Mgr. A. Farges, in "The Fundamental 

Error of the New Philosophy/' states two corollaries, 
the one drawn from the nature of substantial being, the 
other from the pretended cinematograph knowledge of 

M. Bergson. In " Reasoning on Contingent Matter in 

Modem Science '* T. Richard, O.P., points out that to 
many savants of to-day the interest of science rests in 
the fact of its uncertainty and instability.— ^" Human 
Liberty and Divine Foreknowledge/' by M. M. Morard. 
— — " Humanism and Pragmatism/' by £. Brumas. 
Rgvue Pratique d* Apologitique (i June): "The Morals of Mod- 
emism " are exposed by A. Scalla in his critique of the 
Force-Ideas of M. Fouillee, according to which ideas 
are the principles of actions. The ideas which are the 
highest in theory are also the most forceful in action. 
^— -The contention of the apologists of the second cen- 
tury that Christian miracles were of a supernatural and 
beneficent character, as opposed to those of the Gnostics, 
which were useless and purely natural works of magic, 
is the subject of J. Lebreton's ''The Beginnings of 

Christian Apologetic." Henri LesStre writes on " The 

Fete of God," known in the Church as the Feast of 
Corpus Christi, as a development of the worship rendered 
in the Holy Eucharist.— To save the reputation of 
'' Charles Perraud " from the slur cast upon him by the 
Abb^ Houtin in his book — A Married Priest^ Charles 
Perraudy Honorary Canon of Autun — is the object of Al- 
fred Baudrillart. " Hindooism and Christianity," by 

G. Bardy. 

(15 June): ''The Beginnings of Independent Morals" 
is traced by Joseph Dedieu to the threshold of the Re- 
naissance, when the coalition recognized in the Middle 
Ages between the facts of moral conscience and the pre- 
cepts of the Gospel, began to be broken up. Rcn^ 
le Picard, writing on " Faith and Freedom," quotes the 
words of Pascal addressed to the libertines of the seven- 
teenth century : " I should soon have given up the pleas- 
ures, say they, if I had the faith, but I say to you, you 
would soon have had the faith, had you given up the 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] FOREIGN PERIODICALS 699 

pleasures/' ^'^The Sacred Heart/' The institution of 

the feasti its objecti and meaning, are exposed by H. 
Lesdtre. In *' Brain and Thought'' Ph. Ponsard an- 
swers the question whether the statement that where 
there is a brain we have a thinking being, and where it 
is lacking, intelligence and thought are equally lacking, 
supplies an argument (or materialism. 

Annates de PhilosophU Chritienne (June) : J. Gu6ville points out, 
in ''The Philosophy of Hamelin," that the distinguish- 
ing note of present-day philosophy is the return to 
metaphysical speculation, and in the explanation of the 
passage from the abstract to the concrete and from de- 
terminism to free will Hamelin has largely demonstrated 

his abilities as a dialectician. " The Social Aspects of 

Catholicism" is a study, by Charles Calippe, of Ferdi- 
nand Brunetiire, who recognized that the true antidote 
for the individualism of to-day was to be found in the 

Catholic religion. In "The Origin of Religion," J. 

Reche reviews Reinach's recent work Orpheus^ in which 
the latter traces the beginnings of all religion to animism, 
totemism, and magic. At the same time the writer ad- 
mits that among Catholics the science of religion is for 
the most part neglected.-^— Louis Cons writes on the 
conferring of ''The Nobel Prize" on Rudolf Eucken, 
professor at Jena, whose philosophy shows a certain anal- 
ogy to that of pragmatism. The writer sees in the rec- 
ommendation of the committee a reaction against the 
teaching of Nietzsche. 

La Revue Apohgitique (June): " The Holy Eucharist and Social 
Action," a paper read at the Eucharistic Congress, Lon- 
don, by M. Arthur Verhaegen, showing the effects of 
our Lord's teaching on modern society.— —J. Fontaine, 
S.J., writes on " Modernistic Sociology " and quotes as 
opposed to it the arguments of Leo XIII. and Pius X. 

" Occultism " deals with the third of the conferences 

delivered by Father de Munnynck, on the dangers of 
the subconscience, which from being of great utility can 
become, he says, when improperly handled, the occasion 
of great loss, involving ruin to our character and per- 
sonality.— —" The Christianity and Aristocracy of the 
Roman Empire," by L, Antheunis, shows how the former 



Digitized by 



Google 



700 FOREIGN Periodicals [Ang., 

differed from all other relis^ons in that it embraced the 
slave, the freedman, and the patrician. 

Revui du Monde Catholique (i June): "Towards the Abyss/' 
In this contribution Arthur SavaMe traces the source of 
the evil to Galilean errors and ruses employed by the 
liberals to gain the ascendancy.— —''The Spanish Apolo- 
gists of the Nineteenth Century " continues the teaching 
of Juan Donoso* Cortes, giving his definition of liberty 
and the deductions to be drawn therefrom. ^The bio- 
graphy of ''The Venerable Mother Marie of the Incar- 
nation/' first Superior of the Ursulines in Quebec, is 
brought to a close.^—-" Fontaine and the Presentation 
of His Animals" is continued. 

(15 June): "Towards the Abyss" discusses the condi- 
tions existing at Laval, Quebec, and Montreal, under the 
archiepiscopate of Mgr. Taschereau.— — M. P. At ex- 
poses the supernatural character which dominates the 
philosophy of Donoso- Cortes, making all questions, 
whether political, social, or economic, depend on theology 
for their solution.-—" The Feminist Movement " is, says 
Theodore Joran, proving itself to be the real enemy of 
woman. From a true viewpoint the cause of woman 
cannot be separated from that of man. 

Stimmen aus Maria^Laach (28 May): Father Cathrein, in "The 
Modern Doctrine of Evolution as a Working-Theory of 
the World," shows to what conclusions this system 
logically leads and how it inevitably destroys the high- 
est ideals of mankind. That the charges frequently 

brought against Catholic charities of wrong and harmful 
motives are based upon a misunderstanding is exposed 
by H. Pesch in '* Catholic Charity and its Adversa- 
ries." M. Reichmann enlarges upon a late publica- 
tion of Dr. K. Weiss on "Escobar as a Moral Theolo- 
gian and His Mistreatment by Pascal." In "Life" 

O. Zimmermann discusses the aspects of life as viewed 
by modern materialism and pantheism, and shows that 
they fail to make good their claims, for they neglect the 
spiritual and thus deal only with a part of human 
nature. 

Biblische Zeitschrift (II.): Professor Fell, of Mtinster, in "The 
Biblical Canon of Josephus," shows the difference be-^ 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] FOREIGN PERIODICALS 701 

tween the foar-fold division of the biblical books and 
the triple division of the Jews. The reason for the dif- 
ference may be found in the fact that Josephus wrote 
simply from the viewpoint of history and suited the ar- 
rangement to the minds of his Greek readers.— ^-Pro- 
fessor Engelkemper, of Mtinster, explains the fact that 
in spite of the prohibition of Deut. xiv. i and Lev* xix. 
27 — ''Not to Cut Oneself nor Shear One's Hair for the 
Dead *' — we find the practice mentioned by the prophets 

and indulged in without reproof. Professor Franz Feld- 

mann, of Bonn, maintains ''The Unity of the Book of 
Wisdom/' and refutes Weber's assumption of four dif- 
ferent authors. 

La Scuola Cattolica (May) : B. Enrico writes apropos of the ques- 
tion "Of the Provincializing of the School." "The 

Classifications of the Old Testament " considers the order 
of creation as mentioned in the first chapter of Genesis. 
— — D. Bergamaschi contributes the last chapter of the 
article "Judas Iscariot" as he appears in legend, tradi- 

tioUi and the Bible. B. Nogara gives some information 

about " The New Vatican Picture Gallery." "A Scho- 
lastic of Sane Modernity/' is the title of an article on 
G. Rossignoli by a former pupil, R. Past^.— " Psycopa- 
thy in its Relations with Moral Theology " is concluded 
in this number. 

Raz6n y Fe (June): In his second article on "Patriotism" R. 
Ruiz Amado studies the application of the principles 
already formulated by Jos^ de Pereda and Jacinto Ver- 
daguer. The latter's poem, " La Atlantida," is said to 
be the greatest hymn of modern times to the Spanish 

fatherland. Zacarias Garcia refutes, in "The Practice 

of Penance in the Early Church," the statement of Har- 
nack that it did not exist during the first two centuries. 
My Social Vocation^ by Count A. de Mun, is re- 
viewed by M. Noguer with some notes on the relation 
existing between Christian Democracy and the French 

Republic. E. Ugarte dc Ercilla, in "The Centenary 

of Darwin," shows how few of his theories are widely 
accepted to-day and exposes the weakness of his argu- 
ments for natural selection and the relation between in- 
stinct and intelligence. "The Real Position of Molina," 



Digitized by 



Google 



702 FOREIGN PERIODICALS [Atig. 

in the famotts controversy over the relation of grace to 
free will and of the attitude of Clement VIII. towards 
him, has been made clear, says Jos^ M. March, by the 
discovery of Molina's original manuscript, copiously an- 
notated by his Holiness. 
Es/ana y Am/rica {i, June): Rdmulo del Campo outlines in 
detail the story of the South American epic, ^' Tabard." 
** All for Spain " is a protest by Gradano Mar- 
tinez against the title, '' a moribund nation/'——*' Order 
is the same as beauty* Both the details and, more es- 
pecially, the whole of the universe exhibit order. Evil, 
that is the ugly, necessarily arises as contrast,'' says £• 
Negrete, continuing '* The ^Esthetic Ideas of St. Augus- 
tine." C. Femdndez, in "The Exegetical System 

of St Thomas Aquinas," makes clear the two ways in 
which Scripture teaches, by words and by figures, giving 
rise to literal and to mystical interpretations. Historical 
events in the Old Testament may have an allegorical 
meaning in the New.——" The Administration of Justice 
in China," by Juvencio Hospital, treats of the dun« 
geons and of corporal punishments, especially by flogging 

and machines of torture. "Neologisms and Poetry," 

by Father de Mugica. A poem on the four great Span- 
ish dramatists in dialogue form by Jesus Delgado. 
(15 June): "The Origin of the Sacraments," says 
Santiago Garcfa, was, according to the Church, Christ 
Himself; according to the Modernists, they were insti- 
tuted by the Church to excite religious sentiment.— 
"The Legend of El Dorado," and its connection with 
the religious rites at the lake of Guatavita, by M. 

Rodriguez H. "The Philosophy of the Verb" con- 

tinued.— M. V^iez distinguishes "Christian Humil- 
ity" from hypocrisy and pharisaism.—— "Capital Pun- 
ishment in China" is inflicted for murder, grave-rob- 
bery, and rebellion; its form is strangling or decapita- 
• tion. Its use, like that of torture, is growing rarer under 
the control of law. 



Digitized by 



Google 



Current Events* 

The conflict which has so long 
Germany. divided the various parties in the 

German Reichstag has resulted in 
the dissolution of the BhCf formed some two years ago by Prince 
Bulow for the purpose of depriving the Centre, that is the 
Catholic Party, of the commanding position which it had held 
for many years. A farther result has been the resignation by 
the Prince of the Chancellorship of the German Empire, which 
he has held for ten years. It will be remembered that the 
Prince was displeased with a vote of the Centre, allied for the 
occasion with the Social Democrats, calling for economy in the 
German South West Africa, that he denounced it and them as 
unpatriotic, and that under the influence of the feelings there- 
by excited he secured a majority, although a very hetero- 
geneous one, for what he was pleased to call a National policy. 
In pursuance of this policy Conservatives and Radicals banded 
together in an alliance against the Centre, with the hope of 
being able to work together in all matters relating to foreign 
affairs and of keeping their differences on internal affairs in 
abeyance. 

But the national policy has involved the imposition of a 
large addition to the burden of taxation, and it then became 
a question upon whose shoulders this burden was to be placed* 
In their plan the government strove to adjust it equitably and 
delivered homilies concerning the duty of every class to make 
sacrifices for the well-being of the country. But whether it 
was that the government's plan was not so equitable as it was 
meant to be, or whether it was that the parties were at fault 
and unwilling to bear their share of the load, the government's 
plan was rejected by the Committee of the Reichstag to which 
it was referred. The Conservatives thought the amount which 
was to be paid by landed property too great and strove to 
place it upon industry and commerce, a thing by which the 
Radicals were aggrieved. The Centre, whether from convic- 
tion or from political motives, sided with the Conservatives, 
and by so doing formed a new majority. 

There are those who see in the defeat of the Radicals the 
closing chapter in the history of German Liberalism. The 



Digitized by 



Google 



704 Current Events [Aug., 

nambers of the variotts parties going under this name have 
been gradually diminishing, and they only held their place in 
the recent bloc by yielding everything substantial to their op- 
ponents. The class which they represented was more numer- 
ous than that which for a time they overthrew, but just as 
selfish and as indifferent to the interests of the people at large. 
This is now being discovered and the political insight of Prince 
Bismarck is being verified. He is said to have justified the 
introduction of universal suffrage by the plea that it would be 
the ruin of the Liberals and of their leaders the Professors, 
whom he hated with the sincerity of a squire and of a prac- 
tical man. It is not easy to understand the action of the 
Centre in supporting the Conservatives, unless it be merely a 
political move, for the Centre is in the main representative of 
working people, although it has a sprinkling of the nobility in 
its ranks. Pure devotion to principle is perhaps as rare in 
Germany as in other countries. But, as Count Posadowsky, 
the former Imperial Minister of the Interior, recently declared, 
the title of any party to lead a people is a higher sense of 
duty and greater readiness to make sacrifices. The Conserva- 
tives have been conspicuous in the recent contest in looking 
for some one else to make the sacrifices supposed to be re- 
quired and it is not altogether satisfactory that for any reason 
soever the Centre should have helped them in their schemes. 
The relations between Germany and Great Britain form an 
endless theme for discussion and have been brought into 
prominence by the visit which the German Emperor has re- 
cently paid to the Tsar at Reval. Many misgivings were felt 
on account of this visit, especially in Russia where it was 
feared that the entente now existing with Great Britain might 
be weakened. It has been more or less the fashion hitherto 
to belittle the importance of these exchanges of communica- 
tion between the titular heads of the nations, in the belief 
that wars now spring from the conflict of national interests, 
but it is beginning to be seen that these meetings are not 
without a bearing on the course of events. At all events there 
is reason to believe that the meeting which King Edward had 
with the Tsar at Reval in the spring, and the belief that an 
arrangement detrimental to Germany had been made at that 
meeting, was one cause, at least, of Germany's warm support of 
Austria* Hungary during the recent crisis and of the interven- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current Events 705 

tioQ with Russia which led to the sudden change in the policy 
of the Tsar. That after so great an affront the Tsar should have 
invited the German Emperor to Reval seemed to some to be an 
indication that the former was about to yield himself once 
more to German control — a control which would involve a 
change in the existing relations between Russia, France, and 
Great Britain. These apprehensions, however, seem unfounded, 
nor were they shared in the best- informed circles. So far as 
can be ascertained the object (and the result) of the meeting 
was, without prejudice to the maintenance of the alliance with 
France and the enttnte with Great Britain, to secure a good 
understanding with the two neighboring Empires, and to avoid 
a change in the broad lines of European politics. 

Russia is not at present strong enough to enter upon a 
conflict with either Germany or Austria. Without becoming 
subservient to either or to both, she wishes to be on friendly 
terms with them, but recognizes that without France and with- 
out England she would be in a position of inferiority which 
her legitimate pride would not long permit her to endure. 
On the other hand France and Great Britain, having no wish 
to break the peace, have not the least desire to interfere with 
the existence of the most friendly relations possible between 
Russia and the two Central Empires of Europe. Ever since, 
more than a year ago. Baron von Aehrenthal inaugurated his 
railway policy, but especially since the lawless annexation of 
Bosnia and Herzegovina, relations between Russia and Austria 
have been of the coolest. No representative of the Tsar went 
to congratulate the Emperor Francis Joseph on the occasion 
of the celebration of his Jubilee. If the visit of the Kaiser has 
diminished this tension, and there are some signs that such has 
been the result, not one of the Powers will find reason to 
complain. Hearty friendship, mutual trust, a pledge of peace 
between the two countries, as well as of the general peace — 
these are the ideals of the Tsar. So he declared in toasting 
the Emperor. Cordial friendship, confidence, peaceful senti- 
ments, belief in the high wisdom of the Tsar, were the assur- 
ances given in reply by the Emperor. What was said in 
private by the Emperor and the Tsar or by their respective 
Foreign Ministers ha^ not been disclosed, but there seems to 
be no reason to think that the meeting will involve any nota- 
ble change in the present state of things. Speaking at Ham- 

voL. Lxxxix.— 45 r^^^^T^ 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



7o6 Current Events [Aug., 

burg a few days afterwards the Emperor declared that the 
Tsar and he were agreed that their meeting was to be regarded 
as a powerful confirmation of peace. They felt themselves as 
monarchs responsible to God for the weal and woe of their 
peoples. They desired to lead them as far as possible upoa 
the path of peace and to raise them to prosperity. They 
would always strive as far as lay in their power, and with the 
help of G3d, to promote and preserve peace. 

The desire, however, to promote and to preserve peace does 
not bring with it any relaxation in malcing preparation for 
war. The next act of the Emperor was to send his warmest 
congratulations to the director of the Vulcan works at Stet- 
tin. Those fotm a notable addition to already existing works 
for building warships, and are intended to accelerate the con- 
flict with Great Britain which so many in both countries look 
upon as all but inevitable. The Navy League is not relaxing 
in its endeavors, and as it has returned to the unity which 
General Keim^s assault upon Catholics had weakened, there is 
reason to look for an extension of its influence. While the 
English Navy League does not number 100,000, that of Ger- 
many is almost a million. All these citizens of the German 
Empire are banded together of their own accord to insist upon 
the strict fulfillment of the terms of the Navy Law, and if 
these terms are to be departed from, it is to be in the direc- 
tion of further expansion. Any proposal for limitation is 
scouted as an impertinence. The duty of the League is de- 
clared by its manager to be ''to co-operate in the construction 
of a Navy strong enough to make war seem to the strongest 
Sea Power a hazardous venture." Inasmuch as special marks 
of the Imperial approval were given to the League on the 
occasion of its last meeting, it is scarcely fair to blame this 
strongest Sea Power for maintaining its strength. 

Efforts are being made to counteract the tendencies that 
lead to war. Visits have been paid to Germany by repre- 
sentatives of the party which may be considered the most 
powerful at the present time in England — the Labor Party. 
Those visitors have been better received, strange to say, by 
members of the Imperial Cabinet than by the organizations of 
the Libor Parties. Religious influences have also been brought 
to bear. Ministers of various denominations, including, we be- 
lieve, some Catholics, have been engaged in making a return 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current Events 707 

of the visit which was paid last year to England. A warm 
welcome has been given in both cases, bat no one can tell 
which is going to gain the upper hand — the advocates of peace 
or the advocates of war. Passion and accident, not reason, 
will decide. Those best informed with regard to the German 
people and their views are convinced that all ranks are united 
in the determination to build a great navy, and that no con- 
sideration as to expense will deter them from carrying out 
this determination. It is not acknowledged that in build- 
ing the navy there is any offensive object; it is meant for de- 
fense. But defense of what? On this there is no general 
agreement; there are those, however, who include among the 
things to be defended world-wide developments and certain 
political aspirations which will not be acceptable to other 
powers. But whatever the object may be, there is no doubt 
that it has been the occasion for a strong movement for a 
closer union of the various states which make up the British 
Empire. Apprehension and fear have been aroused, and all 
the colonies are determined, in one way or another, to con- 
tribute to the common defense. What precise shape this de- 
fense will take is to be determined at the Conference of repre- 
sentatives from every part which is about to assemble. 

The postmen and the other officials 
France. of the State having resumed work, 

and having accepted the conditions 
imposed upon them, French citizens were looking forward to an 
uninterrupted pursuit of their ordinary avocations and enjoy- 
ments, when all of a sudden the stable boys broke out into 
revolt, and all was turmoil and confusion once more. On the 
occasion of the race for the Steeplechase Grand Prix at Au- 
teuil the horses which were going to take part in the race 
were waylaid by fourteen or fifteen stable hands, who forced 
their attendants to take them back to the stables. The ex- 
pectant crowd on the race course were so irritated by the 
disappointment that rioting took place and both the military 
and the police had all they could do to restrain them from 
violence. In fact, the impression produced upon the masses 
was greater than in the more serious strike of the postmen. 
M. Berteaux, a former Minister of War and at the present 
time a Vice-President of Chamber, lent his countenance to the 

Jigitized by VjOOQIC 



7o8 Current Events [Aug., 

proceedings of the stable boys and became the champion of 
their wrongs, and even the Minister of Labor, M. Viviani, 
promised his support for their claims. On the other hand the 
government has been severely criticized for allowing the an- 
archy, at present existent in France, to be made manifest 
before the eyes of foreigners and of the ilite of the fashiona- 
ble world. '' Our factories are sacked, our homes are invaded, 
bonfires are fed with the chattels of workmen who claim the 
right to work, as at Corbeil, at Mazamet, and at M^ru''; such 
is the state of France as it appears to the eyes of opponents 
of the government. Even its friends are not without anxiety. 
They recognize that deep down beneath the surface there is 
intense dissatisfaction with the existing order, of which the 
recent troubles and the ever-recurring acts of sabotage are but 
tokens. And they do not see their way to a remedy. Least 
of all are they willing to resort to those measures of repres- 
sion to which their critics urge them. The pensions bill and 
the income tax bill, which are before the Legislature, do not 
seem to make much progress. It looks as if the country 
were on the eve of a serious trial. Perhaps the General Elec- 
tion due next spring may afford a remedy. 

In a. sphere even higher than the stable yards of French 
sportsmen evidences of wrongdoing have been disclosed. The 
Parliamentary Commission appointed to investigate the state 
of the Navy has issued its report, a volume of some i,ooo 
pages, dealing with contracts, guns, ammunition, construction, 
docks, administration, and other kindred subjects. Rumors 
have been current for some time that all was far from being 
well, but these were treated as gross exaggerations. The Re- 
port, however, confirms the worst of these rumors, and is a 
formidable indictment which fully justifies the many criticisms 
in Parliament and the press. In naval construction proceedings 
were found to be frequent which the Commission declared to 
be prejudicial to the public finances and incompatible with any 
kind of rational, methodical, or rapid construction. The arse- 
nals are not in a state to carry out with sufficient rapidity the 
repairs that are necessary, the mechanical equipment being in- 
adequate and out of date. Contractors have their own way in 
the works executed for the Navy. The guns of many ships 
are without their due supply of shells, and in some cases this 
supply has not been even voted by Parliament Docking ac- 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



1909.] Current events 709 

commodatioQ for the large ships is totally lacking. '' The var- 
ious branches of the administration are/' according to the Re- 
port, '' wanting in unity of views and purpose, in methods and 
in defined responsibility; neglect, disorder, and confusion too 
frequently prevail." In the judgment of one of the representa- 
tives of the Right the Report is an evidence of the fact that 
Republicanism is leading France to the abyss, and has led to 
the unexpected resignation of M. Clemenceau. 

In addition to all these troubles, the Budget for 1910 shows 
a deficit, although not of a very large amount— some twenty 
millions of dollars. The Minister of Finance, M. Caillaux, 
seems to be a very careful calculator of ways and means, and 
proposes to distribute the additional necessary taxation in a 
way in which it will not be felt as a great burdeo by any par- 
ticular class. 

France too is afflicted with a revision of the Tariff and with 
the tedious debates such a revision involves, although they are 
not likely to be so long drawn out as our own have been. 
The latest revision was made in 1892. The present is said to 
be necessary on account of a certain system of specialization 
adopted in the last Tariff of Germany, which resulted in French 
goods being discriminated against as compared with the pro- 
ducts of those countries with which Germany had concluded 
treaties of commerce. French exports to Germany were de- 
clining in value. Not the least of the bad effects of a Tariff 
is that it renders it almost impossible to take an interest in 
public affairs during the long periods of time occupied by the 
discussion upon it. 

All who are anxious to obtain exact information as to the 
part which France took in Europe in the first half of the last 
century will be glad to learn that the Foreign Office archives 
have been made available for research up to the date of Febru- 
ary 23, 1848, in the case of papers embodying political corre- 
spondence, memoirs, and documents. Consular correspondence 
will, for the present, be made available up to no more recent 
a date than 1791, and this only in installments and from the 
beginning of next year. The reason for keeping these consular 
documents in reserve is thought to be the extremely unpleasant 
personal observations which they record. 

Some surprise was felt when it was announced that the 
Emperor Francis Joseph had bestowed upon President Falli^res 



Digitized by 



Google 



7IO Current events [Aug., 

the Grand Cross of the Order of St. Stephen, the highest of 
all the Austrian orders. Close observers, however, of the events 
which took place during the recent Balkan crisis did not share 
that surprise; for it had not escaped their notice that while 
France co-operated with Great Britain and Russia in calling 
Austria to account for her breach of the Treaty of Berlin, she 
was not as zealous or earnest as the other two Powers. It 
now transpires that the French Ambassador at Vienna had 
learned that the chief delinquent was Prince (now, in virtue of 
his delinquency, King) Ferdinand, and that Baron von Aehren- 
thal was more sinned against than sinning. The declaration of 
the independence of Bulgaria and of the annexation of the 
provinces had indeed been arranged between the two Powers, 
but it was not to be effected at the time when it actually 
took place. Prince or King Ferdinand forced the hand of the 
Austrian Foreign Minister, and drove him by premature action 
into a position which he would not have chosen. The French 
Ambassador, on account of a more intimate knowledge of the 
whole circumstances, formed a more lenient judgment of Baron 
von Aehrenthars conduct than did those who were ignorant of 
the facts; and this influenced the home government. Hence 
the unwonted mark of esteem conferred upon the President. 
Perchance the Austrian Archives, when they are opened to the 
public (should this ever take place), will furnish further recti- 
fications of what is supposed to be current history. 

This may be the place to correct misstatements that were 
made with reference to the conduct of the Russian Grand Duke 
Vladimir, who died a few months ago. When the troops fired 
on the people in St. Petersburg, on what is now called Bloody 
Sunday, at the beginning of the recent internal struggle for a 
better state of things, it was said that this was done by his 
commands, and the Grand Duke, in consequence, was exposed 
to the utmost odium and popular hatred. It now appears that 
he was quite innocent and always condemned the deed. The 
order was given by a subordinate, the Grand Duke being ill 
at the time. 

The Coalition Cabinet, although it 
Austria-Hungary* resigned more than two months 

ago, still remains in office, for it 
has been found impossible to find a successor. The King is 
unwilling to entrust power to a Cabinet which would consist 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current Events 7 1 1 

of members of the most numerous party in the Parliament, in- 
asmuch as he disapproves of its aims. These aims are to 
separate Hungary, in all but one respect, from Austria, and 
the party is, therefore called the Independence Party. It 
wishes to have no bond of union between Hungary and Aus- 
tria except the person of the King- Emperor. His Majesty 
summoned a member of the Liberal Party, now in a small 
minority, and allowed him to invite a small number of the In- 
dependence Party to enter into the proposed Cabinet ; but not 
one of the latter would listen to the proposal. On this ac- 
count the King has been obliged to suspend all efforts to form 
a government which shall carry out in Hungary that establish- 
ment of universal suffrage which has been so long promised. 
The attempt will be renewed in the autumn, and it is expected 
that a renewal of the struggle between Austria and Hungary 
will then take place. The bill incurred on the occasion of tbe 
annexation of the Provinces will have to be met; Hungarians 
will not pay their share unless some of^ their old demands are 
granted. 

It is for the first time in many 
Russia. years that the Tsar has been able 

to leave Russia and to make a 
round of visits. For some time he has been practically im- 
prisoned, as he did not venture to travel even in Russia, so 
great was the hatred felt for him by large numbers of his sub- 
jects. And now that he is going abroad to visit the President 
of the French Republic, the King of England, and perhaps 
the King of Italy, it is a sign of the times that to large 
numbers of the people of those countries his visit is by no 
means welcome. In England especially the strongest protests 
have been made against the reception of one who is called a 
blood-stained tyrant This feeling is not hard to understand, 
but it is, in a large measure, unjust; for Nicholas II., powerful 
though he may be, cannot all at once overcome the accumu- 
lated evils of centuries and alter methods of government which 
have been handed down for generations. There is reason to 
think that he is sincere in his desire to make all possible 
changes in the right direction; and, better still, that he has in 
no small degree succeeded. While the monarch himself is to 
be received on board ship, the Deputies of his Parliament have 
been welcomed with open arms, have been f6ted and banqueted. 



Digitized by 



Google 



712 Current events [Aug., 

and received with every possible honor. They have shown 
their loyalty to their sovereign by the protest made by them 
against the utterances of the English Labor Party. 

Although great efforts were made during the session of the 
Duma to drive M. Stolypin from office, and to place a support 
of the old rigime in power, these efforts have been unsuccess- 
ful. The session of the Duma came to an end in the middle 
of June, and it is beginning to look as if it had become an 
established institution. Nor are its labors without effect, for 
many reforms were made during the session just concluded, 
notably an Agrarian Bill and the laws of religious freedom. 
Moreover, although its control over the Budget is very lim- 
ited, yet it was able to effect considerable savings. 

Signer Giolttti's ministry still re- 
Italy, mains in office, all efforts to dis- 
place it having proved unsuccessfuL 
His success is due less to his own ability or to the value of 
the work done by his Cabinet than to the fact that there is no 
regularly constituted opposition. What opposition there is 
is made up of two extremes, unable to form a government 
in the event of the tall of the present one. And while dissat- 
isfaction is felt that many wants of the country are not met, 
yet it is admitted that Signor Giolitti is an able administrator, 
although it is generally recognized that theie has been great 
mismanagement of the relief works following upon the recent 
earthquake. Strange to say he is denounced for having entered 
into an alliance with those who are called Clericals. 

It is hard to form a judgment as to the character of the 
relations between Austria-Hungary and Italy. During the re- 
cent crisis there is no doubt that the people of Italy condemned 
Austria's action, but this feeling may have passed away, espe- 
cially as the Austrian and Hungarian governments have now 
consented to take part officially in the jubilee exhibitions in 
celebration of Italian unity, which are to be held at Turin and 
Rome in 191 if a thing which they had refused to do last year. 
The celebration of the fiftieth anniversary of the battle of Ma- 
jenta, in which the French and the Sardinians defeated the 
Austrians, was so natural and inevitable that the latter could 
not reasonably take umbrage on that account. 

For many years past the Budget has always shown a sur- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current Events 713 

plus; this year, however, there is a deficit, although it is not 
very large. Extra expenditure on the army, the navy, and for 
railway construction has caused the balance to be upon the 
wrong side. 

The Turkish dominions have been 
Turkey. enjoying an unwonted degree of 

peace and rest. Some indeed of 
the Albanian chiefs have been giving trouble, and it has in 
consequence been necessary to make use of the services of 
the military to preserve order; but the Macedonian bands no 
longer roam; the Bulgar no longer murders the Greek; while 
the Serbs have slain only one Bulgarian. For many years there 
has not been such an uninterrupted period of repose. The 
Cabinet of Hilmi Pasha still retains office, and so far as is 
known the Young Turks do not seek to exercise any longer a 
power which is not compatible with constitutional government. 
But the problem to be solved is of unparalleled difficulty. 

There has been no such thing as a nation in the regions 
dominated by Turkey. The only unity has been that of geo- 
graphical territory; but this has contained a multitude of races 
opposed to one another in every way. The state of the Bal- 
kans has made this evident to the most casual observer. But 
things are worse in the Asiatic dominions. Mesopotamia, for 
example, is inhabited by Arabs and Kurds, Armenians, Syrians 
including Nestorians, Chaldeans, and Jacobites, a few Greeks, 
Circassians, and Georgians, Jews, Gypsies, and a race of Yesidis 
or Devil-Worshippers. Some of these races are still nomads, 
some semi- nomads, while others are dwellers in villages or 
towns. They differ in language, custom^ and dress. If the 
new Parliament succeeds in effecting any semblance of unity it 
will indeed have worked a miracle. But it is worth the at- 
tempt. Absolute government has reduced to ruins and poverty 
a country which once fed and nourished the richest Empires 
of the days of old. The new government has already taken 
steps to reclaim the district of Mesopotamia. A commission 
has been sent to make plans for its irrigation; if fertility can 
be restored, perhaps the various races will find in its cultiva- 
tion a common pursuit tending to bring them closer together. 

A question which is perhaps even more urgent than this one 
of bringing into harmonious action so many various races, is that 
of ways and means. For the last thirty years of Abdul Hamid's 
rule he was engaged in plundering his people, and all the 

uigitized by VjOOQIC 



714 Current Events [Ans^., 

rerenues had diminished except those which had been handed 
OTer to the foreign Public Debt Commission lor the service of 
that debt. The establishment of the national finances open a 
solid footing, and beyond the reach of a robber soTcrcign, is 
an all- essential condition of fntnre stability. The first pnblic 
budget has been introduced into the Turkish Parliament and 
was so satisfactory to all its members that it passed through 
the House in a very short time. 

The most acute question of all, howerer, has been that of 
Crete. This island, it will be remembered, while remaining 
under the sovereignty of the Sultan, is administered by a 
Commissioner appointed by the Sultan on the nomination of 
the four Powers. These powers have maintained troops in 
the island for the maintenance of order. During the first 
years of the recently- entered-into arrangements the Commis- 
sioner at the head of the island's affairs was Prince George 
of Greece. His administration was not successful in every re- 
spect, and on his resignation he was succeeded by M. Zaimis, 
a private gentleman, who had once held office in Greece. 
His success has been so great that about a year ago the Powers 
announced their intention of removing their troops from the 
island. Last year, when Bulgaria declared itself independ- 
ent, Crete voted for its own annexation to Greece, and since 
that time the taxes have been collected in the name of 
King George. The Four Powers, however, not wishing to 
have this question added to the others then requiring settle- 
ment, prevailed upon both Crete and Greece to hold the an- 
nexation in abeyance upon the understanding that when the 
proper time should arrive they would be rewarded by their 
support. The time has now come, and the settlement of it 
seems to be even more difficult than before. On the one hand 
the Turks have, under the new constitutional tigime^ the sym- 
pathy which was lacking when Abdul Hamid reigned, and the 
Powers do not wish to do anything to bring the new order of 
things into discredit. Moreover, the Young Turks have at heart 
the strengthening of the Empire and public opinion has declared 
that war is preferable to any further loss of territory. In fact 
they wish to diminish the privileges already bestowed on the 
Cretans and have sent a Circular to the Powers to that effect. 
On the other hand the promises made to Greece and to Crete, 
that the desire of annexation would be considered, seemed to 
necessitate action in a sense contrary to the wishes of tlue 

Digitized by VjOOQ l6 



1909.] Current events 715 

Young Turks. The arrangement made seems to be in favor of 
the latter. The troops are to be removed. The promise was 
definitely made and it is to be kept; but each of the four 
Powers in turn is to keep a guardship to maintain order, 
and the Sultan's flag is still to fly as a sign of the mainte- 
nance of his sovereign rights. This settlement cannot be looked 
upon as agreeable either to the Turks or the Greeks and is 
evidently a mere postponement of the matter. 

The deposition of the Shah was 
Persia. perfectly justified, for he bad proved 

himself thoroughly unworthy of 
trust. Three several times he had sworn to respect the Coc* 
stitution granted by his father ; twice he perjured himself, and 
it is hardly to be expected that his third oath could be trusted. 
His conduct, while it cannot be excused, may be explained by 
the unjustifiable proceedings in the first Parliament, and by the 
still more unjustifiable projects cherished by some at least of 
its members. Among these was the deposition of the ruler, 
and it is hard to find a sovereign so virtuous as to acquiesce in 
his own extinction, however desirable it may be in view of 
the public good. In this instance it was not quite clear that 
the good of the country would be furthered in a notable de- 
gree by the advent to power of some at least of the supporters 
of the parliamentary rigime. Not a few among them seriously 
expected to be released from the payment of taxes. Whatever 
the excellencies of parliamentary government may be, freedom 
from taxation cannot be reckoned among them. When such 
elements have to be dealt with, when the country is bankrupt, 
and Russia and Great Britain and Turkey are on its borders, 
not anxious to intervene indeed, but having it in their power 
to do so should their interests be thought to demand it, the 
youthful Shah (or rather his advisors) has an anxious time 
before him. There is a very strong feeling of patriotism 
manifested by resolute opposition to all intervention from out- 
side; bif it remains to be seen whether it will be wisely 
guided. The new electoral law, after a long process of elabo- 
ration, was signed by the deposed Shah, but not promulgated. 
Doubtless it will soon be put into effect, and the second Par* 
liament elected. 



Digitized by 



Google 



THE COLUMBIAN READING UNION. 

THE CHAMPLAIN TERCENTENARY. 

THE past month has been filled with memories of Champlain, that intrepid 
Frenchman whose name lights up the early pages of North American 
exploration and conquest. 

One of the most notable celebrations of the Tercentenary of the discov- 
ery of Lake Champlain was held at Plattsburg, N. Y., July 7, when Presi- 
dent Tafty Governor Hughes, Cardinal Gibbons, and a host of other dis- 
tinguished priests and laymen gathered at the Catholic Summer-School , 
Cliff Haven, to pay honor to the memory of the French explorer. 

The week of celebration was opened on July 4 with special services in 
all the churches. At Cliff Haven Pontifical High Mass was sung in the open 
air on the baaks of Lake Champlain. It was an impressive sight. The 
officers of the Mass were : celebrant, the Rt. Rev. Thomas F. Hickey, D.D., 
Bishop of Rochester; assistant priest, the Rev. D. J. Hickey, of Brooklyn; 
deacon, the Rev. John P. Chidwick, of New York ; sub-deacon, the Rev. 
John T. Driscoll, of Fonda, N. Y. ; master of ceremonies, the Rev. John F. 
Byrnes, of New York. His Eminence Cardinal Gibbons delivered the 
sermon. Other distinguished prelates present were: the Rt. Rev. John J. 
Collins, D.D., Bishop of Jamaica, W. I.; the Rt. Rev. Charles H. Colton, 
D.D., Bishop of Buffalo; the Rt. Rev. Patrick Ludden, D.D., Bishop of 
Syracuse; the Rt. Rev. John Grimes, D.D., Co- Adjutor of Syracuse; the 
Rt. Rev. H. MacSherry, D.D., of South Africa; the Rt. Rev. M. J. Lavelle, 
V.G., of New York; and the Rt. Rev. D. J. McMahon, D.D., of New York. 

Cardinal Gibbons in his sermon paid a tribute to the fire of apostolic 
zeal which burned so brightly in Champlain's deeds and referred to him as 
the pathfinder of that noble band who explored our lakes and forests ''with 
the torch of faith in one hand and the torch of science in the other." 

The coming of President Taft was the crowning event of the celebration 
in Plattsburg. A reception was tendered the President, Governor Hughes, 
and Cardinal Gibbons at the Champlain Summer-School and the auditorium 
was crowded. In a brief address the President dwelt upon the sweeping away 
of those barriers which fostered narrow prejudices and denominational bigotry, 
and said that we are reaching that point where we can appreciate the great 
heroes in Christian virtue and faith and profit by the examples they have set 
us. Of Champlain he said that he was a man whom all nations might honor. 

''He is not a man with respect to whose history you have to pass over 
something in silence. All his life could bear the closest examination ; and 
he brings out in the strongest way those wonderful qualities shonn in the 
fifteenth, sixteenth, and seventeenth centuries by Spaniards, Englishmen, 
Frenchmen, smd Portuguese, who braved these dreadful terrors of the sea, 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Columbian Reading Union 717 

circumnavigated the globe in little cockleshells, and carried the standard of 
the then civilization into the farthest forests and into the dangers of the 
most distant tropics. 

** I think it is well for us to go back through the history of all nations, 
in order that our own heads, a little swelled with modern progress, may be 
diminished a bit in the proper appreciation of what was done by nations be- 
fore us, under conditions that seemed to limit the possibility of human 
achievement, but limitations that were overcome by the bravery, the cour- 
age, and the religious faith of nations that preceded us in developing the 
world." 

At Fort Ticonderoga the Champlain celebration took on an internation- 
al aspect with the presence, besides the President, of Ambassadors Bryce and 
Jusserand, of Great Britain and France respectively, Vice-Admiral Uriu, of 
Japan, American and Canadian troops, and a distinguished company of 
visitors. Senator Root spoke glowingly of Champlain and pointed out the 
indasnce of the discovery of the lake upon the great struggles which followed. 
The keynote ot all the addresses was the peace of nations. 

Samuel de Champlain was born in 1567, at Brouage, France ; he died in 
Quebec, Christmas Day, 1635. The son of a ship captain, he was early 
trained in the principles of navigation. After army service in France he 
made a voyage to the Spanish settlements in America and in a report of this 
trip suggested for the first time the construction of an isthmian canal, which, 
he said, would shorten the voyage to the <* South Sea by more than 1500 
leagues." In 1604 he came out for a second time to New France, and in 
four voyages explored the Bay of Fundy and the New England coast as far as 
Vineyard Sound. Returning to France, he came out again in 1608 as Lieu- 
tenant-Governor and on July 3 began the foundations of the City of Quebec, 
It was in the following year, accompanied by a band of Montagnais, Huron, 
and Algonquin Indians, in an expedition against the Iroquois, that Cham- 
plain discovered the lake which bears his name. From this forward he was 
the central figure in those incessant Indian wars which had such important 
consequences in after years and which have forever made the Champlain 
country memorable in North American annals. 

Parkman, in his Pioneers of France in the New World (Boston, 1865), 
says of Champlain : ** Of the pioneers of the North American forests, his 
name stood foremost on the list. It was he who struck the deepest and 
boldest strokes into the heart of their pristine barbarism. . . . Tte 
preux chevalier^ the crusader, the romance-loving explorer, the curious 
knowledge-seeking traveler, the practical navigator, all found their share in 
him. • • • His books mark the man — all for his theme and| purpose, 
nothing for himself. Crude in style, full of the superficial errors of careless- 
ness and haste, rarely diffuse, often brief to a fault, they bear on every page 
the palpable impress of truth." 

In an address delivered at Fort Ticonderoga on July 6, Hamilton W. 
Mabie said of Champlain : 

'' A gentleman by birth and training, he was brave and hardy; of great 
strength, calm in danger, resourceful and swift in action ; strict in discipline, 
but always just and kind; a Frenchman in his blitheness of spirit and a cer- 



Digitized by 



Google 



7i8 THE Columbian Reading Union [Aug., 

tain inextinguishable gayety which hardship could not dim^ he was a man to 
b^ loved and honored. No more chivalrous or gallant figure appears in the 
New World story. He belongs with the Founders and Builders, and rightly 
b^ars the proud title, the < Father of New France.'" 

• • • 

DR. WILSON AND HARVARD. 

President Woodrow Wilson, of Princeton University, delivered the Phi- 
Beta Kappa oration at Haryard last month. He devoted his attention to the 
American college, and the gist of his remarks, as reported by the news- 
papers, was that ** . • • we have now for a long generation devoted our- 
selves to promoting changes which have resulted in all but complete disor- 
ganization, and it is our plain and immediate duty to form our plans for re- 
organization. We must re-examine the college, reconcieve it, reorganize it. 
It is the root of our intellectual life as a nation. It will be found to lie some- 
where very near the heart of American social training and intellectual and 
moral enlightenment." 

The humor of the situation may not be at once apparent. But imagine 
President Taft addressing a gathering of Cooper Union Socialists on the 
beauties of the republican form of government ; or Mr. Asquith, in Eng- 
land, explaining to the suffragettes the advantages of the woman who re- 
frains from the ballot, and you taste somewhat of the pleasantry of an address 
to Harvard upon the old-time function of the college. 

The lately retired President of Harvard University, Dr. Charles W. 
Eliot, has, since 1869, been the apostle of the new learning in this country, 
and has stood for just those things which Dr. Wilson so emphatically con- 
demns. Under Dr. Eliot and the ''Elective System" it has become possible 
for the young man of fifteen or sixteen to ''elect" his future career in mathe- 
matics, biology, or political science, and so to order his subjects of study 
that history, languages, or belUs lettres will not interfere with his progress in 
triangles, nerve-cells, or the theory of values. 

The lopsidedness of minds developed after such a fashion is less appar- 
ent to the eye than the abnormalities that sicken us in the circus side-shows« 
but it is not less real on that account. Education on any such plan is a 
cheat and a misnomer and a vile servility to the money-getting spirit of the 
day. 

" . . . The object of the college, as we have known and used and 
loved it in America," says Dr. Wilson, " is not scholarship (except for the 
few, and for them only by way of introduction and first orientation), but the 
intellectual and spiritual life. Its life and discipline are meant to be a pro- 
cess of preparation, not a process of information." 

The fine savor of these criticisms lies in the fact that they were spoken in 
Harvard, to Harvard men, and at a Harvard function ; their force, in that 
they come from a man who is not unacquainted with Dr. Eliot's achievements 
as an educator and who has had seven years of practical experience in direct- 
ing a large university. No critic of Harvard or its late president has spoken 
a more sweeping condemnation of the elective system than Dr. Wilson 
uttered in the following paragraph. Speaking of what the college under 
the old rigime gave its students, Dr. Wilson said : 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] THE Columbian Reading Union 719 

*^ Men were bred by it to no skill or craft or calling; the discipline to 
which they were subjected had a more general object. It was meant to pre- 
pare them for the whole of life rather than for some particular part of it. 
The ideals which lay at its heart were the general ideals of conduct, of right 
living, and right thinking, which made them aware of a world moralized by 
principle, steadied and cleared of many an evil thing by true and catholic re- 
flection and just feeling; a world, not of interests, but of ideas. 

<' Such impressions, such challenges to a man's spirit, such intimations 
of privilege and duty, are not to be found in the work and obligations of pro- 
fessional and technical schools. They cannot be. The work to be done in 
them is as exact, as definite, as exclusive as that of the office and the shop. 
Their atmosphere is the atmosphere of business, and should be. It does not 
b^get generous comradesliips or any ardor of altruistic feeling such as the 
college begets. It does not contain that general air of thp world of science 
and of letters in which the mind seeks no special interest, but feels every in- 
timate impulse of the spirit set free to think and observe and listen. The ob- 
ject of the college is to liberalize and moralize; the object of the professional 
school is to train the powers to it special task." 

: ♦ ♦ * 

DARWIN AND LOUVAIN. 

On the eve of its own seventy-fifth anniversary the University of 
Louvain has sent a delegate, in the person of Professor H. de Dorlodot, 
D.D., D.Sc, to Cambridge to be present at the celebration ot the centenary 
of Charles Darwin's bitth. 

In an address on behalf of the faculty of Louvain, Dr. Dorlodot ex- 
presses the pleasure of the university in participating, with other scholarly 
bodies throughout the world, in rendering honor to the illustrious naturalist. 
Whatever may be the difference of opinion as to Darwin's theory of natural 
selection, no naturalist, he thinks, would refuse to-day to accept evolution, 
or fail to appreciate the necessity of explaining by these laws the actual 
organic world. 

A power of analysis of innumerable facts, close logic, and a scrupulous 
fairness are the traits which Dr. Dorlodot attributes to Darwin; and to 
have preserved these in face of the unfair attacks made upon the theory of 
evolution by unenlightened naturalists and theologians is an evidence of 
that fine courage which crowned his mental powers. Darwin, says Dr. 
Dorlodot, established the truth — foreseen by the mind of Augustine — that 
God, in creating the world, endowed it with the powers requisite for its 
development. He completed in this the labors of Newton. 



Digitized by 



Google 



BOOKS RECEIVED. 

Thb Century Company, New York: 

A/UoHtc. By Earnest Oldmeadow. Pp. 581. Price $1.30 net. 
Cochrane Publishing Company, New York : 

IVAgrg the Fishers Go, The Story 0/ Labrador, By Rev. P, W. Browne. Pp. 366. 
Catholic Summer-School Press, New York: 

The Thirteenth, Greatest of Centuries, Second Edition* By James J. Walsh, M.D., 
LL.D. Pp.453. 
Propagation of the Faith Office, Boston : 

The Bible of the Sich, From the French of Frederic Ozanaxn. Pp. 127. 
American League of the Cross, Chicago 

The Catholic Penny Booklet, Collection D. Sound Readings for Busy PeopU. Compiled 
by Rev. James M. Hayes, S.J. Price 35 cents. 

Anti-Saloon League of America, Columbus, Ohio : 

The Anti-Saloon League Year Booh, igog. By Earnest Hurst Cherrington. Pp. 256« 
Price 35 cents ; cloth bound, 60 ceats. 

Sisters of Mercy, Manchester, N. H. : 

Memoir of Rev, William McDonald. By a Sister of Mercy, Pp. 333. 
Ave Maria Press, Notre Dame, Ind. : 

Father Jim, By J. G. R. Pp. 39. Price 10 cents. Tho Booh of the IMy; and Other 
Verses, By a Smer of the Holy Cross. Pp. 123. 

Catholic Record Publishing House, London, Canada: 

Father Damen*s Lectures, 8th edition. Pp. 118. 
Catholic Truth Society, London, England: 

The Religion of Miihra, The Religion of Imperial Rome, The Religion of Early Rome, 
The Religion of Modem Judaism, The Religion of Ancient ^ria. The Religion of the 
Early Church, The Religion of the Hebrew Bible. The Religion of Anctent Greece, 
The Religion of Egyft, Pamphlets. Price one penny each. 

P. Letribllbux, Paris, France : 

VEglise de France, Afris la Persecution Religieuse, Par Paul Barbier, Pp. 125. 
Price 0.60. 

Plon Nourrit et Cie., Paris, France : 

Historic Religieuse de la Revolution Fruufaise, Deuxieme Edition. Par M. Pierre de la 
Gorce. Pp. 515. Price 7fr, 50. 

Edition du Bbffroi, Paris, France : 

L* Ecclesiaste, Par Henri Delisle. Pp. 53. 
T. P.;S. Bernadino, Siena, Italy: 

La Questione Femminile in Italia e il Dovere Delia Donna Cattolica. By Elena da Persico, 
Pp. 62. Santa Melania Giuniore, By Elena da Persico. Pp. 278. 

Desclbe bt Societb, Tomaci, Belgium. 

Breviarium Sacrarum Virginum Sanctm Birgitta ; Horas Deiparce Virginis per Ferias 
Distributas Continens, Published by order of the Bishop of Plymouth. Pp. xlvi.-937. 



Digitized by 



Google 



]Wake Your Walls Washable. 

The ''SoftoM System ** of Wall Enameling 
can be applied to plaster or burlap walls. It 
makes them non-porous, germ-proof, stain- 
proof, and as washable as tiling. 

FOR CATBOLIC INSTITUTIONS iND HOMES, 

where cleanliness, healthy general appear- 
ances, and economy are considered, it is the 
IDEAL wall finish. It makes kitchens, class 
rooms, dormitories, halls, etc., brighter, cleaner, 
-^ . I. / T u . X and more sanitary — and does this at low cost. 

(Fac-ftimile of Lab^I.) ^ 

LET US PROVE ITS USE AND ECONOMY. 

To demonstrate that the ** Softone System" is all we claim we ofifer re- 
sponsible people sufficient material to do a small room — free. 

Just send for the " Royal Decorator '' Color Book and state size of the 
room yovL wish^ to finish at our expense. 

TBB OBRinRH BinBRIOflH PBWT CO , „„„»•'*■ «• ,„^. 

MANUFAOTUftERS. ChlOSgO, - IlllnOiS. 



IT IS TRUE 

In CTcry acnse tftiat 

COl-ORADO 

AS A 

Summer Resort 

STANDS HIGH. 

Tlie Popular Roate to Colorado !• tlic 

UNION PACIFIC. 

Blcctrlo Antomatfc Block: Sl^nal^* 
— XHH BAPB ROAD XO TR AT£lr.— 

Por Rates and Informatloii Inqnlre of 

jr. B. 9epRiBaT, c». m. Aat., 

Ser BtfOADWA Y, NBW YORK, M^. 

uigitized by VjOO^IC 



vikm: 



tad 6»tbng tlM 
Write for CtttdofM P and explM«tkB«- 

VOSB * SONS PIANO Co.. 



W* U^e old instmnieati in « 
w idpuBO ia jovr liome frae of 



Boston. Mass. 



HousBmrnisninD 

Waieiooms 

(Established 1835.) 

KItcfaeti IJtetislls 

Cutlery, China, Glassware. 
KonsecleanlnfiT ArtlGleB 

Brusjies, Brooms, Dusters, Polishes 
for Floors, Furniture, and Metals. 

•♦ BEST QUALITY ONLY." 

Refrigerators 

THe perffectloii of CleanllneMy 
Katclency* unci JSconomy* 

T1%A **XfAAxF^* Our Standard for a 
in© JDaay quarter Century 

The "Premier" <^^*^ "°^ 

Corr*«poci<lenx3e Invited- 

130 & 13a West 4ad St., 

MIS W YORK. 



MENHEN'S 

BORATED TALCUM 

TOILET POWDER 



"Baby's Best Friend" 

M imm -rf trTir:>i<.'.t ' ..infnrt. Meniu-ir.s xelit-Tcs an^l jjrevcnls 
cLIy lii-at, CliHfInK »ii«l i«iiiihiirii. 

r V "r i.r'.l' .11 n \\,<- ecauiiK- ! 1 n ii) in fion-rffillablo 
.-.— tl.c •' liox that L<»x." >Mtli Mt'inu-n'R i.i<.: ' ;■ t-p. 

rn.lLc-l l.V tl.O GeT»u-.r.l Muiil.CM C-.. un l.r lli.: 1 ..ud:iii.l Mxv.-^s 

lime v.'''''>- i5i-fi"i N"- '■-'• >^"''l ' v'rrvAl.crt <•: 'v u,,il 

. Mts.' .S.i-if.'e /irr. Try MfntU-n'N \ i"!. i > llMrat-.l^ I ..l' w;:» 

kil'.-v.d.r. lrl..istlievccT.l..rir. ^h ..ut l';.ni.i V i' it ts. S.i>n/:ejn(. 

GERHARD MENNEN CO., Newark. N. J. 

rninirH lt<irul«*«l SUlii S*mp (1 I'n wr i; | i r; ^ 

S|.r;':ially i.rci'.in-l l.ir tlic i.iir.ciy- _ j' -W s<!f>ifUs 



■X.^ 



Better te 
Sure than 



i^-w-^-^r- 




espc- 

for 

-lake 

:ets. 

Seal 

*^: 

The 
more 
reason ipr inhuuu J>wiiETS. 
Untii you vc tried 



gno^reocote^es 



you've missed a treat There are some 500 varieties 
of NECCO SWEETS-creams. pastei. fod^e. choco- 
late coated nuts, simple fruit drops and 
brittle chips, and the most elaborate 
bonbons. Every kind is wholesome and i 
dcliciously good. 

WeCCO SNTCCrS are 5«ftf tvcrf. 

wfcere ^y bf'gft grade dealers. 
NEW ENCUIID CONFECTMHIERT CO.. BttrM. Mut. 





Digitized by VrrOOQiC ; 



SEPTEMBER 1909 



THE 



■n-j 



/•' 



<3[atholie^pld 



Preiident Eliot Among the Prophets 


Frands P. Duffy, D.D. 


Her Mother*! Daughter 


Katharine Tynan 


Soholattic Critioiim and Apologetioe 


W. H. Kent, O.S.C. 


Six Oxford Thinkers 


Wilfrut Wilbtr/orce 


The Church and the Worktngman 


John A. Ryan, DM. 


Did the Choreh Bom Joan of Are ? 


/. H. Le Breton Girdlestone 


Tally.ho 


Pamela Gage 


The Wonderf of Lourdee 


/. Bricout 


Heir Booke— Foreign 


Feriodieale 


Onrrent Srente 



Fiice— 95 cents { #3 per Tear 



THE OFFICE OF THE CATHOLIC WORLD, NEW YORK 

xao-xaa >nre«t 6otli Street 

IB0AI nil&,nBieB,nn)BIBI * 00.,IiM.. Orftoi ItMCiaStinraSL. got, LraiM, V 

!• RcuN ft IM (MhIw FmsalMi: ABTHDB BATABTB, 
( te la " Bnw «i ■«!• <Mholliw,''n ] 



■ ' .!■ ■ ■ sii^eu uy 

BlfTKRBD AT NEW YORK P08T-OPFICB AS SBC0BI>-CLAS8 MATTU. 



'ogle 



i MY SPECIALTIES. 

f' Pure Virgin Olive Oil. First pressing 
tff the Olive, Imported under my Eclipse 

grand in full half-pint, pint, and quart 
>ttles, and in gallon and half-gallon 
cans. Analysis by Agricultural Depart- 
ment, Washington, showing absolute 
|)urity, published in Callanan's Magazitie. 

L. J. Callanan's Eclipse Brand of 
Ceylon tea eclipses all other Ceylon teas 
o£fered in packages in this market, in 
quality and flavor. 

There is no better tea sold in this 
country than my " 41 " blend, qnality and 
flavor always the same« No tea table 
complete without it. 

My "48" Braad of Coffee 

is a blend of the choicest coffees imported. 
It is sure to please lovers of good coffee. 
No breakfast table complete without it. 
My Motto, Everything in Groceries, 
Altar Wines, and Cigars, everything of 
the Best. A visit to my permanent food 
exposition will pay you. Copy Callanan's 
Magazine and price list nuHled on request. 

L« J. C ALLANANt 

4i Md 43 Veeey Street, New York. 



Ask any of your friends 
who use 



urn cn^i^td nniiK 

If it is not the best they can get at any 
price. Also if the premiums they get for 
Lion labels are not really worth vrhile. 

Your grocer now has Lion Brand 
Evaporated Milk in stock, and please 
remember that there is no better Ev^p* 
orated Milk made in this coantry or any- 
where else. 

During April, we opened three 

Hew Premium Stores. 

The stock of premiums is larger and 
finer than ever. 



WteconsiB Condensed lilk Co., 

9Z Vi|il«oit Btrcetf 
If eiir York:. 




I If you are 
about to buy 



A NEW PULPIT 

you do yourself an injustice by not learoiug just what tlra best manafac- 
iurers can offer yOu in the way of correct desigps and prices. We make all 
styles, from the least expensive to the most elaborate. 
We want to show you our designs and tell yon how we build our renowned 
Church Furniture. It's worth knowing; Write for book "In Evidence' ' C20. 

Hirierican Scgfan^ Company 



CHICAGO NEW YORK 

2ISW«bashAve. 19WMtl8thSL 



II 



BOSTON PHiLAOELPHIA 

70 Franklia St. ilS35 Arch St. 



BRANCHES IN ALL PARTS OF THE COUNTRY 




Vibratory 
Massage! 

Reduces inflammation, atim- 
ulates muscles, removes pain, 
relievescon^estio'n, and starts 
general circulation. The 
_ Shelton Vibrators have re- 

ceivea ihe hearty endorsement of the med- 
ical professioB, and recognized as the best. 

Light, powerful, convenient to operate, 
and absolutely reliable and guaranteed. 
Write for catalog. 

IPS W. 4U St, Mew Vric. 36 Wawdolph St.?Chicsg». 



T»mLEM 

RUISEy^-'-ARABIC 

To Mo^ira. Spain. Mc^tUrra* 
neon. ncJy Land ami LfypC 

SAILING JANOAKir 20. 1910 



WHITE STAR LINE 

indudea tor on^ $400 afta upwrorj 

AMUEss gpisE DtPtvyonf'gput ui« - hiw ymk 



-• •••■ »• *-t*-^-^*mJifM»»^ ^^^4^^ 




THE 

CATHOLIC WORLD. 

Vol. LXXXIX. SEPTEMBER, 1909. No- 534, 

PRESIDENT ELIOT AMONG THE PROPHETS. 

BY FRANCIS P. DUFFY, D.D. 

(HE venerable President of Harvard University 
doffed his academic robes only to assume the 
mantle of the prophet. In an address delivered 
on July 22 to the students of the Harvard Sum- 
mer*School of Theology, he outlined the religion 
of the future. He does not claim, however, that he possesses 
any of the charismata of the Hebrew seers; nor even, with 
the Highland bard, that ''the sunset of life gives mystical 
lore." On the contrary, he has no confidence in any *' mys- 
tical'' means of attaining to knowledge of the future. The 
President Emeritus of Harvard University is nothing if not 
scientific in his methods of religious prognosis. Science sits 
to-day in the seat of Moses. It is not fond of the formula 
''Thus saith the Lord God"; though it is no less emphatic 
in its pronouncements than those who enjoyed that certain 
source of knowledge. 

Fortunately for our peace of mind, we have all been learn- 
ing of late to keep a steady head when our would-be masters 
of all things terrestrial and celestial point out what way the 
world is infallibly tending. The prophets, one finds, are so 
uniformly certain, and so inevitably conflicting. Mr. Edward 
Bellamy assumed the part of Isaias, and pictured the lions and 
lambs lying down together. Mr. H. G. Wells offers " Antici- 
pations " showing present conditions going on as they are until 
Copjilght. 1909. Thb M18810NABT SociBTT or St. Paul thb Apostlb 

IN THB STATB of NBW YORK. 
VOL. LXXXIX,— 46 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



722 President Eliot Among the Prophets [Sept., 

raised to the nth power, and Mr. G. B. Shaw shows them 
topsy-turvy. Mr. G. K. Chesterton, in impish mood, pictures 
a return to a flamboyant mediaeval parochialism. And Father 
Benson, in apocalyptic rather than scientific spirit, hears the 
winding of the trump of doom. 

When one has read half a dozen prophecies about the future 
of the world, one has reached a condition of philosophic calm. 
One begins to rank them with prophecies about sports or pol- 
itics — the results of the Olympic games or a Presidential elec- 
tion. It is especially easy for Catholics to be calm in the 
face of the most violent and infallible seers. The Church has 
seen so many changes of dynasties and governments, has kept 
so incredibly young through so many Olympiads, has survived 
so many foretellings of doom« that her children have learned 
by experience to trust only in one prophecy. It runs : '' Behold 
I am with you all days even to the end of the world.'' For 
minds fixed on so firm a basis. Dr. Eliot's vaticinations take 
their place as the opinions of an able man who has had a large 
share in shaping the views of one section of the community 
on the present religious tendencies of his own set as he per- 
ceives them. They are worthy of attention as showing what 
certain influential men believe, or do not believe, at the pres- 
ent moment; but whether they give a true picture of the re- 
ligious attitude of the generality of men a hundred years hence 
is, to say the least, matter for discussion. 

But first of all let us turn to his prediction itself. The 
citations are from the best report of the lecture available at 
present — that in the Boston Transctipt of July 22. The text 
is somewhat abbreviated, but in no wise distorted: 

Religion is not fixed, but fluent, and It changes from cen- 
tury to century. The progress in the nineteenth century far 
outstripped that of similar periods, and it is fair to assume 
that the progress of the twentieth century will bring about 
what I call the new religion. The new religion will not be 
based upon authority, either spiritual or temporal. As a 
rule, the older Christian churches have relied on authority. 
But there is now a tendency toward liberty and progress and, 
among educated men, this feeling is irresistible. In the new 
religion there will be no personification of natural objects ; 
there will be no deification of remarkable human beings and 
the faith will not be racial or tribal. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] President Eliot Among the Prophets 723 

In primitive times sacrifice was the root of religion ; even 
the Hebrews were propitiated by human sacrifices. The 
Christian Church has substituted for that the burning of in. 
cense. It will be of immense advantage if the religion of the 
twentieth century shall get rid of these things, for they give 
a wrong conception oi God. A new thought of God will be 
its characteristic. The twentieth century religion accepts 
literally St. Paul's statement : ** In Him we live and move and 
have our being." This new religion will be thoroughly 
monotheistic. God will be so immanent that no intermediary 
will be needed. For every man God will be a multiplication 
of infinities. A humane and worthy idea of God then will be 
the central thought of the new religion. This religion rejects 
the idea that man is an alien or a fallen being who is hope- 
lessly wicked. It finds such beliefs inconsistent with a 
worthy idea of God. Man has always attributed to man a 
spirit associated with but independent of the body. This 
spirit is the most effective part of every human being. 

The new religion will take account of all righteous persons 
— it will be a religion of ** all saints " ; it will reverence the 
teachers of liberty and righteousness, and will respect all 
great and lovely human beings. It will have no place for 
obscure dogmas or mystery. In past times to the sick and 
downtrodden death has been held out as compensation ; will 
the new religion make such promises ? I believe that in the 
new religion there will be no supernatural element ; it will 
place no reliance on anything but the laws of nature. 

It will admit no sacraments, except natural, hallowed cus- 
toms, and it will deal with natural interpretations of such 
rites. Its priests will strive to improve social and industrial 
conditions. The new religion will not attempt to reconcile 
people to present ills by the promise of future compensation. 
I believe the advent of just freedom for mankind has been de- 
layed for centuries by such promises. Prevention will be the 
watchword of the new religion, and a skillful surgeon will be 
one of its ministers. It cannot supply consolation as offered 
by old religions, but it will reduce the need of consolation. 

Pain, formerly, was considered a just punishment ; but now 
human suffering will be attacked surely and quickly. Atises- 
theticd have done away with the idea that extreme pain is in 
any way expiation for possible sin. The new religion will 
not even imagine the ** justice" ot God. The new religion 
will laud God's love, and will not teach condemnation for the 
mass of mankind. Based on the two great commandments of 



Digitized by 



Google 



724 PRESIDENT ELIOT AMONG THE PROPHETS [Sept., 

loving God and one's neighbor, the new religion will teach 
that he is best who loves best and serves best, and the great- 
est service will be to increase the stock of good- will. 

Love and hope are very inspiring sentiments, and the new 
religion will strengthen them. It will foster a new virtue — 
the love of truth. It will not be bound by dogma or creed ; 
its workings will be simple, but its field of action limitless. 
Its discipline will be the training in the development of co- 
operative ,good-will. 

There are now various fraternal bodies which to many per- 
sons take the place ot a Church ; if they are working for 
good, they are helpAil factors. Again different bodies of 
people, such as spiritualists and Christian Scientists, have set 
up new cults. But the mass of people stay by the Church. 
Since there will be undoubtedly more freedom in this cen- 
tury, it may be argued that it will be difficult to unite various 
religions under this new head ; but such unity I believe can 
be accomplished on this basis ; the love ot God and service to 
one's fellowman. There are already many signs of extensive 
co-operation ; democracy, individualism, idealism, a tendency 
to welcome the new, and preventive medicine. Finally, I 
believe the new religion will make Christ's revelation seem 
more wonderful than ever to us. 

We shall now strive to get a clear idea of all this by ar- 
ranging the points under the categories in which our own more 
careful theological thinkers are wont to treat the content and 
scope of religion. God is retained, but in a rather vague. 
Pantheistic fashion. Free will is not touched on. He asserts 
the spirituality of the soul, but is very unsatisfactory on the 
subject of immortality. Future punishment is denied, but future 
reward is not asserted; rather, there seems to be a definite 
rejection of any hope of consolation in life beyond the grave. 
There is no indication of form of worship except that there 
must be '' a worthy idea of God,'* and '' love of God,*' and 
the keeping up of " natural hallowed customs." Of course if 
they are given only a natural meaning, rites such as baptism 
and matrimony will be no more '' hallowed " than rolling eggs 
at Easter or popping corn at Hallow E'en. There is no indi- 
cation of any church organization for the new religion, except 
that it will ''take account of all righteous persons," and will 
aim at ''co-operative good- will." The general ethical ideals, 
so far as they go, are Christian. No very definite schedule of 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] PRESIDENT ELIOT AMONG THE PROPHETS 725 

moral behavior could be expected in so brief a space. But it 
is noteworthy that holiness is not given a place among the 
effects of religion. These are: advancement of progress and 
liberty; improvement of social and industrial conditions; in* 
crease of good-will ; and the lessening of bodily ills. 

When we come to consider it on its negative side we get a 
clearer conception of how far the new religion is removed from 
what most men have hitherto considered religion to be. It makes 
no pretence to be a divine message. It is a product of human 
speculation, and may change with the years. Notwithstanding 
this. Dr. Eliot announces it with a certain air of finality — a 
characteristic inconsistency of the ''anti-dogmatic'* type of 
mind. On its principles, however, the new religion is merely 
tentative and temporary. There is no divine revelation (the 
phrase ''Christ's revelation" can hardly be taken in the theo- 
logical sense) and no divinely constituted religious authority; 
no solution from on high of the riddles of existence, no mys- 
teries, no faith, no creeds; no priests, no sacraments, no means 
of forgiveness — no sins to forgive, so far as one can see. The 
doctrine of original sin is stated in terms of Calvinism. New 
England thinkers of the advanced type, by the way, seem 
never to have heard of any theology except that of Calvinism. 
Dr. Eliot rejects the fall of man, and with a note of scorn, as 
if he had some private sources of enlightenment on the mys- 
tery of evil which are denied to the rest of us. No form of 
worship is suggested. Dr. Eliot confesses that sacrifice has 
been connected with religion in the past; but he considers it 
unworthy in any form. Incidentally, his remark about incense 
as the form of sacrifice in the Christian Church shows how 
scandalously uninformed is this University president with re- 
gard to the older religions which he sets aside in such sum- 
mary fashion. Even prayer seems to have no place in the 
new scheme. " I believe," he says, " that in the new religion 
there will be no supernatural element; it will place no reli- 
ance on anything but the laws of nature." Considering the 
harsh evolutionary philosophy of survival of the fittest, which 
is back of the modern view of these laws of nature, it is not 
surprising to find him acknowledging that his religion " cannot 
supply consolation as offered by the old religion." Nor is 
there any word of salvation, whether from sin in this world or 
from annihilation in the next. Dread of God's justice is de- 



Digitized by 



Google 



726 PRESIDENT ELIOT AMONG THE PROPHETS [Sept., 

nouncedas unworthy; but no moral sanction is offered in its 
place. And, as noted above, the ideal of holiness which has 
attracted the highest type of religious character among Jews, 
Buddhists, and Mohammedans, as well as among Christians, 
seems to be altogether beyond Dr. Eliot's religious horizon. 

Before beginning our criticism of this scheme of religion, 
let us undertake the pleasanter task of indicating, with proper 
reservations, how far we Catholics can find ourselves in agree- 
ment with it We admit a growth in knowledge of the con- 
tent of religious truth from age to age; but we reject as 
absurd the idea that progress is made by a silly process of 
uprooting and planting anew to suit the fancy of changing 
generations. In our concept the tree of truth planted by 
Christ is still fresh and vigorous, thickened by rings of solid 
growth deposited by the Christian centuries, pruned in every 
age by the care of saints and doctors, and producing ever 
fresh foliage and fruit for the protection and nourishment of 
each generation according to its needs. Secondly, the idea of 
a religion that is not tribal or racial is in the very concept of 
'' Catholic.'' So too is reverence for all teachers of liberty and 
righteousness and truth, wheresoever they may be found. This 
broad catholic spirit is the spirit of our greatest leaders — St. 
Paul and Justin Martyr, Augustine and Aquinas, Bossuet and 
Newman. 

One admission also we may freely make to Dr. Eliot — that 
progress along some lines has been retarded in the past by 
misunderstandings of the Sacred writings or by a form of re- 
liance on Providence which God never intended for free agents. 
But this is only a small item in the count. A student of 
European history with larger views than Dr. Eliot would be 
much more impressed by the fact that orthodox Christianity 
supplied the motives and created the moral conditions which 
alone made progress and liberty possible. It remains to be 
seen whether his system of naturalism will supply humanity 
with the principles of right and the motives for unselfishness 
which alone will keep alight the torch of civilization. So far 
as Dr. Eliot himself is concerned, the matter is easy. He was 
born an heir to the Christian tradition, so he finds it easy to 
hold to the Christian ethics even while overthrowing the foun- 
dations on which they have been built. His hold on them 
depends, however, not on a logical nexus with his main line of 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] President Eliot Among the prophets 727 

thought, but on the bonds of habit. He takes over the Law 
of Love from Christianity, but ascribes to it neither divine 
authority nor supernatural sanction. Does the history of the 
race or a study of humanity as it is lead to the belief that the 
altruistic element in man is strong enough to stand on its own 
feet? How long will this principle of unselfishness hold its 
own in a religion whose main features are a God Who does 
not care and a system of nature which makes progress by sur- 
vival of the fittest? Mr. Balfour discusses this point in a fa- 
miliar passage of his Foundations of Biliif. His argument is 
directed against those who have gone farther in their rejection 
of religious beliefs than Dr. Eliot, but it will apply to all cases 
of the surreptitious adoption of the ethical dogmas of Christi- 
anity by systems which ''place no reliance on anything but the 
laws of nature/' 

Biologists tell us [he writes] oi parasites which live, and can 
only live, within the bodies of animals more highly organized 
than they. For them their luckless host has to find iood, to 
digest it, and to convert it into nourishment which they can 
consume without exertion and assimilate without di£Biculty. 
Their structure is of the simplest kind. Their host sees for 
them, so they need no eyes ; he hears for them, so they need 
no ears ; he works for them and contrives for them, so they 
need but feeble muscles and an undeveloped nervous system. 
But are we to conclude from this that for th^ animal kingdom 
eyes and ears, powerful muscles and complex nerves, are 
superfluities? They are superfluities for the parasite only 
because they have first been necessities for the host, and when 
the host perishes the parasite, in their absence, is not un- 
likely to perish also. 

So it is with persons who claim to show by their example 
that naturalism is practically consistent with the maintenance 
of ethical ideals with which naturalism has no natural affinity. 
Their spiritual life is parasitic ; it is sheltered by convictions 
which belong, not to them, but to the society of which they 
forma part; it is nourished by processes in which they take no 
share. And when those convictions come to an end, the alien 
life which they maintained can scarce be expected to outlast 
them. 

But it is as an experiment in prophecy that Dr. Eliot's 
pronouncement interests us most. Granted human nature and 



Digitized by 



Google 



7l8 PRESIDENT ELIOT AMONG THE PROPHETS [Sept., 

history, is his the Icind of religion which has prevailed or will 
prevail? This shall be the main question (or our discussion. 

At the outset, our confidence in Dr. Eliot as a prophet is 
somewhat diminished by the discovery that the new religion 
which he announces is, in its main tenets, a fairly old relig- 
ion, as Protestant sects go, and one in which his son is a min- 
ister. What he offers as the religion of the future is a watered 
down Unitarianism, with the addition, as one critic remarks, of 
a dash of Esculapianism, u ^., the cult of physical well-being. 
The fact that the proposed scheme of religious thought resem- 
bles a form of Unitarianism gives us a basis for gauging Dr. 
Eliot's trustworthiness as a prophet. It would appear that the 
present situation in the intellectual Protestant world is most 
favorable to Unitarianism. For men who have lost belief in 
positive authoritative religion, yet are striving to retain some 
belief in God with reverence for Christ as a moral guide, it 
would seem to offer an inviting haven. Yet it is confessed by 
its friends that it has failed to grasp the situation. A number 
of eminent and worthy men have found satisfaction in its sim- 
ple creed; but it shows no mark of being one of the world- 
religions. It is no sufficient answer to say that Unitarianism 
is contented to spread itself as a spirit, and is comparatively 
indifferent to success as a religious organization. If it were 
destined to be a prominent factor in the religious future of 
the race it would already have developed along the lines both 
of organization and of proselytism. Such has always been the 
story of dominant ideas. In nature, flabby, undeveloped or- 
ganisms and lack of fecundity do not lead us to expect either 
the dominance or the permanence of a species. 

The fact of the matter is that Unitarianism lacks the initial 
impulse of a rising faith. There is not enough leaven in it. 
Most of those who come to it reach it along the path of 
denial, which is ever a downhill road. Those who stay have 
too little confidence in the religious truths they have retained 
to be very active in propagating them. And most such men 
are carried along by momentum further down into agnosticism 
about religion and lack of belief in the permanence of moral 
ideals. On the other hand, if the element of belief in them 
retain its hold, it is likely to lead them back to a fuller re- 
ligion than Unitarianism affords. In an article written a few 
years ago in the New York Review^ Mr. Wilfrid Ward men- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] PRESIDENT ELIOT AMONG THE PROPHETS J2g 

tions what he calls ** a very curious experience ** of the most 
liustrious of English Unitarians, Dr. James Martineau. 

His [Martineau's] deep spirituality — which has been com- 
pared to that of such great mystics as Augustine and k Kempis 
— was coupled with a certain readiness on the intellectual side 
to follow the speculations of the biblical and historical critics 
of the extreme left. Toward the end of his life he had a very 
singular experience in consequence of the double influence 
which he thus exercised on his disciples. He found some of 
the men whom he influenced most deeply on the ethical side, 
passing from their early Unitarianism to an acceptance of the 
Incarnation. And he found those who were most closely in 
sympathy with his destructive criticism losing more or less 
completely that spiritual and mystical type which was in his 
eyes by far the most important element in religion. In some 
cases they appeared to lose all belief in Theism itself. 

Dr. Eliot's type of religion is not stronger than Dr. Mar- 
tineau's. It is weaker in every point which gives strength to 
religion. We do not find in the programme of the American 
thinker any insistence on the ''spiritual and mystical type" 
which was so important in the religion of his English brother. 
On the contrary, the more recent set of views marks a step 
further towards the definite abandonment of religious beliefs. 
Men whose cultivation has consisted largely in the develop- 
ment of the critical faculty are prone to the mistake that the 
modicum of religion which they choose to retain after critical 
analysis is going to persist as the religion of the future. But 
they began wrong by excluding from their investigation the 
very elements which constitute the religious nature in them — 
awe and reverence, and humility and simplicity, and the sense 
of sin and the instinct for prayer. As a result of their methods, 
the residue of religion grows less and less, until it threatens 
to vanish into thin air. The gold of revelation, piled in huge 
ingots in the Church's treasury, has been beaten and rebeaten 
under the mallets of Protestant private judgment and rational- 
istic criticism until nothing is left but the glitter. No wonder 
that Newman speaks of ''the all-corroding, all- dissolving scep- 
ticism of the intellect in religious inquiries,'' and announces the 
need of a divinely constituted authority to repel its ravages. 

The fate of religion depends (humanly speaking) on reli- 



Digitized by 



Google 



730 PRESIDENT ELIOT AMONG THE PROPHETS [Sept, 

gious men. It is not a matter to be settled by the leisure 
speculations of a retired professor. It depends on men of re- 
ligious enthusiasm like St. Paul, men of simplicity of heart like 
St. Francis, men of meditative piety like Newman. It matters 
not how dark the clouds of unbelief may lower, or that there 
be but one prophet left that has not bowed the knee to Baal. 
What professor in Antioch or Athens in the first century of 
our era believed that an obscure Jewish sect would in three 
centuries dominate the Empire? The incipient rationalistic 
spirit of the twelfth century was met and overcome by the 
religious revival of the mendicant friars who finally, in the 
persons of Aquinas and Bonaventure, took possession of the 
Universities. In the days of Shaftesbury and Toland it would 
have seemed an easy prophecy that a form of Deism not un- 
like Eliotism was destined to control the stream oij^ English 
thought. If there were such a seer, he failed to see the depths 
of the human soul, or to foresee John Wesley. 

Dr. Eliot predicts a new kind of religion — what he should 
be able to promise first is a new kind of man. The old genus 
homo, as we meet it in history- books or on the street, is not of 
a sort to worship a multiplication of infinities or look on 
surgeons as sacred ministers performing holy rites. Mankind 
will have a real religion, or none at alt. It wants a God to 
love and fear and pray to. Its religion must be a message 
from on high, which will give light in dark places and strength 
in temptation and consolation in the trials and losses of this 
life. And it will have its dogmas too. A creedless religion is 
a thoughtless religion. The only valuable religious elements in 
Dr. Eliot's plan are dogmas. His Pantheistic God is a dogma, 
his ideal of progress is a dogma, his law of love is a dogma. 
Even his denials are dogmas; but these are not valuable. It 
is true, as Chesterton says, that ''the modern world is filled 
with men who hold dogmas so strongly that they do not even 
know they are dogmas.*' 

It is not the dogmas we object to. So long as he advances 
positive dogmas he is, to some degree, helpful. But the bulk 
of his message is too commonplace and this- worldly to de- 
serve the sacred name of religion. How can it fulfill the 
functions of the ancient faith? Will it satisfy the mystic 
longings of the saints for communion with God ? Would any 
man be willing to die for its principles? Is it a religion for 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] PRESIDENT ELIOT AMONG THE PROPHETS 7}t 

the world-weary and the disconsolate ? Does it afford any 
curb for passion or help in time of temptation ? Has it any 
future as a popular religion — with its devotion to abstract ideals, 
and its academic regard for ancient customs ? What kind of 
hymns will it produce? How far will it fulfill the social ser- 
vice rendered by older religions of holding in check the brute 
passions of humanity ? We fear that the pontiff of the lecture 
hall would find to his consternation that the conclusions drawn 
from his careful utterances by the rough, practical logic of the 
mob is that there is an end to moral sanction; there is no 
God, at least none worth troubling about, and, in the expres- 
sive phrase of the day, '^The lid is off/' 

The new religion will neither satisfy the needs of religious 
natures nor hold the allegiance of those who through various 
causes are forsaking the ancient faiths. It is a house built 
half-way down on a steep and slippery hillside and below it 
lie the quagmires of agnosticism and pessimism. Those who 
would escape to solid ground must rise on the wings of faith. 

Dr. Eliot attempts to speak in the rSIe of Isaias. But his 
voice is the voice of Jeremias. His blessings are dooms. He 
sings of the victories over this world, but the discerning ear 
detects the minor chords which sound the passing of every 
hope that has sustained the noblest and best of human kind. 
Like Matthew Arnold on Dover Beach one hears ** the eternal 
note of sadness." Is this man of books — five-foot shelf or 
Harvard Library of books — is he the seer who perceives in 
vision the hopes, the aspirations, the destinies of humanity ? 
Or have we a return of the ancient days ** when the word of 
the Lord was precious, and there was no manifest vision'*? 

He quotes from St. Paul's speech at the Areopagus. Is 
he with St. Paul or with those to whom he spoke — those who 
derided his message of faith, who prided themselves in their 
knowledge of philosophy and life, who saw in themselves the 
teachers of the world, but whose reign was to be so short, 
whose wisdom was to be overthrown by the gospel of this 
Jewish zealot? 

History repeats itself. Many things change, but the mind of 
God and the nature of man remain. Macaulay, in a passage too 
well known to require citation, speaks of the wonderful vitality 
of the Catholic Church. Newman presents the same idea with 
his usual reticence of statement. 



Digitized by 



Google 



732 PRESIDENT ELIOT AMONG THE PROPHETS [Sept. 

There is only one religion in the world which tends to fulfill 
the aspirations, needs, and foreshadowings of natural faith and 
devotion. It alone has a definite message addressed to all 
mankind. . . . Christianity is in its idea an announce- 
ment, a preaching ; it is the depository of truths beyond hu- 
man discovery, momentous, practical, maintained one and the 
same in substance in every age from the first, and addressed to 
all mankind. And it has actually been embraced and is 
found in all parts of the world, in all climates, among all 
races, in all ranks of society, under every degree of civiliza- 
tion, from barbarism to the highest cultivation of mind. 
Coming to set right and to govern the world, it has ever 
been, as it ought to be, in conflict with large masses of men, 
with the civil power, with physical force, with adverse phil- 
osophies ; it has had successes, it has had reverses ; but it 
has had a grand history, and has effected great things, and is 
as vigorous in its age as in its youth. In all these respects it 
has a distinction in the world and a pre-eminence of its own ; 
it has upon \t prima fade signs of divinity; I do not know 
what can be advanced by rival religions of prerogatives so 
special. 

I have stated that mankind will have a real religion, or 
none at all. Here is a real religion, a strong religion. It 
teaches, not as the ancient or modern scribes, but as having 
authority. Its doctrines and ideals are based on divine reve- 
lation, on the spiritual experiences of the saints, on the wisdom 
acquired by its dealings with all classes and races of men for 
nineteen hundred years, all formulated by men of giant intel- 
lect and true religious spirit. It is a religion which answers 
every need and gives room and play for all sane developments 
of the religious element in man. 

And if prophecy be in order, then on every basis which 
men may take for the discernment of the future — divine oracles, 
the lessons of history, the law of survival of the fittest, the 
conclusion is always the same — the religion of the future is — 
the religion of the past. 



Digitized by 



Google 




HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER. 

BY KATHARINE TYNAN. 

Chapter XX. 

FLIGHT. 

|HE funeral was orer. The brothers and the wife 
were in the library at Outwood waiting for Mr. 
Lee to read the will to them. Nesta sat pale 
and still in her deep black; the two brothers, 
who had mourned with a grief savage and in- 
consolable, sat huddled up in their places, looking down as 
though they would conceal their bloodshot eyes. 
The solicitor seemed oddly nervous. 

''My friend and client, Mr. James Moore, taken so untimely 
from us, has left a curious will, a will against which, I may 
say, I strongly advised him. He had unbounded confidence 
in you two gentlemen, his brothers, and for some curious 
reason he wished his wife to be disassociated from the busi- 
ness. There is no explicit provision in the will either for you, 
Mrs. Moore, or for the child, although I understood from my 
client that there was an implicit trust with which his brothers 
were thoroughly acquainted. I remonstrated with him over 
the terms of the will, explaining to him that the absence of 
his wife's name from it might be open to misunderstanding. 
I may say I remonstrated very forcibly with him, explaining — 
I am sure you will excuse me, gentlemen — that the law takes 
no cognizance of the bona-fides of trustees, but looks to have 
everything securely tied up and stated so that there can be 
no loophole of escape. Your brother, gentlemen, seemed to 
think that Mrs. Moore would understand, would be quite will- 
ing, that she and her child should apparently be outside the 
will. I do not need to tell you, gentlemen, that my late 
client's personalty is very small. He had sunk everything he 
could lay hands on in the various branches of his business. 
He seemed to think that Mrs. Moore would be relieved at 
being out of the business. At the last my client sent for me. 



Digitized by 



Google 



734 HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER [Sept., 

I understand, to make an alteration in this part of the will; 
bat, unfortunately, I arrived too late. I will now proceed to 
read what I consider a very extraordinary will — one which I 
think Mfs. Moore would be quite justified in attempting to set 
aside, if it were not that she shares, I am sure, her husband's 
immense confidence in his brothers — a confidence which, I 
have absolutely no doubt, will be entirely justified.'^ 

Nesta listened to the long preamble with stony composure. 
In the horror which had come upon her nothing very much 
mattered, if it were not for Stella; and she supposed that 
Stella's interests would be safe with her uncles. Yet her mind 
went wandering back stupidly and aimlessly to the uncles of 
legend and history: to the uncles of the Babes in the Wood; 
to Crookback Richard ; she thought of Prince Arthur and his 
piteous appeal to Hubert; of the Babes dead in the Wood. 

She came back out of her twilight wanderings to find that 
the lawyer was reading the will. There was very little of it: 
no mention of her or of the child; no legacy to any one; all 
went to the testator's beloved and faithful brothers, Richard 
and Stephen Moore, who understood his wishes in regard to 
his property, whom he trusted implicitly to carry them out. 

'^A very strange will, gentlemen," said the lawyer, laying 
back the parchment on the table. ''If you were not men of 
honor and conscience, why — the habit of the law is to trust 
no man implicitly. I am quite sure the widow and child of 
your dead brother will be as sacred to you as they were dear 
to him." 

He had his misgivings, which he imparted later on to the 
wife of his bosom. 

''The best advice I can give you is always at your dis- 
posal," he said to Nesta, holding her cold little hand in his a 
little longer than formality required. 

" I didn't like leaving her with that odd pair," he said to 
Mrs. Lee in the coziness of their evening chat together. 
"There is something of the Caliban about them, especially 
about the elder one. So strange that the brother should have 
been such a splendid looking fellow. I never saw anything 
like their grief for him. There is something of the animal 
about it, half-touching and half-repellent. Richard's eyes 
burnt like coals as he listened to the will." 

" I am sure they will do their best for her," the wife said 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909-] Her Mother's Daughter 735 

consolingly. '^ Of course I can't imagine a business man mak- 
ing such a will. Supposing they married and had children of 
their own, they might be tempted to ignore that sacred trust." 

'^ Apparently he trusted them not to marry/' said Mr. Lee. 
''The law in its wisdom likes to put people beyond the reach 
of a temptation such as that." 

Meanwhile, after he had gone, the three who had loved 
the dead man so passionately sat on in their places as the 
lawyer had left them. Nesta would have got up and gone 
away. She was afraid of her husband's brothers, and Richard's 
gaze upon her seemed to compel her to remain where she 
was. 

There was not a sound in the room but the ticking of the 
clock on the mantelpiece and now and again the fall of a 
coal upon the hearth. 

The air of the room grew tense with what was coming. 
It seemed an age to the frightened woman, so helpless and 
alone in this strange, desolate world, before Richard Moore 
spoke. 

''You heard what was in the will?" he said at last grat- 
ingly. 

She nodded her head. 

" He left you in our hands," the harsh voice went on. 
"Well, we knew what he did not. It was not right that he 
should die loving you, you — ^!" He used a foul word, and 
the color leaped to her face. His brother came and stood by 
him, trying to soothe him. 

"We knew what he did not," he went on, his voice rising, 
" how you played him false. We let him die in peace without 
that knowledge. Wasn't it enough that you should have mar- 
ried him and sucked the healthy life out of him, planting your 
own disease upon him, without cheating and deceiving him 
too? You had a lover; we watched you with him. We saw 
you at your infernal tricks. You may have had more than 
one for all we know. Do you think we are going to work so 
that your man may come back and marry you and enjoy the 
fruits of his labor and ours while h$ lies in the grave?" 
She uttered a faint cry. 

"How dare you?" she said, "how dare you? I knew how 
wicked your hearts were towards me, but I had no idea of the 
depth of their wickedness. If he were only here I " 



Digitized by 



Google 



736 HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER [Sept, 

She had stood up and she grasped the table as though she 
needed support. 

'^ If he were here ! '' repeated Richard Moore. '' He is in 
the grave, where you sent him. Haven't we seen you grow 
fat and sleek while he wasted. You are his murderer. He is 
dead and there is no one like him. The child is like you, no 
health in her miserable little body.'' 

''That is where you are wrong, Richard Moore/' Nesta said 
facing him. ''She is sound and sweet. There is not a drop 
of blood in her sweet little body that is not wholesome. You 
lie when you say that I had disease; I had no disease, only 
fragility which they feared might lead to disease. If I grew 
strong with Jim it was because of my happiness. I had been 
the loneliest child alive. As for the rest of what you say, it 
is a lie that could only have come out of hell. I have never 
thought of any man but my husband." 

The two pairs of eyes looked at her with a cold hatred and 
disbelief. 

*'We saw you in another man's arms, not once but twice. 
What brought you to London in his absence, when he was 
dying on his feet" — for an instant Richard Moore choked— 
'' that you might be rich ? " 

''I went to see his doctor, to hear what he had to say." 

''An honest woman does not go on honest errands hidden 
in a veil and creeping about alone at night." 

For a second she wavered. What good was there in de- 
fending herself. If an angel from heaven came to speak for 
her they would not believe. 

"We let him die in peace, not knowing the light woman 
he had married," put in Stephen Moore. 

Again she lifted her drooping head. 

''If you had dared to tell him," she said, "he would have 
struck you in the face. I too held my peace when you, 
Richard Moore, left me to drown ; you, indeed, a murderer in 
heart. I could not bear to tell him what thing it was he loved 
and trusted. Nature marked you both well, and he ought 
to have read the signs: he ought to have read the signs." 

She looked at them unflinchingly, eye to eye. She seemed 
to have lost fear of them. 

"Now," she said, "go. I have borne too much. Go out 
o the house, which yet is mine." 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909.] HER Mother's Daughter 737 

'^ Not till we have said our say. Stephen and I have talked 
over what we should do. The power is all in our hands. I 
was for turning you out ; you could go to your lover. But 
Stephen is not as good a hater as I am. Stephen asked for 
mercy for you, which you do not deserve. You are to go 
away from here. As long as you live decently and remain un- 
married we will allow you three hundred a year. It is too 
much money for you that killed our Jim.'' 

'^ Go I " she said, pointing to the door with her finger. 

They went towards the door. Then Richard Moore came 
back. ''You can pack up and go as soon as you like/' he 
said. ''We propose to place the child at school. We shall 
try to forget that you have a part in her." 

"You mean to take Stella from me?" 

" She will be better without you." 

All her spirit had deserted her now. She looked at the 
two with a terrible pallor spreading over her face. All at once 
she was mortally afraid. Panic had seized hold upon her. . 
She never stopped to ask herself if it was likely they could 
take the child from her. 

She heard the door close behind them, and for a few seconds 
she sat in the chair into which she had dropped huddled up 
and quaking. Why, if they had power over Stella, they might 
kill her. Words hummed in her brain. 

" Grief takes the room up of my absent child. 
Sits in his place, lies down, and plays with me." 

She reached out for one of the decanters which stood upon 
the table, from which Mr. Lee had helped himself before start- 
ing out on his journey. Neither Richard nor Stephen Moore 
ever touched strong drink. She poured herself out something, 
which happened to be brandy, and drank it; it steadied her 
nerves and stopped the chattering of her teeth. 

She stood up and looked about her in a stealthy way, 
then opened the door of her morning room which opened off 
the library and passed within. 

Between the windows that overlooked the broad green ter- 
race stood the escritoire which had been Miss Grantley's gift. 
She locked the door of the room before she went to the escri- 
toire. Her fingers felt for the spring of the secret drawer, 

VOL. LXXXIX.~47 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



738 HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER [Sept., 

and, having found it, she drew it towards hen A little drawer 
suddenly sprang out. Within it were the folded notes. 

She examined them one by one, glancing now and again at 
the windows fearfully lest she should be observed. But no one 
came that way. 

Having counted the notes she put them in the bosom of 
her gown. Then she went upstairs to the nursery where Stella 
sat on the floor, playing as seriously with her toys as though 
she knew the house was one of mourning. 

** Has Daddie come ? '' she asked, looking up with a sud- 
den hopefulness which told pathetically of how heavily the 
hours had dragged. ''And will you take me to him. Mummy? 
You never come near Stella now, and she's so lonely." 

Nesta Moore snatched up the child and held her to her 
heart — while the nurse looked on with a respectful stolidity. 

" I shall keep Miss Stella with me to-night, Baines,*' she 
said. '' You wanted a day or two off to see your mother. If 
you would like to go to-day you may.'' 

Some time during the night Nesta Moore took her child 
and fled into the wide world, where they could be together. 

Chapter XXI. 

THE WICKED UNCLES. 

There were probably a good many people who would have 
helped Nesta Moore and defended her if she had not made 
her rash flight, gentle and simple folk as well, among the 
latter of whom must be counted Aunt Betsy. 

She indeed took an unexpectedly strong stand in the mat- 
ter of Nesta's disappearance. She did not say all she thought, 
because she had her family pride as well as the best of them, 
and was as averse from washing the soiled linen of the family 
in public as Lord Mount*Eden himself might have been. 

Still, as she would have said herself, she knew what she 
knew. She had always known there was something strange and 
abnormal about her two younger nephews. She had seen with 
surprising clearness their jealousy and suspicion of their brother's 
wife. It was something she laid before the Lord in those long 
prayers of hers which had the fluency and eloquence of the old 
Covenanters. ** Puir lads," she would say, '* puir lads, Thou 
kaovest. Lord, they were twisted at the birth if not before it. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Her Mother's Daughter 739 

Lay it not to their charge, and do Thou, Prince of Light, 
turn Thy lantern upon the darkness of their thoughts, that the 
rank and evil weeds growing there may perish before Thy glory/' 

When word came to her of Nesta's disappearance she wrung 
her hands in blind agony of apprehension of things she dared ^ 
not think upon. However her worst apprehension did not last 
long, for Nesta's flight was traced as far as the railway station 
and the early morning train to London. Further than that the 
trail did not go. Nesta and the child had disappeared into 
the world of London as completely as though the earth had 
opened and swallowed them up. 

When the terms of James Moore's will were known there 
were those who found an unpleasant significance' in the wife's 
dispossession and flight ''There must have been a reason for 
such an extraordinary will," people said. Some who had known 
Nesta and liked her were indignant over the business, till they 
forgot all about it. If Lord Mount-Eden and his daughter had 
been at home public opinion might have been stirred to more 
purpose; but by the time they came back to Mount* Eden 
Nesta Moore was, so far as the county was concerned, dead 
and buried. 

Richard and Stephen Moore asked nothing of the county; 
were unconscious of its praise and blame. The work of ex- 
tending the business of Moore Brothers went on unflaggingly. 
The two worked as though for the smile and praise of him 
who was gone. They would never have his initiative, his bril* 
liant daring. They could follow the lines he had laid down 
for their direction. Outside them they could not go. In 
business they were essentially safe men, reminding Aunt Betsy 
of the man who had laid away his talent in a napkin. 

From the time of Nesta's disappearance there was little 
communication between the aunt and the nephews. Things 
went on outwardly much the same, except that Richard Moore 
no longer tended the garden which had been his delight, but 
sent some one to do it in his stead. The brothers came to 
the cottage at intervals to see that their aunt wanted for 
nothing. She kept her hale welKbeing, her rosy cheeks, her 
blue eyes, long past the three-score- and- ten; but when she 
looked at her nephews her glance, in latter years, had some- 
thing oddly implacable about it. 

The years passed, to all appearance, quietly, with little 

eventfulness. The brothers were a little more stooped, notice -t 

OCT P 



740 HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER [Sept., 

ably grimmer, more haggard than when they had sunned them- 
selves in the light of their adored brother's conquering man- 
hood. 

Nesta Moore had been gone half a dozen years from her 
home, and so short is human memory, that people were be- 
ginning to forget even her story, though here and there some 
one pointed to one or other of the brothers as a man who had 
never recovered the shock of his brother's death. People re- 
membered James Moore far better than they did his wife. He 
was not one to be easily forgotten. 

Then, for the first time in] six years, Stephen Moore came 
face to face with the lady who had been Lady Eugenia Capel. 
She had married Godfrey Grantley the year after Nesta's flighty 
the young gentleman having come home unexpectedly soon' 
short of an arm but covered with glory. The rumor of her 
marriage, which had taken place abroad, had reached the 
Moores some time after it was an accomplished fact. It had 
been a curious source of bitterness to them; as though she had 
been their brother's wife and had forgotten him. '*And for a 
one-armed man, tool" they said to each other. And so he 
had been in love with Lady Eugenia while he carried on with 
Jim's wife. Then he could not have cared for her after all. 
It could only have been lightness and folly, not what they had 
suspected. Was it likely that a man with Lady Eugenia in his 
thoughts should trouble himself seriously about h$r t They did 
her a grudging justice in that regard at least; they had enough 
against her even when they had acquitted her of worse than 
lightness. 

They met by Aunt Betsy's bedside. A cold winter snap, 
which had brought bronchitis with it, had at last obliged this 
indomitable old soul to lie down. At last she had consented 
to have the service of a maid, which she had steadily refused 
for many years. There was a nurse in the room, a brown- 
faced, gray- haired little woman, whose eye twinkled whenever 
it fell on Aunt Betsy. 

*^ She detests me," she explained to Lady Eugenia, '' because 
I'm what I am. As she says, she has always done for herself. 
But she is going to like me before I am done with her. I 
have never had a patient yet who didn't like me and want me 
to come back." 

''Some folk know how to blow their own trumpets," Aunt 
Betsy said grimly between the wheezing fits. 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



1909.] Her Mother's Daughter 741 

Lady Eagenia smiled at the infectious humor of the nurse's 
little face, wrinkled into fine lines of laughter as she stood 
with her head, bird-likci on one side, contemplating her in- 
appreciative charge. 

At that moment Stephen Moore came into the room. Be- 
fore she had observed his presence she was struck by the 
change of expression in the sick woman's face. Grim as it 
had been, there had been an underlying suggestion of shrewd 
humor about it. Now it was as though a shadow had fallen; 
and, looking up, Lady Eugenia saw Stephen Moore. 

He was, if possible, uglier than ever ; yet there was some- 
thing not wholly dislikable in his dark face — a look of suffer- 
ing which made Lady Eugenia sorry for him. His shoulders 
were more bowed than of old, as though they bore a burden. 
His eyes, dark in their hollows, looked at her with an ex- 
pression almost of fear. 

Her first impulse was to bow coldly. She had her own 
opinion of the brothers who had received James Moore's wealth 
and enjoyed it while his wife and child wandered, heaven knew 
where, on the face of the globe. She lumped them all as mad 
— the man who had made the will and the men who had bene- 
fitted by it But something in Stephen Moore's expression 
touched her generous heart Impulsively she extended a hand 
to him. He took it awkwardly and a dark flush came to his 
haggard cheek. 

Certainly Stephen Moore did not look as though he had 
benefited by his brother's disposal of bis property ; he did not 
look as though he enjoyed it He was shabby and dusty. 
Not the least bit in the world like one of the owners of a 
great and thriving business concern. 

Lady Eugenia, after her fashion, swung round from de- 
testing the Moores to defending them. 

'' Believe me, Godfrey," she said, ''there is some mystery 
at the root of it. Anyhow, they are getting no good from 
their ill-gotten gains. This one looks quite tragical; and I 
caught sight of the other in his counting-house as we crossed 
the mill- yards — there are acres of them. The other one, the 
Crookback Richard one, was sitting in the gaslight It was 
full on his face. There was something macabre about it He'll 
either kill himself or some one else — or he'll end in a mad- 
house." 

Godfrey Grantley, who had come home with the intention, 

Jigitized by VjOOQIC 



742 HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER [Sept., 

even so late, of sifting the mystery of poor Nesta's disappear- 
ance, had the bottom completely knocked out of his case. 

He saw both brothers. Richard had explained things, with 
a hand half-across his eyes which left his face in shadow. 
The disappearance of their brother's wife had been a great 
blow to them. They had done all in their power to discover 
her and the child, who would of course have been heiress to 
the property which James had founded, which they only held 
in trust. James had known he could trust them. James would 
not have his wife involved in business matters. Perhaps he 
thought she might marry again and the control of the mills 
pass away from them who were the rightful heirs of his ideas. 
But everything was for the child. She must have known it. 
They were in the most unhappy position as administrators for 
a little mistress who was lost. So much they had stated by 
letter to Godfrey Grantley when, after his return from India, 
he had heard of his cousin's disappearance. Now it impressed 
him as the formal letter-writing had not done. The two were 
so obviously unhappy that it was impossible to think of them 
as villians in the enjoyment of an inheritance not rightly theirs. 

Talking it over with his wife they came at last to the con- 
clusion that Nesta's grief at her husband's death had turned 
her brain. It was quite true that the search for her had been 
thorough. There had been hardly a stone left unturned when 
the search at last was given up, and the mystery of Nesta 
Moore's disappearance relegated to the mysteries which are 
destined never to be unravelled. There was abundant evidence 
of the thoroughness of the search. 

Once persuaded of this fact. Captain and Lady Eugenia 
Grantley were prepared to made amends for their former dis- 
trust by believing nothing but good of the brothers. They 
were ready to become their champions and friends. Lady 
Eugenia was indignant when the Duchess of St. Germains, 
who had a kindly memory of Nesta Moore and her handsome 
husband, and could not be persuaded that the brothers were 
not at the root of the mischief, asked her one day : '' And 
how are the Two Wicked Uncles ? " 

'' I hate cynicism in an old woman," she said hotly to her 
husband. ** It is just because they are not good looking. 
The Duchess swears by beauty, and says frankly that a really 
ugly person must have a bad conscience as a really beautiful 
person must have a beautiful soul." 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909-] HER MOTHER'S DAUGHTER 743 

''The Duchess is a philosopher, my dear/' said her hus- 
band, ''To be sure there are different ideas of beauty. She 
is really a wise old woman. She says that after thirty our 
faces are our own to do with them what we will ; and she is 
right" 

"How pleased papa would be to hear you," his wife said. 
"You are growing serious enough to go into Parliament, as 
he wishes you to." 

And then she added gravely: "As for those two Moores, 
the Duchess ought to see them when they are off guard. If 
they are sinners, they are repentant ones." 

'.'Our point is that they are not sinners," her husband re- 
minded her. 

"And see how devoted they are to Maurice," his wife re- 
marked with true feminine illogicality. "The Duchess ought 
to see them with Maurice. No one who was really wicked 
could be so devoted to a little child." 

Chapter XXII. 

THE HAND OF THE LORD. 

A curious friendship indeed had sprung up, almost at the 
first meeting, between the Grantleys* dark- hatred, gray-eyed 
boy and those queer misanthropes, as the county considered 
them — Richard and Stephen Moore. 

They were not men to fail to be pleased by Lady Eugenia's 
holding out the hand of friendship to them. Few people, in- 
deed, could resist Lady Eugenia when she willed to please. 

Both men had been sensitive from childhood about their 
own ugliness. It had made them shrink from the fellowship 
of their kind. It had driven them for solace to animals and 
birds and flowers. Even in children's eyes they dreaded to 
see the knowledge of their ugliness. If Nesta Moore had not 
shrunk from them the night her husband brought her home 
this story perhaps need never have been written. 

There was nothing but friendship and sympathy in Lady 
Eugenia's eyes. They basked in her favor, they, who had 
never known what it was for a woman to look at them as 
though she found them anything but most displeasing. And 
here was the handsome, spirited boy, with his mother's eyes, 
looking at them with the same frank liking of hers. Yet there 
was nothing in them to attract a child. Grim, ugly, shabby, 

Jigitized by VjOOQIC 



744 Her Mother's Daughter [Sept., 

silent, most children woald have turned away from them. 
Little Stella had always been afraid of them, sensitive doubt- 
less to her mother's feeling. But from the day the brothers 
took Maurice Grantley over the mills, the young autocrat 
riding in turns on the shoulders of the two, while all the fur- 
nace doors were opened and all the machinery set in motion 
to please him, from that time his conquest of the two brothers 
was assured. 

In time, and a short time, they were the slaves of the im- 
perious boy. They took to visiting at Mount- Eden. Lord 
Mount* Eden found them well-informed and original when he 
took the trouble to explore their minds; but they did not go 
there to interest Lord Mount-Eden. They went there for the 
sake of the woman and the child. 

The time came when the two brothers spoke to each other 
the thought that was in their minds. 

'' There's none to succeed us here/' said Richard, the mas- 
ter-spirit, '^ and I'm not — " he paused and went ofiF on another 
tack. He had not been well of late. There was a root of un- 
health beneath the abnormal personality of the twin-brothers. 
He had an idea he was not going to last very long, and he 
had been on the point of saying it, but pity for the one who 
would be left alone stopped the words before they had passed 
his lips. ^' Failing James' child, and I think, I think " — a curi- 
ous yellowish paleness crept over his face as he spoke — ^' we 
must look on her as dead. She^' — they never named Nesta 
more explicitly — ''she would have drowned herself and the 
child perhaps. I think if they lived we must have come on 
their tracks. Failing James' child, why shouldn't the property 
go to Lady Eugenia's son ? They might rear him up to busi- 
ness. The young 'un has a love for the machinery. Six years 
old I He won't be so long growing up. You could see to it, 
Steve, that he was trained." 

He stopped abruptly, conscious that the thing he did not 
wish to say had slipped from him ; but his brother did not seem 
to notice. He was looking before him with a well-pleased 
smile. 

" 'Tis what I've thought of, Dick," he said. " He ought to 
have been Jim's son. That father of his is but a whipper- 
snapper, but look at the mother! It'll be more heartsome-like 
to thiak of him following us in the business." 

I think we must take it that Jim's wife and child are 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



ii ' 



1909.] Her Mother's Daughter 745 

dead/' Richard Moore went on. ''That being so, there is no 
one we need think of but ourselves and our own wishes. But 
the lad must succeed us at the business. I won't have it sold 
or going to pot It must be the condition.'' 

''They'll agree to it fast enough," said Stephen joyfully. 
'' There isn't so much money going there, Dick. That old Lord 
Mount*Eden« he's a bit of a mug. He drops a tidy bit, one 
way or another, over his investments. Never mind for that; 
a cleverer man's the richer. What are mugs made for but to 
be fleeced?" 

However, these fine schemes for the converting of Maurice 
Grantley into a business man were checked by later happen- 
ings. In a very little while afterwards it was apparent to 
everybody that Richard Moore was not going to live. Indeed, 
once he took to dying he did not make much delay about it. 
He was going to die as he had lived, self-contained and soli- 
tary; but the one thing that grieved him was his brother's 
desolation. 

'' Poor Steve," he said to Lady Eugenia, who was a constant 
visitor to the bare, gaunt little room where the owner of great 
riches lay dying. *' What will the poor fellow do without me 7 
I am the elder by an hour, and I've stood between Steve and 
the world. What did I care about the world ? If it hated me 
I hated it; I taught Steve to adore Jim as I did. Jim was 
enough for us while he lived. He'd have been living now if 
he hadn't taken the consumption from his wife. She fattened 
on his strength. Think of a man living with a woman who was 
sucking the very life out of him, giving him her death and 
taking his life. He should have married you." 

The audacity of the dying man did not strike Lady Eugenia. 
She was a woman of the world and she knew that women of 
her class often married rich humbly- born men who had not 
James Moore's great qualities to recommend them. She ig- 
nored the end of the sentence. What he had said about Nesta 
had been a shock to her. 

^' Surely you are mistaken," she said. *' I knew Mrs. Moore 
was delicate as a girl — my husband has told me. Such a girl 
might conceivably have gone into consumption; but she had 
outgrown the tendency. She was quite healthy, although she 
looked fragile. So was the child." 

'^ If Jim had married you he would not have died," the sick 
man said with an air of finality. ''Why should he have died ? 



Digitized by 



Google 



746 Her Mother's Daughter [Sept., 

He was as strong as a bull. A wetting would not have killed 
a man like that/' 

Then he spoke to her of his own and his brother's inten- 
tions regarding her son. They had grown very confidential in 
those hours when he lay dying. 

'^ If Jim's daughter ever should be discovered she would 
have a right to a partnership/' he said. " Steve will see to 
that. She wouldn't be in the business. I don't believe in women 
in business. But she should have a share in the profits." 

'^ It is too soon to talk about such things/' Lady Eugenia 
said. ''You are very generous to Maurice, my friend, and I 
appreciate your goodness. But your brother is yet a young 
man. He may marry and have children of his own. If things 
should come to pass as you desire* and we were ever to dis- 
cover your brother's child, we should take care of her as our 
own." 

'' Steve won't marry. We never thought of women, he and 
I. Poor lad, where is the woman who would look at him for 
himself?" 

'' There are many who would," Lady Eugenia said eagerly. 
She was not sure that she wanted her little Maurice bound by 
the dead hand of the Moores, that she liked the idea of a 
business career for him. ''Many would. You've never given 
women a chance, Mr. Moore. I doubt that the handsome man 
is as well-loved as the man who is — less handsome." 

"We frightened Jim's wife the first time she saw us/' he 
went on in a low murmur, as though the sleep of lassitude was 
fast overtaking him. "It was never anything else with her as 
long as she lived. We began to hate her for that and because 
she wasn't good enough for him. He ought to have married 
you." 

He wandered off in snatches of talk. Perhaps be bad an 
impulse of confession, for some of the things he said might 
have been pieced together by an astute listener; but Lady Eu- 
genia was not particularly astute. Neither would she have felt 
that the babbling of a dying man should be taken as evidence 
against him. Why half of it might be dreams for all she knew. 

Stephen Moore's desolation after his brother was dead and 
buried drew out all her womanly pity. It set her to the natu- 
ral woman's resource, match-making. There was a distant cou- 
sin of her own, very poor, not young, although comely enough 
in a faded way, who had known for long the bitterness of eat- 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



1909.] HER Mother's Daughter 747 

ing other people's bread, and was just beginning to realize that 
with the departure of youth even that would be measured out 
to her less willingly. Lady Eugenia could trust Helen Savile. 
There were plenty of people who might be willing to marry 
Stephen Moore for his money; but she could trust Helen's 
pity, her gentleness, her compunction, her gratitude. 

The marriage was made, and proved to be a most happy 
one while it lasted, which was just five years, all told. Helen 
had done wonders in the way of civilizing her Caliban. To be 
sure he had always been more promising material than Rich- 
ard; and he adored his wife and was like clay in her soft 
hands. 

For five years they lived in what was an ecstacy of happi- 
ness to Stephen Moore. Everything was changed for him. 
They lived at Outwood Manor in a style that befitted their 
wealth. It was wonderful how much of the uncouthness and 
ugliness slipped away from Stephen Moore in his wife's trans- 
forming hands. 

Then — she left him, with only a delicate baby for all com- 
fort. 

When Lady Eugenia, greatly pitying, saw him for the first 
time after his wife's death, she could think of nothing to say. 
Helen had left such utter wreck and ruin in the place where 
she had been light and comfort to one very lonely soul. 

He lifted his haggard eyes and looked at her. 

'^ It is God's punishment," he said, '' for our driving out 
Jim's wife. Dick only thought of Jim. The feeling that Jim 
knew killed Dick. I had no right to marry her with that in 
my past. And now I have lost her. God does not sleep." 

This revelation Lady Eugenia did not share with her hus- 
band. Shocked and distressed as she was by it, it did not ex- 
clude pity for the afflicted man. It made a more terrible ele- 
ment in the crushing sorrow that had overtaken him that he 
recognized in it a just punishment for sin. 

And there was the helpless child. For the sake of the 
child, if not for his own, the father must be uplifted. Lady 
Eugenia Grantley was a good woman ; and in a good woman's 
way she had a tenderness for the sinner whom she had been 
the first to lead towards the light. 

(to be continued.) 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



SCHOLASTIC CRITICISM AND APOLOGETICS. 

BY W. H. KENT, O.S.C. 

LTHOUGH it is now considerably more than a year 
since the appearance of the Syllabus Lameniabili 
and the subsequent Encyclical Pascendi Gregis^ 
the interest excited by these important Papal 
\ documents has scarcely abated and their influence 
may still be traced in current theological literature. As might 
have been anticipated, the weighty words of the Holy Father 
were welcomed by a crowd of Catholic writers and aroused a 
storm of hostile criticism in other quarters. And in the books, 
pamphlets, and articles, in papers and periodicals, there is al- 
ready a large body of very various literature on the subject 
of Modernism and its Pontifical condemnation. 

In all this, it is scarcely necessary to add, there is much 
that must needs give pain to the Catholic reader, for he will 
find the authority of the Holy See flouted and its decisions 
rejected or misrepresented, not only by outside critics but 
by some of its own subjects. And, on the other hand, it must 
be confessed that here again, as often happens, the Church has 
not always been fortunate in its defenders and in the exuber- 
ance of their loyalty or their just indignation against foes of 
the faith. Some writers and preachers seem to have overlooked 
the dangers of hasty judgments or reckless language. 

The censure of the Holy See is a grave, judicial act, and 
it is surely a pity that our wild words or that early rejoicing 
should give to it the appearance of a party triumph. No doubt 
there are occasions when severe censure is needed. It is only 
right to rebuke the insolence of open foes or to expose the 
subtle and insidious tactics of others. But, on the other hand^ 
it is possible to do harm by harshness as well as by undue 
levity and unworthy weakness. We must all desire that those 
who have been censured by the Holy See should make their 
submission and accept its decisions. Yet some of us are rather 
apt to forget that every hard word hurled at their heads, every 
harsh interpretation put upon their acts or writings, must needs 
make that sacrifice of submission more difficult, and may even 
have the effect of goading them into rebellion. 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



1909.] Scholastic Criticism and Apologetics 749 

There is a passage in Cardinal Pallavicino's History of the 
Council of Trent which over-zealous hunters of heresy might 
well take to heart It is when the historian is speaking of 
Luther's first opponents and expressing his fear that by calling 
him a heretic before the time they may have made him to be- 
come one: z^. ^., " questa [contradizione] forse dair Echio sar- 
ebbesi potuta far meno acerba, affinchi giovasse non tanto d'armi 
contro al nemico, quanto di fiaccola verso ad errante, Forse i 
contraddittori col dichiararlo Eretico prima del tempo il fecero di- 
ventare '' (lib. I., cap. 6). The Cardinal, it may be well to add, 
modestly admits that there may have been good ground for the 
line taken by Eck and his fellows. But the mere possibility of 
thus driving an opponent into heresy should be enough to cause 
some searching of heart among militant champions of orthodoxy. 

Nor is it only by violence and bitterness that harm may 
be done, however indirectly and unwittingly, by those who are 
endeavoring to defend the faith. The most reasonable argu- 
ment may be misunderstood; nay. the just and legitimate 
judgment of ecclesiastical authorities may be misapprehended 
and have a disastrous effect on those who thus misconstrue 
them. Students of Church history will readily recall occasions 
on which the most certain and necessary decisions have been 
misapprehended in this manner. No orthodox Christian will for 
a moment question the authority of the Council of Chalcedon. 
one of the first four councils which St Gregory likened to the 
(our Gospels. No synod assuredly has spoken with greater 
authority or has left us more luminous definitions of doctrine. 
Yet from the first a large body of Copts and Syrians and Ar- 
menians have been led to believe that it rejected the great 
doctrine laid down at Ephesus; and in like manner the mis- 
guided champions of Three Chapters imagined that Constanti- 
nople had conciemned Chalcedon. 

There need be no question as to those who at the outset 
really held the doctrine which incurred condemnation, e. g.^ 
Eutyches or Nestorius. We are concerned rather with the 
large body of men who were misled because they thought the 
Church had condemned something which she had in no wise 
condemned. And (he question is whether what happened in 
the fifth century may not in some measure repeat itself in our 
own days. One may ask this question, it may be hoped, with- 
out incurring any sinister suspicion. For in England, if not 
elsewhere, it has been confidently asserted that the recent Tcs- ^ 

L/igitized by VjOOQIC 



750 SCHOLASTIC Criticism and Apologetics [Sept., 

tifical decisions condemned the doctrine of Cardinal Newman, 
and many of the most stalwart champions of Catholic ortlio- ^ 
doxy have hastened to vindicate his name and dispel this tsn- | 

fortunate delnsion, and in this they have been sapported by 
the highest authority. 

It is clearly possible that what has occnrred in his case may 
also occnr in regard to other matters. And there may be de-> 
lusions yet more disastrous in their results than in this imag-- 
inary ''condemnation of Newman/* It is hardly necessary to 
add that in this we are not thinking of a like mistake in regard 
to any other individual. For though the supposed censure of 
some living writer might possibly give more pain to personal 
friends, we do not suppose that there can be any one man, 
living or dead, whose condemnation would work so much harm 
in the Church as that of John Henry Newman. The mistake 
I here have in view is something wider and deeper than any 
personal matter. And it may possibly appear in the sequel 
that it is by no means an imaginary danger. Indeed it is 
hardly too much to say that its presence may be felt in many 
of the violent invectives that have been written in the past 
year against the ecclesiastical authorities. From the nature of 
the case this charge is something more vague and indefinable 
than the alleged condemnation of a book or a person. But it 
may be conveniently expressed in some such phrase as ''the 
condemnation of the historical method and scientific criticism." 

There is no need to suppose that either in this case or in 
that of Newman there was anything like wanton misinterpre- 
tation. As we allknoWf the alleged condemnation of Newman 
was a delusion. But it is only fair to remember that there are 
some facts that may at any rate serve to explain its origin. 
For though the Papal documents do not condemn the writings 
of our great Cardinal, they do condemn certain doctrines 
which, on the surface, bear a more or less remote resemblance 
to his philosophy of faith and his theory of doctrinal develop- 
ment. And, on the other hand, it cannot be denied that his 
theories on these subjects have been viewed with disfavor by 
some of our scholastic critics. 

In the same way, it may be observed tdat the recent Sylla- 
bus and Encyclical do, indeed, condemn many views which 
have been put forward in the name of scientific criticism, and, 
on the other hand, they clearly give fresh support and further 
sanction to that time-honored scholasticism which is very com- 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909.] SCHOLASTIC CRITICISM AND APOLOGETICS 551 

monly associated with a wholesome contempt for modern 
taiethods of historical and scientific study. In these circum* 
stances, it can scarcely surprise us to find that some good 
people come to the conclusion that the Church has condemned 
modern methods of research and scientific criticism » and that 
Catholics are now constrained to shut their eyes to the light 
of science and the logic of facts and must fain be content to 
follow musty medisval methods. 

Something of this kind is certainly the cry raised by many 
assailants of the Encyclical. And, on the other hand, the in- 
discreet and indiscriminate attacks on higher criticism from a 
very different quarter must naturally help to strengthen this 
strange belief in the mind of many unwary readers. In most 
cases it may be hoped that it is an honest blunder and not a 
wilful distortion of facts for a controversial purpose. The 
primitive Protestant, whose crude interpretation of the Sacred 
Text is rejected by Catholics, cries out that we are going 
against the Bible itself; and in much the same way the mod- 
ern critic is rather apt to identify his own conclusions with 
historical criticism itself; and when the Church rejects them, 
he feels that she is condemning the truth of history and the 
principles of scientific criticism. 

But a little further reflection might serve to remind him 
that it is possible to make a false application of true princi- 
ples. And if we are to be told that the condemnation of so 
many conclusions of the critics is tantamount to a rejection of 
modern criticism itself, it may suffice to say that, on the same 
grounds, we shall have to admit a condemnation of scholasti- 
cism and of casuistry, quod est absurdum. For it would be easy 
to draw up a long list of propositions set forth by scholastics 
and casuists which have incurred condemnation. This fact, 
which must be familiar to all who are acquainted with the 
classic works of Viva and d'Argentr^, may serve to suggest a 
further reflection. If scholastic writers adopt so many diver* 
gent views, and occasionally fall into errors which incur de* 
served censure, there can be no question of any wholesale ac- 
ceptance of a system of teaching. 

There is obviously some freedom of choice and some need 
of critical discrimination, so that the prospect of a return to 
scholasticism is scarcely so alarming as some of its modern as- 
sailants are apt to imagine. It would, no doubt, be idle to 
deny that there are some very real and deep differences 



752 Scholastic Criticism AND APOLOGETICS [Sept., 

between medisval and modern methods. And it may be 
freely allowed that some of the modern writers who reject or 
condemn scholasticism have some real knowledge of the sub- 
ject of their censure. Much the same may surely be said of 
some of the chief champions of the older systems, and uncotn* 
promising opponents of modern methods and new philosophies. 
None the less, I venture to think that very much in recent 
controversy on these matters is the outcome of misconceptioii 
and mutual misunderstanding. And too often it will be found 
that the champions, on both sides, have been fighting with 
phantoms which, in reality, are the work of their own over- 
wrought imagination. 

The modern writer who rudely condemns scholasticism has 
seldom anything like an accurate knowledge or a just appre- 
ciation of the rich and varied literature left us by the mediae- 
val masters, and in the same way the theologian who passes 
judgment on German philosophers or Dutch higher critics has 
seldom made any serious and intelligent study of their writ- 
ings. I am very far from suggesting that such a study would 
serve to remove all grounds of censure, or all cause of contro- 
versy between the champions of the old theology and the vo- 
taries of the new criticism. But if both sides will see their 
opponents as they really are, and not as they appear in a 
mirage of misapprehension, their censures, we may be sure, 
would be more just, their arguments more effective, and there 
would, at any rate, be more reasonable hope of some satisfac- 
tory solution of the great problems. 

It might do something to clear the air and to remove 
much of this misunderstanding and a little needless acrimony, 
if we could make a calm and candid examination of recent 
critical and philosophical literature. And possibly such an ex- 
amination might serve to show that even those writers who 
have gone wrong have sought to serve the truth, that they 
have not been guilty of all the faults that hasty critics have 
ascribed to them, and some of them have done good service 
to science which may live when their errors are buried in 
oblivion. Be this as it may, the task would be one of great 
difficulty and delicacy. And I fancy that it would prove a far 
more profitable enterprise to pursue the other phantom form — 
not the criticism which is denounced by reactionary theolo- 
gians, but the ''scholasticism'' which is the bane and the bug- 
bear of critics and other lovers of science and friend^of prog- 

L/igitized by VjOOQIC 



1909.] SCHOLASTIC Criticism and Apologetics 753 

ress. And possibly it may prove that in the end this more 
modest and orthodox inquiry will also serve the purpose of 
the other and show that there is really much in modern criti« 
cal science and philosophic apologetics that is in no wise con- 
demned by the Church or her great scholastic theologians. 

This view of the matter has been already suggested at the 
outset of this article. For the title, ''Scholastic Criticism acd 
Apologetics/* is a sufficient indication of the fact that scholas- 
ticism is not, as some suppose, incompatible with scientific 
criticism and rational apologetics — that is to say, the criticism 
which is a candid and fearless search for truth, and the apolo- 
getics which seek to set forth the truth in a form and fashion 
adapted to the minds that are to receive it, and make appeal 
only to evidence and principles which they already acknowl- 
edge. Those who know scholasticism only from modern mis- 
representations, or from the necessarily imperfect sketches 
given in compendious manuals or works of reference, may 
imagine that it has little in keeping with this true scientific and 
philosophic spirit, and may associate it with an unintelligent 
and indiscriminate acceptance of tradition and an uncritical 
use of conventional arguments. But this mistake is not likely 
to be made by any one really familiar with the writings of the 
medisval masters. 

So much has been written in recent years in praise of St. 
Thomas Aqainas, that it might seem that there can scarcely 
be any one of his rare gifts and merits that has not already 
received adequate attention. Yet, though the subject has of 
course been touched upon by biographers and panegyrists, one 
fancies that something more might be made of the service he 
has rendered to critical scholarship and rational apologetics. 
This notion may well seem strange to many modern readers, 
for his name has long been the watchword of the party sup- 
posed to advocate obscurantism. And it is certainly the fact 
that he and his fellow-Schoolmen held many opinions now ac- 
counted obsolete, and accepted many documents rejected by 
modern criticism. But those who take this as a proof of 
obscurantism betray a curious inability to distinguish between 
a principle and its successful application in particular cases, 
and, I may add, a want of a sense of proportion and the prin- 
ciple of relativity. A man who in an age of absolutism advo- 
cates some modest measure of popular liberty may give more 

VOL. LZXXIX.->48 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



754 Scholastic Criticism and Apologetics [Sept., 

unmistakable proof of a liberal and progressive spirit than a 
democrat of to-day who holds the opinions of the last genera- 
tion. And in the same way, many soi-disant critics of the 
present time, who take their criticism ready-made from popular 
manuals and works of reference, cannot compare in this matter 
with those who boldly made some fresh steps in earlier ages. 
For, in spite of their mistakes, which were largely due to the 
limitations of their time and to the character of the evidence 
at their disposal, these mediaeval Schoolmen often show more 
signs of the true spirit of critical scholarship than those who 
now visit them with a censure which is essentially an uncritical 
anachronism. 

Curiously enough, it is in a matter which is too often taken 
as a primary instance of scholastic ignorance and lack of dis- 
criminating criticism — to wit, in his attitude to the Aristotelian 
literature — that St. Thomas gives us the most striking proof 
of his critical and scholarly spirit. To the Schoolmen of that 
age these works of Aristotle were chiefly known by imperfect, 
Latin versions made from the Arabic which, in many instances, 
owed its origin to a Syriac rendering of the Greek text. 
Many important works of Greek philosophers were extant only 
in the original or in Arabic versions inaccessible to Western 
scholars. And to add to the peculiar disadvantages of the 
time, the voluminous writings of Aristotle were mixed with a 
mass of spurious works of Neo-Platonic origin. In these cir- 
cumstances, if St. Thomas had been the typical scholastic ob- 
scurantist of modern controversialists and critics, he would 
have contentedly accepted the barbarous and imperfect versions 
that came before him and have taken the spurious treatises as 
genuine writings of Aristotle. But instead of this, we find him 
acting for all the world like a true critical scholar. The actual 
task of translating from Greek or Arabic did not, it is true, 
come within his province. But he urged his friend, the Flem- 
ish Dominican, William of Morbeka, who was a master of both 
those tongues, to make further translations. And it is possibly 
to that assistance that we owe the preservation of certain 
tracts of Proclus, which are only extant in Morbeka's Latin 
version. 

Moreover, St. Thomas clearly saw the importance of having 
a direct rendering from the Greek of Aristotle instead of a 
secondhand translation through the medium of Arabic. And 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Scholastic Criticism and Apologetics 755 

at least in the case of one of the books wrongly ascribed to 
Aristotle — to wit, the celebrated treatise, De Causis — the saint 
in his commentary distinctly rejects this error and assigns the 
work to its true source, and shows that it is translated from an 
Arabic abbreviation or adaptation of a work of Proclus the 
Platonist {Proculi Platonict). In the course of his commentary, 
St. Thomas makes good use of the longer work of Proclus, 
And it is significant that he also illustrates his text by citing 
Pseudo-Dionysius, a writei whose Neo- Platonic doctrine and 
whose close connection with Proclus have since been established 
by modern scholars. The fact that one important principle has 
been adopted by St. Thomas from this very book, De Causis^ 
in spite of its plainly recognized Platonic origin, may be fairly 
cited as a sign that he was by no means a blind and servile 
follower of Aristotle, while his patient and intelligent study of 
a book which had already been burnt in Paris as a source of 
heresy serves to separate him from the crowd of uncritical 
Churchmen. 

I have spoken more especially of St. Thomas because of. 
his pre-eminence among the mediaeval Schoolmen and the high 
sanction given to his teaching by ecclesiastical authority. In 
this way he is the natural representative of the scholastic 
writers. But it may be well to add that he was hardly the 
most critical and scholarly man among his contemporaries. In 
some branches of learning, as we have seen, he was surpassed 
by his friend and brother in religion, William of Morbeka; 
while in the matter of critical principles, we must surely as- 
sign a higher rank to Roger Bacon. The great Franciscan is 
perhaps better known by his services to science — though, if one 
may judge from the buffoonery of a recent Oxford pageant, 
even these are far from being properly appreciated. 

But it is to be feared that far less attention is paid to the 
scholarly instinct and sound critical judgment manifested in 
his writings. Assuredly those who know his works, and those 
of other writers of his time, need feel no alarm at learning 
that the Holy Father has sent us back to the philosophy of 
the Schoolmen. For the honor paid to the mediaeval masters 
may serve to show that whatever errors of critics may be con* 
demned, the Church can never censure or reject the primary 
principles of historical criticism. 

Much the same may be safely said in regard to the anal- 

Jigitized by VjOOQIC 



756 SCHOLASTIC CRITICISM AND APOLOGETICS [Sept., 

ogous question of apologetics. It would seem to be a popular 
impression that scholasticism is something in the nature of a 
rigid, cast-iron system allowing no sympathetic adaptation to 
the special needs of the age or of individual minds. It has, 
one would suppose, a set of arguments as fixed as the bed of 
the inexorable Procrustes. And, on the other hand, those who 
would fain have a method of apologetics adapted to modern 
minds are forthwith condemned as dangerous innovators. And 
woe betide the rash defender of orthodoxy who ventures to 
adopt principles or arguments from the writings of alien phiU 
osophers. 

But here again we may be permitted to ask what is the 
practical example left for our learning by the prince of medi- 
aeval Schoolmen ? And, curiously enough, we find an effective 
answer to this question in his treatment of the aforesaid Neo- 
Platonic and Psuedo- Aristotelian book De Causis. No work 
of Dutch critics or German philosophers has better cause to 
be regarded with suspicion. And, as we have seen, the au- 
. thorities of Paris, being presumably fearful of heretical ^'iifil- 
trations/' took the prudent precaution of committing the vol- 
ume to the flames. 

St. Thomas, on the contrary, adopted a very different 
course. Instead of seeking the rude ordeal of material flames 
and faggots, he passed its pages through the refining fire of 
his discriminating criticism, and happily some gold of truth 
was separated and saved in the purifying process. For it was 
in those pages of the Arab Platonist that he found that preg* 
nant principle of Proclus which furnishes the key to his own 
theory of knowledge, and gives us, let me add, the true basis 
of rational apologetics. '' Whatever is received, is received 
after the manner of that which receiveth it.'' This principle, 
which is used by St. Thomas to explain how material things 
are known by the mind in an intellectual and immaterial man- 
ner, admits of many applications in other fields of religion 
and philosophy. We are reminded of it when St. Augustine 
tells us how, in the mystery of the Divine Incarnation, the 
Word which was the food of angels became milk for the little 
ones; or when St. John Chrysostom says that because we are 
made of soul and body, the spiritual grace of the Sacraments 
is given to us under visible symbols. 

On the same principle, again, we may explain many of the 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



1909.] Scholastic Criticism and Apologetics 757 

minor variations in theological thought or language in divers 
places or ages or local schools and systems. The same Cath- 
olic theology is found living in the simple hearts of Irish 
peasants or the subtle minds of theologians, it is found alike 
in literal Antioch and mystic Alexandria, amid the golden elo- 
quence of the Fathers and the dialectic metaphysics of the 
mediaeval Schoolmen — and everywhere recipitur ad modunt re^ 
cipientis. But, what is more to my present purpose, the same 
principle is of primary importance to the apologist who would 
offer to those outside the Church a defence of the faith that 
is in him. 

The reception of the argument is conditioned by the precious 
knowledge, beliefs, habits of thought in those who are to re- 
ceive it. And if it is to have any effect, it must be adapted 
to the special needs and special limitations of those to whom 
it is addressed. We may see a practical application of this 
principle in the opening^ pages of the Summa Contra Gentiles^ 
where St. Thomas dwells on the different methods to be adopted 
in dealing with erring Christians, with Jews, and with pagans, 
or unbelievers. With the first, one may fairly adduce argu- 
ments from the New Testament. With the Jew we may appeal 
to the Old Testament only. But it would be idle to do this 
with those who do not accept the authority of either Testa- 
ment. And what he says here of particular arguments may 
be illustrated by the character of his own writings regarded as 
a whole. There is much in them that comes from the early 
Fathers, much that is an abiding possession for Christians in 
after ages. Yet it may be safely said that the Angelic Doctor 
was pre-eminently a man of his own time who understood its 
spirit and knew its dangers, and his teaching is, for that reason, 
specially adapted to meet the needs of those whom he was 
addressing. 

It will be well for modern apologists if they can follow his 
practice, and at the same time hold fast to his principles. It 
is, at any rate, some solace to those who are wearied and be- 
wildered by the wild words of unbelieving critics or uncritical 
champions of orthodoxy to breathe for a while the serener air 
of other days and learn the lessons left by the masters of 
scholastic criticism and apologetics. 



Digitized by 



Google 



II 



SIX OXFORD THINKERS.* 

BY WILFRID WILBERFORCE. 

|tIE very title of this book is attractive. Oxford 
is essentially the home of thought as well as of 
lost causes ; and when an observant writer, what- 
ever be his own views, sets out to depict the 
inner lives of half a dozen Oxford men who 
have made a conspicuous mark in the world, his book is cer- 
tain to attract a large circle of readers. 

Of the six careers here discussed, those of Newman, Church, 
and Anthony Froude, are naturally the most interesting to the 
ordinary reader. Walter Pater lies in a region too remote from 
the generality of everyday people to gain anything beyond a 
very limited audience; Lord Morley, as an observer and thinker, 
has been eclipsed to all except studious and doctrinaire poli- 
ticians, by his character as a contemporary statesman ; while 
the place of Gibbon, as an historian and man of thought, bas 
become either too well defined or too devoid ot interest (ac- 
cording to the temper of each individual reader) to command 
any enthusiastic reception. 

It may reasonably be doubted whether the Decline and 
Fall is now read by eight men out of any given twelve, and 
it is probably quite safe to assert that still fewer readers are 
familiar with Pater's Renaissance Studies^ his Sebastian Storck, 
his Marius the Epicurean^ or with Lord Morley 's book On Com^ 
promise. 

Morley's name, indeed, will, in all probability, go down to 
our children as that of the biographer of Gladstone, though it 
may occur to some of them to wonder how it was that a writer 
of such nebulous views in religion should have been chosen, 
out of all possible biographers, to depict the career of a states- 
man whose mind was of a tone so essentially ecclesiastical. 
Perhaps, on the other hand, this seemingly incongruous choice 

""Six Oxford Thirnktrs: Edward Gibbon. John Htnry Newwam, R, W. Church, /««<' 
Anthony Froudo, IValtor Pattr, Lord MorUy of Blachbum. By Algernon Cecil, M. A., Ozoo.i 
of the Inner Temple, Barrister*at-Law. London : John Murray, Albemarle Street. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Six Oxford Thinkers 759 

emphasizes^ as much as anything could, the change which had 
passed over Gladstone when his political ideals had thrown him 
into partnership with the militant Nonconformists, and had sev* 
ered him forever from the associations of his early manhood. 
It was difficult to recognize in the disestablisher of the Irish 
Church of 1869, in the friend of Chamberlain and Schnadhorst 
of i880y and in the chosen leader of Nonconformists of 1892, 
the ''rising hope/' as Macaulay called him ''of • . . stern, 
unbending Tories/' who made his name as the author of 
Church and State. 

It may well be doubted whether, at the end of his long 
career, he cared to be reminded of the ideals which had en- 
gaged his mind in the late thirties. That he remained to the 
last hour of his life a man of conscience and integrity, I for 
one have no doubt, but the radical change in his ideals and 
the drastic disorientation of his political views, were at least 
enough to make the choice of Morley as his biographer less 
incongruous than it would otherwise have been. A curious 
story is told of Gladstone's Oxford life. He had taken his 
Degree, and had paid the customary farewell visit to the Head 
of his College. The next visitor was talking to the Head about 
him. " Gladstone is a clever man, we shall hear of him again/' 
" Yes " ; replied the Head, '* he's a clever man and will make 
his mark. But his conscience is so subtle that the time will 
come when people will say that be has no conscience at all." 
That Head had far-seeing eyes. 

It could scarcely be expected that the author of Six Ox^ 
ford Thinkers should have anything new to say about Newman. 
But the fascination of his career is so great that its treatment 
by each successive writer is a welcome feature in a book. And 
there is one observation, not in its ultimate meaning new, which 
I do not remember to have seen stated in that precise form 
before. The remark is quoted from Dean Church, and its tenor 
is that the touchstone of Newman's teaching, and the remote 
cause of his conversion, was the distinction which he perceived 
between the ideal "gentleman," as the world accepts that word, 
and the follower of Christ. "For it is," says Mr. Cecil, "as 
Newman perceives, of the essence of a gentleman — one who is 
that and no more — to be great in small situations and deficient 
in the supreme moments of life, Pilate and Gallio and Agrippa 
were gentlemen, and they missed their opportunities because 



Digitized by 



Google 



76o Six Oxford Thinkers [Sept., 

they were just that and nothing beyond it. Like their modern 
antitypes, they hated scenes, emotion, extravagance ; they feared 
ridicule and disliked responsibility; they avoided clashing opin- 
ions and colliding sentiments/' 

There is truth in this, of course, and yet there would seem 
to be something wanting too. It is easy enough to choose out 
men like Pilate and the others, but, to go further afield, what 
about the scores and hundreds of soldiers and sailors who, while 
fulfilling the worldly definition of gentlemen, and while devoid 
of any supernatural qualities, are nevertheless emphatically not 
" deficient in the supreme moments of life," but display in such 
moments the most exalted self-abnegation and courage? At 
the time of the Crimean War, it was observed that the men 
who most distinguished themselves by their cheerful endurance 
of hardships amid the terrors of the Russian winter, were just 
those who, in London Society, had seemed to be fit for noth« 
ing but to lounge in ladies' drawing-rooms and display their 
taste in neckties and gloves. And it does not seem unreason- 
able to say that a man possessing nothing higher than mere 
worldly and natural honor, might be willing to risk his life and 
perhaps his reputation, rether than stain his ermine as a Judge, 
or disgrace his country as a soldier. 

To maintain as much as this, however, is by no means to 
disagree with Mr. Cecil's statement that Newman ''saw that 
the gentleman, considered as such, worships only (if he wor- 
ships at all) 'a deduction of his reason or a creation of his 
fancy,' while the other [kind] is from the first in the presence 
of a Person, to Whom all thoughts and actions are referred for 
praise or blame ^'; or that this antithesis was ''the key that 
unlocked the lowest door of the treasure-house in his deep- 
seated being." And he adds that Newman "could not find in 
a society, which, in its efforts after Christianity, never lost sight 
of culture and social order, anything that would remind him 
of the shepherdless multitudes that went out to seek Christ on 
the hills of Galilee, nor in the trimming diplomacy of an Es- 
tablished Church, which sails always a little behind the times, 
an ark strong enough to protect the Kingdom of God against 
the all- invading flood of liberal thought." One does not ex- 
actly see what there need be in the pursuit of Christian virtue 
inconsistent with an attention to " social order," but the " trim- 
ming diplomacy" of the Protestant Establishment was un- 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Six Oxford Thinkers 761 

doubtedly one among the many proofs that showed Newman 
that it was no part of God's Church. 

The very fact that Oxford as a rule pursues the quiet, un- 
ruffled ways of peaceful Conservatism, fits it admirably to be 
the starting-place of great Movements. A man with new ideas 
has no difficulty in making himself heard, however little he 
may be welcomed by the powers that be. Like one who 
raises his voice in the silence of a cloister, he is necessarily 
listened to, and at the moment that the Oxford Movement be- 
gan, young men were looking about for something new. The 
genius of Newman and Hurrell Froude supplied them with as 
much as they bad bargained for, and more besides. 

Mr. Cecil gives us an agreeable account of the well-known 
tale — the story that one never tires of hearing. He gives us 
also a somewhat close analysis of the Via Media^ with which 
I need not trouble my readers, seeing that, in Newman's own 
words, it was ''absolutely pulverized," by the words of St, 
Augustine, ''Securus judicat orbis terrarum.'' 

The Essay on Development^ also analyzed by Mr. Cecil, be- 
sides its intrinsic value, displays Newman in the intensely in- 
teresting light of the creator, in ecclesiastical history, of the 
theory by which Darwin made his name in physiology. When 
he wrote this book, Newman had for some time been on his 
deathbed so far as Anglicanism was concerned. In its final 
stages, his Anglican life diminished in inverse ratio with the 
growth of the book, and in its unfinished state the Develop* 
ment had given the coup de grdce^ in more than one sense of 
the word, to its author. Then came the never-to-be-forgotten 
9th of October, ''a wild and tempestuous day, when the hea- 
vens seemed broken with weeping,'' and Father Dominic came 
to receive him into the Church. On the very same day, as 
symbolists like to remember, R^nan left St. Sulpice. 

One of Mr. Cecil's most interesting sections in his criticism 
of Newman is that which deals with his style. He is probably 
right in saying that it is in the Apologia that its full beauty 
and exquisite refinement appear most conspicuously. Its whole 
workmanship is the purest gold, not polished and glaring, but 
soothing and mellow. Upon this priceless surface appear from 
time to time, without labor and simply because the subject 
calls for it, those gorg^eous ornaments which in the literary jar- 
gon of to-day are called ''purple passages.'' These are noth* 



Digitized by 



Google 



76a Six Oxford Thinkers [Sept.. 

ing else than the clusters of jewels, the lavish bunches of gems 
that set off the golden groundwork. The indefinable grace 
which he could throw upon the most everyday topics, in sen- 
tences composed of the simplest words, has never been equalled. 
It gives a distinction to what he writes which makes any ordi- 
narily good style seem banal, commonplace, and even vulgar. 
Dealing as he does with serious and often very deep subjects, 
Newman has a unique method of bringing his thoughts before 
his readers with unsurpassed clearness and in language of abso- 
lute simplicity. The unstudied music of his periods tunes one's 
soul to a pitch that makes the writing of any one else harsh, 
ungainly, and irritating. Even in the noiseless blade of his mor- 
dant irony one can detect the pity, which he cannot altogether 
hide, for its victim. In the outpouring of his soul one can 
hear the sort of anguished wail which some recollecticn has 
wrung from his heart. But all is simple, natural, yet restrained. 
He never speaks in superlatives. One might almost add that 
he never uses the conventional expressions that custom has 
staled. His words are sometimes so nearly colloquial, even on 
the gravest subjects, that in the case of any other writer they 
would run the risk of being thought unbecoming and flippant. 
With Newman they are simply convincing and redolent of dig- 
nity. Then there is that special characteristic of his writing 
that one may call the cumulative feature. He wishes to im- 
press us with some idea, and this he does with clauses and 
epithets of ever growing power, one strengthening and rein- 
forcing the other, like strokes of a hammer, each one an argu- 
ment in itself, until, at the end of the sentence, one pauses^ 
overwhelmed, in breathless acquiescence. Of what other writer 
can this be said ? What other has this compelling, subduing, 
conquering force? 

An instance of each of Newman's literary methods could 
be culled from the Apologia alone. That book indeed is the 
one that taught his fellow-countrymen more about him than 
any other. It let them into the secrets of his mind. It ap- 
pealed to their generosity, and the appeal was not made in 
vain. The very fact that his judges were his own countrymen 
gave Newman special confidence: '^ I consider, indeed, Eng* 
lishmen,'' he wrote, ** the most suspicious and touchy of man- 
kind; I think them unreasonable and unjust in their seasons 
of excitement; but I had rather be an Englishman (as in fact 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Six Oxford Thinkers 763 

I am), thaa belong to any other race under heaven. They are 
as generous as they are hasty and burly, and their repentance 
for their injustice is greater than their sin." 

The people of England answered the appeal by listening 
without prejudice to what Newman had to say, and then they 
agreed to forgive him for becoming a Catholic — albeit his con- 
version had dealt a blow to the Church of England ''from 
which/' writes Disraeli, ''it is still reeling." 

But the Apologia accomplished something beyond this. Not 
merely did it bring the heart of England to Newman's side, 
but it affected the very language. Writers became uncon- 
sciously colored by it. There was no willing imitation. In- 
deed, of all classical writers, Newman is the least easy to imi- 
tate ; but just as he expressed his meaning to a hair's breadth, 
colloquially and in phrases easily grasped, so in turn the dic- 
tion of writers who differed toto cosh from Newman, became 
chastened and refined by the pure and limpid stream of his 
matchless style. 

Mr. Cecil very beautifully observes: "Devoid of all show 
and glitter, simplex munditiis^ always very plain and neat, it 
made its way because it was the vehicle of thoughts that much 
needed to be spoken ; and only afterwards did men realize that 
the vehicle itself was beautiful. The proof of its excellence, 
if proof be required, is that it is impossible to caricature it. 
Newman was so great that he was able to model it on its an- 
tithesis. As in his teaching he set up the simplicity of the 
primitive Church against the splendor of the Roman Empire 
so in his style he chose the household words of common talk 
to rebuke the classical tongue of Gibbon and Johnson. Rolling 
sentences and majestic periods bad to give way before the fil- 
tered language of the street and the market-place. His limpid 
English was the purest current in the stream of imaginative 
writing which Carlyle and Ruskin had set in motion, and which, 
as has lately been suggested, served in the end to con/use the 
true functions of poetry and prose. Newman at least never 
fell into fault, never framed turgid or tumultuous sentences. 
Like Bunyan he was a conservative liberator, and freed the 
language from a certain stiffness of diction, whilst preset ving 
for it an easy dignity. Nor is it any accident that these two 
writers of the purest English were deeply religious men." 

Iq summing up his beautiful essay, Mr. Cecil makes a re- 



Digitized by 



Google 



764 Six Oxford Thinkers [Sept., 

mark that» to a Catholic, is full of pathos. The only possible 
comment it can evoke is a prayer that one who sees so much 
may one day see more. ''For those who agree with his main 
contention/' he writes, ** — that a pursuit of the highest attain- 
able life is the only guarantee of a right judgment in all mat- 
ters of spiritual importance, that as he was fond of saying 
* nan in dialectica complacuit Dio salvunt facere populum suum ' 
— and who yet cannot follow him into the Church of Rome, the 
difficulty remains (and it is a very great one) that a man of 
such purity, goodness, and self-devotion should have fallen into 
error in the very maturity of his powers." 

The transition from Cardinal Newman to Dean Church is 
easy and natural. To begin with, he was one of Newman's 
most intimate friends, and though the two did not meet for 
nineteen years after the celebrated day when Church called at 
the Observatory, *'to see the last" of his great and revered 
leader, the long separation was accidental and circumstantial 
rather than deliberate or planned. 

Richard William Church was born in the year of Waterloo, 
and was therefore Newman's junior by fourteen years. In 
1833 he went up to Wadham College, Oxford, where his life 
was at first a very solitary one, as is so often the case with 
freshmen, especially with those who have not come from a 
public school. He gained the great distinction of a Double 
First in 1836, in which year he also began to attend the ser- 
mons which Newman was then delivering at St. Mary's. The 
famous one entitled ''Ventures of Faith" seems to have made a 
great impression upon him. ''It seemed to him, as he looked 
back, to have been in some sort the turning point of his life," 
remarks his biographer. Miss Mary Church. Two years later 
he stood as a candidate for an Oriel Fellowship, at that time the 
greatest prize in the university. One of the unsuccessful can- 
didates was Mark Pattison, afterwards rector of Lincoln College. 
The pleasantest passage in that most melancholy Autobiography 
of Pattison is his observation on Church's candidature. 

"I presume," he writes, '^that Church was Newman's can- 
didate, though so accomplished a scholar as the Dean need 
not have required any party push. I have always looked upon 
Church as the type of the Oriel Fellow; Richard Michell said 
at the time of the election: 'There is such a moral beauty 
about Church, that they could not help taking him!'" 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Six Oxford Thinkers 765 

** Moral beauty '' seems to express exactly what one feels 
about Church, and it fits in so completely with the love that 
Newman bore him. At the time of his election to the Fellow- 
shipi the Oxford Movement was passing out of its early stage. 
It was not till the following year, however, that Newman's 
confidence in his ecclesiastical position began to be shaken. 
As yet no ''ghost'' had appeared, and Church's daily com- 
panionship with him laid the foundations of the friendship 
which was to last unimpaired to the end. One sentence in a 
letter written during the long vacation of 1840, throws light 
upon the intimacy between them. "Really," he writes, *Mf 
folks knew how pleasant Oxford is in the long vacation I 
think they would spoil the quiet by coming up here. . . . 
Newman, Rogers, and myself compose the residents at Oriel 
now, and we have it very cczily to ourselves." 

But this was only the calm that preceded the storm. Seven 
months later saw the publication of the famous Tract No. 90. 
The history of its conception has often been told. Its object 
was to calm the minds of those who were disturbed by the 
Thirty-Nine Articles — the Forty Stripes save one — that each 
member of the university had still to sign as a test of ortho- 
doxy. The new Tract was intended to show that the Articles 
were capable of a Catholic interpretation even on those points 
on which they had seemed to be most hostile to Catholic 
teaching. I am, of course, using the word Catholic in the 
sense in which the Tractarians understood it. It is curious to 
hear that Newman was quite unprepared for the storm which 
greeted the publication of the Tract, as were several of his 
friends, including Henry Wilberforce and Keble. Ward, on 
the other hand, anticipated trouble, and the event proved that 
he was more than justified. To men who had trusted to the 
Articles as a potent weapon in their warfare against the Trac- 
tarians, it must have been unspeakably galling and exasperat- 
ing to find this very weapon wrested from their grasp and 
turned to the service of their foes. 

Golightly, the great opponent of the Tractarian School, set 
on foot the agitation. He began by giving himself heart and 
soul to spreading the Tract both in Oxford and in the country. 
The number of copies that he ordered was so great that the 
publisher had difficulty in supplying the demand. Within a 
few weeks the sale of this shilling pannphlet iKas such that 



Digitized by 



Google 



766 Six Oxford Thinkers [Sept., 

it enabled its anonymous author to purchase a goodly library. 
Golightly's next step was to get one of the Heads on his side. 
Through the Warden of Wadham, a memorial was drawn up, 
signed by the four senior Tutors, Churton, Wilson, Griffiths, 
and Tait, afterwards Archbishop of Canterbury. This letter 
called upon the editor of the Tracts to disclose the name of 
the author of No. 90. The said editor politely acknowledged 
the receipt of the letter, and there the matter rested. But 
this was a mere preliminary canter. The next step was a 
meeting of the Heads. But they had other business apart from 
the Tract, and this, combined with the curious fact that many 
had not even read Tract 90, led to the meeting separating 
without any hostile step being taken. Another meeting fol- 
lowed, and this time the question was referred to a committee. 
Meanwhile Newman set to work on an explanation of his 
Tract, taking care to let the Heads of Colleges know that he 
was doing so. Without waiting for its appearance, however, 
they passed a resolution that ''No. 90 suggested a mode of 
interpreting the Articles which evaded rather than explained 
them — which defeated the object, and was inconsistent with 
the observance of the statutes." This resolution was carried 
by a majority. It resulted in Newman writing to the Vice- 
Chancellor, acknowledging the authorship of the Tract. Of 
course there was no sort of obligation for him to do even so 
much as this. The meeting of the Heads was an informal 
aflair, involving no official act of the university and carrying 
no weight except such as was involved in the individual opin- 
ion of each of its members. Newman's acknowledgment called 
forth a very kind letter from his Bishop, asking him not to 
discuss the Articles any more in the Tracts. 

It was not long before No. 90 produced its effect upon 
Church's academical position. His thorough agreement with 
the principle of the Tract made him, as an honest man, ask 
himself whether he could still retain his Tutorship. In a 
manly, straightforward letter to Provost Hawkins, he avowed 
his opinion and offered to resign his important post. The 
Provost offered him time to consider the matter, but Church 
replied at once that he could not honestly accept the sugges- 
tion, knowing as he did that his view on the question was un- 
changeable. It is quite clear that both the Provost and Church 
were acting in a way most creditable to themselves. Hawkins 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] S/x Oxford Thinkers 767 

was doing his best to retain Church in the Tutorship, even going 
so far as to o£fer to submit the case, as a hypothetical one, to 
the Vice-Chancellori while Church, on his side saw clearly, and 
acted on the knowledge, that he could not lecture to under- 
graduates in a sense hostile to the view of those who had ap- 
pointed him, nor could he lecture inconsistently with bis cvin 
view of truth. A dilemma such as this could have but one 
conclusion, and Church ceased to be a Tutor. 

But events more momentous were at hand. A crisis was 
becoming daily more and more imminent. A sermon delivered 
by Fusey from the university pulpit, was condemned, and its 
author suspended from preaching for a period of two years. 
This was in the summer of 1843, while in the following Sep- 
tember Newman resigned St. Mary's, and retired to his hermi- 
tage at Littlemore. In 1844, the Proctors were Mr. Guille- 
mard, of Trinity College, and Church himself. The duties of 
the Proctors were at that time even more arduous, and their 
powers more extended than they are at the present day. 
They are still responsible for the quiet of the streets and 
places of public resort, but only so far as the undergraduates 
are concerned. In 1844 they also had the control of the 
police, and Church's account of his experience on first taking 
office is worth quoting: '' . . . One goes at night to a 
vaulted room underground, as dreary looking and grim as a 
melodrama would require — table with pen and ink, feeble 
lamp, and sundry cutlasses disposed round the walls. One 
sits down in great dignity at a table, and then the police are 
marched in by batches of six. They enter like robbers or 
conspirators in a play, all belted and great- coated, looking 
fierce. 'All quiet last night?' passes your lips. All their 
heads begin to bob, as if they were hung on springs, and with- 
out any stopping, for three or four minutes, all their voices 
commence repeating: 'All quiet, sir,' as fast as they can; and 
when they have lost their breath, exeunt all bobbing. The first 
time I was present I fairly lost my gravity, as I should think 
most of my predecessors must have done before me" (Ex- 
tract from a letter to his rhother). 

It was destined that Church's Proctorship should be signal- 
ized by an act that has made it forever memorable. In July 
1844, William George Ward had published his celebrated book 
on The Ideal of a Christian Church. If Tract 90 had caused a 



Digitized by 



Google 



768 S/x Oxford Thinkers [Sept., 

storm, it was little wonder that Ward's book shoald create a 
veritable tempest. The Tract only professed to explain that 
the Articles admitted of a Catholic interpretaticr. The Ideal 
went far beyond this, for its author boldly declared that, in 
signing the Thirty-Nine Articles, he claimed the right to hold 
*' the whole cycle of Roman Doctrine ! '' Language such as 
this could scarcely be passed over, and in the following De- 
cember the Hebdomadal Board determined to submit to Con- 
vocation three resolutions: (i) The condemnation of Ward's 
book; (2) The deprivation of his Degrees; (3) The investment 
of the Vice-Chancellor with a new power, enabling him to 
require any member of the university to prove his orthodoxy 
by subscribing to the Articles in the sense in which they were 
bath first published and were now imposed. The third reso- 
lution was so unpopular, that it had to be withdrawn, and in its 
place was substituted a resolution condemning Newman's Tract- 
Convocation met on the 13th of February, 1845. Seldom 
if ever had Oxford witnessed a scene of greater excitement. 
The streets were thronged with graduates who had come up 
from the country to vote on one side or the other. The space 
outside the Sheldonian Theater, in which Convocation was to 
meet, was blocked by an anxious and curious crowd. Inside 
the theater every seat and every passage was crammed with 
those whose position gave them the right to be present. The 
day was one of bitter cold. Sleet and snow, borne on the 
wings of a north wind, poured in showers throughout the day, 
but it failed to subdue the courage of the undergraduates and 
others whose interest in the day's proceedings had been wrought 
up to the highest pitch. This patient crowd could hear the 
dull roar of groanings and cheers which came from the inter- 
ior of. the theater, and no doubt intensified their interest. 

The scene within was exciting in the extreme. Ward had 
had permission to address the assembly in English, and his 
vigorous words stirred his hearers to an enthusiasm of opposi- 
tion or assent. As all the world knows, he was condemned. 
Then came the proposition to censure Newman's Tract This, 
too, would undoubtedly have been carried, but for the famous 
intervention of the two Proctors. At the critical moment Guil- 
lemard and Church rose, and the former, the Senior Proctor, 
pronounced in stentorian tones the fateful words: ''Nobis 
Procuratoribus non placet.'' 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Six Oxford Thinkers 769 

Shouts resounded through the building of ^'Placet*' and 
''Non." "The Dean of Chichester threw himself out of his 
doctor's chair and shook both Proctors violently by the hand." 

''Without any formal dissolution, indeed without a word 
being spoken, as if such an interposition (as the Proctors' 
veto) stopped all business, the Vice-Chancellor tucked up his 
gown, and hurried down the steps that led from the throne 
into the arena, and hurried out of the theater; and in five 
minutes the whole scene of action was cleared.*' * 

Whether from conviction or from a love of the unusual and 
a feeling that a persecuted man had been saved, the under- 
graduates assembled outside the theater raised loud cheers for 
the Proctors — a most uncommon event, for these functionaries 
are generally regarded by undergraduates as their natural foes. 
The Vice- Chancellor met with a reception correspondingly 
hostile, being hissed and even snowballed by the crowd. 
Ward, of course, after his courageous defence, met with a re- 
gular ovation, the cheers which greeted his exit from the 
theater changing, however, in a moment to loud laughter, when 
he slipped and fell headlong in the snow, his books and papers 
being scattered in all directions. 

Church's comment upon the memorable events is found in a 
letter to his mother: "The only thing to relieve the day has 
been the extreme satisfaction I had in helping to veto the third 
iniquitous measure against Newman. It was worth while being 
Prpctor to have had the unmixed pleasure of doing this." 

To the last hour of his life Newman never forgot this ser- 
vice, and it is probable that its memory increased the affection 
that he felt for Church. More than a quarter of a century 
after the event, he dedicated to his friend the new edition of 
his University Sermons, in words of tenderness that must have 
gone to Church's heart. " For you," he writes, " were one of 
those dear friends resident in Oxiord — who in those trying five 
years, from 1841 to 1845, iQ the course of which this volume 
was given to the world, did so much to comfort and uphold 
me by their patient, tender kindness, and their zealous services 
in my behalf. \ cannot forget how, in the February of 1841, 
you suffered me day after day to open to you my anxieties 
and plans, as events successively elicited them; and much less 
can I lose the memory of your great act of friendship, as well 

^Edii^UTih RivUw. April, X845, p. 394. 
VOL. LXXXIX.— 49 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



770 Six Oxford Thinkers [Sept., 

as of justice aad courage^ in the February of 1845, your Proc- 
tor^s year, when you, with another now departed, shielded me 
from the 'civium ardor prava jubentium ^ by the interposition 
of a prerogative belonging to your academical position." 

Again and again, as years went on, Newman and Church 
were each other's guests. It seemed quite a natural thing for 
the great Oratorian, in his occasional visits to London, to make 
the deanery of St. Paul's his headquarters, where he was an 
ever welcome visitor. And Church was more than once the 
guest of his old friend at Edgbaston. 

Mr. Cecil discusses Church in the threefold character of 
scholar, statesman, and saint. His scholarship was certainly 
sound and accurate. Greek and Latin of course he knew well, 
as is sufficiently proved by his Double First From his boy- 
hood he had been familiar with Italian, and Mr. Cecil goes so 
far as to say that he must have been in his time the leading 
Dante scholar in England. Of course he was, alas I to the end 
of his life a thorough Anglican, but it is admirable to observe 
how courageously and steadfastly he maintains the truth that 
spiritual greatness transcends all merely human and earthly 
excellence. Mr. Cecil gives three instances of this. Speaking 
of Dante, Church uses this true and beautiful language: 

''No one who could understand and do homage to great- 
ness in man, ever drew the line so strongly between greatness 
and goodness, and so unhesitatingly placed the hero of this 
world only — placed him in all his magnificence, honored with 
no timid or dissembling reverence — at the distance of worlds 
below the place of the lowest saint.'* 

And again, speaking of Newton, and extolling his work and 
genius in the loftiest terms, he immediately warns his readers 
that "St. Paul in one order of greatness — the greatness of 
goodness — was immeasurably superior to Newton in another/' 

Statesmanship seems a somewhat strange quality to predi- 
cate of a man who was first a parish clergyman and afterwards 
a Dean of St. Paul's, but Mr. Cecil gives some justification for 
the use of the word. As he readily admits, capacity must 
here stand for performance, but he claims for Church "all the 
qualities which are required of one who has to make wide and 
far reaching decisions. Best of all he had patience, the virtue 
which Pitt marked down as the most essential for a statesman." 
It was Church, too, who was one of the founders of the Guar^ 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909. J Six Oxford Thinkers 771 

dian newspaper, which so long represented all that was best in 
Anglicanism. His high character was admitted on all hands. 
Unhappily he remained what he had been at Oxford, what 
Newman had made him, a Tractarian. To a Catholic, indeed, 
it must ever remain a mystery, insoluble and sad, that a man 
should see so much that is true, and remain blind to its logi- 
cal sequence. The only explanation is that Faith is a gift, 
and that God has vouchsafed it to some and not to others. 
One of the earliest of Newman's sermons that Church heard 
was, as we have seen, the celebrated one on ''Ventures of 
Faith.*' The impression it made on Church was never forgot- 
ten by him. ''In a memorable sermon,'' he tells us, "the 
vivid impression of which still haunts the recollection of some 
who heard it, Newman gave warning to his friends and to 
those whom his influence; touched, that no child's play lay 
before them; that they were making without knowing it the 
'ventures of Faith.'" To him the New Testament was a very 
severe, as well as a hopeful book, and nothing was to his mind 
more certain than that the punishment of unforgiven sin would 
be "something infinitely more awful than we had faculties to 
conceive of." And as he walks through the streets of London 
and observes the thousands of human beings, each with his 
own individuality, he longs to know something of their history, 
their good and bad qualities, and he asks himself why it is 
that "of all the countless faces which he meets as he walks 
down the Strand, the enormous majority are failures— deflec- 
tions from the type of beauty possible to them." 

That he had imbibed a great deal of Catholic spirit, is 
clear. Tractarianism, indeed, as we know, was founded on 
antiquity, and Church, a typical Tractarian, had more than a 
touch of ancient austerity. Mr. Cecil indeed puts this down to 
" a strong vein of Puritan severity," and he holds that he was 
"the most English, perhaps, of all the Tractarians." I think 
it can hardly be doubted that " a vein of Puritanif m " was 
present in all or nearly all the Tractarians, due, probably, to 
the fact that their very piety was inherited from their Evan- 
gelical forefathers. 

Protestant as he was, he was conscious of the sense of be- 
witchment which Rome casts over most men of education/ not 
merely the enchantment of its beauty and the glamour of its 
associations, but the intangible conviction that it was holy 



Digitized by 



Google 



772 S/x Oxford Thinkers [Sept., 

ground. "I had/' he says/' the feeling that it is the one city 
in the world, besides Jerusalenip on which we know God's eye 
is fixed, and that He has some purpose or other about it— -one 
can hardly tell whether for g6od or evil/' The final words 
rather spoil the effect of the rest. 

In August, 1890, Cardinal Newman died. The news affected 
Church with a peculiar sorrow. ''By those near the Dean/' 
writes Miss Mary Church, " it was always recognized that 
Newman was a name apart, the symbol, as it were, of a debt 
too great and a friendship too intimate and complex, to bear 
being lightly spoken of, or subjected to the ordinary measures 
of praise or blame.*' 

The younger man survived his revered friend four months. 
In December, 1890, Dean Church's beautiful life came to its 
peaceful end. By his own wish he was buried at Whatley, in 
Somerset, where he had labored for many years as a clergy- 
man, before his appointment to the Deanery of St. Paul's. 
According to his special desire, six beautiful lines from the 
Dies Ir<B were engraved upon his tomb: 

Rex tremends majestatis 

Qui salvandos salvas gratis, 

Salva me Fons pietatis. 
Querens me sedisti lassus, 
Redemisti crucem passus, 

Tantus labor non sit cassus. 

In saying a few words about James Anthony Froude, I shall 
scarcely be expected to discuss the two subjects with which 
his name is principally associated, namely, his History of 
England and his books on Carlyle. Both subjects are too 
large to be treated at the close of an article such as this. 
What one chiefly feels about Froude is a wistful regret that he 
should have drifted so far from his ancient moorings. As the 
younger brother of Hurrell, he was thrown, in his boyhoed, 
into the very heart of the Tractarian Movement, but it is prob- 
able that the very fact of his being Hurrell's brother, tended 
to make him revolt from that brother's teaching. 

It is said, too, that his early youth was soured by injudi- 
cious treatment. He lived in an age when a kind of Spartan 
hardness was thought to be the best method of training boys. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Six Oxford Thinkers 773 

Nowadays, perhaps, we have gone to the other extreme. Any- 
howy Froude's boyhood was motherless, and seems to have 
been unhappy. After spending three years at Westminster 
School, he went to Oxford, his Undergraduate years being 
haunted by the dread that he was destined to fall a victim to 
the family scourge of consumption. Under the influence of 
Newman and Hurrell, he necessarily imbibed Tractarian views, 
and in due time he took Deacon's Orders in the Church of 
England, and gained a Fellowship at Exeter College. This en- 
viable position he owed in part to Sewell, who regarded him as 
a promising High Churchman. Hawkins, with more penetra- 
tion, had refused him a certificate for the Fellowship, and 
when Froude published his Nemesis of Faith^ Sewell was 
correspondingly furious. The book raised such a commotion 
at Oxford, that its author withdrew from the university. He 
traveled in Ireland and there came across an Evangelical 
clergyman who was a gentleman and a man of conscience. 
That he combined these qualities with a hatred of Tractrian- 
ism, seems to have startled Froude. It is, perhaps, scarcely 
wonderful that to one whose religious beliefs rested upon this 
or that man, instead of being rooted in the infallible and irre- 
fragable authority of a Divine Teacher, the fact of two equally 
earnest and devout men holding widely divergent views should 
come as a shock to his convictions. This seems to be the 
meaning of those striking words that Froude puts into the 
mouth of his hero in his Nemesis of Faith : ** The most 
perilous crisis of our lives is when we first realize that two 
men may be as sincere, as earnest, as faithful, as uncompro- 
mising, and yet hold opinions as far asunder as the poles.*' 

The keystone of that remarkable sentence and the explana- 
tion of the '^ crisis'' which it indicates, are contained in that 
one word *' opinions." Quot homines, tot sententia. What 
Froude needed was the anchorage of infallibility, without which 
the ship of the soul will drift upon the sea of opinion, rudder- 
less and hopeless. When he had lost faith in Newman's teach- 
ing, he began to study Carlyle, and we read in Mr. Cecil's 
book, that he felt "obliged to look for himself at what men 
said, instead of simply accepting all because they said it." 
For himself he solved the problem by becoming a free-thinking 
Protestant, and a staunch defender of the Reformation. That 
he retained a wistful remembrance of what had existed in the 



Digitized by 



Google 



774 Six Oxford Thinkers [Sept., 

ages of Faith, is sufficiently shown by a passage in his History 
which is worth quoting, if only to give a specimen of his 
beautiful style. He is speaking of the epoch which followed 
the mediaeval times. ''The paths trodden by the footsteps of 
ages were broken up; old things were passing away, and the 
faith and the life of ten centuries were dissolving like a dream. 
Chivalry was dying; the abbey and the castle were soon to- 
gether to crumble into ruins; and all the lorms, desires, beliefs, 
convictions of the old world were passing away, never to re- 
turn. A new continent had risen up beyond the Western sea. 
In the fabric of habit, which they had so laboriously built for 
themselves, mankind were to remain no longer. And now it 
is all gone— like an unsubstantial pageant faded; and between 
us and the old English there lies a gulf of mystery which the 
prose of the historian will never adequately bridge. They 
cannot come to us, and our imagination can but feebly pene- 
trate to them. Only among the aisles of the cathedral, only 
as we gaze upon their silent figures sleeping on their tombs, 
some faint conceptions float before us of what these men were 
when they were alive; and perhaps in the sound of church 
bells, that peculiar creation of mediaeval age which falls upon 
the ear like the echo of a vanished world.'' Something of the 
pathos of Froude's life was seen in his expressive face. The 
strong, manly features, deeply furrowed in his old age, the 
far-away look of his eyes, the sad, almost tragic expression 
of his whole countenance, were enough to disarm enmity and 
to soften criticism. 

Death found him in his home on the rock*bound Devon 
coast that he loved so well. Two death-bed sayings of his are 
recorded. "Shall not the Judge of all the earth do right?'' 
is one of these, and it seems to bear out what Mr. Cecil de- 
clares was his prevailing principle: "Though He slay me, yet 
will I trust in Him." And in some of his last conscious mo- 
ments he repeated those words of Shakespeare; 

"To-morrow, and to-morrow, and to-morrow, 
Creeps in this petty pace from day to day 
To the last syllable of recorded time. 
And all our yesterdays have lighted fools 
The way to dusty death. Out, out, brief candle ! 
Life's but a walking shadow, a poor player 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Six Oxford Thinkers 775 

That struts and frets his hour upon the stage 
And then is heard no more/' 

His mission to South Africa makes one feel that as a states- 
man he might very probably have made a great name, and the 
business of politics would have withdrawn his mind from thc- 
ology, in which he took the wrong side. As it was, he was 
handicapped in his essay in politics by the fact that, as a man 
of letters and not of action, he was more theoretical than prac- 
tical. He will probably go down to history as one of the purest 
writers of English of his time. His style is to the last degree 
captivating. 

The happiest time of his life was most likely that which he 
spent as Professor of History at Oxford. While holding this 
post, he occupied the agreeable house at Cherwell Edge, which, 
since his death, has become the Convent of the Holy Child. 
What used to be Fronde's study is now the nuns' chapel, silent 
and peaceful, with the Blessed Sacrament on the Altar. This 
surely is one of the most striking contrasts that time has ever 
brought about! 

Mr. Cecil has given us a book full of interest and sugges- 
tion. In many places he carries us with him, and in points 
where we differ from him we can still appreciate his point of 
view. He is never little or trivial, while his bent of mind is 
such as to make his Catholic reader hope that the day will 
yet come when he will enter a brighter light, and become one 
of the Household of the Faith. 



Digitized by 



Google 



THE CHURCH AND THE WORKINGMAN. 

BY JOHN A. RYAN. 

" Even though it be only a dream, I like to indulge the thought that some day the 
Church of the poor will lead them out of bondage, and prove to the unbelieving world 
its divine mission " (From a private letter of a^well-known Catholic social reformer). 

^H£ viewpoint indicated in this sentence is suffi- 
ciently frequent among Catholics to justify a 
brief reconsideration of a somewhat hackneyed 
topic. Among the Protestant churches that dis- 
play any considerable amount of vitality, the 
tendency is rapidly growing toward a conception that identifies 
religion with humanitarianism, while the majority of non-church- 
goers who admit that religion has any useful function probably 
share the same conception. In such an environment it is not 
a matter of surprise that many Catholics should exaggerate 
the social mission of the Church. 

The Church is not merely nor mainly a social reform or- 
ganization, nor is it her primary mission to reorganize society, 
or to realize the Kingdom of God upon earth. Her primary 
sphere is the individual soul, her primary object to save souls, 
that is, to fit them for the Kingdom of God in heaven. Man's 
true life, the life of the soul, consists in supernatural union with 
God, which has its beginning during the brief period of his 
earthly life, but which is to be completed in the eternal exist- 
ence to come afterward. Compared with this immortal life, 
such temporary goods as wealth, liberty, education, or fame, 
are utterly insignificant. To make these or any other earthly 
considerations the supreme aim would be as foolish as to con- 
tiaue the activities and amusements of childhood after one had 
reached maturity. It would be to cling to the accidental and 
disregard the essential. Scoffers and sceptics may contemn this 
view as ''other-worldly," but they cannot deny that it is the 
only logical and sane position for men who accept the Christian 
teaching on life, death, and immortality. Were the Church to 
treat this present life as anything more than a means to the 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] THE Church and the Workingman 777 

end| which is immortal life, it would be false to its mission. 
It might deserve great praise as a philanthropic association, 
but it would have forfeited all right to the name of Christian 
Church, 

Having thus reasserted the obvious truth that the Church's 
function is the regeneration and improvement of the individual 
soul with a view to the life beyond, let us inquire how far this 
includes social teaching or social activity^ Since the soul can- 
not live righteously except through right conduct, the Cbutch 
must teach and enforce the principles of right conduct. Kow 
a very large and very important part of conduct falls under 
the heads of charity and justice. Hence we find that from the 
beginning the Church propagated these virtues both by word 
and by action. As regards charity, she taught the brotherhood 
of man, and strove to make it real through organizations and 
institutions. In the early centuries of the Christian era, the 
bishops and priests maintained a parochial system of poor re- 
lief to which they gave as much active direction and care as 
to any of their purely religious functions. In the Middle Ages 
the Church promoted and supported the monastic system with 
its innumerable institutions for the relief of all forms of dis- 
tress. Under her direction and active support to-day, religious 
communities maintain hospitals for the sick, and homes for all 
kinds of dependents. To take but one instance, the Church 
in America collects money for orphan asylums as regularly as 
for many of her purely religious objects. As regards justice, 
the Church has always taught the doctrine of individual dig- 
nity, rights, and sacredness, and proclaimed that all men are 
essentially equal. Through this teaching the lot of the slave 
was humanized, and the institution itself gradually disappeared ; 
serfdom was made bearable, and became in time transformed 
into a status in which the tiller of the soil enjoyed security of 
tenure, protection against the exactions of the lord, and a rec- 
ognized place in the social organism. Owing to her doctrine 
that labor was honorable and was the universal condition and 
law of life, the working classes gradually acquired that measure 
of self-respect and of power which enabled them to set up and 
maintain for centuries the industrial democracy that prevailed 
in the mediaeval towns. Her uniform teaching that the earth 
was given by God to all the children of men, and that the in- 
dividual proprietor was only a steward of his possessions, was 



Digitized by 



Google. 



778 THE Church and the Workingman [Sept., 

preached and emphasized by the Fathers in language that has 
brought upon them the charge of communism. The theological 
principle that the starving man who has no other resource may 
seize what is necessary from the goods of his neighbor, is 
merely one particular conclusion from this general doctrine. 
She also taught that every commodity, including labor, bad a 
certain just or fair price from which men ought not to depart, 
and that the laborer, like the member of every other social 
class, had a right to a decent living in accordance with the 
standards of the group to which he belonged. During the cen- 
turies preceding the rise of modem capitalism, when the money* 
lender was the greatest oppressor of the poor, she forbade the 
taking of interest. Ambng her works in the interest of social 
justice and social welfare, two only will be mentioned here: 
the achievements of her monks in promoting agriculture and 
settled life in the midst of the anarchic conditions that followed 
the downfall of the Roman Empire, and her encouragement of 
the Guilds, those splendid organizations which secured for their 
members a greater measure of welfare relatively to the possi- 
bilities of the time than any other industrial system that has 
ever existed. 

To the general proposition that the Church is obliged to 
inculcate the principles of charity and justice both by precept 
and by action, all intelligent persons, whether Catholic or not, 
will subscribe. Opinions will differ only as to the extent to 
which she ought to go in this direction. Let us consider first 
the problem of her function as teacher. 

The Church cannot be expected to adopt or advocate any 
particular programme, either partial or comprehensive, of social 
reconstruction or social reform. This is as far out of her pro* 
vince as is the advocacy of definite methods of political oi^ani* 
zation, agriculture, manufactures, or finance. Direct participa- 
tion in matters of this nature would absorb energies that ought 
to be devoted to her religious and moral work, and would 
greatly lessen her influence over the minds and hearts of men. 
Her attitude toward specific measures of social reform can only 
be that of judge and guide. When necessity warrants it, she 
pronounces upon their moral character, condemning them if 
they are bad, encouraging them if they are good. They come 
within her province only in so far as they involve the principles 
of morality. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Church and the Workingman 779 

With regard to the moral aspect of existing social and in- 
dustrial conditions, the Church does lay down sufficiently de- 
finite principles. They are almost all contained in the Encycli- 
caly '^ On the Condition of Labor/' issued by Pope Leo XIIL 
Passing over his declarations on society, the family, Socialism, 
the State, woman labor, child labor,' organization, and arbitra- 
tion, let us emphasize his pronouncement that the laborer has 
a moral claim to a wage that will support himself and his 
family in reasonable and frugal comfort. Beside this principle 
let us pat the traditional Catholic teaching concerning mono- 
polies, the just price of goods, and fair profits. If these doc- 
trines were enforced throughout the industrial world the social 
problem would soon be within measurable distance of a satis- 
factory solution. If all workingmen received living-wages in 
humane conditions of employment, and if .all capital obtained 
only moderate and reasonable profits, the serious elements of 
the problem remaining would soon solve themselves. 

But the social principles here referred to are all very gen- 
eral in character. They are of very little practical use unless 
they are made specific and applied in detail to concrete in- 
dustrial relations. Does the Church satisfactorily perform this 
task? Well, it is a task that falls upon the bishops and the 
priests rather than upon the central authority at Rome. For 
example, the teaching of Pope Leo about a living-wage, child 
labor, woman labor, oppressive hours of work, etc., can be 
properly applied to any region only by the local clergy, who 
are acquainted with the precise circumstances, and whose duty 
it is to convert general principles into specific regulations. In 
this connection another extract from the private letter cited 
above may be found interesting and suggestive : '^ If the same 
fate is not to overcome us that has overtaken — and justly — 
the Church in Europe, the Catholic Church here will have to 
see that it cannot commend itself to the masses of the people 
by begging Dives to be more lavish of his crumbs to Lazarus, 
or by moral inculcations to employers to deal with their em- 
^ ployees in a more Christian manner.'* There is some exag- 

geration in both clauses of this sentence. The defection of 
large numbers of the people from the Church in certain coun- 
tries of Europe cannot be ascribed to any single cause. Some 
^ of its causes antedate the beginnings of the modern social ques- 

^ tion; others are not social or industrial at all; and still others 



Digitized by 



Google 



78o THE Church and the Workingman [Sept., 

would have prodaced a large measure of- damaging results de- 
spite the most intelligent and most active efforts of the clergy. 
When due allowance has been made for all these factors it 
must still be admitted that the losses in question would have 
been very much smaller, possibly would have been compara- 
tively easy to restore, had the clergy, bishops and priests, 
realized the significance, extent, and vitality of modern de- 
mocracy, economic and political, and if they had done their 
best to permeate it with the Christian principles .of social 
justice. On the other hand, where, as in Germany and Bel- 
gium, the clergy have made serious efforts to apply these 
principles both by teaching and action the movement of anti- 
clericalism has made comparatively little headway. At any 
rate, the better position of the Church and the superior vital- 
ity of religion among the people in these two countries, can 
be traced quite clearly to the more enlightened attitude of their 
clergy toward the social problem. 

The second clause •f the quotation given above underesti- 
mates, by implication at least, the value of charity as a remedy 
for industrial abuses. It cannot, indeed, be too strongly nor 
too frequently insisted that charity is not a substitute for 
justice; on the other hand, any solution of the social problem 
based solely upon conceptions of justice, and not wrought out 
and continued in the spirit of charity, would be cold, lifeless, 
and in all probability of short duration. If men endeavor to 
treat each other merely as equals, ignoring their relation as 
brothers, they cannot long maintain pure and adequate notions 
of justice, nor apply the principles of justice fully and fairly to 
all individuals. The personal and the human element will be 
wanting. Were employers and employees deliberately and 
sincerely to attempt to base all their economic relations upon 
Christian charity, upon the Golden Rule, they would necessa- 
rily and automatically place these relations upon a basis of 
justice. For true and adequate charity includes justice, but 
justice does not include charity. However, the charity that the 
writer of the letter condemns is neither true nor adequate; it 
neither includes justice, nor is of any value in the present 
situation. 

Let it be at once admitted that the clergy of America have 
done comparatively little to apply the social teachings of the 
Church, or in particular of the Encyclical ''On the Condition 



! 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Church and the Workingman 781 

of Labor,'' to our industrial relations. The bishops who have 
made any pronouncements in the matter could probably be 
counted on the fingers of one hand, while the priests who 
have done so are not more numerous proportionally. But 
there are good reasons for this condition of things. The 
moral aspects of. modern industry are extremely difficult to 
evaluate correctly; its physical aspects and relations are very 
complicated and not at all easy of comprehension; and the 
social problem has only in recent times begun to become 
acute. Add to these circumstances the fact that the Ameri- 
can clergy have for the most part been very busy organizing 
parishes, building churches and schools, and providing the ma- 
terial equipment of religion generally, and you have a toler- 
ably sufficient explanation of their failure to study the social 
problem, and expound the social teaching of the Church. 

The same conditions account for the comparative inactivity 
of the American clergy in the matter of social works. Up to 
the present their efforts have been confined to the mainte- 
nance of homes for defectives and dependents, and the encour- 
agement of charitable societies. In some of the countries of 
Europe, particularly Germany and Belgium, and more recently 
France and Italy, bishops and priests have engaged more or 
less directly in a great variety of projects for the betterment 
of social conditions, such as, co*operative societies, rural banks, 
workingmen's gardens, etc. Obviously activities of this kind 
are not the primary duty of the clergy, but are undertaken 
merely as means to the religious and moral improvement of 
the people. The extent to which any priest or bishop ought 
to engage in them is a matter of local expediency. So far as 
general principles are concerned, a priest could with as much 
propriety assist and direct building societies, co-operative asso- 
ciations of all sorts, settlement houses, consumer's leagues, 
child labor associations, and a great variety of other social re- 
form activities, as he now assists and directs orphan asylums, 
parochial schools, St. Vincent de Paul societieSi or temperance 
societies. None of these is a purely religious institution; all 
of them may be made effective aids to Christian life and Chris- 
tian faith. 

The necessity for both social teaching and social works by 
our American clergy is very great and very urgent. To this 
extent the sentence quoted in the body of this paper is not 



Digitized by 



Google 



782 THE Church and the workingman [Sept. 

an exaggeration. There is a very real danger that large masses 
of our workingmen will, before many years have gone by, have 
accepted unchristian views concerning social and industrial in* 
stitutionsy and will have come to look upon the Church as in- 
different to human rights and careful only about the rights of 
property. Let any one who doubts this statement take the 
trouble to get the confidence and the opinions of a consider- 
able number of intelligent Catholic trade unionists, and to 
become regular readers of one or two representative labor 
journals. We are now discussing things as they are, not 
things as we should like to see them, nor yet things as they 
were fifteen or twenty-five years ago. Persons who are unable 
to see the possibility of an estrangement, such as has occurred 
in Europe, between the people and the clergy in America, 
forget that modern democracy is twofold, political and eco- 
nomic, and that the latter form has become much the more 
important. By economic democracy is meant the movement 
toward a more general and more equitable distribution of eco- 
nomic power and goods and opportunities. At present this 
economic democracy shows, even in our country, a strong ten* 
dency to become secular if not anti-Christian. Here again we 
are dealing with the actual facts of to-day. Consequently, 
unless the clei^y shall be able and willing to understand, ap- 
preciate, and sympathetically direct the aspirations of economic 
democracy, it will inevitably become more and more unchris- 
tian, and pervert all too rapidly a larger and larger proportion 
of our Catholic population. 



Digitized by 



Google 




DID THE CHURCH BURN JOAN OF ARC? 

BY J. H. LE BRETON GIRDLESTONE. 

WHENEVER a bishop in France invites the faithful 
to his Cathedral to celebrate a festival in honor 
of Joan of Arc, there is certain to be found in 
some local paper a protest against the cynicism 
of the Church who claims to-day as her glorious 
ornament the victim whom she formerly excommunicated. 
Posters may be read on the walls ''against the clergy taking 
possession of this glorious memory, against this shameless ex- 
ploiting of her by the clerical party/' In the towns in which 
there is a statue of the Maid, the Masonic lodge lays at its 
feet a crown, like that recently seen at Paris which bore the 
inscription : ** To Joan of Arc, heretic and lapsed, abandoned 
by the Royal party^ burnt by the Church.*' But the indigna- 
tion of the free-thinkers attains its height when it sees the 
Church claiming Joan so far even as to place her upon the 
altar. '' What I *' they say, '' was not Joan of Arc proclaimed 
by the judges at Rouen heretic, lapsed, sorceress; did she not 
die in revolt, cursing the priests, her executioners ? " A free- 
thinking author has even gone so far as to say, '* Joan's anti- 
clerical sentiments point her out as the fitting patroness of 
free thought." M. Delpech, senator, formerly president of the 
council of the Masonic order, in a pamphlet of which 50,000 
copies were printed, tries to prove the impudence of that re- 
ligion which, after having martyred the Maid, exploits her 
prestige for its own purposes with the populace. 

All these accusations are unjust It is true that the judges 
who condemned Joan were, for the most part, priests and that 
their president was the Bishop of Beauvais^ the infamous 
Cauchon. But the priests do not represent the Catholic reli- 
gion. When the priests are bad, in revolt against the Church, 
when they act without its authority and usurp a jurisdiction 
which it refuses them, they are Its enemies and it is not re- 
sponsible for their misdeeds. One might as well say that the 
Reformation was the work of the Church and had the Church's 



Digitized by 



Google 



784 DID THE CHURCH BURN JOAN OF ARC? [Sept., 

approval, because its author was a Catholic monk! In this 
article we hope to show : 

(i) That the Rouen judges represented the University of 
Paris with its personal enmity against the Liberator of France; 

(2) That they in no way represented the Church, but 
acted indeed rather in revolt against it; 

(3) That the Church has nothing to reproach herself with 
in regard to the heroine's martyrdom, 

I.— IT WAS THE UNIVERSITY WHICH ORDERED JOAN'S DEATH. 

Dr. Richer wrote in 1628: "The University of Paris threw 
the first stone of scandal at the Maid/' Now that all the 
documents are better known, we understand why the Sorbonne 
threw its stones with such fury. Let us see first of all the 
reasons which made it so act, the causes of the furious hate 
which it showed against the innocent girL 

A, Why the University Hated Joan. — For a quarter of a 
century the forces of life and the resources of France had been 
in the hands of England; she it was who distributed the 
bishoprics, canonries, rich prebends, benefices, and all the lucra- 
tive situations. For this reason the University had turned to 
the English king, flattering him with shameful servility. It 
had condemned and discrowned the little King of Bourges, too 
poor to satisfy the ambition* and greed of its professors. It 
had placed its teaching and intellectual authority, which was 
considerable, at the service of England. The University was 
the life and soul of the Burgundian party, which was sold to 
England, and had even partly turned public opinion towards 
England. Its great work had been the treaty of Troyes, which 
it had prepared and inspired, seven of its doctors having drawn 
it up. Henry of Lancaster, the victor of Agincourt, was rec- 
ognized as King of France in that treaty, and Charles the 
Dauphin was declared, with all of his lineage, ineligible for the 
crown ; France became an English colony. Suddenly Joan ap- 
pears. She declares that right is on the Dauphin's side, and that 
consequently God is with him. She claims to have been sent 
from heaven to place him on the throne of his ancestors, and 
to drive away Henry Plantagenet. 

Joan is in direct opposition to the University. If she finds 
credit in the country, and if she supports her affirmation by 
victories, the Alma Mater is stricken to the heart, convinced 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] DID THE CHURCH BURN JOAN OF ARC? 785 

of treachery and impostare, and the whole building of miser- 
able lies falls to the ground. And, as a matter of fact, the 
Maid triumphs, each of her successes, at Orleans, at Patay, at 
Troyes, being a wound to the proud University which it will 
not forgive. The doctors represent the English party, while 
Joan is the incarnation of patriotism. She ruins their prestige, 
while the consecration at Rheims destroys their great work, the 
treaty of Troyes. Here we have the real reason why these 
wretched men hated her with a deadly hate. 

Cauchon was the man who played the chief part in the 
crime committed at Rouen. Now Cauchon was one of the 
most illustrious sons of the University of Paris, and in addi- 
tion to the reasons which his colleagues had for hating the 
Maid, he had certain others peculiar to himself. First pupil, 
then doctor, and finally, in I403» rector of the University of 
Paris, he joined the party of Caboche in 1412 and 1413. 
Proscribed as traitor, malefactor, and murderer by the Armag- 
nacs, he took refuge with the Duke of Burgundy, John the 
Fearless. He returned to Paris with his party, and was one 
of the instigators of the treaty of Troyes in 1420. In reward 
for his services, England and the University jointly nominated 
him to the bishopric of Beauvais, 4th of September, 1420. 

But, lo and behold I Joan of Arc turns the tide of fortune 
against the English. Cauchon is, of course, irritated and 
furious, like all his University colleagues, but soon a personal 
reason envenoms his hate. Beauvais declares for the King of 
France, and in 1429 drives out its unworthy bishop. This is 
the result of Joan's success, consequently Cauchon attributes 
his disgrace to her, and vows deadly vengeance against her. 

B, The University Wreaks Vengeance upon Joan — While wait- 
ing for the moment when it can take vengeance upon Joan, the 
University falls savagely upon a poor little peasant girl, Pier- 
ronne or P^rinaik of Brittany, who, after having faithfully 
served Joan of Arc, had the misfortune to fall into the hands 
of the Parisian doctors. She had the audacity to declare that 
the Maid had been sent by God, and for this crime was burnt 
alive at Paris on the 3d of September, 1430, as her mistress' 
accomplice. All honor to the poor little Breton girl, too little 
known nowadays, Joan of Arc's humble servant, who bore 
witness before her by shedding her blood for the truth and for 
her country. 

V.3L. Lxxxix.— 50 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



786 DID THE CHURCH BURN JOAN OF ARCt [Sept., 

Biit if the University showed such savage fury towards a 
gtrl who was bat the shadow of Joan, what would it not do 
when it got the prey itself into its power? 

On the 24th of May, at Compi^gne, Joan fell into the hands 
of John of Luxembourg, lieutenant-general of the Duke of 
Burgundy^ ally of the English. The news arrived at Paris on 
the 25 thy and the University immediately organized public re- 
joicings. On the next day it wrote a letter to the Duke of 
Burgundy asking htm to give Joan to the English. It charged 
Cauchoni one of its former rectors, and at that time Bishop of 
Beauvats, to write another letter to John of Luxembourg claim- 
ing the captive. '' Send her here to the Inquisition/' it said. 
It was impatient at Luxembourg's delay and urged him on. At 
length he gave way, selling his prisoner to the English in 
November, 1430. 

But the University was not yet satisfied; it wanted to get 
Joan into its clutches. On the 21st of November it wrote to 
Cauchon telling him to have Joan brought to Paris, and it 
wrote to the same effect to the King of England. The re- 
quest was not granted; but still it did not let go of its 
victim, it followed her to Rouen. As soon as the trial com- 
menced, it sent to Rouen six of its doctors, the best qualified 
to maintain and, if need be, excite the zeal of the Bishop 
of Beauvais, and force the English to condemn the inno- 
cent girl. Three of them had been, like Cauchon, rectors of 
the University. They are the inspiring soul of the hideous 
drama, stimulating the English against the accused girl, and 
watching to see that she does not escape their vengeance. 
That this is so is shown by the fact that Cauchon and the English 
shelter themselves always, whenever they make a decision, be- 
hind the authority of the Alma Mater. These doctors of the 
University are, together with the Bishop of Beauvais, the per- 
sons really responsible for the heroine's death, and they should 
be known. 

Thomas Courcelles was rector of the Sorbonne from the loth 
of October to the i6th of December, 1430. He had urged Lux- 
embourg to give Joan up to the English, and at Rouen he was 
one of her bitterest enemies. When the tribunal discussed the 
question whether she should be put to the torture or not« only 
three monsters voted for the torture and he was one of them. 

William Erard, also a rector of the University. He was 
made rector for the first time in 142 1, and had been^ named 

L/igitized by VjOOQ^C 



1909.] Did the Church Burn Joan of Arc? 787 

again to that post four or five times subsequently. He was 
sold to the Eiglish, body and soul. In the famous sitting held 
in the Rouen cemetery, on the 24th of May, six days before 
Joan's deathf he dared to address her as heretic, schismatic, 
sorceress, and monster in a harangue which was equally hypo* 
critical and impudent. 

John Beaupere was rector of the University of Paris in 1412. 
He was one of those who drew up the treaty of Troyes, and 
was a devoted supporter of the English against France. 

Nicholas Midi, At Rouen it was he who was entrusted 
with the duty of persuading Joan to own herself guilty by ex- 
hortations known as caritatives. In spite of his hypocritical 
eloquencci he failed, but in a final caritative he uttered the 
last insult against the angelic child at the moment when she 
was about to die. 

Nicholas Loiseleur^ doctor of the University, an ardent friend 
of Eagland, was very hostile to Joan. He died suddenly soon 
afterwards. 

John d'Estivet^ Canon of Beauvais, appointed by Cauchon 
to be Joan's accuser. He was a violent and vulgar being, and 
prevented Joan from receiving Communion, and even from go- 
ing into the prison chapel. 

In spite of the activity of its delegates, the trial was not 
sufficiently expeditious for the University, and it sought to 
hasten the end. An occasion offered. The Council of Basle 
was to open on the 3d of March, and the Sorbonne nominated 
five delegates charged to represent it there. But in spite of 
their desire to be present at the opening of the solemn as- 
sembly, the delegates decided to go first to Rouen to stir the 
judges out of their lethargy. They arrived on the 3d of March. 
For a week they deliberated with their six colleagues on the 
answers of the accused girl, these answers being so orthodox, 
so wise, and so luminous that they feared she would be ac- 
quitted. They decided that it would not be safe to let her 
appear before the fifty judges who had presided at the sittings 
until then, and finally they managed to arrange that she should 
only be questioned before seven or eight carefully chosen wit* 
nesses. 

At the same time they drew up twelve articles, a false sum- 
mary of the pretended confessions of Joan. They took this 
document to Paris, and laid it before the learned Corporation 
which qualified the prisoner's answers, i. e., marked againsl.aT(> 



788 Did the Church Burn Joan of Arc? [Sept., 

each of them an atrocious judgment describing Joan as cheat, 
traitress, sorceress, heretic, monster thirsting for blood. The 
five delegates returned to Rouen bringing these qualifications, 
and also two letters, one for the English king and the other 
for Cauchon, adjuring these two persons to hasten the sen- 
tence of death. These various documents and the urgency of 
the doctors of Paris removed all the judges' scruples and de- 
cided the condemnation. 

It is thus abundantly clear that the murderers of Joan of 
Arc were the doctors of the University of Paris. Without 
them the English would never have burnt her, but merely have 
kept her prisoner. 

II.— THE UNIVERSITY IN NO WAY REPRESENTED THE CHURCH. 

We have just seen that Joan's judges represented the Uni- 
versity. From this it might be concluded that the Catholic 
religion was guilty, for the Sorbonne was composed of distin- 
guished priests, it was one of the most important organizations 
in the Church and a center of light and learning. But to draw 
such a conclusion would be most false. The celebrated Univer- 
sity shows itself in a most unfavorable light from the patriotic 
point of view, when it was turned against its country by the am- 
bition and greed of its professors. And from the religious point 
of view its position is equally bad. Its attitude towards the 
Church, whether outside the trial or during the trial itself, is 
such that instead of being its instrument it is rather its ad- 
versary. The University of Paris acted throughout the whole 
affair as the enemy both of its country and its Church. 

Let us consider three proofs of this. 

A. The Judges of Joan Were in Revolt Against tfu Church. 
— They could only represent the Church if, firstly, in their or- 
dinary conduct they were priests truly Catholic, orthodox, sub- 
missive in heart and soul to the Holy See; in a word, in per- 
fect communion with the Church in ideas and sentiments ; and 
if, secondly, in the trial itself, they acted in virtue of a certain 
jurisdiction and according to canonical rules. But if, on the 
contrary, it is proved that these priests were half in schism, 
half in revolt, against the Church which they wished to upset 
and revolutionize, it would be as unjust to see in tbem its 
representatives, as it would be to regard Luther, the Catholic 
monk, as its mouthpiece. We arrive at the same conclusion 
if we show that, so far from having exercised a regular jurisi 



1 909. J Did the Church Burn Joan of arc? 789 

diction, they usurped their power and wished to withdraw Joan 
of Arc from the Church's real tribunal. 

The University of Paris had long been known for its schis- 
matic tendencies. One of its most famous doctors, Peter Plaoul, 
said to Charles VI., that the diocese of Rome was like the dio- 
cese of Paris, and that consequently the Pope was as any other 
bishop ; that his executive power was inferior to the king's 
authority ; that the Pope could err, and that the Church alone, 
assembled in council, was infallible. At Constance three hun- 
dred doctors of the University of Paris brought about a deci- 
sion to the effect that the Council was superior to the Sover- 
eign Pontiff. This was more than a usurpation by the epis- 
copate of the authority of the Holy See; it was an outbreak 
oi clerical democracy against the Pope's monarchical authority, 
because it was twenty thousand clerics arming themselves with 
the right to vote, and seeking to alter the Church's constitution. 

The Rouen judges, who were Sorbonne doctors, shared 
these heterodox sentiments. They sought to overturn the order 
established by Christ by substituting their authority for that 
of the Roman Pontiff. Many of these men professed the same 
errors later on at Basle, going to the Council held there that 
same year. 

This synod of Basle was schismatic not merely, as is some- 
times said, after its transference to Ferrara in 1437, but from 
its very opening, as the Pope himself declared. In its earliest 
sittings its members, and among them the doctors of Paris, 
decreed without any right or shadow of reason that they con- 
stituted an ecumenical council, though they had present only 
a dozen bishops or mitered abbots 1 When they learnt that the 
Pope had dissolved the assembly, they refused to separate, 
declaring themselves the representatives of the Universal Church 
and superior to the Pope. The revolt became more and more 
acute, until at length it became grotesque. The members sum- 
moned Eugenius IV. to appear before them to answer their 
charges, and as he did not come they deposed him, excom- 
municated him, and delivered him over to the secular arm to 
be burnt like Joan of Arc. Finally they elected in his place 
the antipope, Felix V. 

The University of Paris was the moving spirit of this coun- 
cil. It was thoroughly imbued with the schismatic spirit, and 
its delegates had already brought this same spirit to Joan's 
trial. Can it be said that such men represented the Church 

Digitized by VjOOQ IC 



jgo Did the Church Burn Joan of Arc t [Sept., 

•gainst which they conspired ? Many of our Rouen acquaint- 
ances were among the rebels of Basle. Thomas Courcelles, 
who had just brought about the Maid's condemnation, was the 
oracle of the council, and the soul of the opposition to the 
Holy See; he is known as the author of the most audacious 
of the decrees, Deere torum Basiliensium prcecipuus fabricator. 
Quicherat calls him the father of Gallican liberty. Can it be 
said that this man, the enemy of the Pope, the mainstay of 
the antipope, the precursor (as he has been called) of Luther 
and Calvin, was a true representative of the Church which he 
betrayed and rent in pieces ? William Erard was also one of 
the fathers of Basle, and one of the most violent adversaries 
of the Holy See. Is he the Church ? Nicholas Midi did not 
go to Basle, but he corresponded with the rebels from Paris 
and encouraged them, defying Rome from Paris. Is he the 
Church? John Beaup^re and Nicholas Loiseleur were among 
the most obstinate supporters of Basle; are they the Church? 
At Rouen, it is true, they had not yet openly declared them- 
selves schismatics, but they were so already, not merely in 
heart, but also (as we shall see) in deed and in word. They 
were the enemies both of their Church and their country. 

A very simple argument will show us how unjust it is to 
identify them with the Church. They were Frenchmen, but 
no one would say that they represented France, or that France 
in their person condemned Joan of Arc. Why not? Because 
they had repudiated France, and gone over to the foreigner's 
service. In like manner, although they were priests, no one 
could say that they represented the Catholic and Roman 
Church, for they had denied it and gone over, morally if not 
officially, to schism and to serve the cause of schism. 

B. In the Trial Itself the Judges Had no Jurisdiction. — 
Doubtless the bishops and inquisitors were judges of the faith ; 
so far as that goes Cauchon and his assessors had a right to 
summon Joan to their tribunal to examine her sentiments and 
her deeds, but only with the greatest justice and the greatest 
kindliness. Soon, however, an event of the highest importance 
took place which completely annulled this jurisdiction. It was 
an uncontested principle that, in matters of faith, when an ac- 
cused person made an appeal to the Pope, immediately and 
ipso facto^ all other jurisdiction but that of the Roman Pontiff 
was abrogated, and the person who had made the appeal be- 
longed to no jurisdiction but that of the Holy See, to which 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Did the Church Burn Joan of arc? 791 

he had the right to be taken. What took place in such cir- 
cumstances was the same thing that happened when, under 
the Roman Empire, a man had said: ''I am a Roman citizen 
and I appeal to Caesar''; by the mere fact of his appeal he 
escaped from the power of the governors and had to be taken 
to Rome. 

Now Joan of Arc was one day inspired to say : '^ I appeal 
to the Pope''; and by virtue of this appeal she ceased to be 
in the jurisdiction of Cauchon and the other Rouen judges. 
This circumstance was brought up later at the rehabilitation 
trial in 1455, and it was then declared that it made the trial 
of 143 1 null and void. 

But even in 143 1 Joan's judges were conscious of the ca- 
nonical illegality and the usurpation of jurisdiction of which 
they had made themselves guilty, and the answer which they 
made her, far from excusing them, shows them yet further 
separated from the Church and yet more unworthy to repre- 
sent her. They told her that the Pope was too far away, and 
that moreover the Church was not with the Pope but ''with 
the clerks and people who have cognizance in this matter/' 
f. ^., with the gentlemen of the University of Paris. They 
act upon a schismatic principle, and that knowingly, for they 
allow that they are acting, not merely without the Pope's au- 
thority but in spite of his authority, for they disdain it. They 
are furious at Joan's appeal, which upsets all their plans; hav- 
ing entered upon the way of evil they determine to continue 
in it to the very end. The tribunal constituted by them is ir* 
regular, incompetent, without authority, in rebellion against the 
Church. Once again, on these further grounds, they are not 
her representatives. It was not the Catholic religion which 
condemned and burnt Joan of Arc; it was a latrocinium^ an 
assembly of brigands in schism from the Church. 

In every age these evil priests have existed, but they have 
never been regarded as representing the Church they dishon- 
ored. Judas was a priest, a bishop even, since he was an 
Apostle, but does he represent the Apostolic College and the 
Church ? The great heresiarchs were almost all monks, priests, 
or bishops^-Arius, Macedonius, Eutyches, Nestorius, Donatus, 
Luther, Calvin — but do they represent the Church ? Well, then^ 
no more do Cauchon, Courcelles, Loiseleur, and d'Estivet rep- 
resent the Church. These men do not belong to the Church, 
for by their acts they put themselves outside it. 

uigitized by VjOOQIC 



792 Dm THE Church Burn Joan of arc? [Sept., 

C. The Testimony of Joan. — In this matter of the responsi- 
bility for Joan's martyrdom, there is one testimony which is 
not sufficiently examined, and that is the testimony of Joan 
herself. She knew as well as any one who was responsible for 
her death; she saw better than any one who were her real 
enemies. Did she herself, then, attribute her death to the Catho- 
lic Church? 

The enemies of the Church think sometimes that here they 
can score a victory. Not only, say they, did Joan regard the 
Church as guilty of her death, but she even cursed it^ dying 
in revolt against this sect of bloodthirsty bishops and priests. 
Before dying she drew herself up to her full height and thus 
addressed the Church in the person of its bishop: ''Bishop, 
it is through you that I die/' But there is a confusion here 
which Joan's own words easily dispel. So far from having ac- 
cused the Church, she seems to have taken trouble to exoner- 
ate it before posterity. So far from dying in a state of rebel- 
lion, she solemnly affirmed with her last breath her love and 
respect for religion; her love and respect, I say, but not her 
pardon. She never thought of pardoning the Church, for she 
never imagined the Church had done her harm, and three 
facts prove this. 

The first fact is her appeal to the Pope. She clearly did 
not regard the Rouen tribunal as representative of the Church, 
since she claimed a higher jurisdiction; and she showed that 
unmistakably when she said to Cauchon: *'You who pretend 
to be my judge." She considers the Pope to be her true judge 
and her true father. Rome is in her eyes the supreme au- 
thority, the sovereign justice; in a word, the Church is the 
mother to whom she confidently appeals. 

The second fact lies in those well known words, spoken by 
her just before her death, and which clearly explain her 
thought. When she cried: '^ Bishop, it is through you that I 
die/' she immediately added these words which give us her 
exact meaning: "If you had put me into the prisons of the 
Church," she said, ''and entrusted me to ecclesiastical guar- 
dians, instead of handing me over to the secular power, noth- 
ing of this would have happened." Could she have expressed 
her thought more clearly? ''If the Church had judged me," 
she practically says, "it would not have condemned me. But 
the Church has not dealt with me, for you have not allowed 
my appeal. I have not been entrusted to ecclesiastical guar- 

.,y,u..d by Google 



1909.] Did the ChurCh Burn Joan of Arc? 793 

dians. It is you, Bishop, who have torn me from my mother 
the Church and given me over to the secular power, i. e,^ to 
the lay power which is putting me to death/' Joan, so far 
from accusing the Church and cursing it, longs after it, and 
complains that she has not appeared before its tribunal. 

Now for the third fact: it shows us bow infinitely far away 
she was from the sentiments of rebellion attributed to her by 
the Church's foes. When the infamous Nicholas Midi said to 
her: ''You are a Saracen"; Joan started with anger at the 
insult to her faith and her heart, crying : '' I am baptized ; I 
am a good Christian and I shall die a good Christian." Again 
on the 17th of March she made this magnificent profession of 
faith: ''I love the Church and desire to support it with all 
my power and to die for the Christian faith." Is that the cry 
of one in revolt? On the contrary, it is the testament of a 
saint who dies in the faith and love of the Catholic, Apos- 
tolic, and Roman Church. If Joan were with us now, and 
could read those pages in which the French Freemasons con- 
gratulate her on her rebellion against the Church, and propose 
to take her as the patroness of free thought, she would raise 
herself in indignation against them, as she formerly did against 
Nicholas Midi, and say to them: "I am no more free-thinker 
than Saracen; I am still the good Christian whom your pre- 
cursors burnt." For the false judges of Rouen had very much 
more in common with the unbelievers of to-day than with the 
Church of their own time. 

Artists may attempt to mislead public opinion by painting 
beside the stake where Joan was burnt the purple cassock of 
a French bishop and the scarlet of an English cardinal, two 
men who represent nothing but the basest human passions, but 
they will never be able to paint the white robe of a pope 
stained with her blood, and he alone represents the spotless 
honor of the Church. 

III. THE CHURCH HAS NOTHING TO REPROACH HERSELF WITH IN 
REGARD TO JOAN'S DEATH. 

But if the Church had nothing to do with the Maid's mar« 
tyrdom, can we say that it always did what it could for the 
poor child ? If we examine the question with an open mind 
we shall see that it could not have acted otherwise. Let us 
consider its attitude towards Joan before, during, and after the 
trial at Rouen. 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



794 DID THE Church burn Joan of Arc? LScpt, 

A. Before the Trial. — The Gtiurch is accused of being op- 
posed to all private inspiration, which it regards as contrary to 
its authority; it claims to have a monopoly of revelation from 
heaven and Protestantism has disputed this claim in maintain- 
ing the soul's right to hold direct intercourse with God. Joan 
claimed that right, it is said, and was therefore regarded by 
the Church as a rebel. As a matter of fact, the Church only 
rejects private inspiration when it is the offspring of pride and 
is in contradiction to the authentic revelation of God, because 
God cannot contradict Himself. When the revelation comes 
clearly from heaven, so far from opposing it, the Church ap- 
proves of it, and teaches that the soul which has had the 
honor of receiving it ought to believe in and obey it. And 
this is what it did for Joan. The prelates and priests who 
examined the young girl at Poitiers recognized the supernatural 
character of her 'Voices,'' and told the king that he could trust 
her. We possess several of their reports, and they are models 
of prudence. The Church could do no more; it was with 
sympathy and tenderness that it saw the child clearly sent by 
heaven to France. It walked with her, blessed her, and sus- 
tained her. 

B. During the Trial. — We have already seen that the ban- 
dits who usurped her authority did not represent the Church. 
Happily not all the Rouen judges were miserable wretches like 
Cauchon, Courcelles, and Loiseleur, but unfortunately the evil 
ones prevailed by virtue of their audacity, while the good who 
declared for the Maid were driven out, persecuted, or reduced 
to silence. 

Amongst the good judges, Houppeville was thrown into 
prison; the canonist Lohier was obliged to fly, or he would 
have suffered the same fate as Joan ; the canon Fontaine op- 
posed for some time the bloodthirsty rabble, but he also had 
to fly; Isambart de la Pierre, a Dominican, was threatened 
with death. Others, less prominent and therefore less exposed,, 
were of the opinion that Joan should be sent to be tried by 
the Holy See. But the most influential and most noisy of the 
University professors prevailed. 

Besides these good priests, Joan*s powerless friends wha 
sought in vain to save her at Rouen, there was the Church as* 
represented in France by the other bishops and at Rome by 
the Pope. But what could it do? It could not interfere, for 
communication was slow and distance distorted the events tak- 



I 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Did the Church Burn Joan of Arc? 795 

ing place. No one could know or even suspect the illegalities 
and infamies committed at Rouen, and it was naturally sup- 
posed that everything was happening according to the rules of 
justice. When at length the designs of the judges were known, 
it was too late to interfere. And moreover who could have 
acted efficiently? Nothing less than a military force could 
have snatched their prey from men who felt themselves strong 
in the protection of the English army, and who claimed to be 
acting with authority. The Church did not save Joan of Arc 
because it was absolutely powerless to do so. 

C After the Trial. — Later on, in 1455, the Church reha- 
bilitated Cauchon's victim. At the request of Joan's family, 
Pope Calixtus III. ordered the revision of the trial of Rouen ; 
and this revision, begun in 1455 at Notre Dame in Paris, was 
finished the next year at Rouen. One hundred and thirty 
witnesses were heard, light was thrown upon the matter, the 
verdict of Cauchon was solemnly annulled, and Joan proclaimed 
innocent. Without this fresh trial and these official depositionF, 
sought for and collected by the Church, the calumnies of the 
Rouen trial would never have been cleared tip and dispelled 
for us. It is the Church, then, who has made the memory 
and the glory of Joan safe from the attacks •f lies and in- 
sults. 

But why, it has been asked, did the Church wait five and 
twenty years before doing justice to the Maid ? 

We must bear in mind the character of those times, the 

' habitual slowness of the courts of law, a slowness explained 

by the temperament of a generation less in a hurry than ours 
and by the difficulty of communication. Allowance must be 
made for political complications, for the danger of irritating 

I the English, for the necessity of letting tempers grow calm 

and of allowing light to come out of the obscurities of a pro- 

I cess the issues of which had been purposely entangled and 

confused. Moreover the Church could only commence the re- 

I vision of a trial after an appeal to annul the verdict had been 

I made to it; the first step had to be taken by Joan's family. 

Was the mother of the Maid indifferent to her daughter's 
memory ? No, the delay was due to the force of events. Even 

I so, it would be unjust to blame the Church which could not 

go faster than the family itself. 

Even at the time, moreover, when the Church undertook 

( the retrial of the case, she had to face difficulties for i^faich 

* Digitized by Google 



796 Did the Church Burn Joan of Arc? [Sept. 

she deserves credit. In carrying it out, she gave great annoy- 
ance to the English government, which had ordered all its 
agents to support the justice of the condemnation; to the Duke 
of Burgundy, who owed her a grudge for it; to the University 
especially, as being the chief culprit. Nay more, she laid bare 
the iniquities of a large number ot priests, and thus gave 
her enemies a handle of which modern free thought has not 
failed to avail itself in abusing the clergy. Yet she did not 
hesitate to encounter these risks, because she only wished for 
truth and justice. The Church merely did her duty, no doubt, 
but courage was needed to fulfill it. 

The Church then has nothing to reproach herself with in 
regard to the Maid ; but heresy and free thought cannot say 
the same. The Gallican and half- schismatic University wished 
to besmirch the memory of the pious young girl by burning 
her body, and the University is the chief culprit. Protestant- 
ism broke the monuments and statues of the heroine in the 
past; Voltaire, the father of unbelief, tried to defile her in a 
filthy book; the Revolution forbade her festivals, and the Em- 
pire restored them; the Freemasons have at one time insulted 
her, at another time glorified her with praises, worse than any 
insults, as misrepresenting her mission and taking from her 
her halo of sainthood. The Church alone has the right to be 
proud of Joan. 

Articles have been written which say that no one party 
ought to claim Joan. ''She belongs to all," in the hackneytd 
phrase of the day. But Joan does not and cannot belong to 
a party which blasphemes her faith, denies her God, sccfifs at 
the ideal which dominated her life. To the free-thinker who 
would lay hands upon her, as to the soldier who tried to out- 
rage her in her prison, she cries out : *' Back, wretch, and re- 
spect me." Joan belongs to us. Christians, because she belonged 
to the great family of believers up to the very moment of her 
death. She belongs to us. because we alone can explain b^r 
mission, as she herself explained it, by voices from heaven. 
She belongs to us, because we alone leave to her that super- 
natural inspiration which she claimed. She belongs to us, 
lastly, because the Church alone can praise her without stint 
or qualification. 



Digitized by 



Google 




TALLY-HO 

BY PAMELA GAGE. 

PR. THOMAS COLLIER, going down the steps of 
Beechcroft House on a gray March morning, was 
quite unconcerned as to whether Tally- ho bad 
won the Waterloo Cup or not. 

The thing with which he was concerned was 
that he bad just succeeded in getting a dying man's signature 
to a will which dispossessed his favorite nephew, and that it 
reposed very snugly in his bag at that moment. 

He might be excused for looking as though he had seen a 
ghost when an outside car drove rapidly in sight and there lit 
down from it the very youth who had just been dispossessed. 
Jack Hartigan was a pleasant sight enough to most people, but • 
Mr. Collier would at this moment just as soon have seen the devil. 

** How is he ? " asked Jack Hartigan eagerly. *' And has he 
beard about the Cup?'' 

Mr. Collier turned pale and then red. 

** He is unconscious," he said, " and I do not think he will 
ever be conscious again. We were not thinking of dogs and 
coursing. I daresay the news has reached the village. They 
were carousing there last night, and I know that all the stable- 
boys and kennel-men were absent. Beechcroft was empty ex- 
cept for a couple of servants and the nurse and myself. I sat 
with my poor old friend.'' 

Jack Hartigan's eye fell on the black bag and he smiled. 

"You've been making a new will I see, Mr. Collier," he 
said suavely, " a will by which my Cousin Rody, who report 
says is engaged to your daughter, succeeds to Beechcroft. Not 
that I care about it. But I wanted to see the dear old man 
while he could know me. Why didn't you send for me ? " 

** It was no business of mine to send for you." Long lines 
of rose had come oat in the eastern sky. Momentarily the day 
was brightening ; and the light revealed the long, sinister, mean 
face of the attorney and the malignity of his gaze. ** My poor 
friend had no wish to see you while he was conscious. You 
can force your presence upon him now he can no longer for- 
bid you the house." ^ ^ 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



798 TALLY-HO [Sept., 

For a moment Jack Hartigan*s usually simple and friendly 
face wore such an expression that Mr. Collier stepped quickly 
to one side. 

'* Because you filled his ears with poison against me/' the 
young man said with a quietness which seemed full of omen. 
'* Because you dared to smirch my love for Alice Fitzgerald. 
I know you» you villain, and the stories you brought him. If 
you had told them of Rody they might not have been so easy 
to disprove." 

With a hurried movement Mr. Collier put several feet be- 
tween himself and Jack Hartigan. The outside car which had 
brought the latter was not yet out of sight and hearing. He 
whistled shrilly and started out in pursuit of it. 

'' Bedad, he doesn't make a bad sprinter/' Jack Hartigan 
said to himself with a somewhat mournful humor. ''It would 
be better than Lisdoonvarna, so it would, for Tommy, if he 
was to meet me often and me in a bad temper 1" 

He turned about and glanced sadly round the velvety lawn, 
off which the mists were rising as the day grew brighter. The 
flower-beds were revealing their brightness of crocus and tulip 
out of the mists. One or two tall elms and a magnificent cop- 
per beech were thickening with buds. Beyond the park and 
its many ancient, twisted May-trees, rose the mountains dark 
against the eastern sky. The sun just looking over the moun- 
tains suddenly sparkled in the distant river. At one side was 
the walled garden, a delightful place of flowers and fruit, in 
their season. Beyond a bare shrubbery were the stable-yard 
and the kennels. 

'' Poor Uncle Tony I '' said the lad to himself with a pang 
of compassion. ''It's hard for him to be leaving it all on 
such a morning. And never to know that Tally-ho has won 
the Waterloo Cup. The poor old man, I wish they could have 
kept him conscious for that." 

He turned the handle of the house- door as he had turned 
it familiarly for so many years, and went into the hall where 
the furniture he knew like the faces of friends glimmered in 
the early dimness. There was the cold, pure air of early morn- 
ing and early March in the house. The doors that gave upon 
the hall were closed. There was not a sound in the house, 
but as his foot touched the first step of the stairs something 
hurled itself down upon him in a rapture of fawning and whim* 
pering. 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



I909 ] TALLY-HO 799 

" Ah, Nell, old girl/' he said, fondling the spaniel's silken 
head. '' So you haven't forgotten me ! But it is a sad hour, 
isn't it, that I come back in ? " 

He went up the carpeted stairs to the wide corridor above, 
the dog fawning about bis feet. He glanced at the old-fash- 
ioned clock, which showed the ages of the moon and the day 
of the month, as he passed. The hands pointed to half past 
six o'clock. While he stood there it struck the hour huskily. 

Before he could knock at the door of his uncle's room it 
was opened and an elderly woman came out, who displayed 
a JDy almost as extravagant and just as quiet as the spaniel's 
at sight of him. 

" Glory be to God I Master Jack, is it you ? " she said, lift- 
ing her hands. Her rosy cheeks were streaked with tears and 
her vividly-blue eyes had red rims about them. ''Sure he's 
nearly gone, the poor master I And none of his own near 
him! If it wasn't for me and Tim Carmody 'tis left alone he'd 
be while the fine lady sent for from Dublin is havin' her naps. 
An' 'tis nappin' she is most o' the day now except whin the 
doctor's expected. Not that she minds htm. He wasn't here 
yesterday at all. Wasn't it Crom Races? 'The nuin's practi- 
cally moribund,' says he, the night before last. There was a 
way to spake o' the poor masther, him that was proud enough 
to put his legs under our mahogany in the good old times." 

She lifted her white apron to staunch the fast- running tears. 

" And where is Master Rody, Mary ? " Jack Hartigan asked 
sternly. 

** Och, the sorra wan o' me knows. Somewhere he oughtn't 
to be, I'll take me oath o' that. The last day be kem the poor 
master was just fallin' into a sleep. He was terrible wake, but 
he had the stren'th to ring the bell. ' Take this man away,' 
he says, whin Tim answered it; 'he has drink on him.' 'Twas 
only be the inducement of the drink we got Master Rody to 
go quite. He went off that evenin', glory be to Godi an' we 
haven't seen him since." 

"Your message only found me yesterday. I wish I had 
been here sooner. I've traveled ever since to get here in time." 

" Without bite or sup. I know you. Master Jack," said the 
woman affectionately. 

" Never mind me, Mary. I can do very well till the house 
is stirring. Let me see him. Is he alone?" 

"He is. Master Jack, except for his poor ould Mary._That , 

uigitized by VjOOQIC 



8oo TALLY'HO [Sept., 

hussy of a nurse is gone to her bed. She was away to it the 
minute Mr. Collier, bad luck to him I was out o' the house. 
ri! call up Tim and he'll have a bit of breakfast for you in 
next to no time. Sure it 'ud do him no good for you to be 
starvin*. He always liked every wan to ha' their fill of mate 
an* drink. He wouldn't turn a beggar from his door.'' 

She preceded him tip«toe into the big room where the great 
four-poster stood in which Anthony Glynn had been born, 
from which his soul was about to wing its flight. 

While Jack Hartigan stood by the side of the bed she went 
softly and drew up the blind. The light came with a rush into 
the darkened room. All the birds were singing now and a young 
hound barked from the kennels and was answered by the throats 
of the pack. 

Jack Hartigan, looking down at the face on the pilIow» 
broke into a sudden hard sob. The face was so altered from 
the old, weather-beaten, rosy face that had so often beamed, 
love and confidence into his own. His breast heaved. He 
covered his face with his hands. It was all so bitterly wrong. 
The old man had cared for him more than for any one in the 
world: and he had returned the love in full measure. Then 
had come Alice Fitzgerald, the gray* eyed, dark haired, milky- 
skinned daughter of a neighboring farmer. No match perhaps 
for a nephew of Anthony Glynn, his favorite nephew, the heir 
in all probability to Beechcroft. The heir of Beechcroft should 
marry into a family the equal of his own. 

But — it was not the mesalliance that Anthony Glynn so bit- 
terly resented. The mesalliance was something he had not 
thought of. Proud, obstinate, prejudiced as he was, if he had 
seen Alice Fitzgerald, he might have acknowledged that Jack 
was right to forget the social differences. Alice's father, Michael 
Fitzgerald, would have smiled at the idea of a Fitzgerald being 
below a Glynn ; but there was no end to the folly and vanity 
of some of those who claimed descent from the old families. 

Anthony Glynn had heard the tale of Jack's infatuation for 
the farmer's daughter from one who knowingly or unknowingly 
contaminated the innocent romance. 

Old Anthony had raved and sworn. The Glynns had always 
walked cleanly among their humbler neighbors. He would have 
no shame, no scandal, no disgrace. By heavens! if one of his 
blood should wrong any innocent girl he would kick him from the 
doors of Beechcroft, which would never again open to receive him. 

uigitized by VjOOQIC 



I 



1909.] TALLY'HO 801 

Hiding his working face even from the loving old servant 
who stood watching him, now and again putting her apron to 
her eyeSf Jack Hartigan recalled his own bitter answer that 
day. His uncle's view of his love-affair seemed the foulest in- 
sult to the noblest and purest of women. He had said as much 
to the flushed, threatening old man, and had flung himself out 
of the house — to earn money so that he might ask Alice Fitz- 
gerald to be his wife. He had been dealing in horses since — 
the one thing he knew anything about — and he had been in 
England when Mary Hogan's message had followed and lound 
him. 

A touch on his arm attracted his attention. 

''Don't take on like that, Master Jack/' Mary said in a 
trembling voice. ''The poor master's not gone yet. Tim says 
he won't go — not yet. The dogs hasn't howled. Sure the 
world knows that the bastes can tell when there's a death 
comin'. Nor the banshee. The banshee always followed the 
family. She was keenin' round the house the night your grand- 
mother, Lord rest her I died. Ah, here's Tim, Master Jack 
Isn't it good for sore eyes to see Master Jack, Tim, even at a 
sorrowful time like this? Sure he's starvin', God help him, 
and perished with the cowld." 

Jack Hartigan shook hands with the old butler silently. He 
could not trust himself to speak. 

"There was bad work doin' last night," said the old butler 
gloomily. " I wish you could ha' come before. Master ! Jack. 

That Collier, God forgive me, he was shut in wid the 

master; an' none about only her from the hospital. Was it 
likely he could make a will?" He indicated the scarcely 
breathing body.' " Yet he had him propped up an' guidin' the 
hand of him not an hour ago, an' herself an' Larry Fagan from 
the kennels writin' their names for witnesses. I'm glad I never 
had any scholarship. There's great villainy in it sometimeF. 
As I was goin' up to bed I met Collier comin' down, an' be 
grinnin' to himself. Thinks I : ' You're ugly enough, my bucko, 
without that' I'm afeared you're out o' the will. Master Jack." 

"I'm afraid so, Tim. But I'm not the kind money sticks 
to. What matter about it? I think more of the grief of see- 
ing him lying there, and we not friends at the last." 

" He was axin' for you the very last night he had his wits. 
It was what made Mary write to you. She was afeard of her 
VOL. Lxxxix.— 51 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



8oa Tally-ho [Sept, 

bad writin' that it 'ud never reach you; but she daren't trust 
another. You know Tally-ho has won the Cup, Master Jack? 
And to think he wouldn't live to know it ! '' 

The two went away and left the young man alone with the 
dying man. He stood looking down at the quiet face, his own 
working. The old man was very nearly gone. Hardly a 
breath flattered on his lips. Leaning to listen Jack Hartigan 
could not hear him breathe. And to think that he was dying 
without knowing that Tally-ho had won the Waterloo Cup! 

Jack had an odd impulse. He looked half- shamefacedly 
about the room before he acted upon it. The spaniel, lying 
on the hearthrug, watched him with an eye of tempered rejoic- 
ing. He stooped his lips to the dying man's ear. If he could 
only reach him with the tidings he could not help feeling that 
his soul would go the happier on its journey. Anthony Glynn 
had been so proud of Tally-ho, a dog of his own breeding and 
rearing. And to think that be was bringing home the Cup, 
and Anthony Glynn not to know it! 

''Tally- ho has won the Waterloo Cup," he said, with low 
distinctness, into the dying man's ear, ''Can you hear me? 
Tally-ho has won the Waterloo Cup. Major Skeffington's 
Surely Not second; Sir Gilbert Woburn's Water- Wagtail third." 

As he bent his head he listened. He had an irrational 
fancy that now, at last, he could hear his uncle's breathing, a 
faint, trembling breath, as of one agitated. 

He spoke again. 

"Tally-ho has won the Waterloo Cup. He will be here 
this evening. It was a splendid finish." 

There was something in the face as he peered into it like 
the trouble of the gray eastern sky before the dawn breaks. 
He could not be sure how much of it was due to his imagina- 
tion. For a second or two he watched the face in an anguish 
of suspense. Once he almost thought an eyelid fluttered ; then 
—he was not sure. Was Anthony Glynn dying? 

He rushed to the bell. Before he could reach it the door 
opened and Mary Hogan came in. 

"Do you see any change in him, Mary? For God's sake 
look closely at him and say if you see any change in him. He 
looks to me as though consciousness were coming back to him." 

"There's a change in him, sure enough," cried Mary. 
" Sure Tim's right. The dogs never howled. Myself I stuck 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] TALLY-HO 803 

to the banshee. Is it likely he'd die an' she never let a screech 
out of her? Here's the brandy, sir. I'm thinkin' 'twas the 
lady herself had more of it than the poor master ever bad. 
An' him used to his few tumblers of punch every night." 

The brandy was poured generously into Anthony Glynn's 
mouth. Some of it ran out again, but some of it was swal- 
lowed. In a short space of time there were hot-water bottles 
packed all about the body which already had the chill of death. 
Some one had gone, riding hard, for the doctor. Apparently 
no one thought of the nurse, sleeping soundly after her night's 
vigil. 

The breath came back into the frozen body ; the heart went 
on again pumping blood through the veins; slowly, painfully, 
the pulses could be discerned growing momentarily stronger. 
And presently Anthony Glynn opened his eyes. 

** Ah, Jack, is it you, my boy ? " he asked wearily. " And 
is it true that Tally-ho has won the Cup ? " 

*' It is quite true." 

They gave him some nourishment and he sank off again to 
sleep; while from the kennels the dogs, going out for exercise 
two and two, broke into joyful yelping. 

Three days later Anthony Glynn was able to sit up. 
When that time arrived, contrary to all custom, he had Tally- 
ho brought to his bedside, where he all but wept over the 
hound's silky head. 

A little more time and he was ruling the world about him 
from his bed, with the old dominant strength. He was talk- 
ing of the chances of the Cup next year. He was driving his 
nurse hither and thither and keeping Jack incessantly by his 
bedside, with an affection which refused to be robbed of the 
sight of him for a moment Yet a little longer and there was 
an exquisite outburst of spring; and all the crocuses were up 
in the beds and the snowdrops whitened the shrubberies, and 
under the bare orchard trees the daffodils were beginning to 
peer. Anthony Glynn in a bath-chair was out on the lawn, 
where the dogs, old and young, were brought in couples for his 
inspection, and his hunter. Paladin, came to him to be caressed. 

But before that time came he had sent for another lawyer 
than Mr, Collier, who had been summarily dismissed, and had 
made a new will. 

'' Sure I never meant to cut you off, Jack," he said. ** I 



Digitized by 



Google 



804 ^ TALLY'HO [Sept., 

didn't know what that blackguard was making me do at all, at 
all. Wouldn't I have been the sorrowful man, whatever the 
Lord intended for me, if you hadn't called me back to undo 
what they'd made me do ? " 

There was a great peace and sweetness over Beechcroft 
while the master crept slowly back to life and health. Rody 
had taken it into his head to enlist, so the trouble of him was 
off the place ; and Mr. Collier consoled himself as well as might 
be for the loss of a client and a son-in-law. 

It was a beautiful April day, with primroses in sheets on 
all the banks and the wild hyacinths springing in the grass, 
when Anthony Glynn went out driving for the first time after 
his illness. The people came to the cottage- doors, and called 
out to him : '' God bless your Honor and keep you as well as 
you are to-day i " which pleased Anthony Glynn, who liked to 
stand well with his neighbors. Now and again one called out : 
''Hurroo for Tally-ho!" which delighted the old man. The 
neighbDrs they met in carriages or riding or walking stopped 
to say how glad they were to see Mr. Glynn about again and 
how sadly lonely the country had felt during his illness. 

To these latter he would say, laying a trembling hand on 
Jack's knee: 

" Here is the boy that called me back to life. ** I'd have 
been in Killpadraig now if it wasn't for Jack." 

Then the faces would smile on Jack Hartigan, who had 
always been well liked and was liked still even by those who 
had daughters to marry and thought it a dreadful pity that 
Jack should have entangled himself with a farmer's daughter 
and quarreled with his uncle about her. Indeed to some of 
them the very evident reconciliation between uncle and nephew 
brought new hope. Surely the young man had seen the folly 
of his ways and had given up thinking of a girl so much be- 
neath him. 

At Drumkeeran Crossroads, Nick Flynn, the coachman, 
would have turned to the left towards Knockshambo, for home ; 
but Anthony Glynn shouted at him to take the other road, 
the one that runs to Kilsheilan. 

A mile down the road was a gray stone wall overhung by 
elm trees, a wide open gate, a lodge, and a winding avenue 
going to a long, low farmhouse. As they came near the place 
Jack Hartigan turned red, for there Alice Fitzgerald lived. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] TALLY' HO 805 

He had not seen her for a long time, for neither of them 
woald meet clandestinely; and Michael Fitzgerald had taken 
Anthony Glynn's attitude towards the love-affair badly, the 
worse that they had always had a liking for each other. 

''Turn in/' said Anthony Glynn, as they reached the gates. 

The astonished coachman did as he was bidden. Jack 
looked an amazed question into the old face. Anthony Glynn 
gave him back a look full of love. And there was Michael 
Fitzgerald himself, square and sturdy, coming through the 
white lawn gates of the white house to meet them. 

'Tm glad you're better, Mr. Glynn," he said, lifting his 
proud gray eyes to the face of the man who had hurt him in 
his tenderest point. 

''Thank you, Mr. Fitzgerald. I have brought this lad of 
mine to see your girl. Let us talk over things. I've come to 
my senses. You see, I've been near death. Give me your 
hand, man." 

Michael Fitzgerald's hand met his and the two closed in a 
firm grasp. They looked in each other's eyes and each recog- 
nized in the other a man after his own heart. 

After that, to judge by the way Anthony Glynn hastened 
the marriage, one would have thought that Alice Fitzgerald 
had been his own choice for Jack. He was enraptured with 
the calm, queenly girl, who looked at the world with such a 
shining serenity in the depths of her glorious gray eyes, who 
was fashioned as he held a woman ought to be fashioned, no 
puny creature, but a gracious, nobly-formed woman, healthy as 
she was beautiful, and fitted to be the mother of children who 
should carry on his family if not his name. 

He was extremely anxious for the marriage to take place, 
and would hardly give the bride or the bride's family time to 
make the preparations they thought needful. It was as though 
he dreaded that something should happen to prevent the mar- 
riage. 

Nor would he hear of any honeymoon except the briefest. 
A week at Killarney and then back to Beechcroft What more 
could they want? There was time enough for them to see the 
world when he was dead. 

They yielded to him in everything. He had never been 
quite the same since his illness. He had never quite recovered 
his old rosy color nor seemed to belong to life as he had of 



Digitized by 



Google 



8o6 TALLY-HO [Sept ^ 

old. Looking at him they were fain to acknowledge that it 
might be only a respite after all, only a respite. 

So the marriage took place with a haste as though some- 
thing were urging them: " Hurry 1 hurry f' The bridal pair 
had their brief honeymoon and were back at Beechcroft before 
June was out; and Anthony Glynn, for all that he looked to 
have but a brief tenure of life, went about the house and the 
gardens, the kennels and the stables, with a quiet peacef olncss 
of aspect that impressed every one who saw him. He had 
changed from a dominant, blustering personality, whose pres- 
ence was like the West Wind, into a quiet, peaceful old man. 

The doctor confessed that he could find nothing wrong 
with Mr. Glynn, that there was no reason he should not live 
to be ninety. But Anthony himself shook his head. 

*M ought to be in the churchyard, by right,'^ he said to 
his nephew, whom he never liked to be far from him in these 
days ; " only you called me back ; and the Lord let me come, 
to set things right for you and so that I might die happy. 
If I might only live to see a son of yours. Jack, and to know 
that Tally-ho had won the Cup a second time I could die in 
peace. Td have nothing more left to wish for." 

The autumn was long and golden, followed by a mild win- 
ter; and Anthony Glynn showed no sign of failure. To be 
sure he was guarded with watchful love against the rough 
winds and the cold and the rain ; and he seemed to like to be 
so watched, he, who in the old days, could never be induced 
to take any care of himself. He had become -greatly attached 
to Jack's placid, motherly young wife. In these days. Jack 
aad Jack's wife made up the sum of his human world. Beyond 
them he cared for his horses and his dogs, and especially for 
Tally-ho. It would be a strange day indeed when Anthony 
Glynn ceased to care for his horses and dogs. 

The time turned round to the Waterloo Cup day. The old 
man was in a subdued state of excitement from the time the 
dog and his train of attendants had departed. He had two or 
three younger dogs running; but of them he hardly thought. 
His whole interest was centered in Tally-ho. He stood out 
on the lawn to see the dog, carefully wrapped up, depart. 

''^Bring home the Cup, Tally-ho," he said. ''Bring home 
the Cup I There's a deal of Irish money on you, my beauty. 
If you win this time you shall have a gold collar?' 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Tally-ho 807 

And the sleek, intelligent creature looked at his master as 
though he understood. 

The night before the fateful day young Mrs. Hartigan 
brought a beautiful male child into the world. The old man 
was wild with excitement and joy. 

"Only let Tally-ho win the Cup now," he said, "and I 
shall live to be ninety, as Conolly says I might. I wonder 
what time the telegram will come." 

He would have the child brought to his bedside in its 
father's arms that he might see it. 

"Call him Anthony Glynn," he said. "And let him be 
Anthony Glynn and not Anthony Hartigan so that there may 
be still a Glynn at Beechcroft, when I am gone." 

He was too much excited to sleep during the night* The 
next morning he looked so tired and frail and old that they 
kept him in bed. Alice was doing well, and the child was all 
that could be desired. It was as much good luck as should 
come in one day, he said cheerfully; and yet he added: "God 
send that Tally-ho may bring home the Cupl" 

After breakfast Jack Hartigan read the papers to him with 
the latest news from the course. All Ireland had gone mad 
over Tally-ho. There were sensational reports of the extent 
to which the dog had been backed. 

The old man slept fitfully at intervals during the morning. 
The day turned round slowly for everybody to evening. Dr. 
Conolly had come in a friendly way to see how his patient 
was bearing the strain. 

"It is trying him badly," he said to Jack Hartigan. "De* 
spite yesterday's happy event, which ought to have given him 
a fillip, he seems to have lost strength rapidly. I hope the 
dog will win." 

That was a calamitous day for Ireland, for Tally* ho, having 
done well in the early running and raised the hopes of his 
backers to fever- heat, suddenly and ignominiously failed at 
the last. 

About six o'clock Jack Hartigan stood by the old man's 
bedside, the fateful yellow envelope held in a hand that 
trembled. 

"You'll set young Anthony against it, sir," be said. 

"Tally-ho's beaten?" 

"Yes, the dog made a good fight, but — " 



Digitized by 



Google 



8o8 Tally-ho [Sept 



<i 



'' He's not out-classed. Jack/' said the old man eagerly. 
He'll live to do well for Ireland another day. He's a good 
dog, Jack; I never bred as good a one. Never a better one 
was bred between the four seas of Ireland.'' 

" I'm sure of it, sir. It was an accident his being defeated." 

The old man turned about with his face to the wall; and, 
after looking at him for a moment in sad silence, Jack Harti- 
gan turned away and went on to his wife's room. He wanted 
to tell her that the old man was taking it better than they 
could have hoped. 

The corridor was dark as he went along it, and outside the 
blackbirds and thrushes were singing deliciously on the bare 
boughs. It had been a mild day and all the windows stood 
open to the soft wind. 

With his hand on the door-handle of his wife's room he 
paused a second. There arose from the kennels outside a 
strange, uncanny chorus of howling that froze his heart as he 
heard ^it. Turning back, he met Mary Hogan, running along 
the corridor to the master's room. 

"Do you hear the dogs. Master Jack?" she cried. "The 
master's gone." 

There was no time to rebuke her superstition. She was in 
the bedroom before him. Anthony Glynn had not stirred from 
the position he had assumed when he turned away from his 
nephew's sympathy. But there was a new rigidity in the 
shape under the bedclothes. 

'' Don't frighten him," said Jack Hartigan hastily, coming 
to her side. 

The room seemed full of the uncanny howling of the dogs. 
The moonlight lay on the floor. As he stepped towards the 
bed the shadow of something that glided by the window lay 
on the moonlit floor, appalling him. 

"Is it frighten him?" said Mary Hogan, rapidly pressing 
her band down the master's face. " Is it frighten him ? God 
help him I he'll never be frightened nor sorry in this world 
any more. Tally-ho brought him back to us: and Tally-ho 
has took him away from us. Go to the mistress. Master Jack, 
and I'll see to him." 



Digitized by 



Google 




THE WONDERS OF LOURDES. 

BY J. BRICOUT. 

III. 

THE MIRACULOUS CURES. 

|T is truly soul-stirring to see those who have been 
miraculously cured, marching in procession during 
the national pilgrimages to Lourdes. Last Au- 
gust three hundred and sixty- four of them re- 
turned to Lourdes to render thanks, and to bear 
public witness to the reality and the permanence of their cure. 
How can any one dare deny, in the face of that cloud of wit- 
nesses, that numerous cures are effected, and effected through 
the intercession of our Lady of Lourdes? 



The facts exist ; they are real. The contrary can be main- 
tained only on the unreasonable supposition that thousands of 
honorable men and women, as well as thousands of conscien- 
tious and competent physicians, have been grossly deceived. 
The work of the ^' Bureau of Medical Verification," established 
in Lourdes itself on the Rosary Esplanade, would also have to 
be ignored. 

Formerly religious, aided by four or five physicians, gath- 
ered the accounts of cures and edited the testimony. Their 
collections filled the first twenty volumes of the Annals of Our 
Lady of Lourdes. It was in 1882 that the '^Bureau of Medical 
Verification'' — the miracle clinic — was established. Those in 
charge of the place were not afraid of scientific light or obser- 
vation. The certificates and papers brought to Lourdes by 
those who are sick are verified by graduate physicians, and the 
sick who desire it are themselves examined on their arrival. 
If a cure is announced, the Bureau, unmoved by the enthusiasm 
of the crowd, immediately subjects the patient to a rigorous 
examination. 



Digitized by 



Google 



8io The Wonders of lourdes [Sept, 

Several doctors are officially connected with the Bureau, 
but care has been taken to throw its doors wide open to mea 
of ability — ^particularly to doctors, whether believers or unbe- 
lievers, foreigners or Frenchmen.* 

It is probable [M. 1' Abb4 Bertrin justly writes] that there 
is no other clinic in France so open to visitors or so much fre- 
quented. 

From 1890 to 1908 (exclusively) 3,673 doctors, 697 of them 
from abroad, have visited the Bureau of Medical Verification. 
The names are all registered. They make an imposing and 
probably a unique collection. Since 1896 there have been 
on the average between two and three hundred doctors pres- 
ent every year. In 1907 they numbered 342. Some days 
there were as many as sixty in the office. No matter what 
their personal opinions, they were all at perfect liberty to see 
and to question the sick people who came to have either their 
maladies or their cures verified. 

It even happens frequently, oh days when there are big 
crowds, that the President of the office calls out at hap-haz- 
ard: ''What doctors Iwill take the trouble to examine this 
case, either in a private room or in the hospital ? " 

Whoever wishes to do so may accept the invitation. 
Though it is not known whether they, believe in miracles or 
not, their report is accepted by the official doctors of the 
Grotto. 

Some years ago an English physician. Dr. Henry Head, 
stayed at I^ourdes while the big pilgrimages lasted. He 
came equipped with special appliances for examining eyes 
and ears and for different analyses. He even had a photo- 
graphic outfit. He was a Protestant, but he was let do ex- 
actly as he pleased. He not only followed the discussions 
with the utmost freedom,^but he took copious notes and ques- 
tioned the sick himself. ... On leaving he wrote the 
following note to the President of the Bureau : 

^'I would like above all to offer my sincere and cordial 
thanks to the authorities at Lourdes. They have granted to 
me and to other doctors every facility for a free and inde- 
pendent examination of the sick. All that we could have 

* *' All parts of the world send representatives to Lourdes. The English and Americans 
come in great numbers. Protestants are interested in our work. A letter from Japan asked 
for an account of our cures for the purpose of making them known to the most famous phy« 
sician there who wishes to study and to pass judgment on what we observe here while he 
waits for an opportunity to come to Lourdes."— Dr. Boissarie. Les Grtmds Gu&is0MS de 
Lourdes, p. la. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Wonders of lourdes 811 

asked for was freely and generously accorded us. I will take 
care to acknowledge publicly the hospitable welcome I re* 
ceived and the courtesy shown to me, a stranger. As regards 
the medical examination of the cures, it is a pleasure to say 
that I am perfectly satisfied with the way in which certifi. 
cates of sickness are handled. Nothing can surpass the con- 
scientious care with which the value of .each certificate is 
weighed." 

These cures, subjected to a careful and an impartial exam- 
ination, are followed up with scrupulous attention. If the sick 
person who has been cured remains at Lourdes for several 
days, he is examined ievery morning and evening by the Bu- 
reau. More than that, if the case is a grave one, the Bureau 
sets on foot a minute inquiry in the patient's own home dis- 
trict, and has him return to Lourdes during the next few years, 
so that it can be proved that the disease has not come back. 
Our belief in Lourdes rests, then, on scientifically observed 
facts. 

The national pilgrimage alone brings a thousand sick peo- 
ple to Lourdes every year. Dr. Boissarie, president of the 
Bureau of Medical Verification, asserts that these sick persons 
furnish an average of a hundred cures. That is at the rate of 
ten per cent and in a very short time, for hardly any of the 
sick stay more than two or three days at Lourdes. There cer- 
tainly is no hospital with a like average of cures. '' In a hos- 
pital filled with our patients,'' adds Dr. Boissarie ''a hundred 
complete cures would not be secured without treatment in three 
days, nor in a year. . • • Everything, then, is different, 
results and methods alike." The cures reported in the Annals 
of Our Lady of Lourdes and in the Records of the Bureau of 
Medical VerificatioUp have been carefully added up. From 
1858 to 1907, inclusively, there were 3,803 cures, with a yearly 
average of 145 during the last fifteen years. There were 198 
in 1904; 141 in 1905; 115 in 1906; and idi in 1907. 

These figures call for some important observations. First it 
must be remarked that the number of cures obtained at Lourdes 
is at least double what we have jast read. Many of those who 
are cured, either for lack of time or to spare themselves the 
annoyance of a public examination, never appear at the Verifi- 
cation Office* Still those are real cures and the special ac- 
counts of pilgrimages in which they are recorded can be trusted. 



Digitized by 



Google 



8i2 The Wonders of Lourdes [Sept., 

In the second place* the reader has surely noticed that the 
number of cures the last two years is less than that of the pre- 
ceding years. That proves that the exact figures are given out 
with scrupulous conscientiousness, and that no attempt is made 
to deceive the public. But one should not conclude from this 
that the cures are surely lewer than before and that the glory 
of Lourdes is on the wane. The notable falling o£f in numbers 
during 1906 and 1907 is chiefly to be explained, it seems, by 
the fact that the Bureau of Verification is becoming — and very 
wisely — much more exacting. For example, it rejects more 
and more the cures of nervous ailments. On this point M. 
TAbb^ Bertrin writes as follows: 

During the past four years no more than 15 nervous cases 
have been recorded. Fifteen out of a total of 450 different 
cures ! In our preceding statistical table, covering the period 
from 1858 to September i, 1904, there were 255 out of a total 
of 3,353. In other words, up to 1904, the cures ol nervous 
diseases formed a twelfth or a thirteenth of the whole ; while 
in the last four years they constitute only a thirtieth. 

One out of 30. One out of 13. These figures call for 
notice. It is frequently thought that none or almost none but 
nervous ailments are cured at Lourdes. The contrary is the 
truth. Out of 3,803 sick who have been cured at Lourdes 
only 270 suffered from nervous disorders. 

# 

Tuberculosis in its various forms furnishes a far higher 
proportion. There have been 747 cures of such diseases, in- 
cluding tuberculosis of the lungs, the bones, and intestines, 
white swellings, lupus. Pott's disease, and hip-disease. In 
addition there have been cures — to give only a partial list — in 
583 diseases of the digestive organs and their appendages ; 96 
of the circulatory system, including 55 of the heart ; 161 of 
the respiratory organs — bronchitis, pleurisy, etc. ; 54 of the 
urinary system ; 137 of the spinal cord ; 500 of the brain ; 129 
of the bones ; 191 of the ioints ; 38 of the skin ; iii tumors ; 
481 of a general character; and sundry others, including 148 
of rheumatism ; 25 of cancer ; and 45 of open sores. 

We call particular attention to 51 blind people who have 
recovered their sight ; 30 deaf who have regained their hear- 
ing ; and 17 dumb who now have the power of speedu 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Wonders of lourdes 813 

II. 

''The facts exist; but the explanation of them is incorrect/* 
declares Bemheim, the illustrious head of the School of Nancy. 
To explain them as miraculous, Bernheim and his followers 
maintain, is not to explain at all. Cost what it may, that 
explanation must be rejected. Miracles are not possible: his- 
tory proves them simply the unexplained. History proves 
nothing of the sort Both history and philosophy teach that 
there is a God, a personal God, Who retains a royal freedom 
to intervene in this world whenever His infinite wisdom judges 
fit. History on its side, the Gospel history especially, resists 
all the assaults of destructive rationalistic criticism and bears 
witness to the reality of the Savior's miracles. Now, the pover 
and the goodness of God have not declined since the blessed 
days in which Jesus Christ went about doing good. To*day, 
as nineteen centuries ago, God is our Father, a compassionate, 
all-powerful Father. He can hear our prayers ; He can under- 
stand the cry of our misery; He can comfort and heal us. 

That one should not try to explain events as miracles un- 
less the facts require it, and every other explanation proves 
insufficient, is a perfectly legitimate demand. We do not cry 
''Miracle'' lightly, nor without grave reason. We do not be- 
lieve in the miracles of Lourdes until we have weighed the 
value of purely natural explanations. 

Those who deny the miracles of Lourdes seek an explana- 
tion for these wonderful cures either in the coldness of the water, 
in auto-suggestion, or in the healing breath of the crowd. 

But none of these explanations can possibly account for the 
facts. 

The Lourdes water does not contain any peculiar elements. 
It is like the water usually found in mountains which have 
abundant calcareous deposits. Its curative power, therefore, 
must be in its temperature and in the sharp reaction produced 
by the cold. 

It may be that, if doctors dared to try the experiment, an 
ice cold bath would save some sick people " in certain circum- 
stances." It may be that many of the cures at Lourdes could 
be explained fairly well in this way. But it is evident that 
such cases would be comparatively few. No other proof is 
needed than the evidently decisive one that during the last 
fifteen or twenty years many of the cures wrought through the 
intercession of our Lady of Lourdes have been e£fected with- 

.,y,u..d by Google 



8 14 THE Wonders OF LouRDES [Sept., 

out immersion in the bathing pools. It would surely be absurd 
to give the sovereign action of a cold bath credit for the cures 
effected in the processions, before the Grotto, in the chapels, 
or by the mere application of a compress of Lourdes water, or 
by drinking a few drops. 

'' The healing breath • • • which exhales from the crowd 
in the acute crises of faith.'^ What is it ? It is well styled an 
'' unknown force.'' Perhaps it does not even exist, save in the 
creative fancy of an imaginative Zola. But let us be generous 
and admit, for the sake of argument, that a force, comparable 
to animal magnetism, transmissible from one individual to 
another, really exists and is in play at Lourdes. Let us admit 
that this force is doubled, increased ten- fold even, when it 
emanates from a crowd, greatly over* excited by the desire for 
a miracle. But how many cures there are, related in the Annals 
or in the Official Records^ or elsewhere, which cannot be ex- 
plained in this way. 

I have just read a recent work by Dr. Moutin, an ardent 
practitioner of therapeutic magnetism. The book is entitled; 
Human Magnetism^ Hypnotism, and Modem Spiritualism. What 
he says, especially in Chapter VIII., about the cures effected by 
magnetism, is quite significant. It is a far cry from the few 
cures, or ameliorations of certain diseases, chiefly nervous, which 
have been obtained by these methods after a prolonged treat- 
ment, to the thousands of cures, very few of them in nervous 
Cises, which have been frequently obtained at Lourdes with 
startling suddenness. 

We must say [writes Dr. Moutin] that in cases of solution 
of continuity or anchylosis magnetism is powerless to effect a 
cure. It is useless to add that certain chronic maladies are 
not amenable to magnetic treatment. 

There is no need of treating chronic cases several times a 
day. Al half-hour's treatment daily will be enough. The 
patients ought to be told that the treatment will take a long 
time, for if they are to be cured at all it will be only alter 
months of daily attention. 

Human magnetism — the radiating and external force in 
question — will not explain the greater part of the cures at 
Lourdes. Most of those cures would be absolutely untouched 
by such an explanation, for they have been effected under 
conditions utterly at vaWance with those demanded by the 
most ardent partisans of magnetism. 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



1909.] The Wonders of Lourdes 815 

With what we have thus far said most people will readily 
^gree, for the cures at Lourdes are usually ascribed to another 
cause. In general the healing force is sought, not outside, but 
within the patient himself. The word '' suggestion '' comes to 
pur minds at once. 

Suggestion, auto-suggestion, the faith that saves, the faith 
that heals.* These terms are forever on the lips and the pens 
of those who treat of Lourdes. 

And many superficial readers, after finishing Zola's Lourdes 
or a newspaper article, are fully convinced that they have 
fathomed the whole matter. Nobody is cured at Lourdes* they 
tell us, in a tone that brooks no reply, except those afflicted 
with nerve troubles, and they are cured by auto-suggestion. 

Let us examine that assertion more closely. '' Nervous 
diseases!" exclaims Dr. Boissarie. ''Nowhere are they better 
known or more carefully studied than at Lourdes." Charcot, 
in his most recent work. La Fox qui Guirit^ declares: "The 
doctors charged with the verification of miracles — men of un- 
questioned good faith — know well that there is nothing beyond 
the reach of natural laws in the disappearance of hysterical 
paralysis. Those accidents are matters of daily observation 
with them and they are perfectly in accord as to their nature." 
Moreover, does anybody really imagine that we have had to 
wait till the end of the nineteenth century to find out the in- 
fluence of the nerves? The Church has long known the exist- 
ence of nervous diseases and has been carefully on her guard 
against ascribing their cure to any divine or miraculous agency. 
Pope Benedict XIV. in his treatise, De Servorum Dei Beatific 
catione et Beaiorum Canonisatione^ lib. IV., art. I., cap. xiii., n. 
14, wrote as follows more than a century ago on the cure of 
hystetical patients: ''It will be very difficult to maintain that 
these cures are miraculous. Promoters of causes of beatifica- 
tion and canonization have sometimes tried to do so, but I 
have never seen them succeed." 

The physicians at Lourdes, as I have already remarked, 
have always been and are now more than ever inspired by 
this justly distrustful spirit of the Church. They set aside re- 
lentlessly every case in which there is any doubt or even the 
barest suspicion as to the influence of the nerves. 

* Here in America the terms mind-cure or faith-cure are generally used to express the 
ideas contained in the phrases of the text. The underlying thought of them all is that of the 
influence exerted by the mind on the body. 



Digitized by 



Google 



8l6 THE WONDERS OF LOURDES [Sept., 

If they do record the cure of some nervous diseases it is 
only because they cannot be really explained by natural forces. 
It would be a mistake to imagine that all nervous disorders 
can be cured by suggestion, or in a hypnotic sleep — a state in 
which suggestion seems to reach its maximum of efficiency. 
Bernheim himself admits that psycho-therapy is usually ineffec- 
tive in dealing with hereditary, constitutional neurasthenia; in 
treating neurasthenia which is caused by a defective nervous 
system, and, consequently, in the treatment of innumerable re- 
sultant diseases. At most some improvement is effected in 
these cases, and, as a rule, it is not permanent. The same is 
true in regard to epilepsy and the real St. Vitus' dance. It is 
to be noted, furthermore, that suggestion never cures suddenly. 
It is the common teaching of the masters of psycho-therapy, 
such as Bernheim, Delboeuf, and Wetterstrand, that time is an 
indispensable factor, that the hypnotic sleep should be kept up 
for weeks and months. One can understand then why the 
physicians at Lourdes, however sceptical they may be, have 
paid attention to those cures of nervous diseases which have 
been effected under conditions in which the most renowned 
specialists declared a cure impossible.* ''There are forms of 
hysteria that kill,'' writes Dr. Boissarie in his strong style, 
''and they are never cured instantaneously except at Lourdes.'' 
He is right, then, in holding that such cures are miraculous. 
He remarks further, and very rightly, that a nervous subject 
may suffer like anybody else from an organic lesion. Take 
the case of a nervous woman who breaks her leg or becomes 
a consumptive and is cured of this trouble at Lourdes. Will 
anybody dare to maintain that her cure comes from the nerves 
and from suggestion? A nervous person might even be a 
paralytic, and yet the paralysis would not necessarily have a 
nervous origin. It might be, and in some cases is, organic. 

We must call attention, finally, to the fact that a disease 
which is purely nervous at the start, ends, if prolonged, by 
leading to real organic lesions. Rheumatism is a functional 
disorder. If it disables a limb long enough, hip-disease will j 

set in. A secondary organic lesion will be grafted on a func- , 

tional trouble, and the disease, according to Bernheim, will be , 

incurable by suggestion. i 

* Here is the list of nervous diseases cured at Lourdes : neuralgia, 65 ; sciatica, 94 ; epi> 
lepsy, 16 ; hysteria, 53 ; St Vitus' dance, 15 ; neurasthenia, 82 ; exophthalmic goitre. 5; halln- | 

cination, s ; obsession, s ; catalepsy, 6. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] THE WONDERS OF LOURDES 817 

Now all these maladies of whatever sort, organic as well as 
nervous, are cared at Loordes, and at times they are cured 
instantaneously. 

Dr. Boissarie's two books and that of M. TAbb^ Bertrin, 
from which I have quoted at length, are devoted in great 
measure to the narration and interpretation of the manifold 
cures of organic diseases which have been obtained through 
the intercession of the Virgin of Lourdes. Let a man of good 
faith read those works without prejudice. Unless I greatly 
deceive myself, he will be convinced. 

There he will read these pointed declarations of Bernheim, 
Wetterstrand. and the most prominent practitioners of sugges- 
tive therapeutics. "Suggestion cannot reduce a dislocation. 
• • • It cannot reduce an inflammation; nor stop the devel 
opment of a tumor; nor arrest a process of sclerosis. Sugges- 
tion does not destroy tnicrobes, nor does it close up a circular 
ulcer of the stomach. . • • Suggestion cannot restore what 
has been destroyed. ... I do ifot mean to say that this 
grave disease (consumption) can be cured by suggestion. . . • 
Hypnotism has no more effect on kidney troubles than other 
kinds of treatment'' It is just the same with epilepsy and all 
''those cases that have an organic origin.'' 

It is clear, then, that the cold water and animal magnetism 
and suggestion are incapable of effecting such wonders — I was 
going to say, such resurrections. 

But it is argued that great bursts of emotion, of fear, of 
joy, of wrath, suddenly whiten the hair, cause jaundice, con- 
vey disease, and even produce death. Does faith, after all, 
even a lively faith, secure at Lourdes under another form 
any more incomprehensible or more extraordinary results? 
Bernheim and other masters agree, as we know, that a vivid 
emotion has never effected a lasting cure of neurasthenia, epi- 
lepsy, or similar ailments except at Lourdes. Above all, that 
such agency has never effected cures suddenly. Neither has 
it cured tuberculosis, bone decay, nor any of those organic 
diseases which we have seen disappear at Lourdes under truly 
singular conditions. There is, then, an essential difference be* 
tween the effects produced by the stress of emotion or by the 
imagination, and the marvels of Lourdes. 

But, it is said, "suggestion works at Lourdes under very 
superior conditions, conditions immensely more favorable^ to 

VOL. LXXXIX.— 53 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



8l8 THE WONDERS OF LOURDES [Seph, 

success than those that can be found anywhere else.'' Even if 
this were true, suggestion, for the reasons already given, could 
not explain the great cures at Lourdes. Is it to be maintained 
then that there is no suggestion at Lourdes? I will not argue, 
as some of our apologists do, that there is no suggestion at 
Lourdes, or that auto-suggestion is only an exception there. 
Zola has, beyond a doubt, greatly exaggerated the environment 
by which an effort is made, so he says, to exercise suggestive 
influence on the sick. Generally there is nothing particularly 
impressive in those surroundings. That is certain. Neverthe- 
less it is true that suggestion, auto-suggestion at least, can be 
met with, and is met with, at Lourdes. But the conditions 
there are not specially favorable for its exercise. For exam- 
ple, hypnotic sleep, a peculiarly propitious condition, is not 
induced at Lourdes. 

We must remember also that many of the cures at Lourdes 
were worked when every sort of suggestion was really lacking. 
That was the case with all small children, children still at the 
breast, unable to understand and consequently incapable of 
being persuaded or of being influenced by suggestion. It was 
the case with Lucie Faure, who did not hope to be cured of 
an ulcer of many years' growth. She went into the piscina 
simply to please her companions. To give only one more 
instance, Franpois Macary, a carpenter of Lavaur, had a like 
experience. He gently bathed his varicose ulcers with Lourdes 
water, said a calm, short prayer, and was cured in his sleep. 

It is further objected that no matter what Bernheim may 
think, suggestion can cure and has cured sores, and that in a 
very short time. Young doctors '* have a suspicion that many 
of these sores are of a nervous origin. . . . That would be 
simply a case of a poorly nourished skin. These questions of 
nutrition are still little studied. . . . And it has been 
proved that faith-healing can cure sores perfectly, certain false 
forms of lupus among them." Charcot found an historical ac- 
count of a sore healed by faith in 1731. More recently, in 
1895, a professor at the University of Moscow was cured of a 
scalp disease in the same way. But it must be remembered 
that even if the nervous origin of most sores was nothing more 
than a fantasy, it would not follow that suggestion could cure 
them suddenly. The processes of nutrition, of healing, of 
restoration, and the production of cells cannot be accomplished 
naturally without the help of time. The wound mentioned b 



tionea dv 

Jigitized by VjOOQ l6 



igog.] The Wonders OF LouRDES 819 

Charcot took eighteen days to heal, and the sick man was not 
able to go out and ride in a carriage till 48 days later. The 
Moscow professor ''bad no visible sore. His ailment consisted 
in a suppuration of hair follicles, and showed itself in pustules 
which were only skin-deep.'' Besides, two or three days were 
required for the cure. What a difference between these cures 
and that at Lourdes of Joachime Dehaut. To use his own 
expression, his leg was ''literally rotten.'' The sore on it was 
a foot long and there were complications of gangrene and 
bone decay. On September 13, 1878, the wound was^ com- 
pletely healed by a single bath in the piscina. Next day, 
during another bath, his deformed foot and his crooked leg 
straightened out; his knee resumed its normal shape; and the 
dislocation of his hip was reduced. 

Finally this charge is made: "You reason as if the natural 
explanations that we suggest are exclusive; as if each one — to 
be held good — has to account for each and every case. It is 
enough to have one explain what another does not — the cold 
bath, for instance, to explain what is not explained by sugges- 
tion or by psychical emanations and vice versa. It may also 
happen, in some instances, that these three forces act simulta- 
neously and so bring about the marvelous results that we know." 
We answer: It is not necessary that each one of these forces 
should explain each and every case. We admit that a man 
may try to explain by one what cannot be explained by the 
other two. We admit further that one has a right to believe 
that when these three agencies co-operate they produce results 
that no one of them, taken alone, could produce. What then? 
The instantaneous renewal of tissues remains no less utterly 
inexplicable. It is one of those cures which neither cold 
water, nor suggestion, nor the vital fluid — whether working 
singly or in concert — have ever effected or ever will effect. 
It does not avail to appeal to the "unknown." To be sure, 
we are ignorant of many things, but we know enough to as- 
sert that multitudinous generations of cells cannot be produced 
in a second. As a consequence we know that a tissue cannot 
be renewed, restored, or healed in the twinkling of an eye. 

The Church has not acted hastily in judging that the Im- 
maculate Virgin appeared to Bernadette, and that the great 
cures at Lourdes are really the work of God. 



Digitized by 



Google 



flew Socks. 

It may be aa uncommon way of 

THE SCORE. beginning the notice of an up-to- 

By Lucas Malet. date novel, but we cannot help 

saying that in certain instances the 
ancient chorus of the Greek tragedies might still be employed 
to advantage. For such a chorus, while it did not reveal, un- 
folded in part what was to come, gave warning of the fearful 
catastrophe about to befall, and admonished the reader to steel 
himself for the shock. We repeat that, after reading Mrs, 
Harrison's latest work,* we wish she had employed something 
or somebody that would stand for the chorus. Anthony Ham- 
mond, with his cryptic warning to Lucius Denier, certainly does 
not ; and, moreover, he is one of the principal dtatmitis persona. 
The novel is tremendous, all*absorbing in its theme; in* 
tensely powerful, direct, and brief in its action, as is tragedy 
itself; baldly simple in the fewness of its characters — ^there are 
but four — and in its great reticence; yet artistic realism hold- 
ing the reader spell-bound while sin rips the world asunder, 
while the voice of Nemesis is heard through her daughter the 
night, while vengeance comes, stern, unrelenting, terrible — 
while the holy ones of God sing in hope : ** Because with the 
Lord is mercy and with Him is plentiful redemption.'' That 
no one can, with impunity, whether he thinks he may or not, 
violate the laws of God's universe; that such violation must 
be paid for perhaps far off, but surely somewhere and some- 
how by the offender, is the theme of Mrs. Harrison's powerful 
work. It is not the moral of the book; it is the lesson of 
life, as the book portrays life. The story will seem to most 
readers exceptional in its construction, and perhaps altogether 
too cryptic in its telling. But to us it has the bigness, the 
thoughtf ulness of the old Greek tragedy ; and it excells in the 
very point in which the Greeks themselves excel. For impress- 
ing upon us a primary truth and arousing us to something of 
a sense of how far-reaching our actions are it is exquisitely 
and effectively done. Like Poppy St. John the book has its 
ideals and never loses sight of them, though, as in the case of 

* Tki Scon, By Lucas Malet (VCrs. Mary St. Leger Harrison). New York: E. P. 
Dutton & Co. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New BOOKS 811 

Poppy St. John, they are not always realized; like Lucius 
Denier it is animal and brutal at times; like Anthony Ham- 
mond it is gay, cynical, learned; like the dying man in the 
hospital, reconciling; and through him it is saved to human 
and Christian (for are they not both the same?) optimism. 

Few of the novelists of the present day have the soul or 
the spiritual sight to handle such a theme as this book han- 
dles; few have the power, and fewer still the courage, for the 
universal doubt and the universal questioning of every positive 
law; the universal love for the puerile, the silly, and the su- 
perficial, lead the novelist to come down to the public and buy 
his daily bread. Mrs. Harrison has shown immense courage, 
and while her book deserves a wide circulation, we shall be sur- 
prised if such a blessing comes to it. What a different place 
the world would be if we really read with thoughtfulness such 
novels as this and brought home to ourselves the lex atema — 
the eternal law of God. A better and brighter world it would 
surely be. And we say this although The Score ends with a 
tragedy — or rather with the greatest triumph that life can know 
— the triumph over self, even when self has been deceived and 
tortured and maddened with injustice. Such a triumph and 
only such a triumph routs Nemesis itself. 

Poppy St. John of the Far Horizon comes to us again with 
her free, easy ways, and yet her unalterable belief in and faith- 
fulness to the ideals that Dominic Iglesias had begotten in her 
soul. Two men seek the favor of her affections: Anthony 
Hammond and Lucius Denier. To refuse the former is no 
difficulty for Poppy St. John. But the latter is powerful, prim- 
itively masculine, knows how to love, has wealth and position^ 
and marriage with him means rest, security, and freedom from 
work and anxiety for Poppy St. John. ^'Yet are these the 
highest things?" Poppy St. John is compelled to ask of the 
night. The night answers that there are higher things yet^ 
and the night gives spiritual light. Poppy refuses, but not 
without a great struggle, the offer of Lucius Denier. She 
leaves the country hotel where she has been stopping and goes 
back to London. So ends the first part of the volume : ** Out 
in the Open.'* When the reader is out in the open he feels 
safe and he understands, for he sees not the hidden and the 
most important laws of life. The second part of the book is 
entitled : ^* Misere Nobis,'' and is occupied entirely with the 



Digitized by 



Google 



823 NEW BOOKS [Sept., 

confession, to a priest, of a young man dying in a hospital in 
Italy. He tells the story of his life from its infancy. As he 
progresses the reader gradually begins to understand. Poppy 
St. John is dead, but this man telling his sin is her son. Lu- 
cius Denier pays for his sin. Sin brutal and unrepented comes 
as sudden death upon him. Sin lays its harsh hand on Anthony 
Hammond. Sin crushes both because they have accepted sin 
as master. But with the son of Poppy St. John it is different. 
She indeed has been a mother in the larger sense. He con- 
quers self and the passions of self. Through the sacrament of 
penance and the priest who stands between man and God he 
finds reconciliation with his own humanity and with humanity's 
Savior ; and as one of Israel he is redeemed from his iniquities. 
It is needless to say Mrs. Harrison's book is not for chil- 
dren. 

Miss Jessica Marguerite King West, 

THE BRIDGE BUILDERS, from Lone Wolf, Arizona, may 

By Anna Chapin Ray. not be directly descended from 

« Daisy Miller,'' but one doubts 
whether there are many left of the ** Misses Woolly- West '' who 
say, when dinner is announced: 'Tm so glad; I am nearly 
starved. You only need to live in a boarding house to get up 
a stunning appetite. I could eat nails by this time." * One 
is a little sorry for her mother, shelved by this exuberant con- 
fidant of a hearty father, and regrets that it had to be a vil- 
lainous French mannikin who should take her down and clear 
away the dust of her expansive loneliness. Willis Asquith, the 
engineer, '' stamped with the indescribable seal of being Some- 
body in Particular," introduces us to the Quebec bridge, after 
whose collapse he is rescued by Jessica; mistaking her friend- 
ship for love, he makes a futile proposal and retires, with his 
]ife like the cantilever span of his dreams, ** magnificent but 
terribly pathetic." Kay Dorrance, the American novelist, who 
wins her affections, seems to be a healthy, earnest fellow, with 
his literary past well hidden. They form an interesting group, 
even if a little conventional, with no great moral or religious 
struggles, but with active life lit by beams of humor. A few 
more touches of pathos to bring out some '^wordless messages" 
might have deepened by contrast Miss Ray's enjoyable por- 
traits. 

* Tkt BridgtBuUdirs, By Anna Chapin Ray. Boston : Litde, Brown & Co. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] ^£IV BOOKS 823 

The latest novel of Mrs. Hum- 
MARRIAGE A LA MODE, phrey Ward • will not add appre- 
By Mrs. Humphrey Ward, ciably to her literary reputation ; 

but it may be set down on the 
credit side of her moral balance-sheet as an o£fset to Lady 
Rosens Daughter. It is a protest against divorce. Or perhaps, 
one might say more correctly, it protests against the tendency 
of American women of wealth to have recourse to the divorce 
court when marriage becomes merely irksome or disagreeable* 
Daphne Floyd, a young American heiress, with a fad for art 
and a decidedly independent spirit, falls in love, somewhat 
hastily, with a young Englishman, Roger Barnes, whom she 
meets in Washington. The first act is filled out with Roger's 
old uncle, whose role is to bring out the contrast between 
American and English ideas of social life and character. After 
her marriage Daphne goes to reside in England, Soon after, 
notwithstanding that her husband is a very decent sort of a 
fellow, who loves her wisely if not too well, she becomes tired 
of her surroundings, and chafes under the diminished independ- 
ence which married life imposes on her. The arrival of a 
woman to whom Roger, before going to America, had pro- 
posed niarriage, leads to jealousy; and Daphne, though she 
has really no grounds for serious complaint, nurses her spite, 
because she desires to be free once more. With the help of 
a confidante she manages to scrape up enough evidence to 
obtain a divorce in America. After she leaves her husband 
he — still a married man according to English law, broken- 
hearted by his wife's defection and the loss of his beloved lit- 
tle daughter, whom the mother has carried off with her — goes 
to moral perdition. Daphne settles down in her own country 
as a philanthropist and a leader in the Feminist movement — 
a movement which, by the way, finds no favor in the eyes of 
Mrs. Ward. 

The story is crude, and shows unmistakable signs of haste. 
Roger, though his physical perfections are described twenty 
times over, is but a lay figure, unreal and wanting in individ- 
uality. Daphne, though more carefully drawn, is far below 
Mrs. Ward's best work; and when, after the divorce, the ca- 
pricious, self-willed young lady, with an inheritance of passion 
and fire derived from her Spanish mother and Irish father, is 

♦ Maftiagt a la Mode. By Mrs. Hiimphrey Ward. New York : Doubleday, Page & Co. 



Digitized by 



Google 



834 NEW BOOKS [Sept, 

metamorphosed into one of the strong minded, short-haired 
New England type, we feel that Mrs. Ward has been more 
intent to point the moral than to adorn the tale. 

Since the vogue of the chronicles 
THE EIHODOM OF EARTH, of Ruritania, some imaginjury king- 
By Anthony Partridge. dom or princedom in South East- 
ern or Central Europe has been 
a favorite country for our melodramatic novelists. Hither Mr. 
Anthony Partridge carries us, in a story* as active as a vol- 
cano, to follow the fortunes of a Crown Prince, who, with the 
reputation of a debauch^, is, nevertheless, a man of high ideals 
and a lover of the people. Eluding the vigilance of the reign- 
ing monarch and his chief of police, he is the heart and soul of 
a movement which culminates in a Rebellion and the meta- 
morphosis of the Crown Prince into Mr. John Peters, the hap- 
py husband of a young lady of American blood, who has played 
a conspicuous part throughout the drama. A book that will 
hold the attention of the class of readers who are endowed 
with a love of the spectacular, and do not bind their favorite 
author to a strict account regarding the unities or the proba- 
bilities. 

In a recently published pamphlet,! 
A PLEA FOR ANGLICANISM, for gratuitous distribution, advo- 
cating the claims of Anglicanism, 
its Right Reverend author expresses the opinion that if some 
of the views which he entertains were to become known to 
American Catholics some of these might thereby be won from 
their allegiance to Rome. If we knew of any Catholic lay- 
man who entertained any sympathy with the claims of Bishop 
Grafton on behalf of Anglicanism, we should prescribe as an 
antidote the Bishop's own pamphlet. It is <iirectly addressed 
to Anglicans who experience any leanings towards Rome. In 
his introductory pages the Bishop defends Anglican Orders on 
the ground that the Edwardine form retained the proper Epis- 
copal minister, with laying on of hands. ''For at the laying 
on of hands the Bishop said : ' Receive the Holy Ghost,' and 
using our Lord's own words, made mention of the sacerdotal 
power of absolution, which belongs exclusively to the Priest- 

* Th£ Kingdom of Battk, By Anthony Partridge. Boston : Little, Brown & Co. 
t Pro-Romanism and the Tractarian Movement, By Charles Chapman Grafton, S.T.D.. 
Bishop of Fond du Lac. Milwaukee : The Young Churchman Company. 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909.] NEW BOOKS 82s 

hood/' But what about the esseatial sacrificial power of the 
Priesthood ? On this all-important point the Bishop is as silent 
as is the Edwardine rituaU He proceeds to urge, in the old 
fashion, the old objections against Catholicism — the venality of 
the Papacy, the cult paid to the Mother of God, Purgatory, 
the opposition of the Papacy to liberty ; and he does not dis- 
dain to exhibit as official teaching some of the overstatements 
and rhetorical expressions found in popular books of devotion. 
Drawing, as a triumphant argument, a parallel between 
Anglican and Catholic teaching, he says that the Anglican 
clergyman stands on the immovable rock of Holy Scripture 
and speaks with heaven-sent authority. Well, on this rock 
there is scarcely standing-room at present in the home of 
Anglicanism for the clergyman who, in perfect conformity with 
the rulings of the head of the Anglican Church, the Arch- 
bishop of Canterbury, considers it lawful to celebrate a mar- 
riage between a man and his deceased wife's sister, and the 
other clergyman who, in harmony with the loudly and per- 
sistently expressed tradition of Anglicanism, declares such 
a marriage to be an abomination in the sight of God. He 
extols the Anglican Church for her motherly tenderness in 
following the via media — a policy which permits men who deny 
the Virgin Birth to stand on the same rock with men who 
hold this truth to be an essential of Christianity; as a speci- 
men of the fashion in which the Bishop deals with our doc- 
trines we may take the following passage on Revelation: 
the Roman theory he writes, ''holds that the Holy Spirit, 
dwelling in the Church, may utter through it new truths 
which the Fathers of the Church knew not.'' We cannot be- 
lieve that the worthy man who undertakes to enlighten his 
brethren on the teachings of Catholic faith has never read for 
himself the theology in which those teachings are set forth, 
yet it seems equally impossible to believe that any person 
could have done so without learning that one of the first prin- 
ciples of dogmatic theology is that Revelation closed defini- 
tively with the Apostles, and that, consequently, the Holy 
Spirit makes no new revelations in the Church. But there are 
in Bishop Grafton's pamphlet, small as it is, many other evi- 
dences that he does not understand our Church's claims and 
teaching and that he has not read with dispassionate judgment 
the history of his own. 



Digitized by 



Google 



826 NEW BOOKS [Sept., 

For the benefit of some few of 
MISERY AND ITS CAUSES, our readers it may be necessary 
By E. T. Devine. to explain certain particular quali- 

fications possessed by Professor 
Devine for the undertaking of an examination into the causes 
of misery and dependence among our poor.* Besides being 
Professor of social economy at Columbia University, General 
Secretary of the Charity Organization Society, Lecturer in the 
New York School of Philanthropy, and Editor of The Survey, 
our author has been intimately connected with three recent 
important investigations into the conditions of living and em- 
ployment in New York and in Pittsburg ; and, moveover, for a 
dozen years now he has had an active part in numerous in- 
quiries and enterprises calculated to prepare him for the pres- 
ent discussion. 

He seeks to explain not the ultimate origins of unhappi- 
ness, but the immediate causes of that obvious and more or 
less avoidable misery which thrusts itself urgently upon public 
attention in these times. With this aim he considers the im- 
portant and interesting question: 

whether the wretched poor who suflfer in their poverty are 
poor because they are shiftless ; because they are undisci- 
plined ; because they steal ; because they have superfluous 
children ; because of personal depravity, personal inclina- 
tion, and natural preference ; or whether they are shiftless 
and undisciplined and drink and steal and are unable to 
care for their too numerous children because our social in- 
stitutions and economic managements are at fault. I hold 
that personal depravity is as foreign to any sound theory of 
the hardships of our modem poor as witchcraft or demonia- 
cal possession; that these hardships are economic, social, 
transitional, measurable, manageable. Misery, as we say of 
tuberculosis, is communicable, curable, preventable. It lies 
not in the unalterable nature of things, but in our particular 
human institutions, our social arrangements, our tenements 
and streets and subways, our laws and courts and jails, our 
religion, our education, our philanthopy, our politics, our in- 
dustry, and our business. 

It may be well to say that our author does not deny that 
in certain instances misery is but the penalty of indolence and 

* Misery and Its Causis. By Edward T. Denne. New York : The Macmillan Company, 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New Books 827 

wrongdoing; but he maintains the thesis that social maladjust- 
ment is, in the main, responsible for the misery prevalent in 
our modern commercial and industrial communities. Nor is he 
revolutionary with regard to existing institutions. He desires 
to point out things as they are and he hopes to awaken the 
social conscience of his fellows to an earnest and practical ef- 
fort to make things better. 

Clearly Professor Devine's outlook is wide. Whatever he 
sets down in his book as the result of observation, or the 
analysis of facts, goes to show that he is clear-headed, vigor- 
ous, practical, and zealous for justice. Written with eloquent 
simplieity, his book is adapted to teach and to inspire all those 
who care for the serious things of life. It suggests a whole 
social philosophy, built upon facts, adjusted to actual conditions, 
vivified by a Christian spirit of righteousness. 

As indicated by the title,* this 
IHMANEHCE. new volume of the distinguished 

professor of the Catholic Institute 
of Paris, deals with the important problem of intuition, of 
its place and role in our knowledge and life. Having exposed 
the genesis of the new movement, which considers intuition as 
the fundamental means for us to come in contact with reality, 
Abb6 Piat presents in three successive chapters the data of in- 
tuition in our external perception, in theodicy, and in ethics; 
and at each step he shows its insufficiency. Without inductions 
or deductions our external observation is sterile; without the 
exercise of reasoning we cannot arrive at a true idea of God, 
and what is called the intuition or the vision of God or the 
experience of the divine remain without meaning and control, 
exposing us to all the illusions of our imagination. The 
attempt to found a morality on merely intuitive data has 
led, and was bound to lead, to bankruptcy in ethics. We must 
come to a belief in the beyond through metaphysics, if we 
are to find a solid foundation for such belief. In a last chapter 
the author shows how intuition, if it is useful for everything, 
suffices however for nothing. It is necessary to have re- 
course to reasoning, to the concepts; these concepts have a 
real value in relation to reality. They present this reality in- 

* /nsujlsamct d€s Pkilosopkus d* VlmtuUwn, Par Clodius Piat, Docteur des Lettres, Agt6g6 
el' University. Paris: Plon-Nourrit et Cie. 



Digitized by 



Google 



828 NEW BOOKS [Sept., 

adequately indeed, because we are finite in our knowledge, as 
in our being, yet they have a truly objective value. 

This bare analysis shows the interest both of the question 
exposed and of the criticism and solution of the author. It 
is, indeed, a good defence of human reason and of the value of 
reasoning. As he well says, such theories as those exposed 
will not last, yet they are apt by their charm to sow trouble 
in the minds of some students. Those who know the former 
greater works of the author, will find in this work also origi- 
nality of thought, or at least originality of presentation of old 
thoughts, and at the same time originality and strength of 
style. An exacting critic would perhaps demand more detailed 
development in certain places, and accuracy at least in certain 
expressions — as that of symbolism. 

May a book dealing with sociology 
ETHICS. be placed under the title of ethics ? 

Probably the great majority of 
teachers and students of sociology in this country, and in most 
others, would reply: Certainly not. And, indeed, if one ex- 
amines the vast literature of that embryo science, one will 
scarcely find a single publication that would yield on analysis 
any moral residuum, out of the economic and social data and 
theory which make up its contents. Needless to say this kind of 
sociology is alien to Catholic teaching, since that teaching holds 
that the primary factors in the economic and social question, 
whether in practical life or in the realm of scientific theory, are 
the moral and religious principles which must be fixed as the 
starting-point lot any safe and permanent solution.* A timely 
volume, which illustrates this truth, has just been published in 
France by an eminent Sulpician, and it might be translated 
into English with great advantage to Catholic students and 
others privately or professionally interested in the question of 
Socialism. It treats extensively the right of private ownership 
from the moral point of view. The main divisions are : legi- 
timacy of private ownership of land ; legitimacy of private 
ownership of capital; origin of private ownership; manner of 
acquiring property ; extent of this right ; limitations to which 
it is subject, and duties attached to it There is no lack of 

* TraiU d* SociologU eTt^ris Us Frincipesdtia TkhhgU Catkoliqui, Ri^imi U la Pr^ 
priiU. Par L. Garriquet. Paris : Bloud et Cie. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New Books 829 

books and other publications in which the principles of private 
ownership, as fixed in moral theology and brilliantly set forth 
by Leo XIIL in Rerum Nofvarum^ is urged against Socialism. 
But some popular expositions of the doctrine have been so 
one-sided that they are more likely to strengthen leanings 
to Socialism than to make converts from its ranks. The prin- 
ciple that the right of ownership rests on the right of every 
man to a living and the fruit of his labors is insisted upon as 
if it alone settled the problem. No notice is taken of the fact 
that unlimited private ownership, as a system, may lead to 
conditions that deprive the multitude of the indefeasible prim- 
ary right to a decent living. So the principle cuts both ways ; 
and, unless regulated by some other principles, finds itself com- 
mitted to the negation of itself. One of the merits of Father 
Garriquet's treatise is that it gives due consideration to the 
limitations imposed on private ownership, and the duties not 
merely of charity, but of strict justice, which ownership entails. 
He cites not only doctrinal declarations of the highest authority 
regarding these limitations, but also some of the significant prac- 
tical steps taken by Popes to enforce justice in this respect. 
Several Popes in the Middle Ages disregarded the fundamen- 
tal idea of Roman law, that the right of ownership in land is 
absolute and uncontrolled. 

In 1 24 1 Celestine IV. granted to any one whosoever the 
right to enter on and cultivate the third part of any land which 
its owner left untilled. Two centuries later Sixtus IV. author- 
ized all and singular to appropriate a third part of any lands 
left uncultivated in the Patrimony of St. Peter, even though 
the proprietors were ecclesiastical corporations. Even as late 
as 1783, Pius VI. renewed and enforced these ordinances of 
his predecessors. Pius VII. at the beginning of the last cen- 
tury, in the teeth of violent opposition from the wealthy 
classes, put into execution the decrees of his predecessors, and 
levied heavy fines on land owners who refused to cultivate 
their lands. The truly e£Fective way to meet the pernicious, 
anti-religious forces of Socialism is to dissociate from them the 
economic question which gives them strength, and then to 
demonstrate that Christian principles condemn what is evil in 
present conditions as vigorously as does the Marxian propa 
ganda. This work of Father Garriquet is a step in the right 
direction. 



Digitized by 



Google 



830 NEW BOOKS [Sept,, 

The moral argument for the existence of God and the prac- 
tical implications of that troth are expounded with clearness 
and direct application to the prevalent agnostic frame of mind 
by M. Serol, whose connection with the Revue Pkilosophique 
has ranked him among the conspicuous defenders of Catholic 
truth in France.* He takes as his starting-point the enuncia* 
tion of St Thomas, that there is one fundamental precept of 
the natural law known to all men, which implicitly contains 
all the others : We must avoid evil, and do good. Then he pro- 
ceeds to a psychological analysis of tendency and desire, point- 
ing to their natural correlative good; and he shows that only 
the religious solution can provide a satisfactory theory of these 
elements of human nature, and the life that flows from them. 
Prescinding from the respective intrinsic merits of this and the 
metaphysical argument for God's existence, this one, when 
adequately treated, as it is in this volume, is much more like- 
ly to make an impression on the average unbeliever of to-day. 
As Cardinal Newman has observed, unless we have some com- 
mon ground to start upon with our antagonist, any attempt at 
argument is futile. Now the most inveterate sceptic will grant 
M. Serol's first principle — we ought to do good, and shun evil — 
whereas, if you would essay any of the metaphysical argu- 
ments, you will very likely be stopped with a request to prove 
your self-evident principles. 

The Catholic Truth Society pub- 
THE CHURCH AND SCIENCE, lishes in a small volume f about a 

dozen essays, formerly issued in 
separate numbers, dealing with the relations of science to re- 
ligious truth. The book deserves to be bound in cloth of gold. 
Every one of the papers that compose it discusses, with com- 
petent knowledge, some crucial point in the question of the 
compatibility or the opposition between science and faith. The 
temper in which the discussions are carried on is in contrast 
with that which, at least until recently, pervaded and nullified 
a good deal of the e£Fort made by defenders of the faith. Fa- 
ther Gerard, S.J., the most extensive contributor to this volume, 
describes this attitude and its consequences so precisely that 
his words may be quoted as a not unnecessary warning to 

* Le Besoin tt U Detfoir Religieux, Par Manrice Serol. Paris : Beauchesne. 
t The Catholic Church and Scitnce. London : Catholic Truth Society. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New Books 831 

some whose zeal for troth surpasses their other qualifications 
for the r6U of its defender. 

While the apostles of unbelief are loud-mouthed and con- 
fident, laying down with assurance what they declare to be 
the law, the defenders of orthodoxy are too often either timid 
and apologetical, or strenuous in the wrong way — exhibiting 
their want of acquaintance with the true nature of the teach- 
ings they undertake to refute. In either case much harm is 
done. The impression is produced that we can meet our an- 
tagonists only by misrepresenting them, and that if we ven- 
ture to look them fairly in the face we are inevitably forced 
to make a pitiable display of our impotence, and have to con- 
tent ourselves with a feeble attempt to show that after all the 
case against us is not absolutely proved, but that some loop- 
hole of escape may yet be found. This is not the temper 
which is likely to vindicate the ways of God to men. 

These essays do not exhibit those deplorable tactics. The 
writers know the locus of the topic they take up, and direct 
their attack not against impregnable scientific truth but against 
the misrepresentations of popularisers, or the unwarranted spec- 
ulations of scientists who, forgetting their own first principles, 
presume, if we may borrow a phrase from Sir Oliver Lodge, to 
dogmatize out of bounds. 

That a second edition of Dr. Walsh's fine work* to the 
glory of the thirteenth century should already be called for is 
proof that the reading world is willing to reopen the case for 
the Middle Ages, and to listen to a fair presentation of the 
evidence which hitherto Protestant and other non- Catholic in- 
fluences have persistently falsified. JDr. Walsh presents his 
readers with an immense array of facts that serve to show 
the wonderful activity that reigned in all departments of intel- 
lectual and social life during the thirteenth century. While he 
occasionally advances claims that would be reduced by a severe 
court, the great mass of his evidence is unassailable, and can- 
not fail to work a change of opinion concerning the Middle 
Ages among those who have accepted without question the tra- 
ditional libels and caricatures on that age which have passed 
for history. 

• Tlu TkirUtnth GnaUst of CtnturUs. By James J. Walsh. M.D.. Ph.D.. LL.D. Sec- 
ond Edition. With Emendations and an Appendix. New York : CaUiolic Summer-School 
Press« 



Digitized by 



Google 



832 NEW BOOKS [Sept., 

A well-founded reproach to our 
THE PSALHS. devotional literature is that it sad- 

ly neglects to draw upon the in- 
exhaustible stores of the purest spirituality which, according to 
the universal acknowledgment of the Church's Doctors, are to 
be found in the Psalms. These sublime prayers require, gener- 
ally speaking, some explanation and paraphrase in order that 
their beauty and depth may be understood by those unfamiliar 
with the works of the commentators. And the commentaries 
themselves are not written in a form to serve the needs of the 
multitude. A more suitable form of exposition has been fol- 
lowed by Father Eaton in a book * which cannot be too highly 
commended. It contains fifty short, eloquent discourses on as 
many of the Psalms. In each discourse the leading idea of the 
Psalm is set forth, explained, and applied to the religious duties 
and the moral needs of everyday life. For instance, Psalm cxxvi., 
'' Unless the Lord build the house they labor in vain that build 
it,'' is the basis of an instruction on conformity to the will of 
God ; Psalm xxxi., " Blessed are they whose iniquities are for- 
given, and whose sins are covered," without losing its charac- 
teristic thought, expands into a simple, eloquent discourse on 
the Sacrament of Penance. While the book is meant as an aid 
to private devotion, the preacher will find it a helpful friend. 

In selecting for diffusion in the 
THE PRIMACY OF ROME, form of a handy little pamphlet 

an English translation of Mgr. 
Duchesne's synopsis of the historical evidences for the primacy 
of the Roman See in the first centuries of the Church, the editor 
of the Cathedral Library Association shows that he possesses a 
just appreciation of one kind of reading that ought to be repre- 
sented much more liberally than it is in popular Catholic 
libraries. This essay of Mgr. Duchesnef was originally pub- 
lished in a large work dealing with the separated churches. A 
translation of it, which is now reproduced, appeared in the 
Catholic University Bulletin. In a comparatively small space 
Mgr. Duchesne has arranged every piece of evidence bearing 
on the primacy of Rome up to the reign of Constantine; and 

*Sing Ye to the Lord, Exposition of Fifty Psalms. By Robert Eaton, Priest uf the 
Birmingham Oratory. London : The Catholic Truth Society. 

t The Roman Church Before Constantine. By Mgr. Duchesne. New York: The Cathe- 
dral Library Association. 



Digitized by 



Google 



-" at ir: 



1909.] NEW BOOKS * 833 

^ interpreted convincingly every fact and testimony bearirg on 
the subject The greater part of the evidence is drawn fiom 
Eusebius; but the witness of the professed historian is supple- 
mented and corroborated by arguments drawn from the writings 
of St. Clement, St. IrenaeuSi St Cyprian, and Tertullian. Those 
who are familiar with Church history will admire the clearness 
and cogency with which the case is set forth by the master, 
and those who are not can congratulate themselves on having 
provided for them such a knowledge of the question as, with- 
out Mgr. Duchesne's services, could be obtained only by much 
persistent reading of books which seldom lighten the labor of 
the student with any charms of literature. 

Apart from the question of the 
SOCIALISM intrinsic worth of Mr. Wayland- 

By F. Wayland-Smlth. Smith's latest pamphlet on Social- 
ism,* it is deserving of praise be- 
cause of its character and scope. It is entirely occupied with 
economic facts and forces, to the exclusion of all philosophic the- 
ories. The divorce of purely economic from religious, or rather 
anti- religious, Socialism is a matter of paramount importance for 
religion ; because no greater mistake could be made than to 
identify the cause of Christian truth with the prevailing evils 
against which economic Socialism protests. This compact little 
pamphlet is useful and interesting reading. In his introduc- 
tory chapter, "Getting the Viewpoint," Mr. Wayland- Smith 
observes that great changes are impending, that the present 
relations between capital and labor are inevitably destined to 
undergo far-reaching modifications. Hence prudence dictates 
that we should prepare for the emergency by studying what- 
ever facts exist that may provide us with some guiding light 
for the approaching crisis. Let us study the conditions in the 
countries where, more than in any others, the Socialistic princi- 
ple has been substituted for the competitive or selfish principle ; 
in other words, let us examine the results which the supremacy 
of the labor power has wrought in Australia and New Zealand. 
In the Australian Confederation the labor party is supreme ; it 
has enacted, and it enforces, a code of legislation which has 
for its objects to shorten the hours of labor, to abolish compe- 



* Sludl We ChoQse Socialism 9 By F. Wajland-Smith. Kenwood, N. Y. : F. Wayland- 
Smith. 

VOL. LXXXIX — 53 

Digitized by ^ 



/Google 



834 * ^^^ BOOKS [Sept., 

tition, and to control the growth of large fortunes. While in 
sympathy with the workingman's efforts for his betterment, 
Mr. Wayland-Smith frankly exposes the tendency of labor to 
become jast as tyrannical as capital, and he describes the un* 
desirable as well as the desirable, effects following from the 
suppression of competition, the enforced introduction of what 
the opponents consider an undue proportion of leisure in the 
life of the toiler. Some of the most instructive facts gathered 
here illustrate how the severe restrictions imposed to limit the 
hours of work, cause much hardship to many of the class 
whose interests these regulations are meant to safeguard. 

The Preachers whom Doctor Mc- 
RELIGIOH AND POLITICS. Dermott takes to task* in three 

lectures are the Protestant clergy- 
men who made the remarkable letter of President Roosevelt to 
M. I. C. Martin, regarding the loyalty of the American Catho- 
lies, the occasion for an appeal to the declining spirit of 
bigotry in this country. The first lecture was directed against 
the manifesto issued by the Protestant synods; the other two 
are replies to a Philadelphia minister who supported the attack 
in his pulpit. Dr. McDermott expresses, more diffusely, and 
with an admixture of unimportant parenthetical exchanges, 
such as almost always creep into a controversy of this kind, 
the sentiments and principles laid down with such lucidity and 
good taste by Cardinal Gibbons in the article which he con* 
tributed on the same topic to one of our leading periodicals. 

A few months ago M. Houtin 
A CALUMNY REFUTED, published, in France, a volume 

under the sensational title, Un 
Pretre Marii. The book professed to offer unimpeachable doc* 
umentary proof that the late Chanoine Perraud, a brother of 
Cardinal Perraud, had been for many years, during which be 
exercised the ministry, a married man ; and that the Cardinal, 
while aware of the fact, had elevated him to the dignity of 
Canon in his Cathedral and permitted him to continue the 
exercise of the ministry. The Abb^ Perraud had, at the time 
of the Vatican Council, been a close friend of Pere Hyacinthe, 

* The Pnachers* Protest. By the Very Reverend D. I. McDermott. Philadelphia : 
Peter Reilly. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New Books 835 

better known afterwards as M. Loyson. After the latter had 
left the Church the Abb^ Perraud continued to maintain 
friendly relations with him. Some letters of the Abb^ to his 
friend were, in defiance of the opposition of the Abba's liter- 
ary executor, entrusted to M. Houtin, who made them the 
basis of his calumnious charge. In the course of his book M. 
Houtin endeavors, on utterly inadequate grounds, to create the 
impression that Pire Gratray and the saintly Henri Perreyve 
were in sympathy with M. Loyson, who threw o£F the Domini- 
can habit in order to enter the world and take a wife. This 
refutation shows that the correspondence offered in support of 
M. Houtin's assertions does not bear the construction placed 
upon it, and triumphantly vindicates the memory of the Car- 
dinal, his brother, and his two friends. M. Houtin's charges 
have been accepted and widely circulated by the press not 
only in France, but also in England, and, to a less extent, in 
America. Of course, however, not a line of notice will be 
taken of the answer,* by the greater number of the organs 
which propagated the scandalous charge. 

This life of our Lord.f intended 

THE DIVIHE STORY for young persons, comes as near 

By C. J. Holland, S.T.L. to the ideal as we can reasonably 

hope for. It is the Gospel itself 
presented in a current, continuous, narrative form, which ad- 
heres strictly to the data of the Evangelists, unalloyed by the 
introduction of any legendary matter, or imaginative amplifica- 
tion. The author, wisely eschewing the example of foreigners, 
has confined himself to presenting a paraphrase of the inspired 
text, and to the introduction, wherever necessary, of such ex- 
planations regarding customs, institutions, persons, and situa- 
tions as are necessary or useful for the proper understanding 
of the history. These explanations, and the mise en seine of 
the events, though unencumbered by the introduction of any 
learned disquisition, or professional treatment, are laid down 
on the lines of accurate scholarship. Though the book pro- 
f esses to be for the use of young persons, it may very well 
aspire to serve the laity at large. 

"^ A Calumny Refuted, Ckatles Perraud^ Perreyve, ei Pire Gratray. Par Quelques 
T^oins de leur Vie. Paris : Bloud et Cie. 

t The Divine Story, By Cornelius Joseph HoUand, S.T.L, Providence : Joseph L. 

Tally. 



Digitized by 



Google 



8j6 NEW BOOKS [Sept., 

As its title indicates,* Bishop Mc- 
RIGHT LIVIHQ. Gavick's volume is one of moral 

instruction. It consists of a num- 
ber of instructions on everyday duty; solid in thought, plain 
in language, and adapted to the conditions of the American 
life. 

Against the charge that the Cath- 

CATHOLIC CHURCHHEN IH olic Church is hostile to science, 

SCIENCE. Dr. Walsh continues, in a second 

By James J. Walsh, Ph.D. volume,f to reply by presenting 

biographies of staunch Catholic 
ecclesiastics and laymen who hold high rank in the roll-call of 
scientists. The present volume contains interesting biographies 
of Albertus Magnus, John XXL, Guy de Chauliac, Regiomon- 
tanus, and several other distinguished astronomers, as well as 
some clerical pioneers in electrical science. The Doctor is a 
veritable encyclopedia of information in this field ; and the 
cogency of the facts is nowise diminished in his presentation 
of them. 

The newspaper reporter who, a 
COSTUME OP PRELATES, few months ago, when giving an 
By John A. Hainfa, S.S. account of an ecclesiastical func- 
tion, informed the public that at 
the end of the procession came the bishop himself wearing the 
thurifer on his head, was, perhaps, an extreme type of the 
innocence that prevails in secular circles concerning the nomen- 
clature of ecclesiastical vesture. Yet a great many people, 
well-informed on all that concerns the essentials of Catholic 
faith and discipline, make mistakes but little less ludicrous than 
the one just mentioned when speaking of the various pieces 
of the costumes worn by Church dignitaries of different dis- 
tinctive grades and by the same personages on different occa- 
sions. Few, even among the clergy here, but will be surprised 
at the complexity of the etiquette which prescribes how a 
Prelate is to dress in order that be may appear, on all occa- 
sions, in the garb suitable to his rank and the circumstances 
of the moment. A proper acquaintance with these regulatiors 
is acquiring increasing importance among ourselves. Father 

* Sowu IncinHvts to R%ght Living. Bj the Right Rev. A. I. McGavick, D.D. MUwaukee 
and New York : The Wiltzius Publishing Company. 

\ Catholic ChufckwuH in SUenct. By James J. Walsh, Ph.D. Philadelphia: The Dol- 
phin Press. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] New books 837 

Nainfa says: ''With the exception of Italy there is no other 
country in which the proportion of Prelates is larger than in 
the United States. Now these Prelates would naturally desire 
to have their official costume conform as far as possible to the 
rules and prescriptions of the Church with regard to its color, 
shape, trimmings, etc."* He claims no more than his due 
when he adds that ''they will find this manual at least useful 
as a book of reference in matters of the costume which they 
are privileged to wear." The instructions of Father Nainfa 
will enable them to acquit themselves properly through every 
ascending degree of the ecclesiastical ladder to the Roman 
purple, and even to the throne of the Fisherman himself. A 
more humble and more extensive utility of this erudite little 
book will be for the benefit of the inferior clergy, whom it 
informs regarding the proper form, color, trimming, etc., of 
birettas, "rabbis," surplices, and other articles of ecclesiastical 
dress. 

Like countless poets, preachers^ 

LITTLE ANGELS. philosophers. Father Russell has 

By Rev. M. Russell, S.J. essayed — with what success who 

shall say ? — to console the weeping 
which was heard in Rama, when Rachael wailed for her little 
ones; in this regard all the world is Rama, and Rachel's name 
is legion. The writer has thrown together, without any e£fort 
at methodical arrangement, a miscellaneous collection of orig- 
inal and borrowed reflections, in prose and verse, on the death 
of little children.f A considerable portion of the contents is 
of a personal nature ; for some of the letters and papers which 
make it up were first called forth by the death, at the age of five 
years, in 1864, of the first-born child of the late Lord Russell, 
the Chief Justice of England. Forty years separate the two 
parts into which the book is divided; and in the latter part 
the writer avails himself of the privilege of age to indulge in 
retrospection and reminiscence which dwell chiefly upon family 
personages and associations. He has gathered, from widely 
different — and in some instances, little known — sources, many 
beautiful and consoling thoughts on the death of young children. 

* Cosiuwu of Frelates of the Caikolic Church Accordini to Rowum BHquttU, By the Rev. 
John A. Nainfa, S.S. Baltimore : John Murphy Company. 

t lAitU Anitls : A Book of Comfort for Mourning Mothors. By Rev. Matthew Russell, 
S.J. New York: Benziger Brothers. 



Digitized by 



Google 



838 NEW BOOKS [Sept, 

Four essays, which during the past 

ESSAYS. few years have appeared in some 

By Thomas O'Hagan. of our Catholic periodicals, from 

the pen of a Canadian writer, 
whose name is otherwise not unknown here, are the principal 
content of this neat little volume.* The first paper is a pleas- 
ant and highly appreciative study of Tennyson's '^ Princess." 
Mr. O'Hagan makes the poem a text to express his views on 
the feminist question. Higher education for women, and in- 
tellectual development on the generous liberal lines; so runs 
his thesis. But ''the true mission of woman is. and will al- 
ways continue to be, within the domestic sphere, where she 
conserves the accumulated sum of the moral education of the 
race, and keeps burning through the darkest night of civiliza- 
tion upon the sacred altar of humanity the vestal fires of 
Truth, Beauty, and Goodness.'* In " Poetry and History Teach- 
ing Falsehood,'' the author cites apt illustrations of the perver- 
sions which the bias against the Catholic Church propagates 
in non-Catholic literature. He has also something worth while 
to say on the mistaken method of making the study of litera- 
ture in the schoolroom a mere intellectual analysis instead of 
training the pupil to grasp and appreciate the spirit of poetry. 
In a final essay he makes a plea for the Avignon Papacy on 
the ground that it contributed brilliantly to promote the Renais- 
sance. 

The Far East in this title f must 
THE FAR EAST. be understood in a large sense; 

for Dr. Th wing's educational sur- 
vey scans not alone far Cathay and its neighbors, Japan, 
Korea, and the Philippines, but also India. The writer at- 
tempts, in a book somewhat small for the subject, a survey of 
the character of popular education in these various countries; 
and of the forces at work in them to promote or mar the in- 
tellectual and moral progress of the peoples. The Doctor's 
analysis of the situation is not minute; his forecasts somewhat 
vague and conjectural. On the whole, he inclines to believe 
that Western influences, especially Christianity, will succeed in 
raising the East to a higher level of moral and intellectual 

^Essays, Literary t CrUicalt and Historical, By Thomas O'Hagan. Toronto: William 
Briggs, 

t Education in the Far East, By Charles F. Thwing, LL.D. Boston : Houghton Mifflin 
Company. 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909.] NEW BOOKS 839 

life. That this account of a vast subject leaves much to be 
desired for thoroughness may be judged from the fact that it 
scarcely makes mention of the Catholic Church, or of the 
work her missionaries have done and are now doing in these 
countries. 

The names associated on this title 
HUMBLE VICTIMS. page* are both rich with recol- 
lections. The author is the nephew 
of Louis Veuilloty and successor to his uncle in the editorial 
chair of the Univers ; while the translator is the daughter of 
Charles Gavan Duflfy« the Young-Irelander who, after being 
sent into penal servitude for life because of his patriotism, rose at 
length to be prime minister of an English colony in the land 
upon which he first stepped as a convict. The book is a col- 
lection of edifying stories, artistically told, for young people. 
Many of them are drawn from the time of the French Revo- 
lution. All are lively vignettes of French life among the hum- 
bler classes; and they present vividly the play of influences 
for and against religion which are at work to-day. 

The name of Labrador suggests to 
tHE STORT OF LABRADOR, most people only stormy seas, an 

inhospitable coast bound in per- 
petual fog and almost perpetual ice. A perusal of Mr. 
Browne's interesting little bookf will dispel this error, and, 
not unlikely, inspire a desire to see for oneself this land of 
the near- midnight sun. The book is not remarkable for de- 
scriptive power nor, in fact, any conspicuous grace of style. 
But it is packed full of detailed information, topographical, his- 
torical, industrial, and social, concerning the people and their 
surroundings, their mode of life, the products of the soil and 
the sea. Every step that a tourist can take, and every detail 
that might contribute to secure his comfort or satisfy his curi- 
osity, is recorded with the fidelity of a Baedeker. 

**HumbU Victims, By Frangois Veuillot. Translated from the French by Susan Gavan 
Duffy. New York : Benziger Brothers. 

t Where the Fishes Go, The Story of Labrador. By the Rev. P. W. Browne. New 
York : Cochrane Publishing Company. 



Digitized by 



Google 



jfoteian Ipetiobicals^ 

The Tablet (3 July) : Consideration given the " Sunday Closing 

Bill" in House of Commons. "The Oratory School 

— SO Years After " — a brief history of the famous school 
founded by Cardinal Newman.-— Review and criticism 
of an article in The Nineteenth Century on " The Fallen 

Birth-Rate Among the Upper Classes/' "The Reality 

of Spirit Phenomena " reports a series of seances recently 

held at Naples. *' Educational Notes " tell of the much 

fairer treatment of Catholic schools by the London Educa- 
tion Committee as elected by the municipal reformers. 
(10 July): Synopsis of debates on various features of the 

Finance Bill in House of Commons. Account of the 

last service in the Old Lincoln's Inn Fields Chapel. Vale- 
diction of the Archbishop. Resumi of the achievements 
of the Catholic party in Belgium^ under the caption ''A 
Catholic Government Jubilee."— Review of Volume V. 

of The Catlwlic Encyclopedia,^^ Notes from the first 

number of the Acta P<mtificii Instituti Biblicu Recep- 
tion of the Ambassadors of Mahomet V. at the Vatican. 

Index of Tablet articles, January-June^ 1909. 

(17 July): A motion made in the House of Lords, 
''That it is expedient that jurisdiction to a limited ex- 
tent, in divorce and matrimonial cases, should be con- 
ferred upon county courts in order that the poorer 
classes may have their cases of that nature heard and 
determined in such courts.'*— An appreciative article 
on the life of the late Lord Ripon. Anglican partici- 
pation in the Calvin celebration evidences, thinks a 
writer, how at the psychological moment ** all the chil- 
dren born of the Reformation group themselves together 
and by all the instinct of their common birth, cry: 

' All one family we/ " Abb^ Gasquet's Sermon, *' The 

Benedictines in England," preached on the occasion of 
the golden jubilee of Belmont Cathedral. 

The Expository Times (July): The "Koine,'' a short article on 
the question of New-Testament Greek.— -Consideration 
of Dr. Neville Figgis' claim (The Gospel and Human 
Needs) that the present-day problem for Christianity is 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909] Foreign Periodicals 841 

'' ant i- Christian religiousness" and not materialism or 
agnosticism. *' Recent Criticism of the Synoptic Gos- 
pels," by Principal W. C. Allen. "Was St. Peter 

ever in Rome?" Some reflections on Monsignor Du- 
chesne's answer to this question, in his Early History 

of the Christian Church. Materials to help in the 

study and appreciation of I. Peter, iii., 15. Under 

'' Recent Biblical Archaeology " Stephen Langdon, Ox- 
ford, writes of the " Letters to Cassite Kings " as pub- 
lished by Dr. Hugo Radaw. "The Life of Faith," by 

Rev. W. W. Holdsworth. 

The Month (July) : The initial article by Rev. J. H. GoUen gives 

us " Some New Lights Upon St. Ignatius of Loyola." 

C. C. Martindale reviews '' Two Histories of Religions." 
The one review is an appreciation of M. Dufancq's work : 
Avenir du Christianisme^ a comparative study of pagan re- 
ligions and the Jewish ; the other is a consideration of M. 
Reinach's Orpheus. The latter C. C. Martindale regards as 
'' unscientific in aim and method."-^— B. W. Devas writes 
on "Lay Work at Boys' Clubs."— Dom Bede Camm, 
O.S.B., concludes his paper, ''The Founders of Beuron." 
—Rev. Joseph Keating writes an article entitled *' Im- 
pressions of Father Gerard Hopkins, S.J." 

The Church Quarterly Review (July) : '' The Union of South 
Africa and the Native Question." A study of the prob- 
lems suggested by the movement for a United South Af- 
rica. " John Calvin : An Historical Estimate," by the 

Rev. A. T. S. Goodrick. In his introduction Mr. Good- 
rick deplores the want of candor on the part of many 
of Calvin's biographers.-^— " The Royal Commission and 
Poor-Law Reform: The Majority Report," by the Rev. 
W. A. Spooner, D.D. Causes of failure, conditions dur- 
ing its working, consideration of the chief recommenda- 
tions of the Commissioners for the reform of the existing 
law are discussed.-^— *' Westminster in the Twelfth Cen- 
tury: Osbert of Clare," by the Very Rev. J. Armitage 

Robinson, D.D. " The Reunion Problem : A * Scottish 

Episcopal * View," by the Very Rev. T. I. Ball, LL.D., 
makes the third of a series of articles on the question of 
union of the Established Church of Scotland with the 
Scottish Episcopal Church. " The Greek Contribution 



Digitized by 



Google 



842 FOREIGN PERIODICALS [Sept., 

to Spiritual Progress," by Miss H. D. Oakeley. " Dar- 
win and Modern Thought." 

The International (July) : Dr. Rodolphe Broda in an article en- 
titled ''The Female Su£frage Movement" points out that 
the adoption of this policy has proven satisfactory in 
Australia, New Zealand, and Finland.— ''Turkey after 
the Crisis," by Charles Roden Buxton, describes the dif- 
ficulties of Turkey in her endeavor to maintain a consti- 
tutional form of government.-^— Laurence P. Byrnes, 
writing on '' Agricultural Co-operation in Ireland," traces 
the slow but steady growth of the system of co-opera- 
tion for the distribution of dairy products.——" The Ger- 
man Poor-Law System," by Dr. Heinrich Reicher, dis- 
cusses the manner in which the different German institu- 
tions care for needy persons and infants. Ferdinand 

Buisson has an article on the "New Education" in 
France, in which he criticizes the present system inau- 
gurated by Jules Ferri. "Higher Grade Schools in 

Denmark," by Holger Begtrup, describes Christian Flor's 
novel scheme for educating the adult peasants in Den- 
mark. ^Abbd Paul Naudet presents " A Liberal Catho- 
lic View of Lourdes," in which he considers the various 
hypothetical explanations advanced for the cures ; shows 

wherein they err ; and draws the logical conclusion. 

Cimon T. Z. Tyan has an article entitled "Newspapers 
in China." 

Dublin Review (July) : The value, in the conversion of England 
* to the Faith, of a Catholic assimilation of the King 
James' Version of the Bible; the necessity of the study 
of Hebrew modes of thought and expression; the right- 
ness of literary criticism of the sacred narrative; its 
popular diffusion are discussed under " The Literary As- 
pects of the Old Testament," by Canon William Barry. 

"Politics and Party," by Lord Hugh Cecil. The 

evils in the House of Commons, namely: obstruction 
and arbitrary closure of debates. The decay of interest 
can be remedied by the creation of a "persuadable" 

element and by renewed free debate. In a similar 

strain the Editor applies the principles of Edmund Burke 
on party action to the general question of the value of 
party allegiance and its apparent opposition to individual 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Foreign Periodicals 843 

thought and sincere deliberation. " The Failure of the 

Workhouse" is acknowledged. Its promiscuity breeds 
immorality; its slackness, pauperism; its confused ad- 
ministration, now waste, now want. Mrs. Crawford feels 
that the present system should be ended, but that pro- 
posed substitutes hide grave dangers, especially to poor 
Catholics. ^W. H. Mallock, in " A Century of Social- 
istic Experiments'' in America, shows that these com- 
munities can continue only through the suppression of 
the private family and the family a£fections, whether by 
enforced celibacy or by the abolition of marriage and 

the substitution of temporary unions. Mgr. Moycs 

begins a study of *' St. Anselm of Canterbury " and his 
struggle for the freedom of the Church.— ~-The impor- 
tance of woman has been '' in balancing, criticizing, and 
opposing the coercive or legal and the collective or 
democratic conceptions of government." By demanding 
the ballot she has surrendered her power. Mr. G. K. 

Chesterton '' weeps " for this modern surrender. 

** Lord Curzon and Oxford Reform," by F. F. Urquhart. 

'' English Catholics in the Eighteenth Century " is 

a eulogy and resume of Mgr. Ward's Dawn of the Catho- 
lic Revival Alice Meynell says that " Swinburne's 

lyrical poetry" exhibits ''a poet with a perfervid fancy 
rather than an imagination, a poet with puny passions 
(but quick to voice those of others), a poet with no 
more than the momentary and impulsive sincerity of an 
infirm soul, a poet with small intellect — and thrice a 
poet." His power lies in the affluence of his vocabulary 
and in his enthusiasm for the landscape and the skies. 
Le Correspondant (10 July): Mgr. Baudrillart continues his studies 
of Catholic Universities with those at Dublin, Quebec, 
Washington, Beirut in Syria, Fribourg in Switzerland, 

and the recent establishment at Madrid. ''The Three 

Polands," submitted to Austria, Russia, and Germany; 
the police terror, the massacres, the prisons, the espioUi* 
age; the organized calumnies added by Germany; to 
fiendish persecution; the social and political tole of 
Catholicism — these form the theme of Marius Ary- 

Leblond. Political and economic crises in modern 

Chile; picturesque Santiago; a wartlike history and 



Digitized by 



Google 



844 FOREIGN PERIODICALS [Sept., 

a splendid army are described by Prince Louis d'Orl^ans 

et Bragance. Paul Delay exposes the uselessness o 

the fortifications around Paris.— The story of "Watch- 
making'' from Peter Heinlein to Louis Leroy, by Leo- 
pold Reverchon. "Aunt Aym^e/' a novel by Noel 

Frances, is concluded. 

(25 July): Ren^ Vallery-Radot describes the identifica- 
tion by the Due d'Aumale of the town of Alesia with 
the site of Caesar's victory over Vercingetorix.-^— 
" Public Spirit in Germany/' by H. Moysset. Catholics, 
Democrats, and Socialists unite in demanding snflfrage, 
universal, direct, secret, and equal for alL- H, Bre- 
mond contributes '* The Tennyson Centenary," a literary 
meditation rather than a didactic study.— Prince Louis 
d'OrMans et Bragance continues his articles on Chile, 
treating its politics, finances, industries, religion, and the 
position of its women.-— ^Marius Ary- Leblond concludes 
"The Three Polands/' discussing the religious persecu- 
tion«— ^Letters of Henri de Latouche, a journalist under 
Louis Philippe, edited by Joseph Ageorges.—^" Son- 
nets" upon four Roman statues, by Charles de Rouvre. 

£tud€S (5 July) : The authenticity of the Tu es Petrus text is 
insisted upon by Yves de la Bri&re. De Frequenti usu 
Sanctissimi Eucharistia Sacramenti Libellus, a little book 
published in I555» and again in 1909, is reviewed by 

Paul Dudon. Descriptions of the ** Massacres at Ada- 

na" are contributed by several missionaries. That 

the Canticle of Canticles was written before the Exile, 
and that it is an historical poem in allegory, are some 
of the conclusions noted by Gabriel Havelin, in review- 
ing a recent work by P. Jotion. Albert Condamin 

urges upon his readers the nebulous state of our knowl- 
edge of the early religion of the Chaldeans and Assyrians. 

Paul Geny notes the recent works dealing with Pla- 

tonism — Aristotle, the Stoics, and Plotinus.— ^J. M. 
Dario reviews the recent thought and research on St. 
Thomas and Thomism; Roscelin and Anselm; Bona- 
venture, Roger Bacon, Duns Scotus. 

Revue du Clergi Franfais (i Julyj: In its bearing upon liberal 
Protestants as well as upon Modernists separated from 
the Church, J. Bricout considers the question: ''Are 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] FOREIGN PERIODICALS 845 

They Still Christians?" Father Godet contributes a 

biography of J. A. Moehler, the great German eccle- 
siastical historian of the early part of the nineteenth cen- 
tury. J. M. Vidal writes of "The Religious Move- 
ment in Italy/' a movement inaugurated by Pope Pius X. 
for the improvement of the seminaries.— ^L. Wintrebert 
treats briefly the relation of the Church's teaching to 

the doctrine of evolution. An article entitled '^ Social 

Movements/' by Ch. Calippe, discusses the mental attitude 
of the rich to the poor, the depopulation of France, and 
similar questions. 

(15 July): ''The Personality of St. Thomas Aquinas" is 
the reprint of a discourse delivered by E. Bernard Alio, 
O.P., at the University religious ceremony at Fribourg. 

In '^The Stages of Rationalism in its Attacks upon 

the Gospels and the Life of Jesus Christ," P. Fillion 
considers Baur and the Tubingen School— Abb^ Paul 
Thone analyzes *' The Principle of Autonomy " defined 

by A. Sabatier. A pastoral letter of his Eminence 

Cardinal Mercier, Archbishop of Malines, treats of the 
"Duties of Conjugal Life." 

Revue du Monde Catholique (15 July): In this issue appear the 
continued articles of M. Sicard, treating of the "French 

Clergy Since the Concordat of 1801.'* " La Fontaine's 

Pictures of Animals," by. Alexander Harme].— "The 

History of Marmoutier," by Dom Rabory. "Towards 

the Abyss," by Arthur Sava^te, dealing with the Bull 
of the Sacred College of the Propaganda relative to the 
University of Laval.— " The Mysteries of the Inheri- 
tance of A. T. Stewart of New York," by Denans d'Ar- 
tiques, relating details of the great merchant's last testa- 
ment disposing of his vast possessions.-*— Theodore 
Joran's views, as continued in the *' Feminist Movement," 
might well have been summarized in the saying of the 
Princess of Ligne: "Let men make the laws and we 
women the morals."— In his article on the "Spanish 
Apologists of the Nineteenth Century," Father At shows 
how the conflicting testimonies of the Socialists, on the 
great problem of evil, serve as e£Fective weapons for their 
own destruction in the hands of their Catholic opponents. 

Revue Binidictine (July): D. G. Morin comments on a "Pris- 



Digitized by 



Google 



846 Foreign periodicals [Sept., 

cillianist Treatise on the Trinity/' recently discovered 
in an unpublished document, manuscript 113 of the Laon 

catalogue. ^* An Old Gregorian Missal '' is the title of 

a liturgical study by D. A. Wilmart Fragments of Codex 
Casinensis 271 are shown to be from the authentic Roman 
Missal of the seventh and eighth centuries which was oi 
Gregorian origin and the predecessor of the Sacramentary 

of Pope Hadrian. ''The Trial and Disgrace of the 

Carafa'' is concluded.— -»The ravages wrought by Jan- 
senism in the Benedictine Congregation of St. Maur 
are suggested by a series of letters.-^— D. P. de Meester 
continues his papers on '' Orthodox Theology/' The 
present one deals with the Providence of God ; its Rela- 
tion to the Problem of Evil; The Foreknowledge of 
God; Predestination. 

Revue Pratique d' Apologitique (i July): "The Resurrection of 
Jesus Christ/' says E. Mangenot, was attested in St. 
Paul's view by six apparitions (1. Con xv.); however 
hard these may be to localize in time or place, they are 
historical facts. Their nature was corporeal, not purely 
psychical ; the e£forts to prove St. Paul an epileptic, who 
mistook an hallucination for a reality, are futile. 
Mgr. Douais, in his letter on ''Apologetics," calls this 
science the "introduction to faith."— " Recent Con- 
verts," continued by Fr. Alexis Crosnier. This article 
deals with Oliver George Destr^e, a fervent admirer of 
pre-Raphaelite art, a critic and writer of poems. His 
attention was turned to the Gospels by St. Francis and 
Tolstoy ; he entered the Benedictine monastery at Mared 
sous, to the great astonishment of Young Belgium. He 
has published in allegorical verse the story of his con* 

version. J. Bousquet describes "An Association of 

Priests" founded in 1876 by Abbd Chaumont under the 
patronage of St. Francis de Sales. 

Revue des Questions Sdentifiqifes (July) : Editorial congratula- 
tions to the University of Louvain. " Albert de Lap- 
parent and His Scientific Work," by Charles Barrois. This 
scientist, editor of the Revue de Giologie^ has recently 

died, crowned with honors. Dr. L. Vervaeck treats 

of " Finger prints. The scientific bases of the dactylo- 
scope and its use in criminal cases." A. Vermeersch, 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Foreign Periodicals 847 

SJ., shows that a lowered birth-rate is fatal to social 

progress. "Ports and their Economic Function." 

Four writers treat at length the histories of New 
York, Puteoli (which yielded to Naples after the reign 
of Emperor Theodosius), Shanghai^ and Zeebrugge (in 

Belgium). Articles on "The Correspondence of the 

Retinal Impressions Received in the Act of Sight." 

"Problems in Aviation." "Canadian Dairies." 

Chronique Sociale de France (July): M. Charles Calippe reviews 
An Effort at Synthesis of the Catholic Social Doctrines^ 
by M. Lorin. Quoting M. Lorin: "Everything in Catho- 
licity speaks of the idea of fraternity. . . . All de- 
votions of' the Church indicate that its members are of 
one great family. The Pater Noster ; the application of 
the name Mother to the Blessed Virgin Mary. Even 
the Papacy, the living expression of the Divine Pater- 
nity, is the concrete af&rmation of the human fraternity." 

" A New Social Law in Holland," by M. A. Van 

Den Hout ■ A bill proposing to eliminate night work 
and Sunday work in bakeries was introduced by the 
Minister of Industries. Many arguments are put forth 
in defense of the bill. " In the Country of Billions, 

by H. Cetty, speaks of the debts of German cities. 

" Gardens for Workers in the Country," by Abb^ H. 
Bourgeois, tells of the giving of land to those in need. 

"A Proposal to Revise Custom Houses," by Max 

Turmann. "Light on the Mountain Tops," by R^my, 

a retreat at the old Chartreuse du Haut-Don. 

Stimmen aus Maria-Laach (July): "Strikes and Lockouts," by 
Heinrich Pesch, SJ. The author points out the eco- 
nomic and social dangers of these forms of social con- 
trol, which breed class-hatred; but he admits their legit- 
imacy for just and weighty reasons, when peaceful means 
have failed, when the result is practical of attainment, 
and when violence is not employed.— ^Julius Bessmer, 
S.J., begins a discussion of "Telepathy." "The His- 
tory of Prayer-Books," by Stephen Beissel, S.J., from 
the psalters used by Charlemagne to those of the thir- 
teenth century.-^— Victor Cathrein, S.J., discusses "Eth- 
ics and Monistic Evolutionism." The logical results of 
this doctrine are the destruction of the moral order, the 



Digitized by 



Google 



848 Foreign Periodicals [Sept, 

denial of purpose in life, and the placing of murder on 

the same level as the killing of animals. ** Giacomo 

Leopardi, the Poet of Pessimism/' by A. Baumgartner, 
SJ. 

La Civilth Cattolica (3 July): ''The Masonic Religion/' Fifty 
years ago Freemasonry in France claimed to be toler- 
antf reverential, teaching faith in God and in the im- 
mortality of the soul; to-day, as openly stated by Mr. 
J. D. Buck in his " Genius of Freemasonry and the 
Thirteenth Century Crusade/' the Mason everywhere 
'' is, or ought to be, an enemy of Popery ; the indiffer- 
ence and supineness of many Masons on this point must 

mean either ignorance, folly, or cowardice/' "St. 

Clement and the Miracles of the Old Testament" A. 
Harnack, in a recent paper, endeavors to depict the 
mind of the Holy Pontiff as regards these miracles. He 
claims that St. Clement never attributed any religious 
value to them, since he was silent as to their import- 
ance. Fr. Hermann Van Laak, SJ., refutes this argu- 
mentation and reveals the great esteem of the Pope for 

these miracles. ''The Palazzo di Venezia in Rome/' 

continued. 

(17 July): "Adversaries of Capital Punishment" Father 

A. Ferretti defends the death penalty against Rabaud 

and Beccaria. "St. Anselm of Aosta and His Work 

in England." A short sketch of the man, the religious, 

and the master of the spiritual life. Fr. Savio, S.J., 

treats of Pope Pius X.'s "New Condemnation of Mod- 
ernism." In the second part of the Encyclical Cinn* 
munium R$rum the Holy Father calls Modernism "the 
synthesis of all heresies," shows its danger to the 

Church, and completely confutes its sophisms. "The 

Second Century of Mabillon. A Retrospect," continued* 

Razon y Fe (July) : Juan Antonio Martinez says that there 
has been formed by Father Henry Watrigant, S.J., a 
" Library of the Exercises of St Ignatius." It is located 

at Enghien, Belgium. "The Moral Influence of Raif- 

feisen's System" of rural banks has been great and good. 
Vice has decreased, mutual interest has awakened-—^ 
Continuing his discussion of "The Holy See and the 
Book of Isaias," L. Murillo disposes of the arguments 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] FOREIGN PERIODICALS 849 

against the possibility of prophecy. ''The Psychology 

of Patriotism^* shows it to be a rational form of love^ 
mingled with passion.— E. Portillo continues ** Dif- 
ferences Between Church and State Regarding Royal 
Patronage, in the Eighteenth Century." " The Im- 
morality of the Theater'* is assisted, says V. Minte- 

guiaga, by inefEcient legislation. P. Villada, in answer 

to '' An Objection Against the Censorship of Newspa- 
pers/* shows that articles, even on religion, there printed 
among those on other topics, do not fall under the Con- 
stitution " Officiorum."— " Twelve Years of Radio- 
Activity,** by J. M, del Barrio, is concluded. 
JEspana y America (i July): The first of a series of articles on 
** Mendel and His Scientific Work,** by P. Antonio 
Blanco, deals with the life and personality of the illus- 
trious Augustinian. ^The decay in agricultural re- 
sources and results has led to the organization of a 
*' Universal Co-operatives** bank. The causes of the 
decay and the statutes of the bank are described by 

P. Bruno Ibeas. "The Exegetical System of St. 

Thomas.'* P. Velilla de Tarilonte writes on the 

** Commercial Importance of China.** 
(15 July): P. Bruno Ibeas concludes his articles on 
** Co-operatives,** approving the efforts of Sr. Espiel to 
introduce new agricultural methods, to furnish safe and 
reasonable loan establishments, and to promote federa- 
tion and morality. "Christian Humility,'* as P. M« 

Velez shows in his closing article, does not lead to the 
fanaticism of inertia, loss of interest in life and in the 

welfare of one's country and one's friends. Felipe 

Robles continues "The Philosophy of the Verb." 

"The Apostle St. James and the Basilica of Compostela,** 

by P. Juan M. L6pez. P. Juvencio Hospital sends "A 

Traveler's Notes from China."— —Encyclical on the 
Centenary of St. Anselm continued. 



VOL. LZXXIX.-»54 

Digitized by 



Google 



Current Events* 

Holders of high office in the State 
France. ought to be as detached as reli- 

gious. M. Clemenceau, after hav- 
ing been in power for a longer time than any former premier, 
had every prospect of retaining office for an indefinite period. 
Only the week before he fell he had received from the Cham- 
ber of Deputies an endorsement of his policy by a vote of 
confidence of 345 to 90. Even on the very night on which 
the adverse vote was given there was not until within some 
twenty minutes any expectation of what was to follow. The 
mishap was due to his own bad temper and want of self-con- 
trol. M. Delcass^, it seems, has been a long-standing critic and 
opponent of M. Clemenceau, and he found in the state of the 
navy, which has just been revealed, an opportunity of makings 
an attack in no measured terms upon the head of the govern- 
ment, and of laying upon him the whole responsibility. He 
made a speech in which he accused the Premier of criminal 
neglect of duty, a neglect which had led to a state of anarchy 
in the naval department; of levity also and of weakness of 
will. M. Clemenceau was so stung by these taunts, that he lost 
self-control and entered upon a series of accusations, declaring 
that M. Delcass6 was responsible for having led France, by his 
over-ambitious schemes, to the semi-capitulation involved in the 
act of Algeciras. This made M. Delcass^ still more angry and 
he proceeded to call to the Prime Minister's remembrance, and 
to that of the Chamber, a long list of M. Clemenceau's previous 
misdeeds and to enumerate his own services to the country. 
The latter certainly were not inconsidereble, for the high position 
which France now holds in Europe is largely due to the diplo- 
macy of M. Delcass^. The agreement with Spain, the agreement 
with Italy, and the agreement with England were made by 
him. The mediation which put an end to the war between 
Spain and this country, the intervention which prevented on 
the occasion of the Dogger Bank outrage, a war between Rus- 
sia and Great Britain, and the preparation of the enUnte between 
France and England were his work. The speech of M. Del- 
cass^, in which he recounted all these achievements, won for 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current Events 851 

him the sympathy of the Chamber, a sympathy to which effect 
was given by a vote after M. Clemenceau's reply, and in con* 
sequence of that reply. For he accused M. Delcass^ of having 
brought the country within a hair's breadth of war without 
having done anything to prepare for any such eventuality by 
taking military precautions, although he had been informed 
by the Ministers of War and of Marine that they were not 
ready for war. 

By 212 votes to 176 the order of the day accepted by the 
government was rejected, and the end came of M. Clemenceau's 
tenure of power. His resignation, however, involved rather a 
reconstruction of the ministry than an entire change of govern- 
ment or of its policy. Within a few days M. Briand was able 
to form a new ministry, which contains within its ranks an 
equal number of old and new members, half a dozen of each. 
The recently appointed civilian head of the Naval Depattment 
has been replaced by an Admiral, and one General has followed 
another in the War Department. M. Briand himself is a revo- 
lutionary Socialist, and is the first Socialist of that type that 
has ever been the head of a government ; two of his colleagues 
also are Socialists. Revolutionary Socialists though they all 
are, they are not of the extremist type, for if they were they 
would not be willing to accept office. 

In addition to his office of Prime Minister, M. Briand is at 
the head of the Departments of the Interior and of Public Wor- 
ship; as Minister of the Interior he will have control of the 
preparations for the General Election which is to take place 
next spring. One of the most significant results of the change 
of ministry is the elimination of M. Simyan, to the dislike of 
whom the recent strikes of Post- Office officials was due. His 
office has been abolished, and at the head of the Department 
a Socialist, M. Millerand, has been appointed. Whether this 
is an indication of a change of policy towards these officials 
remains to be seen. That no change in external policy is like- 
ly to be made is shown by the fact that M. Pichon remains at 
the head of the Foreign Office. The Church in France being 
now placed on a voluntary basis, it is not easy to see what 
work M. Briand has to do as Minister of Worship. 

Capitalists do not grieve at the departure of M. Caillaux, 
the Minister of Finance, the author of the Income Tax which 
has so long been threatened, to which the wealthy are so 



Digitized by 



Google 



852 Current Events [Sept., 

bitterly opposed; but they do not yet know how M. Cocheiy, 
the new Minister, will act in this matter. The appointment of 
Admiral Bou^ de Lapeyrere, as Minister of Marine, puts an 
end to a ten years' term of Civil Heads of the Naval Depart- 
ment, a period daring which the navy has been declining in 
efficiency. He is said to be a keen disciplinarian and has in- 
augurated his regime by a wholesale removal of the chiefs of 
the Naval Departments. The Chief of the General StaflF, the 
Director of Naval Ordinance, the Director of the Fleet in 
Commission, the Director of Naval Construction, the Controller- 
General, have all been superseded. A reorganization has been 
effected in the highest department of all by the appointment of 
a permanent Under Secretary of the Navy. So many changes 
have never taken place before in modern French history. 
They show that a new era is to be entered upon, and that 
the government intends to fulfill the promises which M. Briand 
made in his first ministerial declaration, that there should be a 
complete reorganization of naval administration. 

In all other respects it is continuity that has been promised. 
The Old Age Pensions Bill, which has been for so long a time 
before Parliament, is to be earnestly pushed forward. The In- 
come Tax Bill also is to be carried through the Senate. The 
way for a Reform Bill is to be prepared by trying at the ap- 
proaching municipal election the system of proportional repre- 
sentation in order to give to minorities at least some voice in 
legislation. The Bill regulating the status of civil servatits is 
also to be proceeded with. Various other measures were an- 
nounced indicating the adhesion of the New Cabinet to the 
line marked out by M. Clemenceau. 

After M. Briand's speech the Chamber declared itself sat- 
isfied by a vote of 306 to 46. It then adjourned until October, 
and left the new government in peaceful possession of power. 

One of the most remarkable of M. Briand's declarations 
was that he was an enemy of persecutions, a believer in liberty, 
and a disbeliever in the repression of religious ideas or forms of 
worship. And yet, as it will be remembered, it was he who car- 
ried through the Chamber of Deputies the Separation Bill. He 
went on immediately to affirm that he would not permit any 
encroachment upon the work of laicization which was being 
accomplished by the Third Republic; that, on the contrary, 
it would be unswervingly defended. It was his intention, too. 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current Events 853 

to govern: the Chamber must be content with the right of 
control and of legislation. It seems somewhat difficult to har- 
monize into one consistent whole these various declarations. 

The visit of the Tsar to Cherbourg, where he was met by 
President Falli^res and M. Pichon, the Foreign Minister, has, 
it is said, strengthened the alliance with Russia, if it stood in 
need of strengthening — a thing which is denied. All agree in 
affirming that it has removed every obstacle to the preserva- 
tion of peace by making it clear to any one who might be will- 
ing to make war how closely united are the enemies with whom 
he would have to cope. The balance of power is now so well 
established by the union of Russia, France, and Great Britain, 
that no room is left for the domination of any one Power. 
The attempt to attain or to retain such domination is the only 
thing that would disturb Europe at the present time, and 
when it is seen how difficult the accomplishment of such a 
task would be it is less likely that the effort will be made. 
The visits made by the Tsar to M. Falli^res and to King Ed- 
ward are looked upon as having had this result. 

The Courts of Law have decided that the government was 
right in refusing to allow the Post-Office officials to form a 
trade union and that it was illegal for them to make such an 
attempt. This right is declared to belong only to private in- 
dividuals, and not to civil servants. As to the right to strike, 
the Court holds that it is preposterous for State employees to 
arrogate this to themselves, as they are the employees of the 
nation and have special privileges which are not possessed by 
the working classes. This judgment shows that the course 
adopted by the government of M. Clemenceau in its treatment 
of the strikers wa?, to say the least, legal. 



About a week before M. Clemen- 
Germany, ceau relinquished the French 

Premiership, Prince Biilow retired 
from the German Chancellorship. With many differences, there 
was substantially the same reason for the departure of both — 
neither had succeeded in satisfying the representatives of the 
people. The Bill for the reform of the Finances of the Em- 
pire, and the plan adopted by the Prince for raising additional 
taxation, did not meet with the approval of the Reichstag. It 



Digitized by 



Google 



I 



8S4 Current Events [Sept, 

was so fundamentally altered, notwithstanding all the e£Forts of 
the Prince, and altered too by the parties in the Reichstag 
that are supposed to be especially deferential to the wishes of 
those in authority — ^the Conserratives and the Centre — that the 
Prince could no longer, with the self-respect which he felt was 
due to himself, remain at the head of affairs. While, there- 
fore, as a matter of form, a German Minister of State is ac-> 
countable only to the Emperor, yet as a matter of fact he 
must be able to secure the confidence of the people and their 
representatives in order to continue in office. At least in this 
instance this is shown to be the real situation. Whether, 
therefore, the Committee which is now sitting to discuss the 
question of miaisterial responsibility ever reports or not, or | 
whether a formal change is ever made or not, is not a matter i 
of great importance. For it will in great probability be 
brought to pass, in Germany as in England, that all real 
power will fall into the hands of the holders of the purse. 

The Chancellor was not the only one to resign, the Minis- 
ter for Finance took the same step. The plan for the perma- 
nent reform of the German finances had to be abandoned; a 
more or less makeshift scheme of taxation was passed. These 
new ta^es have gone into effect, and have resulted, so there is 
good reason to think, in a further spread of dissatisfaction. 
A by-election has taken place for the Neustadt division of tbe 
Palatinate, which has been held for forty years by the National 
Liberals and has resulted in the return of a Social Democrat, 
a member of the party which is almost in revolt against the 
existing order. It is universally recognized that the result 
reflects the hostility of increasing numbers of the people to 
the new taxes, and that this hostility may lead to the increase 
of the power of the party to which the government is most 
opposed. 

The new Chancellor, Dr. von Bethmann-Hollweg, belongs 
to a different class from that which has supplied former 
Chancellors. He is not exactly a plebeian, but he is not a 
member of the aristocracy or of any of the more or less 
privileged classes to which Prince Bismarck, Count von Caprivi, 
Prince Hohenlohe, or Prince Btilow, his predecessors, owed 
their origin. His grandfather was a professor, his father a 
landed proprietor. If he is a Jew, as has been said, a still 
farther departure from tradition has been made. The services 



Digitized by 



Google_ 



1909.] Current events 855 

which he has hitherto rendered to the State were, until be 
became in 1905 the Prussian Minister of the Interior, in the 
ranks of the administration. He is not supposed to have any 
intimate knowledge of Foreign Affairs, and there are those 
who say that this was one reason for his appointment/ as the 
Emperor will be almost forced to act in the capacity of 
Foreign Minister. The new Chancellor has the reputation of 
being patient and diligent, able to make correct speeches in 
defence of any government measure, to have a keen eye as to 
the trend of public opinion. Prince Btilow's bloc has been de- 
stroyed, it having been dissolved into its elements. The coali- 
tion of the Conservatives with the Centre is declared by the 
former to have been merely temporary. The Liberals and 
Radicals are in hopeless confusion. As the Reichstag is not 
sitting, no one can tell upon which of its many parties the 
Chancellor will rely; but every one can see that he will have 
no light task in finding parliamentary support. 



No progress has been made towards 
Austria-Hungary. the formation of a new government 

to take the place of Dr. Wekerle's ; 
nor has anything been done to give to Bosnia and Herze- 
govina the measure of autonomy which was promised when 
they were annexed. The heir apparent, the Grand Duke Franz 
Ferdinand, is said to look forward to the confederation of the 
various races of which the Empire is made up, and hopes to 
find in it a remedy for the many evils from which the coun- 
try suffers. There are others who, seeing the success which 
has attended that method in this country, hope to apply it to 
the whole of Europe. A gentleman, it is said, has been 
traveling through the capital cities of Europe trying to con- 
vince the present holders of power to subordinate themselves 
to one supreme ruler with limited powers, and to bring all the 
nations into one confederation to form the United States of 
Europe. This seems almost ridiculous ; but if a few years ago 
the prediction had been made that Russia and Turkey would 
have parliaments in any shape or form, and that members of 
these parliaments would be received abroad with greater honor 
than either Tsar or Sultan, such a prophet would not have 
been widely believed. 

Digitized by VjOOQIC 



856 Current Events [Sept., 

Bat this is what has taken place. 
Russia. The Tsar has been paying a visit 

to the King of England and was 
received with all due honor by him and by the goverment. 
But it is very doubtfal whether he woald not have been in- 
sulted if he had set foot in any town of Great Britain. Many 
protests were made against his being received at alL In Parlia- 
ment and out of Parliament^ in the public press, and at public 
meetings called for the purpose, these protests were made. It 
was the Labor Party, the representatives of the working people, 
that was most energetic and outspoken. But remonstrance 
was not confined to it. Bishops like Bishop Gore, scientific 
men like Sir Oliver Lodge, members of Parliament not belong- 
ing to the Labor Party, authors, editors, and a few Peers 
joined in an effort to dissociate the government from ex- 
tending to the Tsar any welcome. On the other hand, the 
deputies from the Duma, who had come a short time be- 
fore on a visit to England, were received with open arms; 
the government, the universities^ and the masses of the people 
everywhere, vied with one another in showing them honor. 
The reason for the difference was that the Tsar was looked 
upon as responsible for the numerous executions which have 
been taking place in Russia during the past two or three 
years, for the incarceration without trial of tens of thousands 
of innocent men and women, and for the horrible administra- 
tion methods which are still maintained in Russia. How far the 
Tsar is responsible for this cannot be decided; persons in his 
position are, unless they are men of wonderful force of char- 
acter, more often rather the victims than the controllers of the 
systems of which they form a part. Nor can it be denied that 
the Tsar is the giver of a measure of representative govern- 
ment, and that he has resisted the many efforts which have 
been made to suppress it. 

In any case, notwithstanding all the opposition which was 
offered, the Tsar was received by the King. It may have 
been a choice of evils; that it was felt to be more important 
to maintain the balance of power in Europe by the union of 
Russia, France, and Great Britain than to act as human sym- 
pathies suggested. The internal affairs of Russia were not 
the concern of the King or government of Great Britain. 
The visit is said to have resulted in yet another consolidation 



Digitized by 



Google 



I909-] CURRENT EVENTS 8$ 7 

of the forces which make for peace. It is to be followed 
by visits to the King of Italy and to the new Saltan. 

It seems to be certain that there 
Spain. have been disturbances in Spain; 

but as the government took the 
usual course of the weak, and tried to suppress the truth by 
a severe censorship, imagination was given full play, and every 
kind of contradictory statement made. AH Catalonia was, it 
was said, in open revolt, the army disaffected, the Republicans 
were on the point of rising, the Carlists were assembling with 
Don Jaime at their head. Don Jaime, however, was no nearer 
than his home in Austria, from which he issued a manifesto 
saying that he never would be guilty of such a crime as ex- 
citing a civil war. He was ready indeed to be the savior of 
Spain, whose King was becoming, he said, unpopular, and 
whose Queen was not liked. According to several accounts in 
Barcelona a large number of churches and convents had been 
burned, women and children being numbered among the per- 
petrators of these deeds, monks and nuns had been killed, 
some even at the foot of the altar, and outrages too horrible 
to mention had been committed. According to another, that 
of a well-known Deputy and an eye-witness of all that had 
taken place, there had been no murder, robbery, outrage, or 
pillage at all. No nuns had been in any way harmed or in- 
sulted. Some convents indeed had been attacked, but this 
was done with the object of freeing the nuns from what the 
people looked upon as a miserable life. No prisoners had 
been shot. The army had behaved splendidly. There was no 
separatist movement whatever. All that took place was the 
result of an outburst of feeling consequent on the departure 
of the reservists. Which of these is the true account it is, of 
course, not within our power to decide. There is, however, 
too much reason to think that the Deputy is altogether too 
much of a minimizer. 

It seems clear, however, that in Spain there is a very strong 
feeling against war. Other countries have their peace societies, 
but on the least provocation the war frenzy predominates. 
Spain, so far as we know, has no peace society, but is hard to 
move to arms. The present conflict seems to be due to the 
opening of mines in territory which is outside of that which 



Digitized by 



Google 



858 Current Events Sept., 

belongs to Spain, in the neighborhood of Melilla and within 
the territory of the Riffs, a warlike Moorish tribe, who object 
to mines and to the railway which was being built from Melilla. 
They showed their dislike by killing some workmen who were 
building the railway. For this the Governor of Melilla felt 
called upon to chastise them, a task which has proved more 
difficult to accomplish than was expected. All parties in Spain, 
however, have come to think that national honor is involved 
and are determined to push forward operations to a successful 
conclusion. 

There has been so far very little 
Turkey. change in the state of affairs in 

Turkey. Hilmi Pasha's ministry 
still retains the management, although there is a movement said 
to be promoted by the Committee of Union and Progress to 
supersede it by one more in accordance with their own ideas. 
It is to be feared that the Committee is seeking to grasp all 
the power of the State, and thereby to stand in the way of 
real constitutional government. In fact, the expectation of the 
establishment of such a government cannot be said to be 
strong ; the most that can be said, so far, is that Turkey is on 
the road towards its attainment. It is upon the army that the 
present order rests, and although the soldiers are said to favor 
a constitutional form of government, yet the military spirit is 
essentially so opposed to such restraints, that doubts may be 
entertained of the persistence of this feeling. In fact, the mar- 
tial law which was to have lasted for only a few weeks, has 
been extended until next March, and this too without any rea- 
son having been given. The visit which has been paid to 
England by a large number of the members of the Parliament^ 
and the exceedingly warm reception which was given to these 
visitors, may prove to have had a counteracting influence. 

The real spirit of the Young Turks has been manifested in 
the effort which they have made to re- assert Turkish authority 
in Crete. That authority for many years has been merely nom- 
inal, and even that nominal authority was cast off by the Cre- 
tans last autumn. Were it not that the Powers sympathize so 
strongly with the new rigime in Turkey, they would have, in 
all probability, acquiesced in the action of the Cretans and have 
allowed Greece to annex the island. The Powers now stand 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] Current Events 859 

between Turkey and Greece, and will not allow either to have 
their own way. Turkey is ready to go to war and so are the 
Cretans. So strained a situation cannot last long. 



The news from Persia is very ni«a- 
Persia. ger. As a compensation for not 

serving his country the ex- Shah 
is to receive more than one hundred thousand dollars a year, 
and is therefore about to take his departure. This has given 
his former subjects some degree of relief. A greater degree 
would be felt if the Russian troops would depart, for all Per- 
sians deeply resent every kind of foreign intervention. No 
doubts are entertained about the good faith of Russia; in fact 
conspicuous good faith has been shown, for the strongest pres- 
sure was put upon the representative of Russia to bring the 
troops into Teheran during the recent troubles, to which he re- 
fused to yield. Little anxiety is felt that in this respect all 
will turn out well. But whether any degree of union can be 
brought about among the jarring forces within the country 
itself seems rather doubtful. The Parliament has not yet met, 
seems not even to have been elected. Anarchy is spreading on 
all sides. The boy of nine years cannot, of course, control 
affairs. Whether a strong, honest, and able guide can be found 
to bring about peace and order remains for the future to disclose. 



Digitized by 



Google 



THE COLUMBIAN READING UNION. 

THE HUDSON-FULTON CELEBRATION. 

ONE is apt to forget, in the midst of a great anniversary pageant, the 
names of men whose deeds were not so opportunely cast as to coincide 
with large colonizing movements and theoutreachings of trade to a new con- 
tinent. £ighty*five years before Henry Hudson explored the river which 
bears his name, Verazzano sailed into New York harbor* A year later, in 
1525, Gomez, another early navigator, called the Hudson the River of St. 
Anthony, and it is so charted on some early maps. 

This earliest known, and in all likelihood first European, name of the 
Hudson brings home to us a reminder of the temperament of that other day. 
We have rivers and cities and falls and lakes of the Holy Sacrament, of the 
Trinity, of the Holy Spirit, of the Sacred Heart; and hundreds of others — 
some lost, as this of the Hudson, and some preserved to us — which bear the 
names of saints. One cannot help contrasting the spirits of the two ages. 
No one can take up, regardless of his knowledge of European history, an 
early map of the Americas without discovering in its very place-names the 
one great cause which sent men forth in tiny cockleshells upon unknown 
seas. And one may be forgiven for doubting to-day whether the discoverer 
of the North Pole will fall upon his knees, take possession for his country 
Cross in hand, and dedicate the spot to Our Lady of the Snows. 

There rs much virtue in opportuneness. In 1609 began a twelve years' 
truce between the Netherlands and Spain. The little Dutch Republic was 
the manufacturing and commercial center of Europe, and Amsterdam, 
whence Hudson set sail, was the greatest shipping- port of the world. The 
Dutch East India Company, which figures so largely in the explorations of the 
Hudson River, was composed of six branches known as the Chambers of 
Amsterdam, Zeeland, Delft, Rotterdam, Hoorn, and Enkhuizen. It was in 
the employ of this sixteenth- century promoting company that Hudson under- 
took the voyage in his ship, De Halve Maene^ a tiny craft, as we think to-day, 
about 75 feet long and 17 feet wide. 

After an unsuccessful attempt to find a northeast passage, Hudson 
turned his prow towards the American coast in the belief that there was a 
sea between Virginia and New England which would give entrance to the 
Pacihc Ocean. The exploration of the great river which now bears Hudson's 
name is a familiar story. It is thought that the Half Moon went up as high 
as Albany. The explorations occupied a month and the identification of the 
course depends much upon the recorded descriptions of the country. 

The coincidence of two anniversaries such as those of Hudson and Ful- 
ton is very happy. Surely no two names are more closely connected with the 
Hudson River. On the one hand we have the Englishman in the service of 
a great Dutch commercial company, a skilled, fearless seaman, favored by a 
season of peace and industrial expansion, who bears to the outer world tid- 
ings of a new land — ''a very good land to fall with and a pleasant land to 
^ee." On the other side we have Robert Fulton, born of Irish parents in 
Little Britain (now Fulton), Lancaster County, Pennsylvania, a man of fine 
mechanical talent, of no mean skill as an artist, and to whose inventive 
genius we are indebted for the development of steamboating, and for pioneer 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] The Columbian Reading Union 861 

work with submarineSi torpedoesi and inland canals. These are no inconsid- 
erable achievements for the close of the eighteenth century. 

Fulton was not the first to invent a steam-propelled boat even in Ameri- 
ca. John Fitch tried an awkward vessel, propelled by rows of oars, on the 
Delaware, in July, 1786. As a matter of fact, Fulton's was the fifteenth inven- 
tion of a steam craft, but his great merit lies in this, that he was able to estab- 
lish steamboating on a firm basis and for all time. The history of this form 
of navigation begins with Fulton. 

Fulton's historic voyage up the Hudson drew thousands of citizens to the 
shores of the river to jeer at what they called ''Fulton's Folly." No one 
believed that locomotion after this fashion was possible, and an awe came 
over the watchers as the Clermont^ with Fulton at the helm, drew out into 
midstream and moved up the river. 

In these days, accustomed as we are to palatial, sea-going hotels, the 
following description of the Clermont possesses considerable interest : 

*' The original Clermont was 150 feet long and 13 feet wide, with 7 feet 
depth of hold. She drew 2 feet of water. Her hull (below the deck) had 
wedge-shaped bow and stern, cut sharp to the angle of sixty degrees. In 
horizontal plan her sides were parallel and she was almost wall-sided, being a 
very little wider on deck than on the bottom. Her bottom was flat with no 
keel and she had two steering-boards or lee-boards to prevent drifting side- 
ways. She had two masts, but no bowsprit or figurehead. She had two 
cabins, one forward and one aft. The tiller by which she was steered was at 
the back end of the after cabin, so that it was difficult for the helmsman to see 
what lay ahead. The engine, which was made in England, was amidship 
between the two cabins and was uncovered. The boiler was of copper. The 
paddlewheels, 15 feet in diameter, were uncovered, which resulted in drench- 
ing the passengers, and no guards protected the wheels from collision. 
Later, the paddlewheels were covered. To turn around, one paddlewheel 
was disconnected. The flywheels of the engine were outside of the hull for- 
ward of the paddlewheels, and revolved the same way. On one occasion, 
when one of the paddlewheels was disabled, it is said, paddles were attached 
to the flywheel and the voyage continued." • 

It is hard for us who live in a day that has lost its faculty of wonderment 
—who have seen the marvels, and touched them with irreverent hands, of the 
camera, the telephone, the wireless telegraph, the aeroplane — to appreciate 
the importance of Fulton's achievement. And it is much to be feared that, 
knowing the whole earth round, and appropriating without effort the hard- 
won secrets of nature, we have little conception of the hardihood, the un- 
flinching courage, the iron determination required to put gaily out as Hud- 
son did with an unknown sea before him and a cut-throat crew behind. 

If the great pageant, to be held in New York from September 25 to Oc- 
tober 9, under the direction of the Hudson-Fulton Celebration Commis- 
sion, but lifts us out of ourselves and our surroundings and brings us to a 
better understanding of those other days, to a keener appreciation of the 
fact that we are finishers of the work begun in hardship and disappointment 
by otber sturdy hands — ^it will be well worth while. It is good to go back. 
A self-sufficient present argues many things — but most of all ingratitude. 
•Hrndtw and Fulton, by Edward Hagaman HaU, L.H.M., L.H.D. 

uigitized by VjOOQIC 



862 THE Columbian Reading Union [Sept., 

CATHOLIC BOOKS IN PUBLIC LIBRARIES. 

Possibly no article published within the last six months in The Catho- 
lic World has caused such widespread comment as that entitled ** Catholic 
Books in Public Libraries," by William Stetson Merrill, in the July issue. 
The article has been reprinted in full and in part a dozen or more times in 
Catholic papers throughout the country, considerable discussion and com- 
ment has been stirred up in their columns, and we have received a number 
of letters from our readers telling of work that has been, and is now being, 
carried on in different cities in the cause of Catholic reading. 

All this only goes to show that oftentimes excellent work is being done 
in many quarters of which we are quite in ignorance. And when we fully 
realize this, the pity of it comes home to us that each one of us, more or less 
isolated as we are, should be obliged to struggle with the same difficulties 
and make the same mistakes without being able to profit by the experience 
of other workers in the same field. One of the best results of this article of 
Mr. Merrill's is that it has made many earnest and successful workers in the 
library field known to* each other. This is bound to produce good results. 

The number of letters we have received on the ways and means of in- 
creasing, and making better known, the Catholic books in public libraries is 
most encouraging. It shows what a deep interest there is in this work 
throughout the country. We regret that all these letters cannot be pub- 
lished. The following, however, is lepresentative : 

Milwaukee, Wis., July 21, 1909. 
Editor of The Catholic World : 

The article of Mr. Merrill on ** Catholic Literature in Public Libraries," 
published in your July number, page 500, contains important sugges- 
tions. Also, it caused considerable discussion in the secular press and 
iaterviewrs with public librarians. There is no doubt that all the public 
libraries contain a great number of good Catholic books, some of 
which have not been called for since they were placed upon the library 
shelves. Therefore, the librarians of public libraries have had little encour- 
agement from Catholics to buy Catholic books. This condition induced the 
Milwaukee Council, No. 524, Knights of Columbus, to publish the first (ex- 
cepting Father 0*Donovan's) and most numerous list of Catholic books in a 
public library. Since the publication of the Milwaukee K. C. catalogue, 
nearly fifty other K. C. Councils in the different parts of the United States 
have prepared catalogues of the books in their local public libraries. Copies 
of the Milwaukee K. C. catalogue have, on requests of librarians, been sent 
to nearly all -parts of the world, including India, Australia, New Zealand, 
and the Ladrone Islands. At a national meeting of librarians, the Mil- 
waukee K. C. catalogue was mentioned, and subsequently nearly every public 
librarian in the United States asked for one or more copies, which were 
furnished, until the edition became exhausted. • • . 

Dr. Peckham, the Milwaukee City librarian, has been especially atten- 
tive to the Catholic demands for books, and he has put in many books that 
he has seen favorably mentioned in Catholic periodicals. In the catalogue 
of Catholic books in the Milwaukee Public Library there are listed about 
4,000 volumes, and since it was published in 1903-4, about 400 additional 



Digitized by 



Google 



1909.] IHE COLUMBIAN READING UNION 863 

volumes of the latest and best Catholic books have been placed in the 
library. • • • 

There should be some Catholic clearing house for catalogues, ¥^hich 
would form a very useful department of the Catholic University at Wash- 
ington. Why should not the University take care of that work? Also, it 
would be a very praiseworthy thing for the editors of newspapers and maga- 
zines that review books, to send copies of their reviews to the catalogue 
clearing house at the University. Finally, the University might issue an 
annual catalogue of all Catholic books, either with suggestions or without 
comment. CM. Scanlan. 

In reference to Mr. Scanlan's remark about a collection of book re- 
views, it may be worthwhile to call attention here to the fact that in each 
4>ound copy of The Catholic World, in addition to the index to articles, 
there is a full index to the new books reviewed. The value of this will be at 
once apparent when it is pointed out that over two hundred and fifty works 
were reviewed in the Book Department of The Catholic World during 
1908-09. A complete file of The Catholic World will therefore be aval- 
uable aid to any one who takes up the work of cataloguing Catholic books. 

The press comments on Mr. Merrill's article were all very favorable 
and furnish three very practical considerations. First, that the listing of 
Catholic books is a most efficient means to arousing an interest in them, both 
on the part of Catholics themselves and on the part of librarians. Second, 
that there are many times numbers of Catholic books on public library 
shelves uncalled for and unknown. Third, that active interest manifested 
by Catholic readers in their own literature will be met half-way by librarians 
and lead to a larger purchase of Catholic books. 

While it is quite true that in some quarters there has existed, 
and still exists, a discrimination against Catholic books, and while 
Catholics at times- have with difficulty induced public libraries to ad- 
mit a fair proportion of Catholic works, this prejudice, happily, is not 
often encountered. It is the exception rather than the rule and is gradually 
disappearing. 

The practical, work-a-day counsel, then, is : Catalogue the books I 
This is a task which Catholic young men and women can set their heads and 
hands to with the sure knowledge that they are doing lasting work. One 
hesitates to say where it is most needed, in the small towns or in the large 
cities. What is certain is that it is badly needed everywhere. It will bring 
our people to a familiarity with their own literature which it would be well- 
nigh impossible to acquire in any other manner. Catalogue the books t 
• • • 

AMERICAN FEDERATION CONVENTION. 
The Eighth annual convention of the American Federation of Catholic 
Societies was held in Pittsburg on the 9th, loth, and nth of August. It is 
regarded as the greatest gathering in the history of the organization since its 
founding in Cincinnati, December 11, 1901. Over five hundred delegates 
attended the sessions, and a distinguished gathering of members of the 
hierarchy, among whom were Bishops Canevin of Pittsburg, McFaul of 
Trenton, Fitzmaurice of Erie, Hartley of Columbus, and Maes of Covington* 

L^iyiLi^eu uy "*»„■ 'v^ V^ V(f L V^ 



864 BOOKS RECEIVED [Sept., I909.] 

As a plan of campaign for the coming year resolutions were adopted re- 
garding profanity and the Holy Name societies ; the indecent theater ; war 
against the whiteslave traffic; negro and Indian missions; support of Catholic 
papers ; Catholic Church extension ; observance of Sunday ; adhesion to the 
Church in all questions concerning socialism; opposition to divorce; civic 
loyalty of Catholics; offenses against public morality; abolition of any and 
every religious test in all employment; religious instruction in education; 
compensation for secular education given in the Catholic public schools ; 
support of Catholic elementary schools^ academies, colleges, and universities ; 
Catholic literature in libraries ; clean journalism. 

Prior to the regular business sessions of the Convention a mass meeting 
was held on Sunday evening, August 8, in Carnegie Hall. A large audience 
was present and addresses were delivered by a number of prominent mem- 
bers of the Federation. Bishop Canevin spoke of the purpose of the Federa- 
tion and Mr. Walter George Smith, of Philadelphia, welcomed the delegates, 
declaring that they could not go back too often to the origin of the Federa- 
tion. 

At a second public meeting, held on August 10, Bishop McFaul, who 
has been prominently identified with the Federation ever since its inception, 
spoke of the power of the press, adding a word of warning about present 
conditions in this country. He said : 

'< Let me announce it deliberately and with all the emphasis possible 
that the time has come when infidelity and immorality are stalking abroad in 
our land, and that it behooves all Christian people, Protestants and Catholics 
alike, to forget their petty jealousies and differences and, although holding 
fast to their religious convictions, to unite, to stand shoulder to shoulder, 
forming an impregnable barrier to anti-Christian doctrines and pagan 
morals." 



BOOKS RECEIVED. 

Haspbk & Brothers, New York : 

Jason, By Justus Miles Forman. Pp. 357. Price $1.50. 
Benzigbr Brothers, New York : 

A Homily of Si. Gngoty the Great on tJU Pastoral Office. By Reverend P. Boyle. Pp. 24. 
Doubled AY, Page & Co., New York : 

Marriage d la Mode. By Mrs. Humphrey Ward. Pp. 324. Price $z.80. 
La Salle Bureau of Supplies. New York : 

Sixth Reader. De La Salle Series. Pp. 480. 
Sherman, French & Co., Boston, Mass. : 

Confession; and Othtr Poems. By May Austin Low. Pp. 47. Price 80 cents net. 
Love, Faith, and Endeavor. By Harvey Carson Gruxnbine. Pp. 76. Price $z. 
B. Herder, St. Louis, Mo.: 

7 he Roman Breviary, By Dom Jules Baudot. Pp. 260. Price $z net. 
M. H. Gill & Son. Dublin, Ireland : 

The Mass in the Infant Church. By Rev. Garrett Pierse. Pp. Z97. Price 31. 6d. 
Sands & Co., London, England: 

The Holy Practices of a Diinne Lover. By Dame Gertrude More. Pp. az6. Price 75 
cents net. 
Kegan Paul, Trench, Trubner & Co., London: 

The Berlin Discussion of the Problem oj Evolution. By Erich Wasmann, S. J. Pp. 966. 
Manresa Press, Roehampton, S. W., England : 

Index to the Month. Pp. zoS. Price 3; . 6d. net. 

y Digitized by Google 



OUX O' DOORS. 

SUMMER PLEASURES are essentially out-of-door ones. 
All the active sports make the bath a luxury ; add to its delights 
by using HAND SAPOLIO, the only Soap which lifts a bath above 
a commonplace cleansing process^ makes every pore respond, and 
energizes the whole body. It is a summer necessity to every man, 
woman, and child who would be daintily clean. Keeps you fresh 
aad sweet as a sea breeze; prevents sunburn and roughness. 
Make the test yourself. 

THE PERFECT PURITY of HAND SAPOLIO makes it a 
very desirable toilet article; it contains no animal fats, but is made 
from the most healthftil of the vegetable oils. Its use is a fine habit. 



HAND SAPOLIO is related to Sapolio only because it is made 
by the same company, but it is delicate, smooth, dainty, soothing, and 
liealing to the most tender skin. Don't argue. Don't infer, Try it! 



IT IS TRUE 

In every sense tltat 

COl-ORAIDO 

AS A 

Summer Resort 

STANDS HIGH. 

Xiie Popular Route to Colorado Is tlte 

UNION PACIFIC. 

Bleetric Antomatic BIocIl Stsrnals. 
— XHH 8APJ9 ROAD XQ TRATEI^,— 

For Rates and Xnformatron inantre of 

J. n. oePRxeaT, o. r. amu^ 
aar mmoAowAY, new york, n. y. 



Digitized by VjU- 



^ 



' ^>-^ :'C a- ''*»- 



Write fur CMtolofM D iDd 



V05B 4k SONS PUWO CO- BeiTO^ 



HousBfuiQlstimg 
WaiBTOoms 

(Established 1835,) 

Kltdten ITteiisn« 

Cutlery, China, Glassware, 
Howiedea^nc Articles 

Brnahes, Brooms, Dusters, Polishes 
for floors, Furniture, and Metals. 

" BEST QUAUTY ONLY." 

Refrigerators 

TlM PerfRactten of Cleanliness* 

HflictnncT* and Seonomx* 

vTKa ^^JfAAjr '' Our Standard for a 
1 ne . JSaay quarter Century 

The •• Premier " guss Kned 
X30 A xja We«t 4Sd St., 





THE RECOGNIZED SUPERIOR 

■ OF ALL 

MMESm 

AND 

IMPORTED 

^OCOAS 



FROM sm jam 




GOOD ^ 

Outside r 



"<^>: 



or 
Inside 



/ 



A. 



Necco Sweets ^Ss.^Sl 

fiJtsh, always wholcsooie. The NTO- 
your safeguard — i:s on every boi 
SWEETS. It is your protection. L 
find it before you buy. 

WhocTcr has a aweet tooth w: 1 .: 
treat like 

Take home a box for the fa- - 
children eat all they want. NECCO >^^ 
a choice of some 500 varieties. A J ^^'^ 
good. All are perfecUy wholesome 

At all dealers wko sell kiik r^^ '- 
NEW EMGLIMirO CaHFECTIOITEBr CO.. 8ir ' 



Digitized by 



Google \ 



Digitized by 



Google 



Digitized by 



Google 



Digitized by 



Google 



Digitized by 



Google 



Digitized by 



Google